《Eternal Cultivation of Alchemy》 Chapter 1:Eternal Cultivation A young man walked out of a train in Oakleaf city. ''Woah!'' he looked at the surrounding train station and was surprised at how glossy and expensive-looking it was. His black hair, fair skin, and child-like face made him look so very naive and simpleminded. He followed some signs to get out of the train station and finally saw the Oakleaf city in its full glory. He stopped in his tracks amazed at how big the buildings were, how many vehicles there were on the road, and just how well dressed everyone looked. "So, which way is the Oakleaf University?" He wondered as he took out his cheap-looking phone and started looking up the map. After learning the directions, he started walking. He had a suitcase with him that he dragged along the city. Throughout the city, he would see giant billboards and posters promoting a single thing, making him wonder just what was Eternal Cultivation?. "Hmm¡­ is that a new movie? Looks good. Maybe I will get to see what a big city''s cinema looks like. " His countryside village also had cinemas, but the screen was small, so he usually preferred watching the movies on his family computer. He finally reached the university and asked a few people to find his way to dormitory A. He walked up to a register table and got his key for his room. His room was numbered 205, so he walked into an elevator and got up. As he came out of the elevator, he got a phone call. He looked at the caller and realized his mom was calling him. He accepted the call. "Alex? Where are you? Did you reach the university?" a worried voice came from the other side of the phone. "Yes, mother. I am currently in the dormitory, look for my new room." Alex replied. "Oh good, good. Here, your father wants to talk to you." "Hey son, how are you doing? Was the train ride okay? You didn''t find it discomforting, right?" His father asked him in a worried voice. "No, father. It was fine. In fact, it was amazing. I never knew trains went that fast." Alex said. "Haha," his father laughed from the other side of the phone, "That''s what you get when you live your entire life on a farm. We shouldn''t have home-schooled you either. Fortunately, you will be getting new experiences now." "It''s okay father. The school was in the town. It would''ve been hard for you to take me there regularly on a 2-hour ride." Alex said. "Alright. Remember what I told you okay. Don''t be friends with bad people. There are a lot of different people in the big cities. Learn to figure out which people are good and which are not. You should be old enough to know what to do and what not to do. Oh yeah, and just because you are 18 and you can, don''t go to those stupid clubs, I hear they are just a waste of money." Alex smiled a little and replied, "I understand, father. Oh, I''m in front of my room now. I will call you guys later, bye. " "Alright, I will end the call then. Oh, right! Call Hannah and let her know you have arrived." "Bye," his father and mother said at the same time and ended the call. Alex walked up to Room 205 and opened the door using his key. When he opened the room, he was surprised. He didn''t expect his room to already have people staying in it. Inside were 3 young men. 2 of them were up and talking, while one was seemingly sleeping. The room had 2 bunk beds and 4 closets. Aside from that, Alex couldn''t see anything there. "Hello, are you guys staying in this room as well?" he asked as he walked in. "Yes, Are you our new roommate?" one of the people asked. "Ah, yes," Alex said as he showed the key numbered 205. "Hello, my name is Alex Benton." He said as he walked in. "Oh, hi. My name is Eric and this is Matt" Eric said introducing himself and the other person. "Hi," Matt greeted as well. "You just arrived right? So, I assume you haven''t eaten anything yet. It''s nearly 3 pm. Why don''t you freshen up and we can go get some afternoon lunch in the cafeteria." Alex nodded and changed to a normal shirt and pants. He went to the bathroom attached to the room and cleaned himself. By the time he got out, the third man was already up. "I''m sure you can do it next time. Just buy a pill if you can''t." "I know, but those cost money. And I''m not really playing to make money." "Then you just gotta hope you breakthrough next time." The man finally saw Alex. "Hey, you the new guy? Hi, I am Logan. What''s up?" "Hello, my name is Alex," he replied too. Afterward, all of them went to the cafeteria to get some food. The 3 started talking about the same thing they were talking about in the room and it made Alex confused. He didn''t know the context. "What are you guys talking about exactly?" he asked. "Eternal Cultivation," Matt replied. "Oh, the new movie? I saw posters of it on the streets." Alex said with a face of understanding. Matt, Eric, and Logan looked at him with a look of confusion. Logan then said, "it''s not a movie. It''s the best VR game in existence. Don''t you know about it?" he asked. "A VR game? I didn''t know about that. I only heard about the name today." Alex said. "It''s already been out for a month and is already the most played game of all time. How come you''ve never heard of it?" Matt was surprised. "Oh, that''s probably because they don''t have any billboards and posters near the farm. And I don''t really get to be on the internet since I have to help my father with the work." Alex said. "Well, you can play now. You really must experience it." Eric said. "Is that so? but I don''t have a VR helmet or money to buy one." Alex said. "Don''t worry about that, Eric here had got an old one, you can use that," Matt said. "If that is so, then I will try it." Alex and the 3 walked back to the room and Eric handed him the old helmet that he was keeping in the closet. Now that he looked at it, 3 of the 4 beds all had VR helmets in them. "They must''ve been playing before I came," Alex mumbled a little. "Just plug it in the socket there and you can start playing. Be sure to log out before 7 or you will miss dinner." Saying that Matt and the rest got into their beds and put on their helmets. After that, they went asleep. Soon a light started shinning from inside the helmet and he finally heard something. Chapter 2:Tutorial A voice sounded in Alex''s head. He slowly opened his eyes to look at the white nothingness in front of him. ''Where am I? Is this the game?'' he thought. A customization menu appeared in front of him. He looked at the different options possible and got easily overwhelmed. He saw a Randomize button at the top and clicked it without hesitation. It created a new character with long, silky black hair, a lean body, and blue eyes. "This doesn''t look bad," he said to himself. He clicked OK. He didn''t want to set Alex as his username, but also couldn''t think of one. So he simply chose the Randomize option once more. ''Doesn''t sound bad,'' he thought as he pressed OK. Suddenly, everything turned white. Alex found himself surrounded by trees on all sides. Everything so vivid and real and colorful. "Is this really a game?" he thought. He looked down on himself and saw that he was wearing a simple robe and pants similar to what his character looked like. "So, this is what a VR game looks like, huh." He was amazed at the surrounding. His senses all told him that it was real. That he was in a real place. "What do I do now?" he wondered and started looking around. There wasn''t a map or a health bar that told him it was even a game. Not long after, he found a small pouch tied to his sash. He tried to pick and see what it was when suddenly, a holographic panel appeared in front of him. The panel had a bunch of boxes in it, with only 2 boxes being filled up. "What is this?" he wondered as he touched the first box. [Tutorial] [This game mostly works through voice commands. Say ''Settings'' or ''Status'' to open up settings or your info. Your first job is to make time and HP bar visible for your HUD from the settings. Say ''Settings'' ] "Settings" A new screen appeared once more that had a bunch of little settings in it. He didn''t know what most of them did as they were turned Off, but he quickly found 2 settings related to HP Bar and TIME. He turned both of them ON. Suddenly on the top left of his vision, a green bar appeared representing his current HP amount. On the top right, a bunch of numbers appeared representing the current time. It seemed the time in the game matched the real-life time. [Tutorial] [Congratulations on using the settings. You can later change the different settings as you see fit. Now, to check your info say ''Status''] "Status" Another blue screen appeared in front of him. This time it had a bunch of information about him. [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Mortal (1 Qi : 100%) Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 Elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: None Qi: 0 ] "Oh, is this my info?" Alex looked at the status with curiosity in his eyes. He didn''t understand what most of it meant though. The tutorial screen popped up again. [Tutorial] [Congratulations on opening your status. Here is an explanation of what each of these means. Cultivation is your current cultivation realm and level. It shows you how much Qi you have to invest to increase cultivation, and what your chances of breaking through are. Body: is your potential in cultivation. It determines how far you can cultivate. Special bodies also give other benefits. Talent is your talent in cultivations. It determines how fast you can cultivate. Spiritual Roots: Spiritual Roots represent your spiritual affinity towards the element. You can learn and use elements you have an affinity to more freely than the rest. Cultivation Method: is the technique you use to cultivate. It teaches you how to gather Qi and use the Qi to increase your cultivation. Qi: is your source of energy. The more Qi you have, the stronger you can become. The speed at which you gather Qi can depend on your location, your cultivation method, and your talent.] Alex was truly overwhelmed now. He couldn''t understand half of what was happening right now. He had decided to play this game because his new friends had told him it was the best out right now. So, why were there this many explanations? Once he read it all, he clicked on ''next''. A new set of texts popped up from the tutorial panel. [Tutorial] [you can use the following commands. Logout: to logout Cultivation methods: to see all the cultivation methods you have learned. Pills: to see the list of pills you have. Techniques: check the different techniques you have. Inventory: to see your inventory. (shows items from all of your different spatial bags or rings) Finally, congratulations on completing the tutorial. You can now open the chest in your inventory to obtain a random technique, weapon, pill, and cultivation method.] He closed the Tutorial by clicking the ''X'' on the top. He tried saying all the commands, except log out, to see if they worked. As expected, all the commands worked. Every single panel those commands brought up was empty, except for the inventory. "Alright then, let''s see what the chest gives me. Hopefully, it''s something good." Alex clicked on the chest and a notification popped up. He clicked ''Open''. "Weapons" he decided to check weapons first. The weapons panel now had a new addition to it. From the icon, it looked like a sword. Alex clicked on it and the option to equip or description popped up. He chose description. [Steel Sword Grade: Mortal ] There were no more descriptions than that. "What''s the mortal grade? Is that good or bad? Also, is there no attack bonus or anything? How is this a game if the item has no stats on it?" Nothing of what Alex had learned from the little video games he played on his home computer helped him at all right now. He then checked the pill. [Qi providing pill: 10% Gives you 10 Qi] "This is not bad. Didn''t my status say I need 1 Qi to level up?" Alex was quite happy to find this pill. "How do I use the pill though? Is there a button to use it?" Alex looked into the options that popped up but didn''t realize what to do. "Since this is a pill, like a medicine. Do I just eat it?" he wondered. "Whatever, here it goes." POP He put the pill into his mouth. As soon as it entered his mouth as if the pill melted, it slid down his throat before he even noticed. "Oh. I was right". He quickly opened his status page to check the change now. He had indeed gotten 10 Qi now. Now that he had enough Qi, he had a new [Breakthrough] option in his Cultivation. "Ah, there it is. So I can become a cultivator now? Is that what it is?" Alex wondered as he pressed the [Breakthrough] button. "Oh! I need a Cultivation Method eh. Let''s check my Cultivation method then." Alex opened his Cultivation method page and saw the book icon in the panel. The Cultivation method had a separation in the panel that divided the panel into 2 sections. ''Learned'' and ''Ready to Learn''. The book was in the ''Ready to Learn section. He clicked it and two options popped up. ''Learn'' and ''Description''. He clicked on the description. [Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method: Grade: Heaven Absorb 20 Qi every minute. Amount doubles during the night] "Woah. 20 Qi every minute? That''s crazy," Alex thought. "Wait? Does that mean the pill I ate wasn''t actually good.?" he was starting to regret even eating that pill now. "Do I learn It now?" he thought. He quickly went back to the same panel and clicked learn. "Nice. Now I can breakthrough right?" Alex quickly set the new method as his cultivation method. After that, he clicked [Breakthrough] Chapter 3:City [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Skin Tempering 1st Realm (500 Qi: 100%) Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 9 ] "Huh, I need 500 Qi now? That''s ¡­" Alex quickly did some calculations in his head, "25 minutes. That''s a lot." "Do I have to use that technique for 25 minutes just to level up once? Isn''t that a really bad system? What about later on? Will the time increase again?" he wondered. "Hmm¡­ I should find some pills to give me more Qi. However, at this rate, I will need 50 of those previous pills just to level up once. That should be harder than just using the ability for 25 minutes. "Whatever, I will just look around for now. This looks so darn realistic. Maybe I should get rid of the health bar, for now, to let me see more." Alex walked around the jungle looking at the greenery. He quickly found a small path and took it. Coincidentally, within 5 minutes, he was out of the jungle, looking at a big perimeter of wall, blocking off an entire city in front of him. He looked to the side of the wall to see a gate with people and carriages lined up near it. There were guards waiting near the gates taking something from the newcomers before letting them in. ''Do I need money?'' he wondered. Just then, someone else walked out from the forest. It was a man wearing a yellow robe with green in the linings. He saw Alex looking around blankly and especially, noticed his plain robes. So he asked, "hello brother, are you new around here?" "Yes, I just arrived here today, and don''t know what to do to get inside," Alex replied. The man heard that and softly asked, "Are you a player?" "Yes," Alex said excitedly. ''So he was a player all along huh.'' "Well, just cultivate for an hour or 2. After that, once you breakthrough, you can go hunt some weak monsters in the jungle, and sell their bodies to one of the merchants that always run through here." "That should get you about 5 or so silver coins, enough to enter the city." The man said. "Cultivate? What''s that?" Alex questioned. The man looked at him weirdly. "You learned your cultivation method right?" Alex nodded. "Then, just sit around and meditate. Your cultivation method will kick in on its own," said the man. After that, he bid farewell and left the place. "Hmm¡­ since I already broke through, I should just go and kill some animal." He walked back to the forest he had just come from. However, it didn''t take long for him to find an animal. The creature he met had a name floating on top of it. "Woah, it''s a level higher than me. Can I even fight it?" the fox was definitely stronger than him. Alex was worried and wondered if he should change his targets. "I''m only level 1, so there should be a protection mechanic in the game that doesn''t let me die, right?" Alex decided to fight the fox. He quickly opened his weapons panel and equipped his sword. The sword was about 2 meters long in length and was very precious looking. He tried to go forward, undetected by the fox, but that was all a dream. There were way too many things in the jungle that made noises when one walked. The fox immediately lunged at him the moment it saw him. Alex tried to swing his sword at the fox, and ended up hitting it right in the face. The fox whimpered and backed off. An angry look appeared on its face as it started growling. It once more jumped at him. This time instead of using the sword as a sword, Alex swung it down hard like he was back home chopping woods with an Axe. "Core? What is that?" he wondered. He took it out from his inventory and looked at it. It was a small reddish-brown sphere that felt a little coarse to the touch. "Is this like that pill I ate earlier?" he wondered. It looked like it, so he assumed it was. So, without any hesitation, he put the core in his mouth and swallowed it. "Oh wow, so it was a pill. Maybe I should go find some more of those foxes." He was already near the city, so he decided not to. Instead, he decided to breakthrough. He opened his status and as expected, a [Breakthrough] button had appeared in his cultivation line. He clicked the button. He was now a level higher. He looked at his status again and realized the [Breakthrough] button was still there. So, he pressed it once more. He opened his status page once more. [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Skin Tempering 3rd Realm (1500 Qi: 100%) Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 509 ] Alex picked up the fox''s corpse and walked out of the forest. Along the way, he realized he could put the corpse inside his inventory. And so he did. He found his way to one of the merchants waiting in line. He read the name, ''Victorious Snow Merchant Group''. The merchant there traded his corpse for 10 silvers. Alex took it and went to the gate. The gatekeeper asked him for an identification or 2 silvers to enter the city. Alex didn''t have anything that could identify him, so he simply paid the fee and entered. He tried to log out after entering the city, but the game told him that he wasn''t in a very safe place to log out. Only after renting a room in a tavern did the game tell him that it was safe to log out. Chapter 4:Alchemy Alex opened his eyes and slowly felt the helmet as he pulled it off. He had logged out a little early because he didn''t know what to do in the game any longer and decided to leave. He tried to stand up quickly and hit his head. "Ow," he looked at what he had just hit and said in realization, "Oh, that''s right. I''m not in my room." This made him feel a little sad and started to miss home. Seeing that the others were still in the game as it was still quite a bit away from the 7 pm they said they would log out at, he decided to call his parents and tell them he had settled. "Did you message your cousin?" his father asked from the other side. "Oh, I forgot. I will message her right now," said Alex. After ending the call with his parents, he sent his cousin a simple message. Soon, his three roommates logged out as well, and they went to the cafeteria to have dinner. "So, how did you like the game?" Matt asked from the side curiously. "It was good. I mean, I didn''t like that you have to meditate around for forever just to level up, but the realistic senses make up for it more than enough." "Oh, that? You will get used to it," Logan said from the side. "Everyone complains about the slow leveling at first. But you will soon find why that is at an appropriate speed." Eric chimed in from the side saying, "Deva corp did earn over 2 billion dollars just in the first month of release of Eternal Cultivation. That should tell you how good that game is." Matt said, "You will soon get used to it. Although I think it''s better if you drop your ideas of this being a game. This is another world that Deva Corp has made for us to live in. They do say, You don''t play Eternal Cultivation, you live it." That statement struck Alex in a way he hadn''t expected it to. ''So I should just stop caring leveling up and just enjoy the world, huh. Guess I can do that.'' Together they went back to their room. Alex was about to go to the bathroom when he saw every one of them putting their helmets back on. "You guys are going to play again?" he asked. Matt laughed and said, "We play every moment of waking and sleeping hour. It''s just that fun." "Sleeping hours? Do you guys play instead of sleeping? Isn''t that bad for your health?" Logan said from his bed, " No, we sleep. But the VR helmet makes it so that we can play even when asleep. You should try it today." Eric added, "You should play it too. Maybe you can earn enough money to buy your own headset." "Earn money? How?" Alex questioned. ''They must be joking with me right?'' he thought. "Oh, you can earn money by converting in-game currencies to dollars. We make some good bucks, enough for our monthly pocket change" said Logan. "Alright, we are logging in, you should go too, Alex." All 3 of them logged in afterward. "Me? Earn money with the game?" that concept was quite funny to him. A kid who barely played any video games could never earn money from it. He quickly freshened up and went back to his bed. He saw that his phone had a notification and checked it. His cousin, Hannah, had replied. He put down his phone and put on the helmet. Before he knew it, he was back in the game. He opened his eyes in the room in the tavern. As soon as he did, he heard the rumbling of his stomach. "I can get hungry as well?" Thankfully, he was already at a tavern, so he walked down to the ground floor and ordered himself a bowl of stew. It cost him one Silver, but he didn''t care for the money right now. He listened to the conversations of different people in the tavern and came to a piece of information that interested him. Hong Wu sect was holding an entrance exam tomorrow. During dinner, the 3 guys have told him that he should find a sect as fast as possible. ''If they are really taking a test, then I should try in it as well.'' He thought. He walked to the people who were talking about this and asked, "Hello, can you tell me where this examination is taking place exactly?" "I would suggest you don''t bother, brother. Hong Wu Sect is an alchemy sect, so they are very hard to get into. But, if you still want to know, it will take place at around 8 am in the Hong Wu Sect." ''Alchemy?'' he was confused as he had never heard that term before. ''I should check what it is tomorrow morning.'' He went back to his room after eating the food and thought, "It''s already so late at night. So, I probably shouldn''t go out, right? Why don''t I take this chance to cultivate instead." He sat cross-legged in the bed and started to meditate. Slowly, he started getting drowsy, and before he knew it, he had lost consciousness and entered a trance-like state. . . . Alex suddenly woke up. He didn''t realize when he had fallen asleep in the game, but by the time he was awake, it was already 6 AM in the morning. "Where am I?" he got confused for a second before he realized that he was still in the game. "But, I fell asleep, how am I still in the game?" he was confused. After he stopped thinking about it, he logged out. Chapter 5:Entrance Exam Alex came out of the game and realized his body was not tired at all. In fact, he felt very well-rested. ''So sleeping in the game does in fact work.'' He was very surprised. He washed up and waited for the guys to log out. During the time, he decided to check up on what exactly alchemy was. According to the Internet, Alchemy in Eternal Cultivation was the process of making pills. "Hmm¡­ Along with artifacts, Pills are one of the most expensive items in the game, Eternal Cultivation." He read what the information outlet was telling him. He closed his phone as his roommates started waking up and went to have some breakfast. After breakfast, he wanted to go back into the game, so he did. He looked at the time and realized he only had 45 minutes to make it to the Hong Wu Sect. He hurriedly went down to the tavern and asked the keeper for directions. The keeper''s directions were simple. Hong Wu sect to the North and Tiger Sect to the south of Scarlet City. When Alex asked him what the Tiger sect was, he found out that it was a place where normal cultivators went to join. "So there are 2 sects in this Scarlet City, huh. I still like the idea of joining the Alchemy sect, rather than the other normal one." He said to himself. Quickly he made his way north, asking for direction to the Hong Wu sect along the way. When he finally reached the Hong Wu sect, he was surprised. Alex was now outside of a gate. Beyond the gate, he could see a tall mountain with many houses on it. The mountain was the sect ground on the Hong Wu sect. Time was running out, so he quickly registered himself at the gate and was directed to a large tent inside the gate. Alex looked at his piece of paper that was the registration slip. It simply had a number 174, along with his name Yu Ming and age 18. He had almost reflexively said Alex but caught himself in the last second. He walked into the large tent and sat in an open spot on the ground, among the many other people who were all sitting in a symmetrical fashion. Very soon, an important-looking man, in his late 20s walked inside the tent. He was wearing a green robe with silver linings. Soon after he entered, a few dozens of younger-looking men and women walked in. "Everyone listen up," the man said as he stood upon a podium of sorts. " I am your examiner, and I will be taking your test here. " The man gestured to the side. The group of men and women who had entered walked around the place and handed each of them a storage bag and a slip of paper. "You have one hour to name all the 100 ingredients inside. If you can name more than 50, you pass. Makes sure the talisman you answer in also has your registration number and name." Saying that the man left the tent. The other people, however, stood there, watching the different examinees taking their exams. Alex tried to take out each of the ingredients to see what it was called, but each time to took it out, it only said [?????????]. The game wasn''t helping at all. "They did say the exam was hard," he sighed as he stopped thinking about the exam and instead started looking at his settings through the different things. He wasted another 15 minutes in that. Suddenly, he remembered something. ''Isn''t my inventory supposed to show everything I have? What if I look at the ingredients using the inventory and not from the outside?'' "Inventory," he said in a low voice. A blue panel popped up in front of him that indeed had over a hundred items. He randomly picked one to see if it was named, but it was still called ??????. ''Sigh,'' he was about to close the inventory when he noticed something. At the very first box of the inventory, there was an icon for a book. "A cultivation method?" he wondered. He tried to click on the description but accidentally clicked on learn. "Huh, Alchemy?" he was stunned. "Cultivation Method," he said and the list of cultivation methods popped up. There was only one. ''But it was a book?'' he was confused. ''Ah right, didn''t the treasure give me a technique as well. I completely forgot about that. Is this a technique?'' He opened the techniques panel, and there in the learned section, he could see a book icon. He clicked on it and opened the description. [Alchemy God''s Manual: Level 1 Grade: Mortal (Growth) Unlocked: You have knowledge of all alchemy material. Unlocked: Can learn any alchemy recipe instantly. Unlocked: +50% chance to produce an extra pill during alchemy. Level 2 required to unlock more ] " Growth? What is that supposed to mean? This technique can level up?" he wondered, but he didn''t care about that for the moment. The thing that attracted his attention was the first thing that was unlocked, '' Unlocked: You have knowledge of all alchemy material.'' "Does that mean¡­?" he started to have a sliver of hope and anticipation brew up deep within him. He took out an inventory and saw its name. [Bluethorn Leaf] "Yes," he shouted softly. [Horn Root Grass] [Aquatic Berry] It was working. He picked up the paper to start writing down the names. There was no pen, but he realized he could write in it what he wanted just by thinking about it. As he started writing down the name, a weird-looking pattern started to appear on the piece of paper. It took him a few minutes to name all the materials in the bag. At 9 o''clock exactly, the man returned to the tent and shouted, "Time Over, Everyone put your answers in the bag and pass them to your seniors." After handing the bag, Alex walked out. He heard that they could come by tomorrow at 8 to see their results. Alex took his time walking back to the tavern and logged out when he reached his room. It had taken him an hour to return, so by the time he logged out, it was nearly 10 am. Just as he got up from his bed, he heard Logan shouting, "Yes. I did it. I broke through to True realm." "Did you use any pills?" Eric asked. "Nah. Those cost too much. The alchemists take about 50 dollars for even the lowest ones. I''m not wasting my money on that unless it''s extremely necessary. Alex didn''t get in on the celebration. Instead, he looked at his phone that had a new notification on it. It was a message from his cousin. Chapter 6:Breakthroughs It was 1 PM during the day. The sun was past the zenith, and there were no clouds visible in the sky. Alex arrived at the university''s east gate. He looked around and quickly found Hannah standing in the shade, and walked up to her. Hannah was wearing a yellow sundress with a white hat on. She was about 170 cm tall and had a lean body. She took off her sunglasses when she saw Alex walking towards her. "Alex? Oh my god, look at you¡­ you have grown up so much. How long has it been since I saw you last? 2 years? 3?" Hannah was astounded to see him so tall. "Hello, sister. I believe it''s been 2 and a half years since you guys last visited us. How are you?" Alex replied with a greeting. "Oh, look at you being so formal. If you have to ask, I am perfectly fine. How are you? How are aunt and uncle? " She started inquiring about Alex''s family''s well-being. "I am good, sister. Father and mother are fine as well." He replied. "Come, let''s go to a cafe or something. It''s too hot out here." Hannah said as she brought Alex to a nearby cafe. Alex was astonished to see all the cool little things the city had. He was amazed to see how many people there were constantly on the street, even during the hot day. The many cars and vehicles, some he had never seen before. The tall buildings that made you nearly break your neck just to see the top of it. Alex felt very overwhelmed by everything. After they reached the cafe, Hannah entered it, and Alex followed behind her. ''Woah,'' feeling the hot air from the outside immediately shift to the cold air from the air conditioning in the cafe, nearly made him vocalize his amazement. He had rarely been to places with air conditioning, never one this fancy. Most of the places he visited back home had fans instead of air conditioning. Hannah walked up to an empty table and said, "Sit here, I will bring us some food, what do you want to eat?" Alex didn''t know what to say. " I don''t know what''s good. Maybe some burgers would be fine?" "Okay," she left for a bit and came back with 2 sets of burgers and drinks. They started eating. "So, you are staying in a dorm, right? Made some friends yet?" she asked. " Yeah. I have 3 roommates. They are friendly." Alex replied "Good. Good." Alex and Hannah talked for quite a while. Alex learned a few things about Hannah. It seemed she was currently in her third, and last year of college. She was renting a place a few blocks away from the university, where she and 2 other friends of hers lived together. After finishing their food. They stayed there and talked for a bit. After catching up, at around 3 PM they both said their goodbyes and left. In a few short minutes, Alex made his way back to the dorm. He was about to enter the room when he heard someone call his name. "Hey Alex, where have you been?" Logan asked. From the looks of it, Logan, Matt, and Eric were just returning from the cafeteria. "I went to meet with my cousin. She studies in the university as well." He said. "Oh. Cool. You had your meal? If not, you should probably go to the cafeteria before they close." Matt said. "I already ate outside. Oh right, can I keep the VR helmet for a bit longer?" Matt looked at him and laughed, "You got hooked as well, didn''t you? Hahaha. Eternal Cultivation does that. Go ahead, keep it as long as you like." Eric was very generous about the VR Helmet. They all went into their rooms, put on their helmet, and went back to the game. Alex opened his eyes back in the tavern room. He slowly stood up. He looked around the room, and thought, ''Hmm¡­ the sun is still up, should I just go fight some monsters and level up?'' The level system in this game was a little weird, it had names, instead of numbers one could remember. "What level am I at again?" He then opened his Status to check. What he saw shocked him. [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Skin Tempering 3rd Realm (1500 Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 131709 ] ''What? How do I have so much Qi?'' he couldn''t understand. '' If I remember correctly, I had around 500 after eating the pill from the fox''s body. So how come I have so many now? I don''t remember eating any more pills or even cultivating at a-wait, did I actually cultivate last night when I fell asleep?'' Millions of thoughts were going through his mind. He didn''t understand how he gained so many Qi. He did vaguely remember starting to cultivate last night, but he had fallen asleep immediately. ''Maybe I did cultivate during my sleep. They did say you can play the game while sleeping. Maybe I did just that.'' He thought. ''Either way, since I have so much Qi, why don''t I level up?'' Alex decided to press the [Breakthrough] button. He lost 1500 Qi. The next level-up requirement was now at 2500 Qi. He pressed the [Breakthrough] button again. And again. And again, and again. ''Oh. A new name.'' Alex stopped breaking through when he reached ''Muscle Tempering: 1st Realm''. He looked at his status and realized he had used up 23,000 Qi, and the next requirement for a breakthrough was 10,000 Qi. He still had enough Qi left, so he pressed [Breakthrough] once more. "Oh," Alex realized something when he looked at his status once more. It looked like the requirement for each realm in this level was increasing by 5000 Qi. The next requirement was 15000 Qi. ''Wow, the requirement went up by a lot,'' he thought He broke through once more. He once again checked and found the requirement for the 4th level to be 2000. He still had half of his original Qi left, so he proceeded to click [Breakthrough] multiple times once more. He couldn''t break through anymore after that. ''Woah,'' Alex got a weird feeling from his body. It didn''t feel like his body anymore. The skin was smooth and shiny, and he could see the muscle definitions inside his body, even though he vividly remember not having as much muscle before. He also felt unusually hungry. ''Do I have to eat in-game as well?'' he thought. Thankfully, he was staying in a tavern, so he could go down to eat anytime he wanted. For now, He checked his status once more. [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Muscle Tempering 6th Realm (35000 Qi: 100%) Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 8709 ] ''Wow, that''s nice,'' he thought. He didn''t really understand how good or bad, having the 6th realm of Muscle Tempering was, but he assumed it had to be good. He believed he was essentially around level 15 in the game. But, he couldn''t tell how much further he had to level up since he had no idea about the higher levels. He decided to put those thoughts to the back of his mind and went downstairs to have a meal. He got a good meal for a silver and ate it with enjoyment. After he finished eating, he got out of the tavern. ''Man, if the game requires me to eat, and food costs 1 silver every time, I am going to go broke in no time.'' ''I should probably go hunt those monsters more.'' He thought. He walked to the city gates and saw the guards there checking the people going in and out. He walked up to one of the guards and asked if he needed to pay another 2 silver for leaving the city for a few hours. Unfortunately, he did. ''Oh, well. I can pay them after I earn from the monsters I will kill.'' He thought and went towards the forest. Chapter 7:Forest Hunting Alex walked out of the eastern gate of the Scarlet city and soon realized that he had come to the wrong place accidentally. It was an evening last time when he had entered the city and had gone straight to a tavern to look for lodging to log out, and not bothered to remember any of the interior landscape of the city. Now that he had randomly come out of the eastern gate, he realized that he had actually entered the city through the western gate. But that shouldn''t matter to him that much. ''Whatever. I just need to hunt some monster that''s all,'' he thought. The east side of the city was also covered in forests, the same as the west side, so he should have no problem in finding the monsters. He walked into the forest and started looking for any signs of a monster. Suddenly, he saw something. It wasn''t a monster, but a small tree. For some reason, the tree was nothing special. It was easily overlooked in this large forest, but he couldn''t do so. Something about this tree called to him. So, he did what his heart told him to and slowly walked towards the tree. The tree itself was about Alex''s height, making it look like a little growing tree. But it already had big leaves and was sprouting a little fruit. Alex saw a name appear on top of the tree when he came close to it. [Dwarf Berry Tree Bears the ''Dwarf Berry''] "The dwarf berry?" Alex looked at the only fruit sprouting in the tree. He reached his hands forward and touched the berry. [Dwarf Berry] He didn''t get any more information than that. This felt the same as when he touched all those materials in the entrance exam for the Hong Wu sect. ''Is this an alchemy material? Is that why I know the fruit''s name?'' he thought. He believed his conjecture to be correct. So, he plucked the fruit and kept it in his inventory. He couldn''t tell how good this material was, or if it even made anything useful, but he still decided to keep it. He found a few more alchemy materials along the way. So he picked whatever he could and kept it in his inventory. After walking a bit longer, he finally found a monster. It was a deer with blood-red fur on it. It had dark black eyes and sharp thorn-like antlers on it. Alex got a little frightened when he saw it. Then he looked closely to check what level it was at. [Carmine Coated Deer: Skin Tempering 6th realm] The deer was 4 levels higher than the fox he fought in the western forest. But, that didn''t matter to him anymore. After all, he was 16 levels higher than when he fought the fox. He quickly brought up his weapons panels and equipped his sword. The steel sword gleamed brightly in the scattering sunlight in the forest. The deer saw him, and turned towards him, preparing to charge. Alex got his weapon ready. The deer suddenly started running towards him, directing its antlers towards him. This monster was much faster than the one he had fought yesterday. But, for some surreal reason, it didn''t feel like the monster was very fast. In fact, he almost thought the deer was running in slow motion. Alex realized at that moment all of his senses were amplified. He could hear the trees and leaves in the forest rustle in the wind. He could smell the different plants and even the ground in the forest. He could feel the subtle change in air pressure and temperature that he couldn''t normally be able to tell. He could see the colors in the forest much more vividly than he could just a minute before. Similarly, his sense of time was amplified as well. The deer that was charging intensely, felt so very slow for him. He slowly raised his sword. It was only slow for him. In reality, this action was very fast. As soon as the deer reached him, he swung the sword down. Swish The deer''s left half split, and fell away from its right half. It was cut precisely through the middle in one hit. Alex was used to seeing farm animals butchered so he didn''t get disgusted seeing the innards of this monster. ''I don''t get the pill I got from the fox yesterday?'' he thought. He was looking forward to getting the pill that gave him 2000 Qi yesterday. He proceeded to open his inventory and check the antlers. He brought them out but didn''t see their names pop up. ''Is this not an alchemy material?'' he thought. That must''ve been why there was no name to it. He put it back into his inventory and kept the deer corpse with him as well. After there was nothing left to do, he started to wonder, ''what happened to me during that fight? Is it because I''m a cultivator now?'' Along the way, he found few more alchemy materials and some other monsters. He managed to kill every single one he fought in one strike. None of the monsters he fought were above the Skin tempering realm, and whenever he got into combat, he started to get into this bizarre experience where all of his 6 senses amplified. So, he easily killed those monsters. Sun was starting to go down, and the moon was coming up. It was time for him to leave the forest, and return back to his lodging. But on his way, he saw something. In a small ground that looked like a natural flower field, there was an unusual flower, growing amid a bunch of other normal flowers. He only thought the flower was unusual because he felt something unusual about the flower. ''Is that an alchemy material? Is that why I can tell it''s different from the other flowers?'' he thought. He decided to pick it up, so he went closer. Suddenly, he heard something moving along the ground. He immediately turned to look behind him, but there was nothing there. He slowly looked to his left and started scanning the land with his eyes. But, aside from plants and trees, he could see nothing else in the forest. Rustle. Rustle. The sound was still there. He looked towards the ground and saw a small brown snake slithering among the fallen leaves. He immediately jerked back. Having worked on a farm did not mean he was no longer afraid of snakes. A game was no exception. Especially one as realistic as this. But, he couldn''t back away. There was something about that flower that made him think it was too important to skip out on. So, he readied his sword. The slithering snake finally showed itself fully and was now looking straight at him. Alex looked at the name floating on the snake and frowned. The name itself wasn''t the problem, it was the cultivation. [Earth Snake: Muscle Tempering 3rd Realm] It was only 3 levels lower than him. He didn''t know how much difference each level made, so he started to get worried. Still, the flower was way too captivating for him. So, he took a deep breath and focused. Suddenly, he felt the time slow down once more. All of his senses worked in overdrive. The snake however didn''t seem to be slowed down. It slithered towards him at nearly regular speed. ''Is the snake too close to my level, so it''s just as fast as me?'' he thought. He swung the sword down once more, but the snake easily slid out of his attack path. The snake jumped at him, baring its two fangs, but he too was pretty fast and easily dodged it. Once more he tried to attack the snake, but once more it dodged him. The snake was just way too fast on the ground. He couldn''t hope of touching it as long as it was slithering in the ground. ''Hmm¡­ if it is impossible to catch this snake while it''s slithering, then what about when it''s not on the ground,'' he thought. He felt like he had come up with a perfect plan. He once more attacked the snake in order to aggravate it to attack himself. The snake did as expected, and lunged at him once it got to a close enough range. Alex immediately sidestepped and swung his sword at the mid-air snake. It couldn''t dodge while jumping, so it took the sword right to its neck. Thud. The snake hit the ground with a large thud, scattering a lot of trees and dust. But, Alex felt unsatisfied. He hit the snake with a sword, but there was resistance on his swing, unlike the other times. Rustle. Rustle. The snake slithered out of the place where it was sent to, with only a small wound on its neck. It would seem that Muscle Tempering realm monsters weren''t that easy to deal with. Chapter 8:Outer Sect Disciple The snake started to change its attack pattern once it got hit. Instead of lurching at Alex, it started going for his legs. Alex didn''t know exactly how strong a Muscle Tempering 3rd realm monster could be, so he was apprehensive about going on the offensive and risk getting hurt. Alex also didn''t know if it hurt inside the game, the same way it did outside. They had told him the developers wanted to make the game realistic, so pain might have been added to add realism to the game. He kept trying to hit the snake, but the snake was just too agile. It constantly weaved and dodged his attack while simultaneously going on the offensive from time to time. After a while, the snake targeted his neck and attacked him once more. Similar to last time, he dodged the attack and hit the snake once more. Thud The snake only got a minor cut once again. Alex started to get worried. ''I don''t have any abilities. I should have waited until I got my class or whatever equivalent this game has before coming here.'' He thought. The snake was getting cautious now. It wasn''t attacking any chance it got any more but was rather waiting for the perfect moment. Alex decided to do something. He didn''t care he if died. This was a game, so he probably would just respawn somewhere. Thinking that Alex unequipped his sword. He had never learned to use a sword, so doing it now was just not the right choice. Instead, he would fight with his hands. Seeing Alex keep away his sword, the snake must''ve thought it was its opportunity, and lunged at Alex. Seeing it jump at him, Alex immediately caught the snake with both his hands, around its neck and started choking it. The snake started to fidget around now that its head was immovable. It wrapped its body around his hands trying to squeeze him, but it didn''t work. He was after all 3 realms higher than him. Alex put his hand to the ground and started stomping on the snake''s head. After a few vigorous stomps, he got a notification. ''Finally'' he thought. He took out his sword once more and looked at it. "This is kind of a bad sword huh. Guess I''m not very lucky." He put the sword back. He took the snake''s corpse and put it into his inventory as well. He then looked towards the flower. If it wasn''t for the feeling he got, he would be completely incapable of telling apart the flower from its surrounding ones. It had 5 petals, was yellow in color, and completely ordinary. He got closer to the flower and touched it. A name popped on top of it. [Spirit Cleansing Lily] ''Woah,'' he slowly plucked the flower from the plant and took a closer look at it. ''This must be a very good alchemy material for me to get this fantastic of a feeling.'' He quickly kept the item in his inventory. His inventory was getting full, and he would have to do something about it soon. He looked at the time, and it was half-past 6. He ran his way back to the city. He didn''t bother selling any of the animals today and kept it for tomorrow. After he reached the tavern room, he logged out. Alex got out of his bed and waited. In a few minutes, all 3 of his roommates woke up too, and together they went and had dinner. After returning from dinner, the rest of the 3 went back to the game. Alex however didn''t. Tomorrow was the first day of university, and he wasn''t used to playing overnight. So, he called his parents, talked for a bit, went onto the internet for a bit, and then went to sleep. He woke up around 7 AM. Logan and Matt were already awake, so they waited for Eric, and went to get breakfast. After returning he looked at the time. It was about 7:20 AM. He remembered the person in the game asking him to return tomorrow to check his result. ''Should I go play the game right now? The orientation starts at 11.'' He turned to look at the other 3, but they were already in the game. ''Whatever,'' he said as he entered the game as well. He logged in to the tavern and quickly left the room. Within 15 minutes he was at the gate of Hong Wu Sect. He had arrived a bit early and had to wait around 10 minutes for the results to be posted. There were many other youths hoping to get a chance. They were practically begging to get into the sect. After the result got posted, there was a massive crowd around it. Alex weaved his way into the crowd to see the results. The results were very simple. They were simply numbers on the list. The numbers were the same numbers everyone had on their registration slip. He didn''t remember his number so he took out his registration slip to look at it. After seeing his number, he started looking for number 174 on the result sheet. The numbers were written in ascending order, so it was very easy to find the numbers. Very soon, Alex found his. He looked around and saw a few people walking up to a person, and showing them their registration slip. He too walked up to them and asked, " Hello, I have passed the test, what should I do now?" The men asked for his registration slip, and after confirming his number, they sent him to a group of other youths who had just passed. After an hour and a half or so, around 27 people were gathered in the group. These were all the people who had passed the test. The man who took their test yesterday walked up to them and introduced himself. "My name is Lang Shun. You can call me elder Lang." "Greetings elder Lang." Everyone greeted. Alex hastily greeted too. "Since you have all passed the test, you are now a disciple of the Hong Wu Sect. Though you are still an outer sect disciple, if you do well in alchemy, you will be promoted to the inner sect. And who knows, you may even end up being a core disciple." Elder Lang continued, " In Hong Wu Sect, your cultivation matters not. Only your talent, knowledge, and passion will get you forward here. You may have true Qi, but if you can''t form a mortal grade pill, you will forever stay as an outer sect disciple." He then turned around and went forward. "Follow me," he said after going a bit ahead. They soon followed the elder to a residential area in the mountains. Alex wondered if these were the homes he could see from the gate. The elder then assigned a single-room cottage to each of the 27 disciples. There were thousands of these small cottages on the mountain range, so they had no problem assigning one to each. The elder then took out 27 different small pouches, and in a single wave handed it to every single one. He then proceeded to explain. "These bags have 2 sets of sect outfit, 1 handbook that has all the rules and regulations of the school, a map of the sect grounds including the places you are forbidden to go to, and an alchemy introduction book to get you started on the theory of alchemy. Read them when you have time." Alex was startled to hear his name. Still, he raised his hands and said, "I am called Yu Ming." "Show me your registration card." The elder asked. Alex took out his registration card and handed it over to the elder. After confirming he was in fact ''Yu Ming'', the elder took out a weird-looking metal coin. "Everyone else but him, leave, and go to your cottage." He said sternly. After everyone left, he looked at Alex and handed the metal coin he was holding. "This is a library token, your reward for the test results. Take this to the library, and you can borrow 1 Earth grade or lower book for free. Do well." The elder then left. Alex looked at the metal coin, and was confused, "Earth Grade or lower? " He didn''t know what that meant. He walked to his cottage and closed the door. He opened the bag he had just got and was stunned. He was about to open everything inside when he realized, he had completely forgotten about something. It was nearly 10 AM now, and he had to leave. It was the first day of the University after all. He put everything back into the storage bag, including the library token. Once everything was gone, he logged out. Chapter 9:Cultivation Mechanics Alex logged out of the game and went to eat his lunch at 10 am with his other 3 friends. After lunch, all of them started to get dressed for the Orientation. Today was the unofficial first day of University where they would be welcomed, and get to choose their subjects and class schedule. After getting ready, all 4 of them went to the University. Since they lived in the dorm, it was a 5-minute walk at best. They just had to leave the dorm, and walk a few minutes away to the main building. They were quickly shown their way to the main hall where the orientation was going to take place. They sat around and waited, as the main program started to take place. The dean of the university got on to the stage and started giving a speech about how important university studies are, how good Oakleaf University is, and how they have a legacy to uphold. Alex wanted to focus on the speech but quickly lost focus. A few more people came onto the stage to speak about some more things. 2 hours went by before Alex even noticed it. A clean-shaven man in his late 20s got onto the stage and said, "The Orientation program is now over. An email has been sent to your address with your username and password, for the university website." "You can either use the website to select your courses and schedule, or you can go to the reception to do it. Good luck, I look forward to teaching you all." The man walked out. Alex opened his phone and checked his email. There really was a new mail from the university. He quickly used the given credentials to log in to the school website. He chose 3 business and economics courses, and 2 technology-related courses, one of them being a VR-focused course. He was looking forward to them. He managed to get an easy schedule. From Monday to Thursday, he had classes from 11 am to 3 pm. There would be 3 classes every day, each an hour-long, with a 20 minutes break between each class. There was one problem he quickly realized, however. Given that he had taken 2 technology courses, he would sooner or later need a computer. He might also require a VR Helmet, but he had one for now so he didn''t care about it. "Do I need to ask my parents for money?" he started to regret taking the technology classes. His parents had sent him to university only because they were free. But they hadn''t thought about the extra needs he might have had. ''Oh! What about making money from the game? If making pills really is the best way to make money in the game, then I should learn more about it.'' He thought. "Alex, you done?" Matt asked from the side. "Huh, oh yeah, I''m done. Are we leaving?" he asked. "Yeah. Let''s go to the cafeteria. By the way, what classes did you choose?" Matt asked. Alex opened his phone and showed him the schedule. "Woah, you got lucky. I think I might have to cut down on my games from now on. The schedules are so erratic for me." Matt sighed "Me too. I have classes at 7 on Fridays. University is going to somehow make me hate Fridays, isn''t it?" Logan said from the side. "Well, sucks to be you guys, cause mine is pretty good," Eric said from the side. His schedule seemed somewhat similar to Alex''s. They went to the cafeteria to have their afternoon lunch and quickly returned to their room. As if doing anything else would be sacrilegious, the 3 friends jumped onto their beds the moment they got to their room and started playing their games. Alex changed his clothes to something freer and sat on his bed. He wanted to immediately go into the game as well. But, he couldn''t. Previously, he was just fascinated by the game and wanted to play it casually. Afterward, when he learned about pills earning a lot of money he wanted to play the game because he wanted the money. But now, things were different. He could no longer ''want'' the money. He needed it. So, he could no longer stay ignorant about the games. The game and the game developers made almost no effort to teach the players about the game except for the bare-bones stuff so that the players could experience things on their own. However, the players weren''t as inconsiderate and openly posted stuff about what they learned or found. In fact, there was an entire forum about it. There were a few pinned forum posts, but the very first one caught Alex''s eyes. It simply had 2 words in the title, ''Don''t Die. Curious he opened the post and learned shocking stuff, if you died in the game, your character would be deleted, and you would have to start all over again. Some comments said this might have been to give the players a ''reincarnation'' feeling. The next thing he learned was about cultivation. The cultivation was the level equivalent of these games. From what the players had learned, the cultivation realms were divided into 3 parts. The self tempering realm, or also commonly knows as the common Qi realm. The second was the True Qi realm, where one''s common Qi elevated to become True Qi. The third one, being mostly hearsay, was the saint realm. The true Qi realm had 5 realms each with 9 levels as well. They were True Disciple, True Master, True Lord, True King, and True Emperor. The players did not know the saint realm as of yet. The highest known cultivation among the players was True Master 5th realm. Of Course, many were hiding their cultivation, playing in secret. Chapter 10:More Learning The next thing on the list was the grading system. The post gave general information about the different grades the cultivators used in ''Eternal Cultivation''. There were 4 grades known to the public as of yet. They were Mortal, Earth, Heaven, and Immortal. Mortal was the lowest of the grades, and Immortal was the highest. These grading systems applied to different items, formations, artifacts, pills, cultivation methods, techniques, and even a cultivator''s talent itself. "Huh? Talent too? But my talent is of ''God'' grade. Is the existence of a God grade not known to the public yet?" He looked through the comments but saw nothing about a God grade. There were however some comments that said they knew a higher grade existed, just that they didn''t know the name of it. "That must be the god grade. It can''t be I am the only person with a God grade, right? There must be other people who have it. They must be keeping quiet about it for some reason." Alex decided to not reveal anything about it either. Alex remembered there not being a grade for the pill, but he might have been wrong about that. No one in the comment was contradicting the poster, so he was probably mistaken. The last thing he decided to look at was about the alchemy itself. The game didn''t allow recordings, so most of what was written here were hearsay. They said alchemy was similar to cooking. You took a pot, lit the fire underneath, and put all your ingredients at a specific time. You took care of the temperature, and timing and a pill would be formed at the end. Of course, it wasn''t that simple. You also needed to know alchemy techniques as well to properly mix together all the Qi and energies in the ingredients so as to not burn them, or in worse cases, explode them. Once you were successfully done, a pill would be formed. Alex decided to check what pills usually sold for, but found the information unhelpful at the moment since he didn''t know what any of the pills were or did. "Guess I will check after I learn a bit more in-game." After checking a few more things in the forum, he logged in to the game. Alex opened his eyes in his small cottage. It was nearly 4 pm, so he sat down and decided to look at the different items he got from elder Lang. There were 6 new items in the inventory now. The first 2 items were clothes. He decided to change into the sect''s outfit. He was now wearing a light green robe with bronze linings along the sides. He then looked at the other 4 items. One of those items was the token for the library. The other 3 looked like a rectangular piece of paper, not unlike the one he wrote his answers in during the entrance test. The system seemed to call it a talisman. He took one of the talismans out and decided to read it. The talisman had the same unreadable squiggly lines that had appeared on the talisman he wrote his answers in. Just as last time, a panel popped up in front of him with all the information in the talisman. It seemed he had taken out the map of the Hong Wu Sect. Hong Wu Sect had 6 mountains under it. Of the 6, the one closest to the gate was the outer disciple mountain. The adjacent mountains to the outer disciple mountain were the Inner disciple mountain on the left, and the core disciple mountain on the right. Opposite to Outer Disciple mountain was the mountain where the sect leader lived. The sect leader''s mountain was surrounded by two other mountains that were named the alchemy gardens. At the center of all the 6 mountains was the valley, which was the main grounds of the sect. This was where the sect disciples went to learn, train, make pills, buy pills, etc. The elder also lived in the valley. "Wow, do I have to walk so much all the time? Going up and down the mountains would take a lot of time." He was worried about how much time he would waste just walking around the sect. He put back the map talisman and took out another talisman. This was the rulebook for the sect. There were 4 rules for the outer sect disciples. The outer sect disciples were not allowed to visit the inner sect and core disciples mountains without strict permission from the Elders. If they were found wandering in any of the other mountains, they would be punished accordingly. The outer sect disciples were not allowed to go into the forbidden alchemy gardens and the sect leader''s mountain. If they were found anywhere close, they would be immediately expelled. The outer sect disciples had to earn at least 20 contribution points a week from the sect. Anything less, and they would be expelled. Finally, the outer sect disciples were only allowed to perform alchemy at night time, when the inner sect disciples and core disciples would not be hindered. "Wait, so I can''t perform alchemy during the day at all?" he was surprised. He wanted to earn money through making pills, but if he could only do it at night time, when would he sleep? "Oh wait, they did say you sleep outside while you play the game at night. Maybe this won''t be a problem at all." He was worried for a moment before sighing with relief. Another thing that confused him was the mention of ''contribution points''. "What are contribution points? If I go by the name, they must be points I get by contribution to the sect. But what could an outer sect disciple do that counts as a contribution? I hope I won''t have to sweep and pick up garbage." There were a few other things in the handbooks that mentioned how everything in the sect cost contribution points, and that one would even go hungry without them. He decided he would learn about it once he went to the sect valley. Chapter 11:Alchemists After learning about the different rules and information in the rules talisman, he put it back into his inventory. He then took out the last talisman in the inventory. The first thing it taught was how alchemy is performed. It went in-depth into the action behind the alchemy than what he had found on the Internet. Basically, Alchemy was about the synergies between the various ingredients as they are slowly converted into a pill in the cauldron. The better the harmony between the different synergies in the ingredients, the better the quality of the pill would be. He also learned why he hadn''t seen a grade in the pill he had got. "So I was right, there are no grades, but just unofficial grades." He thought. A pill''s efficiency was based on how well the harmony in the pill was. Pills below 10% harmony between the ingredients were called a failure. At 10% harmony, a pill would be considered a mortal grade pill. They would barely be a pill and were considered the worst of the worst. Alchemists who could only make Mortal grade pills were called Mortal Alchemists. At 25% harmony, a pill would elevate to earth grade. Once you started forming earth-grade pills on a regular basis, you were called Earth Alchemist. You were considered a proper alchemist once you became an Earth Alchemist. At 50% harmony, a pill would elevate to heaven grade. Any alchemists that made even 10 heaven-grade pills were considered Heavenly Alchemists. Heavenly Alchemists were revered by everyone and were very hard to come by. At 75% harmony, a pill would be considered an Immortal grade pill. But that was just a myth. It was near to impossible to form an Immortal grade pill, so Immortal Alchemists were nonexistent as well. There were also other classifications to pills as well. These classifications were based on which realm of cultivators could use the pill. The different types of pills were common pills, True pills, and saint pills. Only self tempering realm cultivators could use Common pill. Similarly, only True realm users could use True pills, and Saint realm users could use Saint pills. He did not learn about the pills for the other realms. One would need to be in the realm or have crossed it to form those pills. A True realm alchemist could make True Pills, and they could also make Common pills, but they could not make Saint pills. Forming pills required one to infuse qi into the ingredients to create harmony between them, and without having that Qi, one couldn''t possibly make the pills for that realm. There was a few other information in the talisman, such as different names and images for different alchemy materials. But Alex didn''t need those. Once he was done learning everything he could from the talisman he put it back. He took out the final item in the inventory. The metal token. "Guess I should go and get a book from the library, huh. It''s free after all. Such a shame I can only take an earth-grade book." Alex stood up and got out of his cottage. There were dozens of different disciples walking around with different shades of green robes. Most of them were wearing the same light green robe as him. ''This must be the robes that outer disciple wore.'' He thought to himself. He wondered if the other people wearing the different shades of green were the inner disciples and core disciples. He didn''t ask. He took out the map once more from the inventory and checked the direction to the valley. Even though most of the way was just a dirt path, the way was very smooth. And since it was mostly downhill, he had no problem reaching the sect valley without losing a single breath. There was a special scent in the air that he couldn''t put a finger on. It was a weird mixture of flowers and a medicine-like scent. "Is this from all the alchemy that is being done he-¡­ Woah" He was shocked to see how many people there were in the sect valley. It was almost like a festival was currently going on in the valley. There were hundreds of green robe-wearing disciples walking around in the valley. There were dozens of large buildings, some spanning more ground than his massive University. He was truly shocked to see the sects valley. "If the valley alone is this big, then how big is the entire sect?" he wondered. He looked at his map again and found the direction to the library. After a short walk among the crowd, he quickly reached the library. The library was a massive tower that went up at least 10 floors. The library was circular in design and was very wide as well. He walked into the tower but was quickly stopped by the elder who was in charge of the library. The elder wore a dark green robe with silver linings. He was short and bald but had a long white flowing beard. "Give me your nameplate before entering." He asked. Alex was startled. ''What is a nameplate?'' he wondered. "Good afternoon Elder. I am a new disciple who only entered the sect today. I do not know what this nameplate is. I wasn''t given something like that." He truthfully answered the elder. "Hmm¡­ you only entered today, yet you are coming to the library already? Go away, kid. Go get your nameplate from the Disciple hall first before doing anything else in the sect." The elder said in an indifferent manner. "Thank you for the information, Elder," Alex thanked the elder and walked away. Soon more disciples arrived at the library, and the elder went back to doing his job. Alex opened his map once again and searched for the Disciple Hall on it. Once he found it, he went there as fast as he could. Chapter 12:Disciple Hall Alex made his way to another large building in the valley. This was the Disciple hall. When he reached the Disciple Hall, once again, he was simply shocked at the scope of it. This building only had 3 floors but took up an enormous area. He walked towards the building but stopped. In front of the building was a massive block of black stone at least 10 meters tall and wide, and 2 meters thick. He looked at the front side of the block, and there were many little carvings on it. It looked like they were a list of names. At the top, in big letters, it said ''Contribution Ranking''. Below it was the list of names. At the First spot on the ranking was someone named Wan Li, at the Second spot was someone called Zhou Mei, at the Third spot was someone called Fan Ruogang, so on and so forth. There were quite possibly more than thousands of names in the block of black rock. "Hmm¡­ does Contribution Ranking mean this is a ranking based on how many contribution points a disciple has gotten?" he wondered. He was truly surprised at seeing the rankings of the students in the sect. However, that wasn''t what surprised him the most. The most surprising thing in this piece of ranking was the constant update. The big black rock seemed to have magical properties as the rankings on the rock constantly changed, even changing the carvings magically. "I wonder how they made a stone change forms so constantly like that." The game was truly amazing he thought. After looking at the rankings list for a bit, he walked into the gate to the disciple hall behind it. There were dozens of people walking in and out of the disciple hall. He didn''t know what he was to do here, so he walked up to an elder and asked, "Good afternoon elder. I am new to the sect and require a nameplate. Would you mind showing me the way?" The elder was a woman in her 40s. She wore the same green robes with silver linings as the other elders did. She seemed to be on the way out of the disciple hall when Alex met her. "New disciple?" she looked at Alex up and down for a bit and said, "go stand in that line and tell the disciple working in the room that you need one." She said and walked out. "Thank you, elder." He said even as she left and was already quite a distance away. He went to stand in one of the lines. He saw quite a few darker green-robed disciples walk up and down the stairs, but not a single light-green-robed disciple like him went there. "The upper floors must be for the inner sect disciples and core disciples." He assumed. Soon, it was his turn to enter. He walked in and saw a small room with only one desk. Behind the desk was a disciple with an interest looking medallion on his hand. However, when Alex realized that the green on his robe was darker than his own, he was shocked. ''An inner sect disciple?'' he didn''t think an inner sect disciple would be doing what he would normally assume to be an elder''s work. "Your nameplate." The disciple said with an irritated voice. He was annoyed that Alex was just standing there doing nothing. "Oh, I don''t have one. I am a new disciple, and am here to get one." Alex said in haste. "Hmm¡­ new disciple? Why are you here so late? Most already came by in the morning, and took their nameplate." The disciple started to question. Alex gave an embarrassed smile. He couldn''t say that he had to log out because he needed to go to his actual school, instead of this one. "Doesn''t matter." The disciple said as he took out a rectangular metal plate with an interesting design on it. The disciple held his medallion with his left hand, and the metal plate with his right hand, and asked, "What is your name?" "Ale¡ª Yu Ming" Alex nearly said his real name out loud. Thankfully the disciple didn''t catch that. "Yu Ming¡­ okay." He brought the metal plate to his forehead and kept it there for a bit. After a while, he brought down the metal plate and handed it to Alex. "See if anything is wrong." The disciple asked. Alex tried to do what the disciple did, and tried to bring the metal plate to his forehead. But, before he could even do that, a panel appeared in front of him. [Hong Wu Sect, Outer Sect Disciple ''Yu Ming''. Contribution: 0] He looked at the information for a few seconds. ''Hmm¡­ so I have no contribution points at the moment huh. Makes sense.'' He then closed the panel and looked towards the inner sect disciple as he said, "Yes. Everything is fine. The information in this is accurate." "Alright." The disciple said as he brought his hand to a nearby drawer where there were many storage bags. He casually placed his hands on top of one and brought out 3 objects. He handed all 3 of the object to Alex. Alex took the items and looked at them curiously. He focused on the pink pill, and a simple information panel popped up. [Minor Healing Pill: 16% Heals minor injuries within seconds.] ''Oh! It''s a healing pill. 16% harmony so, it''s a mortal grade pill huh.'' Alex thought as he looked at the pill. He then focused on the white pill. Similar to the pink pill, a panel popped up. [Qi Improvement Pill: 19% Improves cultivation speed by 19% for 12 hours ] ''Hmm¡­ 19% improvement of cultivation speed? Does that mean I gain 24 Qi every minute, instead of 20 Qi now?'' he wondered. Next, he looked at the white stone in his hand. Chapter 13:Alchemy Achievements The white stone was about 3cm by 2cm by 1cm in volume. It was a rectangular piece of stone that was very translucent. While the overall stone was white, if one looked carefully, it had a cloudy texture inside it. Alex had never seen anything like this before. ''It can''t also be a pill, can it?'' he thought. He focused on the stone for a bit before a panel popped up. The panel only had three words on it. [Common Spirit Stone] ''Common Spirit Stone? What is that?'' he was even more confused now. He wanted to come back to the game fast, so he had only learned what he thought was necessary to him, and not bothered with the nitty-gritty stuff. "What is this?" he asked as he picked up the common spirit stone. "That''s a spirit stone." The inner sect disciple said without missing a beat. "What''s a spirit stone. " Alex continued to ask. "What? Have you never seen a spirit stone?" the disciple asked with a questioning look on his face. "No. This is my first time hearing about one, let alone seeing it." Alex answered truthfully. "Oh. This is a common spirit stone. The inside of it is full of Qi that you can absorb while cultivating to improve your cultivation. Or, you can also choose to use it as a currency as most of the cultivators only exchange stuff in spirit stones." The disciple was smiling while answering this. It seemed it was his first time meeting a cultivator that did not know what a spirit stone was. "Go now. You are taking up the line. You can come back exactly a month from now to get another [Minor Healing Pill], [Qi Increasing Pill] and a spirit stone." The inner sect disciple ignored Alex and started calling the next person forward. Alex silently put the 3 items into his inventory. He thanked the disciple and walked out of the room. Now that he had a nameplate, he could go get a book from the library. So, he headed towards the library. He was just walking out of the Disciple Hall when he noticed something. It was the big black rock that kept the rankings for all the disciples in the sect. Even the back of it had a list of all the students in the ranking, ones that were constantly changing every second. The stone was still as magical as ever. But there was something different about this ranking. For one, the ranking no longer said ''Contribution points'' but instead said ''Alchemy Achievements''. Alex quickly went to the front side of it to check if the ranking was still there, and it was. It seemed the rock showed two different rankings, and he had missed the backside because he was too hasty at going to the disciple hall. He went back to check the names on the backside. Wan Li was still in the first place, Zhou Mei was still in second place, however, Fan Ruogang was not in third place but instead the fourth place. The third place was instead occupied by someone named Song Zun. The name Song Zun was nowhere to be found in the contribution point''s list''s top 20 names. This made Alex quite befuddled. The term ''Alchemy Achievements'' was very vague for Alex to know what the rankings were based on. "Guess I will learn it later, " he thought and decided to go to the library. As he was about to leave, a name caught his eye. Yu Ming. After a while, he left. He made his way back to the library where the elder was taking in the different disciple''s nameplates while giving others back. He walked up to the elder with a nameplate in his hand. "Nameplate," the elder said absentmindedly. Alex handed him his new nameplate. The elder instinctively took the nameplate and brought it up to his head, and frowned. He jolted out of his absentmindedness and looked at Alex. "Hey boy. Why don''t you have a single contribution point?" he asked. "Elder, I am new to the sect. I joined today, so I haven''t done anything to earn contribution points yet." Alex said nervously. Was this man going to turn him back? He was worried. "If you don''t have contribution points, then you can''t enter boy. Everything in here costs contribution points to borrow. The better the book, the more it costs. Even the cheapest ones cost at least 100 points. " "So go to the contribution hall and take some missions. Earn some points, and only then come back. Doing anything else will be a waste of your time." The man said as he handed Alex back his nameplate. Alex didn''t immediately take back his nameplate. Instead, he started saying, "Elder, I might not have any contribution points at the moment. However ¡­" he opened his inventory and brought out the metal token," I have this. I was told that I could pick any Earth grade or lower book for free from the Library." "Hmm¡­" the elder squinted. "A silver library token?" the elder was surprised. He didn''t even see a bronze token normally, but to think a silver token was here. "How did you get this boy?" he asked Alex. "Elder Lang gave this to me this morning." He replied truthfully. "An outer sect disciple getting a silver library token huh. You must''ve done very well in the entrance exam then. " The elder mused. He then handed back the nameplate and the silver token and said, "Alright, you can go in. Since you are an outer sect disciple, you can go anywhere up to the 5th floor. Pick whatever book you want in there. As long as the book is earth grade or lower, you can borrow it for a week for free." Chapter 14:The Library "Remember, you have 1 hour to look for whatever book you want. After 1 hour has passed, you will have to come out. If you stay in there for more than an hour, you will be fined for 10 contribution points for every 10 extra minutes you spend in there." The elder gave him the last warning before sending him in. Alex went into the library and was immediately amazed. The number of books in there was simply astronomical. There were dozens upon dozens of shelves each holding at least a thousand books of their own. Alex was surprised at how many different books there were inside the library. "Do people really read all of these?" he wondered. He looked at the first book on the nearest shelf to him. It was called [Sleeping Mantis Scythe]. He read a bit to learn what it was about. The [Sleeping Mantis Scythe] was a mortal ranked fighting technique that was specifically made for scythe users. The technique could only be used if one had a scythe. Alex was surprised to even find a fighting technique here. He had assumed that there would only be Alchemy-related techniques in Hong Wu Sect''s library. He returned the first book to where it was and checked the second book. The second book was also [Sleeping Mantis Scythe]. "Huh¡­ what''s going on?" he was taken aback a bit. He looked at the third book, and it was still the [Sleeping Mantis Scythe]. The fourth, the fifth, all the way up to the twelfth were all [Sleeping Mantis Scythe]. Only on the thirteenth one did he find a new book called [Flickering Leopard]. This was a mortal-grade technique that could make a cultivator run as fast as a leopard could for small bursts of time. There were once more 12 different [Flickering Leopard] books in the library. He finally understood why that was. "I see. So they have a dozen copies of each book. They must''ve done it so that a student can borrow a book for a week, and the other student can also take the same book at the same time, and not worry about waiting for another week before getting a chance to borrow the said book." He then went on to look at the rest of the books on the ground floor. All of the books on the ground floor were of mortal grade. So, he decided to skip them and went up to the first floor. The first floor had some good techniques, but they were all still of mortal grade. "Is there no techniques for alchemy here? Why are all the books related to fighting?" he wondered. He wanted to learn alchemy, but somehow he could only find battle techniques in the library. Finally, on the second floor did he find his first alchemy technique. It was a mortal grade technique called the [Swirling Mists] technique. It focused on moving the ingredients inside the cauldron in a spiral manner before condensing them to form a pill. The technique felt hard, and not so useful to Alex. It was nothing but a fancy method of forming pills, and not very helpful to the entire alchemy itself. He left the technique where it was and walked around the 2nd floor looking for other different alchemy techniques. He found a few others, but most of them were either forming pills or increasing their efficiency at the last second. While they did look promising, they were all mortal-grade techniques, so Alex skipped on them. Finally, walking up to the third floor, he saw his first earth-grade technique. Granted it was a battle technique, he was still happy to see an earth-grade technique after a literal slew of mortal-grade techniques. He walked around the third floor and found a particularly weird technique. The technique was a mortal grade technique, but, it was neither a battle technique nor an alchemy-related technique. It was actually a formation-building technique. He read it with particular interest. The formation was called [Qi Gathering Formation]. Its function was to gather Qi from spirit stones placed inside the formation to a single spot and make it many times faster for the cultivator to absorb the qi in them. Alex liked the idea of having a formation technique, but he needed to get an alchemy technique first. "I should earn a bunch of contribution points and come back to get these books," he said to himself. He searched around for other books. He found another unusual book. This time it was an artifact refining technique. While artifacts did sell as well as pills in the outside world, Alex would still choose an alchemy book right now. After getting an alchemy technique, and getting into an alchemy-focused sect, it would be a joke if he decided to learn artifact refining technique here. He couldn''t find any good techniques on the third floor, so he went up to the fourth floor. This was the last floor he was allowed to enter. If he didn''t find any good techniques here as well, he would have to leave empty-handed. His one-hour time was close to being up, so he hastily started looking for good alchemy techniques. Most if not all of the techniques on the fourth floor were of the earth grade, so he didn''t have to worry about getting a low-grade technique. He searched and searched, but couldn''t find one he was satisfied with. Finally, he found one but it was a mortal grade technique. He was about to instinctively skip it, but he stopped. It was a mortal-grade technique, but the reason why Alex was interested was simple. He read the techniques name, " Flame Mastery Scripture. Grade Mortal. Growth." That was it. Similar to his amazing mortal grade [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] technique, this was also a Growth type technique. Chapter 15:Flame Mastery Scripture [Flame Mastery Scripture Grade: Mortal (Growth) Freely control flames to your wishes.] Alex read the panel that had popped up in front of him. The physical book itself only mentioned the technique being in Mortal grade. However, when he viewed it through the system, it actually mentioned a growth element along with the grade as well. His technique hadn''t grown past level 1 so he still didn''t know what growth exactly did to the techniques, but if he were to go by how good [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] was, [Flame Mastery Scripture] would also be a great technique. An hour had passed since he had entered here. So, he took the [Flame Mastery Scripture] and left the fourth floor. He soon reached the entrance to the library. He went to the elder and said, "Elder, I wish to take this with me." He brought the scripture forward and handed it to the elder. The elder took the book and looked at it for a few seconds. He was surprised. He turned to look at Alex and asked, "Are you sure you want this? If you have run out of time, you can come back tomorrow to check for more." He didn''t think Alex would actually bring out a Mortal grade technique when he was free to choose any earth grade technique. "It''s an okay elder. I didn''t run out of time. I chose to take it." Alex insisted on taking the book. "Very well then. I guess this is not a bad book. It''s at least one of the better ones in the Mortal grade. Especially since you can use it in both Alchemy and Battle." The Elder said. ''I knew it. So I in fact can use it for both.'' He thought. "Alright, give me your token, and nameplate." The elder said as he brought forth his hands. Alex opened his inventory and took out both the token and nameplate. He then handed it to the elder. The elder took the nameplate to his head and closed his eyes. Then he took out a talisman from somewhere and brought it to his forehead as well. "Alright. You can go now. I have recorded your information for today. You can have the book for a week. A week from now you will have to return the book in perfect condition." "If you fail to return the book in time, you will have to pay 50 contribution points for each additional day you don''t return it. And if you somehow end up destroying the book, you will have to pay the book''s worth in contribution points." The elder gave him a warning as he returned his nameplate. "Thank you, Elder" Alex walked out of the library into the crowded streets of the sect valley. "Hmm¡­ Oh! It''s nearly 7. Wow, have I already been in the game for 3 hours?" Alex didn''t want to return to his cottage as it was quite far, and it was an uphill journey. "What happens if I logout out of the streets?" he wanted to try it, but quickly dismissed the idea. "No, I won''t be able to explain to people how I disappear and appear so randomly. Let''s just find an empty spot and log out." Alex walked to the side of a building, to a dark alley that wasn''t populated. He looked around to see if anyone was there, and once he saw no one was visible, he logged out. Alex got out of his bed and waited for the others to log out as well. Once they all logged out, they went to have their dinner and returned. As soon as they got back, they jumped onto their beds and logged into the game. Alex didn''t hesitate to do so either. Once he logged in he found himself in the same dark alley he had logged out of. He walked out of the alley in the main streets. He opened his map and looked for something. He needed contribution points for everything in the sect, to begin with, so he had decided to earn some right now. According to the elder in the library, you could earn contribution points by doing missions given out by the sect. So, he was now looking for the ''Contribution Hall'' on the map. He soon found it on the map. It was about 5 minutes walk away from where he was, so he started walking towards it. The sky was dark now, and the star had come out. The moon was a bit above the horizon too. The sect valley had started glowing up in a yellowish tinge with all the different lanterns they had put out to light the streets, and buildings. The night was just as beautiful as the day, perhaps even more so. Although night had come, somehow, the disciples had grown in number in the streets compared to the day. Finally, Alex reached the Contribution Hall. In front of him was a massive building with huge corridors, jam-packed with disciples. The contribution hall had 3 floors as well, separated for the outer sect, the inner sect, and the core disciples. He walked into the massive corridors of the contribution hall and found multiple boards hung up on each side of the wall. Each with texts written on it. Although the board looked like a normal wooden board, for some reason, this board also had the same magical property as the rankings rock in that it too had magically appearing and vanishing texts. He started looking through the texts and started reading them. [Help Sweep the sect valley - 5 points] [Buy foods from the city - 3 points] [Run errands for inner sect disciple Gu Zan - 7 points] [Help make ¡­] So on and so forth. There were thousands of menial tasks that one could do here to get some contribution points. Alex started to look through them all. Chapter 16:Taking A Mission The tasks in the contribution hall were mostly given out by either the sect, the inner sect disciples, or the core disciples. There was not a single task that gave more than 10 points in the whole board. After looking at the different tasks, Alex found that there were only 2 tasks that truly interested him. The first one was to kill and bring back some monster corpses, along with any other objects he found. The second one was to become an alchemist''s aid. The first one gave points depending on how strong the monster was. While the second one said to give hourly points. He wanted to take them both. He looked around to see if there were anyone that he could ask to take the missions. But to his surprise, there was no one. "Huh¡­ how am I supposed to take the missions then?" he wondered. He looked around to see what the other disciples were doing. Most of them were just standing near the boards doing nothing. After a while, they would leave, which confused Alex even more. He stopped one of the disciples that were leaving, and asked them, "Hello brother. Can you please tell me how I can take these missions?" The disciple looked back, and asked in a confused manner, " is this your first time?" "Yes, I only joined the sect today," Alex answered without hesitation. "Oh. It''s very easy. Take your nameplate and put it on one of those holders there. You can choose up to 3 missions to take at once." The disciple answered and left. Alex looked towards the board once more, and this time saw multiple rectangular cutouts at the bottom of the board. "Are those indentations for the nameplate?" he thought. He walked up to one of the open ones and put his nameplate in there. Suddenly, a panel appeared in front of him with all the different tasks available on the board. For some reason, however, neither of the 2 tasks he wanted to take was on the task list. "What''s going on?" he wondered. He searched for a few more minutes, but he still couldn''t find one. Confused he decided to ask someone again. He stopped a female disciple who was just leaving and asked, "Hello sister, can I ask you a question?" The girl seemed to be an outer sect disciple but had an air of elegance to her. She didn''t seem to be much older than him but seemed very mature for her age. "What do you want to ask junior brother?" she asked. "You see, I wanted to take those 2 missions, but I can''t find them anywhere when I put my nameplate in the carvings. Can you tell me what''s wrong?" he asked while pointing to the 2 missions he wanted to take. "Hmm¡­ " she turned to look at what the 2 missions he wanted to take were. When she finally saw the two tasks, she laughed a little. "Of course, you won''t find them, junior brother, they are permanent mission after all." She said as if the information she just gave was a matter of fact. "Permanent?" he looked confused. "What? Don''t tell me you have never seen a permanent mission before?" she asked. It was her time to be surprised. "I am new to the sect, so I don''t know what that means, sister." He said. "Oh, I''m sorry. Permanent missions just mean that anyone can earn points from them, and you don''t have to take the missions here. They are usually the ones where the points are not set. For example, you can just go to the sect market, a few minutes away from here, and sell monster corpses directly. " "You don''t have to go through the hassle of taking the task and only then going to sell the corpses every time you want to sell them. Similarly, you can just go to the Alchemy Hall and tell them you want to be an alchemist''s aid. " "You only need to take the missions for specific ones where there would be a contradiction if 2 people were to do the same mission at the same time. I hope that helped junior brother. Now if you will excuse me, I have a mission to complete." She said as she left the contribution hall. Alex stood there and looked at the board once more. "So I don''t need to take these two missions huh. Then should I take something else?" He started looking through the mission board once more. Finally, something caught his eyes. [Find a dwarf berry for inner sect disciple Kong Yuhan: 8 contribution points] "A dwarf berry? Isn''t that what I got from the eastern forest?" he quickly opened his inventory to check. A Dwarf Berry was in fact in there. "Alright then, I will take this mission." He put his nameplate back in the carvings of the mission board and quickly navigated through loads of missions to find this specific mission. The nameplate shined a little to inform that the mission had been accepted. Alex looked back to the board and found the mission was no longer there. He looked at his nameplate, something more seemed to have been added to it. He focused on the nameplate a bit, and a new set of information popped up. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª- [Hong Wu Sect Outer Sect Disciple Yu Ming Contribution Points: 0 Go to the inner sect disciple mountain, and look for Kong Yuhan after you have completed the mission. Reward: 8 contribution points ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª- "The inner sect disciple mountain huh. Where is it again?" Alex opened his map to look for the direction to the inner sect disciples mountain. The mountain was southwest from he was currently. He walked out of the contribution hall into the brilliantly lit road of the sect. He looked around in admiration at how good everything looked. After making sure everything was set, he made his way to the inner sect disciple''s mountain. Chapter 17:Mission Complete Alex walked slowly in the beautifully lit streets of the sect valley. Hundreds of other disciples were walking around doing their own things. They had also taken missions from the contribution hall and were on their way to do different tasks. He realized, however, that there were a lot fewer inner sect disciples and core disciples around at night times. "Is it because they only work during the day, and need to sleep at night?" he wondered. He felt bad for the outer sect disciples who weren''t free enough to do what they wanted, whenever they wanted. After remembering he was also an outer sect disciple, he just laughed and shook his head. After a while, he had come to the entrance to the inner sect mountain. "Do I just go in?" he wondered. The rulebook clearly mentioned that going to the inner sect mountain for the outer sect disciples was forbidden. "How am I going to complete my mission then?" he got confused. He looked at the information about the nameplate, and it clearly mentioned going to the inner sect disciple''s mountain and looking for Kong Yuhan. "Whatever. If I get in trouble, I will just tell them I did what the mission told me to." He started walking inside. "Hey you, stop." A voice came from the side. Hidden in the darkness near the entrance was a small cottage-like open building. A man walked out of the building and stood in front of him. The man looked at his clothing and asked, "Aren''t you an outer sect disciple? What are you doing here?" Alex looked at the man carefully and realized he was wearing a green robe with silver linings along the side. ''An Elder!'' he was surprised. "Good evening, Elder. I came here to complete my mission." He told the elder honestly. "Hmm¡­ Mission? Let me check your nameplate." He asked for the nameplate. Alex swiftly handed the nameplate to the elder. The elder brought the nameplate to his forehead and closed his eyes for a few seconds. Once he had verified that Alex had indeed come here with a mission, he took out a medallion from his inner robes. Alex looked at the medallion curiously. It looked similar to the one the disciple in the disciple hall had, but yet somehow different. This medallion seemed to be made up of expensive material. The elder brought the medallion to his forehead and closed his eyes once more. After a few seconds, he opened his eyes and spoke, " Wait here, I have called Kong Yuhan. He will be here soon." This surprised Alex. ''He called the disciple from here? Does that medallion function like a phone?'' he wondered. A few minutes later Alex saw someone coming down. The disciple who just came down was a man in his early 20s and was wearing the inner sect disciple''s robes. He was at least a head taller than Alex and had better muscles as well. His hair somehow seemed blue, even in the darkness. ''This must be Kong Yuhan'' Alex thought. "Disciple Yuhan greets elder Zhang. Why has elder Zhang summoned me?" he spoke in a very formal manner. Alex focused on the newcomer a bit more to see if his hair was really blue or not. ''Woah'' he got surprised. Something unexpected popped up. Above Kong Yuhan''s head, a set of words popped up. [Organ Tempering 9th Realm] ''Wow, that''s 2 entire realms ahead of me.'' Alex was surprised. He then tried to see if it worked on the elder too. Something did pop up, but it just said [Mortal] ''Mortal?'' that was impossible. He didn''t believe anyone who was still a mortal could be part of the sect, let alone be an elder. ''Does that mean that he is so strong that I can''t even tell what realm he is in?'' that was the only logical answer for Alex. "This outer sect disciple is here to complete the mission you had given to the contribution hall." The elder pointed towards Alex as he spoke to Kong Yuhan. Kong Yuhan''s eyes popped up a bit when he heard that. He looked at Alex with a sudden turn of his head. Inside his eyes, Alex could see a mixture of shock, excitement, and hope. He practically ran as he came to stand in front of Alex, and asked with a shaky voice, "Ju-Junior Brother, Is- is it true that you found a dwarf berry?" he asked. Alex didn''t expect that an inner sect disciple would be this excited for something that grew in the forest nearby. He brought out the berry from his inventory and handed it to Kong Yuhan. "Brother Kong, I hope this is what you were searching for. " Kong Yuhan looked at the berry in his hand absentmindedly. Only after a while did he realize what he was holding. "Oh, OH!, yes. This is exactly what I had been searching for." He said happily. " A 10-year-old Dwarf Berry." Kong Yuhan seemed to have not expected such an old berry. He slowly started walking back towards his home. "Disciple Kong." A stern voice came from the side that jolted Kong Yuhan out of his trance. "Yes Elder?" he asked the elder. "Aren''t you forgetting something?" the elder said as he gestured towards the standing Alex. Kong Yuhan looked back and immediately started apologizing. " I''m so sorry, junior disciple. I was so happy to get the berry, that I forgot my manner. Here, give me your nameplate, let me pay you for the berry." Alex handed him his nameplate. Kong Yuhan took out his own nameplate and put them together, and pressed them to his head. After a while, he returned Alex''s nameplate back to him. Alex checked the nameplate. [Hong Wu Sect, Outer Sect Disciple, Yu-Ming. Contribution Points: 10] "Hmm¡­ Brother Kong, there seem to be 2 more points than the reward in the mission." He said. "That''s intentional. I had put up that mission almost a month ago. I was stuck in a bottleneck forever and needed a 2-year-old berry. They were very hard to come by. However, you brought me one, that too a 10-year-old berry. Of course, I am going to give you a little extra." Chapter 18:Flame Mastery Practice Alex stood there stupefied looking at the 10 points in his nameplate. An outer sect disciple was required to earn at least 20 points every week. He had earned 10 in less than an hour. "Good night elder." He said as he left the mountain back towards the sect valley. Along the way, he started to wonder. "Do I go earn some more points? Or do I got to learn the flame controlling technique I got from the library?" He was in a dilemma. "Hmm¡­ I already have some contribution points, it might be more useful to have at least one technique before I go to aid any alchemists." "Alright. That settles it then. I''m going to learn the flame controlling technique." He said and started walking back to his cottage in the outer sect disciple''s mountain. He soon reached his cottage and opened his door. To his surprise, there was light inside his cottage. "Did someone come in?" he wondered. There was a lantern hanging in the middle of the empty room, illuminating his room with flickering light. There was no one inside. ''Who lit the lantern?'' he thought. He sat down on his small bed and took out the technique from his inventory. He looked at it once more. [Flame Mastery Scripture] As he focused on the book a little more, a panel popped up. [Do you want to learn ] He instinctively brought up his hands to click the ''Learn'' button, but stopped. ''Wait. What happens if I learn it? do I lose the book?'' Every cultivation method and technique he had learned up to this point had been from the inventory. And after learning them, the source had always disappeared. He started to get worried. If he really did lose the book, he would have to pay a massive amount of fines to the sect in the form of contribution points. He didn''t want that. ''Why don''t I learn it like everyone else then?'' he flipped the book open and started to read it. The book seemed to be written in ineligible alphabets, but for some reason, when he saw it, he understood what they meant. In fact, reading these ineligible words was much faster in his opinion. Within 15 minutes, he finished reading the whole book. Alex looked at the intact book in his hand and sighed in relief. "Thank god that worked." "Techniques," he said as a panel of learned techniques opened in front of him with 2 items in it. The first one was obviously the [Alchemy God''s Knowledge]. The second one was the newly added [Flame Mastery Scripture]. He clicked on it and opened its description. [Flame Mastery Scripture: Level 1 Grade: Mortal (Growth) Level 1: Unlocked: Can freely control existing fire and influence its temperature Level 2 locked. ] He had yet to learn how he could level up a skill. He looked at the description and realized he needed fire to control it in the first place. Thankfully, the fire was everywhere during the nighttime. All the lanterns around the sect were lit with fire. Same for the lantern in his room. He stood up and slowly brought down the lantern from the very low ceiling. He put it on the ground and took off the lantern''s covering. Inside was a metal plate with a ball of fire floating on top of it. "Wow. How does this work?" he wondered. There was a lot of magical stuff in the sect, and he was happy to see them. "Okay. So how do I use the technique?" he wondered. He somehow hadn''t thought of this point. "Flame Mastery Scripture" he shouted hoping to get a reaction. Nothing happened. He looked at the technique list to see if there was a ''use'' button. There wasn''t. He was now confused. How was he to use a technique then? "Hmm¡­ if the developers really went for as much realism in the game as possible, then there is no way using a technique should be so simple." Not even fighting was simple in this game. To even fight a normal snake he had to¡­ "Wait. What happens if I go into that weird time slowed state." He looked at the flame and started to focus. Suddenly, time started to slow down. The small ball of fire floating in the center looked ever so vibrant. It''s light shining brighter than ever. He could feel the increase in the temperature of his surrounding, and how the hot air was moving up. He could smell the minute particles in the air burning and leave an almost unnoticeable smell. He ignored all of those senses and focused only on the fire. He looked at the fire and saw it the same way as he ever did. But, for some reason now, he could feel the fire as well. It was almost like he could touch the fire, without actually touching it. He slowly brought forth his hand and stopped a few centimeters away from the fire. As if he was born with the knowledge, he started moving a sort of energy in his body. "Is that my Qi?" he wondered. His Qi was all over the body in small amounts in every single vessel. He instinctively started moving the Qi in a certain path. Within a few seconds, the Qi had gathered in one spot, his hands. He could see the space in front of his hands fluctuate, as tiny invisible Qi came out of them. As the Qi touched the fire, he thought of turning the ball of fire into a candle flame-like oval shape. As if understanding his commands, the fire slowly started to change its form. It started twisting and turning until it finally came to a stop in the oval shape of a candle flame. Chapter 19:More Practice Alex looked at the oval flame and thought, "Did I do it?" suddenly, he lost his concentration, and the oval flame went back to being a ball of flames. "Awww¡­ I think that was it. Let''s try once more." He tried to do it once more. He went back to the slowed time state and began to feel all the Qi inside his body. He moved the Qi according to what the technique required until it appeared out of his palms. As the invisible Qi touched the flames, he had to just think of what he wanted to do with the flames and it would happen. For now, he could only change the shape of the flames. That transformation too took about 5 seconds to complete. He slowly did it more and more, until he was able to change the shapes within 2 seconds. Of course, the shapes he could create were rudimentary shapes, like Oval, or spherical, or spiral, and other simpler shapes. Making figures out of the fire was impossible for him to do right now. After becoming a little more proficient in the shape-changing aspect of the technique, he moved on to the temperature aspect of it. Once again, he focused and brought his Qi into his hands and sent it to the fire. However, instead of thinking of a new shape, he thought about increasing the temperature of the flame. "The flame''s highest temperature is 816 Celsius, while the lowest temperature is at 316 Celsius." He could somehow instinctively tell the temperature of the flames. He was unsure if he got this ability from the [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] or [Flame Mastery Scripture]. If he had to guess, he would guess the second one. He thought of increasing the lowest temperature, and decreasing the highest temperature so that the temperature would be a constant 500 Celsius everywhere. The minute color differences in the fire suddenly turned to a steady color with no changes. The fire also stopped fluctuating in temperature as it came to be a steady 500 C. He could feel it. He had succeeded. He quickly focused back and didn''t let his concentration waver. Slowly he started to change the temperature. He made the temperature of the fire go down to 300 C. He succeeded at it. He then made the temperature go up to 900 C. He also succeeded in that. He brought the temperature back to 500 C. Now, he tried to change the shape of the fire, while keeping the temperature constant. He tried to turn the fire into a spiral shape but quickly lost his control over the temperature. As soon as he brought his concentration back on the temperature, he lost his control on the shape of the fire. "Doing both at once is going to be really hard, isn''t it?" he thought. He slowly started to train. Through multiple failures, he was finally successful at forming his first oval flame with 500 Celsius. He practiced for an hour. He was getting the hang of the technique. He practiced for another hour, he was getting better at the technique. By the third hour, he could change both the shape and the temperature into whatever he desired within seconds. While he couldn''t do a lot with the shape, he could still make a lot of geometrical figures without a problem. He tried to control the fire once more. He tried to move his Qi to his hands but realized he couldn''t anymore. He didn''t have any Qi left. "I should have know when I ran out of my Qi." He thought. Unlike his excess Qi, his normal amounts of Qi weren''t shown by the system, and he had to know when he was full or low on it just by the feeling of it. He put the cover on the lantern and hung the lantern back on the ceiling. He then sat on the bench to refill his qi. He slowly focused on his breathing, and before he knew it, he was asleep. He was once more unconsciously cultivating. However, he didn''t immediately start to collect Qi this time. He had to first fill his empty body before he could store the Qi for breakthroughs. At exactly, 6:30 AM he woke up. He was still in the game, sitting on the bed. "Did I fall asleep once more?" he wondered. "Did I cultivate without knowing once more?" He thought as he quickly opened his status to check. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Muscle Tempering 6th Realm (35000 Qi: 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 72709 ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª "The next breakthrough is at 40K Qi huh. That''s quite a lot." Now that his Qi was back to full, he wanted to try the Flame mastery once more. But to his dismay, the lantern flame had gone out. "Guess I will just leave then." He quickly logged out of the game. He freshened up and went to have his breakfast with the rest of his roommates. Afterward, none of them went back to the game as it was the first day of university classes. Alex went to the university at 11 after having his lunch. Nothing special happened to the entire class. The classes were mostly introduction-focused, and less about studying on the first day. He found out that Matt and Eric shared at least one course with him each. All of the classes today were the economic and business courses, so he wasn''t really excited about them. After the classes ended at 3 PM, he went to the cafeteria to have his afternoon lunch and went back to his room. He changed his clothes back to his casual shirt and pants, and without missing a beat, jumped back into the game. Chapter 20:Sect Market Alex opened his eyes back in his cottage. He looked up at the ceiling, but as expected, the lantern was still out. "I should find other sources of fire. Maybe I should just go buy some matches or whatever equivalent this game has for making fires." He stood up and walked outside. He saw the same scene as yesterday. Dozens of disciples going on about their daily lives. He didn''t need to open his map this time, he knew how to get to the sect valley. After a few minutes of walking, he reached the sect valley. He still wasn''t used to seeing hundreds of disciples running about in what was basically a small-sized city. He had two things to do here today. The first thing he needed to do was sell all those monsters he killed in the forest the other day. According to the female senior, he met yesterday, he had to sell the items in the sect market. He opened the map to check where it was. He quickly located it next to the Disciple Hall on the map, so he walked towards there. In just a few minutes, he was in front of the sect market. Looking at what was in front of him truly surprised him, as it was nowhere close to what he had been expecting. He had been expecting a massive building just like all the other buildings he had been to. Except, the sect market was nothing like it. In front of him was a long road that was at least 200 m long. And all over the side of the roads were disciples laying objects in front of them, trying to sell them. There were 3 or 4 properly set stalls that Alex could tell were set up by the sect itself as the owner of those stalls had silver linings in their green robes. They were run by sect elders. He walked up to one of the stalls. There were a few disciples in front of him waiting for their turn to buy or sell their stuff. Eventually, his turn arrived. "Are you here to buy or sell?" the elder in the stall asked. The elder seemed quite old, at least in his late 40s. There were signs of wrinkles on his face, and his beard and hair had a lot of white streaks on them. "I am here to sell, Elder," Alex replied respectfully. "All right, give me what you have." The elder said as he prepared the table in front of him for the items. "Umm, Elder, I am here to sell monster corpses, so this table won''t be enough," Alex said seeing the little space on top of the table. "Oh." The elder said as his eyes perked up a bit. He brought out a small storage bag and handed it to Alex. " Alright then, put them here." Alex took the storage bag and opened his inventory. Aside from the alchemy materials, there were exactly 27 items related to his hunt in the eastern forest. 12 of those were corpses. 11 Skin tempering realm corpses, and 1 Muscle Tempering realm corpses. He didn''t know if the other materials were alchemy materials or not, so he decided to just sell them. The monster cores as well would give him too low Qi if he ate it like a pill, so he decided to sell it too. He wanted to eat the earth snake''s core, but the snake was only at Muscle Tempering 3rd Realms so he didn''t bother to. Even if he got 2 realms worth of Qi, that was just a night of sleep for him. All in all, he sold all 27 items. He put them all in the storage bag and returned them to the elder. The elder took the bag and looked at it. Within seconds, his eyes went wide. Most of the disciples that came to sell monster corpses only had 2 or 3 at most. Since the sect was alchemy-focused, the disciples usually didn''t bother killing monsters and just bought the materials instead. However, this disciple had just brought back 12 corpses and was also selling their cores and materials. "Are you sure you want to sell it all?" the elder asked. Most disciples tended to keep the cores and materials as they were important alchemy materials. The elder was surprised to see a disciple that was selling it all. "Yes," Alex said without hesitation. He had no idea about the usefulness of the cores and materials, as he still believed alchemy only needed plants and herbs. The elder looked at the items he had on him and started calculating. He spoke in a low voice, "Let''s see. 11 points for 11 corpses, 5 points for 1 corpse, 14 points for the cores, 10 points for the other core, 14 points for the material, and 10 points for the venom." "So, a total of¡­ 78 points" the elder stopped mumbling. "Give me your nameplate," he asked Alex. Alex was ready with the nameplate, so he handed it to him. Unlike the other elders and disciples, he didn''t bring the nameplate to his forehead, and instead just kept it in his hand. "Alright, here you go. You have been credited 78 contribution points. Good job young man." The elder congratulated him and handed his nameplate back. ''Huh! 78 points? How?'' he was dumbfounded. He looked at his nameplate, and he indeed had 88 total points now. ''Damn, so I can just sell monster corpses here, and I can get enough points to survive for the week, huh'' he thought to himself. He took his nameplate and left the stall. He was about to leave the sect market altogether when he noticed something at one of the street vendors. Something had caught his eyes. Or maybe it would be more accurate to say, something had caught his ¡­ feelings? Chapter 21:Yellow Rock Alex had a similar feeling to the one he had when finding the [Spirit Cleansing Lily]. However, this feeling was somehow completely different in both type and origin. For starters, the feeling he had for the [Spirit Cleansing Lily] originated from somewhere in his mind. Something in his mind had slightly nudged him into thinking that was a good item. However, this time, the feeling originated from his body. His entire body was reacting as a hungry lion that had just seen an injured deer. His body was ready to pounce on it. He went towards the vendor to look at what the item really was. The vendor was an outer sect disciple and there were several items that she was selling. Out of all of them, the one that Alex was interested in was a small, smooth but jagged piece of yellow rock. "Hello sister, can you tell me what this yellow rock is?" he asked the vendor. The girl looked at Alex and said, "I don''t really know what it is. It was constantly warm so I thought it must''ve been something good, and chose to sell it. Why? You want it?" she looked at Alex expectantly. "Yes, I do sister. How much do you want for this?" he asked. "100 points. No bargaining," she said without hesitation. ''I don''t have 100 points though'' Alex was confused as to what to do. Seeing his frowned face, the outer sect disciple got more confident in her attitude and said, " If you don''t have the points, then go away. Let other people look at my stuff." "I only have 88 points right now sister. Is there any way to lower the price?" he asked hoping she would drop it. He was already finding it hard to stand near the stone without grabbing it immediately and shoving it in his mouth. "No can do. If you don''t have 100 points, then go away." The girl closed her eyes after saying this and started meditating. Alex thought for a bit and said, "While I don''t have the full 100 points, would you accept some alchemy materials, sister?" he asked The girl opened one eye and looked curiously as she said, "Depends". Alex immediately rejoiced and brought out 4 different alchemy materials he found in the forest. There were normal materials that he had come across in the forest. The girl looked at the items and was surprised. "You are going to give me those 4 materials, and 88 points?" she asked inquisitively. "Yes, sister," Alex replied with zero hesitation. "Okay, it''s yours," she said as she handed him the yellow rock, and her nameplate. Alex took both of the items. The yellow rock was too irresistible, so he immediately kept it in his inventory. That helped quite a bit. He no longer had the impulse to eat the stone at once. He looked at the other item in his hand, the girl''s nameplate. He had to transfer 88 points to her, but he didn''t know how to. He decided to do the same thing Kong Yuan had done and put his and her nameplate together. He focused on them a bit and got the option to transfer contribution points. He unhesitatingly passed 88 points into the girl''s nameplate. He then handed her nameplate back to her, along with the 4 alchemy material. He said his goodbye and went out of the sect market. His second work in the sect valley was to learn how to become an alchemist''s aid. But, he now had to wait until he found out what the yellow rock was. He had just left his cottage half an hour ago, and now he was back in it. He sat on his bed and got comfortable. He then opened his inventory and brought out the yellow rock. The yellow rock looked like a normal piece of rock. It was both smooth and jagged in shape. It was smaller than a spirit stone in size and wasn''t translucent either. The yellow in the rock was truly yellow, and not some cloudy yellow inside the rock similar to a spirit stone. Once the rock was on his hand, the urge to eat it appeared once more. His mind was being the reasonable one and telling him not to do something stupid as eating a rock. But his body''s urge to eat the rock was too big for him to ignore. He decided to go with the body on this one, and reluctantly, ate it. The moment the stone touched his tongue, it melted into a hot, scalding liquid that traveled down his throat. However, even though it was scalding hot, he didn''t feel any pain. Once the liquid reached his stomach, it started to distribute to every corner of his body. Suddenly, his body started to hurt like hell. It felt like his entire body was submerged in a tub of boiling lava, that was also somehow injected into his veins. This was the worst pain he had ever felt in both real life and the game. It took five minutes for the pain to slowly start to disappear. As the pain subsided, all that remained in his body was power and vigor. He could sense that the amount of Qi his body could store had increased substantially, as well as that the yang qi was dozens if not more times stronger than normal Qi. He could easily tell that he was twice as strong as he was before. Chapter 22:Alchemy Hall Alex made a fist with his hands and was shocked at how much strength he could feel in them. The pain he had just felt, the transformation of his normal Qi into Yang Qi, had also in some minor ways changed his physical body as well. While he was still at Muscle Tempering 7th Realm, he could tell that he was ever so slightly stronger. He wanted to check what changes his new form of qi brought to his techniques. But alas, there was no fire around to see if anything had changed. Grrrrrr His stomach cried out hunger. The inner transformation had left him feeling a little peckish. "Now that I think about it, I''m surprised I have gone so long without feeling hungry or thirsty. Does being a cultivator make you no longer need a lot of sustenance?" he wondered. He looked at the clock and realized it was only 4 PM. There were still 3 hours before dinner time. There was no homework, so he was free to do whatever he wanted today. He decided to go eat something in the sect valley but stopped. "Wait, doesn''t food cost contribution points as well?" he quickly checked the rulebook and he could in fact not eat anything without contribution points. Even the cheapest stuff cost about 2 contribution points. Also, he couldn''t leave the sect without permission from an elder, so there was no way to go to the city to get something to eat. ''Sigh. I guess it''s time to go work now.'' He got out of his cottage. He walked back to the valley. This time, however, he needed to go to the Alchemy Hall. He quickly checked the map and found it. He thought he would be jaded by now, seeing all the different massive halls, but, he was still surprised when he saw the Alchemy Hall. Perhaps more than everything else he had seen in the sect valley. The Alchemy hall wasn''t just a simple building. It was located at the very corner of the sect valley and seemed to be carved into the sect leader''s mountain. It was a simple one-story building, but he couldn''t tell how far into the mountain the hall went. He looked at the entrance of the hall and saw a bunch of light green robe-wearing disciples standing side by side. Once in a while, an inner sect disciple would come, and pick one of the outer sect disciples and take them inside. ''Were the outer sect disciples standing here to be chosen as aid?'' he wondered. He walked up to a small station outside the hall where an elder was staying. "Good afternoon elder. I wish to work as an Alchemist''s aid. Can you tell me what I have to do?" he asked politely. "Hmm¡­." The elder looked towards Alex and asked, "Is this your first time here?" Alex was surprised. ''How did he know?'' there shouldn''t have been any clue yet the elder found out at once. "Yes, elder. This is my first time." He said honestly. "How good are you at recognizing ingredients?" the elder asked him. Alex was surprised. That wasn''t what he had expected the elder to ask him at all. "I would say it''s very good," Alex said, not knowing if that felt like he was bragging or just being honest. The elder''s eyes perked up at the answer. He reached into his storage bag and brought out 3 items. One was a small, yellow fruit. The other was a strangely purple leaf. And the last one was a brown bark from a tree. "What are these?" the elder simply asked him to name them. Alex focused a little on the ingredients and their names popped upon them. "They are Cat Eyed Berry, Purple Bane, and Forest Scale." He answered confidently. "Correct," the elder put back the items and said," Go stand among your fellow disciples. If an inner sect disciple needs you, they will call for you." "Thank you, elder," Alex left and stood in an open spot next to a female disciple. He looked next to him and saw the female disciple fidgeting about, almost to the point that it looked like she was shaking. "Are you okay, sister?" he asked. The girl turned towards him. She was not the best-looking female he had seen, but she didn''t look that bad. She had long black hair, and a small face with big eyes. And in those eyes were a small amount of fear. "I''m fine," she took a deep breath and stopped fidgeting. " It''s just that I haven''t earned enough contribution points for the week, and if I don''t earn 5 more points in the next 10 hours, I will be punished. I am just nervous that no one will pick me." "Ah, I''m sure someone will pick you, sister." He said as he comforted her. They made some small talk before an inner sect disciple chose her as his aid, and went it. Her eyes had gotten truly bright when she was chosen. He thought he would have to wait out here alone for now, when suddenly someone talked ahead of him. "Eh, junior brother. Aren''t you the same junior brother who completed my mission?" A voice came from in front of Alex. Alex turned around to find a big, buff man in front of him. He looked at the person''s face and thought he had seen it before. "Ah.it''s you Brother Kong. it''s good to see you here. I almost didn''t recognize you since I only saw you in the darkness of evening." Yes, the man in front of him right now was Kong Yuhan, the inner sect disciple. The same person to whom he had sold his Dwarf Berry last night. Chapter 23:The Task of an Aid "What was your name again junior brother? Yu Ming?" Kong Yuhan asked. Alex was surprised. He didn''t remember ever telling him his name. He replied with a shocked expression, "That''s right, brother Kong." Kong Yuhan saw his shocked expression, and asked, "why do you look, shocked junior brother? Did you think I wouldn''t recognize you just because I only saw you once? You brought me a very important ingredient. You are a benefactor to me, and this Kong always remembers his benefactors." "Ah, no brother Kong. I was just surprised you somehow figured out my name. Even though I didn''t remember you asking for my name." He replied honestly. "Hmm. You didn''t? Then I must''ve read it in your nameplate. Anyway, that doesn''t matter right now. Are you working as an aid right now, junior brother Yu?" he asked. ''Oh! The nameplate. Of course.'' Alex felt stupid for not realizing that. "Yes. I am waiting for someone to pick me as an aid." "Do you want to come with me?" Kong Yuhan asked. Alex''s eyes brightened. ''Finally'' he thought. "Yes, brother Kong. I would love to." Kong Yuhan walked into the hall and brought Alex along with him. The inside of the Alchemy Hall was not what he had been expecting. The inside of the hall looked like catacombs. It had a relatively narrow path that went straight for a dozen or more meters before splitting into 3 paths. Each of the paths had multiple rooms on each side of the path. The doors themselves were made of stone, similar to the walls. Lanterns hung on the wall to light up the pathway. At the very entrance of the hall, there was a big white rock embedded into the walls. There were many small boxes that either lit up with red lights or green lights. Alex looked at the carvings and immediately realized that this was the internal map of the Alchemy hall. Similar to all the other stones, and boards he had seen around the sect, this was also constantly changing forms, going from red to green, or green to red. Kong Yuhan looked at the map once and saw a clump of green lights in an area. "Come on junior brother Yu. Let''s go find ourselves an open room." Kong Yuhan knew the path very well, so he simply walked straight through the maze-like the hallway and reached an open room. He walked into the room and waited for Alex to enter. Alex walked in and was surprised to see the room. The room was bigger than his cottage and had a giant hole in the middle. A steady fire was burning inside the hole, and on top of it was a black cauldron, ready to be used. Kong Yuhan took out his nameplate and placed it in a carving on the wall next to the open door. Suddenly, a massive block of stone came down from the open door and blocked it entirely. He took the cauldron on top of the fire, and set it aside at a corner. He then took out his own cauldron and put it on top of the fire. His cauldron seemed to be made of a dirt-like brown color, but more polished than the black cauldron. It was without a doubt better than the other cauldron. He waited for the cauldron to heat up and took out his storage bag. He then handed to storage bag to Alex. Alex was confused now. What was he to do with the storage bag? He looked inside and saw a bunch of alchemy ingredients, including the dwarf berry. He decided to ask. "Brother Kong, what do I do with this?" "Huh, why are you asking? You should know this as an aid already." Kong Yuhan was surprised at the question as well, "This is my first time working as an aid brother. I only joined the sect yesterday." Alex said as he laughed wryly. Kong Yuhan frowned. "This is bad, brother. You should have let me know it was your first time. If you mess something up, I will be in big trouble." Alex got a little worried as well. ''I should have tried to find out what an aid does before coming here as well.'' "What does an aid do brother Kong?" he asked. Kong sighed, "The job itself is very simple, junior brother. You just have to give me the ingredients when I ask you to. The problem is that Alchemy requires near-perfect timing. So if you were to hinder my process by not being able to find an ingredient in time, I will fail in making the pill." "And this pill is very important to me. I only have one set of ingredients, so if I mess up here, I won''t be able to break through to the Meridian Tempering realm. I''m just worried that you won''t be able to recognize what ingredient I ask, and be slow at delivering it." Alex''s eyes perked up when he heard this. "If it''s just recognizing ingredients, then I am confident in being able to do that, brother Kong." "Very well then junior brother, I shall trust you. The room already took my points, so there is no going back. Familiarize yourself with the pill ingredients and recipe in the bag," Kong Yuhan said as he closed his eyes and started meditating. Alex looked inside the storage bag and found out there were 13 different items inside. 12 of them were the ingredients, while the last one was a talisman. Alex took out the talisman and started to read it. "Oh wow." He was surprised. He didn''t expect to learn the recipe the moment he read it. ''This must be because of the feature of [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] that says I can learn all recipes instantly.'' He thought Chapter 24:The Alchemy Process He realized that the information on the talisman was already on his head and that he didn''t require the talisman itself anymore. So he kept it back in the bag and looked at the other 12 ingredients. Once he thought about the recipe, he somehow knew which ingredients he had to put in, at what time, at what temperature. The recipe had even mentioned how to move the ingredients inside the pot while performing alchemy. "This is quite thorough," he thought. After a few minutes, the cauldron started to make sounds, signifying that it was ready for alchemy. Kong Yuhan opened his eyes and took a deep breath. "Are you ready junior brother, I will start asking for the ingredients one after another?" He said. "Yes," Alex replied with a single word. "Very well then. Horn root grass." He said. Alex knew [Horn Root Grass] was the first ingredient and was ready for it. Without missing a beat, he took out the Horn Root Grass and handed it to Kong Yuhan. Kong Yuhan took the ingredient and put it inside the cauldron. Alex wanted to see how he would now follow the recipe and move the ingredient all around the cauldron for 2 minutes. Kong Yuhan simply moved his right hand in a circular motion without using anything to move the horn root grass. ''He is using his Qi to move the ingredient? That doesn''t look like a technique. Does that mean one can normally use Qi to move stuff?'' Alex needed to test this as soon as he could. But now was not the time. After nearly 2 minutes had passed, Alex took out the next ingredient, ready to hand it to Kong Yuhan. Kong Yuhan called out the name and took the ingredient. He then put the ingredient into the cauldron. This brought a reaction out of Alex. ''NO!!'' he internally shouted. ''There were still 2 more seconds left before the 2 minutes were over. He put it in too early.'' But he didn''t voice his opinion out loud as that might disturb Kong Yuhan out of his concentration. He then gave him the next ingredient, which looked like a wilted leaf. Kong Yuhan increased the temperature of the fire and put in the wilted leaf. ''The fire is 10 degrees lower than what it should be.'' Alex once again found a flaw in Kong Yuhan''s process. Similar things kept on happening with Kong Yuhan''s process. Either he put in the ingredients too early, or put them in too late. Sometimes the fire wasn''t at the right temperature, other times it changed too slowly. He took out the last remaining item from the bag, the dwarf berry. Kong Yuhan was full of sweat, still concentrating on the alchemy and ready to put in the final ingredient. He held out his hand and asked for the berry. He waited for the right moment and put in the berry. ''He timed it quite right this time.'' Alex thought. He then looked as Kong Yuhan finally mixed his last ingredients in the cauldron. All the ingredients had already lost their forms and turned into a bunch of powder by now. The dwarf berry was no different either and soon turned into powder. Now came the final phase of the alchemy process, making the pill. Kong Yuhan used a pill-forming technique and slowly brought the powders together to form a clump. He put Qi into the clump to slowly compress them into a ball. After a few minutes, he had successfully formed a ball out of the clump, and thus successfully, formed a pill. Kong Yuhan flicked his finger, and a small yellow pill flew out of it, into his hand. A magnificent burst of medicinal scents followed the pill. Kong Yuhan looked at the pill with wide eyes. He was beyond happy to have succeeded. Alex was also surprised to see the pill. He had expected Kong Yuhan to fail, given how many mistakes he had made during the alchemy process. He focused his eyes on the small yellow pill. Suddenly a name popped up on the pill. [Spirit Enhancing Pill] He couldn''t see its other information as he was not in contact with the pill. He wanted to ask Kong Yuhan to let him touch the pill but decided not to. He walked forward towards Kong Yuhan. "Congratulations, brother Kong. You succeeded in making the pill." "Oh thank you, junior brother. I was quite skeptical about letting you be an aid, but you really helped me a lot." Kong Yuhan said with a big smile on his face. "With this pill, I can finally break through to the Meridian Tempering realm. That would help me a lot on my path to becoming a better alchemist. Maybe it will even help me become a core disciple" Kong Yuhan started laughing a little. "What are the requirements for being a Core disciple? If you don''t mind me asking." Alex pried a little. "Oh. Similar to how you have to make 10 different mortal grade pills for becoming an inner sect disciple, you have to make 20 different 20% harmony mortal grade pills for becoming a core disciple." Kong Yuhan said. "Oh. That seems quite hard. Making 20 different near-earth-grade pills must be quite a task." Alex said. "They sure are. However, if you manage to make a single Earth Grade pill, the sect will immediately make you a core disciple. That''s how Wan Li became a core disciple too." He said. ''Wan Li, that was the name of the First place holder in the rankings, wasn''t it?'' Alex thought. " Oh, then what is the harmony level of your current pill brother?" Alex asked. "Ah, let me see." He focused on the pill for a bit and said, " well, it definitely isn''t an earth grade. It''s still a mortal-grade pill for sure. Let me check the exact numbers though." He then reached into his storage bag and brought out a glass beaker with a metal plate on the bottom. Chapter 25:Formations Alex looked at the weird-looking glass beaker and wondered what it was. The glass beaker was small, wide at the bottom, and narrow at the top. It had a circular metal place at its base. The metal plate was on the outside of the breaker and looked magical with intricate designs. The glass itself had a single black line going across it vertically. There were small dots, along the side of the black line. Kong Yuhan took his pill and dropped it into the beaker. He then focused as he poured his Qi into the metal part of the beaker. The beaker started to slowly fog up. At the base of the glass beaker, the mist slowly appeared. The mist appeared on the outer edge of the metal, and it started to mist the glass itself. Slowly, the mist rose up and started appearing more and more on the glass beaker .it had started at the bottom, and was moving upwards. After a few seconds, it stopped moving and showed no other signs. Kong Yuhan looked closely at the black dot, next to the black line where the mist had stopped forming. "Aww¡­ it stopped at 19%. I was so close to 20%." Kong Yuhan sighed. Alex was puzzled. He asked, "What do you mean 19%, brother Kong?" "Look," Kong Yuhan said as he passed along the beaker to Alex. Now that Alex had it in his hand, he could see that the black dots were not in fact dots, but numbers. They were just too tiny to tell apart from where he was previously. "Is this the pill''s harmony level?" he asked. "Yes," Kong Yuhan said and started to pack his cauldron. "How can a glass tell you what a pill''s harmony level is, brother kong?" he asked. "What are you talking about, Junior brother? Of course, it doesn''t. It''s the metal base that shows it." Kong Yuhan answered as if it was common sense. "The metal?" Alex was even more confused. "Well, more precisely the formation on the metal." Kong Yuhan clarified a little. "A Formation?" Alex was shocked. He had never seen a formation before and only heard of it. "Wow, this is my first time seeing a formation," Alex said as he looked at the metal at the bottom of the beaker. Kong Yuhan took the beaker back, and put the pill inside into a ceramic pill bottle, quickly closing the bottle with a stopper. Alex was confused now. " I ¡­ I have?" he questioned the statement. Kong Yuhan took his nameplate out of the wall and looked at the stone door disappear above the door. " Of course, you have. How else do you think this door works?" he laughed a little. "That is a formation too?" Alex was surprised. Kong Yuhan then pointed at the lantern in the hallway and asked, "Have you ever looked at what''s inside a lantern, junior brother?" Alex had just done that the day before, so he answered, "Yes. I took off the outer cover yesterday night. Inside was a floating ball of fire, and a metal¡­ Don''t tell me that metal plate is a formation too?" he eyes were wide with shock. ''How could I have missed it?'' he thought. But, then he thought of something. " But, wait. The lanterns don''t require someone to infuse Qi into it as you did to that glass beaker." He asked. "The ''Pill Tester''? Well, that''s because the formation on it doesn''t have an energy source to run, so you have to give it Qi to work. The lanterns are different. They aren''t individual formation, but rather a part of a larger formation." Kong Yuhan explained. " A larger formation?" Alex questioned. "Junior brother, did you know there is a massive formation laid down on the sect ground. It encompasses all 6 mountains and a little more." Kong Yuhan asked. "Such a large formation? I did not know that brother." He answered. "Well, I don''t know its actual name, but it''s unofficially called the ''Sect Running'' formation. It taps into the spirit vein below the sect, and uses its energy to run the sect." He explained. Alex thought of something, and said, "So the lanterns are part of that ''Sect Running'' formation?" he asked. Kong Yuhan laughed a little and answered. "Not just the lanterns junior brother. The nameplates, the sect medallion, the doors in the alchemy room, the fire burning inside, the map at the entrance, the mission board, the puppets, the ranking rock. Everything is part of the ''Sect Running'' formation." Alex was truly dumbfounded right now. He couldn''t even in his wildest dreams think of something like that. ''So everything I thought was magical, was in fact just part of the ''Sect Running'' formation.'' He thought. Kong Yuhan explained a little more, " How else do you think the rankings constantly change. How else do you think the mission board knows what missions you have taken. How else do you think the elders can call out disciples on their nameplates. Everything inside the sect that runs by itself, is a formation." "So, it''s better if you don''t go around saying you have never seen a formation before. People will just call you ignorant." Alex couldn''t keep his thoughts straight until he got out of the Alchemy Hall. "Give me your nameplate, Junior brother." Kong Yuhan said. Alex absentmindedly handed him his nameplate. Kong Yuhan transferred 5 contribution points. "I will see you later junior brother." He said and walked away. Alex was still having a hard time grasping the sheer scope of the formation in the sect. So many things used formations. ''I guess the things around here aren''t exactly ''magical'' huh.'' Grrrrr. He finally came back to focus. He looked at the nameplate in his hand and checked it. 5 points had indeed been added to it. He sighed a little and thought, ''Either way, it''s time to get some food.'' Chapter 26:Qi Manipulation Alex easily found a restaurant in the sect valley using his map. Dozens of disciples were going in and out of the restaurant. Almost all of them from the outer sect. ''Do you require less food, the higher your cultivation?'' he wondered. He walked in and found a board on top with words on it. He wondered if that was a formation as well, but no. It was just a normal board someone had written in. He looked at the cheapest dish in the whole restaurant. A meat stew with some vegetables in it. Most of the outer sect disciples were ordering it, so he ordered it too. While it was the cheapest dish, the restaurant was very generous about the food and gave a lot. The stew was delicious, and he ate a stomach full. He slowly ate it, taking in all the different flavors, and it took him fifteen minutes to finish the dish. After finishing it, he paid the 2 contribution points and got out of the restaurant. Sun had already gone down, and darkness was approaching. This only meant, the light of the lantern shined brighter than ever. Alex walked along the festival-like road, thinking what to do next. He looked at the time and realized it was nearly 7 pm. It was about time to log out. He decided he would practice some more fire controlling after he returned, so he went back to his cottage and logged out. There was still a few minutes before the other guys logged out, so he decided to call his parents. He talked for a while, told him about his first day in college, talked about the friends he made, etc. His roommates were out of the game by the time he had hung up the phone. They went to the cafeteria together and talked about a few different things. He had wanted to ask something for a while, so he did. "Hey guys, why does time slow down sometimes when you are fighting or training?" he asked. "I think that''s called the ''Focus Mode''. Since every player has different strengths or cultivation, it''s difficult to speed up the things in the game so that it matches the players. So, instead of speeding up the game as a whole, they just speed up the thought process of a player who has higher cultivation." "In the end, the player with higher cultivation does stuff faster than the player with the lower one, and it achieves the same result. Since they don''t want the higher cultivation players to constantly suffer from everything around them slowing down, the developers just turned it into a mode that activates sometimes" Eric gave a full and proper explanation that satisfied Alex very much. After they ate their dinner, they went back to their room. Alex was more than happy to get back into the game. He opened his eyes in his room, with a lantern-lit bright, hanging from the ceiling. He almost went to grab the lantern when he thought, "Wait. I should probably try moving all kinds of stuff with Qi, instead of wasting it all on flame mastery." He looked around his room to see if there was anything there. His barren room had nothing. So he walked outside and brought back a few small pebbles. He put down the tiny stones in front of him and took a deep breath. He instinctively activated focus mode. Everything around him slowed down once more. He could feel the heat from the lantern on his skin and see the stones brighter than he would in the daytime. If he were to attribute what he saw to colors, then he saw about 7 different colors all over his entire body. But it only lasted for a single second and disappeared the moment he found his Qi. Unlike yesterday, his Qi was different now. There was a sense of vigor and heat to them. Since he wasn''t following any technique, there wasn''t any specified path for the Qi this time. So, he just brought it all to his palms and let his qi bleed out of them. As if they were an extension of his own hand, he was still in control of his Qi even after they left his body. He slowly pushed them forward until they reached the stones. He let the shapeless Qi envelope one of the stones as if he were catching them in his own palm. The Qi followed his command and fully covered the stone. ''Up'' he thought. The Qi slowly started moving upwards, while at the same time picking the stone up as well. He watched as the stone hovered in midair. ''I did it he thought. He was still concentrating on the stone, keeping it in the air. Next, he split his attention. While still keeping the stone midair, he tried to bring out more Qi from his body. He did it very slowly. The Qi had collected on his palm and were starting to bleed out of it. He watched as the formless Qi once again escaped out of his hands. "Okay. Now all I have to do is put the Qi over the stone and -" Clink The stone in midair dropped. "Haaa- alright, once more." He did that a few more times and was easily hovering the tiny stone in mid-air, but when he had to multitask with it, he failed. "Once more," but he didn''t give up. After a few more tries, he finally managed to hover 2 stones at once. That was when he thought of something. "What if I think of both objects as a single one?" he brought out some more Qi, and instead of individually wrapping the stones, he wrapped them all at once. The stones stuck to each other but were easily moved using Qi. Chapter 27:Muscle Tempering 9th Realm Alex practiced both methods of moving multiple objects with Qi. The first one was where he would individually wrap the object with his Qi, and move them separately. The second one was where he would wrap all the objects with his Qi at once, and move the objects with Qi. He found pros and cons for both of these methods. The first one allowed him to move multiple items in multiple ways. He could move one item horizontally, while spinning the other one, and at the same time revolving another item around his body. The problem with this method was that, it took a lot of concentration. The second one didn''t require any concentration at all. As long as he wrapped the items with his Qi, they easily moved to his commands. But, he could no longer move them individually, and could only move them in one single way. Alex decided he would learn both way of manipulating items with Qi. He went outside and brought larger stones and started to practice. He practiced for about 2 hours or so before stopping. By now, he could easily pick up 2 kilograms worth of items at once, and move them around on his command. When separated, he could pick up 3 different items, each about 500 grams, and move them all individually. He was very quickly becoming proficient at the task. After 2 hours of doing this, his Qi went down to about half it''s original amount. He then stopped and brought down the lantern. It was time to learn Flame Mastery. He took out the cover, and looked at the flame hidden within it. Moving the Qi according to the dictation of Flame Mastery Scripture was a muscle memory to Alex. Without even thinking about it, he started to move and manipulate the fire. With one thought, he changed the shape of the fire into a cube. "So fast." He was surprised. He had changed the shape of the fire in less than a second, when it should have taken him about two. He changed the fire into other different easy geometric shapes. It changed very quickly. He put in more Qi, and the size of the fire started to change as well. He quickly increased the fire to half a meter in diameter. He looked at the massive flame in front of him. Then, a thought came to him, ''Can I split this fire into two?'' He slowly willed the fire to create a divide in its middle. The fire was surprisingly not resisting him at all. Within a few seconds, he managed to split the fire into two. He let go of one of the half, and it returned to being the lantern flame. He now had another piece of fire floating in front of him to play with. He tried to split that fire, once more and started to manipulate them separately. He was trying to use his Qi manipulation method to control the fire. It worked. He let go of the fire, and it disappeared. A confused look had now appeared on Alex''s face. "Too easy. It''s too easy. The fire wasn''t this easy to manipulate yesterday. It was taking me about 2 seconds to change it''s shape, but now I can do it in less than 1? What changed?" he started to wonder. "Could it be? My new Qi?" he looked into himself to see the vigorous and hot yang qi. "Hmm¡­ my qi seems to align well with fire. Is that why it suddenly got easier?" he thought he cracked the code. He went back to practicing. It had taken him 3 hours of practicing to go from full Qi to no Qi yesterday. But somehow, it took him over 5 hours to go from half Qi to zero Qi today. If he hadn''t wasted so much of his Qi trying to futilely move around multiple objects, and instead just practiced Flame Mastery, he didn''t doubt he could go on for the entire night. Now that he was out of Qi, he decided to cultivate. He took a deep breath and closed his eyes. Before he knew it, he was subconsciously cultivating, while his consciousness had fallen asleep. He woke up early in the morning at around half past 6. He opened his eyes and saw the mess of stones, and lantern in front of him. He hung the lantern back up to the ceiling, and threw the bunch of stones outside. He opened his status once more. This time he wasn''t surprised he had cultivated over night. This was a normal phenomenon to him now. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Muscle Tempering 7th Realm (40,000Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 87909 ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª ''So the leftover from yesterday helped, huh.'' He thought. While his Qi had turned to Yang Qi, it still said Qi on the status page. He hit the [Breakthrough] button and broke through to the 8th realm. He was about to close his status when he realized he could breakthrough once more. ''Oh'' he was happily surprised. He clicked on the [Breakthrough] button once more. The requirements from 7th to 8th realm was 40,000 Qi, and from 8th to 9th realm was 45,000 Qi. But, for some reason, the requirement for Muscle Tempering 9th Realm to Bone Tempering 1st realm was 100,000 Qi. ''Is that because they are two different major realms, and not minor separation in between the realms?'' he wondered. He had just gone through 2 different breakthroughs and was feeling amazing. He felt more strength in himself than before. The amount of Qi had increased as well. If he wanted to, he could probably go a full 12 hours of Flame Mastery training and not lose all of his Qi. He once again looked at the time, realized it was nearly 7 AM and hastily logged out. Chapter 28:Daily Routine It was 3 pm in the afternoon. Alex had just returned to his room from the cafeteria, after a full day of classes. After logging out of the game this morning, he hadn''t gone back. Instead, he spent his morning cleaning the room and washing his clothes. Now that he was back from the university, he couldn''t wait to go back to it. He logged into the game as soon as possible and opened his eyes inside his outer sect cottage. It was an afternoon in the game as well, and the light was shining through his windows. He walked out of the room to the usual masses of green-robed disciples. He had only one task in his mind today, work as an aid for as long as he could. He quickly reached outside the Alchemy hall and waited in line to be an aid. He talked to the few aids in the group while waiting. He came to understand a few things about why the alchemist aids were even a thing. Normally, in an alchemy process, an alchemist had to take care of 3 different things. The fire, the ingredients in the cauldron, and the ingredients outside the cauldron. They had to maintain the fire''s temperature and mix the ingredients in the cauldron properly. These were very important. So when they had to divert their attention from the alchemy itself to look into their bags and search for ingredients to put in next, it hampered their process, even leading to failure many times. Inner sect disciples were similar. They couldn''t multitask all those 3 things and hope to succeed in making the pill. So, the sect decided to have the Outer sect disciples help them with the third part of the alchemy, giving them ingredients. This way, the outer sect disciples too could gain knowledge and inspiration in the process of alchemy from watching the inner sect disciples. Of course, not all inner sect disciples needed aids, but most of them did. Alex didn''t have to wait long before a female disciple took him in as an aid. This was the second time he had gone into the catacombs like Alchemy Hall. The female disciple quickly found an open room and got it. Alex followed closely behind her and entered. Without speaking, she handed him a bag of ingredients with a talisman. Alex was hoping for another recipe, but alas his luck wasn''t as good. The talisman only listed the items required for the recipe and the order in which they would go into the cauldron. The female disciple decided to use the black cauldron already heating up in the room and started immediately. One after another, the ingredient''s names came out of the disciple''s mouth. Alex gave her exactly the ingredient she asked for. Within half an hour, she completed the alchemy and successfully made a pill. Alex didn''t have the recipe this time, so he couldn''t tell everything she did wrong, but his instinct told him she made a few mistakes at least. The girl brought out a pill tester and put the newly formed pill in it. 18%. This wasn''t a bad harmony for a pill made by an inner sect disciple. The girl put the pill in a ceramic bottle and kept it in her bag. There were still a lot of the same ingredients left in the bag Alex was holding. She had brought multiple sets of the same ingredients. She started making the pill once more. Names after names came out of her mouth, and Alex accurately handed the ingredients to her. Once again, she succeeded in making the pill. She tested it and it turned out to be 18% as well. Alex looked at the bag in front of him. There was enough for one more. She performed alchemy once more. Everything went the same way this time too. Once again, she successfully formed a pill. ''If she is so good at alchemy, then why did she use 3 different sets?'' he wondered. She brought out the pill from the cauldron and put it in the pill tester. 20%. The female disciple had managed to make a 20% harmony pill. For the first time since he saw her, she smiled. She kept the pill in a ceramic bottle and looked at him. " Give me your nameplate." She said. Alex handed it to her. After transferring the points, she handed it back to him and left the Alchemy hall. He walked out of the Alchemy Hall, and once more waited outside to be an aid. Another person came later and took him. He worked as an aid until 12 am. He worked as an aid about 12 times before 12 am. Some disciples gave him the whole recipe, some just gave him the ingredients list and order. He learned a total of 4 new recipes. Every time he learned a recipe, he could immediately tell when someone made a mistake. It was as if the recipe was ingrained into him, and he knew everything about it. After watching the alchemist perform alchemy so many times, he was starting to get the hang of it. There were even times when he could tell they made some mistakes without having a recipe for the pill. He earned about 60 points in total. Some made multiple pills, some gave him a little extra. After returning to his cottage at 12 am, he started practicing the qi manipulation, and Flame Mastery Scripture. He learned each method for 3 hours, and before he knew it it was 6 am. He wrapped his Qi around the lantern and slowly hovered it up to hang it to the ceiling. He then used Qi once more to throw the rocks out of the room, one by one. Once, everything was gone and the room was clean, he logged out. ******Author''s Note****** June 11, 2021 -- if you started the book after this date, then you don''t have to read this note. I changed the 5 true realms'' names to True Disciple, True Master, True Lord, True King, and True Emperor. I have already gone back to change the names in the previous chapters. These are only ''name'' changes, and won''t affect the chapters so far. Chapter 29:The First Step "So, how did you like the movie?" Hannah asked while walking out of the movie theater at around 5 pm. "Uh, it wasn''t bad. I really liked the twist at the end." Alex said walking out of the movie theater at the same time. Yesterday was Friday, so he had played ''Eternal Cultivation'' the entire day as he didn''t have classes on Fridays through Sundays. When he woke up this morning, he had received a message from Hannah asking him to go to the movies with him. He and Hannah reached a fast food place, where they got some food and sat down to eat. "So, how are you liking the city?" she asked. Alex looked a little embarrassed as he replied, "Well, I haven''t visited the city at all. I spend my days playing games." Hannah''s attention immediately snapped towards what he had just said. "What game?" she asked. "It''s a VR game called Eternal Cultivation," he said. "Oh, so you are playing the game too?" Hannah''s surprised voice came from in front of him. "Too? You play it as well sister?" he asked. "Of course. Everyone plays it. How did you buy a helmet? Did you lie to your parents for money?" she frowned a little as she asked. "Oh, no-no. One of my roommates had an extra helmet, so he gave me one to use for a while." He answered honestly. " If that is true, then good. When did you start playing?" "I think it''s been a week now. I started playing the night I came to the dorm." He answered. "Where are you in the game? What are you doing right now?" she asked. "I''m learning alchemy right now, in Hong Wu sect." He answered. "Oh, you are learning alchemy? If you make good pills, remember to send me a few." Hannah laughed as she said that. Alex wasn''t sure if she was joking or not but agreed nonetheless. After half an hour, he was back in the dorm room. He wanted to go back to the game but decided otherwise. He rested a little until dinnertime, and only went back to the game after that. He opened his eyes in his lantern-lit cottage. His last few days had been the same. He would work as an aid until 12 am at night. After that, he would come back to his cottage, and practice Qi manipulation and Flame Mastery. After he ran out of Qi, he would cultivate. By now it was getting harder to cultivate more than 2 hours each night. After turning into Yang Qi, his Qi amount had increased by quite a bit and didn''t require as much Qi to do the same task. He stood up and walked out. After working as an aid for the last few days, he had got to learn about 10 or so pill recipes. Some increased your qi, some healed you, some helped make breakthroughs easier. One pill was even as simple as making you smell good. Alex was shocked that people would spend their hard-earned contribution points on such menial pills. By now, he had earned about 450 or so contribution points. So, he decided to finally make a pill for himself. It was nighttime, so the outer sect disciples were finally allowed to learn alchemy. The pill he had decided upon was the [Qi Improvement Pill]. He had read the recipe from one of the inner sect disciples and found out that the ingredients were very easy to come by and didn''t cost a lot. He bought 7 sets of the ingredients, and it had cost him 420 points. He reached the Alchemy Hall and looked at the outer sect disciples grouped up to work as an aid. For some reason, he felt he didn''t need aid, and simply walked in. He had about 20 points remaining, so he could only use the rooms for 4 hours at best. The remaining 10 points he had spent on ceramic bottles to keep the pill. He walked into a room and closed the door. He was nervous. He walked up to the cauldron and sat down cross-legged beside it. He opened his inventory and put the panel to the side. This was the reason he thought he didn''t need aid. He could simply order the ingredients in the inventory and pull them out one by one as needed. His concentration was now divided into 3 parts. While the inventory didn''t need too much attention, the fire and the ingredients in the cauldron certainly did. He had to now drop the fire to 800 Celsius, put the second ingredient, move it around for 4 seconds, and then bring the fire up to 1500 Celsius. He tried to do just that. He put his Qi into the fire to drop the temperature. But due to his constant Flame Mastery practice, he was too good at dropping temperatures and ended up reducing the temperature too fast. He took out the second ingredient, and put that into the cauldron. But, for a split second while he was taking out the second ingredient, he forgot to move the first ingredient. It was a very small mistake, but it was a mistake nonetheless. Similar things kept happening during the pill-making process. Either there would be a lapse in attention towards some ingredients, or he would change the fire too suddenly, or too slowly. By the time he put in the final ingredient, he knew he had made too many mistakes. After the final ingredient turned into powder, he used his Qi to slowly form it into a spherical shape and condensed that into a pill. After he finally succeeded in making it into a pill, he pulled it out of the cauldron. When he saw the pill, he sighed. It read, [Qi Improvement Pill: 6%] His first attempt at alchemy had ended in a failure. Chapter 30:One Step Forward Alex ran his qi through the inside of the cauldron to wipe away any little impurities that had remained there. He had seen the other inner sect disciples do this trick to prepare for their next batch of ingredients. He once again took a deep breath and put in the first ingredient. He used his Qi to move it around, slowly turning it into powder. He lowered the heat to 800 Celsius but made sure to not do it very fast. While he did end up not getting the timing right, it was still much better than the first time. He took out the second ingredient and put it in, while constantly monitoring the first ingredient. After a while, he turned the heat up to 1500 Celsius. He followed the recipe and did as it asked. However, keeping his attention on 3 different things, while at the same time constantly remembering what he had to do next was too hard for him. He started to lose focus from time to time. Still, this turn went better than the last one. Finally, once all ingredients were inside the cauldron, and fully turned into powder, he started condensing them. Slowly but surely, he turned them into a pill. He pulled the successfully formed pill out and held it in his hand. [Qi Improvement Pill: 12% Improves cultivation speed by 12% for 12 hours] Alex took a small rest. While alchemy wasn''t physically taxing, it was mentally very draining. Doing 3 different things, all with smalled different things from time to time was too much for Alex. Suddenly, Alex thought of something. "Wait, what if I slow downtime? Wouldn''t that reduce the load off my mind?" he thought that was a brilliant idea. He decided to try it. He slowed downtime and started putting in the ingredients. As soon as he put in the first ingredient, he realized he made a mistake. Since he was now in focus mode, time was now slow. But, he could not tell how slow he had to move the ingredients since he didn''t know how slow time was. He didn''t have a clock to look at. He now wished the clock at his vision''s top right corner showing the seconds. He had already put in the ingredients so, he decided to follow it through. Since he couldn''t follow the timing as the recipe dictated, he decided to go off of his instincts. He instinctively slowed down every process by what he assumed was the rate of time dilation. He followed the recipe and did what the recipe told him to, only at a slower rate. The slowed down time helped with every other aspect of the pill-making process, however. Finally, after a while, he managed to condense the ingredients into a pill. He took the pill out with nervousness, as he didn''t know how it would turn out. [Qi Improvement Pill: 10%] He had succeeded. It was barely at the cusp of being accepted as a mortal-grade pill. He had managed to successfully create a pill, even though focus mode. After a short rest, he started once more. This time he managed to create a 12% harmony pill. He was getting better at creating pills with Focus mode activated. After a short rest, he started on his 5th set of ingredients. He followed the same technique all the way through until the end when suddenly something happened within him that startled him. As he was started to condense the powders into the pill, a bunch of Qi inside his body started to move. Similar to when he activated Flame Mastery Scripture, they moved in a certain path through his meridian. This path was different from the one Flamer Mastery Scripture activated. Once the Qi moved through his entire body, it arrived at his hands and diffused from it. The arrival of the new Qi made him intuitively use it. He slowly guided the Qi to enter the cauldron and split it into 2 portions. Both portions of the Qi started to condense the powder into 2 separate balls. And as a result, they turned into 2 different pills. Alex was astonished at what had just happened. How did he know that he had to split the powder into two portions to form two pills? Also the pathway the Qi took through his body was the first time they had been used. He only had 2 techniques as of now. Since this wasn''t the pathway of [Flame Mastery Scripture]¡­ "Could it be the [Alchemy God''s Knowledge]?" he wondered. He quickly opened his techniques to check the description and realized what had happened. With Level 1 of [Alchemy God''s Knowledge], he had a 50% chance to create an extra pill. That chance had just activated. Alex was both shocked and happy with learning that he could make 2 pills from a single set of ingredients. He took out both of the newly formed pills and checked. [Qi Improving Pill: 15% Improves cultivation speed by 15% for 12 hours] "Wow! That is the best pill I have made as of yet." He was shocked. He turned his attention to the other pill in his hand. [Qi improving pill: 15% Improves cultivation speed by 15% for 12 hours] This was the same pill as the first one. "Will the harmony level always be the same between the two pills when the 50% chance is activated?" he wondered. He soon got his answer. After resting a bit he started once more and got 2 pills. One was 12% in harmony, and the other was 14%. He didn''t know why that was, but he was glad to know it was possible. He started with the last pill and succeeded in making it. The last pill came out with 16% harmony. He was really happy to see that. Seeing that all his ingredients were gone, he walked up to the door and took out his nameplate. 15 points were taken off of the nameplate, meaning he had been here for 3 hours, making pills. Once he made sure all the pills were in the ceramic bottles, he walked out. Chapter 31:Selling Pills At A Loss Alex walked out of the Alchemy hall at around 10 pm. He had managed to make 8 mortal grade Qi Improvement Pills. "Do I go sell them now? Or should I register one at the disciple hall first?" he stopped for a moment to decide. To take the test to become an inner sect disciple, the first requirement was 10 different mortal grade pill. This meant he had to somehow find 10 different recipes, and create a mortal grade for each of them. Every time he made one, he would have a chance to register them as one of his 10 pills. Once he made 10 pills, he would be given the opportunity to become an inner sect disciple. He didn''t however hear anyone talk about what the test was to become an inner sect disciple, however. After more than a second of contemplation, he decided to go to the disciple hall. Walking along the festival-like valley road, he quickly reached the black ranking rock. He hadn''t come here since getting his nameplate the first day. When he saw his name that time, it was dead last in the ranking. He wondered where he was now. It didn''t take him more than a few minutes to find his name. However, he was happy it even took him that long. The total names on the list were 4883. His name was on the 4545th ranking. He had earned more than 300+ disciples. Most of them were probably newcomers like him, but just the fact that he got that ranking made him happy. He walked over to the other side and checked his name there. However, on this site, his name was near the last place. From what he could infer, he didn''t have any alchemy achievement at the moment. He walked into the disciple hall and quickly got into a line. When his turn came along, he handed the inner sect disciple working there the 10% harmony pill. "I wish to register this pill." He said. The disciple took the pill and used a pill tester to check the harmony. After confirming that he had indeed brought out a mortal grade pill, the disciple took up a medallion and place it on his forehead. ''Since the medallion is also part of the sect running formation, I wonder if he is checking for something.'' Alex was intrigued. The disciple was indeed checking for something. He was checking Alex''s purchase history at the sect market. Anything bought and sold from the official stalls where the elder stayed was recorded in the sect running formation. The disciple was checking if the pill Alex brought in matched what he had bought in the sect. This was a way of finding out if the disciple had indeed made the pill or not. Another thing he was checking was also the pill room usage by Alex. Once he found that Alex had in fact bought the items for the pill the day before, and had just gone into a pill room about 3 hours ago, he registered the pill under Alex''s name. The disciple then handed back Alex''s nameplate but kept the pill. Alex knew they kept the pill brought for registering, which was why he decided to use the lowest harmony pill in the first place. Once he was done, he walked out and checked the Alchemy Achievement rankings again. His name had somehow jumped from the 4800s to 4234. "Wow. Does that mean almost 600 outer sect disciple had yet to succeed in making a pill?" He left and went to the sect market. He arrived there in less than 5 minutes. He got in a line and waited for his turn at one of the sect stalls. He walked up and put out all the remaining 7 pills to sell them. "I wish to sell these, elder." He said to the elder working in the stall. This was the same bald elder with wrinkles and streaks of white on his hair and beard. The elder took the pill bottles and checked the pills inside. Once he confirmed they were indeed mortal-grade pills, he took out a pill tester and tested them. 12%,12%,12%,14%,15%,15%, and 16%. The elder calculated and said, "you can sell these for 226 points." "226? But elder I bought 7 sets of ingredients for 420 points, so why are the pills selling for half the price of the ingredients?" he was confused. "Secondly, if we don''t sell the pills for fewer points, a skilled disciple could use just 60 points to buy a set of ingredients, sell the pill for 60 points, then buy another set, and sell another pill, and on and on. This way the sect will soon go into a points crisis." "This way, the sect can run properly, without having to worry about the same 60 points clearing the entire sect garden." "So, do you want the points or not?" the elder asked. Alex sighed, and said, "Yes I do, elder." He handed the elder his nameplate. "You want to buy anything?" the elder asked. Alex wanted to, but he had his own idea about what he needed to do. "No, thank you." He rejected the offer. The elder handed him his nameplate back with the 226 points. Alex walked out of the market and walked along the night streets. He didn''t need to become an aid anymore, as he could make pills himself. What he needed now was contribution points to buy the alchemy ingredients. And from his experience, the best way to earn contribution points was by selling monster corpses, cores, and materials. So, the first thing on his agenda was to go out and kill some monsters. And, to kill monsters easily and successfully, he needed to learn some battle techniques. Chapter 32:Battle Technique Alex made his way to the sect library. At the entrance, he showed his nameplate to the attending elder and walked in. He didn''t have a lot of contribution points, so the best he could get was a low-tier mortal grade technique. He had an hour to look through the techniques, but it didn''t take him that long this time. Very soon he found a sword-related technique called [Smiting Blade]. It cost only 200 contribution points, so he happily took it. For comparison, the [Flame Mastery Scripture] would''ve cost him about 800 contribution points. Mortal grade techniques cost between 100 and 1000 contribution points, while the highest Earth grade technique Alex had seen previously was 4000 points. There might have been some that cost even more. Alex had tried to read the books in the library but realized they wouldn''t open for some reason. So, he walked out of the library with the book in hand. He handed it to the elder, along with the nameplate. The elder handed it to him and reminded him to return the book in 7 days. Alex also returned the [Flame Mastery Scripture] at the same time, as he didn''t need it anymore. He went to a quiet place and took out the book. Under the lantern''s light, he started reading it. He didn''t understand what the book really said, but when he finished it, he got a notification. He opened the description of the technique. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª- [Smiting Blade Grade: Mortal Infuse Qi into the blade to increase its penetrating power.] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª "Alright, time to train now." He said as he looked at his new technique''s description. He needed to look for a place to train this technique now. And there was no place better for this in the sect than the training hall. Alex located the training hall a few distances away. Although it was called a hall, it was just a massive open field. He could see a few dozens of disciples training their battle techniques. Some were shooting out arrows, some were using a sword, some threw fire from their hand, while some just ran around a lot making weird moves. All of these disciples were far away from each other, so there was no way they could hamper each other''s progress. There were about a few hundred wooden posts in the field denoting the place for training. Alex walked up to one of the posts that were far away from any disciple. He looked at the carving on the surface of the post and places his nameplate there. As soon as he did that, about a few meters away from him, the ground opened up and a wooden puppet came out. The puppet was what the disciples trained their techniques on. Similar to the alchemy room, the training hall too took 5 contribution points per hour, so he needed to get on with it. He brought out his steel sword and activated focus mode. Once everything slowed down, he closed his eyes and tried to feel his Qi. This was too easy for him at this point. He thought of the new technique, and the Qi started moving through his meridian. This was the first time, so it was going to take longer to complete the travel through the new path. It slowly moved all over his body and reached his hands. However, instead of diffusing from his hands, it instead traveled from his palm to the hilt of the sword. The Qi felt some difficulty in entering the hilt but still managed to enter it at last. The Qi had visibly entered the sword hilt as Alex saw the hilt''s color change to a slight yellowish hue. The color then traveled up the sword as it crossed the cross-guard, moved along the blade, and stopped at the tip. His Qi has trouble moving along the entirety of the sword but succeeded in it at last. Now, the sword was glowing a mild yellow. "I wonder if the Qi is having difficulty because it''s a metal object?" Alex wondered. Now that he had successfully activated his [Smiting Blade] technique, it was time to test how good it was. He held the sword in a fighting stance and pounced forward to cut the puppet. BAM A massive cut appeared on the puppet where Alex had just cut it. The sword had stopped glowing yellow as he stopped the flow of Qi. He looked back at the wooden post as a few words appeared on it. He smiled. His attack just now had been equivalent to a Bone Tempering 1st Realm cultivator''s normal strike. That meant his new battle technique improved his damage by 1 realm''s worth. Adding to the fact that this 1 realm was an entire minor realm jump, the battle technique returned its worth twice over. He decided to attack once more. Once more, he did the same damage as a Bone Tempering 1st Realm cultivator. [Muscle Tempering 8th Realm] "Huh? Why is my damage lower than my actual cultivation base? What is going on?" he was very much confused. He tried attacking the puppet with his bare hands. [Muscle Tempering 9th Realm] "Wait. So I do more damage with my fists than I do with the sword? What sort of garbage was I handed during the tutorial." Alex couldn''t believe what he was saying. "Is this the game''s way of balancing things out? Giving me ultra good talents and techniques, but then giving me trash pills that give 10 Qi, or a sword that does less damage than my fists." Alex didn''t know whether to laugh or cry. He picked up his sword once more. The puppets were part of the sect running formation and had self-mending techniques, so they were back to perfect condition once more. He infused Qi into the sword once more and started attacking. Chapter 33:Hunting Once More Alex woke up in his cottage at nearly 7 am in morning. He had stopped training 2 hours later last night, and come back to the cottage to cultivate. He had only cultivated for 4 or so hours, but that was enough. [Breakthrough] With all the Qi he had accumulated throughout the last few days, he had enough to break through to the next minor realm. The requirement for Bone Tempering 2nd realm was 150,000 Qi now. He logged out of the game for now. He had to go hunt some monsters today, so he quickly had his breakfast and returned to the game. He went to the disciple hall and requested leave from the sect for 3 days. Once it was approved, he walked out of the sect and went to a random tavern near the eastern gate. He purchased a room for 3 days and logged out from there. He went to have his lunch with his roommates. Today was Sunday, and there were no classes for anyone. Alex never asked them questions about their cultivations or talents in the game. He felt that if he was to keep secrets from them, it was only fair he didn''t inquire answers from them. After finishing their lunches, everyone returned to their room and logged into the game. Alex opened his eyes in the tavern. He walked out of the city through the eastern gate and entered the forest on the southern side of the city. He walked slowly in the forest trying not to miss any alchemy ingredients. Along the way, he found a few different ingredients, including a dwarf berry. This dwarf berry was quite hidden in the bushes and would be unnoticeable if not for his focus mode enhancing his senses. He was constantly turning on and off his focus mode so as to not miss anything. He walked along a bit more, keeping any ingredients he found before he met a monster. It was a skin tempering realm monster, so he didn''t even bother using any special technique. He just lunged at it and gave it a good pounding on its head. "Ughh. Is that an alchemy ingredient as well?" Alex wondered. To think the monster would drop urine as a loot. After selling the corpses last time, he had come to find out that the monster cores and materials were actually alchemy ingredients. So he had decided he wouldn''t sell it that easily this time. He continued walking as he went deeper and deeper into the forest. He found many different alchemy ingredients and killed quite a few monsters as well. Some dropped cores, some dropped materials, sometimes both. However, killing monsters never dropped weapons or armors like in other games. Well, Eternal Cultivation wasn''t ''like'' other games. He walked on for quite a lot of time, but couldn''t find any monsters that could make him use more than just one slash of his casual sword swing. Finally, after searching around for the whole day, he found a Muscle Tempering 8th realm monster that didn''t die to a sword swing. "Alright. Time to try my new technique on an actual enemy." He though. The monster was a feline monster with patches of cloud-like design on its body. With him currently at the 1st realm of Bone Tempering, this situation was the equivalent of when he fought a Muscle Tempering 3rd realm Earth Snake, as a Muscle Tempering 6th Realm cultivator. The leopard had seen him approaching and was starting to crouch, ready to attack. Alex also got into his attack stance as well. He held the steel sword with both of his hands to the side, kept both of his feet wide, and took a deep breath. He went into focus mode. The leopard jumped. It was about 10 meters away from Alex, but it was going to cross the entire distance in a single jump. The jump felt slow to Alex, but not as slow as everything else around him. He slowly moved his Qi around and started infusing it into the sword. The sword showed some resistance to his Qi, but quickly accepted it. Just when the leopard was 2 meters away from him, Alex swung his sword. Due to both of them being at similar cultivation, their speed wasn''t very far off. However, because Alex was still ahead, his sword reached the leopard''s head before the leopard''s claws could reach his. CHOP In a single smooth sweep, the leopard''s head came off its body. Alex looked both surprised and happy. He remembered when he had such a hard time with the snake, and now he could kill this monster with just a single strike. Even though [Smiting Blade] was a mortal grade technique, it was still a battle technique nonetheless. "I wonder how strong my attacks would be if my sword was anything but a mortal grade." Alex was now out of focus mode. He kept the cloud leopard''s body into his inventory and walked off. It was getting dark, so he returned back. He walked into the city without having to pay 2 silvers anymore. His nameplate was now a form of identification that the city guard accepted. He got into his tavern room and logged out. He called his parents again, waiting for his roommates to log out of the game. Once they logged out, he went to have his dinner and got back to the room. Once again, he logged back into the game. He cultivated inside the tavern room for a few minutes to get back what Qi he had lost during the day''s hunt. Once he was ready he walked out of the city. This time, he wouldn''t return until the sun came up. Chapter 34:Chance Meeting Alex was inside the jungle in the dead of night. The moon was shining brightly in the sky. For some reason, the moon always shined brightly in the sky. The moon never went past being a half-moon. It changed its states between a full moon, half-moon, and in-between. So, he never had to worry about the night being dark in the game. He didn''t know if it was an intentional change from the developers, or they just wanted to let the players know this world was not their own. But, the moon didn''t matter to him anymore. He could see a lot better at nighttime now that he was a cultivator. Especially when he went into focus mode, his vision would amplify as well, letting him see the most minute of things in bright light even in the darkest of caves. He realized that nighttime had way more monsters than the daytime. Most of the monsters seemed to only come out during nighttime, and he had a great time hunting them. He wasn''t particularly happy about the hunt or fascinated with killing. He was just happy when he thought about how many points he could get from these monsters. Time slowly went by while he kept finding new materials, and encountering quite a few monsters. It was about 2 am at night when he suddenly heard something. Rustle Rustle He immediately went into focus mode and started looking around to see if he could find what was making the noise. Time was slowed down, so he saw a bunch of leaves hanging from a branch on a tree move unnaturally. He kept looking as he waited for a monster to appear from behind it. As the leaves parted to show what was behind them, he was surprised. The thing making the rustling noises was actually a pair of females. He looked at them with wide eyes, while they also seemed to be surprised to find him. They both seemed to be around 20 years old and held a small thin sword in their hand. They were both beautiful girls, but one just seemed infinitely more beautiful than the other. Alex was still in his focus mode. He quickly looked at the less beautiful girl. She was wearing a yellow robe with blue linings around the robe. Her thin sword looked simple and made of steel. There was a slight shine to it, but it wasn''t very much. The other girl on the other hand was something else. She was probably the most beautiful person he had seen in real life or in-game. She was wearing a similar robe to the first girl, with yellow all over it. However, unlike the blue linings, this robe had red linings on it. She had flowing black hair that shined with a hint of blue in the moonlight. The sword she was holding looked like a crystal sword and was shining with a blue hue to it. Even without the focus mode, one could see the shining from the sword. Alex looked at his own steel sword in hand and felting like laughing at the dull blade. He turned off his focus mode, still surprised at seeing peoples in the forest at 2 am. "Hello," he greeted. The girl with the blue linings looked at him and asked," A disciple from the Hong Wu Sect? What are you doing here?" she practically demanded the answer. Alex frowned a little, but still chose to answer, " I''m here to hunt monsters." He said. "What monster could you possibly want to hunt in the middle of the night?" the girl asked once more. "Meng Meng!" the other girl said, clearly disapproving of the rude tone in her voice. "I''m a sorry senior sister." The blue linings girl immediately apologized to her senior sister. The senior sister looked towards Alex and asked, " Are you looking for any specific monster, fellow Daoist? Do you require our help?" she asked. Her tone was polite as she asked her question with a smile. Alex looked at the junior sister with a bit of focus and was shocked. [Bone Tempering 7th Realm] The girl was already in the 7th realm of Bone Tempering. That was 6 realms higher than his own. Judging from her tone, her senior sister must be stronger than her. He slowly looked at the senior sister. His already wide eyes became even wider. [Mind Tempering 5th realm] ''Holy Sh*t,'' he couldn''t help but cuss. This was the highest cultivation he had seen on someone so young. In fact, this was the highest non-hidden cultivation he had seen yet in the game. To reach her level, he would have to cross the entire bone tempering realm, the organ tempering realm, and the meridian tempering realm. He wondered how much Qi that took. The girl was 5 realms away from becoming a cultivator in the true realms. The girl looked at him with a weird look, and he realized he hadn''t answered her question yet. "I am just hunting random monsters, and am not looking for anything specific. So, thank you for your offer, but I will have to decline it." He tried to say no as politely as he could. This girl could probably kill him if she wanted to. She didn''t seem that type of girl, however. "Very well then, fellow Daoist. We shall take our leave". The girl turned around and walked off. The other girl also quickly followed behind her not giving Alex another glance. It took a while before Alex was back in his usual mindset. He walked on from where he was and started looking for the ingredients and the monsters once more. Slowly time passed by as he hunted the monsters throughout the entire night. The first rays of sunlight were scattered through the forests from the east. It was about time to leave the forest, and log out of the game. Chapter 35:Best Player In The Game The morning had arrived, and his first day of the 3-day leave was over. Nothing of significance had happened the entire night, aside from meeting different people in the forest. Over the course of the night, he had met a few more people after the 2 female cultivators. Most of them had the same yellow robe on them, but none had the red linings like the beautiful girl, only green or blue linings. He did meet a few disciples from Hong Wu Sect, but they seemed to be inner sect disciples so he didn''t talk a lot to them besides the casual greetings. He realized that monsters were active during the nighttime a lot more than daytime, so most of the people that wanted to hunt the monster only visited the forest during the night. Now that it was nearly 7 am, Alex walked out of the forest and went to the city. Once he reached his room in the tavern, he logged out. After breakfast, he decided to study instead of going back into the game. There was nothing to do in the game at this time, so it was better to just study. At 11 am, he went to his class. Today was a computer science class, and he really enjoyed this class. There was only 1 course he took this semester that didn''t have either of his 3 roommates, so most of these classes he just sat with them. After the classes were over, he ate his afternoon lunch and went back to his room. Instead of going back into the game, however, he just started doing his homework from his classes. He had wanted to do it in the morning, but there was nothing to do right now. If he went back in the game, he would have nothing to do there. He couldn''t go to the forest only to return a bit more than 2 hours later just to log out. Rather, he would do his work now, eat his dinner, and then go into the game. After finishing the homework, he decided to watch some online videos to pass his time. The site he visited regularly was now starting to recommend ''Eternal Cultivation'' videos on its own. "I haven''t even searched for anything related to the game on this site, and it''s somehow recommending videos related to it? Is this because the search engine and the video site are owned by the same company?" he talked to himself. He was about to reload the page when he saw the word ''Best'' out of the corner of his eyes. He stopped, and read the title of the video. "Exclusive Interview with The BEST player in Eternal Cultivation!!" the thumbnail was a massive ''BEST'' test covering the face of the player, while the interviewer looked very shocked with comically large eyes. "The best?" Alex was intrigued. His curiosity took the better of him as he clicked on the video. The video opened with the interviewer talking to the viewers, hyping them up, saying how they were the first channel to find the best player in Eternal Cultivation. "This player has been playing this game since day 0, and has remained hidden the entire time he was in the game." The interviewer said, " However, today he has agreed to have us take an interview of him, and reveal himself to the world through our channel." The interviewer kept talking about how his channel was the best for doing this. "Now everyone, please welcome, Mister Connor Root." The interview was going to take over a video call, so on another side, a young 20-ish years old man with bright red hair showed up on another side of the video. "Good morning Mister Root." The interviewer said. "Good morning, you can just call me Connor." He replied "Alright. Hi, I''m Connor Root. I live in Black Cherry City, and I am as of yet, the player with the highest cultivation in ''Eternal Cultivation''." The interviewer acted shocked when he heard this, "If you don''t mind us asking Connor, what is your cultivation at currently?" "It''s at True King 4th Realm. I just broke through yesterday actually." Connor answered. "Oh wow, I heard the highest know cultivation as of yet was in the True Master Realm, yours just blows that out of the water. Can you tell us how to cultivated so fast?" the interviewer asked. "There is really just one reason why I cultivated as fast as I did, and that reason is ''Luck''. I was just lucky, that''s it." Connor then looked at the camera, and pointed at it as he said, " You too can become as good as me if you just get a bit lucky." The interviewer''s face was blank for a moment. He was expecting an actual answer from the interviewee, yet he just babbled about being this good due to luck. "Umm... Connor, I think our viewers wouldn''t mind learning a bit more as to how you cultivate so fast." The interviewer tried to solve the situation. "Ahaha. I''m sorry, I was just joking for a moment. Let me get serious then. Let''s see, the reason for why I cultivated so fast, huh. Well, there are many reasons, most of them being actually just luck. But if I had to condense them down to a few then, I would say I cultivated so fast because of 3 reasons exactly." The interviewer seemed happy with this response. He had somehow kept the interview from going into a bad turn, "Oh, 3 reasons. I wonder how good these reasons are. If you wouldn''t mind, can you tell us what these 3 reasons are?" "Yes, I can. From what I have learned off of the forums and such, the internet has no idea about this, but, you know the Body in the status of the players? There are actually grades to these bodies as well. And the first reason as to why I cultivated so fast was because the body I was given in the game was one of the best bodies anyone has ever been given." Chapter 36:More Interview "The body of a cultivator is graded as well? This is the first time I have heard of this." The interviewer was shocked. This was new information he was not expecting to get in this information today. He was genuinely shocked. Alex was shocked too. He hadn''t given much thought to his body. He started to wonder what grade his body was. "Yes. I found that out a few days ago as I searched the internet trying to learn everyone''s body''s name. I had my suspicions before, but the searches I made proved my theories. You see a player is given a random body. Most of the time it''s just called ''Mortal body''. People think this just meant the bodies they got was a non-cultivator to start with, but they are wrong." "Also, since the Earth grade bodies and Heaven grade bodies do not have the words ''Earth'' and ''Heaven'' in it doesn''t help it either. Only after the heaven grade does the bodies actually start to have their names in it." The interviewer cued in and asked," And what body do you have?" "My body is an Immortal Grade body. It''s called the ''Immortal Tyrant Body''. With this body, I can produce the strength equal to 2 realms above my own realm. Meaning, I can currently produce the strength of a True Dao 6th Realm cultivator." he replied. "Oh wow, that''s one of the reasons for your fast cultivation huh. What are the other 2 reasons?" the interviewer asked. "The next 2 reasons can in fact be called the same reason, but since they are different I decided to call them 2 reasons. And they are the fact that I got an Immortal Grade Cultivation Method for self-tempering realm through the gift box, and somehow managed to get a Heaven Grade Cultivation Method for the True realm." "Add onto the fact that I bought a lot of Qi providing pills using the monsters I hunted, I got to where I am right now." The interviewer was shocked again, "Oh wow. You really had a stroke of good luck going into the game, didn''t you? What about your talents? Are they any good?" " It''s just a Heaven grade talent, nothing to call home about." The interviewer then went on to ask other questions, but none of them interested Alex. He closed the video, and just sat there thinking. "Sun God''s Divine¡­ would that be God grade or is there a grade called Divine as well?" he was shocked again. The only thing his body could do he could tell as of now turned natural common Qi into Yang Qi. Yang Qi lasted twice if not longer than normal qi and didn''t need to be used as much to get the same result. He was already happy to get Yang Qi from his body. But, if what the person said was true, then that just wasn''t good enough for a God Grade body. so was it a Divine grade? "What else can it do then?" he wondered. The 3 roommates soon woke up, and they went to eat their dinner. He decided to tell them about what he found out today, but it seemed they had already learned about it during the day. Apparently, they liked to frequently visit the forum and had done just that today during the recess. They lamented that they either had Earth or Heaven-grade bodies. Alex also lamented along with them saying his body was Earth grade too. After dinner, they returned to their room and jumped into the game. Alex logged in his tavern room. He hadn''t returned to the game since waking up this morning and was quite eager to hunt once more. He got out of the city and went into the forest through the eastern side once more. From what he understood about the forest, the monster got stronger the deeper one went into it. If you were on the outer edges, you would only find skin tempering realm monsters. Monsters with Muscle Tempering realm only appeared about half an hour into the forest. And only about 2 hours away from that did Bone tempering realm monsters start to appear. He never went that far and only stayed at the edge of it. He had met a few monsters at Bone Tempering 1st realm, but he had managed to win against them with his Smiting Blade technique. Although it did take more than 1 strike with Smiting Blade each time he fought them. Tonight was a moonlit night as always and Alex had walked about 2 hours into the forest. The monsters he found in this area were Muscle Tempering 7th realm to Muscle Tempering 9th realm. Changing the place he hunted was a good idea on first thought, but once he realized that many other people hunted as well, it wasn''t necessary to go out of his way to find monsters. That said, Alex still changed his path so that he could find more alchemy ingredients. The forest was a treasure trove of alchemy ingredients that no one seemed to have searched for. Or maybe they did but didn''t realize which were alchemy ingredients, and which were not. A giant bear fell down with a massive cut running across its chest. Alex walked up to the bear and kept its corpse into his inventory. The bear was at the 7th realm of Muscle Tempering, so he had managed to kill it in one hit. He stood up and walked on ahead, searching for more monsters. BAM Suddenly the monster''s corpse vanished, and he finally saw what laid behind it. There were two ladies, one a little further back than the other. The one that was right beside the monster looked up with surprised eyes, and smiled a little as she said, "Fellow Daoist, it seems fate has brought us together again." Chapter 37:Helping Alex was surprised to see it was the same two girls he met yesterday. ''Fellow Daoist? Is that what the cultivators call each other?'' he wondered. He decided to reciprocate the greeting. "It''s good to see you once more, Fellow Daoist. I don''t really think fate has to do anything with us meeting again," he tried to make small talk. "Oh. Are you trying to imply that you met us here on purpose then, Fellow Daoist?" she asked with a smirk. She knew the answer, but still decided to tease him. Alex''s face changed to a brighter shade of red. "Of course not, It was just a random meeting. I just came here because I heard a sound." "Haha, you don''t need to defend yourself, Fellow Daoist. I was just joking." Her laughter made her look even more beautiful. Alex looked a little hurt. "I shall take my leave then." He said as he started to turn around. "Wait a minute, fellow Daoist." She called from behind. "Since we met each other, why don''t we hunt together?" she tried to invite him to the group. Alex was surprised. ''Why would she want me to join? I''m the weakest one here and am not even that strong-looking. There must be some other reason.'' "If you want something, you should just ask it, Fellow Daoist." He tried to figure out what she wanted. "Quite a sharp one, aren''t you? Yes, to be honest, fellow Daoist, we do require something." She said as she sighed a little. "Senior sister, you shouldn''t. It''s risky to tell him." The girl in the back spoke for the first time tonight. She was about to talk some more when she was interrupted by the other girl''s hand gesture. "I think we should introduce ourselves first. I am Luo Mei, and this is Meng Yun. We are disciples of the Tiger Sect." The girl introduced both herself and the girl at the back. "I am Yu Ming. I am a disciple of the Hong Wu Sect." He decided to introduce himself as well. "So, you said you wanted something? If it''s something I don''t mind parting with, I can give it to you." He said. He was slightly worried they might just attack him, and take it away forcefully. Luo Mei immediately corrected herself, " Oh no. We don''t want something you have. We just want your help in something." "Okay, what do you want my help in?" he asked. "We are at our last leg, so we need the help of an alchemist like yourself. Please, follow us," she said as she started walking in a certain direction. Along the way, Alex stopped a bunch of times to collect the alchemy ingredients he found. The two ladies were very surprised when they saw him pick so many things. Meng Yun softly whispered into Luo Mei''s ear as she said, " Senior sister, do you think he knows what we want him to do? He seems to be showing off by randomly picking up ingredients. I think he is a fraud." Luo Mei frowned when she heard this. "That is a definite possibility, but it doesn''t look like he is faking it. Some of the ingredients he picked were ones even I recognized. He must be a genuine alchemist who recognizes the ingredients. I hope he recognizes that one too." Luo Mei continued to walk deeper and deeper into the forest. Alex started to get worried. They were now constantly meeting monsters that would definitely be able to kill him easily. But to a Mind Tempering realm cultivator like her, these monsters were a piece of cake. She killed every single monster they came across and took all the drops from the monster. Alex didn''t mind her behavior as he was already getting enough benefits from the ingredients here. After a short while, she had managed to kill over a few dozen of bone tempering realm monsters. This was an amount that Alex couldn''t even hope to have achieved in all the 3 days he had taken a leave from the sect. And this girl had somehow managed to kill them in less than 2 hours. "We''re here," Luo Mei said as she increased her walking speed a little faster. "It''s right around here, somewhere." Finally, she stopped as she saw a small opening in the forest where there were no trees and only bushes. In front of the bushes was an Ox-like monster currently sleeping. [Meridian Tempering 3rd Realm] This was a monster that Alex didn''t doubt could kill him in a single blow. He was really scared now. He looked at Meng Yun, and she was shivering a little as well. Luo Mei however showed no fear, only some irritation at the fact that she had to fight when her goal was so close. She kept her sword in its scabbard on her waist and started moving her arms in a certain manner. Alex looked at her arms and saw Qi slowly seep out of her palms. The moment the Qi left her body, however, something weird happened. All of the Qi started to change as they slowly transformed into water. Alex had unconsciously started focus mode due to his fright, which was why the transformation looked so slow to him. In fact, the transformation happened in a split second. A massive ball of water appeared in front of Luo Mei which she sent towards the Ox. Within seconds, the Ox opened his eyes and frantically tried to move. But it couldn''t. Luo Mei had already encased the Ox in the water ball and was slowly drowning it to death in midair. The ball started to move higher and higher as the Ox tried to breathe more and more and failed. Minutes passed by and the Ox finally stopped breathing. It was dead. Luo Mei then let go of the water ball, and the entire thing, water, and Ox fell to the ground with a loud bang. She then turned to Alex and said, "This is where I need your help, Daoist Yu." Chapter 38:Spiritual Sense "This way, Fellow Daoist. This is where I require your help," Luo Mei said as she walked forward towards the bushes. She had already kept the Ox monster''s body in her storage bag. Meng Yun followed behind her unquestioningly. Alex decided to follow as well. Alex reached where they had stopped behind the bushes and was immediately surprised when he saw what it was. Hidden behind the bushes was an array of multicolored flowers, thousands in number, all naturally arranged to look like a flower bed. The flowers were all normal looking individually but were a sight to behold when viewed altogether. This, however, wasn''t the most shocking thing to Alex. The thing he was much more surprised about was what was happening to himself. ''This feeling,'' he was starting to feel a very intense pull towards one of the flowers. He recalled the time he had fought the ''Earth Snake''. He had had the same feeling that time as well. ''Same feeling¡­ no way!'' he looked at the flowers and focused, [Spirit Cleansing Lily] ''It''s the same flower.'' To this day, Alex had covertly tried to find out what this flower was in the sect but had no result. Today, he saw one more and was reminded of his ''want'' to have it. He resisted his feeling and looked at Luo Mei. "What do you want me to do, Daoist Luo?" Meng Yun''s eyes shot up as she heard him talk to her using her name. Luo Mei however didn''t give it a single thought, instead, all of her focus was on the flowerbed of Spirit Cleansing Lily. "Do you know what this is, Daoist Yu?" she asked. Alex just simply answered, "This? This is a flower bed of course." Luo Mei frowned a little, and asked once more, " Do you know what this flower bed is?" she asked. Alex saw her frowning face and got scared. He decided to answer properly this time, "I don''t know what the flower bed is called, but I know one of the flowers here is the Spirit Cleansing Lily." Hearing the name, Luo Mei''s eyes got bright with excitement and hope. "So you do know the name? Does that mean you can choose the right one?" she asked. "The right one?" ''was she talking about finding the exact flower'' he wondered. "Yes, the right one. Don''t you know that picking the wrong flower makes the entire flower bed wilt?" she asked. "I didn''t," he simply answered. "Can you pick the right one then?" she asked once more. "Yes. I can pick the Spirit Cleansing Lily without making a mistake." He said. Hearing his answer she got even more excited. This was the first time she was showing such expressions. Normally she was very calm and collected. She took out a storage bag from her side and handed it to Alex. "Check it," she said gesturing the bag. Treasure. That was the only word Alex could think of when he saw what was inside the bag. There were more monsters and cores in here than what he had collected over the course of the 2 days. And to make things better, all of them were over Bone Tempering realm. He breathed in a little and killed his own awe. There must''ve been a reason why she showed him her loot, so he asked," What''s the meaning of this, Daoist Luo?" As if she was waiting for the question, she answered immediately, "If you can bring me the Spirit Cleansing Lily without wilting the entire flower bed, you can keep that bag." Alex''s eyes went wide with excitement now. He could hide his awe, but he couldn''t hide his excitement. Still, he tried to keep it on the low and asked her, "Why do you want the lily so bad, Daoist Luo?" Luo Mei frowned. She was worried if she told him the reason, he would just keep it for himself, or intentionally try to destroy it. That would be too bad for her. Alex saw her frowning face, and said, "Don''t be mistaken, Daoist Luo. I will get the flower to you. I am asking because I only know the flower by name and appearance, and never learned of its use. So I was hoping you could tell me what the use is." Luo Mei didn''t immediately believe him, but decided to explain anyway, "Spirit Cleansing Lily is a precious treasure. If you cultivate overnight with the lily on your body, you will unlock Spiritual Sense." Meng Yun was surprised her senior sister actually told him the reason. "Well, there is no point in hiding it anyway. You would know about it sooner or later, given your knowledge." Luo Mei continued. Alex frowned. ''Spiritual Sense?'' he had never seen or heard anyone talk about this, inside or outside the game. "What is Spiritual Sense, Daoist Luo?" he asked. She looked at him with a surprised face, "Has no one in Hong Wu Sect told you what it is?" she asked. Alex laughed a little and shook his head. Luo Mei explained, "Spiritual Sense is a type of sense, or ability, that you can use to sense your surrounding using your mind. There are many abilities that you can use your spiritual sense for. The best explanation is probably that it is similar to Qi for your brain." Alex had never heard of it, but it sounded good. "So, can you get it then?" Luo Mei was getting agitated. Alex immediately went to the flower bed and easily plucked the lily and returned. Luo Mei and Meng Yun were shocked to see how simple that looked. They had been dreading this for the entire day since yesterday night when they had found it. And somehow this man managed to pick it within 5 seconds. Just how good was his ingredient recognizing skills. Luo Mei looked at the flower bed and realized he had indeed succeeded. ''This man must be a high-ranking disciple in the Hong Wu sect,'' she thought to herself. "Here you go, Daoist Luo. I hope this fulfills what you required of me." Chapter 39:Outer Sect? Luo Mei looked at the flower in her hand as tears started streaming down her eyes. He hands holding the lily were slightly shivering. Alex was surprised to see this. He had expected to see her surprised face, or maybe even eyes bulging out of their sockets. But never had he expected her to just cry. "Is Spiritual Sense really that good?" he couldn''t help but ask. Luo Mei wiped her tears and answered, "Of Course it''s good. It''s something you can only unlock after reaching the Saint realm, if that''s not good then I don''t know what is." "Saint Realm??" it was his turn to get shocked now. Luo Mei took out a small jade box and kept the Spirit Cleansing Lily in there. She then kept the bag in her storage bag and thanked Alex once more. "I will take my leave now, Daoist Yu. I hope we will meet again." She said her goodbyes and started walking back towards the city. "Wait, Daoist Luo." He immediately cried out. Luo Mei stopped and looked back. "What is it, Daoist Yu? Do you require something now?" she asked. Alex looked a little embarrassed and scared as he said, "This area is too much for me to handle. Would you mind if I tag along until I got a bit out of the forest?" Alex felt like crying at the fact that she just called him weak so nonchalantly. ''Alchemy is important, but I need to get stronger too.'' He thought. They walked back in a different direction from the previous one under Alex''s request. Along the way he found many more alchemy ingredients. By now, he had more than half the ingredients for most of the recipes he knew. For some, he even had all the ingredients. He couldn''t wait to return and perform some more alchemy. On the way back, a silver fox-like monster appeared before them. Alex read its name, [Swift Wolf: Bone Tempering 4nd Realm]. The monster was a realm higher than him. Luo Mei casually took out her sword and slashed it horizontally. The swift wolf immediately jumped to the side but was still grazed by the incoming slash. There was a long gash on its back and was now bleeding into its silver fur. The moment it got hurt, it ran away. It really did live up to its name and was very swift. "Should we follow it?" Alex asked. "No need. Unless that monster finds a monster core of a monster stronger than it, it won''t survive my attack. The most it can live for now is 2 days." Luo Mei was very confident in her attack. "What does a monster core have to do with other monsters?" he asked. "Monsters cultivate very slowly, so one way to cultivate faster for them is to hunt down other monsters and eat their cores. Similarly, when they are hurt eating other monster''s cores helps them heal as well. But the monster core should also come from a relatively high-level monster for it to work. Otherwise, it would have to eat many low cultivation monsters." Luo Mei replied "I see," Alex was grateful for her teaching him different things. After a while, they were nearly out of the forest when all 3 of them stopped. There was noise in front of them. Suddenly, a green-robed young man appeared from behind the trees. He was surprised to see the 3 of them as well. He saw a single outer disciple among the two yellow-robed females. ''Are they threatening him? Is he in trouble?'' "Junior brother, do you need any help?" he tried to see if he was being forced by them or walking on his own accord. He looked at Meng Yun''s robe and was surprised to see a blue lining. ''Inner sect disciple of Tiger Sect?'' he was surprised. He doubted he could take her on if the junior disciple really needed help. He then turned to look at Luo Mei. The moment he saw her red linings, his eyes went wide. Alex decided to answer, "Thank you but I don''t need any help, senior brother. These fellow Daoists are taking me out of the forest since it was dangerous for me." "I-Is that s-so. Th-Then I s-shall take my l-leave." He bowed towards Luo Mei a bit and ran off. ''What''s up with him?'' Alex was confused. Meng Yun looked at the young man running away and was surprised. She walked up to Luo Mei and slowly whispered in her ears, "Senior Sister, that man''s robes are darker in color than this guy''s." Luo Mei was surprised when she heard this. She immediately compared the robes and realized Alex''s robes were lighter in shade. She knew what this meant. "Daoist Yu, is that man a core disciple from your sect?" she asked. "Hmm¡­ I don''t think so. He should be an inner disciple. " Alex thought of nothing when he heard this question. Luo Mei''s eyes went wider, "Then why are you calling him senior brother?" "What else would I call an inner sect disciple? Anything else from an outer sect disciple like me would be considered disrespectful." Alex simply replied. Luo Mei was surprised. ''An outer sect disciple? No way. He is so talented. Even in our sect, a bone tempering realm cultivator would automatically become an inner sect disciple. How is he still an outer sect with his amazing ingredients-finding ability? Should I try to rope him in?'' she thought. "Why aren''t you an inner sect disciple already Daoist Yu?" she decided to tread the waters slowly. "I haven''t completed the requirements for becoming an inner sect disciple yet." Luo Mei was surprised. " A bone tempering realm cultivator like you doesn''t meet the requirement? What are the requirements then?" she asked. "Oh, I just have to make 10 different recipes mortal grade pills, that''s all." Alex didn''t hide anything. "I see¡­ and how many have you made so far?" she asked meekly. "Well, as of yet, only 1," Alex replied Chapter 40:Invitation Luo Mei''s eyes became bright as she thought of something. ''Bone Tempering realm cultivator with only 1 pill made so far? His talents in alchemy must be very bad.'' "Daoist Yu, come join the Tiger Sect. I can immediately make you a core disciple and give you heaven-grade cultivation methods, techniques, and weapons. The sect will also take care of all your other necessities as well. All you will have to do is go on a venture with our sect elders and help them find alchemy ingredients from deep in the southern forest." She said, trying to tempt him to join the Tiger Sect. Alex was surprised at the offer that came out of nowhere. He smiled a little and said, " Thank you for the offer, Daoist Yu. But I will have to decline. I wish to learn alchemy, and I don''t think I will be able to pursue it as well as I currently am if I join the Tiger Sect." "But, look at you. You are already at Bone Tempering realm and have only managed to make a single pill. I think you should give up on making pills Daoist Yu." She tried to reason with him some more. "It''s fine. I only made a single pill so far because earning contribution points in the first week as an outer sect disciple takes a lot of time." Alex tried to decline politely. Luo Mei thought she heard wrong. "Can you repeat that, Daoist Yu?" "Oh, I said that my first week as an outer sect disciple took me a lot to earn points. Which is why I was only able to make a single type of pill." Alex repeated. Luo Mei asked inquisitively, "Are you saying that it''s only been a week since you joined the Hong Wu Sect?" "Yeah. Maybe 8 days, but not more. I did make my first pills 2 days ago." He said. Luo Mei gave a wry smile as she asked, "umm¡­ how long have you been pursuing alchemy, Daoist Yu?" "Hmm¡­ let''s see. I believe it was the day after I started cultivating, so 9 days now. I took the entrance test for Hong Wu Sect on the day I learned about alchemy. " Luo Mei''s eyes were wide open. Even Meng Yun on the behind couldn''t keep her stoic appearance anymore. ''He entered the sect 9 days ago and managed to make a pill in 7 days. What sort of alchemy monster is this?'' she thought. She repeated what he had just said in her head and her eyes went even wider. Her voice was quivering as she hoped she had heard wrong, " Umm¡­ Daoist Yu. Did you just imply that you started cultivating 10 days ago?" she asked. "Yes," Alex answered without thinking. And then he realized what he had said while going in the flow of the conversation. ''Sh*t. I accidentally revealed a bit too much.'' He thought. "Now I must really ask you to join our Tiger Sect, Daoist - No, Brother Yu." She started to rope him in even more. "We will give you everything you ask for Brother Yu. Just join our sect." She hoped he would change his mind. Alex frowned a little. "Please stop this Daoist Luo. I will not join your sect. I joined the Hong Wu sect to learn alchemy, and I will continue doing so. Please don''t embarrass yourself any further." Luo Mei stopped talking. Not even Meng Yun said anything when she heard this, she knew Luo Mei was in the wrong this time. Alex took this opportunity and said, " Thank you for letting me walk with you till here, I should be able to leave on my own now. Hence, I shall part with you fellow Daoists. May we meet again." He started walking away. Luo Mei and Meng Yun stood there not knowing what to do. She really wanted to have him join her sect, but she couldn''t use force as that would only worsen the situation. "Senior Sister, what do we do now?" Meng Yun asked from the side. "There is nothing else we can do. So, we should leave this task to someone who can do something." She said. Luo Mei looked at the disappearing figure of Alex and said, "C''mon, Let''s go. I need to tell my master about him. He should be able to convince him." Both of them then disappeared into the forest. Alex hunted for a few more hours. Although he didn''t need to hunt monsters anymore after what the 2 ladies had given him, he still wanted to find more alchemy materials. He started ignoring skin tempering realm monsters and only fought at anything above Muscle Tempering. He was so focused on finding the ingredients, that he forgot to log out for breakfast as well. ''Doesn''t matter. I will just go for lunch directly,'' He thought. After a couple of hours of more hunting, he returned to his room in the tavern. He looked at the time, and it was 10 am. He logged out and went to get a shower. He left the bathroom a little while later and decided to wait for his two roommates. Matt had a morning class, so he was already gone. Once Logan and Eric logged out, they went to the Cafeteria together and had their lunch. Afterward, they went to their individual classes. Alex paid as much attention as he could in the class, but the business statistics class was just too boring for him. Finally, once the classes were over, he went to the cafeteria to get his afternoon lunch. Afterward, he did his assignments, and other works until it was time for dinner. Once the dinner was over, he finally went into the game. He logged in to his room at the tavern. ''Do I go back to the sector hunt some more?'' he wondered. It took him a while, but they finally decided to hunt some more. Since he took a 3-day leave from the sect, it would be impossible to get another one anytime soon. So, he had to make the best of his last day out of the sect. Chapter 41:Explosion Alex had gone to the eastern side of the Scarlet City for 2 days straight now. So, he decided to visit the western side this time. When he walked out of the western gate, he felt a sense of deja vu as he remembered that this was the place he was first brought to when he logged in. He started combing the outer areas of the forest for alchemy ingredients and was very happy when he realized there were a lot of them here. Unlike the eastern side where he had foraged for 2 entire nights, the western side''s ingredients were pretty much in an immaculate state. He started picking up all the ingredients he could find. He didn''t know how many of them he would ever even find a use for, but he still kept them just in case. He ignored most of the Skin tempering realm monsters unless they were too annoying to ignore, it which case he would just lift them up with his Qi and smash them into the ground. He was at least that good with his Qi. He was fascinated with the concept of controlling his whole body with his Qi and thought it would be practically flying if he could do that. But alas, the most he could do with himself was hover about 20 centimeters off of the ground. He had tried a few more times, but 20 cm was the best he could do. He hadn''t tried after reaching Bone Tempering 1st Realm but had assumed the result would be the same. Still, he was happy he could lift other objects as well. He had also realized that when using Qi manipulation on anything with cultivation, it became increasingly harder to move them with Qi the higher their cultivation was. It was as if higher cultivation monsters were resistant to lower or similar cultivation''s Qi amount. After finishing the outer part of the forest, he walked into the inner part where the Muscle Tempering realm monsters lived. Alex kept the monkey''s corpse and walked along. He didn''t see a lot of cultivators on this side of the forest. He had seen quite a few Skin Tempering realm rogue cultivators on the outer edge of the forest, but there were almost none where he was. It didn''t take him long to realize why that was. He had walked for over 5 hours and had yet to see a single monster above Muscle Tempering 6th realm. Granted he was combing more area due to his search for the materials, but it still should not have taken him this long to see a monster with cultivation close to his. ''No wonder there are no cultivators here. There are barely any monsters, to begin with, and even if there were, one would have to walk in so deep to find them. Alex kept walking forward. The night was particularly cloudy today, but his vision was still not hampered at all. He walked a little bit further and met his first Bone Tempering realm monster. It was a giant bird that had a particularly sharp beak. He focused on the bird and something popped up above it. [Green Blooded Owl: Bone Tempering 1st Realm ] The owl started flying up when it saw Alex. At first, Alex thought the bird had run away because it did not want to fight him. But soon he realized that the owl was actually just gaining some distance to create momentum. Once the owl reached the appropriate height, it turned around and fully dived towards Alex. Alex activated Focus Mode. Time slowed down. He could see the individual feathers on the bird and could hear its silent dive even from so far away. Alex readied his sword and started pouring his Qi into it. Every time he did that, he would feel a resistance from the sword as if it was not accepting the Qi but eventually accepted it. He felt like he was filling a water bottle with its cap still on. Only that the cap had holes in it and could actually fill, but took a lot of time. As the owl swooped down, he swung his sword, and the Smiting Blade did its job. With the increased penetration powers of the blade, he killed the owl in a single swing. He kept the bird''s corpse in his inventory and took out the core. He looked at it and thought, ''The first time I saw a core, I mistook it for a pill and ate it. Can I still do that?'' Without thinking for another moment, he put the pill into his mouth. "Oh wow, that''s a lot. Should I eat another one too?" he said to himself. He took another bone tempering first realm monster core and ate it. "Hmm¡­ that''s not as much as the first one." He quickly let go of this thought and opened his status. Once he did that, he immediately broke through. He was now Bone Tempering 2nd Realm. He decided not to eat any more core since he needed contribution points. He wandered around until sunrise, and finally turn back to return to the city. BOOM A massive explosion shook the very earth. Alex stumbled a bit from the shock wave he felt. The explosion happened very near to where he was. He ran towards the sound, and within minutes saw a massive scene of destruction. Chapter 42:Kill? or Save? Alex looked at the scene of destruction. Trees were uprooted by the shock wave and were on fire. Stones crumbled to dust were still in the air. And at the center of the explosion was a massive crater. The crater had not been there previously and was made by the explosion that had just happened. He walked up to the edge of the crater and waited for the dust to settle down. Once the air was clear, he finally saw what was inside. The crater was about 10 meters deep and about 20 meters wide. Broken trees and bushes were on fire all over the crater. At the center of the crater was a white and red-figure. Alex moved a little closer to see what it was. When he went closer he finally realized that the white and red-figure was a monster. Alex''s first thought was to run away, but he stuck around once he noticed the monster wasn''t moving at all. ''Is it dead?'' He thought. He went a little closer to look at what it was. The monster was a cat-like monster with big whiskers. It was about as big as a rhinoceros, and its fur was white with red patches. ''Wait, those aren''t red patches,'' he thought. He walked up a little closer to see what it was and found out that what he thought were red patches were actually blood. The cat-like monster was bloody all over. He looked at its wound and saw something sticking out from its back. ''Hmm¡­'' Alex stopped. He thought he heard something. It was the cry of a cat, but it was very small and didn''t feel like one this humongous cat could make. Meow He once more heard the meek little cry of a cat. He went closer to the dead cat monster when suddenly it started moving. Alex ran to the outer edges of the crater before he could even take another breath. The cat wasn''t dead. It was actually moving. He decided to check the description of the cat, so he focused on it. [????????????] That was all he got. He could neither see the name, nor the cultivation of the cat. ''How strong is this cat?'' he thought. ''What would happen if I kill it right now? It seems to be wounded for some reason. Killing it should be easy. Given the high level of this cat, the corpse and core should sell for a lot.'' Greedy thoughts started to appear in his head. The cat was slowly starting to stand up, but could barely do it. Blood dripped from its body like it was a packet of ketchup. The cat was standing with 3 of its legs and was holding 1 of its front limbs to its chest. At first, he thought the cat was holding onto its wound in the chest, but he was wrong. He now realized where that small and meek ''meow'' had come from. The giant cat was currently holding a small, newly born cat in its arms. The cat stumbled once more and fell to the ground. Its wounds were too much for it to handle. Alex just stood there and watched, unsure of what to do. Just as he was contemplating on what to do, something moved on the other side of the crater. From far away, it looked like a blob of red and white. When Alex focused to see what it was, he realized it was a silver-colored wolf with a giant wound on its back making it red. ''That wolf¡­'' he thought. It looked very similar. He checked its name, and he was correct. It was the Swift Wolf that Luo Mei had failed to kill. It was at Bone Tempering 4th realm and was currently making its way towards the wounded cat. The cat made a loud growled that deterred the wolf for a few seconds, but it had more than realized that the cat was in its death bed, and couldn''t do anything anymore. He was scared. The cat couldn''t move right now, so it would die to the wolf for sure. Besides, it had its child with it. Alex couldn''t stand around and watch the parent and child die. He decided to help them. He took out his sword and ran up to where the cat was. Listening to something else appear towards him, the cat made another large growl. Alex felt his spirit grow cold as that growl left him very scared. The wolf also got scared once more. Alex took a deep breath and walked in front of the cat. "I am not going to hurt you. I am here to save you and your child," Alex said out loud and stood with a sword in his hand. The Cat looked at him with its clear, cat eyes and closed his eyes. ''Did it understand me?'' he wondered. It certainly acted like it. He turned his attention back to the wolf. He turned focus mode on and prepared his Smiting Blade technique. The wolf was apprehensive of him. It seemed to have enough intelligence to realize that he was with Luo Mei when it got hurt. It was considering whether to attack or not. If he was as strong as Luo Mei, that would just be asking for death. The wolf slowly walked around the cats and the human, taking its time, understanding the situation. It wanted to delay a bit longer, but it was heavily wounded. So if it did not kill the cat and eat its monster core, he was sure to be dead by tomorrow. It had come all the way to the western side of the jungle to get away from the stronger monsters, and now there was an opportunity for it to not only heal but get stronger in the process too. Given that the situation was life or death, the wolf no longer hesitated and went for the attack. Chapter 43:Successfully Refined The wolf''s target was the cat, but it was scared of how strong the human could be, so it first decided to check the human. Seeing the wolf come towards him, Alex immediately swung the blade. The Smiting Blade-driven sword came down at an incredible speed, and ¡­ did nothing. The wolf had managed to dodge the attack and jump to the side. Seeing the cultivation he emitted while attacking, the wolf was sure that the human was not strong at all. In fact, he was weaker than himself. Seeing that Alex couldn''t do anything, the wolf went on the offensive. Alex got scared and started using another technique. [Flame Mastery Scripture] Alex had never used this technique during his fights against the monsters for one simple reason, there was no fire to manipulate. But now, thanks to the massive explosion, there was fire all around him. With his left hand, he called a little tongue of fire towards himself, and immediately increased its size, and temperature. He shot the fire towards the incoming wolf. BAM The fire hit the wolf right in the face. The wolf immediately whimpered like a dog and ran backward. Its silver fur was now charred around its face. Gurrrrrr It started to growl a little. The cat behind him was starting to huff and puff. It was dying, but refused to. It was staying alive as long as it could for its child. It could not die as long as the wolf was still alive and wanted it and its child''s life. The wolf was a little cautious this time. It once again started circling looking for an opening. Alex had brought another piece of fire and was invigorating it with his Qi. The wolf once again came towards him and tried to attack him. Similar to last time, Alex once more shot the fire at the wolf. But, the wolf was ready this time, it immediately side-stepped the fire. Seeing this, Alex suddenly pulled the fire backward and attacked the wolf. The wolf however was already near Alex. With one massive swing of its paw, it hit him right in his left arm, breaking the bones underneath. "Ahhh!!!" he shouted. This was the first time he had felt such pain in the game. The fire caught up to the wolf and slammed it in the back where the previous wound was. He could now only move his arm from the elbow below. Everything above that was starting to swell. It was hard but, he could still use Fire Mastery. The wolf had created a distance between them after getting hit by the fire. This time, it even got hit on its old wound, making it start to bleed again. The wolf needed to attack again. It once more swiftly ran at him with the intention of killing if possible. Alex however couldn''t use the fire very well, and instead used it to deter the wolf. The wolf wasn''t going to be fooled. It came straight at his chest. Alex blocked the strike with his sword, but the force of the strike still broke a few of his bones. The attack made him fly backward and land on the ground. The wolf immediately came upon him and started to bite his head. With the focus mode on, he could feel the teeth of the wolf start to crack his skull. He was afraid he was going to die. GROWL The wolf immediately stopped biting and ran away. The cat had used whatever remaining energy it had left to send the wolf running away. Alex slowly stood up, his head bleeding profusely. The blood ran along the side of his face and was now dripping to the ground. Some of the blood even covering his right eye completely. The wolf had fallen for the same bluff 3 times in a row now. It was incredibly angry. It was now preparing for one last attack to kill Alex for sure this time. Alex was already on death''s door, so he was sure if he took another attack from the wolf, he would die for sure. He pulled what little fire he could with his left hand. He stabbed the sword on the ground and used his only usable hand remaining to wipe the blood off of his face and eye. The wolf started running towards him. Alex wasn''t going to die without one last stand. He picked up his sword, ready to give out one last attack when suddenly something happened. Three notifications appeared in front of his eyes out of nowhere. "What?" The wolf was right upon him. He had lost control of the fire due to his surprise. Seeing the wolf, he immediately used Qi manipulation to stop it. The wolf was at a higher level than him, so there was no way for him to stop it. However, it did slow down the wolf for just enough. Alex activated ''Smiting Blade''. SWOOSH As if the flood gates were opened, Qi started rushing into the Steel Sword at a speed that was incomparable to the previous times. The sword started to glow in bright yellow color, with enough shine that it seemed to outshine the sun. Alex turned to look at the wolf that was right upon him. Its right paw was ready to attack his head, but it was moving very slowly due to his Qi. Alex swung his sword and cut off the limb that was outstretched. The wolf was about to cry out in pain when Alex''s sword returned just as quickly and cut off its head. Chapter 44:Death Alex slumped onto the ground once he saw the wolf die. As soon as he sat, he started to vomit out blood. It didn''t look as bad on the outside, but the attack on his chest had left a hemorrhage inside. His head was burning with intense pain, and he could barely move his left arm. The blood from his head had once more covered his eyes, but he didn''t have the strength to wipe it off this time. "Thank You," he heard a voice in his head. ''Am I hallucinating?'' he thought. ''Is this what being close to death feels like. Full of pain and hallucinations.'' "Thank you for saving my child." He heard the voice once more. His eyes immediately opened as he looked towards the cat monster. Its eyes had lost their clarity and started to get groggy, but it was still very much looking at him. "Did you just talk?" he asked, biting through his pain. "I have two requests. Would you mind listening to my requests?" the cat''s mouth didn''t move, but he could hear its voice in its head. He was now sure that it was in fact the cat talking. "Tell me what your requests are. If I can fulfill it, I shall." He said. "Thank you," the cat spoke in his mind and brought out its child from underneath. "This is my son. I don''t know if you will survive your wounds or not, but if you do, please take care of him. His destiny is to grow up to be the strongest, and I, as his mother, can''t let him die here," The cat said. Alex stood up with what little energy, and walked up to the cat. The little kitten was weak and had wounds all over its body as well. But those wounds were mostly just minor wounds, and even without any help, it would survive. Alex took out the Minor Healing pill from his inventory. It was the only healing pill he had and it only worked on minor injuries. He fed the pill to the little kitten without hesitation. His wounds were not one that he could heal with a meager Minor Healing Pill. The kitten''s wounds healed within seconds, and it started to stand up on its little feet. Alex smiled as he saw the little kitten jump around in his hand and jump down to the ground. It then ran towards its mother and started nudging her a little. The cat smiled a little and brought out its tongue and started licking the little kitten. Tears started streaming down her eyes as she kept on licking the little ignorant kitten. Alex''s eyes watered a little as well. The cat then looked at him, and said, "Now, for my second request." The cat looked at him and then turned to look at its child for a few seconds, before turning back to him. After a few seconds of silence, it finally closed its eyes and said, "Please kill me." Alex was shocked. That was not what he had been expecting. He coughed a bit more blood as it was getting harder for him to breathe. he looked at the cat, and said, " I don''t think I can fulfill this request of yours. I myself am nearly dead. Even if you yourself are on your death bed, I don''t have enough strength to kill you, even if I wanted to." The cat looked at him and said, "That''s okay. You don''t have to kill me with your own strength. Just pull out the sword on my back and I will die in no time." Alex turned to look at the thing sticking from its back. ''So that was a sword handle huh.'' He thought. He walked up to the back of the cat and tried to pull the sword off. But it was too heavily stuck in there, and he didn''t have the strength to pull it. He tried a few more times, but it was fruitless. He was about to give up when he thought of something. He looked towards the cat and said, "I am about to try something different. If it works the sword will leave your body, are you ready?" "Yes," the cat said. Alex looked at the handle and grabbed it. However, instead of pulling it this time, he just closed his eyes. His Qi started flowing around the surface of the sword. He felt some resistance from the remnant Qi of whoever owned the sword, but without someone to guide it, the Qi simply disappeared. Whoosh. MEOW The cat purred loudly. The little kitten was scared for a moment but returned to nudging its mother. The cat slowly licked the little kitten as Alex heard it speak in its mind. "Thank You," its tongue had stopped licking its child. The cat was dead. This was the first time Alex felt horrible for seeing a notification appear. "Meow?" the little kitten nudged its mother a little more but there was no response. "Meow! Meow!" it kept calling its mother to lick him some more, but Alex knew there was no way the cat was going to do anything anymore. Tears started welling up in his eyes as he was saddened by the little kitten''s cries. *Cough* Suddenly, he vomited some more blood and got lightheaded. He couldn''t keep standing anymore and fell down hard onto the ground. "Meow?" the little kitten saw him fall down and walked up to him. Alex''s mind was starting to get hazy as he couldn''t tell what was going on outside. He saw a vague silhouette of the little kitten come up to him. He thought he felt something on his forehead, but wasn''t sure if it was the little kitten or just his pain. Suddenly, white light shined bright in front of him. He closed his eyes as the light was too much for him to look at. He heard a bunch of notifications pop up, but he wasn''t in the state to read them at all. Once the light died down, he opened his eyes once more. The little kitten was there no more. Chapter 45:Important Figures Everything was blurry. His head ached so hard he couldn''t even think properly. He had accidentally dropped on his broken left arm, and it was starting to burn with pain as well. His green robe was died red in most parts. The most painful part was probably his chest. Most of his ribs were broken, and he was pretty sure some of them had punctured into his organs. Huff Huff He was having a hard time breathing as well. ''Please, just let me die.'' All he wanted now was to die. ''How was the cat able to keep staying alive for so long with so much wound. Only 3 wounds and I feel like dying.'' He couldn''t help but think. He kept on wishing to die, but for some reason didn''t. From time to time warm bursts of energy appeared from deep in his body, that kept him from even fainting. So he had to stay awake and endure the pain. Whoosh Whoosh Whoosh He heard multiple objects moving in the vicinity. ''Are these the monsters? Will, I finally die?'' he thought. He tried to see what monster it was but his one open eye was too blurry to tell anything apart. That was when he started hearing voices. "What happened here?" "Hey, there is a kid here." "Ma Rong, this is a disciple from your sect." He felt someone pick him up and place something in his mouth. He heard a lady say something, "Young Man, if you can hear me then swallow this pill," he heard. Unquestioningly, he swallowed the pill. The intense pain from his head, arms, and chest all disappeared as cool energy washed all over his body. He physically felt his ribs go back to normal and could feel his left arm moving again. Once all the different feelings were gone, and he was back to normal, he opened his eyes. There were multiple people in front of him, all high authority figures. He saw 3 sets of clothing in between these people. One was the green-robed figures from Hong Wu Sect, the second was the yellow-robed figures from the tiger sect, and the last ones were 2 people, a man and a woman both wearing purple robes. One of the green robes-wearing figures was holding him up at the moment. It was a woman in her late 30s, but with no sign of aging. She was elegant yet authoritative. "Are your okay, young man?" she asked. He tried to understand who she was, but couldn''t. While she was wearing green robes, the linings looked yellow in the morning sunlight. He didn''t know anyone who wore yellow linings in the sect. "Yes, I am alright. Thank you¡­uh, Elder" he said. She snickered a little as her eyes turned crescent. A green robes elderly gentleman with long flowing white hair and beard walked up to him and said, "Disciple, this is the Sect Leader. Please, do not call her an elder. That is disrespectful." Alex was shocked. ''The sect leader?'' he immediately turned to the lady and saw something he had missed previously due to the morning light. Her robe did not have yellow linings. Her linings were golden. Bronze linings in the sect belonged to the disciples. Silver linings belonged to the elders. So, accordingly, Gold linings must belong to the sect leader. He immediately apologized, "I''m sorry, Sect leader. I only joined the sect a week ago, and know nothing about the important figures in the sect yet." He bowed down. "See Great Elder, disciple here wasn''t trying to be disrespectful. He just didn''t know who we were." She said looking back at the elderly gentleman. ''Great Elder!! So he is the Great Elder of the sect.'' He thought. "You had enough of your talking, Ma Rong? We need to know what happened here. Let us ask your disciple some questions." A big, buff man in his 40s with not a single spot of white in his short hair or scruffy beard appeared behind him. This man was wearing a yellow robe with golden linings as well. ''Sect Leader of the Tiger Sect?'' he thought. "So, is he alright?" the buff man from the Tiger sect spoke. Ma Rong took one glance over his body and sighed as she said, "Yeah, he is alright. I would be shocked if he wasn''t alright after eating a ''Body Restructuring Pill''. Okay, Disciple, let us ask you some questions." Alex simply nodded. "Tell us, What are you doing here? first of all?" she asked. "The forest? I took a 3 day leave from the sect to come hunt in the forest." Alex answered. "No, not the- What are you doing here in the crater, where an explosion occurred." She asked. "Oh. I was nearby when the explosion occurred, so I ran to this place to check what it was. After seeing the parent and child monsters being attacked by a wolf, I came down to protect them. While fighting with the wolf I got injured and nearly died. That''s when you found me." He said. "Oh," everyone looked surprised. They all looked at the swift wolf corpse at the side with its limb and head cut off. Ma Rong turned around and asked him. "So, you defeated the wolf. Then, what happened to the parent and child monsters?" Ma Rong asked. It was a question in everybody''s mind. "Hmm¡­I don''t know where the little kitten went, but the mother cat is right the-" he looked around to see an empty spot in the middle of the crater. The little cat, as well as the corpse of the mother cat, had disappeared from the huge crater. Chapter 46:Invitation "Huh? Where did it go? It was right here!!" he shouted. "The white cat monster. It was right there. The white cat''s corpse." He said. Everyone looked around. While there were traces of another monster being here before, there was no corpse here. The presumed sect leader of the tiger sect asked, "Are you sure the cat was dead? Maybe you were mistaken about it dying?" "No way!! I killed the cat myself." He shouted. Ma Rong''s eyes furrowed as she frowned as asked, "Didn''t you say you were protecting the mother and child? Why are you saying you killed it now?" "I did protect it. But the cat''s wound was too much for it, and it asked me to kill it." He said. Everyone presently listening suddenly jerked up a bit. The purple robe-wearing man walked forward and asked," Young man, you said the cat spoke to you? Can you tell us how it spoke to you?" he asked. "Well, the cat didn''t actually speak. I just heard its voice in my mind." He said. Everyone''s eyes went wide. The sect leader''s eyes too were wide as she softly muttered, "Saint Realm" "The monster was in the Saint Realm? If this is true, then this is big news for us." "The monster must''ve spoken using spiritual sense. Only Saint realm and above have those according to the records." "Wait, if the monster really was in the saint realm, then this kid could not have killed it. Either he is lying about killing the monster, or lying about the monster having spiritual sense." An elder from the Tiger Sect spoke. Everyone immediately realized that what he had just said was true. Ma Rong looked at him and asked, " how did you say you killed the monster?" Alex realized what was happening. he thought, ''If what they say is true, and the white cat was, in fact, a Saint Realm monster, then I can''t let them see the weapon it came with. But, if I don''t tell the truth, they will think I''m hiding something, and may forcefully look through my stuff. That would be very bad.'' He thought of something and pulled out a sword, and said, " The cat had this stuck to its back. It told me that if I took this out, it would die due to the wound it would leave behind." The purple-robed man took the sword from Alex without his permission and looked at it closely. "It''s a True Mortal grade sword. The cat monster must''ve been attacked by someone in the higher realms and didn''t mind letting go of this sword to kill the monster" He came to a conclusion. Alex had decided at the last second to bring out the Steel sword and tell the truth about everything else. Seeing a true mortal grade sword with him, no one doubted him anymore. While a true grade sword was tempting, everyone present here already had better artifacts, so they returned the sword back to him. "Good job, disciple," Ma Rong came from the side. "You managed to meet a saint realm monster and lived to tell the tale. What is your name?" she asked him. "Disciple''s name is Yu Ming," he said as he bowed a little. The sect leader was about to say something when a loud voice came from someone else, "YU MING!!! Is that true, kid?" Wen Cheng, the presumed sect leader of the Tiger Sect cried out. ''What''s going on? Am I in trouble?'' he was surprised. "Are you really Yu Ming?" he asked once more. "Yes," Alex replied in a small voice. "Where were you yesterday night?" he asked. "Yesterday? Umm¡­ I was in the eastern side of the forest hunting monsters." He replied simply. "And you didn''t meet anyone else?" he asked. His presence was very heavy on Yu Ming right now. "Umm¡­ I did meet a few people. Namely Luo Mei and Meng Yun of the Tiger Sect." He said. "So it is you. I have been searching for you the entire night on the eastern side. To think you were out here in the west." Wen Cheng said. ''Searching for me? Why?'' he couldn''t understand. "What''s going on?" Ma Rong said from the side."Why is the sect leader of the Tiger Sect searching for my sect''s disciple?" she asked. "Ma Rong. I want this disciple of yours. I want him to join our sect." Wen Cheng said. "Oh," Ma Rong got curious. "And why do you want him, exactly?" "Uhh¡­ My direct disciple told me that she met an outer sect disciple from your sect with great talent in cultivation. From her information, that disciple was this kid. Since you people focus on alchemy, and not cultivation, it would be a waste to let a gem get buried under the mud in your sect." Wen Cheng tried to give reasoning as to why he wanted him. Of course, he didn''t give out the fact that he knew Alex had cultivated for less than 10 days and had reached his current cultivation. Or the fact that Alex had a fantastical ability to find alchemy ingredients. Most of all, he didn''t tell them of the fact that Alex was also a genius in alchemy too. If Ma Rong were to find that, he was absolutely sure she would never let go of her disciple. Ma Rong wasn''t stupid either. She knew he was hiding something, but couldn''t be sure what. There was no reason for a Sect Leader to go around searching for an outer sect disciple of Hong Wu Sect, just to invite them. However, she couldn''t stop making the choice to go to the Tiger sect either. If he was an inner sect disciple, she could have made some arguments. But, since he was an outer sect disciple, one that joined very recently as well, she couldn''t keep him forcefully at all. Ma Rong was now stuck in a dilemma, and couldn''t come up with any reason why she should decline Wen Cheng. Chapter 47:Double Invitation "I can give you a True Earth Grade artifact if you let me take him right now." Wen Cheng saw that Ma Rong was in contemplation, so he offered a transaction. Seeing Wen Cheng actually offer something so expensive, Ma Rong was more than sure that there was something he wasn''t revealing right now. The other Tiger sect elders in the back started to murmur, and wonder why their sect leader would ever make such an offer. Was the kid really worth that? Alex was stunned too. ''Did Luo Mei tell him about me? Is that why he is making such an offer?'' He wanted to say something but couldn''t think of what to say in front of such an important crowd. "Sect Leader," suddenly, a voice shouted from the back. Ma Rong looked back and found it was the Great Elder who had just spoken. "What is it, Great Elder?" she asked. "You see, about a week ago, the Eighteenth elder came to me and talked about how fruitful that week''s examination was, and that over 25 participants had passed at once." He started talking. No one understood where this was going, so they kept listening. "Apparently, one of those participants got a full score on the examination test. They had identified all 100 ingredients in their bag, and had managed to get a silver library token." He said. Ma Rong seemed to know what he was alluding to, so she asked, " Are you trying to say that he is that disciple?" Ma Rong looked at Alex and asked, " Did you get a silver library token when you entered the sect?" "Yes, Elder lang gave me one the day I entered," Alex replied. Ma Rong smiled. She finally had a reason to decline Wen Cheng''s offer. "See, Wen Cheng, My disciple is talented in alchemy as well. Even before joining the sect, he already knew a lot about alchemy. So you should give up on trying to force him to join." The purple robes duo were watching the ongoing drama with a little smile on their faces. Ma Rong and Wen Cheng kept going back and forth on how one wanted the disciple, and another didn''t want to send him away. The purple-robed female finally talked for the first time. "How about this then Sect Leaders? Why don''t we ask the young man himself which sect he chooses?" Ma Rong and Wen Cheng stopped arguing and thought for a second. Wen Cheng was the first to agree. "Yes, Lady Mo is correct. We should let the disciple choose." Wen Cheng stepped forward toward Alex, who was still dazed. "Your name is Yu Ming right? If you join my sect, you will have free access to all the cultivation methods and techniques in the sect. I will also allow you to choose 1-NO, 2 artifacts from the sect treasury. And on top of that, I will make you my direct disciple." Everyone''s eyes opened wide as they heard Wen Cheng''s proposition. Ma Rong was also astonished. Even the purple-robed couple''s eyes were wide at what was being offered. Amongst them all, however, nobody could top the surprise that Alex felt listening to the Tiger Sect''s Sect Leader. Even though his heart said to stick with Hong Wu Sect, his brain argued that this was a brilliant chance that he could not pass. He had joined Hong Wu Sect so he could play games and earn money, and alchemy was the best at that. But that wasn''t the only way. Even by playing normally, one could earn a lot of money. If he were to join Tiger Sect right now, he could do that as well. He was in a dilemma. Thoughts ran through his mind at a speed faster than he could understand what they were. Ma Rong looked at Alex and saw that he was starting to get swayed. She didn''t know what this disciple had aside from good talent in cultivation and the knowledge of alchemy ingredients. From her perspective, Alex was a good disciple. Maybe even one of the better ones. But there was no way she would give out as much as Wen Cheng even for her best student. ''He definitely knows something I don''t. But, what?'' she couldn''t understand, but she needed to do something quickly. "Disciple, if you stay at Hong Wu Sect, I will make you my direct disciple as well, and let you live in the Sect Leader''s mountain. You will have full access to both the alchemy gardens, and," she reached into her storage bag, and brought out something, "I will also give your this True-Earth Grade artifact." The thing she took out was a large green and gold cauldron. Alex looked at the cauldron in awe. This cauldron was many times better than the one used by Kong Yuhan. It was incomparable when it came to the black cauldrons in the Alchemist Hall. "Umm¡­" a new offer had arrived that left Alex speechless. Now that there was an incentive to stay at the Hong Wu Sect, he was getting more and more restless, unable to make a decision by himself. He was close to ripping his long black hair out in frustration. Both of the offers were brilliant, so it was hard to make a choice. Going to the Tiger sect meant being the sect leader''s direct disciple, with access to 2 items from the sect treasury, and full access to all of the sect''s cultivation resources. Staying at the Hong Wu sect meant being the sect leader''s direct disciple, full access to all alchemy ingredients in the 2 alchemy garden, and also get the True earth grade cauldron. ''Should I choose the Hong Wu sect since my original intent was to learn alchemy, and staying now would give me better access to the ingredients?'' he thought. He had decided. He was about to speak up when the purple-robed man walked forward and spoke. "I don''t think the young man can choose if both of you offer him something so good. So, I might have a solution to your problems, Sect leaders." Chapter 48:Why not...? "What solutions do you have, City Lord Fu?" Ma Rong asked. "I wouldn''t mind listening to a suggestion from City Lord Fu." Wen Cheng spoke as well. The man in the purple robe was the city lord of the Scarlet city. His name was Fu Wen, and along with his wife Mo An, was in charge of the Scarlet City. "Here is my suggestion. Since both of you want this disciple so much, why don''t you both accept him as your disciple? This way you can both teach him, and he can be part of both of your sects." he said to the two sect leaders. ""Hmm¡­"" both the sect leaders fell into deep contemplation. Ma Rong looked at Wen Cheng and asked, "Tell me the truth. Why do you really want him?" she asked. Wen Cheng was about to lie but instead decided to just tell the truth, "Your disciple has only cultivated for 10 days to reach the cultivation he is at now. He really is a genius in cultivation." Ma Rong stared at him, too shocked to speak. She immediately turned to Alex and asked, "Is this true?" Alex was surprised for a second. ''How did he know?'' but soon realized that it must''ve been Luo Mei who told him. He had let himself speak a bit too freely at that time. "Yes," he said softly. "Is there any way you can prove it?" she asked him. She was having doubts since there was no way a person could cultivate bone tempering 2nd realm in just 10 days. At least not without incredibly fortuitous encounters. Alex thought for a bit. "I don''t have anything to prove it, but I can do this." He said as he opened his status and hit [Breakthrough]. He could break through about 3 times if he wanted to with the Qi he got from the pill but decided to stick with a single one. Still, that was enough to cause a stir in the crowd. The elder, the sect leaders, and even the city lord and lady duo were surprised at how casually the young man in front of them just broke through. Ma Rong asked with her eyes still wide, "Why are you in Hong Wu Sect if you have such talents in cultivation? You are wasted in our sect." She said. Even she believed that sending him to Tiger Sect was the right choice. Alex simply replied," That was because I am really interested in alchemy, and have some talent in it as well." Ma Rong sighed and said, "I understand what you mean. Being able to name all the ingredients in the test is good, but it''s nothing compared to your actual talent in cultivation." Ma Rong was now trying to talk sense into him. Wen Cheng was pleasantly surprised at the change in Ma Rong. Alex on the other hand was starting to get nervous. '' I have an alchemy skill with the word ''god'' in it. If it''s anything half as good as it sounds, it will be a waste to not learn alchemy properly.'' "Ever since I was young, I can name every single alchemy ingredients I come across, and have an uncanny ability to recognize them in the wild." He said. He was spilling his own beans, gambling it at the fact that he would somehow get to have the cake from both of the sects. "Name every single alchemy ingredient and recognize them in the wild? What do you mean?" Ma Rong was slightly confused. ''He doesn''t even look 20, there is no way he could have lived long enough to see and remember every single ingredient in alchemy.'' She thought. In response, Alex brought out 3 storage bags and handed them to Ma Rong, and said," These are all the ingredients I gathered from the forest in the last 3 days." Ma Rong took a look inside one of the bags. As soon as she saw what was inside the bag, she shuddered a bit. She immediately opened the other 2 bags. ''There are just too many shocking things happening, one after another today. This amount of ingredients is what we collect on both the gardens in a week, and this kid collected it in just 3 days? That too in the southern forest.'' The Great Elder came forward after seeing the sect leader basically stop doing anything. "What is wrong sect leader?" he asked. Ma Rong didn''t speak and simply passed along the 3 bags. When the Great Elder saw the bag, he was shocked as well. Ma Rong looked at Wen Cheng and said, "I''m sorry, but it seems I can''t let you have this disciple all to yourself. How about we share him just as City Lord Fu suggested?" she asked. Wen Cheng knew there was no way Ma Rong would accept anything less after learning the young man''s talents, so he simply agreed. "That settles it then. Young man, from today on I, will take you on as my direct disciple, do you agree?" he asked. "Yes, and I, as the sect leader of Hong Wu Sect, will take you as my direct disciple as well, do you agree?" Ma Rong took the opportunity to ask as well. The elders and city lord duo were watching something extraordinary unfold in front of their eyes. Alex was too shocked and forgot to answer for a second. As soon as he realized that, he spoke out," I agree.". The two sect lords smiled. The Great Elder spoke from the behind and said," Young man, greet your new masters." Alex immediately realized what he had to do, " I, Yu Ming, greet both of my masters." Alex bowed towards both Wen Cheng and Ma Rong. Both the sect leaders smiled, and Wen Cheng said, "That settles it then. Let''s go to your new sect now, disciple." Ma Rong immediately chimed in, " No, he will stay in the Hong Wu Sect for now." The sect leaders were once more starting to quarrel with each other. Chapter 49:Returning back to sect "He will stay with me. I need to teach him cultivation techniques and martial arts. They take a lot of time." "No, he will stay with me. I need to give him my alchemy knowledge. They take more time. The surrounding elders watched the two sect leaders quarrel with a wry smile on their faces. The two sect leaders were always like this, whenever they met. Alex listened to the argument between the two as he too was unsure of what to do exactly. He thought for a moment and spoke. "Master!!" ""What?"" both sect leaders looked at him together. "Uhh¡­" he didn''t know how to let them know who he was speaking to. " Martial Master, I have a request." Wen Cheng realized he was talking to him, so he spoke, "Go on, tell me your request." "My request is that master wait 2 weeks before taking me into the sect. Currently, I am in the middle of learning Alchemy, and I don''t want to stop. I have a lot of alchemy ingredients, and I want to use them to make pills. I should be done with all of these in 2 weeks and after that, I will come to stay at Tiger sect for 2 weeks before returning to Hong Wu Sect, where I will stay 2 more weeks." He stated his request. Ma Rong spoke, "So you will stay 2 weeks with us, and then 2 weeks with Wen Cheng, huh? That''s not a bad idea. Very well then, we should do that." Wen Cheng sighed as well, and said, "Alright. I guess I can work with that. But be prepared, after you join, I will not only teach you about cultivation. You will be learning how to fight from the ground up. You will be learning many different martial arts and finally, you will learn other techniques." "I understand, Martial Master. Thank you." Hearing his new disciples thanks, Wen Cheng breathed a little in, and said to his elders, "Look around a little, and see if you find the cat''s corpse. Also, take a little bit of this blood from where the cat landed in the crater. We might get some use out of it." He then turned to Alex and said, "I will see you in 2 weeks, disciple." After saying that, he started to slowly hover, and fly away. Alex was shocked. ''So you can fly with your Qi. Why is it that I am not able to then?'' he wondered. Ma Rong looked back at Great Elder and said, " Great Elder, I think we should take in some of the blood as well. They might come in handy for some alchemy research." "I shall do as you say, sect leader." The great elder went and gathered some blood from the place where the corpse was. "Alright, Let''s return," Ma Rong said as she took out a small boat-like artifact, and jumped on it. She turned back to look at Alex, whose eyes showed awe towards the artifact, and said, "Come on up. I will fly us back to the sect." Alex got out of his stupor and jumped up onto the boat. The other elders simply started flying on their own without any artifacts, similar to what Wen Cheng did. ''Is the sect leader not capable of flying on her own?'' he thought. The boat started flying at a faster speed than the other people. "We will take our leave now, City Lord and Lady," she said and flew away. The speed at which the boat flew reminded him of the bullet train he took to get to Oakleaf city. ''Does flying in a plane feel the same?'' he wondered. He looked around and saw that the other elders were now flying faster and catching up to the boat. So, he decided to ask. "Master, why are we using this boat to fly when the other elders are flying on their own with equal speed?" Ma Rong looked back and answered, "Flying alone is easy, but when you have multiple people to take with you, it''s hard to split your attention to the different people. So, instead of flying all the different people individually, flying a single boat with people on top of it is easier." "As for the reason why we aren''t faster than the other elders is because I am choosing not to go that fast. You are only at bone tempering realm, if you were to fall at the full speed of this boat, you would fall, and not be able to handle the impact of your fall." Ma Rong''s eyes widened as she heard what he had just said, " You can hover with your current cultivation?" she asked. "Yes. I mean last I tried was before I entered the Bone Tempering realm about 3 days ago. I haven''t tried with my current cultivation." He said. Ma Rong turned towards the other elders and said with a serious face, "Everyone, I''m going to go first. Take your time coming back." She then looked towards Alex and said, "Hold on" Alex didn''t know what was going on, but he gripped the boat on both sides. As soon as he did that, he felt a massive whiplash as the boat sped through the forest, and within 5 minutes reached Hong Wu Sect. Ma Rong didn''t stop there and flew the boat directly to the sect leader''s mountain and stopped it only after getting to the peak. She got off the boat, and Alex followed right behind. His legs shook a little as he landed on the ground. The speed was a bit too much for him to handle. ''It took me an entire night to reach that place in the forest, and she brought me back in less than 6 minutes?'' he was shocked beyond belief. Ma Rong was a little out of breath as well. It seemed she had to use a little too much Qi to speed up the boat by this amount. ''Why did she do that?'' he thought. "Yu Ming, you said you could hover? Show me." She said simply. Chapter 50:"Science" Behind Flying He had assumed he would stop at around 20 cm, or maybe a little more since he broke through a bit. However, he started floating continuously without stopping. The speed at which he was rising was very slow, but he was rising nonetheless. When he got to about a meter high, Ma Rong told him to stop. He landed on the ground. "So you can do it." Ma Rong was in disbelief once more. ''How is a bone tempering realm cultivator able to carry so much weight with his Qi?'' she questioned. She looked at Alex, who was looking at her expectantly for an answer. She sighed and asked," Do you know how cultivators normally fly without artifacts?" Alex thought for a second, and said, "isn''t it by wrapping themselves with their Qi?" "Yes, but what I''m asking is, do you know why that works for the cultivators? But doesn''t work much for you?" she asked. Alex simply shook his head. Ma Rong answered, "You see, our Qi increases in quantity when we breakthrough. It keeps getting thicker and thicker as we keep on breaking through the realms. At some point, it gets so thick that we can physically pick objects off using it like a rope or a stick." "The thicker they get, the heavier the object they can carry. Imagine Qi as balloons. Once the balloons have more air in them, they become able to carry objects. The more air there is, the heavier the objects they carry." "What do you think would happen if I tie a balloon light enough to carry 50 kilograms of weight, on a 50 kg rock?" she asked. " It will carry the rock?" he said. "No. The balloon will stay stationary. Since the balloon is tied to a 50kg rock, it is now effectively able to carry 0 weight, so it doesn''t fly away. Now, what if I were to break off a small piece of the rock, what would happen?" "The rock will now start to fly." He answered confidently. "Yes, but between the balloon carrying the rock, and another balloon of the same capability carrying a 25 kg weight, which do you think would rise faster?" she asked. "The one with the less weighing rock." He answered. "Yes, Exactly. Qi is similar. When you were not in the bone tempering realm, your Qi was thick enough to only carry your weight. But once your broke through, it is now able to slowly lift you higher. Since you couldn''t change the weight of the rock, you made the balloon even lighter." "So, you are able to float up every so slightly. Once you are at a higher realm, your Qi will get thicker, and you will be able to fly faster." She explained. Alex felt like he learned something important today. ''So, I can fly once my Qi is able to carry more weight, huh?'' he thought. But then he thought of something, " But master, I was able to carry monsters up easily when I was at the 1st realm of Bone Tempering. My Qi shouldn''t have been so thick at the time." Ma Rong chuckled a little, " That is simple. Take the balloon and the rock for example again. Since they have 0 weight effectively, any outside influence from you is able to lift them up easily." "But when you are tied to the balloon, that doesn''t work. You can''t push the balloon to carry you higher, since the balloon and you are one entity. You were probably hovering above the ground at all because you lifted your feet in anticipation of flying." Alex seemed to have understood a bit. ''There is a lot more science involved in this than I previously knew'' he thought. Ma Rong then said, "I know you may be excited to fly soon, so you might try to break through a lot, but don''t. You need to stay a bit in each cultivation base to understand the intricacies of it. If you keep on breaking through without stabilizing your cultivation, your foundation will be bad for the future, and you will be sure to end up in Qi deviation, and might lose your entire cultivation as well as your life. " Alex was a little surprised. ''Stabilizing my cultivation? I haven''t heard that before. Is leveling up too fast really that bad,'' he wondered. Still, the threat of death was enough for him to accept it. ''Alright, come with me," Ma Rong said as she walked down the peak. In less than a few minutes, they reached a large, but simple-looking house. A step below the house were other several houses with their own courtyard. "Choose any of the houses. Since you are my disciple you will be staying here for now. Starting tomorrow, every morning I will teach you about alchemy. You will take what you learn and use it to try out alchemy. While you are my student, you are still an outer sect disciple. Quickly make pills to become an inner sect disciple." "Also, there is an alchemy room in each of these houses, so you won''t have to go to the alchemy hall to practice alchemy. However, I suggest you don''t do any alchemy today and finish other business. It''s better if you wait until I teach you some basics tomorrow morning." "Now go and take a rest. You nearly died today, and are still full of blood and dirt. Go clean yourself." Alex nodded and said his farewell as he left for the left-most house below the sect leader''s house. Once he entered, he looked at the massive interior of the house, with its own backyard and a pond. This had been a long night and day now. He looked at the time and realized it was nearly 10 am. He had unintentionally missed his breakfast today. He sighed and walked into a random room, and then logged out. Chapter 51:House with a Courtyard Alex got up from his bed. He was feeling terrible right now. All the pain he had to suffer today was so real, that he started to wonder if he was even playing a game. He went and took a cold bath, washing away all the fatigue he felt until now. The near-death experience had traumatized him to some extent, yet somehow he didn''t think of it as a bad thing. He went to have his lunch with his roommates and went to his classes. ******* In Deva corporation, a bald man in his late 40s was sitting in a meeting room apparently waiting for someone. He seemed to be both nervous and excited about who he was about to meet. "Welcome miss Hao, I hope you are doing well." He said with a smile that was incapable of hiding his excitement. The girl felt disgusted but didn''t say anything as she walked ahead and sat down at the table. "Is it ready?" she asked. The man practically ran towards her to bring her a stack of papers in a neat binding. "Here are the records from the Eternal Cultivation miss. We have prepared them just as you asked." The young lady briefly looked through the papers and nodded to herself. "Good, I''m leaving." She stood up and started walking away. "Miss Hao," the man immediately called her, stopping her in her tracks. "Is it possible for us to meet the genius that made this game?" he asked. The lady simply turned around and said, "You aren''t worthy to meet him. Just sit back and hope something new comes along your way. That is all you deserve." She then walked away. The company had made billions from the game the lady Hao had given to the Deva Corporation, and he as the president would get most of the profits. So, he happily took the woman''s insults without any annoyance. He was now starting to hope the lady would bring along something else from the game''s creator. He could only hope that much. ******** Alex returned from his classes. He didn''t learn much today as he was mostly distracted by the thoughts of what had happened this morning. He returned to his room after having his afternoon lunch. As soon as he was done changing his clothes, he jumped back into the game. He opened his eyes inside the random room he had walked into when he logged out this morning. He walked around the house to check it out. The house had about 5 rooms in it, with 4 of them being normal rooms, and the last one being an alchemy room with a fire pit in the middle. Behind the house was a small courtyard with an artificial-looking, small pond in it. He walked up to the pond and took a look at it. What he saw was an unrecognizable man with long black hair and blue eyes. The man was wearing a light green robe with red all over it. ''Is that¡­ me?'' he thought. He had only seen his in-game appearance once when he first made the character. That was a 5-second glance that he checked no further after that. Looking at it now after nearly 2 weeks. He was surprised at how different he looked from real life. He decided to take a bath right here with the water in the pond. He took off his clothes and looked at his well-built body. ''I wouldn''t mind having this body for real.'' He thought. He used Qi manipulation to carry some water from the pond and poured it over himself. He started washing away the hardened blood in his hairs and skins. The water running down his body turned red as they washed away all the blood. As he was rubbing away more blood, he noticed something. On his left arm, where the wolf had first hit him, there was a red scar. The scar was in the shape of a monster''s paw. ''Did the wolf hit me so hard that it left a paw mark even after healing the wound?'' he thought. He slowly touched the tattoo-like scar, wondering if it would ever heal. "Hmm¡­" he thought he felt something from the scar. Something like a vibration from a sound. He touched it once more, but nothing happened. So, he went back to cleaning himself. After he was done bathing, he took out his remaining clean robe and wore it. After that was done, It was time to go down to the sect valley for the multitude of things he had to do. He walked down the sect leader''s mountain and quickly reached the bottom. As he was walking out, an elder he had never seen before, came up to him and asked, "Are you, Yu Ming?" "Yes," he said skeptically, not knowing what the elder wanted. "Give me your nameplate," he asked. Alex took out his nameplate and handed it to this elder. The elder took out a medallion and held it as he placed Alex''s nameplate on his forehead. Soon after, he handed back the nameplate and said, "With this, you have the freedom to go to the alchemy garden, and can take out anything you want from there without charge. But make sure not to go overboard with what you take. While you may have the right to take the ingredients from there, you do not have the right to waste those ingredients for your own selfish reasons, understand." The elder seemed a little too stern. Alex agreed without question. Besides, he didn''t intend to use that many resources from the gardens anyway. He would only use them when he couldn''t find the items elsewhere. After the elder let him go, he started walking straight to the Disciple Hall. He had taken a 3-day leave and needed to tell them that he was back. Chapter 52:Testing His New Strength It didn''t take long for Alex to reach Disciple Hall. He looked at the ranking board in front of the hall and realized, he had gone down in ranking. ''I was gone away for 3 days, and I am already down by 200 ranking spots?'' he thought. He walked back to the Alchemy Achievements and realized he was down on that side too. He laughed wryly and didn''t think much of it. He had returned now, and with the number of stuff he had got back, he could easily get those rankings back and more. He went into the disciple hall and let them know of his return. After that, he walked towards the sect market. It was around 4 pm and the sect valley was at the peak of crowdedness. He walked into the sect market and went straight to the elder''s stall. He had to wait a while before his time came up eventually. The elder looked at him, and asked, "Are you here to buy or sell?" "Both," Alex simply answered. He then reached into his robes and took out 2 storage bags. He checked the storage bags one more time and handed them to the elder. The elder was surprised someone actually initiated to hand him a storage bag of their own. He then diverted his attention to the storage bag. The elder''s eyes started to widen. The more he looked, the wider it got. He snapped his head as he looked at Alex. ''Bone Tempering 3rd realm. So how are the corpses here so strong?'' he wondered. "Are you selling these in the place of someone else?" he asked. "No, those are for me." Alex simply answered. "Young man, if these belong to someone else, and you stole this, you must confess. Lying will not get you anywhere." The elder got more vocal about it. Alex didn''t know what else to say, so he simply insisted on it being his. "Those belong to me, and me alone elder. I did not steal them from anybody." He said. The elder was starting to get irritated. "Are you saying you killed this organ tempering realm bird monster?" he asked, mentioning one of the monsters inside the bag. "No, I didn''t. Someone else did. But they gave me the monster corpses, so it''s mine." He said. The elder finally felt like he was getting the truth out of him. "See, these don''t belong to you. Tell the core disciple who killed these monsters to come to sell these monsters on their own. " The elder believed that only a core disciple could possibly be strong enough to kill all of these monsters. He handed the bag back to Alex. Alex frowned a little but said nothing. ''Whatever, I will ask master tomorrow to sell these in my stead. I will like to see how he will refuse master.'' Although he was the sect leader''s direct disciple, aside from a handful of elders who were there, and the elder below the mountain, nobody else had the information. Alex didn''t like flaunting his master''s name around, and also didn''t have anything to prove he was her disciple. So, he simply took out the strong monster corpses and handed the bag back to the elder. The elder frowned as he looked at the bag once more. This time, only Bone tempering 3rd realm and fewer monster corpses were there. "Are you saying you killed these?" the elder asked. Alex simply nodded. There was no way the elder could prove this claim false, so he simply started counting the points. The bag only had corpses and not cores or materials. Alex had learned that both of those latter were extremely useful for pill making. After a while, the elder spoke out, "52 points for skin tempering realm corpses, 360 points for muscle tempering realm monsters, 220 points for bone tempering realm monsters¡ª for a total of 632 points." Alex handed him his nameplate and got the points. For buying, he bought some of the ingredients he lacked for making a [Spirit Enhancing Pill]. After getting those ingredients, he walked to the library. He was here just to return the Smiting Blade book. Once he did, he left. He had wanted to get some recipes for new pills but lacked the points right now. ''I will wait until tomorrow when I meet the master.'' He thought. Since he still had some time to spare before having to log out for dinner, he decided to visit the Training Hall. ''I wonder how strong a True Mortal grade sword is,'' he was really curious about his newfound strength. He placed his nameplate in a wooden post inside the training hall, and a wooden puppet jumped up. He took out the steel sword and held it in his hand. Even without doing anything, he could feel a sense of connection to it as it started to passively suck in his Qi to glow a bit. While the amount of Qi it sucked wasn''t a lot, it was substantial enough to increase its strength for sure. Previously, without using a technique, the steel sword did exactly 1 realm lower than his cultivation in damage. Now that he had refined it, he was looking forward to the new damage. He held his sword in an attacking stance and jumped forward. As soon as he reached the puppet, he simply swung the sword onto the wooden puppet. BAM He could tell the damage was much higher than what he could do with his own fists. He turned back to look at the information on the post. 2 realms higher. That was how good a refined True Mortal grade sword was. If simply using this sword without any technique already resulted in such damage, then how much more damage can using a technique give him. The thought of this was starting to excite Alex. Chapter 53:Ebony Corundum Stiletto Alex got ready to attack once more. He picked up his sword and started channeling his Qi around his body as per the Smiting Blade technique. His qi was flowing into the sword at an incredible speed. He had been in a half-dead state when this first happened, so he didn''t have to luxury to fully experience what it felt like. But now that he did, it was glorious. Feeling the Qi slide into the blade with zero resistance was such a cathartic experience. Once the blade was filled to the brim with his Qi, he moved. The sound the hit made was actually quieter than the last time, yet he could tell the damage was much higher. The penetration power of the sword was much higher with the technique, so it didn''t hit enough of the wooden puppet to make much sound. Alex turned around to look at the damage value. ''4 realms higher?'' he was shocked. ''That''s much higher than I had expected.'' He looked at the puppet which had a deep, almost invisible cut going from its left shoulder to its right waist. It took a few moments for the puppet to heal back. Now that he was done checking his damage with his ''new'' sword, he decided to leave. But just then, he remembered. ''Wait, what about the other sword?'' He decided to check that one as well. He opened his inventory to see the new sword. Once he found it, he brought it out. BANG The moment the sword left his inventory, it fell onto the ground with a loud sound. This sound was larger than when he first hit the puppet with his sword. Thankfully, this was the Training hall, so nobody checked what had just happened. The sword had been inside the mother cat when he put it into his inventory, so he hadn''t seen what the sword looked like and only the hilt. Now that he was looking at the actual sword, he was in awe. Despite how big the hilt gave the impression of the sword being, the sword was actually tall, but a thin two-sided sword. It looked like it had some sort of marking or words on it at first glance, but looking at it more carefully, it was just the texture of the metal itself. The blade itself had a brownish color to it with some gold hue to it. The crossguard was quite long for such a thin sword and made purely of silver-like metal. The hilt was wrapped in red leather, probably from some high-level monster. He focused on the blade a bit, and a panel appeared. [Ebony Corundum Stiletto Grade: Earth ] ''It''s not giving me any information aside from the grade,'' he thought. He checked the steel sword. [Steel Sword: Refined Grade: True Mortal Elemental Alignment: None Weight: 10 KG] ''Okay, the steel sword is giving a few more information now. Is it because I refined it?'' he wondered. He tried to recall back to how the refinement actually happened. ''Didn''t it say something about the sword accepting my essence?'' he thought. ''What is essence though? Essence, I have heard of that word somewhere else¡­ That''s right.'' He immediately opened his inventory. There was an item in there that he got after killing the cat monster. [????????''s Blood Essence] ''So does essence mean blood?'' he wondered. He remembered that he had never before been bled in the game. The only time he did was the fight against the wolf. So, if that was the exact time the sword was refined, then blood would make sense to be the essence. ''Do I have to cut myself now?'' he didn''t want to intentionally bleed. Still, he braced himself and cut his fingertip. Blood started pooling on top of his finger. He looked at his finger and was actually surprised. His finger was actually starting to close up a bit. ''Is this because I am a cultivator?'' he wondered. He dropped the pooled-up blood into the sword. The drop of blood fell onto the blade, but it just slipped off the surface of the blade and fell into the soil below. He was curious about what had just happened, so he bent down to grab the sword. Surprisingly the sword was heavy. In fact, it was so heavy that he was unable to move it even a single centimeter. ''How is such a small sword, so heavy,'' he wondered. He tried a couple more times to no avail. ''What if I try to put my Qi into it? Will that make it better?'' he thought. He grabbed the hilt of the blade, and slowly started to pour in his Qi. The resistance he felt was massive. The sword absolutely didn''t want his Qi and was vehemently refusing it. He started using more force to put in the Qi, and suddenly massive energy started pouring into him from the sword. His body started to hurt and he immediately stopped forcing in the Qi. ''Any longer and I would''ve been seriously hurt.'' He thought. The sword refused his Qi so much that it nearly wounded him in return. He looked at the sword with a little bit of dread in his eyes. ''The sword is too strong for me right now. I should try again once my cultivation base is higher.'' He thought. He hadn''t been here for more than 10 minutes, but the nameplate still took 5 points. He didn''t care though. He took his nameplate and walked out of the training hall. Now that he could think of nothing else to do, he decided to go back to his residence in the sect leader''s mountain. Nobody stopped him this time, so his way to his residence was smooth. Once he was in the house, he looked at the time and realized it was about time for dinner. So, he logged out. Chapter 54:Unlocking... After dinner, Alex logged back into the game. The evening had turned into night, and his new house was lit with lanterns. There were multiple lanterns all around the house for light. He took a lantern and walked out into the courtyard. The lantern wasn''t bright enough to light up the giant courtyard, and only dimly lit it. But that was enough for a cultivator like Alex who could see well even without lights. He sat down on the grass near the pond and took off the lanterns covering. He was going to practice Flame Mastery Scripture for now. For 2 hours straight, he did nothing but manipulate the fire. By now, he didn''t require a lot of Qi to manipulate the fire. He was worried that his speed at cultivating would be bad for him, and he would start to lose proper control over his qi. Thankfully, 3 nights of hunting monsters had greatly stabilized his fast-growing cultivation. Now, he just had to stabilize the cultivation he was in, and he could breakthrough once more. He hadn''t met a single bottleneck as of yet, which he was unsure was related to his talent or not. The number next to the required Qi amount never dropped below 100%. After he was done with practicing Flame Mastery Scripture, he started practicing to fly. While he only moved upwards very slowly, he could still learn how to move from side to side. He brought out his qi and started wrapping it around himself. Once he made the Qi lift him, he slowly started to rise up. At around 1 meter off the ground, he stopped his Qi from lifting him up any further and started to hover there. After that, he took some more Qi and started to move with it. It was only due to gravity that he had problems moving upwards. Since there was nothing keeping him from moving sideways, he started to freely float around. His speed at moving sideways was a little faster than moving normally. He dropped to the floor once more and thought of something. Ma Rong mentioned something about him only being able to hover because he unconsciously lifted himself off of the ground before trying to fly. ''What will happen if I jump first, before trying to fly?'' he wondered. Once more, he wrapped himself with Qi and jumped really hard. With his current cultivation, he could easily jump 4-5 meters of height. At the highest height, he suddenly used the Qi to keep him afloat. Finally, it started feeling like flying to him. At this high, he started to look at the night sky, the open mountain range, and the light scattering into the atmosphere from the sect valley. It all looked so fantastical to him. He realized, at some point while playing this game, he had stopped wanting to play it for the money, and instead wanted to play it for himself. He practiced flying for a while. Every once in a while, he would try floating some small stones from nearby with him. Splitting his attention between himself and the other things was hard, and that was exactly why he was practicing. Manipulating his entire body with his Qi to keep it afloat was a very draining task. Before he knew it, he had used up all his Qi. So, he sat down to cultivate. But, before he started, he had one more thing he had to do. He quickly opened his inventory and took out something. He looked at the thing in his hand, something that he had been looking forward to for the last 2 days. It was a small flower with 5 yellow petals. The Spirit Cleansing Lily. According to Luo Mei, if he were to hold this flower while he cultivated overnight, he would unlock the spiritual sense that only someone in the saint realm could do. He took a deep breath and started cultivating. Very soon, his Starry Sky Qi Absorption method was activated and he fell into a deep trance. At first, it was a normal night of cultivation. Nothing happened with the flower in his hand. But after a while, the yellow flower was faintly glowing with yellow light. It would light up for a moment, and then die down. Light up once more, and die down again. The rhythm at which it did that was erratic at first. But slowly, after some time, it started to harmonize with Alex''s breathing. Every time he took a breath in the flower lit up. Every time he let go of his breath, the flower got dark again. Every single breath, the flower was starting to light up more and more until at one point it lit up so much that some of its lights started breaking off of the flower and floating up. They slowly reached Alex''s face, and he breathed them in. Every single breath, the flower broke more and more into light ember-like fragments that were breathed in by Alex. After some time, the entirety of the flower was devoured by Alex''s breathing. Once they well all inside him, his body started glowing slightly as well. The flowers had reached his lungs. From there, they got into his bloodstream and made their way up to his brain. The water was turbulent for a while as it grew. After it reached a massive size, it stopped growing and became still. Suddenly, a notification appeared in front of the unconscious Alex. Chapter 55:Spiritual Sense The early dawn brought in rays of light that lit up Alex''s courtyard where he was currently cultivating. Alex slowly opened his eyes as he got out of what he considered was basically sleeping. Every time he cultivated, he would always fall asleep. But somehow never wake up later than the morning. He would always wake up at some time between 6 and 7 am for some reason. He had gotten used to that by now. He looked at the rays of light coming in from the front of his house. It seemed his house was facing east. At the same time, he saw the walls of the house, the trees in the courtyard, the multitude of blades of grasses in the ground, as well as the pond that was currently behind him. ''Wait a second. What is going on?'' he thought. He could currently see things he wasn''t even looking at. The pond was currently behind him, so how could he possibly see it? The blades of grasses were too many for him to be able to ''see'' at the same time. He closed his eyes to clear all of the visions he was seeing right now, but that didn''t help. He could still see everything clearly. Well, almost everything. He could no longer see the rays of light coming from afar, or anything that wasn''t in his courtyard. He could see the walls of his house, and also see beyond those walls, but not far off. He could see the pond, and also everything in it. He could see the many fishes swimming in the pond. Once he started focusing on specific things, everything else stopped overwhelming him. While he could still see everything, he started to ignore them. Yet even when he focused on something, he could still feel the thing he was looking at had multiple things in it that he was looking at once. For example, when he looked at the pond, he could see all the fishes at once, and individually at the same time. He felt that he could keep track of all the fishes even though there were hundreds of them in there. He looked at the multitudes of grass blades on the ground. Since there were easily more than a hundred grasses, he was having trouble focusing on them all at the same time. He had to section off about a hundred or two hundred of the grass blades to see them all at the same time as well as individually. He could clearly feel his mental strength had improved a lot more. He kept looking around at the different things with his eyes still closed. He kept wondering what was happening, why he could see so much. Then he looked at his own self and realized something¡ªThe yellow flower was gone. Only then did he understand what happened. ''Wait, so this is the ''spiritual sense'' that Luo Mei was talking about?'' he thought. He used the spiritual sense to look at himself. He finally saw what the other people would see when they looked at him. No more reflected image in the water, this was the true him. He quietly admired how he looked. He started looking at the different things with his spiritual sense. Slowly, he realized that ''seeing'' was not all there was to the spiritual sense. He could also ''feel'' the objects he was looking at. He could tell whether an object was smooth or rough. He could tell whether something was hot or cold. He could even tell apart which objects weighed more, and which weighed less. As he was looking at the different things, he realized something was being drained in his mind, and before he knew it, he stopped seeing anything. He was now in the dark. ''Did I deplete my spiritual sense already?'' he thought He opened his eyes to look properly once more. Looking with his eyes felt like a degrade now that he had spiritual sense. Still, due to his increased mental power, his eyes could keep track of a lot of different things now. While the amount wasn''t as large as when he was using his spiritual sense, it was still a lot. He decided to check if he could handle multiple objects with Qi manipulation now that he was able to track multiple things at once. He started floating a small stone. Then, he started to do the same to another stone. And another. Soon, he was individually keeping 5 stones afloat. He tried some more. At around 8 stones, he started feeling some mental strain, and at 10 he had reached his limits. After moving them all separately for a while, he dropped the stone. ''Hmm¡­ I have an alchemy lesson with master today. I should go and come back to the game as soon as I can,'' he thought. He quickly logged out and did all of his morning business. Once he ate his breakfast, he returned back to the room and logged into the game. He had returned to the game in about 15 minutes, so decided to go to the sect leader''s abode as soon as he could. He opened his eyes and started to stand up, but suddenly he noticed something. The first thing he noticed was that quite a lot of his Spiritual Sense had come back. But that was not what surprised him the most. He slowly looked around, using both his eyes and spiritual sense. He was no longer where he had logged out and had in fact logged in a room somewhere else. ''Where am I?'' he thought. Just as he thought that the door to the room opened, and he looked up to see who it was. He looked at the person who had just entered and said in surprise, "Master?" Chapter 56:Spiritual Sea "Are you alright?" Ma Rong asked as soon as she entered. Alex was a little perplexed as to what she meant. So, he simply answered, "Yes. I am alright." "What were you doing sleeping in the courtyard? I was worried you were sick or something." She said with a concerned look on her face. "Oh, uhh¡­ I was cultivating over the course of last night, and must''ve fallen asleep outside in the courtyard," He said. ''Damn. Does the game not remove your character from the world while you log out?'' he thought. Until now he had assumed that whenever someone logged out of the game, the game would remove their bodies from the play so that it didn''t hinder anything else. ''I shouldn''t log out in dangerous places from now on,'' he said to himself. "Fall asleep while cultivating? Why would you fall asleep while cultivating?" she asked. "Huh? Do you not fall asleep while cultivating? I have never been awake when I cultivated," he answered simply. Ma Rong looked at him like she had just heard something very absurd. "What sort of cultivator falls asleep while cultivating? What if you get attacked while you were cultivating? What would you do then? Simply die?" she asked. Alex thought for a moment and couldn''t come up with an answer. ''That''s right. What would I do if something life-threatening happened while I was cultivating? Would I get woken up by the threat? Or would I simply die?'' His master''s worries made sense. He followed his master to the alchemy room in his house. There was no need for paying contribution points to use alchemy rooms here. She sat down on one side of the room and told him to sit on the other side. Once they were both seated, they were both on either side of the fire. She took out a cauldron and placed it on top of the fire. The cauldron was made up of green material, with gold objects attached to it. "I promised to give you this cauldron, didn''t I? This cauldron is called the ''Golden Jade cauldron''. It was given to me by my master when I surpassed him in alchemy. It''s a True Mortal Grade cauldron, and from today on, it is yours." Ma Rong spoke with a bit of emotion in her voice. "Alright. We will start now. You don''t have anything to do before we start right?" she asked. Alex thought for a bit and decided he should ask her something. He took a deep breath and said, "Master, I unlocked my spiritual sense today." "Okay. If that is all then we can sta¡ª " Ma Rong stopped as she was talking. "What did you just say?" she looked at him as if she misheard what he had just said. "I unlocked my spiritual sense today," he repeated once more. "No way, you are a bone tempering realm cultivator. You cannot unlock spiritual sense until the saint realm. You must''ve mistaken your normal Qi sense as spiritual sense. Although even Qi sense is only supposed to unlock once you reach True realm," she refused to believe it. "Master, I used a Spirit Cleansing Lily to unlock my spiritual sense." He told her. Ma Rong''s eyes were wide with shock. "How do you know about the spirit cleansing lily? No, where did you even get it from? They are incredibly expensive," she was still refusing to accept the fact that he had unlocked. "Did you forget master? I can recognize every alchemy ingredient I see in the wild. I got mine in the western forest, outside of the city," he said whatever he could to make her believe him. Ma Rong thought for a second. "Does that mean you have a spiritual sea now?" she asked. "Sea? What''s a spiritual sea?" he asked. "If you really did unlock your spiritual sense, then you must''ve unlocked your spiritual sea. The Spiritual Sea is where your sense is located. According to the records, the sea is in your mind that you can feel with your spiritual sense. The larger your sea, the more powerful the spiritual sense." She explained. Alex quieted for a second . ''A sea? Do I have one?'' he thought. He quickly started probing into himself with his spiritual sense. He felt no resistance as he looked inside his mind. Somewhere on his head was a small bubble of spiritual energy. Once he looked at what was inside, he saw a massive, but quiet sea with some occasional waves. The sea looked a bit dried up but was constantly getting back to its previous state. "Yes, Master. There is something in my head. It''s like a bubble of spiritual energy, and inside the bubble is a vast body of water, just like a sea." He said. Ma Rong was shocked, "So you really did unlock your spiritual sense. That-that is too fast." He was looking at him like she was looking at a monster. "But-but wait, you said you found a spirit cleansing lily? How did you choose the right one? Do you know that choosing the wrong flower destroys the entire flower bed?" she asked. "Ah yes. I just know which flower is the right one. I have picked 2 lilies by now. One by myself, and another for Luo Mei of Tiger sect, who I met during my hunt." He said. "So are you saying, you can pick the right flower out of the entire bed of flowers?" she asked once more. Alex simply nodded. Ma Rong''s eyes seemed to light up with excitement. She abruptly stood up and walked outside. She almost forgot about Alex in her excitement and left by herself. She turned back to look at Alex, who by now had a curious look on his face. Ma Rong''s eyes lit up as she said, "Follow me. If you really can tell apart a spirit cleansing lily from the normal lilies, then you have a job to do." Chapter 57:Third Lily Alex followed Ma Rong down the mountain. The time was late morning so a lot of people were already in the sect valley going about their own business. As soon as she left the mountain, she took a sharp right turn and walked towards another mountain. ''One of the alchemy gardens?'' he thought. This was Alex''s first time entering the alchemy garden, so when he finally got to see what the mountain was like, he was extremely surprised. When he first heard the word ''garden'', he had expected a well-organized and well-kept botanical landscape. But it was anything but that. This looked more like a jungle that no one had visited in over a century. There was no proper walking path, plants grew wherever they wanted, and there was no way to tell what was required in alchemy and what was just useless weeds. "Hmm¡­ is this your first time? The garden is always like this. We try not to interfere with how the plants grow and only take what we need. Although sometimes it''s hard to find exactly what you are looking for." She said Alex looked around a bit more. He was ignoring the feeling he had when he saw an alchemy ingredient. He was jaded to the feeling and could control himself now. He used his spiritual sense to look at the different plants. Various information flooded into him, even telling him what the ingredients were. He didn''t even have to focus to know now. As he went forward, he stopped when he saw his master had stopped as well. He tried to look at what was in front of her. When he saw the flowers, he was surprised. "A Spirit Cleansing Lily?" he asked. "Yes. It has been in this garden for years now. It''s highly regulated by the elders, so nobody gets to even look at it under normal circumstances." She turned towards Alex and asked, "Can you tell me which one is the real one?" Alex looked at the flower bed and walked towards it. After reaching it, he simply pointed to a blue flower in the midst of the flower bed. Ma Rong looked at him nervously, "Are you absolutely sure?" she asked. He nodded confidently. Ma Rong took a deep breath and grabbed the blue flower with a nervous hand. "Here goes nothing." She picked the flower. She half expected all the rest of the flowers to wilt, but they didn''t. "I did it. I did it. Haha, I finally got a Spirit Cleansing Lily." She was so excited that she nearly jumped up and down. After she settled down from her excitement, she looked at Alex like he was a gem. "So, you really have the talent to tell apart the alchemy ingredients huh. That is gonna come in handy very much." "Give me your nameplate." She said. Alex took out his nameplate and handed it to her. She was about to change something in the nameplate when she noticed he already had a pill registered under his name. "You have already made pills? Didn''t you join less than 2 weeks ago?" She asked. "Yeah. I made it the day before I left to hunt." He answered. ''Monster,'' was all she could think. "When did you start making pills?" she couldn''t help but ask. "Oh, I started the same day." He replied "Oh, is this the only pill you were able to make that day?" "No, I made 8 of those pills. I had sev- Nine batches of ingredients and failed the first time. After that, I succeeded in all the other attempts. I gave the 10% harmony one to the disciple hall, and sold the remaining 7 for points." He answered. ''Monster. He can''t be called a genius any longer. Monster is the only word that fits him.'' She was shaking internally hearing his success rate. 8 out of 9 success rates was something normal alchemists would only hope for. A beginner making a single mistake and succeeding the rest of the attempts was unheard of. "You gave them 10% one? What was your highest harmony level?" "Hmm¡­ if I remember correctly, it was 16%." Ma Rong''s eyes were wider than the flower she was holding. "Monster," she said out loud. "What?" Alex asked. ''Did she just call me a monster?'' "Nothing," she said as she focused back on his nameplate. She did something to the nameplate and returned it. And then she said something that shocked Alex, unlike anything he had felt before. She said, "You are now a core disciple of the Hong Wu Sect, with the privileges of an elder." Alex had a problem grasping at the concept of what had just happened. "But I haven''t completed any tests. How can I be a core disciple?" he asked. Ma Rong simply said, "Of course you can. I am the sect leader. If anyone had problems with that, they can come to talk to me. I will go tell the elders about what you did, and not even they will argue against me." She took out a medallion from her storage bag and started talking into it. "Great Elder and all the numbered elders. Please come gather in the Elders hall within the next hour. I need an emergency meeting with you all to talk about some important topic." All around the sect, the great elder and the different numbered elders, namely first elder to 18th elder heard the announcement and started preparing to go to the Elders Hall. It was not always that the sect leader herself called for a meeting. Once she was done making the announcement, she turned towards Alex and said, "Thank you. Thanks to you, I can also unlock my Spiritual Sea and Spiritual Sense. Go back and do what you want, for now, I need to go to the meeting. I will come to meet you tonight." Alex watched as she left the garden. He looked at the time and it wasn''t even 9. He decided to look around the garden a bit longer. Chapter 58:Misuse of Authority While Alex was going around the garden looking at everything, while the elders were convening in the elder''s hall. Some elders arrived before even 15 minutes had passed after the sect leader''s message had been sent out. There were 20 seats in the meeting chamber inside the Elders Hall. 3 of them were on top of a small podium, while the rest of them were on either side of the room. Elders started to enter the room and seating in their respective numbered seats. "Oh seventh elder, you came rather early." A young man walked into the room. He was in his late 20s but didn''t look that old. "Oh, Elder Lang congratulations on making into the numbered elders rank. Your father and master must be proud. Oh, I should probably start calling you eighteenth elder so that I don''t confuse you between you and your father." The seventh elder laughed as he said this. "I don''t think that is even possible, Seventh elder. My father won''t respond to anything you call him other than the first elder. he is way too used to it now." Elder Lang laughed as well. Lang Shun was the son of the first elder, Lang Luoyang, and a direct disciple of the Great elder, Chang Peng. He had shown great progress in both alchemy and cultivation and had recently been granted the title of Eighteenth Elder. As the Eighteenth elder, his primary task was to filter the disciples entering the sect. This was how he had come to learn about Alex''s incredible test results and had given him a Silver library token. Time passed slowly, and more and more elders entered the room. The seats on either side of the room started to slowly fill up. The seats on the podium however remained empty. Sometimes later, the sect leader finally entered the meeting hall. Following behind her was a white-haired, and white-bearded old gentleman, who was the Great Elder. Slightly behind them was a man that looked young, but wasn''t, based on the whites in his hair and beard. He looked an older image of the eighteenth elder. This was the first elder, Lang Luoyang. The sect leader walked up the podium and sat on the middle seat. The great elder sat to her left, and the first elder sat to her right. Ma Rong looked at the elders in the hall and was about to start the meeting when she noticed two of the seats nearest to the podium empty. "Have the 2nd and 3rd Elder not returned from the capital?" she asked the group. "Hopefully they didn''t forget to get back the information about the upcoming competition. Since we are all here, let''s start the meeting." Ma Rong said. "I am holding this meeting to talk about 2 things, both regarding my disciple." Many of the elders that heard her were confused. "Sect leader has a disciple? Why have I not heard this before?" some of the elders started discussing amongst themselves. "The first reason is I am going to make my disciple a core disciple" The sect leader simply said. Most of the elders didn''t say anything. If the sect leader had a disciple, then the disciple must be a high leveled alchemist. Only the fifth elder, the ninth elder, and the Great elder looked at the sect leader in surprise. They were there on that crater where the saint realm cat monster had landed, and they had firsthand seen that the disciple was only an outer sect disciple. Even if he became a direct disciple, he would still have to go through the normal procedures to become a core disciple. "Sect leader, are you sure that''s alright?" the great elder asked from the side. "I will go into the reason soon, great elder," she reassured the elder about her decisions. "The second reason is I am here to authorize my disciple to have free access to everything in the sect. " This decision was a lot more controversial than the first one. Nearly every elder chimed in to give their piece of opinion on the matter. Giving a disciple free access to everything in the sect, was a massive deal to the elders. While an elder may have more authority than such a disciple, they would still be bounded by rules in the sect, and not be able to access everything freely. Ma Rong had expected the cries of refusal, so she was ready. She brought forth her palm in the air to stop them from talking. Once they saw it, the elders all quieted down. The 6th elder spoke, "I am sorry but this feels like a blatant misuse of your authority, sect leader." "Yes, sect leader. Can you tell us why you are doing this?" the 12th elder asked. In response, Ma Rong simply took out a 5 petaled blue flower. "Does anyone recognize what this is?" she asked the crowd. The first elder and the great elder immediately got more attentive to the flower in her hand. They recognized what it was, and understood what it meant for the sect. This flower was a major deal for the progress of the sect. As for the other elders, they were stumped. The flower was too¡­ normal for them to recognize what it was. They turned around to look at each other in the hope of finding an answer. Ma Rong looked at them and understood that not everyone could recognize this flower without reading its description in the records. She looked towards the first elder and said, "First elder, could you please tell the other elders what the name of this flower is?" she had seen his reaction and knew he recognized it. The First elder slowly spoke, " Sect leader, is that really it? Is that the Spirit Cleansing Lily?" As soon as the crowd heard the name, they were in absolute disbelief as well. Chapter 59:Granted "What? That''s the Spirit Cleansing Lily?" "No way. That is the flower that gives you spiritual sea and sense?" Ma Rong looked at the elders'' incoherent noises and waited for them to quiet down. Once the voices stopped talking, she spoke, "Yes, this is the Spirit Cleansing Lily, and the one who got this is my disciple." She continued, " What do you think is the contribution to finding one of these for the sect?" The crowd was stumped on that question. No one had ever been able to pick out a Spirit Cleansing Lily without harming it as far as they knew. There were only the occasional lucky people who did pick them, but that was more luck than technique. "Did your disciple get lucky, sect leader?" one of the elders asked. "No, this was the third lily he picked from what he has told me. He has already used one for himself, and found another for someone he met during one of his hunts." The Great Elder himself was curious, "Is this about what he said back in that forest, sect leader? About him being able to find any ingredients?" The Great Elder had also seen the bag full of ingredients that Alex had gathered in the forest. The sect leader simply nodded. "Then the contribution to the sect is beyond imagination. An alchemist with a spiritual sense can is dozens of times better than an alchemist without one. If sect leader were to gain one now, it would increase your ability by a lot. You might actually be able to make heaven-grade True pills." The Great Elder said in shock. The first elder spoke, "how about this, sect leader. Since your disciple''s contribution is unimaginable, we can give him free access to everything in the sect, but he must still go through the normal procedure to become a core disciple. How long will it take him to make the 20 different high-tier mortal grade pills?" The sect leader chuckled a little when she heard this. The Great Elder and the other 2 elders smiled wryly too. The sect leader looked at the others and asked, "What do you guys think about the first elder''s suggestion?" The elders felt that was the correct choice. While his contribution was unimaginable, one didn''t become a core disciple on contribution alone. If the sect leader''s disciple was made one, based on it, then it would be unfair to the other disciple who was learning alchemy day and night. So, all the elders started voicing their agreement to the first elder''s words. Ma Rong thought for a bit and realized they were right. ''I got hasty in my excitement,'' she thought. "Very well, then. We will do what you guys say. From now on, my disciple, Yu Ming will have unobstructed access to everything in the sect, aside from the sect treasure of course." "Now, there is another thing I wanted to talk to you guys about. It''s regarding the alchemy gardens." She said. "I am thinking of changing how we work in the alchemy garden for 2 weeks." "Tell all the elders working in the garden itself to stop. Only keep elders for guarding the garden and maintaining it, and not picking the ingredients." The elders were confused. "Huh, then who will pick up the ingredients, sect leader?" they asked. "My disciple will. He has an unearthly ability to recognize alchemy ingredients, and now that he has spiritual sense, it would be much faster for him to do the searching, than the other elders and disciples." She said. "Have you thought of how we will go about it, sect leader?" the Great elder asked. "Yes," Ma Rong replied, "Every day, we will ask the disciples to request what they need, and put it in a list. And that night, my disciple will go around the garden looking for the ingredients. This is only for 2 weeks because I want to see how good my disciple''s ability really is." The elders stopped for a second and then accepted it. If a disciple could find a Spirit Enhancing lily, then it would be better to let that disciple do all the alchemy picking. Besides, he had a spiritual sense. He would already be better than most elders at locating ingredients just based on that. "Alright then. The meeting is over. You can all go now." Ma Rong said. All the elders slowly started to bid farewells to her and left the room. "I will take my leave as well, sect leader." The first elder left as well. Only the sect leader and great elder were left in the room. The great elder took a big sigh and spoke, "What are you doing Ma Rong? You will antagonize the elders if you decide to randomly make decisions like that. They will view it as you giving priority over your disciple compared to others. They already think you made Lang Shun an elder just because he is your junior disciple brother but doesn''t dare to voice it." Ma Rong was silent for a bit and then spoke, "But master, Wen Cheng wasn''t lying when he said Yu Ming is a genius. He has already made a 16% harmony pill on the first day he tried alchemy. That was 7 days after he joined the sect." The great elder''s eyes widened, "are you sure he isn''t just lying?" he asked. "No, he isn''t. I checked his sales records, and he really did sell 7 Spirit Enhancing pills ranging from 12% to 16% harmony the day after he bought the ingredients. He is a genius in alchemy that comes once in a thousand years. Now that he has unlocked spiritual sense this morning, he should be much better." "I will properly teach him starting tomorrow, and I am sure he will rise very fast." Ma Rong said. "Ho... If my grand disciple really is that talented, then I can''t wait to see what he can do in the future." Chapter 60:Work Ma Rong left the hall and went back to her mountain. The other elders had already been informed of the decision and the disciples were let known that they could request an ingredient from the elders in either garden. The elders usually kept a list of what they could find in the gardens so that they could pick it later if needed. The students could also use that list as a sort of menu to order for it using their contribution points. Ma Rong quickly reached Alex''s place in the mountain and looked for him. ''Is he back or not?'' she wondered. She checked the house and found him asleep in one of the rooms. So she decided to leave him alone for now. Around 4 hours later, Alex opened his eyes. He had gone to his classes and come back online just now. He stood up and suddenly noticed something, there was some sort of vibration from one of his storage bags. He instinctively checked what it was using his spiritual sense. He was a mental image of his nameplate slightly flashing with light as it vibrated inside his storage bag. ''Wow, I can check the items in my bag with a spiritual sense too? So, I don''t even need the inventory anymore,'' he thought. He thought of taking the nameplate out, and suddenly it came out on its own. ''Wha- do I not need to take it out on my own? Does it come out as soon as I think?'' he tried a bit more with a few more items and turned out he was right. He looked at his nameplate to see why it was shining and realized he could read the plate with his spiritual sense. He was learning some very important things with his senses. The nameplate read, "You are still an outer sect disciple, but you now have free access to anything you want in the sect. In exchange, you will have to gather ingredients from the alchemy garden per a list given by the elder at around 8 pm. I will continue your alchemy lessons tomorrow morning at 8 am." "Oh, I have work now, huh?" he got out of his courtyard and walked down the valley. He thought of what he could do now that he had free access to everything. There was so much he could do now, so he had a hard time choosing what he could do. He thought for a bit and walked to the sect market. He walked up to an elder and asked, "Greetings elder, Can I get all the recipes in the sect?" The elder looked at him with a blank expression. "Do you have the points for that?" the elder asked. Alex passed along his nameplate. As soon as the elder scanned the nameplate, he understood what he meant. "So you are the sect leader''s disciple huh. I didn''t expect you to be an outer sect disciple still." The elder was surprised, and he continued, "You don''t need to buy the recipes here. Since you have free access to everything, you can go read the recipes stored on the top floor of the library." "You can''t take them away, like normal techniques, and will have to stay there and read. But, since you are allowed to stay there as long as you want, it''s not really a problem." The elder explained to him quite a few things. Alex thanked the elder and walked to the library. He had thought of learning some new techniques but ignored that thought right now. First, he had to learn some recipes, and then make some pills. It had been a long time since he had done anything alchemy-related. He greeted the elder at the front door and walked straight to the 4th floor. He showed his nameplate to the elder on the 6th floor. He knew he would get distracted if he started looking at the techniques now, so he rushed to the 9th floor. He had to show his nameplate once more on the 8th floor. Apparently, only elders were allowed on the 9th floor, and there were no techniques there, only old records and pill recipes. There were only 2 shelves on the top floor. One was filled with normal pages of paper that held records that were either very important or very old. The other shelf was filled with all types of pill recipes. This was different from instinctively knowing what to use, and when to use it. It was more like his memory power had upgraded several times. He tried to think of what else he could remember, and realized, he actually remembered every single thing he had experienced from this morning till now. He was genuinely surprised. ''Do I have eidetic memory now?'' he wondered. It took him around an hour to fully read every single recipe in there. In total there were about 200 recipes in the room. About 140 of those were for common pills and the rest for true pills. Although he read a lot of recipes, once he reviewed them in his mind, he realized that most of them were actually just worse or better versions of other pills. Or they did just the same thing but targeted a different part. He spent a bit more time in there basically trying to learn what he had memorized. His genius memory once more came in very handy. With his spiritual sea already so big, he had no problem understanding the process of the alchemy behind the recipes. His master had now given him a task, to gather ingredients at the alchemy garden, that he had to do every night, and it was about time for that. So, at 6 pm, he got out of the library and went back to his residence to log out. Chapter 61:That Was Quick After dinner, Alex logged back into the game. He walked out of his home filled with the light of the lanterns. He slowly walked down the mountain and to the sect valley. The sect valley was ever the same. Lit with lantern and festival-like atmosphere. The moon was hidden in the clouds today, but it didn''t look like it would rain. He walked to the right alchemy garden and saw an elder waiting in front of the path to the garden. "Greetings elder," he said as he reached the place. "Hmm¡­ " he looked at the outer disciple clothing of Alex, and said, " If you are here to request for alchemy ingredients, then you better have contribution points, otherwise you will just be wasting our time." Alex chuckled a little and said nothing. Instead, he just handed the elder his nameplate. When the elder read the nameplate, his eyes were wide with shock. "I will be honest. I can''t tell if the sect leader likes you or hates you. She gave you free access to everything, yet she is tasking you to this job that usually takes over 10 elders overnight." The elder said. "Oh wow, really?" he said. Alex didn''t worry a lot, however. He had the [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] and spiritual sense, so he was sure he would be just fine. Many disciples came to the elder and requested different ingredients. At exactly 8, they stopped accepting any more requests for the day. An elder arrived about 5 minutes later from the other alchemy garden gate. Together, the two elders combined their list and tallied the ingredients. Once everything was set, they handed the list to Alex. "Here is the list, disciple Yu. You can start looking for the ingredients now. Please take care not to make any unnecessary damage while you are completing your punishment," the elders gave their sincere intentions towards him. Alex bade them farewell and walked into the garden. He took a look at the talisman on which the list was written in. He used his spiritual sense to look at the paper and easily remembered all the ingredients in there. It was amazing. He immediately started matching the ingredients in the list to some of the ingredients he found while walking around the garden this morning. He expanded his spiritual sense to its maximum 20 meters radius and started scanning everything for a potential match. He immediately started using his Qi to pick up the ingredients and bring them to him. "One down." He saw a few others as well and started gathering them too. He walked around the mountain looking at the different ingredients. The mountain was quite vast, and it took him a lot of time to just travel through it. With his spiritual sense and Qi manipulation, he was easily collecting all the ingredients in the alchemy garden that was on the list. After about, 2 hours, he was done collecting everything on the list that was available in this mountain. He had managed to find about 60% of the total ingredients on the list in this mountain. Before getting out, however, he sat down and just waited. He didn''t cultivate, but rather just took some time to restore his spiritual sea that had dried up quite a bit. After he was ready, he walked out. The two elders were still outside. When they saw him come, they frowned. "Is something wrong, Disciple Yu?" one of the elders asked. "No," Alex gave a single one-word answer and started walking away from them. The elders were confused. They looked at each other and immediately stopped Alex. "Disciple Yu, Stop!! Where are you going? You can''t leave your job." The elder said. "Hmm¡­ I''m going to the other garden. There is nothing in here that is in the list anymore." He said and started walking once more." "What?" they were surprised. "Disciple Yu, can you please show us your collection until now?" one of the elders asked. Alex simply tossed him a bag. When the elders saw that he had really collected all the ingredients, they were shocked. Alex took back the bag and walked straight to the other garden. This garden was the same as the first one as well. The elders had let the plant life grow however it felt right. Alex once more got to collecting the ingredients. With his spiritual sense and robust Qi, he was very quick at collecting the rest of the ingredients. Something that Alex found fascinating while collecting these ingredients was the method with how they had to be collected. Most of the ingredients could be just plucked straight out of the plant like it were a normal flower or fruit. But for some ingredients, his instinct didn''t allow him to simply pluck them. He had to perform some weird operation to obtain the ingredients. For example, one of the fruit growing required him to twist the fruit''s branch 5 times before it plucked by itself. Otherwise, it was near impossible to rip it off. Once he was done collecting the ingredients, he handed the bag back to the elder and walked off. The elders looked at the ingredients in the bag. Over 90% of the ingredients had been collected. The remaining less than 10% ingredients were rare ingredients that even the elders knew couldn''t be found in the garden. They looked at the time and were shocked. Alex walked back to his residence by himself too. He looked at the time and realized he had collected the ingredients before 12 am. If it had been 2 days ago, it would''ve probably taken him all night to collect them all. But with his new spiritual sense, and a better understanding of manipulating objects with Qi, the task of collecting the ingredients had been way too quick. Chapter 62:Alchemy Lesson Alex woke up sometime after 6 am. He was inside a room in his residence. After coming back from his new work of collecting ingredients in the alchemy garden, he had decided to train a bit more with his spiritual sense and see what else he could do. He had made a few different discoveries. First of all, his spiritual sense could expand beyond the 20 meters normal radius. However, doing so caused his spiritual sea to massively dry up, and the maximum he could expand to was 30 meters anyway. The next thing he found out was that he could use his spiritual sense to move around objects similar to his Qi manipulation as well. However, his spiritual sense wasn''t powerful enough to pick up even the smallest stones, and could only sway the blades of grasses in the ground for now. The final thing he realized was that getting an item out of his storage was way faster than using the inventory. His superior memory now allowed him to remember where everything in his storage bag was, so the inventory was basically useless now. He had nearly a million Qi now, but since his master told him breaking through too many times at once was harmful to one''s cultivation, he decided to not breakthrough right now, and wait until his current cultivation was stabilized. Which he felt was done or very close to being done. He logged out to get some breakfast. After breakfast, he logged back in once more. Today was Friday, one of the three days when he didn''t have any classes. He waited in the courtyard for a while unsure whether to go find his master for the morning lesson or wait for her in his house. Thankfully, Ma Rong came by herself just like yesterday. "Oh, you are awake today. Come to the alchemy room." He heard a voice from far away. He felt something wash over his body, and quickly retract back. He was surprised. Then he walked to the alchemy room and said, " Congratulations master, on unlocking spiritual sense." "It''s all thanks to you. Now sit, we skipped our lesson yesterday, so we can''t waste any more time. Bring out your cauldron." Alex immediately brought out his cauldron and placed it on the fire. "Tell me, what are the most vital things during a pill-making process?" Ma Rong asked. Alex thought for a second, and answered, "Temperature of the fire, method of burning the ingredients, and timing of everything." He answered confidently. He had made his pills before and knew the answer. "Wrong!" she said. Alex was taken aback. "Aren''t those the most important things to remember and keep track of when making a pill, master?" he asked. "Those are important, but not the most important thing during a pill-making process." She looked straight into his eyes, and said, "The most important things are the cauldron, the ingredients, and the elemental synergy." Alex''s full attention was on her words now. She continued, "Tell me, why did you say the temperature was important?" Alex answered, "Because the recipes tell you that you need to burn certain ingredients at a certain temperature. Also, you have to constantly change the temperature throughout the entire pill-making process according to the recipe. So, having the fire at accurate temperature is necessary." Ma Rong smiled and said," That is correct. Having an accurate temperature is important. But tell me, what burns the ingredients? The fire or the cauldron?" "Uhh¡­ the cauldron?" "Yes. So, it doesn''t matter if the temperature of the fire is accurate or not, if the temperature of the cauldron isn''t accurate at all. However, we can prevent this from happening. We can make the transition of heat from the fire to cauldron very fast if we use the right type of cauldron." "So, it doesn''t matter how well your fire manipulation is if your cauldron itself is garbage. This just leads to a bad pill." Ma Rong then proceeded to the next topic. "Next on the list is the ingredients. This is pretty simple. If you have good ingredients, you end up with good pills. If you have bad ingredients, you end up with bad pills. However, while the concept itself may be simple, applying it not very much." "There are 3 things in an ingredient that determines whether it''s good or not. The first one is age. The older the ingredient is, the more energy it contains, making it better in general. The second is the time from when it was obtained, to the time it was made into a pill. The third one is the elemental affinity of the ingredient." "Age is pretty easy to determine based on how much energy it has. Once an alchemist has been used to the ingredients, they can usually tell its age just by feeling the energy in it." "The second point about the time can be fixed using some wooden or jade boxes that don''t leak the ingredients aura. This way you can conserve the energy inside the box, and have it be more useful during your alchemy process." "As for the third part, the elements are a way vaster topic that I am not able to teach you fully, because I myself do not know a lot about it. However, I still do know quite a bit, and knowing about this topic is absolutely crucial if you ever want to be an earth grade or a heaven grade alchemist." "The third point is about an ingredient''s element also is in part the third most important thing to remember when making a pill, the elemental synergies. This basically means that every element has a certain elemental energy in it, and based on the different elements in the ingredients you can either make an incredible pill or end up with your cauldron exploding." Chapter 63:The 7 Elements Ma Rong started explaining the different elements and the elemental synergy between them. "So, the first thing you need to know is the 5 normal elements and the 2 higher elements." Alex was listening to her very intently, his eyes focused on what she said. "The two higher elements are Yin and Yang. Yin is the element associated with dark, cold, or moon. Yang is the element associated with light, heat, or sun. These two elements on their own are quite powerful, and maybe dangerous if not taken care of properly." "When together, based on what the alchemist can do, the Yin and Yang can cancel each other out, and make a pill neutral, or help each other to become even stronger, and make a pill with highly volatile energy. You should always think twice if you have to deal with either of these elements in a pill, especially if they are together." Ma Rong was teaching Alex about the elemental affinity and alignment of an alchemy ingredient and how that would make or break a pill. "The 5 normal elements are Wood, Fire, Water, Earth, and Metal. These, similar to the 2 higher elements, can cancel overwhelm another element or make it stronger. These are the hardest thing to keep track of in a pill-making process. You have to know how each ingredient''s element interact with each other." "For example, if you put an ingredient with the fire element in it and another ingredient with the water element in it, then the resulting pill will either be a low fire elemental strength, or a low water elemental strength. This is because when water and fire elements mix together, they fight each other, and the stronger enemy remains. The water seeks to extinguish the fire, while the fire seeks to evaporate the water." "On another example, if you put an ingredient with the fire element in it and another ingredient with the wood element in it, then the resulting pill will always be of a higher fire elemental strength. This is because when wood comes in contact with the fire, it feeds the fire, making it stronger." "There are 5 ways these elements can interact with each other. They can either ''Empower'' the other element, ''Control'' the other element, ''Overwhelm'' the other element, ''Weaken'' the other element, or ''Ruin'' the other element." "Just like wood ''Empowers'' fire by feeding it, water can ''Empower'' wood to make it grow. Earth can ''Control'' water by absorbing it. Metal can ''Ruin'' fire by taking its heat away and de-energizing it." "All 5 elements do something to one of the other elements, in all of the 5 different categories. Knowing what does what, and which ones you can use is very important when making pills with higher harmony." Ma Rong reached into her bag and took out a piece of paper. It was a small talisman, which she then handed over to Alex. Alex caught the talisman and quickly scanned it with his spiritual sense. He soon realized what it was. Ma Rong continued, "That paper has all the knowledge I know of about the different elements and their interaction with each other. Make sure to read that when you have free time." "Just remember, there will sometimes be ingredients with no elements, but those are incredibly rare, and the easiest to deal with. They get along with every other ingredient. She then moved on from the current topic and started going into the original one. "Now, on to the main topic of our lesson. The 3 things I mentioned to you cauldron, ingredients, and elemental synergy, while they are important for making pills, they aren''t controllable." "Even two different ingredients picked out from the same plant can differ in terms of age, energy level, and sometimes even in their elemental affinity." Alex looked at his own new cauldron wondering how good it was to use. "Sometimes, the recipes itself may be flawed. Maybe the alchemist who made the pill wrote something wrong, which is why the pill never reaches 100% harmony." "What I am trying to say is, even though you might do everything right just as the recipe dictated, and still end up with only an earth-grade pill. And that is the very first lesson you need to learn when you are trying to make pills. You will never make the perfect pills. The reasons are beyond your control and you need to be satisfied with what you end up with." "Now, let''s talk about recipes. How many recipes do you know?" she asked. Alex thought for a second, and said, "more than 200". Ma Rong was surprised to hear that. "Where did you learn so much?" she asked. "The library''s top floor." He simply answered. "And you were able to remember all of the 200 recipes in the library? You should have only had a night to remember all that." She was still surprised. Alex smiled a bit and said, "Master, with the spiritual sea, we also get eidetic memory. So, I pretty much remembered everything I read." "Do we?" Ma Rong tried to see if she could remember things and realized he was correct. She too had eidetic memory now. "Okay, what pill was it that you made before?" she asked. "Uh, the Qi Improving Pill?" he asked. That was the first and only pill he had made till now. "Yes, take out the ingredients for it, and make a pill. I will see what you do," Ma Rong walked over to his side and sat down beside him. Alex looked into his bags and quickly found all the ingredients required for the Qi improving pill. He had already made this pill before and was super familiar with it. This time, since he had spiritual sense, he decided he didn''t need to go into focus mode to get more time for handling the ingredients. Now, he could split his attention between 5-6 tasks. If he were to do that to the different aspects of making pills, he was sure he could most certainly end up as an earth-grade alchemist by the time he had to go to the Tiger Sect. Chapter 64:Shocking Advancements Alex took a deep breath and prepared himself. Once the cauldron was at the right temperature, he put in the first ingredient. Thanks to his spiritual sense, he could see what was happening inside the cauldron to a frighteningly accurate degree. As he moved the ingredient around, slowly burning it, he felt the ingredient release some energy from within it. He felt some of the released energy move back into the now powder ingredient while some hung about in the air inside the cauldron. Some energy even flew out of the cauldron. He tried to catch them with his Qi, but the energy seemed to just phase through it. Ma Rong watched every step of his. She could see how accurate his Qi manipulation was and how accurate his temperature changing ability was. Alex put in the second ingredient. The same thing happened with this one as well. Energy release out of the second ingredient as well. However, somehow the energy from the first ingredient immediately moved towards the newly released energy and ''devoured'' it. He could feel the energy was still there, but somehow the ''feeling'' the energy gave off was changed. ''Am I feeling the elements in the energy?'' he thought. He continued with the pill formation. Due to his increased mental capacity and being able to handle more than 5 things at once, he was able to easily handle the pill-making process. From the first ingredient to the last ingredient, he felt like he made little to no mistake. A lot of the energy skipped out of the cauldron, but that wasn''t something he could control. By this time, the ingredients had turned to powder, and the energy behind them had harmonized to some level. Now it was time to form the pill. He slowly started to condense the powders into a pill. There were 2 sets of energies inside the cauldron now. The ones in the powder, and the ones in the air. As he started to condense the powder to form a pill, the energy in the air started to skip out of the cauldron. Almost half the energy from the ingredients was in the air, and somehow it had been lost now. He stopped caring about that and started focusing on the pill formation. Soon, a pill was finally done being formed. Alex slowly took it out and looked at it, [Qi Improving Pill: 26% Improved Cultivation speed by 26% for 18 hours] Alex couldn''t process what he was seeing. ''26%¡­ that- that''s an earth grade pill, right?'' he thought. Suddenly, the pill started floating and landed on Ma Rong''s hand. "An earth grade pill!!" she somehow had a shocked face as well as a face of understanding. "I had expected you to do good, but I didn''t think you would improve so much." She said. "Having a Saint realm cultivator''s sense as a self-tempering realm alchemist is practically just cheating." She said with a blank look. She was starting to wonder how much she had improved now that she too had spiritual sense. She reached into her bag and took out another piece of talisman and handed it to Alex. She then said, "This talisman has information about some of the widely available ingredients. Burn a few of them to release some energies, and try to feel their elements. The better you become at recognizing elements and understanding their relationship, the more you grow as an alchemist." "Also, Refine the cauldron and you can make better pills." She said "Master, how do I refine an artifact?" he asked. This was the perfect opportunity. He had tried refining the Ebony Corundum Stiletto but had nearly gotten hurt instead. So he wondered if his idea of refining was wrong. "Refining is easy. Just pour your Qi into the item, and continuously wash it from the inside. At some point, it will be easier to pour in the Qi, and at that moment, you drop some of your blood to it. The blood must be blood with your essence in it, meaning it must originate in your forehead. " "We can communicate using this communication talisman." She said and left. Alex stayed there looking at the talisman. It looked similar to another normal talisman, but instead of storing some text, this talisman helped with communications. Alex looked inside using his spiritual sense. Ever since unlocking his spiritual sense, he hadn''t had to use the system at all. He could do almost everything with his spiritual sense. The talisman seemed to connect to another talisman only. That talisman was probably on his master. He put the talisman in his bag and looked at the two other information talismans he had acquired. One of them explained the relationship between the five elements. It didn''t talk about the other 2 higher elements Yin and Yang. The other talisman talked about the different ingredients and their elemental affinity. He read the first talisman for about half an hour and understood the concept behind it. He then read the second talisman and tried to memorize it. Once he was done, he was shocked at what he had just learned. ''So that''s why!!'' he thought. The first ingredient in the recipe for Qi Improving Pill had water energy in it. The second ingredient he put in had fire energy in it. The water energy was vastly stronger in power and amount in this case and had destroyed the fire element behind the second ingredient. Which left the cauldron with a lot of energy but very low water energy in it. This then played into the next ingredients and so on. Alex decided to try making the same pill once more. Chapter 65:Amazing Results Alex had spent quite a while reading the two talismans and had managed to remember it all. At the same time, he had also recovered much of his spiritual sea. He had realized that currently, his spiritual sea was actually very small, despite the massive spiritual sea he could see inside his head. If he just let the spiritual sense be used normally, it recovered fast enough that he felt like he had a lot of it. But if he had to use it excessively, it actually disappeared in less than half an hour. This also meant that it didn''t take long for his spiritual sea to recover as well. He had decided to make the pill once more, so he cleaned the cauldron of any remaining byproducts from the previous pill. He then waited for the cauldron to reach the right temperature and poured in his first ingredient. Once again, he could feel the energy released from the first ingredient. ''So, this is what a water elemental energy feels like huh,'' he thought. After a while, he put in the second ingredient. When the ingredient started burning into powder and its energy getting released, he realized the energy behind it was actually weaker when compared to the first energy. He watched as the water-energy quickly envelope the fire energy, and destroy it completely¡ª or so he thought was what happened. ''Wait for a second, while the water-energy did get weaker after suppressing the fire energy, neither of the energy has decreased at all.'' He was surprised. He could feel that after coming into contact, the water and fire had tried to attack together, which he thought would destroy each other and only the remaining water energy will be left. But now that he could tell the energies apart by feeling, he could see that both the water and fire energy that he thought had destroyed each other were actually hidden inside the neutral remaining energy. The new energy was in an equilibrium between the two energies. Almost as if they had¡ª "Harmony. When the elemental energies mix together they create harmony with each other. Is that what making pills is truly about?" he couldn''t help but shout out loud. He took out another ingredient and put it in. Soon that ingredient produced different energy too. Based on the talisman his master gave him, this ingredient produced metal elemental energy. Now the little water elemental energy that remained in the mixed with the mental energy, and suddenly the water energy started getting stronger once more. The metal energy was now harmonized with the water energy such that, the metal energy was ''Empowering'' the water energy. Similar things kept happening, some elements empowered other elements. Some elements overpowered the others. Some weakened the other elements, while some simply controlled the other elements. He also came to recognize the elements by their energy. As more and more energy got into the mix, the harmony between the elements was getting more and more complicated. Once the final ingredient was put in., it controlled the remaining elemental energy in the cauldron and the entire energy came to a neutral state with many elemental energies in harmony with each other inside that neutral energy. Finally, it was time to turn the powder into the pills. Following the recipe, he slowly started collecting the powder to shape it. Suddenly, his Qi started to move on its own. ''Is it happening?'' he thought. Slowly the Qi moved through his entire meridian system and released out of his palm. It moved into the cauldron and started separating the powder into two portions. The separated portions somehow started to shape it into spheres of about the same size as the original sphere. ''Isn''t the energy in the pills going to be lower this way? After all, it''s one pill split into two, right?'' he thought. From his logical perspective, he should be correct. So he started wondering how the pill is going to overcome that problem. It was then he realized the answer. Suddenly, his Qi worked on its own to create vortexes that started sucking the energy that we''re in the air. ''What sort of technique is this?'' he wondered. He couldn''t tell how it worked, or how his Qi was even able to manipulate the energy to get into the pill. It took about 2 minutes for the pills to completely suck in the energies in the air and finally, the 2 pills were ready. He took both the pills out of the cauldron and looked at them. He first focused on the one on the left. [Qi Improving Pill: 24% Improves cultivation speed by 24%] He was surprised. The pill had separated into two different parts and it was still above 20%. He then checked the second pill. [Qi Improving Pill: 28% Improves cultivation speed by 28%] "Holy S**T," he couldn''t help but cuss. He had somehow managed to create two pills, both over 20% harmony, and one of them even near 30% of harmony. He started thinking, ''If I discount the energies that got away from the cauldron''s mouth, does it mean that the total harmony I could have obtained if this became a single pill. Was over 60%?'' He was stunned at that thought. ''What if I keep the energies that got away as well? But I can''t control the energies¡­'' He thought. Suddenly, he got an idea. He looked to the side of the cauldron, where he had kept the lid for the cauldron, and thought, ''I may not be able to stop the energies from going out, but the lid surely can. And now that I have a spiritual sense, I don''t even need to keep the cauldron open to look inside.'' He got excited once and decided to try out this new technique at once. Chapter 66:Put a lid on it Ma Rong had just succeeded in making a pill. She took a pill tester out of her bag and put her pill inside it. She looked at the pill tester with full attention, hoping for the fog that slowly rose up the side of the glass to never stop. As the fog kept on going, her eyes got wider as well. It kept going on and on and on until it finally stopped. Her hands started trembling as she looked at the number next to the black line where the fog had stopped. 45%. She had a massive smile on her face as she took the pill out of the pill tester and kept it in a pill bottle. 45% wasn''t that high when one thought about it. A sect leader of an alchemy sect only being able to make 45% harmony pills would usually lead to ridicule. However, these weren''t just any pills. These were True pills. Unlike Common pills, True pills were ridiculously hard to make. Just the amount of energy one had to keep in control and make sure they didn''t violently explode every single second was incredibly high. Even making a 25% Earth Grade True pill as an alchemist meant one was a rather talented person. Ma Rong had just managed to make a 45% Earth Grade True pill. This meant she was beyond talented and very much deserving of the sect leader title. ''This is all thanks to the spiritual sense, which is all thanks to Yu Ming,'' she thought. She was about to start another batch when she realized something was making noise in her bag. She quickly took out a medallion which she immediately scanned with her spiritual sense. She read the message that had been sent to her. ''Oh, the elders are back from the trip, huh. I should go and learn what they got back about the upcoming competition,'' she thought. She stored her cauldron back into her bag and walked out of her residency. She started walking down the mountain towards the sect valley when she realized Alex was still in his home. She walked in and scanned the house with her spiritual sense. For some reason, her spiritual sense could expand to about 50 meters. 30 meters more than Alex''s. ''Oh, is he still making pills?'' she thought. The time was well past noon, so if he really was still making pills, then he would''ve been going on at it for about 5 hours now. That was some dedication. She walked into his alchemy room making as little noise as possible to not disturb him. When she got in, she was surprised. Alex was in front of the cauldron, moving his hands in the air, presumably controlling the ingredients inside the cauldron. But the thing that she was surprised by the most was that the cauldron had its lid on top of it. She knew of absolutely no one that performed alchemy with their cauldron''s lid closed. ''How can he see if¡ª Oh, that''s right. Spiritual sense. But why put a lid on it at all ?'' She couldn''t understand the reasoning behind it. She did nothing but stand by the door and watch. Alex had already noticed her entering his room and had decided to ignore her for now. He was in the final stages of forming the pill. Thankfully, the pill-splitting Qi did not rise from inside him. Otherwise, he wouldn''t know how to explain her. As soon as he finished making the pill, he opened the lid. He could feel the strong energies in the cauldron leak away as soon as he opened it. ''I should quickly learn some method to do something with those energies,'' he thought. He was about to take out his pill when suddenly, it flew off on its own. He looked to the side and saw his master holding it. He hadn''t looked at the pill himself and was waiting to learn what its harmony level was. Ma Rong took out her pill tester and put the pill inside it. She watched as the fog started rising from the metal plate and go up the glass beaker. The fog steadily rose along the outside of the glass. The fog ended up stopping quite a bit higher than what she had been expecting which surprised her a lot. ''33%? From an outer disciple? did unlocking spiritual sense help him or is he just that talented?'' her jaw dropped as she saw the harmony level of the pill he had just created. She took the pill out and looked at it carefully. It was a slight blue pill around the size of her thumbnail. ''A 33% harmony Swift Feet pill? How did he even reach to be this good at making this pill, when this is his first day of making this pill?'' she was amazed. Alex stood from the side with a wide grin. He had seen the 33% harmony level on the pill tester as well. "Master, I discovered something amazing." He said. "Did you know that using a cauldron with a lid always makes your pill come out with higher harmony levels? I saw the energy always leaked from the cauldron, and tried to keep it in with the lid, and it worked. When the pill is formed, it gets a little bit more energy overall and has higher harmony." He said Ma Rong stood there dumbfounded. She had just realized a few hours ago that most of the energy leaked out of the cauldron. She had some idea as to how to redirect energy and keep it inside the cauldron. But that was still not a very efficient method, as redirecting energies wasn''t the same as controlling them and keeping them inside the cauldron. Now that she heard Alex''s discovery, she felt stupid for not using a lid. She could''ve increased the harmony of her most recent pill, and maybe even end up with a Heaven Grade True pill. That would''ve been something glorious. Chapter 67:Auction House After Ma Rong left, Alex still stayed behind and made quite a few more pills. He made 3 different types of pills after the Qi Improving pills. They were, Swift Feet pill: this pill decreased a person''s weight for a limited time and made them move around faster. Qi Enhancing pill: this pill helped people in the self-tempering realm overcome their bottleneck when trying to break through from one realm to another. This was the same pill that Kong Yuhan made when he first met him. He had also learned the recipe for this pill thanks to Kong Yuhan himself. The final pill that Alex made was probably one that Alex was surprised the most with himself. He didn''t think such a pill even existed. Now that he did, he started wondering what other wondrous things you can do with pills. The pill was called Face Changing pill. If you ate the pill, depending on the harmony levels of the pill, the pill would randomly change your face to a completely new one. Alex had made 2 of these pills and had managed to make one with 26% harmony that changed a face for 26 hours, and another 35% harmony that changed a face for 35 hours. Both of the pills were above the threshold of an Earth Grade pill. In fact, none of the pills he had made after obtaining the spiritual sense had been lower than 20%. In total he had about 12 Qi Improving pills, 5 Swift Feet pills, 4 Qi Enhancing pills, and 2 Face Changing pills. If he kept on going like this, it wouldn''t take him more than a few days to earn the title of a Common Earth Alchemist. Finally, it was time to do the one thing he had been looking forward to since the first day since he started playing the game. It was time to go earn some money. He logged out to get some food and returned after a while. He walked down the mountain and reached the sect valley. He went past the valley and walked up the outer sect mountain. He reached his previous cottage and realized someone was already staying there now. ''That was fast,'' he thought. He walked out of the sect gate. Thanks to his new status and authority, he no longer required permission from the disciple hall to leave the sect. He walked toward the center of the city, looking for an auction house. From his understanding, you could sell your pills in an auction house and get some silver, or gold, or even spirit stones. He finally found a small auction house that looked not too fancy, yet not too simple either. He walked up the stairs and a girl in a mask came out from inside. "The auction takes place tomorrow at noon dear customer. If you are here for it, please return." The girl simply said. "Uh¡­ no, I am here to sell some stuff," he said. "Please follow me then," she said as she took Alex through a long hallway to an open room with multiple doors leading to multiple rooms. She walked up to someone and whispered something in their air. The person turned around to look at Alex. Alex saw a beautiful middle-aged woman with long black hair in dark red cloth with white ribbons on it. She was almost a head taller than him when she came and stood right in front of him. The women quickly scanned his outfit to guess what sort of customer he was. ''Light green robe¡­ Hong Wu outer sect, huh. They usually don''t sell outside. I wonder how this one came to be here,'' she wondered. "I heard you are here to sell something, the customer. Can you tell me what they are?" she asked respectfully despite his standing. She respected money, and if a dog could bring her money, she would respect it too. "Oh, I am here to sell some pills. Uhh¡­ do you also take monster corpses?" he asked. "We only auction monster corpses that costs over 10 golds. Anything else, we don''t accept. Same with pills." She said. ''How much are 10 golds again? That''s like 1000 silver coins right?'' he wasn''t accustomed to the currency of this world as he didn''t have much interaction in the marketplace aside from the occasional taverns and food stores he visited. "Um, what realm of monsters sell for over 10 golds?" he asked. The women thought for a bit, and said, " It''s a little hard to tell exactly what cultivation. It depends more on how good or bad the corpse is. But, usually, if the monster''s body isn''t destroyed a lot, anything at organ tempering and above will do." She said. Alex took out a bag full of monster corpses and handed it over to her. "Can you tell me how many of these are useful?" he asked. The woman opened the bag, and immediately got shocked. ''So many. And one of them is even at Meridian tempering.'' She tried to reel in her shock and looked through the different monsters. There were quite a few monsters in there, and almost all of them were either cleanly cut off, or still had their bodies intact with zero injuries. She took out an empty storage bag and transferred most of the corpses to that bag. She handed the original bag back to Alex. Alex looked into the bag and realized there were only a few monsters, all of which were lower than Bone Tempering 6th realm. ''She accepted Bone Tempering 7th realm? Didn''t she say she didn''t accept anything lower than Organ Tempering realm?'' he thought. Still, this was good for him, so he didn''t complain. He then took out 6 different pill bottles, each containing 5 or fewer pills in them. Chapter 68:Rich Alex slowly handed the bottles to the lady and said, "Here are the pills. These 3 bottles have 12 Qi improving pills in total. This one has 5 Swift Feet pills., this one has 4 Qi Enhancing pills, and this last one has 2 Face-changing pills." The woman took the pills and opened the cork to look at the pills inside. As soon as she opened it, an amazing medicinal smell wafted out of the bottle, making the entire room smell like it. She was stunned. She quickly looked inside the bottle hoping for something good based on the smells, and when she actually saw them, her jaw nearly dropped. Every single one of the pills inside was definitely in the Earth grade. She quickly brought out a pill tester and put the pills in one at a time. The numbers she got from them ranged from 24% to 36% harmony. She quickly kept the pills back into the pill bottles so as to not lose any of their effects. She looked back at Alex and asked, "Are you sure you want to sell these?" she had rarely seen such high harmony levels from the pills brought into the auction in a while. Most alchemists were the aloof kind. They thought of themselves as somebody very important, which they were, but it made working with them nearly impossible. Most of them had horrible personalities from their overinflated ego, and also take an exorbitant amount of money for their work. Or at least that was the impression she had gotten from the few rogue alchemists that had come to sell their works. Alchemists from the Hong Wu sect rarely sold to auctions, and this was the first time she had personally dealt with one herself. Her impression of alchemists was slowly changing. Alex nodded to her question and told her he wanted to sell everything. She quickly tallied the items and gave him a rough estimate of 80 common spirit stones post deduction. She told him how the auction house took 10% of the money the item was sold for. After confirming the items being sold, she took Alex through one of the rooms through the many doors. Inside, she picked up one of the many talismans laid out on the ground. She wrote down everything he was selling on the talisman and imprinted it with her Qi. "This will be our contract to make sure neither of the parties make any wrong attempts to harm the other party," she said as he handed it to Alex. After everything was done, Alex left the auction house. The entire way back to the sect there was one thing that he kept thinking about but couldn''t come up with an answer to. ''How does selling my items in a normal auction house reach the other players? Do they come to the auction house to buy as well? Or can they buy it from wherever they are?'' This was the first time he had sold anything, and from what he learned on the internet, it just told him to go and auction it in any auction house. He scanned the talisman in his bag and thought, ''So her name was Cai Ping huh. Wonder why she didn''t introduce herself normally.'' Well, he hadn''t introduced himself either, so he didn''t think about it for too long. After reaching the sect, he logged out to check about the auctions. It didn''t take him long to learn how auctions worked in Eternal Cultivation. ''Wait. So my items won''t get sold to the other players but the NPCs?'' that was quite an unexpected piece of knowledge he had learned. ''Hmm¡­ so how do Deva corporation make money at all?'' he was confused. If players could sell in-game items to NPC and make money off of them, then the company should have gone bankrupt by now. He researched a bit longer, and only then did he find out that players could convert the money in their banks to in-game currency. Of which, Deva Corporation took 10% charge. Similarly, they also took 10% commission off what you converted back to real-world money. ''So they do what they can to take your money, and also do what they can to not give you your money,'' he found it quite funny. ''Oh, that''s right. Let''s see what the conversion rate for the in-game currency is. Hopefully, I can make a few bucks with the items I''m selling.'' He quickly searched up the current conversion rate for the game. When he finally found it, he was shocked. ''That can''t be right,'' he looked at it again on a different site, but it showed the same result. ''Huh?? How can it be 10 dollars per common spirit stone?? Doesn''t that mean I make uhh¡­ 720 dollars after the deduction from the 80 spirits stones I will get?'' he was truly flabbergasted. He was expecting to make some 20~ dollars at best. But to think his items were valued at such a high price. ''They did say pills and artifacts sold the highest, didn''t they?'' he thought to himself. After learning he could make quite a few amounts of money, his eagerness to practice alchemy and make more pills got reinvigorated. He tried to look at what prices which pills were being sold so he could make those exact pills, but unfortunately, the public had no information on most pills. Regretfully, Alex closed his phone and went to go get his dinner along with Logan, Matt, and Eric. He was looking forward to getting back into the game, so he finished his dinner very fast and had to wait for the other 3 to complete. Once he returned back to his room, he immediately logged back into the game to make some more pills. But then he remembered, He had work to do now that was assigned to him by his master. Chapter 69:Elemental Guidance Alex went down to the sect valley a little earlier than required and went to a restaurant to eat something. Somehow just eating in the real world didn''t affect his appetite in the game. He checked his nameplate and saw that he had around 200 contribution points. ''I wonder if I need to pay to eat or not,'' Although he had full authority over everything in the sect, he didn''t know if the restaurant counted in that authority. He walked in and check out what was being served today. Unlike the last time he had visited the restaurant, he wasn''t broke today, so he decided to order one of the finer dishes. Soon his order came back. It was a slow-roasted monster bird leg, with some fried vegetables on the side. He used his hand to pick the giant monster bird leg and took a massive bite. The meat slid off the bone and dissolved in his mouth. He couldn''t help but moan with pleasure as the sweet taste of meat filled his mouth. He took some vegetables with Qi on the side and ate them too. Together with the freshness of the vegetables and the meaty flavor of the monster bird, he ate what he assumed to be the best food he had eaten in his entire life. He took his time with the food and paid 20 contribution points at the end. He was hoping to not have to pay, but alas those were just hopes. He walked towards the alchemy garden where the elders were tallying the requests by the disciples. Once they were done, they handed the list to Alex, who went into the garden to look for the ingredients. Thanks to his amazing eidetic memory, he knew where every single one of the ingredients was, so he didn''t need to spend a lot of time this time around. Within half an hour, to the utter shock of the two elders, Alex came out of the garden and went to the other one. It took him a little more than half an hour on this site, but that was still a very unbelievable time. He handed the collected ingredients back to the elders whose expression was just shock and amazement. After return back to his residence, he rested a bit and started trying out new pills. He started with a pill called Hundred Poisons Antidote. It was a pill that could cure almost any poison so long as it was produced by a plant or monster in the self tempering realm. He followed the recipe and made the pill with the cauldron''s lid closing the escape. The energies would run out of the cauldron every time he had to put in a new ingredient, but it still helped a lot to keep most of the energies in. He managed to successfully create the Hundred Poisons Antidote on the very first try. That too with a whopping 28% Harmony. He tried some more and managed to make 5 more pills out of the remaining 3 sets of ingredients. All of those pills ranged from 30% to 36%. He was really happy with the result. He was mentally fatigued by the 4th time, so he decided to take some rest, and recharge himself. He felt like he had stabilized his cultivation enough and decided to break through once more. He opened his status and hit a breakthrough. He had enough Qi right now, so he didn''t want to cultivate. So, he decided to just quit for the day, and sleep. He logged out of the game for the first time in a while during the night and just fell asleep. "Alex!! Alex!!" he heard someone calling his name. He slowly opened his eyes and saw Logan calling him. "What''s up?" he asked in a hoarse voice. "It''s 7 am. Wake up. We are going to get some breakfast." Logan said. "You guys go ahead, I will go soon." He said and walked into the bathroom. He washed his face with cold water and started brushing his teeth. ''How come I wake up so accurately in the game, yet someone else had to wake me up in here?'' he wondered. He went to get some breakfast too and returned back soon. He logged back in to learn some more from his master. Just like yesterday, Ma Rong came at around 8 am and taught him for 2 hours. She asked him a few questions to see how much he had understood but soon realized how redundant that was since he had opened up his spiritual sea and now had an eidetic memory. "How many pills did you make yesterday?" she asked him. "I made around 23 pills during the day and 6 during the night," he replied confidently. "Show me," she said, asking him to bring out the pills. "Master, I already sold all the pills I made during the day. I only have the ones I made last night." "What? Why would you sell them? Never mind. Those are your pills and you are free to do with them whatever you please. But remember, keep some pills above 20% harmony. You need to register them to become a core disciple." She reminded. "Oh, that''s right. I almost forgot master. I will keep that in mind." They focused back on the alchemy. Ma Rong watched him make pills and realized he was extremely talented at it. Perhaps, if he had the same cultivation as her, he would have surpassed her long ago. She took out a talisman and handed it to him. Alex wondered what this talisman did. The first two talismans he got had high-level information on alchemy, and the third one was a communication talisman. He quickly scanned the talisman and found out he couldn''t understand a single word in it. Still, he read it all the way through and when he got to the end, suddenly something popped up in front of him. He had just learned a new technique. Chapter 70:Elemental Guidance Usage ''Did I just learn a technique?'' Alex was surprised by the sudden notification. He quickly opened up the notification to look at the description of the newly learned technique called ''Elemental Guidance''. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Elemental Guidance: Level 1 Grade: Earth (Max) Level 1: Unlocked: Able to somewhat control the openly moving elements. ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª ''Oh, an Earth grade technique. But why does it have Max next to the grade? Is that like growth? Also, it says Level 1 unlocked, but there seems to be no sign of level 2. What a weird technique,'' he thought. The technique made him quite curious. According to the technique, he can now control the elements while making pills. Or at least show some semblance of control. He looked at the technique description once more and wondered if Max instead of Growth meant that this ability was already at its highest level. If that was the case then what was the point of letting someone know Level 1 was unlocked when that was literally all that was that could be used. Ma Rong looked at his blank face and said, "That is an Earth Grade technique called ''Elemental Guidance'' it is a simple technique that guides elements inside the cauldron. " "Although you can guide the elements, that doesn''t necessarily mean you can tell them what they do. It is like opening a small waterway near a river, and hoping the water flows there." "The purpose of this technique is to keep as much elemental energy inside the cauldron as possible, and not leak a lot. Plus, you guide the energy towards the power, although that doesn''t mean the powder will observe it all." " Still, you will lose quite a bit of energy since the technique isn''t full proof. However, you should be able to greatly decrease your losses and increase your pill''s harmony levels." "Learn this technique by tomorrow, and I will test you on how well you have gotten. Also, make sure to register at least 2 20% harmony pills by the end of the day." Ma Rong left after saying this. Alex''s lesson hadn''t been as intense today as it was yesterday. Still, it was quite fruitful, to say the least. The technique worked worse than his pill separating Qi that randomly started. The pill separating Qi controlled all of the energies while this technique only guided it a bit. Still, after using it in a couple of pills, he realized that his pills were getting about a 5% bump in harmony levels. Every single pill he made now was above the 25% harmony levels. This technique also helped him in a way he didn''t know he needed. Since the technique kept the energies from running away from the cauldron, whenever his second pill would form inside the cauldron, both of the pills showed a massive increase in harmony as well. He logged out for a bit to get some food and came back to start making some pills again. He still had over 80% of his original batch of ingredients. If he counted in terms of sets of ingredients, then he had about a bit less than 100 sets of different ingredients. Aside from the sets of ingredients, he also had a bunch of extra ingredients that didn''t go together on any pills. He made a few more pills until a bit past noon. Each of the pills an actual Earth Grade pill. After he was done making pills, he took the cauldron and started refining it. It had only been a day, so he had a bit of a problem pouring in his Qi, so he didn''t bother dropping in his blood yet. He would wait for a few more days when his Qi would more easily pour into the cauldron. He walked outside and saw the clouds hanging in the sky. ''Is it finally gonna rain today?'' he thought. He walked among the shades down the mountain. He decided not to register the pills for now, but rather when he had all 20 of the pills at once. He assumed the auction would be over by now, so he went to the auction house to get his money. It took him about half an hour to reach there. He walked up the stairs and a lady came up to him. This lady was different from the one that took him inside yesterday. "The auction is already in session so entering is no longer allowed now, please come back in a week if you want to take part in the auction." The lady spoke with a respectful tone. "Oh, the auction is still going on? I thought it would be over by now. I came back to take my money. Do you know how much longer the auction would go on for?" he asked the lady. The lady was surprised to see someone so young selling something. But once she saw the robe, she realized he must be an alchemist from the Hong Wu sect. "Can I see the contract to verify your claims, Daoist?" she spoke. "The contract?¡­ oh the talisman. Here it is," he took out the talisman the woman named Cai Ping gave him yesterday and handed it to the lady in front of him. Once she verified that he was in fact a seller, she took him to one of the rooms he had seen inside. "Please wait here. The auction''s end time usually varies depending on how many items are being sold, but it shouldn''t last more than half an hour from now." The lady said and bowed a little. She then walked out of the door before Alex could even reply. He had to wait upwards of 45 minutes in the room before the door to the room opened up, and Cai Ping walked in. Chapter 71:Auction Sales "Greetings, Daoist. I am so sorry you had to wait so long." Cai Ping apologized as she walked it. She constantly bowed and kept saying how sorry she was. For some reason, she had started calling him Daoist as well. "Oh, it''s ok. I don''t mind waiting," Alex got a little nervous seeing her bowing towards her so much. Cai Ping smiled a little and sat down on the couch opposite to where Alex was currently sitting. She seemed a little tired and distraught for some reason. "Are you okay, Miss Cai? You seem a little tired," he said. Cai Ping immediately straightened her posture and looked a little more active as she said, "I''m so sorry for showing you such a terrible sight." "Is working in an auction house that hard?" he asked. "Oh no, it''s usually really easy. But today was different. The auction was a bit hectic and to be honest, mentally exhausting," she laughed a bit and continued, " Your pills were actually the most problematic of all. Most alchemists don''t auction their pills, so when so many pills showed up at once, people kept bidding for it one after another. Those took a lot of time." "Does that mean all of my pills sold then?" he asked expectantly. He was really hoping to get the 80 spirit stones today. "Ah, yes. All of them sold. I believe the after-auction transactions are being completed right now, and someone will bring your total here." "Oh, okay," he said and waited for a bit longer. About 5 minutes or so later, a knock sounded from the door to the room. "Come in," Cai Ping spoke from inside. A middle-aged man walked in and bowed to Cai Ping. He then turned to Alex and bowed once again. Alex wasn''t used to being bowed at so much, so he just nodded. The man walked up to Cai Ping and handed her a bag. Cai Ping looked at the bag for a bit and nodded to the man, who then walked away. "Your money after the reduction is here, Daoist," she spoke. "Your monster corpse sold for a bit more than expected and brought in 15 common spirit stones. After reduction, you get 13 common spirit stones and 50 gold coins." Alex was surprised when he heard that. ''13 common spirit stones are about 120 dollars right?'' he thought. Cai Ping then continued, " Your pills, however¡­ I have never been so wrong on my estimate before." Alex frowned. ''Wrong on her estimate? Does that mean I am not getting the full 80 spirit stones she said?'' he started to get disheartened. He was hoping for quite a bit of money, but from her talk, it seemed like the pills didn''t do as well. Then, Cai Ping said, "I can''t believe they sold for so much more." "Huh? They didn''t do badly?" he asked. "Badly? Of course not. They did amazing in the auction. Far better than I had anticipated." She took out a talisman and started reading something. "We sold all of your pills separately, which was why the auction took so much longer than usual. First off, we sold your Qi improving pill. We started from the ones with the lowest harmony to the highest." "These were commonly found pills, so they didn''t sell for a lot. Still, the 12 pills in total brought us about 42 common spirit stones." "The next pills we sold were the swift feet pills. While uncommon, people didn''t require them a lot so it didn''t get a lot of bids, but still somehow managed to be sold for 32 spirit stones for the 5 pills." "Next we sold the 2 face-changing pills. These pills sold quite a bit as they were very rare. These pills had quite a few bids compared to others. The 26% harmony face changing pill sold for 15 spirit stones, and the 35% harmony face changing pill sold for 28 spirit stones. I had no idea this was how receptive the audience would be to these pills." "Lastly, the 4 Qi Enhancing pills. We sold them last because people really cared about pills that helped them break through their bottlenecks and helped them increase their cultivation. As expected, they did really well. Perhaps, too well." "It seemed due to the rarity of one of the ingredients for this pill, people hadn''t been able to get this pill made by the alchemists at all. So, when they heard we were auctioning Earth grade Qi Enhancing pills, they really bid in droves to get it." "Similar to the other pills, we started with the one that had the lowest harmony and moved our way to the highest. In total, the 4 different pills actually ended up selling for 83 common spirit stones." Alex had stopped converting the spirit stones to dollars long ago as he heard the number of spirit stones grow higher and higher. Cai Ping looked at his shocked eyes and found some mutual feelings in them. She too had been similarly shocked when she presented the pills to the audience. He really did get 194 common spirit stones. That was really a lot. "When is your next auction?" he asked Cai Ping. She didn''t think much about the question and answered, "It the next Saturday. Though that will be a rather big auction since it''s our bi-annual auction, where only items above 5 spirit stones are sold and the auction itself lasts longer than usual." Alex stayed quiet and thought for a bit. ''I should be able to finish making the pills by the next Wednesday, maybe even Tuesday if I really tried.'' "Can I come back next Friday to put more items in auction?" he asked. Cai Ping looked at him with a confused look and asked, "Do you have something else to sell, Daoist?" Chapter 72:Another Rock Alex heard her ask the question and answered, "Oh, yes. I was thinking about selling some more pills. Is that alright? It did cause a bit of a problem from what I heard." "Oh absolutely. But, we can only take in items by Wednesday. We will be getting a large number of items to sell for the bi-annual auction and will have to tally the items and send out information about the items we will be auctioning. So, if you have more pills to sell, you will have to get it in by Wednesday." Alex thought for a while. ''I should be able to complete the pills by Wednesday right? Especially if I make them throughout the night as well,'' he speculated. "Alright then, I will bring some more pills by Wednesday. Thank you for selling my pills," he said and started walking out of the door. "Wait for a second, Daoist," Cai Ping hurriedly stopped him. "What is it?" "Umm¡­ can you tell me who you are?" she really wanted to know his name now. "Oh, I haven''t introduced myself, have I? I am so sorry about that. My name is Yu Ming, and I am a disciple of Hong Wu Sect." He nodded and walked out before she could say anything. Alex went straight back to the sect. There was nothing as of yet that he had to do, so he decided to go back to his residence. He walked along the way when suddenly he sensed something. ''This feeling¡­'' he walked towards where he felt the thing. Somehow, unlocking his spiritual sense had far sharpened his senses, so he could feel it from quite far away. Following the feeling brought him close to the sect market. He walked into the market and went to one of the disciples who was setting up a vendor there. "Hello brother, How much do you want for this stone here?" he asked the male disciple setting up the vendor. The thing Alex was pointing to was a small stone that was slightly yellow in color. This was the same type of stone that he had found in the sect market that one time, the same stone that had turned his Qi to Yang Qi. "This stone? You can take it for 80 points brother." The disciple said. Alex paid the amount and took the stone. Then he asked, "Can you tell me where you found this stone, brother?" The man thought for a while and said, "I think I found in on the ground in the forbidden fields while I was suspended." "Forbidden fields? What''s that?" he asked. "Don''t you know about the Forbidden Fields? It a place where disciples are sent for a period of time as punishment. You have to survive in that treacherous place on your own." The man said. "Punishment? Does that mean there are a lot of monsters in there? It must''ve been dangerous," Alex sympathized with the man. "What? No. There are no monsters. In fact, there are no plants or animals either. The worst part is there is no Qi either. You have you survive on your own in that place with no Qi, and since your Qi gets used up, you start to get hungry and don''t have anything to eat either." "Plus, it''s mostly just grassland, followed by an unending desert. It''s truly one of the worst places you can be in." The man said with a scared face remembering what it had been like. ''I should ask master about it. If I can find more of these, that would be awesome.'' He thought and left the sect market. He was walking towards his residence, lost in his own thoughts when suddenly he heard someone calling for him. "Hmm¡­" he quickly sent out his spiritual sense to see who was calling him and saw a certain man walking towards him. "Oh hey, Brother Kong. Long time no see." He said as he waved towards Kong Yuhan who was steadily approaching him along with a few different people with him. "Long time no see? What a weird way to greet you have there, Brother Yu," Kong Yuhan arrived and stood in front of him. ''Do they not say long time to see in this game? I should probably stop saying that,'' he thought. "What are you doing here, Brother Kong?" Alex looked at the 3 people behind Kong Yuhan, who had a curious expression behind him. "Hopefully same thing you are here for, Brother Yu," Kong Yuhan pointed behind Alex. Alex looked back and saw the Alchemy hall behind him. ''Does he think I am here for Alchemy?'' he thought. "You are quite chummy with an outer sect disciple, huh Kong?" one of the men standing behind him said. "Of course. You don''t know how much he helped me the past week. He brought me the very rare Dwarf Fruit, and also aided me with creating a Qi Enhancing Pill. It isn''t much of a stretch to say I broke through to Meridian Tempering only because of him. " Kong Yuhan was quite genuine when he said that. Alex checked the 3 people behind Kong Yuhan and realized they all had Organ Tempering realm power. The man that just spoke had an organ tempering 5th realm, while the other man had Organ Tempering 4th realm. The girl on the other hand was higher than the 2 and had an Organ Tempering 9th realm cultivation. Kong Yuhan saw Alex looking at the three behind him and finally remembered to introduce them. "Oh, I forgot to introduce you guys. This is brother Yu Ming. Brother Yu, this is Wei Xun," he pointed at the man who had talked, " This is Jia Fen, " he pointed at the other man, "and finally this is Zhou Mi." Alex nodded to them and greeted them. Both the males reciprocated with their own greetings, while the lady only nodded a little. She didn''t seem to be the talking type. Chapter 73:Ascension "Ascend? What do you mean?" Alex was a little confused by the statement. He had never heard of someone ''ascending'' in-game or out of the game. ''Does this have something to do with alchemists?'' he wondered. He didn''t have any friends he talked to regularly, so he didn''t know a lot about the practices in the sect. Even Kong Yuhan was merely just an acquaintance to him. Kong Yuhan looked like he had realized something when he saw Alex''s confused face and said, "Ah, I forgot it hasn''t been long since you got here. Ascending means going from being an outer sect disciple to an inner sect disciple or an inner sect disciple to a core disciple." " In my case, I am one step away from being a core disciple. I have brought a few sets of ingredients with me today, and if I made to make a single pill with over 20% harmony, I can take the exam to become a core disciple." "Ah" Alex made a sound of understanding. But then he thought of something, "Brother Kong! If you have to take an exam after creating this pill, then why not call the exam the Ascension. Why call it this one?" "Well that''s because it''s a tradition," the silent man name Jia Fen finally spoke. "You know the reason, brother Jia?" Kong Yuhan turned around to ask the man. "Yes. Going back a couple dozens of years ago when the sect wasn''t as big as it is now, you could promote from being an outer sect disciple or inner sect disciple just by making the required amount of pills, and didn''t have to take any tests back then." "So, when it came to the final pill before promotion, the disciples started calling it ''The Ascension''. But, once the sect got more popular and started getting more and more disciples, they found out that disciples had started to sneakily promote themselves by using pills made by others." "The elders couldn''t keep track of everyone''s pills back then, so they started making the disciples take tests for it. They should have stopped after creating the sect running formation a few years back, but the exam was just an extra layer of security that they didn''t want to get rid of." The man named Jia Fen spoke quite a bit and explained it quite well. "Is that so¡­ anyway, Brother Yu, do you want to come to watch? I brought these 3 to watch as well." Kong Yuhan asked quite expectantly. Alex thought for a bit and decided to skip the afternoon lunch today. "Sure brother Kong, I can probably learn something from it as well" Together the 5 walked into the Alchemy hall. It didn''t take Kong Yuhan long to find an empty room and immediately entered it. Alex and the other 3 also followed behind him to the room. "Do you want me to aid, Brother Kong?" the girl finally spoke and walked forward. "Ah, thank you for your kind intentions, Sister Zhou. But I will have to refuse. In the exam, I will have to make the pills on my own, so I should start making pills on my own, without any aids." Kong Yuhan started preparing by keeping aside the black cauldron and taking out his own cauldron. He started heating his cauldron and took a deep breath as he started meditating. Alex didn''t know what pills he was going to make, or what ingredients he was going to use. He waited in anticipation to find out. After a bit of time had passed, and the cauldron was finally heated, Kong Yuhan took out the first ingredient and put it in. Alex saw the ingredient and thought, '' A Slim Bane Treeleaf huh, that means he must be making one of 4 different pills.'' After a while, Kong Yuhan took out a second ingredient and put it in. This one gave Alex no information, as this ingredient followed the first one in every single one of his recipes. ''His cauldron isn''t transferring the heat fast enough. The energy in the second ingredient isn''t controlling the first one as quickly as it should.'' Alex could see the minute errors in Kong Yuhan''s alchemy process thanks to his spiritual sense. Even while standing so far away, he could see the happenings in the cauldron very clearly. Then Kong Yuhan put his third ingredient and put it in. ''Huh?'' Alex was surprised. ''That''s not one of the ingredients from a recipe I know. Did he get a recipe somewhere out of the sect?'' Alex watched as Kong Yuhan put in more and more ingredients to make a pill that he had absolutely no idea about. Finally, after a while, the pill came out. Kong Yuhan frowned a little after seeing the pill''s harmony. He took out a pill tester and tested the harmony of his new pill. As soon as the pill touched the base of the glass, the fog appeared from the metal base and started crawling along the side of the tester, until it stopped. Kong Yuhan looked at the number as sighed. "Only 16%. Not having an aid really does make it hard. Especially when it''s a new pill like mine." Kong Yuhan cleaned the cauldron in preparation for another batch. "Don''t fret brother. You still have quite a few sets left. You can do it." Jia Fen encouraged from the side. "Yes, Brother Kong. You don''t have to get disheartened." Zhou Mi encouraged as well. Alex and the other man stayed quiet but gave encouraging nods towards him. Kong Yuhan smiled a little. "You guys are right. This won''t stop me at all. This was only my first time so I failed. The next times will be different." Kong Yuhan switched his attention back to the cauldron and prepared for the second batch of ingredients. Chapter 74:Unstable Concoction Kong Yuhan held a pill inside a pill tester. The fog slowly rose up from the bottom of the glass and started going upwards. Everyone in the room watched as the fog reached the number 16. They watched with bated breaths as the fog slowly rose up to the number 17. "Go up. Go up," they slowly chanted wanting the pill fog to keep on going up. 18. "Just 2 more. Go. Go." Kong Yuhan was full of sweat watching it. 19. "Just once more," Kong Yuahn shouted with his voice full of hope. Alas, the fog didn''t rise up. "No!!! I was so close." Kong Yuhan got dejected. This was his third try at making the pill. The second one had ended up being an 18% harmony pill, so he had wished to make this one have 20% harmony. But his wish remained just that, a wish. "Alright, I will surely make the next one be it." He got back to making the pill once more without anyone''s encouragement. Kong Yuhan had never focused this much in his life before as he did on the 4th pill. He focused from the start to the very end, careful at every turn, and made as few mistakes as possible. ''This turn has quite a few amounts of mistakes. Maybe he will succeed now.'' Alex was constantly checking the inside with his spiritual sense. As long he didn''t try to strain his senses, his spiritual sense would last for a while. After Kong Yuhan finished making the pill and took it out to put it in the pill tester. Once more the crowd watched as the fog started to rise up. The fog quickly rose up to 16% before slowing down. 17%. 18%. 19%. The pill tester started to shake a little as Kong Yuhan''s had started trembling with nervousness. 20%. "YES!" Kong Yuhan shouted. "Congratulations, Brother Kong. You are now eligible to become a Core disciple." Everyone started congratulating him one after another. "Hehe," Kong Yuhan embarrassed a little over the bombardment of congratulations. His large physical build with an embarrassed face was something you didn''t see every day. "How long has it been since we came here?" Kong Yuhan asked the group. "I think it''s been about an hour and a half. Definitely more than an hour for sure." Wei Xun spoke from the back. Everyone else nodded. "Oh. That means the room already took my contribution points. Might as well finish the final pill." Kong Yuhan started preparing for the next batch of ingredients. The others also waited for him to make the last pill. Kong Yuhan wiped away his sweat and started once more. He had already ascended so he had no worries for this particular. He was already tired from making 4 different pills, especially the last one. Plus, he had no need to do everything perfectly, so he was a bit too relaxed while making the pill. He ended up making more mistakes than usual. Alex caught all of those mistakes. ''He is not getting the timing right. He keeps dropping the ingredients a bit too late, so the energies aren''t getting properly harmonized.'' If only the ingredients were burnt and charred instead of turning to powder, the energy could have escaped from the cauldron. But, since they were all powder, the unstable energies were getting taken in by the powder making the powder itself massively unstable. "Oh no," Kong Yuhan lost control of the situation. ''It''s going to blow up!'' Alex immediately shot out forwards and used Qi manipulation to throw away the entire cauldron to the corner of the room. BOOM A massive explosion rang out from the corner, throwing heaps and heaps of energies towards their direction. Almost instinctively, Alex brought forth his hands and used Elemental Guidance to steer away as much energy from the explosion as possible. Everyone in the room had a disheveled look as the ringing from the explosion still rung in their ears. "What the hell are you doing?" Jia Fen immediately cried out. Alex turned around to see Jia Fen charging at him with the intention to harm. Alex didn''t understand why he would do that but immediately used his Qi manipulation to stop him. Due to their massive gap in cultivation, he was only able to stop his for a few seconds before Jia Fen got free from his clutches and came for him once more. "Wait brother Jia, It was my fault." Kong Yuhan got out of his stupor and stopped the fight. "What?" It wasn''t just Jia Fen who was confused by the statement. Wei Xun also came forward looking for an answer. "I was too relaxed and ended up making the ingredients unstable. If brother Yu didn''t throw it away in time, I would have been seriously injured right now." "So, he didn''t do it on purpose?" Jia Fen was still quite skeptical about it. "No. In fact, I had already lost control of the ingredients. It was brother Yu''s quick thinking that saved us." Kong Yuhan looked towards the wall. The wall itself had no problems, but the cauldron was now in pieces. "Aww¡­ I will have to pay quite a few points for this." Kong Yuhan turned around to look at the other 4, focusing especially on Zhou Mi, and said, "Thankfully, none of you were hurt." "I''m sorry for assuming you did it on purpose, Brother Yu." Jia Fen apologized when he got the chance. "It''s okay." Alex understood why he was mad. He would probably get mad himself if he saw what had just happened. They all left the Alchemy hall and said their goodbyes. Kong Yuhan kept thanking him for saving him. Alex split from the group and went back to his residence. He looked at the time and saw it was 5 pm. ''I should be able to squeeze out 4 or 5 pills before it''s time for dinner.'' Chapter 75:Wednesday Alex logged out to get some food after making 6 pills before dinner. He hadn''t skipped the lunch today so he was feeling unusually peckish. After dinner, he logged back to the game and went to the sect valley for his daily work. He took his time and only reached the valley around half past 8. It didn''t even take him an hour in total to pick up all the ingredients. After he was done, he immediately ran back up the mountain to make some more pills. Throughout the entire night, he managed to make around 22 pills. Today was a free day too, so he decided to make pills once more. He spent the entire day in the alchemy room, making pills whenever possible. In fact, his next three days went the same way. Every morning, he would have a lesson with his master, and afterward, he would make pills whenever possible. Finally, on Wednesday, he managed to make a total of 135 different pills. Surprisingly, all of the pills were in the Earth Grade, not one pill below 25%. He looked at the remaining ingredients he had in his bag. ''Hmm¡­ if I get some ingredients from the alchemy garden, I should be able to make a few more pills than I can register.'' He still had the 194 spirit stones he got from the auction house. He wanted to transfer it immediately to his bank account but didn''t since he wanted to see if there were anything important in the auction. He wanted to buy something himself too. Still, he wouldn''t waste much of the spirit stones and together with what he would get from the auction house after selling the current pills, he would transfer them all at once. Once he was ready, he left the sect leader''s mountain at some time around 4 am. It took him about half an hour to reach the auction house. The path felt quite short this time around for him. "Yes," Alex let the new lady take him to one of the waiting rooms inside the auction house. After waiting for a while, Cai Ping walked in through the door. "Ah, good to see you, Madam Cai. I am surprised I only meet you when I come to the auction house." He jokingly greeted the sitting Cai Ping. "You jest, Daoist Yu. You only see me because I ordered the juniors to let me know when you came." Cai Ping properly seated herself on the couch opposite Alex. "So, what do you have for us to Auction, Daoist Yu? More pills, I presume." Cai Ping looked at Alex expectantly, waiting for him to take out the batch of pills. "Yes, Of course. I am an alchemist after all." Alex said with a smile as he reached into his bag and carefully took out 5 bottles, so as to not harm the pills inside. Cai Ping''s eyes lit up as she saw that the 5 newly arrived bottles were all filled with 5 different pills. ''25 pills?'' she was happy to see that. Then something weird happened. Alex reached back into his bag and took out 5 more pill bottles, each filled with 5 pills. "Umm¡­ Daoist Yu? This is?" she asked. "These are pills of course." Alex reached back into his bag and took 5 more bottles. Cai Ping started to breathe faster as she saw the 5 new bottles. ''How many pills does he have?'' she looked at the 15 different pill bottles and counted 75 pills in total. That was an enormous amount. But then, Alex reached into his bag and took out 5 more bottles. "What!!" she freaked out. The newly brought-out bottles were filled with 5 pills each as well. "What''s wrong madam Cai?" Alex was surprised at her loud exclamation. "Oh, I''m sorry. I showed you something unsightly. I was just surprised that you brought forth so many pills. Did the Hong Wu sect send you as an ambassador for this time''s auction, Daoist Yu?" Cai Ping was still calming down from the sight in front of her, but every time she saw the pill bottles laid out in front of her, her eyes would get wide and she would start breathing faster. "Hong Wu Sect sends ambassadors? I didn''t know that. Unfortunately, I am not that. I just wanted to earn some money from my sold pills, so I came here." He then reached into his bag and brought out another 5 bottles. This time, however, they weren''t completely filled and had about 3 or 4 pills each. He reached back into his bag and took out 5 more bottles with less amount. Cai Ping just wasn''t used to this many pills being taken out at once by a single person. ''And he said he made all the pills by himself? Impossible.'' It really was a very hard thing to believe. Alex finally took out 10 more bottles, each with a single pill inside. Alex looked at 2 of the bottles with a single pill each. There were some pills in other bottles too, but these 2, in particular, were his best alchemy result to date. The first one was a Hundred Poison Antidote that had a shockingly high harmony of 40%. The next one was a different pill, something he made just this morning. It was a pill called the Healing Lotus pill. Its main ingredient was a Lotus that grew on earth. It was something he had found in the southern forest. The Healing Lotus pill itself was one of the best pills he knew of. The pill was regarded as the number one healing pill below the True pills. There was no other healing pill that could rival its healing power. And somehow, he had managed to make this pill with a harmony of 45%. This pill was also to this day, the pill with the highest harmony level he had made. Chapter 76:White... "There are a total of 135 pills in here. All of them are Earth Grade pills. You can check them as you please." Alex then showed the two pills in his hand and said, "These 2 are my best pills yet. This is a Hundred Poisons Antidote with 40% harmony, and this is a Healing Lotus pill with 45% harmony. Please be careful with them." He let Cai Ping take everything into her own bag. Cai Ping, however, was still in her shock and didn''t manage to get out of it in time. Only after a while did she realize that she was dazed and hurriedly took out a pill tester to check the pills. 28%, 32%, 27%, 29%, 38% ¡­ 26%, 40%, and 45%. Cai Ping reeled in her shock as she carefully tested each of the pills. In total, there were about 8 total types of pills here. "Do you have anything else to sell?" Cai Ping asked him, but she didn''t expect him to bring out anything. "Oh, no. These are the only ones I have, unfortunately. If I had more ingredients, I might have been able to squeeze in 4 or 5 pills, but that''s it. Making so many pills in 4 days took a lot of physical and mental effort" Cai Ping suddenly stopped what she was doing and looked back at Alex. With a peculiar smile, she asked, "Umm¡­ Daoist Yu, did I mishear, or did you just say you made all of these pills in 4 days?" "Hmm¡­ oh yeah. Well, I made some on Saturday night, but others I made in the last 4 days." Alex didn''t mind clarifying her confusion. Cai Ping had a really hard time believing it. She already didn''t believe it was him who made the pills, but hearing him say he made them in 4 days just made it even more unbelievable. She decided to inquire a bit. "Daoist Yu, from what I have heard of Hong Wu sect, they say you guys have to make 10 pills with 10% harmony to become an inner sect, and 20 pills with 20% harmony to become a core disciple, is that true?" "Yes, that''s true." Alex got confused. ''Why would she ask me this?'' "Then why is Daoist Yu still an outer sect disciple, if you don''t mind me asking." "Well, things are kind of complicated in the sect regarding me." Alex scratched his head with a bit of embarrassment. "Shouldn''t you be a Core disciple by now, with all of these pills you have made?" Cai Ping thought she was getting closer and closer to getting him to slip and fess up who really made the pills. "Oh no. I am a long way from being a core disciple. To become one, We have to give away the pills to the sect for the pills to count. Also, each pill has to be from a different recipe. Since I wanted to sell my pills instead of giving it away, I still haven''t been able to become a core disciple. Although I hope to become one in the near future." Alex was quite confident in his answer. Cai Ping on the other hand got dejected that she couldn''t make him tell who really made the pills. ''I can almost guarantee that he is just an errand boy for someone more important. But still, on the off chance he is a genuine golden goose, I cannot offend him.'' "Why don''t we set up the contract now?" Cai Ping said as she took one of the talismans laying on the ground and wrote it will everything Alex had brought to her. She then signed the paper with a signature using her Qi and handed it to Alex. "By the way, Daoist Yu. We will have to use a name to represent the pills here. Do you mind if we use your real name or do you want to use some other names?" Alex thought for a bit. ''A different name? Like a nickname huh, what should I name myself?'' He couldn''t think of anything to call himself. He thought of calling himself ''Alchemy God'', but immediately erased the idea since that was way too pretentious and most definitely a lie. He looked around the room hoping for inspiration. He looked at his own body as well looking for just anything that can help provide him with an idea for his name. Suddenly, he stopped. He slowly brought up his right hand to touch his left arm. More accurately, He touched the scar on his left arm. Then, he suddenly remembered back to the wolf that gave him this wound, and he also remembered the cats that were there. The cats that he fought the wolf to protect. He remembered the giant mother cat with its bright white fur covered in blood. ''White¡­ White Wolf.'' Alex smiled. That wasn''t a bad name if he said so himself. "White Wolf, You can use the name White Wolf for me." Cai Ping smiled as well. "White Wolf, huh. I quite like that name. I shall refer to you as White Wolf from now on in the stage, Daoist Yu." "By the way, Madam Cai is it okay if I come to the auction. I don''t know if I can buy anything, but I just wanted to see what an auction was like." Cai Ping laughed a little, "You are more than welcomed to be in the auction, Daoist Yu. We shall prepare a VIP room for you." "Oh, no. That''s not necessary. I can manage in a normal room as well. Please give your VIP room to the guests who can actually buy something." Cai Ping smiled and complied. Alex took the contract and bid farewell to Cai Ping. He walked out of the auction house and reached his residence back in the sect in about half an hour. He had made it in time for dinner, so he logged out. Chapter 77:Missing Ingredients "Good Evening, Elder Wang. Is the list ready yet?" Alex arrived at the foot of the alchemy garden late at night. He had purposefully waited as much as he could without doing anything before coming here. "Oh, you are here, Disciple Yu. Yes, Elder Zhan has prepared the list. Here you go." He handed Alex the list of ingredients. Over the last couple of days, Alex had come to know the elders quite well. He respected them as elders and they respected him as someone with talent. They would still be surprised every time he walked out of the garden within an hour. "How do you do it, Disciple Yu? The mountain is quite huge, so how do you manage to find the ingredients so fast." The elders asked. "Oh, hehe¡­ that''s a secret. I can tell you that it''s because I know where every single ingredient is already. So I just go and take it. I don''t have to waste time searching for it." Ma Rong had told him not to reveal anyone about his Spiritual sense yet, so he tried to work around the question and answer them without really answering the question. "I''ll be off then, Elder Wang." Alex walked into the valley in search of the ingredients. He quickly scanned the list and thought of where all the ingredients were. ''There are 2 there, 3 next to that, only 1 near the top¡­'' he revised the locations in his mind and walked off. Ingredients started to fly on their own and landed inside his storage bag. His Qi manipulation and Spiritual sense coordination had gotten just that good. One after another, he started finding all the ingredients in the list. It took him half an hour to finish it all, so he walked out. "Always so punctual, aren''t you? Disciple Yu. " Elder Wang spoke as he saw Alex coming out of the garden. Alex just smiled and said, "I will head to the other garden." He walked across the valley to the other garden and entered. He once again started looking for the ingredients. "Hmm¡­ it''s missing." Alex knew for sure there was an ingredient here yesterday, but there wasn''t one anymore. ''Did some animal take it?'' he wondered. He kept on looking for the other ingredients. Once more he found another ingredient missing. "That''s the second time. Is there really some animal in here?" He searched for more ingredients. By the end, he found about 4 different ingredients missing. And those were just ones he searched for because of the list. ''Let''s check everything.'' He immediately sent out his spiritual sense and looked at all of the different ingredients growing in the valley. He found out more than 20 ingredients had been stolen by now. He quickly thought of the materials and realized they were ingredients for the pill [Heart Stopping pill]. It was a common-grade pill that would kill anyone below the Mind Tempering realm by solidifying their blood and stopping their heart from pumping blood. The only thing that could possibly save a person that had taken a Heart Stopping pill was either the Healing Lotus pill or a True Grade healing pill. He didn''t know of any pills other than that, that could possibly save a person. Of course, this was with his limited knowledge of 200 pills. There were many other pills out there that he had no idea about. "Master, I thought I was the only one allowed to pick from the gardens for now. Someone else is taking ingredients for a Heart Stopping pill in the alchemy garden." He sent out a message using the communication talisman Ma Rong gave him. He walked out of the valley and gave the ingredients to elder Wang and elder Zhan. "You took quite some time today, Disciple Yu? Were the ingredients hard to find this time around?" Elder Wang asked. "Oh, no. I just found some ingredients missing from where they should have been. So I looked around for a while and realized that a lot of ingredients had been taken in the last few days. Are elders allowed to take away ingredients nowadays? I thought I was the only one." Elder Wang and Zhan lost their joking smiles and immediately got serious. "Someone took away ingredients? Are you sure you didn''t make any mistake?" "No. I counted and realized about 20 ingredients were missing. All ingredients required for a Heart Stopping pill are missing." Elder Wang contemplated a little. "If that is true then we need to call the sect leader." "No need. I am already here." Ma Rong flew down to where Alex and the elders were. "You said somebody took ingredients for a Heart Stopping pill? " She asked Alex. "Yes. I don''t know when they were taken as I only found out about them missing today, but I can guarantee they were there 3 days ago, and I did not pick them." Ma Rong knew about the amazing memory of someone with a spiritual sea so she believed him instantly. "Who had entered aside from my disciple?" Ma Rong looked to the elders. The elders only stood outside every day and took requests from the disciples so they didn''t know. Ma Rong immediately sent out a sect-wide message for every elder who had to enter the garden within the last 5 days to gather here. Within 10 minutes, a group of about 10 elders was standing in front of Ma Rong. "Did anyone of you take out ingredients from the garden in the last 5 days?" Everybody denied having taken any ingredients. At least not since the sect leader took away their authority too. Ma Rong frowned and took out 2 pill bottles, and 10 pills flew out of them to the elders'' hand. The elders had a confused look as they looked at the pill. Immediately, their eyes went wide with shock. All of the elders knew what the pill was. Chapter 78:Questioning "Eat it," Ma Rong said as they looked at the elders standing in front of her. Her cold eyes and voice made all the elders shiver. The majority of the elders ate it at once, while a few reluctantly followed. Suddenly, their eyes started to get lazy and their arms limped a little. Their entire body posture slumped and they have no emotions on their face. "Now, Answer me again. Did anyone of you take away ingredients from the alchemy garden in the last 5 days?" """ No"""" A collective answer came out of all the elders. The elders once again all denied it. Ma Rong looked confused. There was no way someone below the saint realm could possibly lie after eating a Truth-Seeking Pill. She dismissed the elders. After they started recovering once again, they left. Ma Rong got to thinking once more. If it was not one of them, then it would be near impossible to catch the culprit unless they were stupid enough to make a transaction with the ingredients or the pill. Ma Rong immediately took out her medallion to check the records, and she found someone selling a Heart-Stopping pill. ''5 hours ago? By an outer sect disciple, no less.'' She checked the buying records of the disciple and found no ingredients for the pill. "Come, we are going somewhere." She grabbed Alex by the arm and started flying away. The two elders just stood there and watched them leave. Soon the sect leader and Alex were in the outer sect mountain, and Alex slowly flew down to one of the cottages. "You do the talking." His master''s voice rang inside his mind. ''Wow. She can already talk to my head? I forgot that was even possible with a spiritual sense.'' He simply nodded to his master and walked up to the cottage. Knock. Knock. A female disciple slowly opened the door and looked at Alex confusedly. "What do you want?" she asked in a very unfriendly tone. "I am here on behalf of the sect to ask you a question. You sold a Heart-Stopping pill with 22% harmony today. Did you make the pill by yourself?" Alex asked the girl. The girl was somewhere in her early 20s. As soon as she heard his words, she frowned. "How do you know that?" She started getting a little apprehensive. The girl started to get a little scared and answered, "I only sold the pill, I didn''t make it myself." ''Now we''re getting somewhere.'' "Can you tell us where you got the pill from?" he asked "Someone found me and asked me to sell the pill for them." Alex frowned a little. "Ask who it is." Ma Rong''s voice came to his head. "Who is it that asked you to do that?" " I don''t know. I only met the person today. They were wearing a black hood over his head, and said that if I sold the pill, I would get 10% of the contribution points from it." Alex fell into contemplation. "Do you remember how the person looked like? How did they act? Maybe their gender or even the fact about if they are disciples or elders?" The girl fell into thought. "I can''t tell if they were a disciple or elder, but they wore a really dark green robe underneath, so they must''ve either a core disciple or an elder. As for the gender, I think they are a male. They tried to hide it but my instinct said they were a male. Aside from that, I don''t know." "I only met them about 6 hours ago so I don''t know a lot about them. But, there was something weird about them. The person felt like a completely mortal person with no Qi. I can''t tell if that is helpful, but that''s all I have got." Alex nodded. "Oh right. I am supposed to get the ingredients I bought with the remaining 90% of the contribution pill to them in the sect market tonight at midnight." The girl suddenly shouted. "I see." Suddenly, a talisman fell from above. "Tell her to carry this with her." Ma Rong spoke to him. "Keep this on your person when you go to the sect valley tonight, just in case." Alex left the outer sect mountain. For a while, the walk to the sect valley was really silent. "This person is smart." Ma Rong spoke from above. "Not only are they making other people sell the pills made out of stolen ingredients, but they are also even making the other disciples buy the ingredients for them. They are doing absolutely nothing to get tracked by the sect running formation." "You are right, master. Who knows how many such stolen pills they have sold already." Alex was shocked that someone was deceiving the sect in such a manner. "I don''t have any hiding abilities, so everyone will see me if I keep flying in the sky like this, especially in the sect valley with all the light. And I can''t show up in the sect valley itself, since that might deter away from the culprit." She turned towards Alex and said, "So you will have to be the one to find this culprit. As soon as you see him, call me. Before that, I can''t be seen. " Ma Rong immediately flew away. ''What did I get myself into?'' Alex wondered as he got back to the sect valley. Thankfully, he was done making for the auction or he would have regretted finding out about the missing ingredients. He decided to wait for the culprit in the sect market, so he went and looked around the market as if he was looking through the different vendors. About 2 hours later, midnight arrived. And so did the female disciple. He stayed about 15 meters away, hidden in the crowd, constantly surveying the area around the lady, waiting for the culprit to arrive. Chapter 79:Song Zun Alex made sure he didn''t stand out in the crowd, so he split his attention keeping most of it on the woman and around her, and some of it on acting like he was there to buy something. He had his master''s communication talisman in his hands, ready to call her any moment. The female outer sect disciple seemed to not know where to find the person, so she looked around hoping the person would instead find her. Minutes passed by and nothing happened. Still, it was the only midnight now, so both Alex and the female disciple stayed there. The female disciple especially was in a jumpy mood. From her understanding, she had gotten involved with something bad and wanted to get out of it as soon as possible. If even the sect was after this person, then he must be really bad. Alex watched the woman''s nervousness increase as she started getting fidgety. She was still walking around the market, unsure if the person would even come. Suddenly, she turned stiff. "Have you brought the ingredients?" a voice entered the woman''s ears that made her jump. Alex had his spiritual sense on the woman, so he heard the voice too. ''It''s a man for sure. But where is he?'' he looked through the crowd towards the female disciple but saw nobody standing around her. ''This is weird.'' He immediately sent out his spiritual sense and found a figure in a cloak standing beside the woman. ''He''s invisible. And it''s just like she said, he has no aura or Qi. It''s almost like he is a mortal.'' Alex finally understood why he couldn''t see the man at all. Thankfully, he had a spiritual sense. The man''s techniques could hide his aura and Qi, and hide his body, but it couldn''t hide his figure from being seen with his spiritual sense. He looked at the man and was shocked. ''So young!'' the man didn''t look a day over 20. Alex looked at the robe linings and realized he was a core disciple. He immediately sent out a message. "Master, he''s here. It''s a core disciple. But be careful, he is invisible and has no qi or aura. Only your spiritual sense works on him." The man was giving off no qi so he couldn''t guess or see what his cultivation base was. "Give me the damn ingredients." The man demanded in the woman''s ears. The woman slowly took out a storage bag which the man immediately snatched. As soon as the bag left the woman''s hand, it vanished as well. The man started leaving and Alex started following. Suddenly, Ma Rong flew down from above. The man stopped and looked up to see the sect leader was landing nearby. But he didn''t seem to care much about it. He started walking away, still invisible. Most of the disciples at night were outer sect disciples who had never seen the sect leader, so when she dropped they only assumed an elder was flying. The elders from the stalls stopped what they were doing and walked out. "Sect leader, is something wrong? Why are you here?" they started wondering if they did something wrong during the sales today. Ma Rong ignored everyone and looked towards Alex. "Where?" She asked as soon as she flew down. Alex immediately pointed to the invisible man walking away, "There." The invisible man turned back to see Alex point directly towards him, his eyes staring right at him. Ma Rong looked in his direction as well and within seconds her eyes that were looking everywhere else suddenly locked onto him. "Not good." The man started to immediately run away, but there was no way he was going to be faster than the sect leader herself. Ma Rong caught up to him in what felt like a blink of an eye and immediately pushed him down to the ground by just releasing her cultivation base on him. The man stopped using his techniques and instead flared his cultivation base to struggle against the sect leader''s power. His figure was finally visible to all. Ma Rong saw the face and exclaimed with surprise. She immediately took him and flew off. Alex followed in their direction as well. Ma Rong landed in front of the elder''s hall surprising the many elders that were standing nearby. She had just been here a moment ago, and flew off with no indication, and came back just as quick. Now, she even had a core disciple with her. "What is going on, sect leader?" the elders asked. "Nothing. I just found a thief who has been stealing from the alchemy gardens." She said as she tossed him down. Alex arrived just in time to see the man look up to the numerous elders with fear creeping up in his eyes. "Song Zun?" the elders were surprised. "Are you sure there is no mistake here, sect leader? Song Zun is one of our best students. There is no way he could be a thief." Ma Rong sighed and said, "I know. But a thief is a thief. And we don''t look away from someone''s crime just because they are good." Alex looked at the man. ''Song Zun¡­ I''ve heard of that name somewhere before.'' He thought. He tried to remember, but couldn''t think of where he had heard of him. "What exactly did he do, sect leader? Couldn''t we pardon him with a little punishment if the crime isn''t that big?" one of the elders said. "Let''s see how big his crime is then, shall we?" Ma Rong pulled out a pill bottle and took out a single pill from it. It was the same Truth-seeking pill that she had given to the elders. She force-fed it to Song Zun, who immediately got passive with no emotion in his face. "Did steal the ingredients from the alchemy garden to make a Heart-Stopping pill?" she went directly for the question. Song Zun couldn''t lie or say anything other than the truth, so he simply said, "Yes." Chapter 80: Immortal Concealment Technique "Yes." As soon as the elders heard him confess to stealing something from the alchemy garden, they gasped. The alchemy garden was one of the forbidden lands in the sect that not everyone was given permission to enter. Only elders were allowed in it to pick the ingredients previously, but even that had changed. Now the elders were only allowed to care for the garden, and not pick up anything. That task was apparently given to the sect leader''s new disciple. The elders didn''t know if that was the right choice, but they heard nothing but praise from Elder Wang and Elder Zhan who took care of it now. So, when they heard that Song Zun had entered the alchemy garden to steal ingredients from it, they knew there was no pardoning him. Ma Rong was starting to get angry. "Why did you steal the ingredients and not buy it?" she asked. "I am not going to do these menial tasks just to buy something I can easily steal. All I want to do is make pills and nothing more" Song Zun said with a blank face. "Why do you want to make the pills so bad?" she asked. Alex was surprised to hear that as well. '' First in Alchemy Achievement¡­Alchemy Achievement¡­" suddenly he remembered something. ''That''s right. Song Zun is the name of the third-ranking disciple in Alchemy Achievement. He is the anomaly in the black rock who has a high alchemy achievement with a very poor contribution ranking. Does that mean he didn''t do many contributions to the sect at all?'' he suddenly thought of something. "How long ago did you join the sect?" he walked forward and asked Song Zun. "Hey who are you?" the elders cried out. "Go away disciple, this is not a place for you." Ma Rong suddenly shouted "Quiet!" and all the elders quietened down. She waited for Song Zun to reply. "4 years." He said. "Where are you going with this?" she asked Alex. Alex gestured her to wait and see and asked another question. "How long ago did you become a core disciple?" "1 year ago." Song Zun was still under the effect of the pill, and it didn''t look like it was going to go away soon. "And how many contribution points have you earned after becoming a core disciple?" he asked. Ma Rong started getting curious as to why he was asking such unrelated questions. "I make the weekly required 100 contribution points." Song Zun replied. "Then, where do you get the ingredients for your pills to rank third in the Alchemy Achievement?" as soon as she heard this question, Ma Rong''s eyes turned wide as she finally thought of a possibility that she had forgotten in the heat of the situation. She looked back at Song Zun, and the answer she dreaded came out of his mouth. "I steal all my ingredients from the alchemy gardens." Ma Rong immediately questioned "How many ingredients have you stolen so far?" the revelations were getting too much for her, but she still had to ask the question. Song Zun stayed quiet for this question. The deafening silence lasted for a few too many seconds before he opened his mouth to say, "I don''t know." Ma Rong was shocked. She changed the question, "Since when did you start stealing the ingredients?" This question he didn''t think at all and said, "3 and a half years." The pill''s effect ran out with the answer and Song Zun realized what he had just said. "No! No! That was a lie. That was wrong. I wasn''t thinking straight. Sect Master, please give me a chance. Elders, please help me. I am one of your best students. I am so close to becoming an Earth Grade alchemist. Please don''t punish me. I can change. Please." Ma Rong felt disgusted looking at his face. She scanned his body with her spiritual sense and pulled out 3 storage bags. She threw them each towards Alex and said, "This is your reward for your contribution tonight. If not for you, this criminal would have gone unnoticed by us." The elders were looking in shock as Alex took all 3 bags. Alex quickly scanned the bag and found most of the items inside were just alchemy materials, pills, and a few dozen spirit stones. There were also 2 books that he quickly scanned the cover of. One of them was called [Veiled light technique]. It was an Earth Grade technique that used Qi to cover one''s body with refracted light to make them invisible to the surrounding. This was what Song Zun was using to hide in the sect valley. The second book was perhaps the best book Alex had found as of yet. It was called the [Immortal Concealment Technique]. It was a technique that ran on its own and hid people''s cultivation base from others as well as their aura and Qi. To anyone that is not at least a major realm higher than the user, the user would appear to be a simple mortal with no cultivation. To top it all of, it was an Immortal grade technique. The first one he had ever seen. "Thank you, master." Ma Rong nodded and looked back at Song Zun, whose eyes were glaring daggers at Alex, who had been the one to find him. He was the one that had pointed at him back in the market and had asked those questions that got him to where he was. And now, he also had all of his items. Ma Rong closed her eyes and said, "Throw him into the forbidden fields for 2 months. That shall be his punishment." A few elders with a badge on their robe that said ''Protect'' walked out and carried Song Zun to take him to the forbidden fields. "Go back and rest." Ma Rong said towards Alex and went along with the elders, leaving Alex alone. Chapter 81: Learning The Techniques Alex walked up to his residence in the middle of the night. The last few days had been tiring, with all the nonstop pill-making, especially today. ''Or should I call it yesterday since it''s already past midnight'' he thought. Alex walked straight to the courtyard as soon as he returned. It was time to learn some books. He quickly took out the Earth Grade [Veiled Light technique] and started reading it. As soon as he finished, he got the notification. "Alright then, let''s try it." He started using the technique. His Qi started flowing across his body and slowly seeped out of his entire body. As it touched the air, the Qi started to move on the surface of his body, slowly warping the lights around him. The Qi would take the light coming from one direction, move it across his body and send it out of the other direction. To anyone looking from the outside, it looked like there was nothing between the viewer and the source of the light. This worked omnidirectionally and always kept the light moving towards its original destination. Alex slowly looked down at his hand and realized, they weren''t there anymore. In fact, his entire body was gone. He tried to use his spiritual sense and found out that there was no problem while looking at his hands through the spiritual sense. He tried walking around with the veil active and trained to keep the veil even under difficult situations. He tried flying with the veil active and realized he could do that as well. ''Oh¡­ I''m flying faster now,'' He thought. Getting to the 4th Bone Tempering realm had made him just a tiny bit faster at flying now. He got back down, still invisible, and took out the next book. He started flipping through the book. This book was about the same length as the first one, but somehow it took him double the time to finish reading. Suddenly, all his Qi inside his body started to stop giving out an aura and stayed inside all the time. His cultivation base started to keep in its aura as well, and he started becoming more and more like a mortal human. "Woah, that''s quite good." He didn''t have to do anything for this book, it worked by itself. He opened the description to check. [Immortal Concealment Technique Grade: Immortal Hides your cultivation base and Qi from cultivators that are not at least a major realm higher than you] ''Hmm¡­ so only someone in the True realms can truly know what cultivation I have. And even then, it''s hard for them to instantly figure out. Add that to the invisibility, no wonder Song Zun got away with so much theft.'' ''Just being invisible meant anyone without a Spiritual sense could not find them when they had the Immortal Concealment technique.'' Alex finally realized how Song Zun had managed to keep his actions hidden from the different elders. ''What else do I need to do?'' he thought. ''I still need to absorb that yellow stone. I kept it aside since I had to make the pills, but now that it''s over, I should do it¡­ maybe tomorrow.'' He practiced with the technique a little longer and started cultivating. At exactly 6 am, he woke up. He logged out and got back into the game about an hour later. He waited for Ma Rong to arrive, and learned alchemy from her for a bit. "Give me your nameplate." Ma Rong said after the classes were done. Alex took out his nameplate and handed it to her. Ma Rong quickly scanned the nameplate and frowned. "Why haven''t you registered a single pill? You should have made at least 5 different ones by now." She got a little irritated at how slow Alex was with becoming a Core disciple. "Uhh¡­ I will, master. I will start making pills today onward exclusively for registering." Alex got a little embarrassed. He didn''t think his master would ask him for the pills so soon. "That reminds me, master. Here." He handed the 2 books he got from Song Zun to her. "It''s the techniques Song Zun was using to sneak around in the alchemy gardens." Ma Rong took the books and flipped one to the front page. She read the page and said, "It makes you invisible, huh?" Alex was surprised she was able to tell what the book did from the front page alone. ''Can she actually understand the unintelligible words?'' he could only read the letters but was never able to tell what anything meant. The only thing helping him was the fact that at the end of the book, he would somehow thankfully learn it. Ma Rong checked the next book and was surprised. "An immortal grade technique? There is only one of those in the sect. Where did that thief get this?" "There is an immortal grade technique in the sect?" Alex got surprised when he heard this. "You don''t know? You have full access to the library, haven''t you checked yet?" she said. "Uhh¡­ I was so focused on making pills, I forgot about learning new techniques." Alex said with a bashful face. "Anyway. Keep these books, they are yours now. You can give them to me after you''ve learned them." Ma Rong said as he gave back the book. But Alex didn''t take them and instead just said, "Oh, I''ve already learned them, master. That''s why I am giving you these." "You already learned them? But you only got it last night. It hasn''t even been 8 hours since you got these." She was surprised. "I learned it last night at around 2 am. I stayed up late instead of cultivating." "WHAT? You learned it in less than 2 hours?" Ma Rong was getting more and more shocked. "Show me," she said. Alex had simply stopped the technique from automatically working, so when he let it work again, all of his presence, cultivation base, and aura disappeared in a flash¡ª All Ma Rong could see in front of her was a mortal Alex. Chapter 82: Teaching Ma Rong looked at the complete non-existence of Alex in front of her and was surprised. "So he got past the elders using this and the invisibility technique?" she asked. "Yes. It''s quite a good combination actually." Alex said as he used the Veiled Light technique as well. Suddenly, he was out of sight as well. Ma Rong immediately sent out her spiritual sense, and only then did she manage to find him. "You learned this technique already too?" she asked. Alex stopped using the invisibility technique, and also stopped concealing himself. "Yeah." "Have you already learned the Elemental Guidance technique I gave you?" She asked. Alex couldn''t understand why she was asking all of these questions, so he simply answered, "Of course. I learned it the moment you gave it to me." ''Heavens! Is he even more of a genius than I thought he was?'' Ma Rong couldn''t comprehend how he could learn everything so fast. "Listen to me. If anyone asks you how long it took you to learn the techniques, tell them it took you a few days or a week at least. If it is heaven grade or higher, tell them it took you about a month. Never tell anyone you learned it in a few hours." Ma Rong was very stern about it. Alex didn''t understand what she was talking about. ''Why can''t I learn it so fast? I''m already using up so much time by not using the system''s learn function.'' "Is learning in a few hours good?" he couldn''t help but ask. "It''s beyond good. Most normal people take about 2 to 5 days to learn a mortal grade technique. Earth grade techniques take them a little over a week. They can''t learn a Heaven Grade technique without studying the book for about a fortnight or more. While Immortal grade techniques may take the cultivators anywhere from a few months to a few years to completely learn." "I myself was called a genius and it took me about 2 months to learn the [Flickering Shadows] technique. If someone with malicious intent finds out that you have so much talent, they might harm you out of envy and pettiness." "So, make sure you do not let anyone know about your talents. Doesn''t matter if it''s in cultivating, learning techniques, or alchemy. Always learn to be modest, and never reveal your true talents. Not even to your closest friends." Hearing the serious tone in Ma Rong''s voice, Alex got serious as well. "I understand, master." He said. "Good. Go and learn the technique from the library later. It''s a movement technique that should help you a lot. Most of the alchemy techniques in the library should be useless to you now that you are so practiced at Qi manipulation and have spiritual sense. As for the battle techniques, don''t even bother learning them." "Since you will go to the Tiger sect in a few days, you can learn the techniques from there. They have a far better collection of battle techniques than we do." Ma Rong advised him. She taught him alchemy a bit longer, but there was no longer anything left to teach him. Not unless he got into the True Realm. "I will stop coming here from tomorrow. I don''t have anything else to teach you until at least 50% of your Qi turns to True Qi. After that, I will give you advice on how to make True pills." Ma Rong said. "Turn Qi to True Qi? Don''t you just acquire True Qi after you enter the True realm?" Alex got a bit confused. "No. It''s the other way around. Only after turning all of your Qi to True Qi do you finally enter the True realm. Even then you have to break through to the True Realm. Most people with low talent will forever be stuck in the self tempering realm. Few pills help to elevate the chances, but even then it mostly depends on your base talent itself." "Have you ever felt a bottleneck before?" she suddenly asked. "Bottleneck? Like the one that stops you from breaking through to a higher realm? No." He said. "I thought so. Then, you don''t have to worry about it much. Just cultivate normally, you will definitely enter the True realm." Ma Rong stood up and started preparing to leave when she suddenly remembered something. "Oh, and there is something you should know about. In less than a month, there will be an Annual Sect competition that will take place in the Cardinal city. Many different types of competitions will take place there. I want you to take part in Alchemy-related competitions, so prepare for it." "If we win in the alchemy competitions and we somehow do well in other competitions as well, we might get enough points to become a first-grade sect. The Tiger sect is already ridiculously close to becoming one. We need about a few hundred points to become one. Hopefully, we can do it this year." Ma Rong seemed hopeful about the competition. "Master, what''s a sect grade?" Alex was a bit confused. He didn''t think he had ever heard about those before. "It''s just an arbitrary term made by the Crimson empire to let the various cultivators know how good a sect is or how well it can train its disciples. " "Every year the various sects from around the empire come together to take part in the competition, and those that win get points. As the points accumulate, their grade increases. We managed to get to the second grade almost a decade ago. Only now are we finally reaching the point where we may reach the first grade." "Of the many competitions, we can win in maybe 2. The alchemy ingredients recognition competition. And the pill-making competition. We always did well on those. If we somehow do good on a few more, we will surely get the 1st grade." "So, I am counting on you to do good on those two. As for the others¡­ we will see when the time comes." Ma Rong left after saying this. Alex got into thinking for a while before logging out to go to classes. Chapter 83: Qi, Records, and Shadows At 3 pm, Alex logged back into the game. He had 3 tasks to do today. Make pills for the disciple hall, use the yellow rock, and learn the immortal technique. He could make the pills a bit later, and he could also go learn the technique when he had to go to the sect valley for his work. So he decided to start with the yellow rock. "This is going to hurt once more, isn''t it?" He could still remember the pain the first yellow rock put him through. The result from using the rock was amazing, but the process itself, not so much. Thankfully, he had been through worse pain, so he was okay with the pain he would feel now. He took out the yellow rock and took a deep breath. Then, he swallowed it. The rock immediately melted in his mouth and turned into a smooth-flowing liquid that slid down his throat. The liquid was still the same scalding hot one, but he still felt nothing. However, he started feeling the pain when the liquid reached his stomach once more. The already hot and vigorous Yang Qi in his body started to feel more hot and vigorous. The pain wasn''t as bad as he remembered and it disappeared in a few minutes. The change wasn''t as intense as he had expected it to be. All the Qi he had in his body had been condensed to about 90% of the original size, yet it did the same amount of work as the previous 100%. Meaning, when his body was full of Qi, he could now do more. "Hmm¡­ will my Qi last about 10% longer now? That is more substantial than I had previously guessed." He tried his new 20% purity Yang Qi on different things. He used Flame Mastery Scripture and found it more manageable. Qi manipulation could carry heavier things now, meaning he could also fly a bit faster. His Smiting Blade was probably more powerful now as well, though he didn''t dare use it here. After he was done testing with his techniques, he decided to try making some pills. Unfortunately, his alchemy skills didn''t get any better from having a better Qi. "So my previous Qi was already good enough for it, it seems." He made about 6 different pills using the ingredients he had left, mixed with the new ingredients he got from Song Zun''s storage bag. He logged out to get some food and came back in. He decided to learn the new technique before going to do his work, so he walked down to the sect valley. He had about an hour before he had to go to work, so he walked to the library. He showed his nameplate through the different floors and reached the 8th floor. He had an hour to spend, and taking back the book only took a minute, so he decided to go up a floor and read all the records on the 9th floor that he had previously skipped. Since everything on the 9th floor had to stay there, he started picking the records one by one and started reading them. He read one after another record and realized something. "Hmm¡­ most of these aren''t even alchemy related." Most of them were just historical records, some about the sect and some about other things. It seemed the sect only went as far back as 50 years, so it didn''t have a lot of history in this place. Some of the records also talked about cultivation rumors and rare monsters. Very few records had anything to do with alchemy, talking about pills with no recipes or ingredients that were very rare and hard to find. He saw a record of Spirit Cleansing Lily talking about how hard it was to actually pick it. The person who wrote the record had no idea what to do when one actually found it and only talked about how to recognize it. Alex read through all the records and quickly memorized them. After finishing the records, he looked at the time and realized it was time to leave. He walked down to the 8th floor and quickly found the immortal technique with his spiritual sense. He took the book down to the ground floor, where the attending elder at the gate unlocked the seal on the book. Every book had these seals to stop the disciples from reading the books inside the library, and the seal could only be removed by an elder with a corresponding medallion. After the book was unsealed, Alex walked towards the alchemy garden while constantly reading the book in his bag using his spiritual sense. Before he could even reach the garden, he got a notification. ''Hmm¡­ that took about the same time as the Immortal Concealing technique. I wonder how it compares to that technique. Master did say it was a movement technique so maybe comparing those two isn''t the best idea.'' He immediately opened the techniques panel and looked at the description of the technique. [Flickering Shadows Grade: Immortal Teleport to any shadow with a larger area than your palm within 10 meters. You can also travel to where ever your own shadow is. Qi used to teleport depends on the distance.] "Huh?? Teleport?" he was expecting some techniques that allowed him to move really fast when he heard the word ''Movement Technique'', but somehow this was on a whole other level. ''If I can teleport to anywhere with a shadow then¡­ isn''t that pretty overpowered? No wonder it''s an Immortal grade technique.'' Chapter 84: Teleportation Alex practically ran to reach the garden after learning the new technique. He couldn''t wait to learn the technique, so needed to finish his work fast. ''Is it really teleportation?'' he was getting a little excited. He greeted the two elders and was handed the lists to the ingredients. He immediately walked in to start looking for the ingredients. He was looking around with his spiritual sense when he stopped. There were absolutely no lanterns in the alchemy garden as anyone allowed to enter there was usually elders or other people with authority who already had great eyesight and could see everything in the garden clearly, even at night. But just because someone could see at night, didn''t mean there was light there. Which meant, "It''s all shadows!!" Alex got excited and decided to try out the technique right now. The Immortal Concealing technique was one that worked on its own and he himself didn''t have to do anything. So, this was the first time he was truly using an Immortal grade technique. The alchemy gardens were forbidden grounds in the sect as they were too precious to let just about anyone in it. So, in order to not make some stupid mistakes and accidentally destroy some plants, he decided to use Focus mode. Ever since he learned spiritual sense, he had no longer required Focus mode. His mind was just that quick at processing the information he obtained. Especially during alchemy, Spiritual sense had made focus mode pretty much redundant. Still, Focus mode was amazing at amplifying the 6 senses of a cultivator and elevating their entire state of awareness to another level. As soon as he activated Focus mode, Alex felt like he had breathed in a new life. Everything started looking so vibrant again. The numerous smells of the alchemy ingredients fragrantly drifting in the air made his nose tingle a little. The cool air of night made his skin refreshed and he could hear the rustling of leaves and plants from far away. Although everything was bright to his eyes, he knew they were all dark in reality. So, he started activating his technique. He looked inside of him with his senses and saw a flash of multicolored light before it vanished and he saw his qi. The yellow in his Qi reminded him of the Yang jade he intakes just a few hours ago. Slowly, the Qi started moving around his body. His Qi moved along the familiar meridians taking a different path. It moved towards his eyes and brain, and suddenly spots around him started to light up. The spots closer to him had less light, while the ones further had more. The furthest spot was no more than 10 meters away from him. He used his spiritual sense and realized similar things were happening all around him even without his vision. The Qi suddenly stopped moving when it reached his head, and the light stayed lit up all around him. ''What''s happening? Am I supposed to choose a spot right now?'' he focused and looked at a spot that was open and not near any ingredients. Suddenly, the Qi started flowing once more, and he felt as if his entire world disappeared. The world appeared once more, but he was no longer where he had been before. He had teleported to the spot he thought of. The juxtaposition of the previous senses followed by the instant shift to the new senses caused him to not realize what was happening for a brief moment. He collected himself and looked where he was. He was facing the same direction he had been before and had teleported to the exact spot he thought of. He felt his Qi and found almost none of it had been used. ''I can do this for a long time.'' He started moving his qi once more and spots of light started appearing in his vision. This time he chose one that was the furthest away. The Qi started moving once more from his head, but it took a while before his teleportation activated. Once more, the sudden change was too much for even his spiritual sea enhanced brain to handle. ''I need to practice more.'' He teleported around the place while picking the ingredients at the same time. It took him quite a while to finish picking up the ingredients on this alchemy garden. He walked out of the garden after a while and met the agitated faces of the two elders. "Disciple Yu, is something going on inside? We were worried about you. You took so long." Elder Zhan said. "That''s right. We thought you might have fainted or something. Or did you find another set of ingredients missing?" Elder Wang seemed pretty worried too. ''Why are they so worried about me? It''s not like I took a lot of ti¡ª '' he looked at the clock on the top right corner of his vision and realized it was nearly midnight. "What? It''s been 3 hours?" he was shocked. Elder Wang and Elder Zhan got a little startled seeing his sudden shouting. Alex looked back at the elders and said, "I''m so sorry elder. I learned a new technique today and was practicing it inside while picking the ingredients. I somehow completely lost the track of time. I will go and pick the ingredients from the next garden immediately." He said and ran off towards the other garden. He didn''t practice his technique in this garden so it only took him about half an hour to finish. "Here you go, Elders." He handed the ingredients and bid them farewell for the day. He was near the second garden, which was close to the disciple''s hall, so he decided to go register the pills he had made today. He looked towards the direction he needed to go and thought about using the technique. He started moving his Qi to teleport a bit away, but when the time came for the spots to light up, not a single light appeared near him, aside from a few near the bases of the different buildings. Everything else was lit up like the day. Since he had nowhere to teleport to, he decided not to, except¡­ "Wait¡­ how do I stop this?" Chapter 85: Registering Pills The Qi was now stuck in his head and wasn''t moving anywhere. So he constantly saw the places light up in his vision. He looked around didn''t see a single place he could properly teleport to. The places he could were either near a building or in the midst of multiple disciples. ''Wait, let''s check with my spiritual sense.'' He sent out his spiritual sense in a 10-meter radius and found more places he could teleport to. Some of them were inside the buildings, some on the roof of the buildings. But one spot he hadn''t thought of had also lit up. It was the underside of everything that touched the ground. From barrels to the lanterns to the numerous people walking, the underside of all of those was lit up. ''Of course, those places are always in the shadows. So, I can teleport there, huh?'' He couldn''t think of a good place to teleport for now other than his own shadow under his foot, so he chose that. The Qi moved and vanished. ''Huh? Did I even teleport?'' the senses never changed so he didn''t know if he actually teleported at all or not. But the Qi started moving so he stopped caring about it. He walked the rest of the way to the disciple hall. He looked at the ranking stone in front of the hall and realized his spot on the stone had fallen down quite a lot. ''Well, I don''t think I should even care about the rankings anymore. It''s difficult to compare me with the normal disciples.'' He walked towards the back and looked at the rankings there too. The alchemy achievements ranking no longer had Song Zun in the third place like it used to. in fact, Song Zun was no longer on the list. He walked into the disciple hall and got into a line. When his time came, he walked in and saw an inner sect disciple on the desk. He took out 6 different pill bottles with a single pill in each of them and placed them on the desk. "I''m registering these pills." The inner sect disciple was one step away from falling asleep. He wanted to go back to his cottage, but because he hadn''t gotten enough contribution points for this week, he was stuck here working through the night. He said nothing and took one of the pill bottles and took out the pill inside. His lazy eyes immediately got serious as he felt the quality of the pill. He took out a pill tester and put the pill inside. He watched the fog slowly rise up and stop at 33%. His eyes were wider than they had ever been. Same with his jaw. He looked up at Alex and checked his appearance closely. Alex had the face of someone who hadn''t even reached 20 years old and was wearing an outer sect disciple''s clothing. ''Is this a joke?'' he thought. "You are registering this?" the disciple asked. "Yes," Alex didn''t think much of the question. The inner disciple frowned. "Did you make this?" he asked. "Of course. Why else would I bring it here to register?" Alex found the line of questioning weird but thought that it probably was the first time the inner sect disciple had seen an outer sect disciple bring a pill that even the core disciples would be jealous of. The inner sect disciple''s frown remained as he took out a medallion to check the latest sales info about Alex. The only info he got was that Alex had bought ingredients on only 2 occasions. Once about 12 days ago, and once about a week ago. Other than that, there was no transaction history between him and the sect. Furthermore, the ingredients he bought both of the times did not match the pills in his hands, so he started to get more suspicious. If it had been a normal scenario, he might have sent Alex away saying that wrongly claiming someone else''s pill as his own was a crime that was punishable in the sect. But the pill he was holding was one that even the majority of the core disciples couldn''t make with their best effort. So, he immediately notified an elder that someone was trying to falsely register a 33% harmony pill. "Stay here, I have called an elder." The inner sect disciple said while keeping the 6 pill bottles with himself and went on to do his task starting with the next one in line. After 10 or so disciples in the line were done, someone wearing an elder''s robe walked in. As soon as the inner sect disciple saw the elder, he stood up and greeted him. "Greeting, Eighteenth Elder." Alex turned around to see who had just come in and saw the elder''s face too. "Greetings, Elder Lang." This was the same person that had taken his entrance exam and brought him into the sect. Lang Shun walked in and saw Alex standing to the side and was surprised. ''Did he do something wrong?'' he walked up to the inner disciple and asked, "What''s going on?" The inner sect disciple immediately took out the 6 different pill bottles and put the pill back on the pill tester. Lang Shun found the action weird but said nothing. He slowly watched the fog rise up the side of the glass. He thought of nothing as it reached 10%. When it reached 15%, he was impressed. He was surprised when he saw it reach 20%. But the fog still kept on going and reached 25%¡ª this got him really astonished. But the fog still kept on going and reached 30% and it was showing no signs of stopping. Lang Shun watched the fog slowly creep up more and only stopped at 33%. He immediately walked forward and took the pill tester and looked at it closely to absolutely make sure he was reading it right. "What is this? Who brought this pill?" he asked. The inner sect disciple simply pointed at Alex and said, "That outer sect disciple over there. He says he made it himself, but there is no proof." Chapter 86: Just register them Lang Shun looked at the direction the inner sect disciple was pointing and realized the one being pointed at was Alex. He took the 6 pill bottles and walked to Alex while the inner sect disciple got back to his work. "Martial nephew, did you bring in these pills?" he asked. "Yes, elder." Alex simply answered. Lang Shun smiled a little and said, "Don''t call me an elder. Call me martial uncle. You master and I are disciples of the same master." Alex was surprised. Ma Rong had never mentioned anything about it. "Yes, martial uncle. I brought those pills." "The disciple says you claim to have made these pills yourself, is that true?" he asked. "Yes. I made these pills today by myself." Alex answered. "You know that you shouldn''t lie about these things, right martial nephew? Even if you are the sect leader''s disciple, you can get punished for these sort of things." Lang Shun tried to be gentle with the approach. Alex found it funny, and said, "You don''t have to worry about that, martial uncle. I didn''t steal them or anything. I made them on my own." Lang Shun felt a problem coming. He turned back towards the inner sect disciple and asked, "You said there was no proof or something. What did you mean?" The inner sect disciple who was busy dealing with something immediately stopped his work, and said, "Elder, there is no sales information regarding the ingredients to his pills." The inner sect disciple said. Lang Shun got curious and asked, "Where did you find the ingredients from then?" "From the southern forest. I spend 3 days searching day and night for the ingredients before being found by master in a near-death situation." Alex answered without hesitation. Lang Shun got a little surprised. ''Searching for alchemy ingredients in the southern forest? And what is this about him being in a near-death situation?" Lang Shun thought for a bit and said, "Alright. You can go. I will take these pills and see what I can do about registering them." He assured Alex, so Alex went back. Lang Shun also walked out with the pills and called Ma Rong in her communication talisman. "Sister, can you come to the elder hall for a bit. Your disciple did something that is creating a little sticky situation." He himself walked to the elder hall and waited for Ma Rong in a private meeting room. Ma Rong flew down and immediately found Lang Shun with her spiritual sense. The elder around her almost expected to see a disciple get thrown to the ground like yesterday. But alas, she was alone. Without batting an eye to anyone''s greeting, she walked straight to the room with Lang Shun. "What''s going on? Is something wrong with Yu Ming?" she started asking the moment she walked through the door. Lang Shun wasn''t expecting her to be so stirred up. He tried to calm her down by saying, "Nothing is wrong with your disciple. He is fine. It''s more like he might have done something wrong." Ma Rong got a little confused, "What do you mean?" Lang Shun took out a pill bottle and put the pill inside it to a pill tester. Ma Rong watched the pill tester fog up to 36 to signify that the pill had a 36% harmony. But she still couldn''t understand what was going on. "Did you make the pills? Why are you showing me this?" "No, I didn''t. But, your disciple claims he did, and he got caught at the disciple hall today while registering these." Ma Rong heard that and said, "Oh, he finally started registering, did he? Took him long enough. So? What is wrong here? I still don''t understand." "Sister, your disciple obviously didn''t make these. He joined the sect 2 weeks ago. It''s impossible for him to have made these." Lang Shun tried to reason. Ma Rong just found that funny. She forgot that she was one of the only ones who knew about Alex''s talent. "Check the other pills." She said. Lang Shun complied and tested all the different pills. 33%, 35%, 34%, 43%, and 39%. Together with the previous 36%, the 6 pills all had a ridiculous amount of harmony. Something impossible for even someone in the top 10 list of Alchemy Achievements ranking. "Hmm¡­ he is getting better than I thought. Alright, register those pills under my disciple''s name. If that is all, I''m leaving." She started walking out. "Wait, sister." Lang Shun was shocked at how little she cared about the situation. She should have been showing more interest in this situation since her disciple was involved. "What is it now? If you won''t register it then make the elder who called you register it." Ma Rong started to get irritated. "Why are you giving this situation so little care, sister? Your disciple is trying to cheat here. So blatantly, as well." Ma Rong just laughed it off now. "He is not. He made those pills. I''ve watched him make similar pills every morning. Just go register those pills. And also tell the elder who ''caught'' him to stop thinking about it." Lang Shun was surprised to hear that Alex had really made this. He still found it unbelievable, but if his sister was saying that, then he had no choice but to believe. "Alright then, I''ll register them and tell the inner sect disciple who stopped him to forget about it." Lang Shun said sluggishly. Ma Rong stopped in her step, and turned back, "Inner sect disciple? Why would an inner sect disciple stop him instead of an elder?" Lang Shun cocked his head and said, "Of course an inner sect disciple would stop him. Do you even know how the disciple hall works, sister?" Ma Rong was taken aback a bit. "Of course I know how the disciple hall works. I''m just asking why an inner sect disciple would ¡­" suddenly she realized something and sighed, "Don''t tell me that idiot tried to register in the outer sect portion of the disciple hall?" Chapter 87: Evaluating the Pros and Cons "Of course, he would register in the outer sect section of the disciple hall. He is after all still an outer sect disciple. Where else would he register then?" Ma Rong felt a headache coming. "I should have told him to go to the elders directly. I can''t believe he tried to register such important pills through an inner sect disciple. I can see now why you were called." "Honestly, I don''t understand how someone can be so talented in cultivation and alchemy, yet so dumb when it comes to having the most basic of sense. It''s almost like he was born a month ago, or at least was born in a place where cultivation isn''t a thing at all." Lang Shun was stunned at his senior sister pretty much bashing on her disciple. Still, something she said caught his attention. "Is he really that talented? I knew he was good from the entrance exam, but I didn''t think he would be so talented to make 30+% harmony pills in less than a month." He said. "You don''t even know the half of it. If he were to break through to the True Qi realm right now, he would best you in making True grade pills in less than a month, and best me in a month after that. That''s how good he is." Ma Rong immediately changed from bashing on her disciple to praising him. Lang Shun didn''t know what to say, but the praise felt a little too unbelievable. "Do you really believe that?" he asked. Ma Rong simply said, "You will see in a few months after he reaches True realm. Maybe it won''t even take that long since I will start teaching him when half of his Qi transforms to True Qi." Ma Rong left after that. Lang Shun just stayed there stunned as only one question ran through his mind. ''Bone tempering to True realm in a few months... Is that even possible?'' Alex, in the meanwhile, had finally returned to his residence. The entire way through, he kept practicing the Flickering Shadows technique. He didn''t walk a single step from the base of the mountain to his residence. He teleported the entire way through. He was starting to get the hang of it but still had some trouble mentally processing the instant change of environment. ''I wonder if I would be better at it if my spiritual sea were to get larger.'' Gaining spiritual sea had vastly increased his mental capability, so it would go without question that he would start thinking this way. He went to his courtyard to train some more. He learned quite a few things while practicing the technique. The technique had features he didn''t expect, but also had a multitude of limitations he hadn''t even thought of. The technique was best used during the nighttime when everything was in the shadows. He could teleport to walls, trees, or even the shadow on some things underside, and would always appear to the side or upon it depending on which was closer without harming the cultivator. The next thing was that the teleportation was pretty much instantaneous. He threw a rock towards the pond and waited for the rock to just touch the surface. He then instantly teleported to the rock and managed to graze it with a few fingers before it sank to the bottom. While his aim was still a little off, he did learn that there was no time between moving from one spot to another. Another thing he learned was that there was almost no downtime between his teleports. He could teleport to one spot and immediately teleport to another spot. Theoretically, he could go around the entire city and return to this spot within a dozen seconds. However, life wasn''t always so easy. Along with those incredible abilities, the technique also came with a lot of limitations that stopped him from doing what he wanted to do. The first and most obvious thing was that his mental ability wasn''t strong enough to process where he was and where he needed to go fast enough for him to teleport without stops. The second most obvious problem was that the ability was useless during the day, in an open ground like the training areas or desserts, or other flat surfaces where there were not a lot of shadows in general. The more he thought about this problem, the more he found how annoying the problem was. If he were to someday fight while flying, the technique was pretty much useless as there would be no shadows in the sky. Also, while the amount of Qi used during the teleports wasn''t substantial, it would still accumulate after a while to become a moderately big factor for getting low on Qi. Another thing that bugged him was that while it was called a ''movement technique'', it more so focused on dodging and getting surprise attacks on the enemies. It would also help him to get out of traps or another enclosing. ''They should have instead called it an escaping technique, instead of movement technique. I should probably get an actual movement technique when I go to the Tiger sect.'' Still, despite all its flaws, it was an amazing technique befitting of its immortal grade. The next day, he split his day between practicing the Veiled Light technique, the Flickering Shadows technique, and making some pills to register. His master had messaged him and explicitly mentioned that he should only find an elder in the core disciple section of the disciple hall if he wanted to register the pills. His night went similarly as well. He started his evening going down the mountain to complete his job in the alchemy garden. Then he went to the disciple hall''s second floor amongst the confused and curious eyes to register the 4 new pills he had made, each above 30% in harmony. Then he went back to his residence to practice the Flickering Shadows technique once more. He had made massive progression in it with just days worth of practice. He couldn''t wait to see how good it would be when he used it to its fullest potential. Chapter 88: Experience for a Cultivator Alex had practiced the entire night without stop. His Qi was enough for him to practice more than 8 hours before his Qi ran dry. Still, he cultivated after three-quarters of his Qi was gone so that he could recover it for now. He decided to check where he was with his status. "Status" ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Bone Tempering 4th Realm (300,000 Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 1,825,388 ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª He had managed to accumulate a lot of Qi, but if he were to breakthrough right now, it probably wouldn''t be enough to even reach Bone Tempering 9th realm. ''I should have stabilized my cultivation base enough, right? It has been a few days since I broke through,'' he thought and pushed the breakthrough button once. "Alright, let''s go get some food." He decided to log out to get some breakfast when suddenly, he sensed his master coming. ''Hmm¡­ didn''t she say she would no longer teach me? Why is she here then?'' He walked out to greet her. "Good morning, Master. Do we have alchemy lessons today?" he asked. "No, I was on my way down to the sect valley when I remembered something. Do you have anything going on today?" she asked. He didn''t have to think to know that today was the day his pills were getting auctioned off, so he was looking forward to going to the auction to check out how it was. "Yes, Master." He simply told her. "Cancel that then. Today you and I are going somewhere else." She said. Alex got a little surprised. "Umm¡­ master, does it have to be today? I was quite looking forward to my thing today." He said. Ma Rong frowned, and asked, "Do you need to do your thing, or want to do your thing?" Alex thought for a bit. ''I don''t really need to be in the auction for my pills to sell. I only wanted to check them out, that was all.'' He sighed and said, "I just wanted to, master." Ma Rong looked proud like she had just won, and said, "Good. I will come to get you in a few hours, and we will leave then." She then left. Alex got a little disappointed at the fact that he wouldn''t be able to view the auction. He finally accepted the fact and logged out to get some breakfast. He went back to the game to make a few more pills before logging out once more for lunch. He went back to the game after lunch once more. He decided to stabilize his cultivation base while he was waiting for his master. He started using the various different techniques he knew, aside from the Immortal Concealing technique. Otherwise, his master might actually miss his existence and not find him. He was in the middle of flying when his master walked into the courtyard. Her eyes widened a little as she saw him freely, albeit slowly, flying through the air. ''His Qi can already carry his weight so much? How thick is his Qi?'' she wondered. Alex looked at his master and realized she was weaker than before. ''Did something happen to her?'' "Master, is something wrong?" he asked. Ma Rong got a little confused, so she asked, "No, why do you ask?" "Oh, it''s just that you felt weaker to me." He said. Ma Rong laughed a little and said, "That means it''s somewhat working. I have started learning the Immortal Concealing technique. I can somewhat use it right now, but it only hides a fraction of my Qi, not all. That''s why you thought I was weaker." "Oh. I should have known that. How long do you think it will take you to completely learn it?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ I can''t tell right now. Although it''s going smoothly right now, I might hit a bottleneck somewhere. However, it shouldn''t take more than a few months as most. I am quite confident about that." She said. She then thought of something and asked," Did you learn the Flickering Shadows technique?" Alex immediately got more attentive and said, "Yes, master. It''s such a good technique." He then activated the technique and started randomly teleporting to different shadows. Some of the walls, some of the trees, and some even of the hidden side of the rocks near the pond. Ma Rong looked his with a bunch of envious eyes. ''How can he be so talented. When I first started teleporting, I had to vomit because I couldn''t handle the sudden change in scenery. Is it because of his spiritual sense?'' she wondered. "Alright, stop," she said and watched Alex teleport to a shadow next to her. She looked at him and asked, "Is that your best robe? It looks a little dirty." Alex looked at his robe and realized it had a lot of dust on it, and needed to be washed. He had been wearing this robe for almost 10 days now. "I have a new robe I haven''t worn yet," he said. He had gotten a replacement robe after he had notified that his first one had been torn apart from the fight in the forest. Fortunately, thanks to his full access to everything, he was able to get the robe without giving a single thing in return. "Alright, go and change into those." She said and waited for him to change. Alex came back out within minutes in his clean, new robes. "Are we leaving now, master? Is it okay if I ask where we are going?" he asked. Ma Rong simply said, "As a cultivator, you lack a surprising amount of common sense. It might be because you are new to cultivation and don''t know much about it. But now that you are a cultivator, there are things you need to be experienced on if you want to be successful in cultivation." "One of those is to find appropriate cultivation methods, techniques, artifacts, and pills for yourself. So, today we are going to the best place to get these things, which is an auction house." Chapter 89: Pink Cloud Auction House "Huh¡­ did you just say auction house, master?" Alex thought he heard her wrong. "Yes. Auction house. You need to learn how to search for items in auctions as well as have the proper etiquette in there." Ma Rong repeated. ''Oh, so we are going to an auction after all. I wonder if it''s the same auction house as the one I was going to. I should have checked if there were others.'' "Alright, master. Let''s leave." He said as he started walking outside. "Where are you going?" Ma Rong asked him. "Uhh¡­ to the auction house?" why would she ask him this? Ma Rong chuckled a little and said, "get back here." She then proceeded to take out her boat-like artifact. "We aren''t going to walk all the way there. It''s too inefficient. We are going to fly there." She jumped and got onto the boat. "Oh, right. Make sure to not use the Immortal Concealment technique today. It''s not good to show other people that you can hide your cultivation from them." She also canceled her technique and her cultivation base started giving off the same strong aura as before. Alex wasn''t using his technique so he just nodded and told her he won''t use it today. He got onto the boat without asking and settled himself on the back of the boat. After seeing everything was ready, Ma Rong flew off. Ma Rong hadn''t sped up or anything. She just flew at her normal flying speed that just made Alex feel a cool breeze on his face. Still, they ended up reaching the auction house in less than 10 minutes. ''Not having to go up and down the mountains or walk jagged path really does help trim down your travel time a lot,'' he thought. He couldn''t wait for the time when his flying speed would be faster than his walking speed. Ma Rong flew down in front of the auction house and jumped down. Alex followed behind her as well. He was happy to find out that this was the same auction house as he wanted to go to. Somehow fate had taken away his chance and gave it back to him. "This is the Pink Cloud Auction house. This is their secondary branch, while their main branch is in the capital of the empire, Cardinal city. There are only these 2 branches. Today, they will sell quite a lot of things, so I brought you here to check it out." Alex hadn''t even come during the auction time so he was quite shocked at the number of people waiting outside. "Come," Ma Rong said as she walked towards something she seemed to have noticed. "Greetings, City lord, lady," Ma Rong greeted a purple-robed couple that just flew down. These were Fu Wen and Mo An, the husband-wife pair that ruled the Scarlet City under the authority of the crimson empire. "Ah, Sect leader, you are here early." Fu Wen said with a big smile. Mo An greeted from the side as well. Fu Wen then saw Alex to her side. "Oh, isn''t this our little friend from back then? Hello." He said with a smiling face. "Greet the city lord," Ma Rong''s voice sounded in his head. "Greetings, City lord, lady," he used the same greetings as his master. "Let''s go inside," he said and started walking towards the door. Alex looked around and saw the many people still standing outside. There still sometime before the auction started, and seeing the many people standing outside, he wondered if he would even be allowed inside so early. But, he seemed to be overthinking things. The people he was with were some of the VVIPs in the city. The auction house wasn''t going to offend the City and one of the only 2 sects that was in the city, just because they arrived early. He had just walked inside the door when he saw a girl walk up to his master¡ª No, she was walking up to him. He looked at her face and realized who it was. "Hello, sect leader Ma, little brother. It''s good to see you here." Luo Mei had arrived in front of them. "Hello, Lady Luo," Ma Rong greeted her. "Hello, Daoist Luo," Alex greeted her as well. Both Ma Rong and Luo Mei looked at him weirdly. Both of them suddenly started chuckling. Alex got weirded out as he couldn''t understand why they were laughing. "Why are you acting so distant towards her?" Ma Rong asked. "Yeah, little brother. You should call me sister now that we have the same master." Luo Mei said as well. Alex was a little surprised. Then he understood what was going on. "Oh, I didn''t know that. In that case, I should call you senior sister." Ma Rong looked towards Luo Mei and asked, "Lady Luo, are you here with your master?" "Oh no. I''m here with my friends. Master should be arriving anytime soon by himself. I came early." She said. "Oh, my friends seem to be restless, I will see you guys later." She left towards her friends somewhere deeper in the hall. "Hmm¡­ did she try to run away from us?" Ma Rong got a little taken aback. "I don''t think so, she probably saw her friends and went back." Alex simply said. "Can''t be. She didn''t even turn around." Ma Rong said. "Oh, did you forget master? She has a spiritual sense too. I told you I only learned about spiritual sense after she asked me to pick up a Spirit Cleansing Lily for her." Ma Rong didn''t remember much from that day. The whole day had gone by in a flash because of how unbelievable that day was. She cleared her thoughts and started walking down the hall once more. "Come on, let''s go. The auction should start anytime now." They finally reached the end of the hall where a lot of staff members, both high and low ranking of the auction house were standing there waiting to guide the newly arrived guests to their rooms. Chapter 90: Auction Starts Alex looked around and didn''t find Cai Ping anywhere in the hall at all. ''Is she somewhere else, busy preparing the auction?'' he wondered. A girl walked up to them and took them to a VIP room from where you could see the stage, but nobody else could see you. There was an array of seats inside spread among the almost 10 by 10 meters big room. Alex sat on a random seat near the window at the front where the view was the best. Ma Rong sat where she could only see the stage. The girl who came with them also stayed in the room but remained standing next to the door. There was time to spare, so Alex decided to ask his master something. He made sure he wasn''t loud enough for the girl to listen. "Master, how do I speak into someone''s head?" Ma Rong wasn''t expecting such a question in an environment like this. Still, she answered. "It''s easy. Just send out your spiritual sense to someone''s head and say things in your mind. They will be able to hear it in their head." Alex heard it in his head and decided to try. He sent out his spiritual sense towards Ma Rong and asked, "Can you hear me?" "Yes," an answer came to his head. He was happy learning it had worked. Now he didn''t have to worry about communicating in secret if the need ever arises. Time passed by as more and more people came and sat at the seats in the open down below. "Oh, he''s here too." Ma Rong seemed to be quite surprised by someone''s arrival. Alex looked below the window but didn''t recognize anyone. So he asked, "Who are you talking about master?" "The man with the black hat, 5 rooms to our left. He is the sect leader of Honor sect from Rosewood city." Ma Rong said. He tried to look who it was, but his spiritual sense couldn''t reach so far away. 5 rooms were about 50 meters in total length, even when stretched to the maximum, he could only cover a radius of 30 meters with his spiritual sense. So, he couldn''t see who his master was talking about. "You can see that far master? What is your radius on your spiritual sense?" he couldn''t help but ask. "My radius? It''s about 50 or so meters. I can do about 75 at best. I need to eat more spirit-enriching pills to be able to increase it more." She said. ''Wow, so far,'' he was amazed at how far she could send out her spiritual sense. ''But what''s a spirit-enriching pill? I don''t remember any pill like that in the recipes I got from the library. Nor did the records have anything about them.'' "Do you have a recipe for that pill, master?" he asked. "Yes, I do. It''s a personal recipe my master handed down to me. I will give you the recipe when you have True Qi. Since it''s a True pill, giving it to you now would be useless." She said. Alex accepted the reasoning and sat back. He watched as the entire room filled up. There weren''t a lot of people he recognized here if any. He saw some disciples from both of his sects, most of whom seemed to be a core disciples. He sent out his spiritual sense to the 2 different rooms on either side of his room and realized he didn''t know any of them either. The world was big, and he hadn''t lived in it for long. So it was obvious that he wouldn''t recognize them. There was one thing that surprised him, however. There was a person in a room next to the room adjacent to his left. The thing that surprised him regarding this person was that he was fat, extremely fat. It looked like he could barely walk, especially with all the jewelry he was wearing. There seemed to be 4 people next to him all fit and seemed to be very alert. "Master, who is the fat guy 2 rooms over?" he asked through his spiritual sense. Ma Rong checked the room and said, "That is Huo Zemin, he is the head of the Victorious Snow merchant group originating in our Scarlet city. They are the third richest merchant group in all of the Crimson Empire." ''Third richest? I wonder how many spirit stones he has.'' Alex moved his attentions elsewhere waiting for the auction to start. He looked at the talisman on the table. He had already scanned it and realized it was the list of items that would be auctioned off today. He wanted to be completely in the unknown so didn''t read it at all. Finally, once everyone had arrived and the seats on the base were full, the lights in the room and the hall started to dim, while the lights on the stage started to shine brighter. Everyone waited with bated breath as the curtain on the stage finally started to move and a woman walked from the inside. "Good afternoon, everyone. I hope you are all settled and ready for the auction. Welcome to the bi-annual mega auction of the Pink Cloud auction house, presented to you by myself, Cai Ping." Cai Ping had finally appeared in a beautiful blue dress. She swiped her hands and a large desk along with a wooden hammer appeared out of nowhere. "If you are all prepared. We will bring out the first item." She said, and a few people walked up with a square-shaped box with a cloth on top of it. They placed it on the desk and walked away. Cai Ping walked ahead of the box with exaggerated theatrics in her motion and held a corner of the cloth. "And for our first item of the day, we have¡­" She paused for a moment to increase the suspense and finally lifted the cloth to show a small uneven ball of yellow color with a bunch of white patches all over it. "A Clouded Tiger Cub." Chapter 91: Beast Companion "A Clouded Tiger cub." Cai Ping proudly showed off the first item at the auction. It was a newly born monster that they had somehow captured and brought to the auction. ''What is the point of selling a cub? Why not just capture an adult and sell them. Is this for some rich people''s amusement? It certainly can''t be for the ingredients or even the meat.'' he wondered. "As many of you may know, a Clouded Tiger has an almost guaranteed chance to reach the True realms, and even a very little chance of reaching the Saint realms." "The cub is 4 weeks old and perfectly healthy. We have checked and found him to have no physical problems as well. We will start the bid at 5 common spirit stones, with 10 gold of minimum increment." "510 gold" "520 gold" 530 gold" . . . The auction house suddenly started thundering with the sound of the numerous bid. Cai Ping''s smile got wider each time she heard a bit. She would get about 2% of the revenue from each of these sales, so the more it sold for, the richer she got. Within the first 20 seconds, the bid had crossed 10 spirit stones. Alex got surprised seeing this. This behavior was completely different from what he had expected. He thought only a few people would bid for the cub; but seeing so many people bid for it, he realized his idea of what the cub was used for must be mistaken. Ma Rong looked at his interested eyes and got a little surprised. "Do you want the cub?" she asked him. Alex was startled as he was focused on the happenings below. He looked towards his master and said, "No, master. I was just curious why so many people would want a tiger cub and not just get an adult tiger?" "Of course, that''s because they want to raise the cub themselves. A monster trained from birth is so much easier to make a companion out of than a normal adult monster." She said to him explaining why so many people were bidding for the cub. "A companion? What''s that? Do you make friends with monsters? Why would you?" he got so very confused hearing his master''s explanation. They only brought forth more questions than answers. Ma Rong suddenly remembered how much common knowledge her disciple was lacking. She laughed a little to herself and started explaining. "Beast companions are an important aspect of a cultivator''s life. Cultivators can make a bond with a beast and control them. They can make the beasts fight for them, or just have them as a friend through their journey as a cultivator. Overall, the beasts can help you in a lot of places." "That cub right there is a newborn monster. Those are somewhat rare to come by. A young monster is very naive and gullible, so after a few weeks or months of getting treated well by the other party, they happily bond to them. That is why the people down there are so excited to bid for it. " "If they manage to get it and raise it to the True realms. It can be a true powerhouse that can deter their foes and help them gain fame, money, and status in life. Even if they themselves happen to be weak or untalented in cultivation, having such a beast companion would offset everything." "In fact, even I am a little tempted to get the cub. But I won''t as I am quite satisfied with my beast for now." Ma Rong said. Alex got surprised to hear that, "You have a beast companion, master? How come I haven''t seen it yet? Does it not live in the mountain?" "Oh, I forgot to mention. Beast companions are a little unique, in that they don''t live in the physical world after they bond with a cultivator. Look," she said as she swept aside a bit of her long hair to show her beautiful white skin on her neck. On the neck was a small circular pattern that looked like it was a long beast coiling. "This is where my beast lives. I can call her anytime I want, and she would fight for me." Ma Rong let go of her hair and asked, "So, do you want to get the cub?" Alex gave the question serious thought. From what his master had just said, a beast companion would be an amazing help for him if he wanted to become a stronger cultivator. However, he didn''t want that. He just wanted to cultivate normally, and see where life went in the game. His main focus was on Alchemy, which he both liked and had a great talent in. He had gotten lucky with the technique, and now he was incredibly happy with it. So, he didn''t think getting a beast companion could make that any better. "No, master." He simply shook his head. Ma Rong nodded, seemingly thinking that was the correct choice for him. Distracting himself with a beast right now might hinder his progress in alchemy. By the time the master-disciple pair''s conversation had come to a stop, the bidding war for the tiger cub was also ending. "13 spirit stones." Someone shouted. "13 spirit stones, is anyone else bidding." Cai Ping asked the crowd. "13 spirit stones and 50 golds." Someone else shouted from the crowd. "13 spirit stones and 50 gold, does anyone else have a higher bid?" Cai Ping asked once more. She waited for a few seconds and heard back nothing from the crowd. So, she took the gavel and started saying, "13 spirit stones and 50 golds going once." Nobody talked. "13 spirit stones and 50 golds going twice." Still silence. "13 spirit stones and 50 golds going thrice, Sold!!" Cai Ping hit the gavel on the table with a loud bang. "The first item of the day, the Clouded Tiger cub, has been sold to the lady on seat 45 for 13 spirit stones and 50 gold coins. Congratulations." A few staff members came and took the cub away, and replaced it with another box hidden with a cloth. Chapter 92: Small Money Talk The next items on the list sold at a similar rate. People started bidding as soon as it was allowed, and mostly the ones who bid were from the lower hall. The prices of the items were slowly getting higher and higher as the bid price for the latest sold sword started with 18 spirit stones. Once again, after the sword was taken away, another box arrived with a cloth on top of it. Cai Ping acted exaggeratedly and pulled down the cloth. The item was an armor artifact. It was in a shiny blue color and looked very thin. "This is an armor made by using the incredibly defensive Blue rhino''s hide as the main ingredient. It''s a Common Earth-grade armor artifact that is both tough and flexible. Let us show you how strong it is." Cai Ping gestured as 2 people walked onto the stage. One was a middle-aged man in the Mind Tempering 8th realm, while the other was at the True Lord realm. The True lord realm wore the armor and retracted his Qi so as to have it not protect the armor. The Mind Tempering 8th realm man lunged and hit the armor without using any techniques. The armor suffered no damage at all. "Woah," the crowd was surprised. "As you can see, the armor is able to defend against even someone at the Mind Tempering 8th realm. From our measurements, It can defend against a fully charged earth grade technique of a Mind Tempering 6th realm cultivator." "So, the starting bid is going to be 20 spirit stones, with at least 1 spirit stone minimum bid" As soon as Cai Ping finished saying that, the audience exploded with bids. Before Alex could even comprehend how good the armor was, the bid had already reached over 40 spirit stones. Even the people in the VVIP rooms were starting to bid. Everyone whose voice came out of the rooms on the upper floors was heavily distorted and no longer sounded like their original voices. Alex could easily hear the fat merchant head''s voice through his spiritual sense, yet when he heard it through his own ears, he was shocked at how different the voices were. ''I assume they do that for privacy reasons. I wonder if they are using formations for this as well,'' he thought. "50 spirit stones," his master voiced in her bid as well. "Master, do you required that artifact? It should be useless to you, right?" he asked. "Of course it''s not for me you stupid disciple, it''s for you." She said. "For me?" he was shocked. "I don''t need that master. You don''t have to spend so many spirit stones for me." He said. "So many? It''s just 50 spirit stones. That''s not much at all," she said. "Huh?? 50 spirit stones is not a lot? But that''s like 50 months'' worth of spirit stones for the outer sect disciples master." He said, shocked at how little she thought of so many spirit stones. "What are you talking about? That''s only because they are outer sect disciples and we give it to them. If they were to make pills and sell them, they could make it in well under 3 months. Inner sect disciples get 10 spirit stones every month, so even if they do nothing, they can get 50 spirit stones in 5 months. If they went ahead and made pills, I''m pretty sure they can collect that much amount in less than a month." "Let''s not forget about the core disciples who get 50 spirit stones monthly. If they were to try, they could actually make a dozen of really rare or useful pills with decent harmony and sell them for 50 spirit stones. It wouldn''t even take them a week if they tried." Alex was shocked at what he had just heard. He didn''t know about the different monthly spirit stones allowances of the different tiered disciples. But what shocked him more was how little the others valued what he assumed was a rare commodity. ''50 spirit stones are 500 dollars though. So the core disciples get 500 dollars every month.'' He thought for a bit and realized where he was wrong. ''This is not the real world. I shouldn''t bring my countryside common sense to this place. It''s a land of cultivators, it should be no surprise if they are rich. I should stop comparing everything to the real world.'' "55 spirit stones," Ma Rong bid once more. The bidding war slowly shifted from the people at the lower hall to ones at the upper rooms. There were 3 people left. His master, the fat merchant head, and someone in a faraway room whose identity he couldn''t tell because of the voice changes. All 3 of them kept bidding for a while until the fat merchant took away the armor at 85 spirit stones. "The gentleman at room B3 has won the Common Earth Grade armor, congratulations." Cai Ping said as a bunch of staff came along and replaced the armor with another item hidden under a cloth. "Hmm¡­" everyone suddenly got more attentive as they saw the item that had just been brought to the table was actually really small. The cloth was almost flat on the plate the object was brought on. If not for the small bump at the middle of the cloth, the people would surely assume that the next item had been accidentally left behind by the staff members. Cai Ping saw the people''s confusion and smiled. She walked to the front and lifted the cloth to reveal a round small green pellet-like object. ''A Pill? But it''s not in a pill bottle?'' Alex got surprised to see the small round object. A small feeling spawned inside him, one that spawned whenever he saw an alchemy ingredient. But this feeling was very unnoticeable, so he doubted the item was an alchemy ingredient on its own. Cai Ping started speaking, "Dear ladies and gentlemen, the next item on the list is this seed." Chapter 93: Yin Gathering Tree Cai Ping smiled as everyone looked at the seed, and didn''t recognize it. These were the times she liked the most when she would reveal what the item was and everyone would be shocked. "This seed comes from a tree that all of you most certainly know about. This is a seed for the ever famous, Yin Gathering Tree." She glanced at the audience as she made the dramatic reveal. "Yin Gathering Tree? I think I''ve heard of it before. But where?" someone said. "Wait! Is this the same Yin Gathering Tree as the one in the Capital?" another person exclaimed. "Wow, that''s an extremely rare seed." Sounds of awe and surprise rang out from the entire crowd. In room B1, Ma Rong who was slumping in her seat suddenly stood up straight and alert. Her eyes burning with desire. Alex had never seen his master in that state. Not even when she had gotten the Spirit Cleansing Lily. ''Can it be that the seed is of greater importance than even the Spirit Cleansing Lily?'' he wondered. Cai Ping once again started talking. "Please quiet down." She said trying to proceed with the auction. "Can you tell us who is selling such a precious seed?" someone screamed from the back of the hall. "The seller has told us that they want to be remained unnamed, so we will not be revealing any information regarding them. Now, let us proceed with the auction for the Yin Gathering Tree seed. The bid will begin at 30 spirit stones, with a minimum of 1 spirit stone increase." As soon as Cai Ping said that, the people in the hall started bidding one after another. Before Alex could even ask his master why the seed was so important, the bidding war down below had reached a height never seen before. "Master, what is the Yin Gathering Tree? Is it good?" he asked. "It''s good for disciples that have Yin-related body, spiritual root, or just a regular Yin-aligned cultivation method. It is very beneficial for them. It gathers Yin energy from the surrounding and makes a certain area around it filled with high-quality Yin Qi." "52 spirit stones," Ma Rong bid as she answered his question. "Is it better or rarer than a Spirit Cleansing Lily?" he couldn''t help but ask. "In terms of which is better, it depends from person to person. If I were to look at it from the perspective of a normal cultivator, the Spirit Cleansing Lily is infinitely better than the Yin Gathering Tree. However, If I were to look at it from the perspective of a sect leader, the Yin Gathering Tree can bring benefits to the sect that a single Spirit Cleansing Lily could never." "As for rarity, The tree itself is not rare, as there are more than dozens of them around the Crimson empire. However, the fruit the tree bears is very rare. And to add to that, even the fruits themselves very rarely have a seed in them. So, the seed is considered very rare. It is for sure rarer than the Spirit Cleansing Lily." She said. "Hmm¡­ master, then why is it being sold for so less?" he asked. "Well, the seed isn''t guaranteed to sprout. Especially if the environment has a lot of yang energy. So, most sellers sell it at a low price of around 50 spirit stones. The auction house probably decided to lower its initial price to gather more bidders to eventually get the price through the ceiling." As Ma Rong explained this, the bid for the seed kept on going up. It had now reached the 90s. "1 True Spirit Stone" Ma Rong suddenly bid. "101 Common spirit stone" a bid came from a room far away from them. "Damn him. He wants the seed for his honor sect as well." She said out loud. The sect leader of the honor sect that had come to the auction decided to bid against Ma Rong. "105 common spirit stone," another voice came from a room some distance away. Ma Rong''s spiritual sense didn''t extend that far, so she couldn''t tell who the bidder was. "110 common spirit stone," Ma Rong didn''t back down. ''Master really wants this seed huh,'' he thought. The raging bid kept on continuing. The other bidder had stopped and now it was only the sect leader of the Honor sect versus Ma Rong. "182 Common Spirit Stones," the Honor sect''s sect leader said after some deliberation. He didn''t seem like he wanted to spend so many spirit stones on a seed that had less than a percent chance of growing. Ma Rong fell into contemplation as well. While 180 spirit stones weren''t that expensive in her eyes, it definitely was for the Yin Gathering Tree. "182 Common spirit stones is the higher bid. Anyone who wants to bid higher?" Cai Ping asked. "182 common spirit stones going once" "182 common spirit stones going twice" "182 comm¡ª " "2 True spirit stones" Ma Rong bid just as the bidding was ending. Cai Ping smiled. She was always happy to see more bids, as 2 percent of the bid always went to her pockets. The honor sect''s sect master didn''t bid after that and the seed went to Ma Rong easily after the increased bid. The next item was brought to the table. It was a large table that was wheeled in with a massive cloth hiding what was inside. "For our next items, we have¡ª" Cai Ping took off the cloth to show a bunch of pill bottles. "Wow, so many pill bottles!" the people were shocked. "Did the auction house accidentally bring out all the pills they needed to sell for today?" someone asked. Alex looked at the newly revealed items and was surprised. ''I''m up next huh,'' he thought. For some reason, he was starting to get nervous and excited. He couldn''t wait to see how much the 135 pills would bring him. He very much looked forward to the next bidding war. Chapter 94: Pill Sales After the crowd quietened down a bit, Cai Ping started speaking. "Anyone who came to the last week''s auction surely remembers the many pills that were sold towards the end of the show. The alchemist who made the pill had decided to sell the pills with us back then for the first time. At that time, we weren''t able to reveal who the alchemist was, not because they wanted to rename unknown, but because the auction house didn''t dare ask them for their name." "However, after last week''s sale, the alchemist was happy towards our auction house and decided to give us their nickname. The alchemist from last week will henceforth be known as ''White Wolf''." "After last week''s success, Senior White Wolf has brought us many pills to sell once more. To be exact, there are 135 pills in front of you folks right now." Cai Ping stopped talking to listen to the crowd. "Wait, that''s all from one alchemist? Madam Cai, is that true?" "No way! I thought they accidentally brought out their entire pills for today. That''s just one person?" "This White Wolf senior must have taken months to make these pills. The last week''s sales was probably him just treading waters." "Has anyone heard of an alchemist named White Wolf?" The crowd kept on talking until someone said something that silenced the crowd for a while. "Madam Cai, how are you going to sell those pills? It can''t be you will auction each pill on its own, right? That would take forever." A person from a VIP room spoke. Cai Ping smiled, "Yes, we have given some thought to that. Instead of selling the pills separately. We will be selling multiple pills as a batch." "For the first batch, we have a Hundred Poisons Antidote, Minor Healing Pill, Qi Improving Pill, Swift Feet pill, and Body Warming pill. Each of these pills has exactly 32% Harmony. The bid will start at 40 spirit stones with 1 minimum spirit stone bid as increment." "41 spirit stones" "42 spirit stones" People started bidding right away. "Hmm¡­ those are all common pills, but they are quite good. Someone must''ve really been preparing for months to sell them at this auction," Ma Rong commented from the side. "No," Alex unknowingly blurted out while looking at the crowd below. "What do you mean no?" Ma Rong turned around to look at him after hearing his remark. Alex realized a little too late what he had accidentally blurted out and turned around to face his Master''s eyes. "I''m sorry for not telling you master, but I decided to auction the pills I made. Those are my pills," He said with his spiritual sense. "Yours?" Ma Rong was shocked. Since they started talking using spiritual sense, the girl behind them didn''t know what was going on. "Are you telling the truth?" She asked inquisitively. "Of course, master. Why would I lie to you?" he simply said. Ma Rong squinted her eyes and asked, "You made all those pills? when did you do that? the auction house stopped accepting items after Wednesday." "I''m not stupid master. Of course, I submitted the items on Wednesday. " Alex acted as if he was being wronged. Ma Rong then slowly asked, "So... how many days did it take you to make these? 8? 10?" "Uhh¡­ 4." "What?" Ma Rong blurted out in her real voice. thankfully, the soundproof design of the room stopped other people from listening to him. "You finished all of these in 4 days?" she then thought of something else and asked, " So, the reason you didn''t register any pills was..." "Uh, yes. I was collecting them to sell in the auction. I really wanted the spirit stones, so I decided to sell them." He let her know. "It''s your pills, so you can do what you want, but, Why do you want the spirit stones so badly? Do you want to buy something?" she asked. "Uhh¡­ " he didn''t know how to answer that. ''Do I tell her I''m doing this for money? probably shouldn''t.'' "Something like that." He simply sidestepped the entire question. Slowly, the bid down in the hall started to die down and the batch of pills was sold for a total of 88 spirit stones. Alex felt that was quite good. However, there was one thing that kept bugging him for the last few days, and it had been enhanced right now. "Master, how much does a pill usually cost someone?" he asked. " Well, that depends on the pill and its ingredients. When it''s not in the auction, one would have to gather the ingredients by themselves. If you give the alchemist the ingredients, that would cost you as little as 5 spirit stones." "However, if the alchemist finds ingredients on his own, that costs the buyer a lot. Just like how your auction for the pills is getting a lot of spirit stones." The next batch of pills was being sold right now, and the bid had reached as high as 60 spirit stones already. Every single batch of pills had pills with higher harmony, so the bids were also getting higher now. Soon almost all of the pills on the table were auctioned off. Only two pill bottles were remaining. The audience watched with anticipation as they knew whatever was in the pill was definitely something of high harmony. Ma Rong always knew her disciple was talented, but getting a first-hand experience like this was a very surreal feeling. Alex on the other hand, had a big smile plastered across his face as he realized he had managed to gather about 27 True spirit stones by now. That was about 2700 common spirit stones. Or in his real-life terms, he had just earned over 25 thousand dollars. And the final 2 pills were still yet to be sold. Chapter 95: Priceless and Worthless The staff members had taken away all but 2 pill bottles. Cai Ping picked up a bottle and said, "This pill bottle contains the Hundred Poisons Antidote. While we did auction off a few Hundred Poisons Antidote just now, this one gets to have its own time in the spotlight, because, it has a harmony of 40%." A bunch of incoherent noises started appearing from the crowd as they whispered amongst themselves. Cai Ping waited for the noise to die down a bit before she started speaking once more. "This pill is able to cure any poison below the True grade. So, the starting bid for this pill will start at 30 spirit stones, with 1 spirit stone minimum increase in bid." The crowd started bidding for the pill. Even after this many pills, their enthusiasm for the pills had barely died a little. Ma Rong looked at Alex and asked, "Did you make the 43% harmony Tiger strength pill after this pill? " she asked. Alex was surprised. "You know about that pill, master? Oh wait, you must''ve seen what I registered. That was a pill I made 2 days ago. While this one, I made it on Sunday, so 6 days ago." "Good. You are improving a lot. Make sure you don''t get overconfident from just this and change your personality. While you are naive, people like naive fellows more than snobby ones." Alex was relieved she didn''t get angry. The bidding ended with a person buying the pill for 63 spirit stones. Alex was quite happy about this. Managing to get 63 spirit stones just for a single pill was beyond his dream right now. Then Cai Ping revealed his next pill. "This is the second-best pill we have today. However, the other one is a True grade pill, so I don''t know if it even makes sense to compare them." "This pill is a Healing Lotus pill. Anyone who knows about pills knows that this is one of the best healing pills of all the common pills, maybe even the best. This pill can even bring you back from death as long as you have a little life left in you. Diseases heal just like that if you take this peal." "And senior White Wolf has not only provided us with such an impressive pill, but They have also managed to make this pill with an incredible 45% harmony." Cai Ping made sure everyone heard that. "45%? Did she just say 45%?" "Oh lord. That is 5% away from becoming a Heaven grade pill." "Can it be that this Senior White Wolf is a True Earth Grade alchemist, and he simply decided to grace us with some common grade pills?" The shock the crowd showed towards the pill was way more than Alex had expected. They were acting as if 45% was a hundred times better than the 40% pill they just saw beforehand. He looked back at his master, who was also slightly surprised. "You keep on surprising me these days. You even managed to make a 45% pill?" "Is it really that impressive when you already know I made 43% pill?" he asked. "Of course. It gets harder and harder to increase the pill''s harmony. A difference between 43% and 45% is about the same increase in difficulty as 10% to 18%. The higher the pill''s harmony, the higher the difficulty. This just goes to show how talented you are." Ma Rong cleared his confusion. ''No wonder the people are so shocked about it.'' The heated bidding war slowly came to an end as Alex''s eyes widened by the final bid. "139 spirit stones, going once." "139 spirit stones, going twice." "139 spirit stones, going thrice. Sold." Cai Ping slammed the gavel on the table. A staff member came out and took away the pill. Another staff came out with a small plate, hiding something rectangular, going by the shape of the silhouette. "The next item on the auction is this book." Cai Ping unfurled the cloth to reveal an old, dusty, almost rotting book. The outer cover looked a little torn but overall the book seemed to be without damage. Cai Ping held the book and showed it to the audience. The outside of the book had something written on it, that was visible even though the book itself was very dirty. The letters seemed black in color but shined like they were made of gold. Cai Ping started by saying, "This book has the potential to be the best item we have ever sold in our auction house. However, it might also be the worst item we have sold as of yet." Cai Ping stopped talking to create some suspense. "Best item, yet worst item? What are you talking about, Madam Cai?" "Yes, please explain, Madam Cai." Cai Ping started talking once more. "This book was given to us by somebody who wished to remain unknown. This book is the family heirloom that they have guarded for thousands of years. According to their ancestors, one day, people flew down from the heavens and stayed in their tavern." "Those heavenly folks didn''t have money with them at the time, so they gave the tavern owner this book instead, and left back to the heavens." "Within those thousands of years, many cultivators came and went in their family, yet not a single one could comprehend this book." "Given to them, by what could only be immortals of the legends, yet unable to even read the book. This book is truly both Worthless and Priceless. If your customers can''t read it either, It''s the worst item we have sold yet. However, if you can read it, it''s the best item we have sold yet." "As such, we will first let you people check the book for yourself." A staff lady came out and took the book. "We will pass it along to you all, so you can check. The people in the hall will have only 10 seconds to see if you can read the book. The people in the VIP will have 30 seconds to see if they can read the book. As for the ones in the VVIP, they will have a whole minute to check the book." Cai Ping nodded to the female staff, and the lady walked down the hall passing along the book to the various people. Chapter 96: Heavens Impact Cai Ping sold quite a few items as the dusty old book traveled from one person''s arm to another''s. Slowly, more than an hour had passed. Alex realized while he had probably earned the most from this auction in general if he counted individual prices, his pills came nowhere close. The latest items were being sold at 5 True spirit stones at starting bids alone. By the end, most of them crossed 10 true spirit stones. Cai Ping showed off the third to the last item for the auction today. She unfurled the cloth to reveal that it was a pill bottle. "This pill is a Soul Reuniting pill, that was made by Hong Wu Sect''s sect leader, Ma Rong. In case you do not know, the Soul reuniting pill is a True grade pill that can increase your chances of breakthroughs in the True realm by at least 3 fold at Mortal grade. "At earth grade, it can increase your chances by at least 10 fold. " "And at heaven grade, it can pretty much guarantee your success at breakthrough." "This pill on my hand has a harmony of 48%. That means, whoever gets this pill, is guaranteed to move forward in their journey as a cultivator. For the starting bid, we will start with 20 True spirit stones, with a minimum increase of 10 common spirit stones. " The crowd started speaking so loudly that Cai Ping didn''t even manage to comprehend what the first few bids were. "21 Spi¡­." "21 spi¡­" "22 spi.." Someone would be half finished with their bids before the other one started. Alex on the other hand was just stunned at the harmony of the pill. He turned around and said, "Master, You are more talented than me. You made a 48% harmony true grade pill." "It''s not talent. It''s experience. Once you get enough experience, you will be able to do that as well." She said. Alex simply nodded and turned around to look at the people climb over each other to bid for the pill. He finally saw how much people cared about their cultivation and how far they would go to increase it. ''Do people really have a lot of trouble for a breakthrough?'' he wondered. He himself had never cared for it, as he always had a 100% chance of breaking through. In fact, he had to slow down, cause he was too good at it. His master''s pill was still being bid, and it didn''t seem like it was going to stop anytime soon. KNOCK KNOCK The staff lady inside opened the door to let more of the staff in. Another lady appeared with a book on a tray. "Here you go, sect leader Ma," the girl spoke respectfully. The dusty old book had finally arrived at the VVIP rooms. Ma Rong picked up the book and started reading it. At first, she had hoped to understand just a few sentences to see what the book was called and what it could do, but to her surprise, she couldn''t even read a word of it. The language was just too foreign for her. She flipped through the entire book, which was filled with words, to see if there was anything she could read. On the last page, she finally found something she could read, only to be disappointed by the fact that it was the family''s message saying that it was their heirloom. A minute had passed, so she gave back the book to the staff, who bowed and swiftly left the room. She sighed and turned back to see how the auction for the pill was going. Suddenly, she saw Alex who was concentrating on something. He wasn''t looking at the auction, that was for sure. "Yu Ming? What''s wrong? You seem serious." She asked. Alex got out of his stupor and smiled as he said, "Oh, it''s nothing master. I was just surprised that one could even use spiritual sense to attack other people. That was truly eye-opening." "Use spiritual sense to attack other people? What do you mean? There is no way anyone can do that." Ma Rong said, wondering just where he got such an absurd idea from. "Huh? But that''s what Heaven''s Impact does, right?" he said. "Heaven''s Impact? What''s that?" she had never heard of such a thing. This just brought more confusion to Alex''s face. Alex smiled a little and said, "What are you talking about master? It''s obviously the book we read just now." "The book?" Ma Rong got confused for a split second before her eyes started opening wide. "Did you read the book just now?" "Oh, was I not supposed to? I''m sorry. I only read the introduction page though, so I didn''t really read it all." He said. Ma Rong was shocked. "You read it. You can read that book?" she practically shouted at this point. Thankfully, the room was entirely soundproof other than when one was bidding. "Of course I can, master. Can''t you?" Alex was surprised now. "No! Didn''t you hear what the auctioneer said? No one can read the book?" she said. "I mean, isn''t that how all higher grade books are, master? Even you said it took you about 2 months to read the immortal technique. Maybe, the family members weren''t as talented, so they took forever to read it." Ma Rong was stupefied. Her disciple had completely misunderstood the difficulty of the situation here and done something seemingly impossible in her eyes. "Yu Ming, Can you read that book?" she asked once more. "Yes," Alex answered seriously, hearing the tone in her voice. "Then you can read that language?" she asked. "Language? What language?" he asked. "Obviously the language the book was written in," Ma Rong started to get angry now. Alex was surprised. "That book was written in a language? Aren''t those just scribbled lines that are supposed to put information into your brain?" he asked. "Of course not. Those are words you are meant to read and comprehend. That''s how you learn a technique in the first place." Alex was stunned. He quickly took out the Flickering Shadows book he had with him and showed it to his master. "Master, are you telling me these lines are a language too? And that you can understand them?" Ma Rong was even more stunned as she said, "Of course that''s a language. Are you telling me you learned the book without knowing the language?" Chapter 97: Sold "Master, are you telling me that people can read this language?" Alex asked while pointing to his book. "Of course. Everyone can read this book, how else are we supposed to learn new techniques?" Ma Rong said. "But, the writing on the walls and such don''t have this language. Most buildings I''ve visited also don''t use this language in their name. How can everyone read it if they don''t even use the language?" He said. "By everyone, I meant the cultivators. Every cultivator starts by learning this language. Since it''s just our own language, just written differently, it''s easy to learn. Only after that can they learn a cultivation method in the first place." "So, why doesn''t everyone write in the normal language then? One wouldn''t have to learn this language in the first place." Alex said after giving it some thought. "Oh, and what would you do if you come across some ancient texts written in that language? You can already see what is happening right now by people not being able to read that dusty book. What would happen if everyone stopped learning this language?" she asked. "Hmm¡­ I guess you are right. If that''s how the language started then that argument is valid," Alex said. "Now you get it. Besides, using 2 different languages helps separate a cultivator''s text from a normal person''s text. But let''s forget about that for now. I want to know how you can read that text." She asked. "I¡­" ''I can do it because the game developers made it so.'' He wanted to say that, but he couldn''t. "I don''t know. I don''t understand the language but can somehow read it. Same with our own language." He said. Ma Rong couldn''t make heads or tails of the answer, so she decided to give up for now and instead focused on her pill being sold. The soul reuniting pill sold for a total of 43 True Spirit stones. The next item on the auction was an alchemy ingredient called Revitalizing Ginseng. Alex remembered the name from the records he had read on the top floor a few days ago. "An ingredient for the Body Rejuvenating pill? But I thought those were pretty much extinct?" he said. "You read the records too? Yes, they were said to be extinct, but it seems our information is wrong." Ma Rong commented. Cai Ping started explaining the ingredient. "This ginseng on my hand is called a Revitalizing Ginseng. This is the main ingredient for the pseudo-Saint rank pill called the ''Body Rejuvenating Pill''. The pill is incredible, as it can increase a person''s life span by an entire Century regardless of if you are a cultivator or a mortal." "Oh wow. A 100 years?" "That''s a lot!" "Can anyone really make that pill though? It''s a pseudo-Saint rank pill." "Maybe Hong Wu sect leader can make it, if not, we can ask the Royal alchemist for it." Numerous people talked about the ingredient in the crowd. Cai Ping continued, "The auction will start at 30 True spirit stones, and each bid has to be 50 common spirit stones higher." The crowd didn''t bid as much this time. 30 True Spirit stones were a lot for most of the people on the ground floor. The people in the VIP however, bid as though their spirit stones grew in their home''s backyard. Alex watched as his master also bid. He had read the records so he knew how good the ingredient in front of him was. A mortal on average lived around 60 years and 100 years at max. A self tempering cultivator however could live from anywhere between 100 to 200 years on average. Some even lived as long as 300 years. A True realm cultivator on the other hand could easily live between 500 to 1000 years on average. Maybe even 1500 in some cases. The Saint realm cultivator''s life span wasn''t recorded in the records but they were sure to be high in number. Just looking at that, to anyone who was a True realm cultivator or less, a Body Rejuvenating Pill would be a miracle. Especially when they were at the end of their life. The bidding was quickly ended at the merchant head fatty managed to outbid everyone with his immense wealth. He bid 100 True spirit stones for the Revitalizing Ginseng and snatched it away from everyone. After buying Ginseng, the fatty immediately walked out of his room and left the auction house. He wasn''t a good cultivator so the next item was useless for him. Quite a few people left the auction house, acting as if the auction was over. After a few minutes, only about 10% of the original audience was left. Most of them being in the VIP and VVIP rooms. "Finally, here we go fellow customers. You have all checked the book, please bid whatever you feel this book deserves." Cai Ping said not expecting the people the bid at all. "1 common spirit stones" someone bid as Cai Ping had not set a minimum bid. Cai Ping felt bad but didn''t say anything. "2 Common Spirit stones." "3 Common spirit stones." People started slowly increasing their spirit stones in the hope that they could get the book at a low price, and maybe sell it somewhere else for a higher price. Suddenly, Ma Rong spoke, "10 True spirit stones." The entire auction hall became silent. The people who were slowly increasing their bid hesitated as 10 true spirit stones was a lot of money. But then why would that person pay it? The people in the VIP and VVIP rooms were confused as well, but they didn''t bid either. Cai Ping on the other hand became grateful towards the guest in room B1. She waited for a bit for others to bid, and when they didn''t she started the countdown. "10 True spirit stones, going once." "10 True spirit stones, going twice." "10 True spirit stones, going thrice. Sold" she hit the gavel on the table with a loud bang. "The final item in the auction has been sold to the Customers in Room B1." Chapter 98: Back To Sect Once the book was sold, Cai Ping thanked everyone for coming and waited as everyone left the hall. Ma Rong took Alex with her as the lady in the room guided them to a room outside. After waiting for a while, an old man with white hair finally entered the room. "Hello, miss Ma. It''s good to see you again." He said as he bowed towards Ma Rong a little. Ma Rong also nodded a little and said, "Hello senior. It''s been a while, hasn''t it?" Alex took the opportunity to greet as well. The old man then proceeded to take out two bags of storage and handed them to Ma Rong and Alex. "Please check it," he said and sat opposite them. Alex looked into his bag and realized there were about 27 True spirit stones and a few Common spirit stones. After taking their cut of the sale, this was what the auction house had given him. Even after giving 10% of this to the Deva Corporation, he would still have about 25K dollars for himself. "Take it," suddenly he heard Ma Rong say something from the side. "Hmm¡­" he turned around to see that she was holding the dirty old book in her hand, giving it to him. "Me?" "Yes, I bought it for you. So take it." She said. "Thank you, Master." He said and gladly took the book. He read the introductory page and was still amazed that the writings on the book were languages that people spoke. ''Why would the developers change the language?'' he wondered. ''If most mortals speak the real-life language, I don''t think it was necessary to make an entirely new language right?'' "Let''s go," Ma Rong started walking away, and Alex followed her as well. Most of the people had already left the auction hall, so they didn''t meet anyone while walking out. Ma Rong took out her flying boat and flew back to the sect along with Alex. It had taken them nearly 3 hours in total, and Alex wanted to go get some food. He logged out for his afternoon lunch and returned back. ''Should I leave my dorm room, so I can have a flexible schedule for myself?'' he wondered, but immediately shook his head. Being in a dorm room had given him the freedom to play whenever he wanted, and also the university was just 5 minutes away. If he were to leave now, he would have a hard time balancing his university, home, and game time. ''Alright, let''s send my money first.'' He opened the settings and found a button that opened the bank''s panel for him. He put in the information for his bank and saved it. Then, he pressed another button that opened a panel to transfer his spirit stones to the saved bank account. He put in all of his spirit stones and hit send. He clicked yes. The spirit stones disappeared from his inventory, and he logged out. He waited for a moment and heard a notification sound. He quickly opened his phone to see a message on it. <$25,600 has been successfully transferred to your account> He kept staring at the number and was shocked. It had been less than a month since he came to the city, and he had already earned so much. "I should buy my own helmet on a free day," he thought. He marveled at the money for a while and went back to the game. He took out the dusty old book and started reading. For some reason, this book took him an exceptionally long time to read. Almost twice as much as the Immortal Grade techniques. He didn''t know if the reason for that was the difference in language, the length of the book, or the fact that it was just that exceptionally hard to understand. Still, after about 10 or so minutes, he fully learned it. He opened the description to the technique. For some reason, the information took a couple of seconds to load, instead of loading instantly like every other time. [Heaven''s Impact: Grade: Heaven Use your spiritual sense to hit your opponent''s mind with a mighty blow. The greater the difference in mental prowess, the more the damage] He wanted to test it out, but there was nothing he could try it on. This stumped him for a minute. ''I guess I''m not going to test it anytime soon then.'' He had nothing to do now, so he went to take some pills. There were still a few pills he could make today, and tonight he would have to get some ingredients from the alchemy garden to make the remaining 20 pills to be a core disciple. He started making simple pills with the remaining ingredients for already made pills and went on to try out the new pills. He was already used to making high-quality pills, so every pill he made ended up having over 30% harmony with ease. Around evening, he logged out to get his dinner and came back to the game to do his task for the night. He met elder Zhan and elder Wang and took the list for the ingredients. He walked into the alchemy garden and got every single ingredient on the list as well as the ones he required for the pills he was going to register. Between the two gardens, they had enough ingredients that he could use to make 7 of the remaining 130-ish pills he had recipes of. After handing the collected ingredient, he walked to the disciple hall. By now, his alchemy achievements had shot through the roof. While he wasn''t in the top ten yet, at this rate it wouldn''t take him more than a week to be at the top. He went into the hall to the core disciple''s section and registered his 3 new pills to the elder working there. Afterward, he returned to his residence. "Alright! 7 more pills and I will become a core disciple as well." Chapter 99: Spiritual Attack Early in the morning, Alex woke up from his cultivation. He was tired from yesterday''s auction, so he had decided to just cultivate for the night. He opened his status to check his current Qi. He had about 1.6 million Qi right now. If he wanted to, he could easily break through to the Bone Tempering 9th Realm. But, that would be bad for his foundation as his cultivation base would be hugely destabilized. The further one went, the worse it would be. He logged out to get some breakfast and came back. Just as he logged back in, his master arrived as well. ''Huh? Are we going somewhere today too?'' he wondered. "Come, it''s time for our lesson." She said as she walked into a room that was not the alchemy room. Alex was more surprised now. "Master, weren''t we done with lessons? At least, until I was able to turn 50% of my current Qi into True Qi?" he asked. "I am not here to teach you alchemy today. I''m here to teach you about the basic knowledge every cultivator should have, that you certainly don''t." "Let''s start with language¡­" Ma Rong went on to teach him how to read the language for about 2 hours. She was confident he could learn it in two hours with his superior memory and mental strength. In two hours, Alex was good, if not better than most of the cultivators out there in reading the language. "Alright, take out that old book. Let''s see if you can translate that book." She said. Alex nodded and brought out Heaven''s impact book. Ma Rong looked at the book and asked, "See if you can read it now that you know it''s a language." He tried to read it, but he couldn''t understand a single word in the book. To him, they were just another piece of paper with scribbles on it. "I can''t master. I can''t read it." He said. "Hmm¡­ didn''t you say you read the introduction page?" she asked. "Oh, that. I didn''t exactly read it. It''s more like after I look over it, the information just comes to my mind." He said. Ma Rong frowned a bit. The book had an unknown origin, meaning if anyone could read these books, they might be able to use abilities not yet seen in the Crimson Empire. "Alright then, did you learn it?" "Well, I did learn it, but¡­" he trailed off. "But what? Is this not a technique? Is this something else?" she asked. "Oh, no. This is a technique. It''s only that I couldn''t use it at all since I didn''t have a target to practice on. So, I still don''t know exactly what it does, only that it uses spiritual sense to attack another person''s mind." "Hmm¡­" Ma Rong contemplated for a moment and said, "Alright, attack me." "Umm¡­ are you sure master?" he asked. "Yes, if it does in fact attack the mind, I''m confident that my mind is stronger than yours." She said. Alex felt the reasoning made sense. "Ok, then, here I come master." He immediately started using the technique. He expected his Qi to start flowing as he started the technique, but to his surprise, they stayed where they were. Instead, his spiritual sea started churning like crazy. Suddenly, a vortex appeared in the middle of his spiritual sea and quickly drained as a quarter of his spiritual sea dried up within a second. All of the disappeared sea turned into a massive cloud of spiritual sense that started forming what he felt was a solid shape. They came together to form a fist, ready to launch outward. He looked towards his master and regarded her as the target. Suddenly, the newly formed fist made up of spiritual sense flew out of his Spiritual sea and slammed right into Ma Rong''s head. Ma Rong had been waiting for the attack to arrive, so she had been monitoring with her spiritual sense. Suddenly, she felt something move near her disciple. And out of nowhere, it struck her head. Ma Rong felt her consciousness die for a moment as everything around her dimmed to the point she couldn''t see anything. Her body went limp without the control of her mind and started falling to the ground. Within mere split seconds, she caught herself from falling and stabilized herself. Her breathing had gotten disorderly and there were traces of fear in her eyes. "Are you okay, master?" Alex asked as he was worried that she might have been hurt. "I- I''m fine. I''m fine." She was shocked at just how strong the attack was. Even without considering the difference in their cultivation, she had more than twice his mental strength, yet she had lost consciousness for a second there. That went to show just how terrifying this ability was. "How is your spiritual sense? Any changes?" she asked. "Changes? No, but I did lose a quarter of my spiritual sea on that attack." He said. "I see. Well, it only makes sense for you to do so much damage if you had to use such a high amount of spiritual sense. Don''t worry, after mind tempering realm, you will have a much stronger mental strength and can easily use that technique multiple times." She reassured him. "Mind tempering realm? I understand master." Alex was looking forward to growing stronger as a cultivator now. "Alright then, try and see if you can somehow understand the language there. It will help me as well if I can understand that language. As for alchemy, how many pills do you have yet to register?" she asked. "7, master." He said. "Alright. Do what you want for now. I will return back around noon to continue our lesson." She said and walked away. Alex was just happy that his master was investing so much time in him. He was looking forward to seeing what his master would teach him now that she was done teaching about the languages. "I guess I will have to wait and see. For now, let''s go get some lunch." He logged off. Chapter 100: Masters Lessons Ma Rong came back at noon, exactly on the dot, and spent the next 3 hours teaching him the various things one would have to know as a cultivator. She taught him from the smallest things such as what a cultivator should and should not call each other to things such as the different cities and the powerhouses in them across the Crimson Empire. She taught him about the Royal Fu family and Fu Tian, the King of the Crimson Empire. She taught him how the royal Fu family sent its descendants around the empire to rule as city lords and ladies. She also gave him a map of the crimson empire to learn and memorize where all the cities were relative to one another. She also taught him about how a cultivator fought. Some fought with weapons, some fought with their bare hands, some fought using impressive techniques, some fought using poison, some fought using beasts, some fought using bugs, some fought using formations, some fought using talismans, some fought using weird artifacts, and some even fought using pills. She also taught him about the other production methods aside from the alchemy itself. Some made formations, some made artifacts, some made solely weapons, and some made talismans. "The last thing, make sure to hide your true talents in front of others. Like I said before, people are envious creatures. Cultivators are no different either. They will betray you the moment they learn you have something they don''t. It won''t matter to them whether they can obtain it or not, if they can''t have it, no one can." "You are young and you are pure-hearted, but that heart will for sure dye in the filth of the world of cultivation. Make sure you never let that filth stick to yourself. You might get drowned in it, but you have to learn to climb over it." "For that, you can''t just be an alchemist and hope to live in the cultivation world safely. There are strong people out there with bad motivation that might force you into working for them if you aren''t strong enough to defend yourself. So, you have to be strong, strong enough to fight off your enemies. I wish you never have to kill anyone, but I know you will have to, even if it''s just to defend yourself and your loved ones. The only thing I can do is hope is you don''t lose yourself along with your enemies." "Alright, that''s enough for today. You don''t have to worry about all these things right now but keep it in mind. I taught you almost everything I could. There are many things I still haven''t taught you but that''s just because I am not too knowledgeable in them either. You will hopefully learn them soon." "I''m leaving now, you do what you have to." Ma Rong left the room and walked outside. She took out a medallion and used her spiritual sense to send out a message to all the elders saying, "Starting tomorrow, all the elders who used to work on the alchemy garden are to go back to working on it." The elders got confused why the sect leader would do that, but they accepted them anyway. Alex on the other hand remained stunned in his home. He had learned a lot today, yet the final words of his master were what remained to playback in his mind. ''I will have to kill people.'' He didn''t question the statement and took that as a fact. He knew that was true. After all, this was a game and killing was just an aspect of it. Still, for some reason, killing people wasn''t something he would look forward to. He spent the next few hours absorbing the information his master had just gave him. After he was done learning everything, he left the game to get some dinner. After dinner, he came back and went to the sect valley to work. This day, he hadn''t got the time to make any pills, so he wasn''t going to register any. After finishing his work, he went back to his residence and managed to make the 6 different pills throughout the night. After today''s lesson, he didn''t have the mental energy to make any more so he just cultivated throughout the rest of the night. In the morning, he logged out of the game and stayed logged out to do some of his classwork. He only returned back to the game after his classes were over. After logging in, he looked at his storage bags and realized he only had one more pill to go. He was feeling unusually fresh today, so he went on to finish the last pill. Ma Rong came to his house at around 4 pm. She walked in and sent out her spiritual sense to find him in the middle of alchemy. She walked into the alchemy room to see his absolutely focused face carefully looking at the cauldron. After a few minutes of intense concentration, he finally opened the lid and a pill flew out of it. As he pulled the pill out, he slumped in exhaustion. The pill that had just formed was blood red in color and used blood ginseng as its primary ingredient. It was called the Blood Improving pill. It was a common rank pill that would instantly refill a person''s blood after they have lost a lot of blood. Or if they did already have blood, it would thicken it and invigorate it with more strength. This pill was especially important to people in their old ages or people with anemia, as it would counteract their loss of blood and give them a much-needed boost in stamina. Alex looked at the blood-red pill in his hand and felt its aura. Just the smell alone nearly brought him out of his fatigue, while the aura was something he had never felt before. He focused on the pill to look at its information as a small panel popped up on top of it. [Blood Improving Pill: 50%] He had just made his first Heaven-grade pill. Chapter 101: Leaving "Hahaha hahaha," he started laughing like an idiot. Ma Rong could already tell that the pill had a high harmony, still, she walked in to test it. Alex looked at her and said, "Oh, hello master. I didn''t see you come in." He got up from the ground and dusted himself off. Ma Rong had already taken out a pill tester and brought it forward. Alex didn''t question anything and just put the pill directly into the pill tester. Ma Rong watched as the fog slowly rise up. She had expected it to cross 40% and wasn''t surprised when it did. As she watched the fog slowly rise up, more and more until it stopped at 50%. "Heaven! You made a Heaven grade pill!!" she involuntarily let out a loud shock. "Yeah. I got lucky for the most part, but yes. Getting fresh ingredients also helped a lot." He said with a smile. Ma Rong didn''t say another word as she kept on looking at the pill and only spoke after a while, "It took me until I was an elder before I made a heaven-grade pill, yet you made it in just under a month. This is way too shocking." Alex didn''t reply, but instead asked a question, "What are you doing here master? Are we going to have another lesson?" "Hmm¡­ No. Did you forget what day it is today?" she asked. "Today? It''s Monday of course. Was something supposed to happen today?" he was a little confused. "Did you forget what you said 2 weeks ago?" Ma Rong asked. "2 weeks ago?" he started thinking. His perfect memory only went back until the Wednesday before the last one, so he needed to think a bit to remember. "Oh, wait. Tiger sect. Am I going to Tiger Sect?" he asked, finally realizing what she meant. "Yes, I''m here to take you to the Tiger sect right now. Come with me." She said as she started walking out. "Master, the pill?" he asked, stopping her in her tracks. Ma Rong only then realized she was still holding the pill tester. "Oh right," she quickly took out a pill bottle and put it back. "Here," she handed him the pill back. Instead of taking it, however, he brought out 6 other pill bottles. "Master, take these. Please register them on my behalf when you have the time. I won''t be able to now that I''m leaving for Tiger sect." Ma Rong checked the pills and realized all of them were some of his best products. "How many more pills do you have to make?" she asked. "None. That was my last one." He said pointing to the blood-red pill. "Alright then, after you come back from the Tiger sect in 2 weeks, you will have to take the core disciple test." She said and kept the pills. She then gave him a storage bag. Alex took the bag and found out it was full of different types of healing pills. "What''s this for master?" he asked. "You will need them if you are going to the tiger sect. Especially since you won''t have Wen Cheng''s protection for about a few weeks." Ma Rong said. "Not have master''s protection? I don''t understand, Master." "Basically, Wen Cheng wants to keep your relationship as a secret for a few weeks. That doesn''t matter right now, Wen Cheng will explain to you most of the rest." She then took out a set of bluish-gray robes that were very plain to look at. "Wear these for now," she threw the robes at him. Alex quickly changed into his new plain robes and walked outside with her. "Master, I can go by myself if you are busy by the way." He said. "Nonsense. Come on, I''m taking you there." She said as she took out the flying boat and got on top of it. "Master, do you really need the boat now that you have spiritual sense?" he asked. "Not really, but it is still easier to use, and I''m used to it." She said and gestured for him to climb up. Alex jumped onto the boat and the boat set off. "Alright, listen up. I talked to Wen Cheng, and we decided that you need to learn to confront a normal sect on your own. You will enter the sect as a normal disciple and rise along with the ranks the normal way. Also, this might be the chance for you to breakthrough in your cultivation, so make sure to properly cultivate every night. " "Wen Cheng will teach you the rest. While I may not like admitting it, he really is a good teacher. Both of his disciples are the best Tiger sect has produced in a while." Ma Rong talked a lot but somehow didn''t give out a lot of information. "Alright, go invisible," she said and watched Alex disappear in front of her eyes. "Oh yeah, one more thing. You are not allowed to use the invisibility technique or the Flickering Shadows technique during your fights. Only use them in training, or when you spar against Wen Cheng." Alex couldn''t understand why that was, but it probably had something to do with hiding his talent and abilities. His master did say it made people jealous. "Here we are, Jump down and reappear in an alley. After that just go to the sect gate and tell them your name and that you are a new disciple of the sect. They should know that someone like you is arriving." Alex nodded and did as she said. "Goodbye master," he said and jumped down, slowly floating his way down. After landing, he went to a nearby alley and appeared from the other side finally visible. He walked towards the north side of the town looking for the gate to the sect. When he finally found it, he was shocked. He had been expecting a big gate with no other building in the vicinity. But instead, the Tiger sect''s gate was actually a small bustling market on its own. Chapter 102: Inner Sect Disciple Alex was shocked that the entrance to the sect was actually a bustling market. He saw some shops that sold alchemy ingredients, some that sold weapons, some sold general artifacts, some sold talismans, and some even sold formation flags. ''What is going on here?'' he wondered. Most of the customers in this market were disciples of the Tiger Sect with their yellow robes and either green or blue linings. ''Blue, I think was Inner sect disciples, right? So green has to be the outer sect. Was senior sister''s red-colored lining for core disciples?'' he wondered. He walked past the many disciples and finally saw a small but expensive-looking gate. The gates had two pillars with a statue of a mighty tiger in a mid striking pose on top of both the gates. Between the two pillars was a massive curved board that had the words, ''TIGER SECT'' written on it. Alex walked past the gate and was immediately stopped by a man in a yellow robe with silver linings. ''Elder?'' he thought. "Stop right there. Who are you, and what are you doing here?" the elder inquired. "Ah, hello. My name is Yu Ming. I am a new disciple of the Tiger Sect. I was told that you guys would know about it." He said. "Hmm¡­ Yu Ming?" the elder quickly checked his notes and exclaimed, "Ah, yes. We are waiting for you. Come with me." The elder took him to a building right next to the gate and knocked on one of the doors inside the building. "What is it?" a sound came from the inside. "Leader, the disciple named Yu Ming is here." The elder said and waited. "Come in." The elder opened the door and walked it. Inside the room, was a very young man sitting on a chair. He had short black hair and was wearing an elder''s clothes. As for his age, he was barely in his late 20s. ''Such a young man, and he''s already an elder? He looks way younger than even martial uncle.'' Alex thought. "Leave," he commanded and the other elder left. "So, you are the new disciple huh." The young man said. "Yes, Elder," Alex replied. The elder stopped for a second but continued as if nothing happened. "Hmm¡­ Bone Tempering 3rd realm huh. He did say you were around this cultivation stage. That means you will directly become an inner sect disciple." The elder took out a couple of things from his bag and handed it to Alex. "Here are 2 sets of clothes, and this is your badge." Alex took the clothes and kept them in his bag. As for the badge, he looked at it and just saw a big number ''2608'' written on it. He tried to scan it with his spiritual sense and realized it had a formation plate inside of it. But unlike a nameplate, he couldn''t access it. The elder then began to explain, "Tiger sect is different from Hong Wu sect. The alchemists are a bunch of pacifists who only hole up in their homemaking pills. In the Tiger sect, everything depends on your cultivation and fighting strength. You are currently the lowest-ranked disciple in the sect." "However, you can go challenge anyone in the top 275 that is not in the Bone Tempering realm and get their homes for free. I suggest you go for the person at 275 so that it''s an easy win and you don''t need to go through a lot of trouble today." "In Tiger sect, the disciples are separated into Outer, inner and core disciples based on their Cultivation base. Anyone with cultivation can automatically become an outer sect, anyone with Bone tempering realm of cultivation can become an inner sect, and anyone with Meridian Tempering realm can become a core disciple." "There is a maximum quota of 50 core disciples, 225 inner sect disciples and the rest are outer sect disciples. Depending on your rank, and the strength of other disciples, you can be a disciple with high cultivation base and still be an outer sect disciple." "Also, I don''t know why, but I was told to give you this." He took out a normal-looking sword. "It''s a Common mortal-grade sword that doesn''t even have a name. From now on you are to use this sword to fight." Alex was surprised. ''How often do I have to fight in this sect?'' he wondered. "Now go and settle or fight. Here in Tiger sect, we do whatever we want." Alex was stunned as he was sent away. The elder didn''t give him a single piece of information about the sect itself. ''Where am I supposed to live? I don''t even have a map,'' He thought. After he left the building, he walked a little further to see a massive mountain. The mountain wasn''t very tall, but it was very wide. He saw thousands of houses on the mountain and a single pathway up the mountain. Many disciples were walking up and down the mountain. He walked up the mountain and saw the houses had numbers. "Hmm¡­ 2138" he walked to the right of the house and saw the next house had the number 2139. "Oh, so we are supposed to live in these houses huh. Since I''m already an inner sect disciple, I should do what the elder said and challenge someone in house 275. It took him a while to understand the logic behind how the houses were named. From the ground to the top of the mountain, there was only a single path. However, every time the path crossed a line of houses, there were another 2 paths spawning from the original path, that circled the mountain. The lower the base a house was, the higher its number was. Alex immediately started walking upwards, skipping tons of houses. Finally, after skipping dozens of lanes, he reached the lanes where the houses were numbered in the 200s. After searching for a while, he found a house numbered 275. He scanned the house using his spiritual sense and found that no one was inside. Alex was puzzled as to what to do next. Chapter 103: Fighting Hall Alex looked at the house carefully. It seemed to have been made out of brick and mud mostly, yet had a moderately large wooden board on the outside. ''That''s a weird choice for a design,'' he thought. He looked around thinking what to do next. He then saw a person walking on the road outside and stopped him. "Hello brother, I''m new here. Do you mind telling me how I can find the owner of this house?" "New?" he looked at Alex''s cultivation base and realized he was just as strong as him. "If it''s for challenging, just go to the fighting hall and challenge him. Unless he is out of the sect, you can fight him for the house." "Oh, and where is the fighting hall?" Alex asked. "Take this road straight around the mountain, and you will find the fighting hall in the sect crater." The man left after saying that. Alex decided to follow what the man was saying and followed the path that went around the side of the mountain. After a few minutes of walking, he went past the mountain, coming up on the other side. When he looked down on the other side of the mountain, he was surprised. "He wasn''t kidding when he said crater." In front of him was a massive crater on the back half of the mountain. The crater had reshaped the mountain to have a crescent shape on the backside, and the paths that went around the side, all joined eventually to go down to the crater through either of the two narrow parts of the mountain remaining. Alex walked down to the crater and was shocked at just how large it was. The crater, just by itself, was about twice the size of the Hong Wu sect''s sect valley. ''What could have fallen here to have caused such a large crater?'' he wondered. Even a saint realm monster only made a 20 meters wide crater. For something to make such a big crater, it would have to be very large or very powerful. He walked into the crater looking at the different buildings. Surprisingly, there were very few buildings here. What there were a lot of were fighting stages. Everywhere he turned his head to, he could see two disciples fighting each other with an elder staying as a referee. He finally found a building named Fighting Hall. He saw at least a dozen different lines of disciples outside the hall. He asked the person in front of him how he should go about fighting someone, and the person simply pointed towards the wall behind the elders recording the fight requests. ''Oh wow, that''s quite a comprehensive list of rules.'' He thought. He read the rules and was surprised just how much fighting was allowed in the sect. A disciple could challenge 10 times in a day, and could also be challenged 10 times a day. Unless the disciple was out on leave by the authority of the sect, he would have to fight every single one of the challenging battles. Every Monday to Thursday, one would have to finish their fights by 9 pm. On Friday and Saturday however, there was no limit to how much someone was challenged. But also, one didn''t have to end all of their fights at all. But, if they went an hour without fighting, the match would be automatically forfeited. Sunday was the only day of rest for these people and nobody was allowed to challenge anybody. This was his first day today, so he was exempted from the rules, but starting tomorrow, he would have to fight this way too. Finally, when his turn came, he took out his badge and handed it to the elder, and said, "275". According to the rules, one could register a fight with someone based on their names or their badge number. The elder was surprised to see a number difference between the number in the badge and the number of the opponent. But when he looked at Alex''s robe, he understood. The elder quickly registered the fight and took out a medallion from his bag to transmit something. "Go to stage 24 and wait for your opponent to arrive. If he doesn''t arrive by 9 pm, you win." Alex thanked the elder and searched for stage 24. It didn''t take him long to find the stage as there were numbered stones in front of the stage. He waited outside the stage and watched the people in front of his fight. Most of the people used swords or spears, while very few liked to fight hand to hand. He didn''t see any of the other types of fighters his master has told him about. Many people came and fought. The elder would call out his and his opponent''s number from time to time, but only he would respond. His opponent was nowhere to be seen. Once again another fight ended. The elder always took the disciples badged before they fought and gave the lower numbered badge to the person who won. ''What exactly is the benefit of having a lower-numbered badge aside from getting to live in the inner set disciple''s area?'' he wondered. "Number 2608 and 275" "" Here"" two sounds came out at the same time. One of them was Alex, while the other one belonged to a 20-year-old man with an elongated face. The man looked towards Alex and was shocked. Hearing the number, he had expected an outer sect disciple to try out his luck at the lowest-ranked inner sect disciple. But when he saw Alex in his inner sect clothes, he was shocked. Alex looked at the man and realized he was in Muscle Tempering 5th Realm. ''So weak?'' he thought. Both of them walked up to the stage and handed their badges to the elder. The elder too was surprised to see Alex wearing inner sect disciples'' clothes, but said nothing about it. Alex wasn''t sure how exactly to fight this person. His only fighting experience till now had been with the monsters in the forest, and those were the ones he killed. He couldn''t even hurt his opponent badly here, much less kill them. He was in a real dilemma now. "Fight" Chapter 104: Black Stele "Fight," the elder shouted. The young man immediately got into a fighting stance with a blue shining sword in his hand. Alex took out his new unnamed sword as well. Not knowing what exactly to do, he waited for his opponent to start the fight. As soon as his opponent charged at him, he started using his Focus mode. Suddenly, everything around him started to slow down. The blue light from his opponent''s sword got much brighter as he saw both fury and despair in the young man''s eyes. Alex easily sidestepped the thrust and used the flat side of the blade to hit the man on his back. With a cultivation base higher than his opponent by an entire minor realm, his force was enough to make the man fly out of the 20-meter wide stage. Alex looked at where the man had gone to and turned around to look at the elder. He didn''t know the rules to a fight and was wondering if going out of the stage was considered a loss or not. Once the elder gave the signal for the match over, he walked over to the elder and got the badge with the number ''275'' on it. The other man was already standing up and walking towards the elder to get his new badge. Seeing how low it was, he immediately got in the line outside the fighting hall to fight some higher opponents. Alex on the other hand didn''t know what to do. He didn''t want to immediately fight after coming to his new sect, so instead, he walked around the sect looking at the different buildings. There weren''t a lot of buildings. There were only 4 buildings there, aside from the Fighting hall. They were a Training hall, a library, a disciple hall, and surprisingly a production hall. He hadn''t expected a sect focused on fighting to have a dedicated hall for productions. He learned that one could produce talismans, artifacts, and pills in there. ''At least there is a place here where I can practice alchemy,'' he thought. Almost all of the other places in the sect crater were just fighting ground, except for one. At the very center of the crater, there was a massive black stele with texts on it that shined iridescent colors. Alex tried to read the texts but realized he couldn''t understand them. The text didn''t belong to the language the mortals used or the ones cultivators used. ''Can it be?'' he wondered and compared the text to the one in the Heaven''s Impact book. They were the same. "What a coincidence. I hope this is another spiritual technique." This type of text required him to read with a spiritual sense for some reason, so he decided to do so. He tried to use his spiritual sense to read it but he suddenly felt something attack his spiritual sea. He immediately brought back his sense and crouched on the ground with his hands around his head. It hurt him like crazy. "Arghhh¡­ What was that?" he thought. It took a while before the pain in his mind subsided and he realized he had lost all of his Spiritual Sea. It was totally dry. It would take some time to restore, but if he hadn''t reeled back his senses in time, he would have taken some real damage. He felt his forehead brimming with sweat as the fear started to die down finally. He looked towards the black stele once more with some remaining fear in his eyes. ''Screw this,'' he thought and went back to his new home. It took him a while to return back to house number 275. Once he finally did reach it, he was confused as to how to open the doors. He looked around the doors for a second but didn''t find anything. So, he started using his spiritual sense to check for any locks. Suddenly, he noticed a formation plate inside the wooden board outside the house. ''That looks similar to the one on my badge,'' he thought. He took out his badge and placed it near the wooden board. KADAK The door opened. He walked inside with his badge and pushed the door back and heard it lock back. Now that he was inside, everything inside started lighting up. The house was fancy with multiple lanterns, but in the end, it was still just a single room. He sat on the bed and looked up. Suddenly, his eyes went wide. On the wall in front of him, there was a large wooden board that had many names on it. He counted them and realized there were exactly 274 names in there. ''Everyone that is higher than me?'' he wondered. He memorized the names starting from the top. When he looked at the name on the top, he was surprised. "Well, I shouldn''t be, but it''s still surprising." The name in the first place was Luo Mei. He also found another name he knew, Meng Yun, around 112. ''Wasn''t she in the 7th realm of Bone Tempering back when I met her? Wonder how much stronger she has gotten.'' He thought. "hmm..." he was shocked to see a few names that just didn''t match the other names in the list. "Lucy, David, Adam... " he started reading a few more names in the list. "These are Players? Wow, I didn''t think I would meet one here. Hong Wu sect has none of them." He was finally in a sect with players. It was time for his dinner, so he logged out to get some food. He returned back to the game shortly after and realized something was different in the room. The wooden board that had names on it was now blank with a bit of dim light around its edges. There was a black circle on its bottom left corner about the size of a small bowl. ''What''s that?'' he decided to check with his spiritual sense. Suddenly, he realized that behind the wooden wall was a massive metal plate that has the formation scribbles on it. While next to it was a smaller, circular metal plate, very similar to the one outside. He walked up to the board and placed his badge on it. Suddenly, the light around the wooden board died and a bunch of texts started appearing on the wooden board. "Come to the top of the mountain, behind the sect leader''s building. Try not to be seen by other disciples if possible, since I want your existence to be a secret for now. I will wait for you¡ª Master" Chapter 105: Training "Oh, Master sent me this message," he said as he read the message on the wooden board. He took the badge off of the wooden board and the message disappeared. Alex walked to the door and placed his badge on the wooden panel next to the door. KDAK The door opened once more. He sent out his spiritual sense to see if there were anyone. After confirming there were none, he turned invisible and activated his Immortal Concealment technique. Once he was basically untraceable, he left the house. He went onto the main path and started walking upward. Quite a few disciples were walking around, but he managed to pass them without being noticed. He looked straight at the top and saw a giant building. ''Is that master''s building?'' he wondered. He walked there without any distractions. After reaching the building, he went through the building to the back. "Oh, wow" he looked down the mountain to see the sect crater fully lit up, looking extraordinarily brilliant. A person was sitting cross-legged on a giant rock nearby looking at the sect crater in a daze. He seemed to be in his late 40s with a scruffy beard. The night was dark, but Alex could see the golden linings glittering brightly in the otherwise pale yellow robe. Alex sent out his spiritual sense to see if anyone else was around, and dropped his invisibility and concealment after not noticing anyone. "Master, I''m here," he called out to Wen Cheng sitting on top of the giant rock. Wen Cheng looked at him, surprised. "You arrived much faster than I expected. You didn''t let anyone see yourself while coming here, right?" he asked. "Yes, master. No one saw me." "Alright, come with me," he took Alex to a lone standing room away from the main building. It looks dirty from the outside, but when he walked in, he was surprised at how well kept it was. The walls were white all around, while the floors were metallic. He looked at the weird carvings on the floor and asked, "Is there a formation here as well?" "Yes, there is a formation set to the room that absorbs all sort of energy from escaping the room, including sound energy. So we can practice as much as we want without anybody noticing." He then turned around to Alex and asked, "So, How did you like the sect? is it better than Hong Wu Sect?" "It''s not bad. although I will have to check it for a little bit longer, but this seems like a good place," he said. They talked for a little longer before Wen Cheng decided it was time to train. "Alright, are you ready? We will be starting with the basics now. What do you use most? Swords, spears, or some other weapons?" Wen Cheng asked. "I have a sword that I use, but I''m not a swordsman so I can train in other weapons if need be," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ since you have that True rank sword, I think it will be better to teach you in sword fighting. Did you get that normal sword I asked Liu Xun to give you?" he asked. Alex took out the normal sword he got from the young leader of the guards today and showed it to Wen Cheng. "Alright, let me see how good you are. Come attack me." Wen Cheng said as he got into position. "Attack you? With the sword?" Alex was surprised. He didn''t expect Wen Cheng to immediately start fighting without even giving any training. "Yeah, attack me. I''m trying to test your limit as a fighter. I can''t help you improve if I don''t know where you are right now. So just attack me without any reservations. You won''t hurt me even if you hit me. Although, don''t use any damaging techniques, since I just want to test your martial skills right now." Wen Cheng''s explanation felt reasonable to Alex, so he nodded and readied his sword. With a single dash, he arrived right in front of his master with the sword halfway through his swing. Without a single worry in his eyes, Wen Cheng simply stepped back and let the sword hit the empty space. Alex didn''t hit his target so he stumbled as his balance nearly destabilized, but he immediately steadied himself and went for a single thrust. This time, Wen Cheng simply brought a sheathed sword and lightly touched the tip of the incoming sword. The small touch was enough to derail Alex''s entire attack, making him miss by a very wide margin. Wen Cheng then thrust his sheath directly into Alex''s chest sending him flying. "This is what happens when you only focus on Alchemy and don''t give enough time for normal cultivation. Just two attacks, and it''s enough for me to know that you have simply no idea how to fight. No sword style, no footwork, or any other form of martial art. I had expected as such, but seeing you waste your talents still hurts my heart." "Look at you, you broke through to the 3rd realm two weeks ago when I saw you first, yet you are already at the 5th realm. What people wouldn''t give for such a talent, yet you don''t even know how to fight. This is too much of a waste." "Starting tonight, You will have a rigorous training schedule from 9 to 3. You can spend the rest of the time cultivating or doing whatever else you like. I will usually have to do my work as a sect leader during the day, so you will have to practice some stuff on your own during the day." "Come here," Wen Cheng called Alex towards himself as he too walked next to a wall in the room. Wen Cheng banged twice on the wall and suddenly the wall split open to show a rectangular opening. Wen Cheng took out a metal plate and placed it on the opening. "Ma Rong mentioned about teaching you a lot of things, but left Spiritual roots mostly untouched. Do you know what they are?" he asked. "No, Master. Other than the fact that they exist and have something to do with the elements, I know nothing about them." Alex replied honestly. "I figured as much. Alright then, I guess I will have to start teaching you about it from the very basics." Chapter 106: Testing "From what I know of Alchemy, it doesn''t seem to have any specific element-based techniques, so it''s understandable why Ma Rong didn''t teach you about Spiritual Roots and left them for me." The metal plate that Wen Cheng had put up on the wall had started to glow as 5 distinct colors started appearing on it in a circular shape in 5 different places. On the top center was a circle with a red light on it. To the right, a little lower was a circle with blue light coming off of it. On the bottom right was another circle with green light coming off of it. On the bottom left was a circle with a brown light coming off of it. And finally, a little lower to the top left was another circle with Golden yellow light coming off of it. At the center of the bigger circle that had lines connecting it to the other 5 circles. Inside the big circle was a drawing or a carving of a palm. At the center of the palm was another small rectangular cutout. "This is a formation plate used to find a disciple''s spiritual roots. Take a spirit stone and put it in that slot. After that place your palm along with the diagram and wait for the formation to do its work." Wen Cheng stepped aside for Alex to move to the front and do what he was just told to. Alex walked to the front and was about to do what he was told, but he stopped. "Umm¡­ Master, I don''t have a spirit stone. Can I get one?" He was embarrassed even asking for one, but he had to since he had sent all of his to his bank account. "You don''t have a single spirit stone? I thought you alchemists were supposed to be rich." Wen Cheng was surprised but he still took out a spirit stone for him. "You are going to have to sell your pills here if you want to do anything here. Unlike the Hong Wu sect, we don''t do transactions in contribution points. Everything here is done through actual money. So if you don''t have any spirit stones, you might as well not be here." Alex took that advice to heart and took the spirit stone Wen Cheng gave him. He then inserted it into the slot and placed his palm on top of it. "Alright, it''s going to send a bunch of Qi into your body, don''t try to stop it. Once it is in, use your cultivation method to allow it to coarse through your meridians. Once it is done, it will come back to the metal plate and light it up depending on what your spiritual roots are." Wen Cheng started advising him on what to do. Alex then prepared himself, waiting for the Qi to come in. The Qi started to flow slowly into him and picked up in intensity as time went on. It started pooling along his palm waiting for him to use his cultivation method to take it in. ''Wait, if I use my cultivation method, won''t I fall asleep?'' He started getting worried. There hadn''t been a single time when he had cultivated and not fallen asleep. He racked his brain to try and think of any other way, but couldn''t. ''Whatever, here it goes.'' He closed his eyes and started breathing slowly, waiting for his cultivation method to kick in. He fully expected his consciousness to vanish, but it didn''t. For some reason, for the first time, he could finally cultivate without falling asleep. ''What is going on?'' he wondered. This was a very unique situation he was in, but he instead ignored the situation, for now, to focus on the Qi moving into his body. The Qi started to move along his body at a steady speed. The Qi went around his body through the meridians in his body. Alex used spiritual sense to look at the Qi moving along his body and was surprised. For the first time, he properly saw the seven-colored light properly, instead of it being just a glimpse. The lights weren''t very bright, but they were there. And they were all coming from his meridian. ''7 colors''¡­ 5 of those colors are the same color as the one in the metal board. Wait for a second, is the meridian my spiritual root?'' he was surprised. He had wondered what a spiritual root was, but never got a proper answer from anywhere on the Internet. ''Do people not know about them since they don''t have a spiritual sense yet?'' he wondered. The Qi moved through his entire body and returned back to his palm in exactly 1 minute, and by this time, all of the Qi had shrunken in size by more than half and instead gotten more viscous as well as vigorous. They had also gained a slight yellow color to them. His Sun God''s Divine Yang body had converted the Qi to Yang Qi. He had gained a lot of Qi from the spirit stones, yet the Qi wasn''t in his control, so it left his body and entered the metal plate. Wen Cheng came forward and looked at the metal plate. "You can remove your hand now," he said and waited for Alex to get back. Alex did as his master said and stopped using his cultivation method. He got back to where his master was standing and looked at the metal plate as well. It took a while for the metal plate to process the result, so Wen Cheng took the time to explain how it worked. "The metal plate will take your Qi and use it to look for your spiritual roots. Depending on your elemental alignment, the board will light up to show your spiritual root. Depending on which light shines, we can tell what your spiritual roots are. Oh, look. It''s starting." Wen Cheng stopped talking as the board started lighting up. Slowly, under both of their eyes, all 5 of the circles started lighting up at the same time. They were very dim at first but slowly increased with intensity as time passed. Chapter 107: Bad Spiritual Roots The light slowly started growing brighter and brighter. All 5 circles were shining with the same intensity. The board aside from the circles was also shining a bit yellow. "The lights determine how well you can use that particular element. So at some point, some of the lights will go out leaving you with the ones that you have elemental alignment with." Wen Cheng said from the side. Alex knew what his spiritual roots were, but he still looked forward to seeing how a normal cultivator went about to determine theirs. The light shined brightly with no sign of going out and this started to make Wen Cheng nervous. The longer it went on, the more his face frowned. At last, the lights in the circle stayed bright with no sign of increasing and the overall board also shined in bright yellow light. "Sigh, so unfortunate," Wen Cheng said while shaking his head. Alex was surprised to see such a negative reaction. ''Isn''t it good? I have all 5 elements. Why is the acting disappointed?'' He was curious, so he asked. "Is that bad, master?" Wen Cheng sighed once more and said, "From my knowledge, Yes. It''s not bad on its own, but when compared to other spiritual roots based on their advantage and disadvantages, it''s the worst." Alex got really confused at the very vague answer. Wen Cheng saw his confused face and said, "Let me explain." "There are two types of people born in this world. Those with a spiritual root, and those without it. For the ones that don''t have a spiritual root, the best they can do in a cultivation world is reach the top of the organ tempering realm. They cannot go above that." "The ones who are born with spiritual roots don''t have any sort of inherent limitations due to spiritual roots. However, even among them, there are ones that are superior and ones that are inferior." "A superior spiritual root is one that is aligned to a single or at most 2 of the 5 elements. If it is aligned with 3, it is considered an average one. While having 4 and 5 are considered the worst of the worst." He sighed once again. Alex was surprised too. He hadn''t expected his spiritual roots to be actually considered bad. As for why that was, he decided to ask. "Why are they the worst master?" Wen Cheng stopped sighing and started explaining. "Spiritual roots determine how effective a person is at handling an element. If a person has a single element root, they can use that element to its highest power. However, the more elements you introduce to one''s spiritual roots, the less effective their grasp of the elements gets." "In this manner, both ends of the spectrum have an advantage and disadvantage. The ones with fewer elemental roots can only learn techniques with those elements, but have those techniques be really powerful" "While those with more elements, they have more freedom at learning techniques, but those techniques won''t be as powerful." "In the end, being strong in a single type of element is way better than being weak in five. Ah, I was really looking forward to teaching you many things. It seems we will have to stick to the normal non-elemental techniques." Wen Cheng said as he sighed once more. Alex also started getting a little sad knowing that his talent, basically magic, was going to be bad. Suddenly, he remembered something. "Hmm¡­ but, master. But, I am good at controlling fire though. According to this, shouldn''t I be bad at that?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ show me." Wen Cheng said. "Uhh¡­ I need fire to control it. It''s an alchemy technique." He said. Wen Cheng immediately brought out a piece of paper and used a fire technique on it to burn it. Seeing this Alex immediately got to work. He started channeling his Qi and used the Flame Mastery Scripture. Suddenly the little tongue of fire that was about to go out, burned brilliantly as it expanded in size to be about a meter in diameter. Alex controlled it for a second, then started to change its size once more. Once its size was changed, he changed its size. He fluctuated between making the fire very hot, to making it very low in temperature. Alex himself had been previously surprised at how good his control of the fire had been, once his Qi had gone through another change and increased in intensity. He dropped the fire, letting it disappear as he thought, ''Hmm¡­ what if the reason my control is so good is because of my Qi? I doubt many people have Yang Qi if any.'' He thought. That was a logical assumption and the only one he could think of right now. "You really are good at it. It doesn''t make sense though? Is it because you also have a yang-focused spiritual root?" Wen Cheng thought. "Yang focused spiritual root? What makes you say that master?" Alex was surprised his master got it wrong. "Look at the board, it''s yellow, meaning your spiritual roots are yang focused. If it was yin focused, it would''ve turned azure, and it wouldn''t have glowed if it is neutral, which is what 99% of the people have." He said. Alex assumed the yellow was because of his Yang Qi, which overshadowed the yin element in his spiritual root. ''Does that mean me having both Yin and Yang is also a rarity even among the rarity? What if that is the reason behind my fire being so good?'' he thought. "Alright, that settles it. We will do something about your spiritual roots tomorrow. For today, you will have to learn swordsmanship and other non-elemental techniques." "Now, tell me, did your Ma Rong teach you any battle techniques?" "No, master. She only taught me alchemy-related techniques. She said that I should learn battle techniques from the Tiger sect since I can find the best techniques here. Although I did learn a mortal grade sword technique, that''s it." "Oh, you did?" Wen Cheng smiled a little and said, " Show me." Chapter 108: Elusive Heavenly Sword Alex took out the mortal-grade sword and started pouring his Qi into it. The sword showed some resistance at first, but quickly let his Qi in and started glowing yellow. "This is a mortal grade technique, Master. It''s called Smiting Blade and all it does is make my sword sharper and deal more damage." Alex explained to his master. "Hmm¡­ that is quite bad. Only a mortal grade? Ma Rong should have at least taught you an earth-grade technique. Honestly, what is that woman thinking?" Wen Cheng showed disapproval towards the technique. "Oh no, I learned it before I went to the forest 2 weeks ago. So master has nothing to do with it." Alex cleared some misconceptions. "Oh, if that is so, then okay. I can understand why you would learn such trash. It doesn''t even have an elemental attribute to it. I will get you some better ones to choose from tomorrow." "For today, let''s focus on just swordsmanship." Wen Cheng took out a common-looking blade and started talking. "Fighting with a sword is not about using the sword to hit an opponent as hard as you can. It''s about the proper techniques and practice." "The techniques can range anywhere from how to swing a sword to how to best apply forces to how to move your feet to get the better advantage." "Now, look at me." Wen Cheng started swinging in mid-air randomly, but to Alex''s eyes, it looked like he was fighting a very strong opponent. He weaved and dodged his enemy''s attacks by moving in a weird way using his feet, and cleaved his enemy through the chest when he could. As Alex watched more and more, he started becoming entranced. He slowly walked to an open space and started following Wen Cheng''s movements. The copy of the arts looked very wonky and not at all refined, but the basics were there. About 10 minutes later, Wen Cheng finally stopped and looked towards Alex, only to find him a distance away copying his moves. He watched his move almost the same as him and started getting shocked. ''This guy managed to nearly copy my moves just by watching me move a while?'' he thought. This was what they called talent. Wen Cheng was really happy inside that he made this kid his disciple. Alex stopped moving after a while, as he had nothing more to copy. He got out of his entranced state and was surprised at what he had just done. He looked at his own hands. ''Was I even controlling them?'' he was honestly too surprised. He hadn''t registered any of the things he did but somehow could remember them. It was a very odd experience. "Did you try to copy me?" Wen Cheng asked. "Although that wasn''t very good, the basics were there. Just the fact that you managed to do it means that you probably have a talent for it." Wen Cheng took out a rather thick book, at least thicker than most cultivation techniques Alex had seen and handed it to him. "This book contains the sword fighting style I use called the ''Elusive Heavenly Sword''. It''s mostly focused on footwork and dodging more than attacking. But it also has some strong attacks that would be considered Earth grade if they were a technique on their own." "I will get you some techniques tomorrow that you can use as proper damage technique. Read this book for now and learn as much as you can. Since it''s a heaven-grade technique, it is going to take you a while." Alex started turning the book''s pages over and realized there were a lot of images along with the text. ''This is going to take a while,'' he thought. "Master, is this considered a movement technique too? cause I need one of those as well." He said. "Oh, no. This is just a set of footwork for swordsmanship. Real movement techniques are something else. Wait a second, did Ma Rong not teach you the Hong Wu sect''s immortal grade movement technique?" Wen Cheng seemed to know about Flickering Shadows and asked about it. "Oh, I already learned that technique, Master. But it''s really hard to use during the daytime, in flat surfaces." He said. "Is it? I don''t know how that technique works. Ma Rong is too secretive about it." Wen Cheng said. Then suddenly, he recalled the first part of the sentence and immediately asked. "Did you just say you already learned it? But it''s an Immortal Grade technique, and you had at best only learned it 2 weeks ago." "Yes, Master. I can somehow learn techniques very fast. Although practicing and perfecting the technique will take me a while, learning it however is pretty quick" Alex explained. Wen Cheng looked at him closely. "Are you really not lying about it?" he asked. "Of course not, master. Why would I lie?" he said with a little chuckle. "Alright then, show me. Use that technique." Alex was ready for him to say that, so he immediately disappeared from the spot and appeared behind Wen Cheng from his shadows. "Oh my god. You really do know it. Then you won''t need another movement." Wen Cheng was surprised at how talented his disciple was. "But master, this technique doesn''t work as well during the daytime at places with little shadows. The technique relies on shadows to be functional." Alex explained when it started sounding like he wouldn''t be getting a movement technique. "Alright, Learn this book for now. Since you are so quick, you should be done with it within the week. I will also get you a good movement technique tomorrow along with a few damaging techniques, defensive techniques, and a very important escaping technique to choose from." Wen Cheng promised. "Thank you, master," Alex was genuinely happy at how much Wen Cheng was giving him. It had only been a few minutes, and he had already given so much knowledge and opportunity. "Alright, you read that book. I will come to see you at around 3 am." Wen Cheng left after saying that. Chapter 109: Practicing the Sword Wen Cheng left Alex to learn the book by himself. Alex looked at the book and was still surprised by how big it was. However, he was also happy that he could read the language by himself now. "Elusive Heavenly Sword. A technique that improves a cultivator''s dodging ability and provides great offensive attacks. The elusive part is only useful against cultivators that fight in close combat, while the attacking part works on everyone. Attacks use wind, so cultivators with wood-aligned spiritual roots are preferred. But since the wind aspect only affects 2 of the 3 latter strikes, even those without spiritual roots can learn it." Alex read the book''s first page and was surprised. "Wow, that''s a lot of information on the introductory page. It even talks about spiritual roots." He used his system to read it and found that the description it came up with had barely any information. Aside from the name and the fact that it was a sword technique focused on dodging and attacking, the description gave no other information. ''Do other books give such information as well?'' he couldn''t check right now as he didn''t have any books on him at the moment. He had already returned the Flickering Shadows book prior to arriving here. He then proceeded to flip the page and was immediately surprised by what he saw. Instead of normal words like any other cultivation technique, this one had drawings telling one what to do. The first set of 5 pictures showed one how to move with their feet. There was a bunch of text right below, explaining the movement in extent. Alex put the book to the side and started to do what the picture in the image did. There was no Qi or other type of energy involved. It was just a simple way to move one''s body. Yet when Alex tried it, he found the movements he had just done to be wrong. ''That''s not it.'' He tried once more. ''That''s not it, either.'' ''How can I follow easily after watching master, but can''t follow a book.'' It was then that something came to his mind. ''Wait, do I need to finish the book before I start. Because that was exactly what I did with the other books. Just because I can read the books now, doesn''t mean I have to change my learning style right?'' He immediately started using his spiritual sense to read all of the books. It was hard not to ignore the basic understanding from being able to understand the language, but he managed to do it at last. Finally, after around 15 minutes, he finished reading the whole book. ''Alright, now it should be fine.'' He thought and started using the movement technique. Surprisingly, he was still making mistakes at it. ''What''s going on?'' he couldn''t understand what was happening. He still kept on practicing and at some point, started going into another trance. During the trance, he couldn''t think of anything or do anything. But the knowledge of what to do and how to do it kept flowing out of his brain. He practiced more and more, and four hours later, he had perfected it. Finally, he woke up from his trance to see that he had learned the sword technique. He looked at the time and saw surprised that it was nearly 2 am. ''Did I fall asleep once more? That too while practicing?'' he was starting to doubt if there was really something wrong with him. But just the fact that he had truly learned the sword technique kept him from believing it. ''Also why did it take me so long to learn the technique? Is it because the technique doesn''t have anything to do with Qi and spiritual roots for the most part?'' he wondered. He practiced once more now that he had learned the technique and he managed to do every single footwork perfectly. Elusive Heavenly Sword had 3 different attacks. None of the attacks had any name and were dependent on one''s spiritual roots to use all of the 3 attacks. The first strike was a simple sword strike that was used in close combat. As long as one had Qi, they could use this attack. The second strike was one that was used from a little further away from the opponent. It required the cultivator to have a wood elemental spirit root for this attack to work. With this strike, one could send out a small human-sized wind slice through the air that would fly towards the enemy. The third and final strike was one that could be used from very far away and was the most devastating of all. It sent out a very fast wind slice through the air that had a very high penetrating power. However, it required the person to only have wood elemental spirit root or dual elemental spirit root with wood being one of them. Anything more, and the cultivator could not use the technique to its full power. Alex tried practicing the 3 attacks. The first attack was integrated with the footwork. At a certain segment of the footwork, he brought up his sword and poured Qi into it. As he brought it down, it glowed yellow and gave a loud sound as it cut through empty air. He then tried the second strike. For this strike, he didn''t require footwork. He simply started moving his Qi around his body. He brought it around his body to his palm, where the Qi entered the sword through the sword handle. However, just before it entered, the Qi changed from Yang elemental to Qi with yang and wood elemental. The color, however, shifted to just green and the yellow from the yang didn''t show. He brought the sword up to the top and sliced it down. A massive slicing wind came forth from his blade and flew away to the wall in the room and disappeared with a boom. The blade kept ringing in his hand as he looked forward in shock at the power of the strike. Chapter 110: Training with Master Although he couldn''t tell the exact output of the attack, he could tell that it was without a doubt the strongest attack he had done until now. Just the first strike alone was better than Smiting Blade, yet the second strike somehow far surpassed that. ''What would the third strike be like?'' he wondered. He held his blade next to him once again and started pouring in the Qi. In the end, he swung the sword directly towards the wall once more. A very sharp green slice came out of the sword and hit the wall far away. BOOM A big explosion rang out at the wall. However, instead of being happy, Alex frowned. "The damage is much lower than I expected. It''s barely any better than the second strike and yet it uses more Qi." He started to believe that his fire abilities were only good because of the Yang Qi. Now that Yang Qi wouldn''t help Wood element, his true power finally showed. "I guess I really have a bad spiritual root. I guess I don''t care as long as it doesn''t hamper me in my path in alchemy. Cultivating and fighting are just extra stuff for me. But still, it hurts a bit, knowing that I have a bad spiritual root." He thought. He decided to only use the first 2 sword strike from now on since the third strike was bad when considering Qi to Damage ratio. Still, practicing it just in case he ever needed it was not a bad idea. He kept on practicing for another hour and finally stopped when his Qi ran out. Sending out wind slices continuously for an hour was really draining for him. A few minutes later Wen Cheng arrived just to see him down on the ground panting heavily. "Oh, are you done for today?" he asked. "Ah, Master. Yes, I''m done for today. I have run out of Qi." He said. "Oh, okay. How much did you learn? Did you manage to practice some of the footwork?" he asked. "Oh, I learned the whole thing master. It took me 5 hours to read it." "5 Hours? Okay, lets tes- HUH? You finished reading all of this in just 5 hours?" Wen Cheng was shocked. When Alex had said fast, he had thought he was talking about taking just a few days to learn the stuff, but to finish it in a few hours? That was too shocking. "Stand up. I will test you to see if that is true." He ordered sternly. He needed to check if he was lying or not, as it was a really hard thing to believe. Alex stopped panting and stood up with his sword at the ready. Wen Cheng internally nodded when he saw that he was using a stance from the Elusive Heavenly Sword. "Come," He said giving permission for Alex to attack. Alex too didn''t waste another second and lunged forward with his sword. Wen Cheng saw the sword coming and stepped to the side to dodge it. At the same time, he also used his own sword to make a simple yet precise attack. Alex immediately moved his feet in such a way that his whole body twisted to barely dodge the attack. Using the same momentum, he once more twisted his body to get in another attack from the side. Wen Cheng''s eyes widened at this. ''His body has yet to properly adapt to the technique, but he himself knows what he is doing. Just a few more days of continuous practice and he will become an expert at this rate.'' Wen Cheng was truly shocked seeing Alex fight. Wen Cheng once more dodged the sword and started making his own hits faster. Alex however, was dodging every single attack that was coming his way. The fight went on for about 5 more minutes before Wen Cheng''s hits were just too fast for Alex to dodge and finally got hit. He was hit straight in the chest and sent flying into the wall. He dropped to the ground and started coughing. Wen Cheng on the other hand had bright eyes full of admiration. "Are you okay, Yu Ming?" he asked. He stopped coughing and answered, "Yes, master." "Good. You have truly learned the Elusive Heavenly Sword. A few more days of it, and you can be considered a Master at it." "So, for tonight you will go back to your room and cultivate until you are challenged by someone. However, by 9 pm tomorrow, rank up until you are¡­. Let''s see," Wen Cheng checked something using a medallion and said, "Okay, rank up until you are at 194. The person with that badge is a realm lower than you, but since they''ve been here for a long time, they will probably have more fighting experience than you." "Only after acquiring the badge 194 will I give you the other techniques. If you can''t get it, I will just train you in the sword for another day. Now, Go and cultivate. It would be good if you can breakthrough within the week. The faster the better." "Yes, Master," Alex was about to leave when he suddenly stopped. "Umm¡­ Master, you said I should break through as fast as I can?" "Yeah. The faster you get stronger the better." Wen Cheng simply said. "Umm¡­ So I can breakthrough today?" he said. "Yes, Of course. Go back and meditate properly. Be in the best state so that you don''t fail your break through," Wen Cheng said. "Are you saying this because you don''t know, Master? I thought master told you about me." "About you? What else is there to know about you? Ma Rong just told me a few things as to what to do. Although, she did say something about me being surprised by your talent. " "But I already have been. You being able to learn the Elusive Heavenly Sword in 5 hours was very surprising. So I don''t think there is anything else left." Wen Cheng said. Alex finally understood. Ma Rong had purposefully kept his cultivation and learning talent a secret. Wen Cheng didn''t really know how talented he was in regards to cultivation. He was mistaken by his own information. Alex chuckled a little and asked. "So, Master didn''t tell you that I can breakthrough whenever I want, did she?" Chapter 111: Selling a pill "You can breakthrough any time you want?" Wen Cheng was a little confused. But then, he remembered something and his eyes became a little wider. "Is it like what you did back in the southern forest? Don''t you have to gather your Qi first to breakthrough?" Wen Cheng asked. "Oh, yes. I do. But I already have enough Qi to breakthrough 4 more times if I wanted to." Alex said. "What?" Wen Cheng shouted once more. "Is that true? They why haven''t you done so already?" he asked. "Well, that''s because Master said that I should wait until my cultivation base is stabilized before I proceed any further with the breakthroughs." Wen Cheng said. "Oh, yeah that''s right. When did you last breakthrough?" he asked. "Umm¡­ it was the day of the auction." He replied. "Just 2 days ago then? That''s probably not enough time for you to stabilize. But after today''s training, you should be close to it. Just a few more battles and you should be able to do it. Battle is one of the best ways to stabilize your cultivation after all." "Alright, then. Let''s train some more. If you have enough Qi to breakthrough so many times, then you might as well spend the rest of the night stabilizing it. You can cultivate later on during the day to get more Qi." Wen Cheng said. ''Or I can just eat some monster cores and pills. But I don''t know if that has any effect on my cultivation base yet.'' He thought. They went back to fighting until the early morning and only then did they stop. Alex got a lot more understanding of the technique and was happy with the outcome. Before sunrise, Alex left the sect leader''s building and disappeared. He only reappeared when he reached near his new house and entered. ''Hmm¡­ my Qi is depleted completely. Can I just eat a core to replenish it?'' he wondered as he sat on his bed. It was too late to cultivate and he would have to log out in a while. ''Doesn''t hurt to try,'' he thought. He took out a random core from all the different monster cores he still had that he didn''t sell. At the auction, he had only sold the corpses of the monsters that Luo Mei had given him, and he had kept the cores and materials for himself. He put the core into his mouth and swallowed it. As soon as it entered his mouth, it turned into a creamy liquid that slid down his throat. ''Well, at least my spiritual roots have that as an advantage. I can eat any core without worries.'' He laughed a little. However, he frowned once more. He had taken in the Qi, but it didn''t fill up his body at all. ''Status'' he decided to check if what he thought had truly happened. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Bone Tempering 5th Realm (350,000 Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 1,856,446 ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª "Just like I thought. The Qi from the monster core added to my Qi. Urghh¡­ I don''t want to cultivate at all. I hope I passively absorb enough Qi fill myself by the time I return from my university classes." And so he logged out. He came back after a little while and started wondering what he should do in the less than 3 hours he had before university. "Hmm¡­ Master said I need spirit stones for everything, right? Let''s go sell some pills." He walked out of his house and went to the small market out of the sect. It didn''t even take him 10 minutes to get there, and when he did, he was surprised that the market was already busy with many people from both in and outside of the sect. Alex walked to a shop that sold pills and asked, "Hello, do you buy pills?" The man in the shop was surprisingly an elder from the Tiger sect. "Yes, we do. Are you here to sell one?" he asked. "Yes," Alex said as he brought out a pill bottle with a single pill inside. He had made a few pills as a warm-up before making the many different new pills and was going to sell one of those. The pill he took out was a Common Healing pill. It was a better healing pill than a minor healing pill but not by much. The elder took the pill and put it into a tester. Before he knew it, the fog around the glass reached up to 33% and stopped. The elder was really shocked at the pill. "That''s a nice pill you''ve got there. Sell it to me." A voice came from behind Alex. He turned around to see a man wearing a yellow robe with an orange lining on it. "I don''t really mind selling it to anyone in particular," Alex answered as he looked at the man more carefully. The man seemed to be in his early 20s and was in Meridian Tempering 3rd realm. He was about the same height as Alex but was almost twice as wide. His unshaven facial hair also made him look like he was older than he actually was. Behind him were a few inner set and outer sect disciples, who seemed to be following him. The man took out a few spirit stones from the bag and gave them to Alex. Alex looked at the 10 spirit stones he was just given and hoping it was not what he was expecting asked, "What is this?" "For the pill," The man said with a gentle-looking but clearly haughty smile. Alex handed the spirit stones back to the man and said, "Thank you, but I''m not selling my pills for 10 spirit stones." He then turned to the elder and asked, "How much will you take this pill for, Elder?" The young man was surprised at the refusal just now and started getting unreasonably angry. "How dare you turn your back on me and be disrespectful. Do you know who I am?" Chapter 112: Prime Disciple Alex startled at the sudden shout. He turned back to look at the man and asked, "What do you want?" "I told you I wanted the pill and yet you deny it to me. If I say I want the pill, then I will get the pill." The arrogant man started spouting nonsense from what Alex could hear. "Hey brother, why are you messing with brother Huo, he is the 7th elder''s disciple? Just sell the pill if you don''t want to be constantly challenged by everyone, every day." "Yeah, if you don''t want trouble, it''s better to just sell the pill to him. He is 18th in ranking in the core disciples after all. So there is glory in selling the pills to him." The disciples behind the young man started to fawn over the young man''s ranking and privilege in the sect, while seemingly trying to pressure Alex into giving up the pill. The young man had a smug smile on his face after hearing his lackeys announce his glorious achievements. ''Master did talk about these sorts of people. But it''s still surprising I get to meet one so soon. I don''t remember people in the Hong Wu sect being like this. Although, I didn''t really socialize there, so maybe there are.'' He thought. One thing the disciples behind the young man had said had caught his attention. "You are a core disciple?" he asked the young man directly. The man thought Alex had gotten scared from hearing about his achievements and simply nodded. Alex turned to the elder and asked, "Elder, if the orange lining on his cloth means that he is a core disciple, then what does a red lining mean? Are they not a core disciple, but something else?" he asked. He wanted to learn what Luo Mei''s position was in the sect. "Ah¡­ you must be talking about disciple Luo Mei. She is the direct disciple of the sect leader and first in ranking amongst the core disciples. She is our Prime Disciple, and thus gets to wear red linings in her robes." The elder said with a face of fondness. "Oh, I see." Alex then asked, "So, about the pill, elder. how much will you buy it for?" He asked. The core disciple called Huo started getting mad. He stepped forward about to shout once more when the elder suddenly looked at him. "If you are here to disturb the sect''s business, then you will have to suffer the consequences, disciple Huo Tu." Huo Tu immediately got scared and bowed to the elder a little before leaving the shop. Alex was surprised that even such a haughty disciple would get scared of the elder. ''He must''ve thought he could make me give the pill to him, with just the fear of his name alone. He will come for revenge later, that''s for sure.'' Alex however wasn''t worried about that. Disciples in the sect weren''t allowed to fight. If they wanted to, they would have to set up a fight in the fighting hall. The most important part of this situation was still the badges everyone got. Only a disciple with the lower badge can request a fight with the other disciple. So, no matter how much the Huo Tu guys wanted to kill him, as long as he was in the sect, that would be impossible. He turned his focus back to the elder who was looking at the pill and contemplating. After a while, he said, "I can give you 24 spirit stones for this pill. I don''t know where you came to find this pill, but it''s really good and deserves this amount." Alex thought for a second. While the common healing pill wasn''t the best, it was at 33% harmony. Since it wasn''t an auction, he thought the specific price was okay. "Yes, elder. I would like to sell it for that amount." Alex said. The elder kept the pill and passed along 24 spirit stones to Alex. Alex left the market and started returning back to his house when suddenly he noticed something. He sent out his spiritual sense and found out that 2 of the lackeys that followed the core disciple named Huo Tu were currently tailing him. ''What are they trying to do?'' he wondered. They couldn''t attack him in the open or anything. There were a ton of disciples on the path. Even If they wanted to, they were way too weak to be a challenge for him. So he ignored them and minded his own business as he returned back to his home. Just as he was about to open the door, however, the two lackeys ran away. "Hmm¡­" he was confused for a second, but immediately realized what happened afterward. "They must''ve wanted my badge number, haha. I would''ve given it to them had they just asked." Alex chuckled a bit and returned back to his room. Now that he had nothing to do, he logged out for the day. It was Tuesday, so he had to go to his classes for the day. Around half-past 3 after he was done with his afternoon lunch and after having called his parents back home, he returned back to the game. He felt his Qi and realized it was back to full. ''So, I only need about 8 hours to get my Qi fully back huh. Or maybe even less.'' He thought. "Might as well breakthrough right now." He clicked the [Breakthrough] button and instantly reached Bone Tempering 6th realm. Once done, he looked up, straight ahead of him at the wooden board with all the rankings on it, and thought, "If Master said I have to get to 194 by the end of today, I should fight the others in between to get the experience, right?" He started looking through the different names. Thankfully, the names also had simple info next to their names that said whether someone is in their house, just within the sect, or out of sect. Out of them, Alex chose the ones that had ''Their house'' as their location. In the end, he gathered a few names he would fight today. "Alright, let''s go register some fights." Chapter 113: Challenged After a short walk, Alex reached the sect crater and got into the line at the Fighting hall. For the first fight, he challenged someone with the 250th badge. According to the info on the board back in his room, the person was in their home. So, he decided to wait for the person to arrive. When his number was called, he responded. Another person also responded at the same time after hearing their number. Realizing his opponent had come, Alex walked up to the stage. Alex had decided to hide his cultivation entirely so that people wouldn''t realize how strong he was, or how fast he broke through. His opponent this time was an older girl with a simple ponytail. She was shorter than him, but not by much. Alex took out his common rank sword and got ready to fight. ''Should I show off my Elusive Heavenly Sword so early?'' he wondered. He looked at the girl and realized she hadn''t taken out any weapons. He was surprised. ''Elemental techniques user or close combat fighter?'' he started guessing as to how the girl fought. However, seeing as she was only at Muscle tempering 6th realm, he wasn''t very worried. As soon as the elder gave the go, the girl immediately started pouring out her Qi and created a fireball that she shot towards Alex. Alex was surprised, but that was the extent of his reaction. He immediately used Flame Mastery Scripture to control the incoming fire. It showed a little resistance but instantly obeyed his commands. So, he basically killed the flame and made it disappear. The girl was surprised at what just happened. ''Is my opponent very strong?'' she thought. She took out another fireball and threw it towards Alex. This time, however, Alex didn''t destroy it. Instead, he controlled it and sent it back to her with a bigger size and higher intensity. BOOM The girl was hit directly in the chest and thrown the ground a few meters back. She wasn''t sent out of the stage but was really close to it. Alex was about to charge at her and push her over when she suddenly shouted, "I give up." "Huh?" Alex nearly stumbled where he stood. He balanced himself and looked towards the elder. The elder nodded and declared the fight over. Alex took his new badge, numbered at 250, and turned around to walk back to the fighting hall. As he was about to leave the stage, however, he heard the elder call out numbers 275 and 367. ''Hmm¡­ is that me? Or the girl now?'' he wondered. The girl was surprised and responded to the call. Alex looked at her walk up to the stage and found that her opponent was one of the lackeys from this morning. "Hahaha, did they make a mistake? They probably didn''t expect me to have won already, huh." The lackeys had only taken his house number, so they couldn''t request a fight based on the person, and instead did it based on the badge. And the poor girl fell into a fight once more. Except for this time, she wasn''t so hopeless. The same thing that happened between him and the girl, happened between the girl and the poor lackey. ''Why would they target me with such a weak opponent? Is it really just to bother me?'' he wondered. He thought for a moment and said, "They must be checking how strong I am. Like I will every give it them straight." He turned around and walked back to the fighting hall. However, before he could sit in a line, his badge buzzed. "Hmm¡­" this was the first time he had seen the badge do anything other than unlock his doors and that wooden tv. He sent his consciousness into the badge and realized he had a fight in Stage 42 with someone at 312th ranking. Alex sighed with disappointment as this was going to be too easy. He didn''t want to waste time with such a useless fight and just reach 194th by the end of the day. But if they were to continue harassing him with the useless fights, he wouldn''t have enough time to challenge all those other people. Reluctantly, he walked over to stage 42. Once his number was called, he walked up to the stage. When his opponent came out, he sighed. ''An outer sect disciple really is too weak,'' he thought. His opponent was barely at the 3rd stage of Muscle tempering. He was way too weak to be challenging him right now. As soon as the elder gave the go, the outer sect disciple ran towards Alex with a small dagger. In response, Alex just put out his hand and used Qi manipulation. Suddenly, the outer sect disciple stopped where he was and started struggling to get out of his clutch. Alex simply floated him up and tossed him out of the stage. The match was over. Alex took his badge back and walked down the stage. He could hear the numerous disciples murmur as they started wondering how he did that. Alex on the other hand started realizing what he had just done. "Urgh¡­ I shouldn''t have done that. I got a little angry and forgot you could use Qi manipulation of that order only when you are near the True realm. Whatever, I''ll just say it''s a technique if someone asks." He walked back to the fighting hall and finally registered another battle with someone numbered 236. He had to wait for a while before they arrived. "Number 250 and 234" The elder shouted. "Here" "Here" Two voiced came out from the crowd. Alex walked up onto the stage and looked at his opponent. He was a generic-looking man with long hair. The man took out a weird weapon to fight with, A sickle. Alex was surprised at first. He hadn''t seen a sickle anywhere other than back at his farm. ''You can use a sickle as a weapon too? Master did say people used various weapons, but I didn''t expect they would even use something this unorthodox.'' From the side, the elder working as the referee shouted, "Start". Chapter 114: Badge Number 194 Alex was surprised at seeing the sickle, but the man was still only in the Muscle tempering realm, so he had no worries. He simply walked forward with his sword and started swinging it randomly. He wanted to see how one would fight with a sickle in this case. The man swung his sickle in a simple manner, which Alex easily dodge. The man once more brought back the sickle the other way around, which Alex once more dodged easily. But, on the third swing, something weird happened. Suddenly, as the man was swinging, the sickle left in hand and flew past Alex. ''Did he make a mistake?'' But before Alex could even think of a reason, the sickle immediately flew back, targeting the back of his head. Thankfully, Alex had spiritual sense so he could see what was happening even behind him. He simply ducked as the sickle was about to attack him. The young man who caught the sickle, and the elder who was about to save him were both surprised. Alex nodded to himself, thinking he did well sending out his spiritual sense even during a fight with a weaker opponent. He would''ve been badly hurt if he hadn''t. The man with the sickle tried attacking some more but he didn''t use any different techniques. He had a pretty simple movement technique that made him just as fast as Alex, but his damage was nowhere sufficient. After a few bouts, Alex struck him to the ground and the match was over. Alex left the stage after taking his badge. Over the next couple of hours, Alex fought quite a few disciples and managed to win every single one of them without using any of his techniques. He just used his superior cultivation and spiritual sense to knock down everyone. Thankfully, he also wasn''t challenged. Finally, around 8 pm, he challenged his final opponent for the day, number 194. He waited around half an hour watching the other people''s fight in stage 4 before his turn came. "Number 198 and 194," the elder shouted from stage 4. By now he had managed to defeat the 198th ranking opponent who had a cultivation base of Bone Tempering 2nd realm. "Here," Alex shouted and waited for another voice to appear. "Here," someone did speak, and Alex walked up to the stage. The one who he was going to have to fight was a massive guy with a very well-built body. He was also tall and looked more like a bodybuilder than a cultivator. ''Damn, he looks even beefier than Kong Yuhan,'' Alex thought. He took out his sword and got ready to fight as he checked his opponent''s cultivation base. ''Bone Tempering 3rd realm? And a person who knows how to fight at that. This is going to be troublesome.'' He would have to show more focus in this fight than any of the ones before this. He activated focus mode and adapted to the sudden changes to his senses. The passage of time slowed down as the different lights from the lanterns started painting the stage in bright orange color. Alex got into his fighting stance as per the Elusive Heavenly Sword for the first time today. He couldn''t afford to underestimate the fighter here. He would also have to be careful about his damage output. Even if the opponent was a veteran fighter, he was still a 3rd ream Bone Tempering cultivator. And all of Alex''s damage abilities did way more than that. "Start," the elder shouted from the side. Alex waited for the beefy man to come into close combat so he could fight him. But, suddenly, the man did something completely unexpected. He started using a technique. With a move of his hands, the wind started moving at extreme speed trying to blow away Alex. The only thing Alex do was struggle through it. ''He is using techniques, and not close combat?'' Alex was surprised. Alex also used the 2nd sword strike in the Elusive Heavenly Sword and fought wind with the wind. Alex however, did much more damage and destroyed his opponent''s wind gust. The remaining damage went on to attack the beefy man and damage him a little. The man started swiping his hands left and right, creating blades of wind that attacked him. Using the evasive part of his sword style, Alex dodged every single one of the wind blades the man was using. ''Does he only have wood-type spiritual root?'' he wondered. His attacks were strong enough to hurt Alex if he let them hit him. The man was also only using Wood type techniques and nothing else. Suddenly, the man places his palms on the ground. Out of nowhere, roots and vines started appearing out of the ground that targeted Alex. Alex weaved and dodged as he started cutting every root and vine that came his way. He slowly moved forward while doing that and reached the beefy man. The man had an absolutely shocked face. He had never seen someone so efficiently destroy his Rooting Vine Technique. The technique wasn''t meant to damage, but to obstruct their movements so that other techniques could land easily. Yet, the young man in front of him had used a weird dance-like sword style to cut off all of his roots and vines and nearly reached him. Immediately, he turned into a bunch of roots and barks as he didn''t remain there any longer. That wasn''t a problem for Alex however. With his spiritual sense, he could see the beefy man appear inside a cluster of roots and vines in the side. He brought his sword to the highest point above his head and swung it down. The sword itself did nothing, but Alex secretly used Qi manipulation to throw the whole group of vines, roots, and the man outside the stage. "Fight over," The elder shouted. Alex walked up to the elder and took the 194th badge. He walked away from the stage thinking, ''194 is already so unique at fighting, what are the ones in the higher numbers like? I can''t wait.'' Chapter 115: Beat up "Hey, Brother, Wait please." Alex was near the outer end of the crater, about to leave the place when he suddenly heard someone calling. He turned around to find out that it was the beefy man who was calling him. "Can I do something for you?" Alex asked. "Ah brother, I''ve never seen you before, are you new around here?" he asked. "Yes, I joined not long ago," Alex simply answered waiting for the man to get to the point. The beefy man was surprised when he did learn that Alex really was a new disciple in the sect. "Oh, brother. You are so strong after joining the sect for so little time. Can you tell me your name?" the beefy man asked. "It''s Yu Ming," Alex simply replied. "Ah, Good to see you brother. I won''t stop you now. I will take my leave." The man said and left him there. Alex frowned. Something was fishy. There was no way the beefy man came here to just converse with him. Especially after he had just been defeated by him. ''How come he is not angry or upset with me? And the more troubling part, why did he only ask for my name, yet didn''t give me his own?'' he decided to follow the beefy man to see where he went. After walking back inside the sect crater for a few minutes, the beefy man openly met another man and started talking to him. Alex recognized that guy. ''The inner sect disciple, that''s the lackey to that Huo Tu guy? What does he want with my na¡ª Oh. Sh*t, this is going to be troublesome now.'' Only now did Alex realize that he had just hit himself in the foot by giving that man his name. Now, those lackeys wouldn''t have to worry about his ranking, and could fight him using his name. ''Whatever, it''s not like they can ever beat me. The most they can be is annoying. I will see how long they can keep being annoying.'' He thought and threw the matter into some dark corner in his mind. It was late, so instead of going to his new house 194, which he would have to search for, he directly went to the training facility at his master''s place. Somewhere along the way, he disappeared, and only appeared when he reached his destination. The door to the training facility was open, so he simply walked in there. "Master, I''m here," he said as he walked in. Suddenly, a girl with a pouting face appeared in front of him and started talking to him. "Junior brother, Why didn''t you come to see me yet? You already joined the sect yesterday and yet I have to be the one to come find you." Luo Mei acted as if she was angered by this. Alex smiled and said, "Hello, senior sister. I had a lot to do after joining the sect yesterday, so I couldn''t come to find you. Please forgive me." "Hmph. There is no way I''m forgiving you until I beat you to a meat pulp." She said as she waved her fist. Alex was a bit surprised at the sudden and unexpected threat. Wen Cheng walked from the side and said, "Ah, you''re finally here. Did you do what I told you to do?" Alex reached into his bag and took out the badge numbered 194. He showed it to Wen Cheng, who nodded in satisfaction. "Good, good." Wen Cheng then reaching into his bag and pulled out a stack of books. There were about 7 books in the stack and he handed them all to Alex. "Here you go. These are all the books I found for you. They are the best of the best we have. Learn them when possible and practice them as much as you can." "Thank you, master," Alex bowed a little to Wen Cheng as he started to look at the books. "Nuh Uh. You don''t get to learn that now. First, we fight right now. I want to see how much you''ve learned of the Elusive Heavenly Sword. Also, I said I was going to beat you and I was not lying about it. Come." Luo Mei took out her blue blade and walked to the middle of the training hall. Wen Cheng shook his head as he smiled a little. "You better do what she says Yu Ming, your senior sister gets really angry when she is mad about something." "Master, stop talking bad about me." She shouted. We n Cheng simply laughed in response. Alex found himself unable to come up with any excuse so as to not fight, so he just took out his sword and went to the middle to fight. As soon as both of them were ready, they started fighting. While Luo Mei did act angry, she was genuinely curious about how much he had learned. Just prior to Alex coming here, Her master had told her that her junior brother had managed to learn the sword art overnight and she was very curious as to how much he had progressed. After fighting for about 10 minutes, Luo Mei was absolutely shocked at how far he had come. ''Did he really just learn this sword art yesterday? How is he so good at it already?'' As she fought him more and more, she started becoming certain that telling her master about him at that time was the best choice. ''God, I thought I was already the most talented disciple of the master. However, he just overshadows us without even trying.'' After a few more minutes, Luo Mei got serious and started beating Alex all around. She used the flat side of his thin blade, but the strength of a Mind Tempering realm expert was too strong and by the time she was done, Alex was bruised all over. "Next time, be sure to come to meet me, or you will have to train with me once more." She said and left the training hall. Alex looked at himself and started laughing. Although she beat him all over, she only did damages that were easily healed and only hurt a lot. Chapter 116: Fluctuating Friction Dance Wen Cheng walked up to Alex who was still on the ground and said, "Alright, I need to talk to you about something." Alex stood up and waited for his master to continue. "So, I have 7 techniques here with me. Aside from one technique, all of them are heaven grade. Thankfully, you had 5 elemental spiritual roots, so I didn''t have to filter through the techniques and the search didn''t last for long." "What I am thinking of doing is every day, I will give a target for you to defeat. After each time you defeat the target, I will give you one of these books. So, since you completed today''s task like I said yesterday, you get a technique." "Choose, which one do you want? There are 3 offensive techniques, 2 defensive techniques, 1 movement technique, and 1 escape technique. The escape technique is the only one that is in immortal grade, while the others are in heaven grade. So, choose," Wen Cheng really outdid whatever expectations Alex had of him. "Master, didn''t you say that I needed spirit stones for everything in the sect? How come I''m getting free stuff from you?" he asked. "Yes, you do. In fact, these books cost spirit stones as well. Only thing is, I paid for them instead of you." Wen Cheng said. "Aw, Master. You didn''t have to do that. I could''ve paid for them myself." Alex said. He had a few pills he could sell, and he could''ve made more pills if he needed to. "You could''ve paid 15 True spirit stones? Didn''t you say you were broke yesterday?" Wen Cheng said with a snort. Alex was shocked. "They cost 15 True spirit stones? Don''t you rent them? Why are they so expensive?" he asked. "These are rented for 2 weeks. As for why they are so expensive, well, our sect''s gotta do something to survive. We use whatever method to get spirit stones. Most of them are from our own disciples. Some from outsiders who use our disciples for their requirements like protecting them, or helping them move cities and other stuff." Wen Cheng explained. "Either way, we are getting out of topic. Choose one for today and get to training." Alex thought for a bit. He didn''t care about the offensive or defensive techniques for now. He only cared about the movement technique. However, the immortal grade escape technique was too good to pass on. He racked his brains for a bit and chose the movement technique. From his reasoning, during the next day, he wouldn''t get into a fight where he would have to escape from it. So, the movement technique was something that would make his life much easier. "Alright, here you go. Read it and learn it. Shouldn''t take you more than 5 hours once more right? Since it''s the same grade as Elusive Heavenly Sword." Wen Cheng said. "I will see you at around 2, and we will practice till dawn once again. I had hoped to keep you till 3, but since you can just use pills, for the most part, it''s quite helpful. Okay, I''m leaving. I will see you later." Wen Cheng left with the other 6 books and left Alex with the single movement technique. Alex looked at the book and started reading it. "Fluctuating Friction Dance. Use your Qi on your entire body to remove or add friction to your movements. Helps one move and stop as required. Doesn''t have any elemental alignment, so anyone can learn it. "Hmm¡­ Friction? That''s a very unique thing for a technique. So, it''s like increasing and decreasing my resistance to the surrounding? How fast can I get by just removing some friction?" He read the whole book and didn''t have to stop to practice mid-read like he had yesterday. After a few minutes of reading, he got the notification. "Okay, let''s test this out." He started moving his Qi around his body. Some of the Qi started to leak from all over his body, while most of it ended up in his legs where it strengthened them. He willed the Qi to make his immediate surroundings frictionless and moved forward. His legs were now too strong and he moved at an incredible speed due to the lack of friction. As such, the room wasn''t large enough for his first maneuver BANG "Ow," Alex screamed as he hit the wall. His already hurting body hurt even more. "God, that hurts." He looked around the room and wondered if it would be large enough for him to train in. "Alright, let''s not remove all of the friction, I will need some to control myself." He once again started channeling his Qi around his body as he coated himself in Qi, removing most of the friction around himself. However, he didn''t send as much Qi into his leg and only increased the strength by about half as much as last time. He prepared himself and dashed forward. He was still quite fast, but not as fast as he was previously. So, when he reached the end of the hall, he managed to easily stop himself by removing the Qi around him. ''Hmm¡­ what if I increased the friction at the end of the run?'' He decided to try once again. He removed his friction, strengthened his legs, and dashed. He smoothly ran forward and just before he was about to reach the end, he increased his friction. Abruptly, his speed decreased at once and he came to a stop at once. The Qi formed a soft blanket that stopped him from moving forward and cushioned his abrupt stop. Over the next couple of hours, he started testing different ways to use the movement technique and started getting good at it. Unlike Elusive Heavenly Sword which was focused on one''s body, Fluctuating Friction Dance required Qi, so it took him a while to properly learn it. By 2 am, however, he had made quite a bit of progress in using the movement technique. Chapter 117: The Man in the Mansion Alex had lost all of his Qi by now. He was sitting on the floor, waiting for his master to come back. Within a few minutes after it was 2 am, his master finally arrived. "Did you learn the book already?" his master asked. "Yes, Master. I''m done." He replied. Wen Cheng had no problem believing him. "Okay, stand up. It''s time we train again. I won''t go as easy as last time today." Over the next 4 hours, they trained until the morning and only stopped when the sun started to rise. "Alright, that''s enough for today. I see you''ve already broken through so you won''t have to for another day." " For today, I suggest you fight until the badge number 184. Although that''s not that much of a higher number, starting now, the opponents will be harder and harder to fight for you. After you get the 184th badge, I will give you the next technique." "Okay, master." Alex nodded and left the training hall. He went back to his room and logged out. * * * * * * * * * * Somewhere else in the real world, Outside of a giant door, a girl was sitting in the hallway, twirling her bangs along her face, clearly bored. She was wearing a blue dress and had a red bag with her. Her cute face looked cuter as she pouted. She had to wait outside the door for so long, and she didn''t like that. Another hour passed and the girl was still there, waiting for the door to open. Suddenly, the lock to the door opened and a middle-aged man in a white robe walked out. He had no beard or mustache on his face and his long hair was tied in a ponytail behind him. He looked a little weak, almost as if he hadn''t gotten sleep for the last few days. "Hmm¡­" he noticed the girl in front of his door who was looking at him with a pout on her face. " Oh, Hao Ya, how long have you been waiting here?" he asked. The girl was called Hao Ya. She was the same Hao that the president of the Deva corporation practically worshiped as his benefactor. While she had a haughty face and attitude around others, in front of this man, she was a little child pouting because he took too long to leave his room. "What took you so long? I have been waiting here forever." She said in an angry voice. The man laughed a little and said, "Ah, it took me longer than I had assumed it would. I was giving some final touches to the new items and I lost track of time." The girl took out a stack of papers. "Here you go. You asked for these, didn''t you?" she said as she handed the stack of paper to the man. "These are?" he looked at the stack of papers with a look of confusion. "The records from Deva Corp., for the last month and a half." Hao Ya said. A light shined in the tired eyes of the man. He started flipping through the pages and reading the assessments written there. "Have you read these?" he asked the girl. "Yes," she nodded. "And?" "And what?" she asked. "How are they? Is there anyone with any good talents? Is anyone worth recruiting?" he asked. "From what I saw, there are a few that are definitely worth it. There are a few that are close to becoming saints and some more in the True Emperor realm. However, the highest one that has revealed himself right now only has a True King realm. I do not know who these other people are." The man thought for a second and said in a stern voice, "We do not want any of these people who broke through to the True Lord realm or higher. Let''s look for better ones. How many of them died by now?" "Around 30% of these people have died by now." The girl replied. The man shook his head after hearing this. "The ones that have died are useless now. They can''t progress any further." "Is nobody else bragging about their body or talent? I worked so hard to make a reading of someone''s talent possible. At least someone must have a really good talent right?" he asked. "Well, there are. See here," she turned the records to a different page and said, "According to this, there are about 10 different individuals with God Grade talent, around 50 with Ancient Grade talents, and 500 with Divine grade talents. Although 30% of these have died as well, and we have no way of telling who." "Oh, and what about bodies? Any special bodies?" The man didn''t want to read the whole thing so he instead just asked the girl. "From what I saw, there is someone special. Someone had an Ancient Grade body, but the name isn''t recorded here. There are also a few divine-grade bodies and quite a few immortal-grade bodies. But as I said, quite a few of them died, so I don''t know how many of those remaining." The man got solemn and turned the record''s page. After a while, he said, "Go back to the Deva Corp and tell them that I have finished making the sleeping artifacts and that they can come to get it. That should help us gather a more accurate result than just that helm artifact." "Yes, master," the Hao girl nodded and left. The man kept looking at the different pages of records until he came across a certain piece of information. "Hmm¡­ it''s gone? The god grade technique is gone?" he flipped the pages to see if there was any more info about it. "Who got it? But the technique is only supposed to go to someone with¡ª Ahh, I see. " The man said with a face of understanding "So finally, someone has come along with those spiritual roots, huh. Hopefully, they haven''t died by now and we can once again see the glory of the technique paired together with those spiritual roots." The man''s eyes started trembling in hope and anticipation. "Will another god be born again?" Chapter 118: Capsules It was 3 am in the morning. Alex was still training with Wen Cheng. He had just finished learning another new technique a few hours earlier and had exhausted his Qi training on it. "Alright, let''s stop here for today." Wen Cheng said as he casually blocked one of Alex''s sword thrusts. Alex stumbled a little but came to a stop easily. "Huh?" Alex looked at the clock in his vision and asked, "But it''s only been 3 am, Master. Aren''t we going to fight until sunrise? Do you need to go anywhere?" "No. We have an important job today. Around noon, I want you to come back here with a different face. Do you have a face-changing pill?" he asked. ''A different face?'' Alex got confused. Still, he answered his master. "Yes, master. I have one." He said as he took out a Face Changing pill that he had made recently. Half of the pills he made for registering ended up with an extra pill. This was one of them. It was a 38% harmony Face Changing pill that could change a person''s face for 38 hours. "Good. I won''t have to give you one then. Alright, at noon, come here with a different face. I, along with a few elders will take you deeper into the southern jungle, where you can find more alchemy ingredients." Wen Cheng had arranged an expedition along with a few elders to take Alex to find more ingredients. He was hoping he would find a Spirit Cleansing Lily so that he too could unlock spiritual sense just like his disciple, Luo Mei. "I understand, Master," Alex said. Wen Cheng handed him a small paper slip and Alex left the training hall. He disappeared after getting outside and made his way back to his house in the darkness of the night. It didn''t take him long to find his house numbered 168. During the last 3 days, he had managed to obtain badge 168. He walked into the house and sat on the unfamiliar, yet familiar bed. All the houses in the sect were designed according to the 3 ranks. Outer sect disciple''s houses were all the same. They had multiple rooms in one house and up to 5 disciples could live there at once. The inner sect disciple''s houses were simple, yet elegant. It had a single room, yet it gave the disciples peace and quiet while cultivating. As for the core disciples, they had houses with courtyards, not unlike what Alex had back in the Hong Wu Sect. He had seen how good his senior sister''s house looked when he had gone there to visit her. He was now at Bone Tempering 8th realm as he had just broken through last night before training. He needed to be ready for the expedition at noon so he started cultivating. As usual, he lost his consciousness and ended up cultivating till the morning. Once again, early in the morning, between 6 am and 7 am, he woke up. He directly logged out and went to get some breakfast along with the other 3 people. "Hey, Alex. I need to talk to you about something." Eric said in the cafeteria. "Sure, go ahead. What do you want to talk about." Alex was surprised he even brought up anything. Ever since he had gotten here, they only ever focused on playing Eternal Cultivation. They never really talked about anything outside of it. To think Eric would be so serious about it, he wondered what it could be. "Umm¡­. You see, I will need to get that helmet back from you." Eric said. Alex was shocked. He hadn''t expected the topic in question to be about giving him back his helmet. ''I already have the money, so I should just buy another one by now. I should stop being so lazy.'' He thought. "Okay. Do you want me to return it to you today?" Alex asked. "Oh no. You can keep it for a few more days. I need that helmet back when the capsules are released," Eric said. "Huh? Capsule? What''s that?" Alex asked in confusion. "Have you not heard the news? Deva Corp is coming up with capsules that you can sleep inside while playing the game. Apparently, they are much better than the helmet," said Eric. "Apparently, you can sell your helmets and get a discount for the capsule. That was why I wanted it. You can give it to me back on the day the capsules are sold." "Oh. Do you by any chance happen to know when the capsules are going to be sold? Also at what price they are going to be sold?" Alex asked. "Hmm¡­ I think they said in around 3 weeks or so. I don''t think they have a specific date set as a selling day. As for the price, they''ve given us a range between 300 to 500 dollars after a helmet has been returned. Without the discount, should be around 800 to 1000 dollars," said Eric. Alex was stunned at how high the price was but shook his head as he remembered that he could afford such money now. ''Although, I will have to earn some more money somehow. After I get the ingredients back today, I should make a lot of pills on the upcoming Sunday and sell them at the auction once more.'' While he had about $25 thousand in the bank right now, that wouldn''t be enough for him at all. He could tell that. If he ever was in desperate need of spirit stones, he needed money in the bank for a quick transfer. ''I guess I will care about it when the time comes. Let''s just go gather some ingredients for today. It''s been nearly 3 weeks since I went hunting in the southern forest. Master says we are going even deeper now. I wonder where we will be going this time. It should be further in than where my senior sister took me to. I''m getting kinda excited now.'' He and the other boys returned back to the room and logged back into the game. Chapter 119: Leaving with master Alex logged back into the game at half-past 10. He had decided to sell another few pills at the market in front of the gate and had gotten 45 spirit stones from that sale. He had then decided to tour around the sect and look at more of the locations. He had gone around the sect crater and looked at the different fights that were already taking place. He had once again seen that black stele, but this time he was too afraid to do anything and had simply left. After logging out to get his lunch, he had logged back in once again. He waited for a while and only then ate the Face Changing pill. The pill entered his body and started to dissolve. Thick energy streamed out from his stomach reaching every corner of his body as he felt himself getting melted from inside out. However, it didn''t hurt at all. In fact, he felt like he could influence these melted portions. He started to think of a face to change to. The only face he knew was his own. So, his body slowly morphed into what his real-life mirrored version would look like. His hair shriveled and shortened itself and his eyes changed color. His face started to slowly change as well. Other than that, there was no change to him. But, this was still enough to make him unrecognizable to the rest of the people. He walked out of the house after checking that there was no one around to see him leave this exact house. He walked in broad daylight up to the sect leader''s building. Funnily enough, nobody was here to care about this at all. Most of the people were down at the sect crater fighting, as it was Friday today with unlimited challenges. Alex had come to learn that having a higher badge gave you many benefits in the sect. Everything in the sect needed to be bought with real money. From time in the training hall or a room in the production hall. Or even the techniques in the Library. If one wanted them, they would have to pay a certain price. But with badges, the higher the badge, the more discount they got. The badges also set an order on who gets what first. If 5 people were waiting for the same technique in the library to be returned, when it did get returned, the one with the highest badge would be allowed to get it. Sometimes, the disciples with lower badges took forever to get a single technique. So they always looked forward to having a higher numbered badge as it meant life would be better in the sect. The one thing that Alex found odd regarding the Tiger sect was that the disciples didn''t get any form of help to start on their journey. Unlike how Hong Wu Sect gave its disciple''s spirit stones and pills monthly, the Tiger sect did nothing of that sort. Every disciple was on their own. This was also the reason why outer sect disciples and inner sect disciples went around following core disciples just so that they could give them something that would help them. It may be weapons, or techniques, or spirit stones, or even simply just the threat of their name. The disciples could use any of these things to go higher in rank. ''Did that Huo Tu guy think I would do anything for money? Or was he legitimately expecting me to get scared and give him that pill for 10 spirit stones?'' he wondered. He finally reached the sect leader''s building. He had never walked in here before. Since he was asked to come secretly every night, he had always sneaked around the side instead of walking through the main hall. He walked in through the hall and came out of the other side. He saw a few people standing around there. Aside from his master, there were 5 people standing in a group, talking to each other. Wen Cheng saw him walking towards the group and looked at him with a confused face. ''He doesn''t recognize me.'' Alex chuckled to himself learning that. He walked straight to his master and bowed down to make a greeting. "Good Afternoon, Master." As soon as he said that, a light flashed in Wen Cheng''s eyes as he realized what was happening. "Yu Ming, you are finally here. Come here, let me introduce you to the elders." There were 2 female elders and 3 male elders in the group. Wen Cheng introduced Alex to them all. Wen Cheng unhesitatingly introduced Alex as his disciple as well. Now that nobody could see his face, he didn''t care about hiding his relationship. "Alright, let''s leave. We need to reach there as soon as we can. We only have a day''s worth of time. My disciple will be the one doing all the ingredients picking, so we old guys are there to protect him only." Wen Cheng started flying simply and pulled Alex along with him. Unlike Ma Rong, he didn''t care about having an artifact when flying. The high speed and the air hitting his face finally made him understand how fun flying really was. While the speed of their flying wasn''t as fast as when he was in Ma Rong''s boat, it was still significantly fast. Alex knew that his master could go faster. Maybe even faster than Ma Rong could, but he didn''t. Only because doing so would harm Alex. "Where exactly are we going master?" he finally asked about the destination. While he knew they were going further into the southern forest, it seemed like his master and the elders had a destination in mind. "Our records speak of a sacred land that we used to have. But ever since the war, most of the records were lost, and we never learned what this sacred land was. In search of the said sacred land, we found a special place in the southern forest that has a lot of different vegetation, no different from the alchemy gardens of Hong Wu Sect." "We are going there right now." Chapter 120: War and Records "As many ingredients as the alchemy gardens?" Alex was shocked. If that was true, then there would be more than a mountain of ingredients there. "Have you been to the alchemy gardens before, master?" Alex couldn''t help but ask. "Not, really," said Wen Cheng. "I''ve only ever seen it from afar. But even then I can tell that the place we are going to has as much alchemy ingredients as the alchemy gardens." Wen Cheng seemed to be confident in his assessment, so all Alex could do was wait. "By the way, master. What did you mean by war? Was there a war in the crimson empire?" he asked. To him, war was something that took place ages ago where one country would attack another country. "No, not the empire. War in the sect. Although it might be better to call it infighting, it was too big to be called something so simple. So, we just call it the war. It''s appropriate since more than 4000, 80% of the sect members at that time died in that war." Wen Cheng seemed to be getting a little emotional saying that. "Were you there master?" he asked. "Yes. I was but an inner sect disciple at the time. I bore witness to the death and destruction in the sect. Elders of two factions, fighting each other, each dying to the other''s hands." Wen Cheng didn''t seem to like remembering about the past. "What was the cause of the war master?" Alex asked. He was getting interested in the history of the sect he joined. "The 2nd Elder at that time was a powerful, but greedy man that wanted the sect all to himself. However, he couldn''t beat the sect leader who was much stronger than him at the time. So, the 2nd Elder was never able to become the Sect Leader." "Until one day, when the sect leader returned back to the sect from an outside visit, all bloody and weak. The 2nd Elder took the chance to launch a rebellion against the sect master." "The ones that believed in the 2nd elder fought against the ones that defended the sect leader. It was an all-out war that resulted in huge destruction." Wen Cheng said. "Was that what made the giant crater in the sect?" Alex asked. "Crater? No. We still don''t know what the crater was since most if not all records were lost. Although we do believe it was the black stele, We are not sure, however." "The destruction I was talking about was more so the buildings and the lives we lost that day. Plus, we lost most of our history and records that day. It was truly a devastating event." Wen Cheng shook his head as he remembered more. "Did the sect leader or the 2nd Elder die?" he asked. "The sect leader died, unfortunately. His wound was just too severe. The 2nd elder was also heavily injured and was sent away to the southern forest at the time. We can only assume he died a few weeks later." "It was actually at that time we came up with the idea." Wen Cheng said with a smile. "We made the rules on how sect leaders were chosen in the sect from that point forward." " Do you know how sect leaders are chosen in the Tiger sect?" he asked Alex. "No?" He wondered if this was common knowledge that everyone knew about. "In the Tiger sect, the sect leader is based on the ranking of their respective students. The person whose student is the prime disciple gets to be the sect leader. As such, I have been a sect leader for nearly 10 years now." Wen Cheng said. "hmm... Is it okay as long as it''s a disciple? no other requirements?" Alex asked. "Oh, no. The disciples must be below the age of 25, and not in the True realm yet. For now, your senior sister is the prime disciple, so I will be a sect leader for a little while more." Alex thought and asked, "And what about after senior sister has crossed those limitations? Do you leave the sect leader''s position?" "Yes, that is how the sect works now. All I can do is rear another disciple to the same strength and hope they are the strongest. Otherwise, the first elder becomes the sect leader, while I turn to whatever rank my newest disciple is among the other elder''s disciples." "Oh¡­" Alex fell into contemplation after having been dumped such a huge amount of information on. He tried processing all he had just heard and thought of something. "What is the Sacred land you talked about master?" he had remembered Wen Cheng saying the Sacred Land as they had been searching when they found this mysterious place. "I don''t know either," Wen Cheng said. "If we still had the records from the old times I could tell you, but we don''t. Most of our history and information was lost during the war and no one knows what had happened in the sect before the war. All of the elders died so we don''t even have hearsay." "However, there are 2 pieces of information that we managed to find from what records still remained." "The first information we have is that the Tiger sect actually moved to the current location around 150 years ago or so. We don''t know where the Tiger sect was situated before it was shifted to the new location. Only that it was near the Sacred Land" "The second thing is that the elders and disciples of that time didn''t dare step in the sacred land. We can only assume that it was holy to them by what it was called. The records say the sacred land looked over a great landscape of blue, but we haven''t found a river or lake matching this description yet." "I will be honest. I don''t know if you can even call those records trustworthy. We don''t know how much of it is true and how much of it is just something we misunderstood. So you better take these with a bit of doubt in your heart." Wen Cheng explained a lot. "I understand Master" Alex nodded seriously. Chapter 121: Fog Alex found himself unable to come up with any other topics to talk about at the moment so he decided to stay quiet. The rest of the journey was filled with nothing but the sound of wind hitting their ears. Alex just took in the feeling of flying, something that was impossible to do in real life, and got happy. It took them about 2 hours just to fly to their destination. Not only was the destination deep into the southern forest, but it was also far away from the scarlet city, so they had to take a much longer path than what others would have. "Here we are," said Wen Cheng as he looked ahead. Alex stuck out his neck to the side to see what was in front. To his shock, in the middle of the unending forest, there was a massive area filled with fog that was very unusual for the forest. ''Why is there fog in the middle? Is there a body of water nearby?'' he wondered. As he got near, however, his body shook. ''This!!'' he was truly shocked this time. The fog he was seeing in front of him, wasn''t actually a fog made out of water vapor. It was actually a fog made up of purely Qi. ''How much Qi will I be able to gather if I cultivate here?'' he wondered. Just before they reached the fog, however, the group of 7 dropped to the ground. "This is the place I talked about, Yu Ming. Ahead is a land filled with Qi, so the vegetation that grows here should be mostly alchemy ingredients. I as well as a few other elders come here once in a while to gather some ingredients, but we don''t have a lot of knowledge about the ingredients, so we only take what we know is an ingredient and leave the rest to grow. " "Thankfully, people don''t visit the southern forest a lot, and this location is very unknown." Wen Cheng said. He took out a handful of empty storage bags and handed it to Alex. "Take these bags. You will go inside to collect the ingredients. This area is safe, so you don''t have to worry about monsters here at all. I don''t know how long it will take you, but just go at your own pace. Us elders will go around the fog to protect you from monsters just in case they come from the outside." "Still, if there are some inside, your escape technique should be enough for you." "Alright, go now and gather everything you can. At least fill all of these storage bags, you should be able to do that, right?" Wen Cheng answered. "If there are indeed ingredients inside, then that should be no problem," Alex said. "Alright, go and do your task. We will do ours." Wen Cheng said as he gestured for Alex to leave. The other elders also started to walk around the fog to the other side of the special place. Alex walked just a little bit into the fog and he felt like he was getting cleaned with all the Qi. As they touched his body, he realized that it wasn''t just normal Qi. The Qi was a mixture of different elemental Qi. He could feel all of the different elements in the air. He really wanted to cultivate right now, but he didn''t. He needed to get to work right now. He made sure he had enough storage bags to fill up all of these ingredients. Other than the 5 his master had given him, he also had a few storage bags himself. Due to always having to store so many ingredients and monster corpses, he had gotten quite a few when he had the time. "Oh, what''s this?" he thought curiously when he found a talisman inside one of his storage bags. "hmm... oh, this is the paper slip master gave me yesterday. I can''t believe I completely forgot to read it," he thought. -There are spirit cleansing lilies inside. If you do pick them up, do not let the elders know about it. Tell them you weren''t confident about it and left it behind. They shouldn''t be able to tell the difference between the ones left behind. - "Oh!" Alex''s eyes started shining when he realized spirit cleansing lilies inside. "So, they aren''t as rare as I thought¡­ or this place is something special." "Did master make himself and the elders purposefully stay outside so that they don''t see me pick up the lilies? I don''t see another reason why." Alex thought as he looked in the surrounding. He sent out his spiritual sense to the max without overstraining himself. The limit for that was still 20 meters. He then activated his Immortal Concealing technique and used the Veiled light technique to completely hide his body and aura. After that, he got to work. He didn''t even care what any of the ingredients were. As long as he knew them, he picked them up. Leaves, fruit, flower, root, vine, bark, thorns, stalks, stem, branch. Whatever he could find, he would pick it up. He felt the energies the ingredients gave off and wondered, "That''s quite a bit of energy. Are these about 100 years old?" While he still wasn''t experienced enough to tell the age accurately, he could vaguely guess how old an ingredient was based on their concentration of energy. And he was sure these were some of the oldest ingredients he had come into contact with. Even the alchemy gardens in Hong Wu sects which were about 70-80 years old didn''t have ingredients with energies this thick. He kept gathering many ingredients and came across many that he could even use himself. However, the best part about this was that most of the ingredients here were for pills that used True Qi. He knew about 40 different types of True rank pill recipes, and out of them, he had found about 25 main ingredients and a lot of other secondary and tertiary recipes. This place was a treasure trove of ingredients and he was enjoying every single minute he was in here. Chapter 122: A Tiresome Task "Has master never been to the alchemy gardens of Hong Wu Sect?" Alex wondered as he looked at the time on the clock. It had been 3 pm already. He had been working for the last hour and he wasn''t even close to clearing a fourth of this garden. This was after having continuously used his spiritual sense and Qi manipulation at Bone tempering the 8th realm. By now he had made enough pills and also worked at the alchemy garden long enough, where even diverting his attention into 10 different things at once was considerably easy for him. "Can I log out here? I hope there is no problem with that." Alex needed to log out to get some food but was worried at the consequences of leaving in such an open area. He knew that his body didn''t disappear when he logged out, so it was imperative he was in a safe spot when he logged out. "Urghh¡­ Whatever. Master and the elders are looking after me. All I can do now is hope that I don''t end up losing my concealment techniques when I log out. If I can keep them active, that would be great." Saying that he logged out. After a few minutes, he logged back in. He looked at himself and was surprised. "Oh, wow. It''s still active. So, we can log out and still have our techniques running? Wait, what about normal cultivation? Can I do that too?" Alex got unusually excited when he found that out. Only for it to excruciatingly disappear when he realized. "I fall asleep when I cultivate, So I can''t log out." He facepalmed when he remembered such a simple fact. "I can''t believe I forgot about that." After a few more seconds of self embarrassment, he got back to work. There were a lot more ingredients to gather and the time was short. He walked around the place with his spiritual sense noticing all the ingredients and his Qi picking them all up. "Man, there are so many ingredients here. It''s like the alchemy gardens if it were left alone for a hundred years." He thought. Although one thing was confusing him still. "Where is all of this Qi coming from though. Is the valley special? Does it have something that makes it special?" this was all he could think of as he collected the different ingredients. About 2 hours later, he finally found a big group of Spirit Cleansing lilies. There were at least 10 flower beds in there, ready to be picked. Alex was both nervous and overjoyed at the view. He didn''t dare let himself pick them up using Qi manipulation. He went where they were and hand-picked them. After he was done picking them, he kept them in his own storage bag. Once he was done, he was about to continue when he noticed something. "What is that?" the thing he noticed wasn''t with his vision, but with his spiritual sense. And the place he noticed wasn''t around him, but rather below him. A few meters ahead of him, there was a giant hole in the underground. It was probably more appropriate to call it a tunnel. The tunnel was about 5 meters in width and went on as far as he could sense. He decided not to worry about what that was for now and continued with the ingredients. It was 7 pm by the time he was done with 3 fourths of the place. 4 of the 5 storage bags his master gave him were already full and the 5 one was on its way to get full as well. "I guess I will just keep the rest in mine," he thought. After that, he logged out. Coming back about half an hour later, he was truly surprised to see his concealment techniques still active. "Well, even if I can''t cultivate, I can at least hide in open areas and won''t have to look for a safe space when I log out now." He went on to collect the last portions of the ingredients that were still remaining. After completely collecting them all within the next 2 hours, he decided to go back to his master. As he was walking back, however, he once more came across those tunnels in the ground. "These are in a different location from the previous one. Did someone dig them out? Or is this something like a plot hole that occurred on its own?" The mystery was now too much for him to ignore. "Let me go and check," he said as he disappeared right where he was standing. He reappeared in the tunnel underground. "I love teleporting like that," he said to himself. He started walking around the tunnel trying to learn how it was made. "Everything is so circular. Doesn''t look like it''s something natural. Has to be something made by someone right?" he wondered. As he was walking, he came across something weird stuck on the ground. It was a metal rod with some sort of weird markings on them. At the end of the rod was a triangular piece of¡­ something that looked like a mixture of paper and cloth was attached. "That''s definitely man-made," he thought and picked it up. He kept on walking through the tunnel and found other metal rods just like this. These thin metal rods were numerous in numbers and were all over the place. After gathering exactly 24 of these metal rods, he felt something change in the surrounding. It was almost like¡­ the Qi that was gathered in the area was leaving. "Was this what was causing the Qi to gather here?" he wondered as he looked at the metal rod. He tried recalling anything he had heard about these metal rods and finally realized. "Wait, these are formation flags, aren''t they? That means the Qi gathering here was a result of formations as well." He felt like he had discovered something really mysterious. As he walked, he decided to leave but kept walking just a little further. It was then that he noticed something in the distance. Chapter 123: Worm ''Hmm¡­ what''s that?'' he walked a little further and saw the object in full clarity. He was expecting to see something that had to do with the formation that was laid down, but instead, it was a corpse. And a very old one at that. The corpse''s flesh had mostly rotted away, and all that was left was the skeleton. The clothes were also in tatters and the skeleton itself was pressed to the side of the tunnel. "Was he buried here and only showed up when someone opened this tunnel? Or was he already here and whatever opened the tunnel pushed him to the side?" he wondered. He walked closer to the corpse and looked at it. He didn''t feel any disgust or awfulness when he looked at it. Instead, all he felt was sorry for the poor guy. "Hmm¡­" he noticed a small slip of talisman on his hand. "What is that?" he wondered as he picked it out. He tried to read and see what it was but realized very soon that it wasn''t a records talisman. It was a talisman that did something. As for what a dying man would''ve wanted to do, he was not sure. He checked the corpse a little further and found 2 storage bags on him. One of the bags had a bunch of talismans that he guessed were similar to what he was holding. The second bag, however, surprised him. The second bag had plenty of wooden boxes. When he tried to penetrate his spiritual sense into the boxes, he realized that they were all actually full of Alchemy materials. "Using Jade or Wooden boxes to protect the energy of the ingredients from diffusing is generally helpful, but I''ve never done it so myself since I use the ingredients pretty much instantly. It''s nice to finally see someone do that for its correct cause." He then looked up at the corpse and thought, "so this person was an alchemist?" suddenly, the ground started shaking. "What''s happening?" he got a little scared. The shaking got larger and larger until he was a giant worm come his way. The worm was quite slow, but it covered the whole tunnel, almost as if it was the one that made all of the tunnels. Alex was still in his concealed form, so he didn''t worry about the worm, but the aura the worm sent out was stronger than anything he had sensed yet. Not even either of his masters was as strong as this worm. That did scare him well. Suddenly, the worm turned towards him. ''Can it see me?'' Alex was surprised and his fear of the worm started to rise. But then, he saw that the worm had no eyes. In the first place, it shouldn''t have been able to see him anyway since he was invisible. "Unless¡­ " a bad premonition appeared in his head. Suddenly, he rotated his Qi, until it came to his head and all the surrounding area started to light up. The worm sped up so fast towards him, that he almost fumbled. But at the last second, he managed to use Flickering Shadow to leave the underground and come back outside. "Huff Huff¡­ So, that thing was actually looking towards me through its sense of smell huh," he thought. He watched the worm dance around searching for him, but since he was no longer there, it couldn''t find him anymore. The worm then went away opposite to the direction it came from. Finally, he looked up at him current surrounding. He saw that while the vegetation was still there, there were no more fogs in the surrounding. ''Is it because I took out those formation flags?'' he wondered. Now that the elder was probably searching for him, he deactivated his concealing technique and stopped using his invisibility. He walked a little forward and saw an elder hurriedly coming his way. "Disciple are you alright?" he asked worriedly. The elder then immediately called the rest of the elders and sect leader. "Yes, I am fine, elder." Alex simply answered." Wen Cheng looked at his disheveled state and asked, "What happened? Did you manage to get all of the ingredients in there?" "Aside from a few, I managed to get all," Alex said as he handed 4 full bags and 1 three-quarter full bag. The elders also got in close to look at the ingredients. Wen Cheng sighed and asked, "You didn''t get any Spirit Cleansing Lilies, did you?" "No, master. Those are impossible; even for me." Alex said while shaking his head. "Alright then, let''s return." Wen Cheng flew off and took Alex along with him. It took them about 2 hours again to return back to the sect. They all landed in the sect leader''s backyard. "Alright, as previously mentioned, my disciple gets half of the ingredients. Do any of you oppose this?" Wen Cheng asked. Nobody there spoke a word of opposition. So, Wen Cheng took out an empty storage bag and filled it a bit. He then handed Alex 2 and nearly half full storage bags. Alex was surprised. ''Why did master not give me the empty bag back in the special place? Did he intentionally do that?'' The elders took their portions and left without hesitation. Only after seeing the elders leave did Wen Cheng let out a big sigh. "While they are helpful, we are all fighting for the sect leader''s position. So nobody wants to give the others a chance to one-up them. If I tried to openly help you, they would shut me down without question." Alex finally understood. He took out 3 flowers from his bag and handed them to his master. "These should be enough, right master?" he asked. "So you can get them. Little Mei wasn''t lying. Oh god, I was so worried you couldn''t do it. Good. Good. You keep one and try to unlock your spiritual sense as well." Wen Cheng said as he handed one back to Alex. Alex felt warm seeing his master treat him so nicely. "Keep it, master, I already have some more." He said as he took out a few more of the Spirit Cleansing lilies. "Alright. Go back to your house now. And unlock your spiritual sense." Wen Cheng said and sent him back during the night. Chapter 124: Lucky Alex walked back to his home in the dark. He quietly entered the home numbered 168. Thankfully, his master had registered him as someone who had left the sect, or else he would have lost his home today and would have to go somewhere in the outer sect to live. He went on to stay in the bed and finally started to think about what had happened today. All those ingredients, the tunnels, the corpse, and the worm. He took out 6 different bags from within him. After the 5 original bags were filled to the brim, he had used his own bags to collect them. As such, out of everyone today, he had got the most profit. "This was way beneficial than the 3 days of break I took to gather ingredients in the southern forest." He thought back to the day and shuddered as he remembered the worm again. "Just what was that? What cultivation was it to make me feel so physically scared?" he wondered. Due to the suddenness of the situation, he hadn''t managed to look at the name of the worm or its cultivation. "I doubt it would''ve worked. It would''ve probably said Mortal like it does for all beings with high cultivation base." He decided to not think about that for now and instead looked at the 2 storage bags he had gotten from the corpse. One of them was full of talismans that he thought did something like that one talisman he was holding. The others had a bunch of ingredients in them. He looked through the ingredients, and while he recognized all of them, barely any of them were useful for the pills he knew about. "That''s odd. I have seen some ingredients that didn''t align to a recipe, but not so many at once." He started wondering what other recipes might be out there that used these ingredients. And for them to behold on to using a wooden box, the owner really must''ve been worried about losing its energy. He kept the bag and looked at the next one. He had already kept the original talisman the corpse was holding in his other bag, so this bag only had the other ones. "Let''s see what they are about." He took out a single talisman and tried to see what sort of ability it could have or if he could even find that out without trying. However, when he used his spiritual sense to look at it, he realized something different. The talismans were recording talismans, unlike the other one. "Hmm¡­ it''s a recipe?" he was shocked. The talisman was actually a recipe. He quickly read it all, and suddenly. Heaven Profound pill, according to the recipe, was a pill that helped people breakthrough from the True realm to the Saint realm. The most amazing thing about this pill was that it was actually a Saint Rank pill. "What? A Saint rank pill''s recipe?" he was stunned. He quickly started reading the other talismans. Almost all of the talismans were recording talismans, which had one of two things. It either recorded a pill recipe or formation blueprints. "Was the one who set the formations in that place this guy?" Alex wondered. He read through all of the talismans in about 2 hours of time. There was truly a lot of them. Unfortunately, only a handful of the talismans were Saint Rank pills. Still, getting to learn 8 Saint Rank pill recipes and over a hundred True Pills recipes was a chance that would rarely ever come by. He also remembered about 20 different formation blueprints. But since he had no idea how formations worked, he didn''t understand a single thing. Not that he wanted to. He looked at the time and realized it was 2 am. He decided to cultivate for the rest of the night, when he suddenly realized, his face was still the same as when he ate that pill. ''How do I stop this effect?'' he wondered. There weren''t any abilities that canceled the pill''s effect. He calculated the time and realized that his face would change back at around 4 am in the morning tomorrow. So, he still had over an entire day to go. ''Whatever,'' he thought and simply started cultivating. Before he knew it, he was already in a trance state, falling unconscious due to the cultivation. Early in the morning, a little past 6 am, Alex opened his eyes. He logged out to have his breakfast. As he got out, he saw a notification on his phone. It was from his cousin Hannah. They hadn''t met in a couple of weeks, so she wanted to take him to an amusement park today. "An amusement park huh. I wonder how different it is from the fairs in the countryside," Alex thought out loud. The time set for the amusement park was around 11 am, so he could only go back to the game for 3 hours at most. He went to have his breakfast and returned back to his room. While his other 3 roommates went back to the game, he had nothing to do in the game this morning, so he decided not to. "Guess I won''t do anything for this morning then." He went back to bed and tried to sleep, but the game was too good at making him rest well, so he couldn''t even sleep. "Arghh," he said as he started tossing and turning but couldn''t sleep at all. So, he took out his phone and started surfing the Internet. "Should I go to the forum?" he wondered but decided not to. "I am already making money and am getting enough information from masters in the game. I don''t see why I should spoil myself with other information instead. I want to play it the way the developers intended." Alex thought. So, he opened up his go-to video hosting site to watch some new videos. On the recommended page, there was a new video released by Deva Corp explaining their latest capsules. Chapter 125: Capsule Presentation "Oh, are these the capsules Eric was talking about?" Alex thought as he clicked on the thumbnail. The video opened up to show a large capsule in the middle of the room and a man ready to talk. "Welcome to the video everyone. Today is the first unveiling of the capsules for the ever-popular game Eternal Cultivation. And Deva corp has given me the honor and opportunity of being the person to introduce these capsules to you." The man walked up to the capsule and talked as he put his hands on it. "These bed-sized capsules are the latest products of Deva Corp. You can open these capsules like this and enter here. Once you are inside, you will have to put nothing on your head or body to be able to play. All you do, is you press this button right near your left hand and let the lid close." The man showed everything one had to do to log in. It seemed pretty easy to Alex. "As you guys know, Eternal Cultivation can recognize you as the same player no matter how many helmets you chance, this is the same. As long as you log in, you will end up with the same character." The man moved to the front and started talking about the various other features of the capsule. Saying how fast it processed everything or how much more realistic the game would look now. "Do you know what the best thing about this capsule is?" the man prompted a question to the camera. "It is the fact that you won''t have to leave the capsule to eat or drink or go to the bathrooms at all. The Deva Corp has managed to make it so that all of your normal bodily functions slow down when you enter the game." "So all of you game addicts can go into the game without worrying about food or bathrooms ever again. However, Deva Corp still recommends you log out once a day to eat some food and do other things. Also, don''t forget to exercise guys. I know you guys only sleep and don''t exercise." The man laughed as he was handed a piece of paper from the side. "Here we have it, folks. The official numbers. This piece of paper contains the cost and the release date of these capsules. Even I do not know what information is inside, so you guys will know it along with me," as he said that, he started to open the piece of paper very slowly to build suspense among his viewers. "Oh, we have the date first. And it is going to be released in¡­" When Alex heard the date, he was surprised. "That is around 2 weeks from now. Much closer than I had expected." Eric had mentioned it is about 3 weeks away, but it seemed that was not the case. The capsules would be here before they even knew it. ''Where would I even keep it if I got it?'' he started to wonder. While the dorm room was big, it wasn''t big enough to fit 4 capsules along with the beds and the closets. He stopped thinking about the problem for now and kept on watching the video. The man further opened the page until it was fully opened. "Hmm¡­" a sound of surprise came from the man. "This can''t be." The man spoke out loud in shock as he kept on looking at the piece of paper. He slowly looked up at the camera with a face of incredulous and started talking. "You won''t believe me, folks. That is how good the price is." The man stopped talking to increase the suspense more. "The capsule will be on sale with a cost of $600. 600 dollars guys, 600 dollars. That''s a steal if you ask me." "However, that is not the best part about the price announcements. It would seem the rumors about us being able to return our VR helmets for a discount at the store were true. Depending on the time of the purchase of your helmets, these are the discount percentage you would get." "To anyone who bought the VR helmet within the first two weeks of sales, you get a 50% discount while buying the capsule." "To anyone who bought the VR helmet within the second 2 weeks of sales, you get a 60% discount." "To anyone who bought the VR helmet within the last 2 weeks of sales, you get a 70% discount." "As for those who can''t wait for the capsule coming up in the next 2 weeks, you can just get a helmet and return it back for absolutely free for a whopping 80% discount. "Guys, you can just go buy a helmet, play for two weeks, then return it back and get a capsule for 120 bucks. That''s 20 bucks more than the original price for 2 weeks worth of playing. Go get it if you haven''t right now." "Honestly, with such advanced technology, I wonder why Deva Corp is still refusing to use them in sectors like education and health care. And instead, they just focus on the game." The video ended soon after. ''Should I get it?'' Alex started wondering. Just the fact that he wouldn''t have to log out 4 times a day made the capsule worth it. With that, he could play a lot more and earn a lot more money. But, there was no place to keep the capsule. VR Helmet was one thing, but he wasn''t sure if the dorm even allowed its student to get something like a capsule inside. "The other 3 want one as well. Even if the dormitory allows us, I don''t see where we are supposed to keep them." Alex thought as he looked around. 4 capsules could fit, but then there would be no place to move around in the room. He sighed and thought, "Now that I have money, should I just rent a room somewhere near the college?" Chapter 126: Free Apartment "You wanna ride that?" Hannah asked hesitantly while looking at a big Ferris wheel in front of her. "Yeah, Hannah, let''s ride that. Alex, you should ride that as well. Have you been on a Ferris wheel that big?" Hannah''s friend, Vinny asked. "No. We occasionally had a small one during the fairs, but those were like half the size of these," Alex said. "Alright then, come on. It''s my treat anyway," said Vinny as she dragged both of them along. Vinny and Hannah were roommates that rented an apartment together. She had recently completed university, so she was leaving the city next week. So, as a sort of farewell party, she had decided to take Hannah to the amusement park. When she mentioned that she had a cousin in town that might also want to come to one, she had allowed Hannah to invite Alex. Hannah''s other friend that she used to live with had also completed university and had already left. While Hannah still had a few more months of study, so she was now going to be alone. They got up on the Ferris wheel and started enjoying the experience as the Ferris wheel brought them up high. However, Alex didn''t find the height scary at all. ''Is it because I am quite used to flying inside the game?'' he wondered. Hannah seemed to be less phased by the height as well. While Vinny on the other hand was having the time of her life. Although he wasn''t scared, he still enjoyed the experience of rapidly falling. After 10 minutes, they came down of the Ferris wheel. Vinny took them to a lot of other sites in the amusement park. By the time they left the amusement park, it was already past 3 pm. Vinny took the two to a restaurant to get something to eat. There, they started talking once more. "Where are you at in EC, Alex?" Vinny asked while taking a bite out of her fries. "EC¡­ Eternal Cultivation? How did you know I played it?" Alex asked with a surprised face. "Everyone plays it, haha. Besides, I think I remember Hannah mentioning something about it." Vinny said as she laughed. "Yeah, Alex. You didn''t mention last time where you were at. What continent are you in?" Hannah asked. "Continent?" Alex said with puzzlement. "I don''t really know what a continent is, but I''m in a place called Scarlet City in the Crimson Empire." Hannah thought for a bit and said, "I haven''t really heard about any empires called Crimson Empire in the game. Must be a different continent from the East then." Vinny suddenly spoke as she thought, "Ah, I think I have heard about that Empire in the forums. The players say that none of the NPCs know what continent they are in. But, from their description of the place, it''s full of trees and greenery, so I think it''s not the northern continent that is completely frozen or the southern continent that is said to be barren for the most part, right? So, It has to be the western continent." "Oh, the Western continent? I heard that it gets the least amount of players for some reason. Also, the NPCs from there have a very weak cultivation base" Hannah said "Speaking of that, what cultivation base do you have, Alex?" Vinny asked. "Oh, I am only at Bone Tempering 8th realm. I should reach Bone tempering 9th realm soon." Alex said. "Huh?" Hannah exclaimed from the side. "Hasn''t it been nearly a month since you started playing? How are you not even in the organ tempering realm yet? Don''t you have a good cultivation method or money to buy pills?" "Oh no, I''m fine on that aspect. My method is good. And also, I am an alchemist so I don''t have to worry about pills." Alex said. "Then why are you so slow?" Hannah asked. She seemed to be unusually frustrated for some reason. "Oh, people in the game told me that it wasn''t good to break through very fast. It destabilizes your cultivation base and as a result, your later realms become weaker, or breaking through gets harder." Alex answered. "I haven''t heard of anything like that," said Vinny. "I don''t think the forums have something about it either." "No, I think he is correct. Breaking through too fast does make you weaker. Now that I think about it, I might have been too fast as well. No wonder I am so weak compared to the other cultivators. I will have to make sure my cultivation base stabilizes now," Hannah said as she pondered a little. They talked about a few other things but nothing important until the conversation shifted towards the capsules that were going to be released soon. "Ah, I want one right now. It looks so good," said Vinny. "Yeah. Hey Alex, are you going to get one? Or you can use my helmet instead," said Hannah. "Oh, no sister. I can''t have that. I have earned some money by selling pills. I will use them," said Alex. "Although, I''m not sure if I can even use it in the first place. My dorm might not allow it. If I want a capsule, I will have to leave the dorm." "Hmm" Vinny hummed as she realized something. Hannah and Alex seemed to suddenly realize it as well. "Woah, you guys can stay together then. That works perfectly, right?" Vinny exclaimed. Alex thought that was a good idea as well. "Oh wow. I can''t believe I didn''t think of that before. I was dreading that I will have to leave the apartment or somehow find other people. But, if you come to live with me, my problems of being alone will be solved." "Also, it seems you can solve your problem of not being able to play will be solved as well." Hannah said. "I think that''s a fantastic idea, sister. I will talk with the dorm staff tomorrow about my leaving in a week. And I will also call my parents." Afterward, Hannah and Vinny walked back to their room, while Alex quickly returned back to his dorm room. It was a little late, so he didn''t immediately log in. Instead, he called his parents and let them know about the situation. They were happy to hear that he would stay with his cousin. Soon, he went and had his dinner. Only then did he finally log in for the night. Chapter 127: Late on a Saturday Alex opened his eyes inside his brightly lit room. He tried to remember what he was doing today before leaving the game. "Ah, that''s right. Those talismans. I learned all the recipes and blueprints. It''s amazing how I can remember everything in the game, yet in the real world, I can''t even remember to call my parents." He laughed as he said that to himself. "Hmm¡­ " suddenly, he noticed something. Something was vibrating close to him. When he tried to look around for what it was, he realized that it was coming from one of his numerous storage bags. As he looked into the bag to see what was making so much of a ruckus, he realized that it was his badge. He took out the badge numbered 168 and saw that it was not only vibrating but also flashing as well. ''What''s going on?'' he thought as he sent his spiritual sense into the badge. "What?!!" he exclaimed loudly as he realized there were numerous notifications in his badge, and all of them were similar. -Number 182 has registered a match with you. You have 1 hour to fight- -You have forfeited the match. Your number is now 182- -Number 198 has registered a match with you. You have 1 hour to fight- -You have forfeited the match. Your number is now 198- . . . -Number 873 has registered a match with you. You have 1 hour to fight- -You have forfeited the match. Your number is now 873- -Number 943 has registered a match with you. You have 1 hour to fight- Alex was really surprised now. "Oh no. Today is a Saturday. I forgot you had to fight every hour on a Friday and Saturday." He looked at the time and realized there was only an hour and a half left before the fightings were over. He hurriedly ran out of the house. He put the badge on the wooden panel and walked out after the door opened. As soon as he was out, the badge suddenly showed a change. The number of the badge suddenly changed from 168 to 873. "It can do that too?" Alex was surprised. He didn''t give it another thought, however. He started running towards the sect crater and reached it in less than 10 minutes. However, by the time he was there, his hour was over, and his badge had changed from number 973 to 943. He immediately went onto a queue in the fighting hall and waited for his turn to register. As soon as his turn came, he registered a fight with the same person with badge 168. He had made it in time. There were still quite a few minutes before it was 8 o''clock, so even if the man didn''t choose to fight and waited out his hour-long break, Alex would still win. He calmed down a little and started looking at the fights going on all around him. It was almost as if the entire sect was down here in the crater and they were all fighting today. "Is this how the Fridays and Saturdays are normally spent in Tiger Sect? No wonder they are so much better at fighting." He wondered. The entire thing looked like a festival. The number of people here was way higher than the amusement park they went to today could ever hope to have. Finally, after waiting for nearly an hour, his opponent arrived. Alex walked up to the stage and handed his badge to the elder. He then turned around to see a male disciple wearing inner sect clothes. He had a clean-shaven face with short black hair. The most interesting thing about the man was that he was in the same cultivation realm as him. The bone tempering 8th realm. ''The last guy I fought who had the badge 168 was in the 6th realm. Yet, somehow he who came from below has higher cultivation? That shouldn''t be possible.'' The guy on the other hand had a confused look. "You don''t match the description either," he said to Alex. "What?" he was confused. "Hmm... I am pretty sure the person I was supposed to fight was a tall guy with an oval face and long hair. Your face is neither oval nor is your hair long. is that guy still in hiding? I thought he would come to get his badge back by now." the man said. "What do you¡ª " suddenly Alex remembered. ''My face is still different? Ah, that''s right. It''s supposed to go away after another 8 hours only.'' He finally remembered that the effect of the Face Changing pills was still there. ''Does that mean this person came to fight me specifically? I don''t remember getting into trouble with someone like him,'' he thought. "Did you want to specifically fight this guy or what? You seem to have some sort of purpose?" Alex asked. "Uh, yeah. Sigh. Brother Huo even specifically asked me to beat him up. It seems I will have to return back with the news of failure. Urghh¡­ now I''m frustrated. Why did you have to go and take that guy''s spot huh." The man started with an annoyed looked, then got frustrated and finally, got angry. ''So, it was that Huo Tu guy again. Is his ego so fragile that just one deny and he sent his entire collections of lackeys behind me? What will that even get him? He is not even the one taking his revenge.'' Alex started frowning too as he thought that. "Arhh¡­ Screw this. If I can''t beat him, then I will beat you up. You dared to register a fight against me huh, see how I torture you during this battle." The man suddenly took out a saber. It looked fancy and was definitely a high-grade weapon. Alex got a little apprehensive as well. He deliberated between taking out the normal sword or taking out the True ranked sword. In the end, he went with the normal sword since he still had to furnish his techniques. The elder then brought out his hands forward and screamed, "Fight!!" Chapter 128: Battle ''He is after me?'' ''Huo Tu still hasn''t given up on beating me?'' ''How did he even get to fight me?'' ''Was he below me in the ranking? That can''t be.'' ''Did he purposefully got a lower badge number so he could challenge me?'' These and other various thoughts suddenly disappeared from Alex''s head as soon as he heard the elder start the match. The man didn''t seem the least bit fearful towards Alex. ''He can''t see my cultivation base, so he is ignoring the danger.'' He thought. The man wielding the saber suddenly brought it to the side and made a giant slash horizontally that sent out energy towards Alex. The color of the man''s sword was brown in color, so the element of the attack must''ve been earth aligned as well. Alex sent out the second sword strike of Elusive Heavenly sword. He channeled his Qi into the sword and a green light was produced, which he sent flying towards the incoming brown light. BOOM A violent explosion of energies rang out in the middle of the stage. Alex took this opportunity to use his Fluctuating Friction Dance to get closer to the man. The man seemed to have the same idea, so he too came close to it. However, unlike Alex, he couldn''t see through the smoke. Alex managed to take him by surprise. With a swing of the sword, he hit the man right on the side of his chest, sending his entire body flying. With his current strength, the man''s ribs must''ve been broken. Alex fell back and waited for the elder to call off the battle. But the order to stop fighting never came. His opponent didn''t falter either. The man with the saber slowly got up from the ground and looked at Alex as he gnashed his teeth together. "Don''t think you are amazing just because you managed to hit me," the man started shouting. ''What is going on? I clearly hit him?'' Alex thought as he sent his spiritual sense inside the man to check his ribs, but suddenly, he noticed something. Inside the yellow Tiger Sect robe, the man was wearing something else as well. Something that was hard and brown in color. ''An armor artifact?'' Alex was surprised. This was the first time he had seen someone wear one outside of that blue armor in the auction. ''Can it be as good as the one in the auction? No way right?'' he started questioning himself. ''Even though he didn''t get harmed, he should have still been hurt. Dammit! I could finish the fight at once if I could use Heaven''s impact, or the Flickering Shadows technique. Hell, he wouldn''t last a minute if I went invisible. '' Alex started preparing for his second attack. He used Smiting Blade to charge up his blade with yellow light. And then, he dashed forward. The man showed a little fear when he saw Alex move. He had severely underestimated his opponent and his body hurt like hell. His earth armor was supposed to block attacks from anyone under the Organ Tempering realm. Even Organ tempering 1st realm cultivators found it hard to do damage to him when he had his armor on. As soon as the man saw Alex closing in on him, he used a weird technique. Suddenly, all of his body started producing a crisscross pattern of brown lines. Alex was surprised at the change and also the fact that the man was doing nothing to dodge the attack. This time the sword hit him right in the chest, but the man didn''t move a bit. In fact, he didn''t even show a single reaction to the attack. ''Damn! A defensive technique?'' he thought. Not only did the man have armor, but he also had a defensive technique. ''What else does he have?'' Alex sent out a relentless set of attacks that forced the man to keep his defensive technique up for as long as possible. And Alex knew that wouldn''t be so long. ''Let me see how long you can last like this,'' Alex thought as he kept on hitting the man for a while. However, the man''s defense didn''t go down. The man too started swinging his saber at him. Alex had no problem dodging that. Soon, it became a close combat fight between a sword and a saber. The man''s saber arts were good, but they weren''t able to hit Alex thanks to his amazing dodging ability. The man started to run out of Qi as he constantly used his defense arts. "God damn you-" he couldn''t even finish his sentence as Alex''s attacks started getting faster. ''Is this all he can handle? Guess I expected too much of him. It''s not like he is my master of anything.'' Suddenly, the man leaped backward, creating a distance among them. He landed right at the edge of the stage. "Damn it. I can''t believe you forced me to use it," said the man as he started channeling his Qi. Brown Qi flowed into the saber as he prepared one more attack. The saber slowly left the man''s arm as it started to spin in midair. He made some weird gestures as he sent the saber flying towards Alex in a blink and you miss its speed. BOOM An explosion, louder than the first one occurred. Dust rose up, blinding everyone in and out of the stage. The elder got a little startled. He had expected the other disciple to block it with his own attack, but for some reason, he didn''t. "Hey, Are you alright," the elder shouted from the side with a bit of nervousness. The dust was still high, so he swiped his hands sending away the dust from the air on the stage. "Yeah, I am alright," Alex''s voice came from the other side. When the elder finally turned his head to where the sound came from, He saw Alex standing near the unconscious body of the other disciple. ''What happened?'' he was surprised. Alex''s clothes seemed a little roughed up, but overall he was okay. Alex walked up to the elder to take his badge and simply walked away, leaving the elder and the crowd in stun. Chapter 129: Senior Brother Alex looked at the badge numbered 168 and kept it in his storage bag. "Argghh¡­" he softly cried in pain. "Goddammit that hurt," he said as he held his left arm that he was sure was broken even without looking at it. Although it hadn''t looked like it, he had taken quite a bit of damage. He took out a Common Healing pill of 38% harmony and ate it. Slowly, he felt the energy from the pill dissolve in his stomach and move all over his body as it healed what was harmed. His broken arm quickly got fixed as the energy washed over the left arm. He felt a bit of energy disappear when it reached his wound, but most of it still continued onward. "Ah¡­ that''s much better." He said in relief as the pain went away. "I probably should have used the Flickering Shadow technique, but I don''t want to reveal it yet. Thankfully, I learned the Jade Skin technique." Jade Skin technique, a defensive technique, was one of the 7 techniques that Wen Cheng had brought for him. Although the name of the technique contained Jade, it had no elemental alignment to the Earth element or any elements for that matter. When used, the Jade Skin technique would increase the defensive capability of the cultivator''s skin allowing them to block attacks up to 2 realms higher. But even then, the bone in his arm was broken. "That man''s saber must''ve at least been a Common Heaven rank artifact to damage by bones through the Jade Skin." Alex had blocked off most of the energy of the saber, but the saber itself had damaged him quite a bit. He had taken the opportunity to dash forward at the time and knock out the unprepared opponent. "Do I go to master''s today as well?" he thought. In the end, he decided to just go. If not needed, he would simply return back to his home. "Ah, you''re here." He heard a sound before he even reached the training facility. "Hmm¡­ why can''t I see you thought?" Wen Cheng said as he walked towards him from around the corner. Alex dropped his invisibility and showed himself to Wen Cheng. He curiously looked at Wen Cheng and asked, "Did you unlock spiritual sense, master?" "Oh yes. It''s all thanks to you. Hmm¡­ why were you invisible just then? Is that a sort of technique?" he asked. "Yes. It''s a technique I learned a few weeks ago." He simply said as he walked towards the training facility. "Okay, what ranking are you now? Did you improve at all?" Wen Cheng asked as he also went to the training facility. "Uhhh¡­" Alex was a little stumped as to what he could say right now. "I¡­ spent the entire day cultivating my spiritual sense master. I only fought one match to get back my badge." He decided to lie a little. "Oh, you have a spiritual sense too? How many lilies did you use?" he asked. "Huh?" Alex got a little surprised. "How many? Don''t you only need one lily to unlock Spiritual Sense? Why would I use more than one?" he asked. "Oh, is that what the records in Hong Wu Sect say? Haha," Wen Cheng gave a hearty laugh and followed it by saying, "No. While it is true that you require one to unlock your Spiritual sense. Using more, you can increase your spiritual sea and thus improving your spiritual sense." Alex was surprised. "Thank you, Master. For telling me about it." "It''s alright. I have already used 2 and given 1 to your senior sister. I don''t know how many you have, but if it''s possible, save one for your senior brother as well. He might want it as well?" Wen Cheng said. "Senior brother? I have one?" Alex said in surprise. "Hmm¡­ he didn''t introduce himself to you? But he should have already met you. He became an elder a few years ago, and is currently working in the sect as the leader of the guards," said Wen Cheng. "Leader of guards? Him? He is my senior brother?" Alex asked with a surprise. "Yeah. I even gave him the sword to pass along to you. That damn boy should have introduced himself. Anyway, if you can save some lilies, save one for him too,'' said Wen Cheng as he walked into the training facility. "By the way, why haven''t you taken off your changed appearance yet?" he asked. "I don''t know how to, so I have been wearing it for now. It should wear off in 7 hours though," said Alex. "I see. I thought you alchemists would know about reverting the changes, but it seems I was wrong. Or maybe 2 weeks just isn''t long enough for you to learn it. As Ma Rong about it when you enter. For now, let''s proceed with the training. Since we missed yesterday, you can take a new book today out of these 4." Wen Cheng said as he brought the 4 books out from his storage bag. Of the 4 books, one was a defense technique, while the others were offensive techniques. Alex decided to choose an offensive one today. He didn''t have any offensive technique that he couldn''t use without his sword, so he decided to learn one that didn''t require a sword. It was a metal-aligned fist technique that could be used from a long-distance away. He happily learned the book for the rest of the night and went back to his home at 3 am. He took out a Spirit Cleansing Lily and tried it to see if it could indeed increase his spiritual sea just as the master said. He looked at the red flower in his hand. ''They are never the same color, are they?'' he slowly closed his eyes and started to cultivate. Soon, he fell into a trance and went unconscious. Chapter 130: Battle of the minds A red spot of light started floating from the brightly lit red flower in Alex''s hands. They slowly entered his body, mixing into his bloodstream through his lungs, and went up to his brain. There, the little spots of lights started merging with the already available spiritual sea. Little by little, the spiritual sea started to expand. By the end, the flower was completely gone, and the spiritual sea had nearly doubled in size. Near 7 am in the morning, Alex opened his eyes. He looked down at his hands and realized that the flower was no longer there. "Did I use it?" he wondered. He sent out his spiritual sense to see how far he could reach with it. To his disappointment, it was still at 20 meters. "But the spiritual sea has clearly gotten bigger. Why can''t I expand my spiritual sense then?" he wondered. He tried different things like concentrating on multiple objects, sending out the spiritual sense as far as he could, and trying to deplete it to see how fast the sea would reduce. ''Hmm¡­'' he hummed as he realized something. While his ability to concentrate on multiple things was still the same and the maximum distance he could stretch was still 30 meters, he could now keep the spiritual sense going on for double the previous time. Basically, his amount of spiritual sense had doubled. ''Oh wow, that means I don''t really have to worry about it ending, huh,'' he thought. Suddenly, he also realized, "Does that mean I can use Heaven''s Impact 8 different times instead of just four times now?" he wondered. Unfortunately, he didn''t have anyone he could try it on. After checking his spiritual sense and spiritual sea for a little more, he decided to leave for breakfast. After half an hour or so, he finally returned back to the game. As soon as he returned, he shouted "status". His status window appeared in front of him allowing him to view his current amounts of Qi. "Enough to breakthrough once more, huh. I should be good enough to break through now." As he said that, he hit [Breakthrough]. ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Bone Tempering 9th Realm (1,000,000 Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 219,588 ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª "Urghh¡­ it''s going to take forever to break through if I just use the cultivation method. I will have to resort to eating pills and cores now." Alex said as he shook his head. The upcoming breakthroughs were going to take forever, but with the right pills and cores, that shouldn''t be a problem. He reached into his bag and took out a monster''s core. It was from a monster with the cultivation of Bone Tempering 9th realm, the same as his. He looked at it and ate it. "Sigh. That''s barely any. I will have to eat 2 more of these just to have enough to level up. Thankfully, my senior sister gave me a lot so I can just use them." He thought himself lucky when he realized he wouldn''t have to waste days on end, just sitting in one place, cultivating. He reached back into his storage bag and took out another core. This time, it was the core of a monster in the 1st realm of Organ tempering. Just like the last time, he put the core into his mouth and swallowed it. Rawr!! A beastly scream rang inside of him. He saw the silhouette of a monster with 8 legs and 2 horns that liked to crawl around like an alligator. The beast''s roar started creating turbulences in his head as the spiritual sea started splashing around. Alex suddenly found himself in another place. He tried to look around with his spiritual sense and realized he couldn''t use it. So, he simply just looked around. It didn''t take him long to realize he was inside his mind floating on top of the dark and cold-looking spiritual sea. The only thing he could see around was himself with no clothes on, the sea itself, and a weird-looking figure up ahead. It was the figure of the same alligator. It was somehow in his head as well. The alligator came lunging towards him with all of its 8 legs and tried to impale him with its 2 horns. Alex instinctively reached to his side to take out his sword and remembered that he didn''t have his storage bags with him. "Sh*t," he shouted. The alligator was still quite far away as it seemed to be very slow for some reason. ''Is it slow, or am I just fast?'' Alex wondered. Since he had no weapons, he could only hit it with his arms and legs. And he had just learned the perfect technique for that. The technique was called the Iron Fist Punch and allowed one to send out a punch with massive energy behind it. Being a heaven-grade technique, it was not something the opponents could easily ignore. Alex brought his arms to a fist and out of nowhere, his fist started glowing yellow. He simply punched and a massive yellow fist-shaped energy flew out from his arms. It flew directly towards the alligator and hit it squarely in the head. "Take that," Alex said as his first proper usage of the fist technique had landed. However, when he saw the Alligator moving again, he was surprised. The alligator seemed to be a little hurt, but it still had a lot of fight in it. "Goddammit," Alex said as he went forward to accept the fight. Surprisingly, he realized that he could use all the techniques without care for Qi as they seemed to not use any. He sent out punches after punches with the Iron Fist Punch and used the Elusive Heaven Technique to dodge the alligator''s attack. The only thing he couldn''t do in his mind was conceal himself and use his spiritual sense. After a while of tumultuous fighting, he finally managed to beat the alligator and with a final Iron Fist Punch, killed it. Chapter 131: Meeting Senior Brother Again Alex looked at the alligator''s corpse in front of him, still somehow floating in the air, just like him. "It was too weak. There is no way that was an Organ tempering realm monster right?'' he thought. He instinctively related the monster to the monster core he had just eaten. The battle had taken a while, but that was just due to how tough the alligator was. Its actual offensive capability or speed was nowhere near the level of what an organ tempering realm monster should have been able to do. Suddenly, a yellow aura started to leak out from under the sea. It started off slow near a small shadow, but by the time it reached him, it had sped up by a lot. The yellow aura consumed both him and the corpse in front of him. Alex realized that he was back in his body and wasn''t in his mind anymore. Out of nowhere, a couple of notifications started popping up before him. ''What was that?'' he started wondering. That fight was in his mind, but it felt so¡­ Real. Almost like he would die if we weren''t careful. ''Was that monster real? Did I really fight it? Why in my spiritual sea though?'' many questions started running in his mind, but there wasn''t anyone who he could ask about it. He looked at the time and realized he had spent nearly 15 minutes fighting that monster in his mind. He simply shook his head wondering if that had something to do with his body. ''Since it''s my body, I should try asking master just in case he knows about it,'' Alex thought. He took a deep breath and decided to forget about it for now. ''Do I have to fight today?¡­ No, today is Sunday, so everyone is free to do what they want. I should go and make some pills today.'' He thought. ''But before that, I have something else to do.'' Alex got up from his bed and walked out. He walked out to the sounds of numerous noises from the area. Since no one had to go to the sect crater today, they were spending most of their time on the residential mountain. Alex walked out of the sideways path and walked down the main path towards the main road. He walked up to the gate, however, instead of walking out, he went up to a guard. "Hello elder, I am here to see elder Liu Xin, can I meet him?" he asked. "You want to meet the leader? Do you have an appointment or something?" the guard elder asked. "No, but the sect master sent me. Can you tell him that Yu Ming has come to see him?" he asked. The elder was surprised when he heard that it was the sect master who had sent the inner sect disciple. He didn''t dare go against the sect leader, so he just walked into the building. After a while, the elder came back out and said, "the leader is waiting for you inside, go." Alex thanked the guard elder and walked into the building. He found his way to the familiar room he had entered when he came here. Inside the room was the young black-haired leader sitting in his chair with his feet on the table. "So, you said you came to see me?" he asked as Alex entered. "Yes, senior brother," Alex replied. The man''s eyes perked up when he heard that. He smiled a little and asked," How did you find out? Did little Mei tell you about me?" he asked. "No, it was master," Alex replied. The man, Liu Xin, stopped acting like an elder and started acting like an elder brother. "So, did master really send you? He usually just called me in my communication talismans," Liu Xin said as he scrutinized Alex''s expressions to see if he was lying or not. Alex simply said, "No, I needed to meet you so I came up with an acceptable lie." "Oh, needed? Not wanted? Why would need to meet me? Do you need something? Are you in some sort of trouble?" he asked curiously. Alex reached into his bag and took out a pink flower. Liu Xin watched him take out the flower with a puzzled face. "What is this?" he asked. "This is a Spirit Cleansing Lily. Cultivate with this in your hand overnight and you will unlock Spiritual sense," Alex sent the message directly to Liu Xin''s head. Liu Xin was surprised when he heard a voice right in his mind. He asked with wide eyes, "Do you already have a spiritual sense?" "Yes," Alex replied. Liu Xin was still in awe as he looked at the flower in his hand. Hidden in that awe seemed to be excitement and nervousness. They talked for a while longer and Alex returned back to his room around 15 minutes later. He logged out a little before lunchtime to talk to the dorm warden about leaving the dorm room. The dorm warden didn''t think much about it and simply noted his name down in his notepad while constantly mumbling, "how many more are going to leave because of that damn game." Alex was surprised he wasn''t the first one to decide to leave the dorm just to play the game. During lunch, he told Logan, Matt, and Eric about his ideas of moving, and surprisingly, they weren''t surprised about it. "Yeah, we are thinking of moving too," said Matt. "But, we will stay as long as possible since staying in a dorm is very much simpler than having your own place and taking care of it. Maybe the dorm will change its policy on the capsules, who knows." They finished their meals and returned back to the game. Alex opened his eyes inside his room. He looked at his storage bags and started thinking of the many pills he could make. Finally, after he finished choosing what pills he would make today, he walked out. Chapter 132: Production Hall In a few minutes, Alex reached the sect crater. It was past 10 am in the morning, so there were many people here already. However, no one was in the fighting stages and was here for either getting a new technique from the library, training in the Training Hall, or creating something in the Production hall. Alex wanted to take pills so he beelined his way to the Production hall. There weren''t as many people in the Production Hall as he had expected. ''Maybe I''m just too used to seeing every disciple from the sect come down to make pills back in Hong Wu sect,'' he thought. He walked up and got into a queue. Very soon, it was his turn. He took out his badge and handed it to the elder. "What are you here for?" the elder asked. "Alchemy," said Alex as he gave a short and to-the-point answer. The elder walked to the wall behind him and placed Alex''s badge on one of the square outlines in a giant wooden board. A small wooden-token-like object fell from the square where the elder had placed the badge. He came back and handed the wooden token to Alex and said, "Room 26." He then started tending to the other person in the queue. Alex walked into the hall and looked at the doors around the hallway. They all had numbers in them. He quickly found his way to the 26th door and saw a small hole in the place where a keyhole should be. Alex slid in the wooden token and with a CLANK, the door opened. "Oh wow," Alex said as he saw the inside of the room. The room looked exactly the same as the rooms in Alchemy Hall back in the Hong Wu sect. "Did they copy from Hong Wu Sect?" he wondered. "Or did Hong Wu sect copy from them?" but he didn''t need to know that. He went and sat near the middle and put aside the black cauldron that was already there. He took out his own cauldron and put it down on the fire. It still smelled a little like the Blood Improving Pill he made last time, so he gave it a simple swipe with his Qi to get rid of any remaining odors and powders. Soon, he started making his different pills. He hadn''t made one in about a week, so he started off with something easy. And once he got back his habit, he churned out pills after pills. Unfortunately, none of the pills he made ever crossed the Heaven-grade threshold. However, they did come very close to it. Two of the pills ended up with 47% and one got 49%. But that only happened when the pill did not split into 2 different pills. When the powders in the cauldron did split to form two pills, the harmony level would generally stay under 40% for each of the pills. Only on rare occasions when his ingredients were the right age, or when they had the right amount of energy would he get pills with very high harmony even when it split. After a few hours, he stopped making the pills as he was mentally fatigued and decided to take a few minutes of break. He looked at all the pills he had made by now. "Oh wow, 26 pills in just a few hours? I have clearly exceeded my record from last time and I could still go for a few more pills if I wanted to," he thought. "Is it because I broke through so many times that I have so much more stamina? " He wondered. "I should level up more," he thought. But as he thought that, he shuddered a little as he remembered the fight in his mind this morning. ''Just what was that? Now that I think about it, the aura from the monster was definitely the same as the aura from the monster''s core I ate," he thought. "Does that mean that the monster only arrived after I ate it?" "Could it be the monster was already inside the core and it only came out because I ate the pill? If so then how did I not get them from the other cores I ate until now?" he had unintentionally started thinking of it again. "Wait for a second, the only difference between the core I ate today and the core I ate before then was that none of the monster''s cores before were of the Organ tempering realm." He waited for a few seconds and thought, "Should I try it again?" He took out a random monster core from his bag and looked at it. It was a monster core from a Bone Tempering 8th realm monster. Without thinking he put it into his mouth and swallowed it. Within seconds he got a notification. "So little. Having too many similar strength cores does reduce its efficiency," he thought. Then he reached into his bag and took out another core. This time, it was a core from a monster in the Bone Tempering 9th Realm. He took the core and put it in his mouth. Similar to every other time, he swallowed the core as if it were a pill and within a "Urghh¡­ it dropped by so much." He then reached back into his storage bag and took out another core. This time, it was a core from an Organ Tempering 1st realm monster. As he did, a small fear started spurting from deep within him. "God! Should I do this? What if there really is something inside here and I can''t kill it this time." He started worrying. But, in the end, he still needed to know if what happened last time was a coincidence or the norm. So, he mentally prepared himself, put the core into his mouth, and swallowed. Chapter 133: Severe Itching As soon as he swallowed it, he mentally prepared himself to find himself flying up above his spiritual sea, facing another monster in front of him. However, all he got was a bunch of new notifications. ''Huh?'' he thought, ''what''s going on?''. He saw the notification and was surprised that he just got the points with no problem. "Was the last time a fluke then?" the thought of it made him scratch his head. "Ok, I will try this one more time and see if it really was a fluke or not. If nothing happens, I will go back to making pills," he said as he pulled out another monster core from his bag. From the aura, he could easily tell it belonged to an Organ Tempering 1st realm monster. Without thinking, he put the core in his mouth and swallowed. He was half expecting to just see another set of notifications, but instead, he found himself in a familiar place. ''It happened once more,'' he was shocked. ''Then that means that in front of me is¡­'' he slowly looked forward to seeing something clearly visible in the otherwise black sky. The monster was a bull-like monster with tusks. It suddenly saw Alex and started running towards him. "Still slow for a monster that is supposed to be in the organ tempering realm. I wonder If I am the stronger here or the monsters are just that weaker in my spiritual sea?" Similar to last time, it took some effort, but he defeated the monster. As he looked at the corpse, his spiritual sea started to glow. Yellow light started shining from the spiritual sea, surrounding a small shadow. The yellow aura started covering everything and just like last time, it devoured both him and the corpse. Alex found himself back in the alchemy room as a bunch of notifications went off. "So, it wasn''t really a mistake, huh. Monsters do show up in my head when I eat the pills," he said as he sighed. "This monster was weak, comparatively, but what would happen if a strong one showed up." "Would I die if I ate that one core?" he wondered. He sent his consciousness into his storage bags to search for it. He had never really taken it out or done anything with it as he had felt a bit guilty about it, but now he was thankful he didn''t. He quickly found it and took it out. The Mother cat''s monster core. A very thick aura started to permeate from the core as it filled up the room. Alex''s body started to shake as he had two different feelings in his mind. One was an instinctual feeling of fear and made him want to get away from it. While the other was an instinctual feeling of eating, that made him want to devour the core. Thankfully, the two feelings counteracted each other and helped him keep a clear mind. The aura was something he hadn''t felt ever. When the mother cat died, her aura had all but gone, so she couldn''t make Alex fear her. But now that he was looking at the core, he started to wonder just how strong the cat monster really was. Just as he was thinking that his left arm started itching. He tried to scratch the itch away but it didn''t go away. "Huh? Did the wound from the saber not heal properly?" he wondered as he kept on scratching it. He put the monster core back into his bag, and suddenly the itching stop. "Huh?" he was surprised. "Did it¡­" he took out the monster core once more. The monster core filled the room with its aura once more and his left arm started to itch as well. "What is happening?" he was surprised. He tried putting the monster core back in and taking it back out. Each time he did that his left arm would either start to itch or stop itching. He stripped his upper half, revealing his smooth, white skin except for that one scar the wolf gave him. He took out the core once more and realized it was exactly this scar that was itching. He slowly brought the core towards his arm and it started itching more and more. Finally, he tapped his scar with the core. FLASH A bright light flashed from his scar as something shot out. Alex stumbled back in fear as he tried to at what has just come out of his arm. "Huh?" he was even more surprised now. "No way!! It''s you. How did you?" he couldn''t come up with any questions to ask. In front of him was a small monster trying to nibble on the monster core that it took from Alex just now. The little monster was barely any bigger than his actual palm and had white fur all over its body. It was the little white kitten. It was the same little white kitten that he fought for and nearly died saving. The mother and son pair of the cat monster had disappeared while he was near death and he had not been able to find where they had gone as not even the elders had found anything. But now, the little cat was in front of him. He finally got out of his surprise and realized the little kitten was trying to eat its mother''s core. Alex didn''t care if the kitten ate its mother''s core or not as it might end up benefiting it in the end. However, if the same thing that happened to him, happened to the little cat, It would certainly take a lot of harm. "No, don''t eat that. Give it to me," Alex said as he tried to take back the core. "MEOW," the little purred and moved away from the core. Alex was stunned once more as he couldn''t help but ask, "Did¡­ Did you just understand me?" Chapter 134: Pearl Alex was a little surprised when he saw the little cat move away from the core. But once he stopped telling the cat what to do, it immediately gravitated back towards the core. Alex swiftly pulled the core towards him and kept it in his bag. Now that there was no aura from the core available, the cat started blinking its black eyes around, not knowing what to do. "Meow," it meowed a little. "Come here, little buddy," Alex said as he gestured the cat to come towards him with this hands. "Meow," The cat meowed as it clumsily jumped towards Alex and started nudging his head on his knees. "Where did you come from, buddy?" he asked, and started to think back on what had just happened. ''My arm,'' he thought as he looked at his arms once more. ''It''s gone. Did my scar heal, or¡­'' he finally remembered what his master had said that day in the auction hall. ''Beast companions are a little unique, in that they don''t live in the physical world after they bond with a cultivator,'' was what Ma Rong had told him in the auction hall just before showing the tattoo of her own beast in the nape of her neck. ''A tattoo¡­ was my scar, not an actual scar, but a tattoo?'' he started to finally understand what had happened. ''But, that would mean¡­'' he looked down at the little cat and tilted his head as he asked, "Did you form a bond with me?" he wasn''t expecting an answer and he didn''t get any. He pet the little cat on its back and scratched its belly. "Meow," the cat meowed once more. "Hmm¡­ don''t I have to feed you my blood essence for you to make a bond with you?" he asked. He remembered reading records on beast companions in the library. Although they weren''t extensive in knowledge, they did give a general idea of what had to be done. According to the records, beast companions could only be bonded by the beasts themselves. The humans could only ''influence'' the desire to bond. This was why people got cubs and other newly born monsters. So that they could influence them from early on and make them voluntarily bond with them. "But, Master did say the bonding requires humans to present their essence to the monsters. And the bond is only successful when the beasts accept the blood and drink it. But I haven''t given the little cat any blo¡ª " his words stuck in his mouth as he remembered the day back then. That was the same day he had managed to refine the Steel sword. And refinement process was only done when the artifact accepted the person''s essence, an essence which meant blood from their foreheads. "That''s right. The wolf bit me in my head and I was bloody at the time. Did you take in some of the blood at that time? Now that I think about it, I don''t remember much of what happened after I pulled out the sword." Alex guessed that the little cat must''ve accepted his blood essence when he was down and nearly unconscious. He pet the cat some more and as he was rubbing its belly, he felt its stomach move a little. "Hmm¡­ are you hungry?" he was a little surprised. He tried to look up its name and suddenly a bunch of extra information came to his head. [White Cat (Infant) - Bonded Name: None Cultivation Base: Skin Tempering 2nd Realm Evolution Chance: 5% Cultivation Method: None] "Oh," he was slightly astonished when he saw the entire panel pop up. This was a new set of information that he had never seen before. "Name? You want a name buddy?" he asked the cat. "Meow," Alex thought he heard some sort of affirmation in that meow just now. "Okay then, let''s see¡­ should I use real-life names like Toby or Felix? Nah, that doesn''t sound right? Can I not choose and instead use a randomizer?" he thought as he clicked on the name. A panel opened up where he could type and at the bottom left was a randomize button. He clicked on it, and it gave the name ''lingling''. ''Lingling? I don''t like that.'' Alex went on to randomize once more. He randomized a few times before he saw a name that he liked. "Hmm¡­ Since you are mostly white, the name fits too." He clicked confirm on the panel. "Alright then, from now on, your name will be Pearl." "Meow" the little cat gave a questioning look. "Yes, Pearl. That''s your name now." Alex said with a smile on his face. The cat smiled as well and started meowing about. It started running laps around him but after a few laps, it sat near him in exhaustion. "Are you okay little Pearl?" he asked for a second. The cat purred a little, its voice very weak. "Oh, right. You were hungry. What do you eat though, meats? I don''t have any." Alex said. Any restaurants he could visit were outside the sect and that would take quite a while to reach. "Ah, that''s right, monsters eat other monster''s core too, right?" he took out a core from a very weak Skin Tempering 3rd realm monster and gave it to the little cat. "Here Pearl, can you eat this?" he asked the cat. "Meow Meow," seeing the monster core, the little cat''s eyes immediately lit up with hunger. Alex put it near its mouth and it started to immediately nibble on it. Unlike its mother''s core, however, it easily started biting off the low-level core. Within minutes, it managed to finish the entire core and started meowing like it was getting tired. "You want to sleep buddy?" he asked. He wanted to put him in his robes, but then remembered that beast companions usually stayed on the person they bonded with. "Alright, can you go back here?" he asked as he pointed to his left arm. Immediately, white light shone from the cat as it leaped into his arm, turning to a tattoo of a paw. Chapter 135: Beast Care "What does a monster eat exactly? Meat may be?" he thought. "Urghh¡­ I wish master had gone more in-depth when she taught me about the beast companions," he started whining a little. He decided to go to the market outside and buy something for Pearl later on. For now, he would continue with the alchemy. He proceeded to make a few pills before taking a break to get some food and returned back to make some more pills. He continued until it was 6 pm. "I should stop now, and go do the other things," he thought as he left the alchemy room. He took the wooden token from the door and returned it back to the elder outside. The elder looked at the time and calculated the price based on the amount of time he had spent in the room and the discount off of his badge number. "168¡­ that is 46% discount off of 2 spirit stones for each hour. Rounded off, you have to pay 8 spirit stones for the entire day." The elder said. Alex took out 8 spirit stones from his storage bag and paid for it. The sky was starting to darken and since nobody was fighting today, most of the disciples had returned back from the crater. Alex slowly made his way back to the other side of the mountain. However, instead of going back to his home, he left for the market in front of the sect. After walking past the gate, he looked around to see if there were any restaurants there. Instead, he found something better. Towards the outer area of the market, he saw a small shop called ''Beasts Care''. "Is that like a Veterinary?" he wondered and walked towards the shop. The shop was very small compared to the other shops in the market. As he entered, he saw a very old man sitting in a chair, petting a little bunny on his lap. As soon as he realized someone had entered, he looked to the side and asked, "What do you want, boy?" Alex was surprised when he saw the man be grumpy without even him doing anything. The man was wearing an elder''s robes, so he decided to not say anything regarding his grumpy personality. Instead, he put on a friendly smile and asked, "Hello elder, I got a new beast companion and it seems to be hungry, can you tell me if there is something I can buy here to feed it?" he asked. The elder didn''t look towards Alex at all and went back to petting the rabbit on his lap as he asked, "What beast?" he asked. "It''s a little kitten of a White Cat monster," Alex replied. "Hmm¡­ " the man turned towards Alex as he looked at him with a confused look. "What beast did you say?" he asked once more. "A White Cat monster''s kitten," he replied. "A White¡­ Cat? Show me," the elder said as he got curious. "He is currently sleeping elder," Alex tried to say, but the elder just spoke back once more with a more authoritative voice, "I said show me." Alex flinched a little. "Hey Pearl, can you come out?" he slowly whispered to the cat. However, the cat showed no response whatsoever. He tried softly calling it a few more times, but he was left unattended by the cat. "What is going on boy? I told you to bring out the beast?" the older man started to get angry. "I''m sorry senior, this is my first time trying to call out my beast companion, but he seems to not hear it when he is inside the tattoo," Alex replied. "Your first time? Just pour some Qi into your tattoo and call it, let me check," the elder said. Alex did as the elder said and poured some Qi into the tattoo. Surprisingly his tattoo swallowed in the Qi, never to be seen again. Alex faltered slightly when he saw that immediately found his footing and started calling Pearl out. His tattoo suddenly itched and within a single second a white light suddenly shot out of his arms. Pearl, the little cat, was standing straight on top of the counter. It turned around to look at Alex and meowed but immediately started purring with a serious face when it saw the old man. "It''s okay Pearl, he''s not here to hurt you," Alex said calming Pearl down, and only then did pearl stop purring. "Fascinating," the old man started mumbling as he walked up to Pearl and looked at him more carefully. "So fascinating. A monster I have never seen before. I never thought I could find one that I wouldn''t recognize." He suddenly turned to Alex and asked, "You said this is your first time taking the cat out, right? Then you must''ve gotten it recently. Tell me, Where did you get it?" "Umm¡­ it''s actually been around 3 weeks since I saw him last. He bonded with me in the southern forest without me knowing and only came out today for the first time," Alex answered. "Hmm¡­ 3 weeks ago¡­ southern forest¡­ cat¡­" the elder''s eyes suddenly lit up as he turned back towards the cat. "No way, the cat monster that was said to be in the saint realm. That cat?" the elder said with shock. Alex was shocked too. ''He knows about the crater? I don''t remember seeing him back there?'' he thought. "I see, no wonder I have never seen it. It''s the child of a saint realm monster that came here from far away. Then that must mean that you were the Hong Wu Sect''s Disciple there at the time." The elder eyed Alex up and down and started saying, " I see, I see. You were the little kid they said Wen Cheng went out of his way to make a disciple." Alex was a little shocked, "You know about me?" The elder chuckled a little, "Hahaha, I am one of the few ones who do. In fact, I am even part of the reason why the other elders do not know about you." Chapter 136: Elder Xian "You were the reason the other elders don''t know about me?" Alex asked curiously. "Well, a part of it, but yes. Basically, when Wen Cheng and the rest returned from the crater where the saint realm monster fell, they started talking about how Wen Cheng had gone far and out to make you a disciple even though you were a part of the Hong Wu Sect already." The man reached into his storage bag and took out a small piece of what looked like dried meat. He put the meat near Pearl''s nose and suddenly, Pearl started munching on it, meowing from time to time. The man smiled and continued, "Wen Cheng justified his action by talking about how talented you were and some other things. So, the few elders that were there came to a decision to only spread the information about the monster, but nothing about you." "If your information of you being the sect leader''s disciple is ever spread, the other elders would target you and make sure you were never high in the rankings. All so they can fight at a chance to become the sect leader themselves." He then looked at Alex and tilted his head as he said, " In maybe a year or maybe even half a year if she is lucky, little Mei will surely breakthrough to the True realm, at the time, the seat for the first place will be empty and in contention from everyone. Will you be able to do your best and take the seat by yourself?" Alex was a little surprised, ''Will I?'' he started wondering. While his initial speed of breaking through had been very fast, he was starting to slow down. And now that he couldn''t eat monster cores as freely anymore, he was starting to doubt if he could reach the higher realms as quickly. ''No. I shouldn''t doubt myself. I still have many other ways I can do that. Especially since I have the God Grade talent,'' he thought. "Yes, I am sure I can do it," he replied to the elder. The elder simply smiled and said, "Anyway, let''s get back to what you were here for initially. What exactly did you want to know?" "Well, I originally came to buy some food for little Pearl here, but now I want to learn as much as I can about beast companions and how to take care of them," he said. The elder thought for a little and said, "Let''s see, I think it would be better if you just go and learn these from the library." The elder said. "The library? Don''t I just get techniques from there? Will knowledge like this also be available there?" he asked in confusion. "Ah, it seems your time in Hong Wu Sect has clouded what is normal and what is weird. The library is originally made for information to be shared for free." "You can just go to the library and read anything on the lower 3 floors for free. The techniques and other important records are kept on the 4th floor and up, and will cost you money." Alex nodded in understanding as he said, "I see. I will do as you say, elder. In the meantime, can I know what I should and should not feed my cat?" "Stop treating a monster like a house pet. They are used to living in the wild and will eat anything they can. As for beast companions, they need even less food as long as you give them your Qi from time to time. It was probably hungry in the first place since you never fed it your Qi since you didn''t know about it." "Now that you do know it is staying with you, feed in a little Qi every day and it will be satisfied." The elder said. "Oh, and what about the different monster cores? I heard that monsters can eat other monster''s cores to increase their own cultivation. Does that mean, I can feed the cores to my cat and he will increase in cultivation as well?" he asked. "Yes and No. While it can eat cores to increase its cultivation, if it eats a core from a monster stronger than it, it will not be able to handle all the energy and will die. There have been cases where the monsters simply exploded from eating a monster core from a much stronger monster." "Also it is better if you don''t feed your beasts as many cores. Similar to normal cultivators, they also need to stabilize their cultivation base before breaking through. If you keep on feeding them from very early on without properly maintaining their cultivation, they will end up with a bad cultivation foundation and will end up much weaker than what they should have been." "Well, that is all I will tell you. Learn other things on your own at the library," the elder said and went back to sitting on the chair and started petting the little rabbit he was petting when Alex first came in. "I understand, Thank you ¡­ uh, what should I call you, elder?" he asked. "You can call me elder Xian," the elder said. "Thank you for the information elder Xian," Alex bowed a little in respect as he called back Pearl and started to leave the shop. "Where do you think you are going boy?" the elder suddenly shouted from behind him. Alex stopped in surprise and turned around to look at the elder with a curious face, "Do you have some more things to tell me, elder Xian?" he asked. "No, I don''t, boy," the elder simply said which confused Alex even more, but then he followed it up with, "But you should know I am not operating a charity here. You came into my shop and took information from me, it''s time you pay up." "Oh, yes elder," Alex was a little surprised, but still complied and took out some spirit stones and gave them to the elder. The elder took what was handed and simply said, "I have checked your little cat, he is perfectly healthy and you have nothing to worry about." "I see, thank you, elder." Finally, Alex left the shop and went back to his room. Chapter 137: Blood Essence Alex returned back to his home a little later and logged out to get some food. He returned back to the game after a while. He logged back into his lit-up room and looked a the time. It was half-past 7 right now. "Hmm¡­ what should I do now? Just wait around for it to be 9 pm?" he started to wonder. There was still over an hour before he had to go train with his master. "Oh right, the cauldron. It should be used enough that it will be refined now." Alex thought and brought out his cauldron. He placed the cauldron in front of him and placed his palm along the side of it. He slowly pushed his Qi towards the cauldron and instead of sending it in, he started washing the insides of the cauldron walls with his Qi. "I don''t feel any resistance anymore. Should be enough," he thought and took out his steel sword. He looked at the giant sword in front of him and thought, ''I should get a dagger or something like a knife. I can''t keep on taking out such a big sword for small things like cutting my skin.'' He proceeded to turn the blade''s tip towards his forehead and slowly made a small cut on it. His forehead started to bleed, but it also started to heal immediately. Alex stopped and looked as his skin wound healed within 5 minutes. But, blood had already flowed out of his head, so he was fine with the wound healing. He took the blood, which was his blood essence, and slowly dropped it inside the cauldron. ZMMMM A small vibrating sound appeared from the cauldron and it started to glow. The drop of blood inside the cauldron started to move around but then was immediately swallowed by the cauldron. The vibrating cauldron stopped, and a pair of notifications appeared. <'' Golden Jade Cauldron'' has taken in your blood essence> <'' Golden Jade Cauldron'' has accepted you as its master> "Yes!! For a second there, it scared me," he thought as he looked at the cauldron''s stats now that it was refined. [Golden Jade Cauldron: Refined Grade: True Earth Elemental Alignment: Metal - Earth Weight: 22 KG] "Oh, it actually has elemental affinity as well? Thankfully that doesn''t harm my pill-making," he thought. Alex wanted to bring out the stiletto as well, but he didn''t want to break the floor with how heavy it was. "Uhh¡­ I want to check if there are any differences when making pills with the cauldron. Maybe I will have to wait until tomorrow," he thought. Then immediately thought, "No, I have to look up the information about beast companions tomorrow. After school then? Uhh¡­ I need to go sell those pills in the auction." "I guess I will have to wait a few more days before I see if there is any more improvement. Although, I don''t see why there would be any?" He kept back the cauldron and started rubbing his forehead to get rid of the remaining blood. "Is this a waste of blood essence?" he started wondering as he looked at the little bit of redness in his hand. "Ah, that reminds me, if my blood essence can help refine objects, then what can the blood essences of other animals do?" He quickly thought back to the item that he still had with him. The [????? ?????''s Blood Essence]. "I don''t think it''s an alchemy material. If it was, I would''ve known its name, right?" he thought as he took it out the check it. He looked into his storage bag to search for it and found it very quickly. He took it out and was surprised when he saw it. While it had said blood essence, it was actually a solid ball of blood. Almost like, all the liquid in the blood had dried off. ''Is this what monster''s essence looks like?'' he wondered. Immediately a thick bloody scent started to fill the room. "What the¡­" Alex started to get shocked. The aura that the blood was producing was so suffocating that he almost felt like he couldn''t breathe anymore. He tried to use his Qi to bring the essence back into his storage bag, but he couldn''t even get his Qi out anymore. ''What is happening?'' he wanted to scream, but not even his voice escaped his mouth. The most he could do was grunt in pain as he was slowly brought down to his knees. Suddenly, a warm flow of hot energy burst out from deep within him, relieving most of the pressure he was feeling. However, he still couldn''t stand anymore or even use his Qi. All he could do was sit around and watch the blood essence float in the air. "What do i¡ª " suddenly, his left arm started itching and the little cat jumped out. "Pearl? Why are you out?" Thanks to the little relieved pressure he could speak now. "Meow." Alex thought he could almost hear the eagerness to eat the essence in Pearl''s meow. He remembered back to elder Xian telling him how a monster could die if it ate cores with too much energy in it. If this blood essence was the same thing as the cores, Pearl would be in serious danger if he ate that. "No, don''t. You can''t mo¡ª " his words left stuck in his mouth as he saw Pearl walk freely in this intense pressure. He could barely not feel the pain thanks to whatever his body was doing, yet Pearl was walking forward like a fish in water, completely unobstructed by the pressure. ''Is it because the essence came from his mother?'' he wondered. He stopped feeling the same panic and fear he felt before and watched as little Pearl stopped right below the floating ball of blood essence. In a single jump, Pearl reached the essence and opened its mouth. And without a shred of hesitation, he swallowed it. Chapter 138: Changes in Pearl Suddenly, the aura inside the room disappeared, leaving Alex finally free to move. He immediately got up and ran to where Pearl had landed. He took pearl in his arms and started asking, "are you okay? Are you hurt?". But Pearl couldn''t hear him. "What is happening?" Alex wondered as he looked at Pearl. Pearl seemed to be asleep, but his eyes were fully open. His breathing was calm and there were no irregularities in his aura as well. Alex started to worry about what was happening to him. Suddenly, Pearl jerked as he jumped down from his arms and started running around the room like crazy. "Meow," it screamed as if it was in pain. "Wha-what''s wrong?" Alex didn''t know what to do. After a few laps around the room, Pearl finally stopped and released a loud growl, that sounded neither like a meow or a cat''s purr. It almost sounded like¡­ Pearl looked up. His fur even more white, eyes filled with great intelligence and- "Did you grow in size, buddy?" Alex said as he went up to Pearl to grab him. Pearl went from being about 15 cm in length to about 25 cm. He had grown a little bigger. "Meow," Pearl meowed in confirmation. Alex got stunned. He could easily tell that Pearl was saying ''YES'' to his question. Before, it was a vague feeling of an answer, but now, to him, it felt pretty clear. This was a chance he wasn''t expecting. "What happened to you? Why did you suddenly go to eat the blood essence?" he asked. "Meow." A long meow came from Pearl and Alex once again was stunned as he could more clearly understand what Pearl was saying. ''I ate it because I had to.'' "Ho-How do I understand you?" He tried to think back to the records he had read and the lessons his master had given him. "Master said that once a beast companion turns adult, you can communicate with them. Did she mean that they could communicate both ways and not just the monster understanding the cultivator''s word?" he wondered. "But, that would mean that you are already an adult, and that is impossible, right? I just saw the system calling your infant this afternoon." Alex nervously opened the cat''s status page once again and was surprised by the difference from before. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Skin Tempering 8th Realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared)] Pearl had changed from infant to child according to the game. Also, his cultivation base had had a massive leap in the realm. ''Is this normal? Does a beast not need to be an adult to start communicating?'' Alex started to wonder. He looked at the Evolution Chance stat and was shocked to see that it had gone from 5% to 40%. "What brought along such a massive change? Could it be him breaking through? No way, right?" When Alex properly thought about it, he came to a single conclusion. "It was the blood essence, wasn''t it?" He looked at Pearl and thought, " That was your mother''s blood essence, but it didn''t belong to your mother. If it did, it would say White cat, wouldn''t it?" He asked. "Meow," Pearl meowed in confusion as none of what Alex was talking about made any sense to him. "That must be it. What if that thing whose blood essence you took, what if this evolution turns you into that? Maybe you have a 40% chance to become something else." Alex felt pretty good about this theory and moved on. Finally, he saw the new cultivation method that Pearl had acquired. "Dominating body?" he was slightly caught off guard. "Why is your cultivation technique a type of body? That should be its own thing no?" he asked. "Meow" "Yeah, you wouldn''t know. I know. Still, it''s weird that a body is a cultivation method. I would''ve never guessed that." Alex started to accept what was written and was about to close the status page when he finally noticed the ''shared'' thing written on the cultivation method. "What is this?" he was about to question it when suddenly, Pearl started coughing. COUGH COUGH "What''s wrong? Are you okay?" he panicked as he started rubbing Pearl''s back to relieve some stress. COUGH COUGH But he kept on coughing. "Is something stuck in your throat?" he tried to send his spiritual sense into Pearl''s body, but it couldn''t penetrate past his skin. He started feeling more worried. COUGH COUGH COUGH Suddenly, Pearl coughed out something red onto the floor and stopped coughing. Only then, did he start breathing normally with no more cough. "It''s okay, It''s okay," he consoled Pearl while slowly rubbing his back. "What was that?" he turned to look towards the red thing that flew out of his mouth. There, Alex saw it. Crimson red blood, floating in the middle of the air. Unlike the blood essence previously, it was all liquid. It was floating with an unstable form, constantly moving around, unable to keep a shape for more than a moment. "Is that Pearl''s blood or¡­" he started to wonder if this was the true form of the blood essence that Pearl swallowed. Just as he was thinking this, he felt his body start heating up. "What now?" there were just too many things happening one after another for him to process. "Pearl, get back," he said and waited for Pearl to go back to being a tattoo. Once he was inside, Alex started feeling more and more heat from the inside of his body. Suddenly, a gravitational force erupted from him. The heat all rushed up to his head and that had become the source of the gravity. The shapeless blood suddenly stopped moving and immediately shot towards him. It hit him right at the middle of his brows and pierced its way through. Alex never got to hear any of these as he fainted the moment it entered his head. Chapter 139: Time Skip "Uhh¡­ My head!!" Alex stood up, rubbing his forehead as he came back to consciousness. "Wha¡ª Where?" he looked around. "Game?" he looked around a little more. After rubbing his head for a few moments more, he finally started to think. ''The essence..'' He finally remembered what had happened. He released his spiritual sense to see if anything was different about him. He found nothing. Even his forehead where the drop of blood had pierced through was already healed. "Is there really nothing wrong with me then?" He had expected to at least be hurt a lot, but after the first minute of intense headache, nothing happened. "What''s the time?" he looked to his top right corner to view the current time. "9:23? I''m late," he thought as he stood up and walked to the front door. He was supposed to meet his master at 9 pm, yet over 20 minutes had already gone by. His master must''ve been waiting for a long time. He immediately opened the door and¡­ "What?" he was surprised when he saw the outside. It was bright. As bright as the brightest day he could remember. He slowly turned his eyes towards the upper right corner of his vision once more and saw what he had missed at first. AM. It was 9:23 AM. "I slept through the entire night?" Not only had he missed his training with his master, but he had also missed the entire night. The only thing he did last night was sleep. Not even normal cultivation. He walked back inside and got to thinking as to just exactly what had happened. The blood essence had hit him, and he had fainted. He saw nothing else happen. He slowly poured his Qi into his tattoo and called out Pearl. "Pearl came out with a mighty ''Meow''. Thankfully, he hadn''t grown since yesterday and was the same size. He looked him over and felt his aura. "You look fine. Do you feel fine buddy?" he asked as he petted him. "Meow," Pearl meowed in confirmation. "Alright, go back now. I have to go to my classes. I will see you later on, okay?" Alex said. "Meow?" Pearl didn''t understand what he meant but went back into his left arm without hesitation. "Alright, let''s log out," he said as he logged out from the game. He went to his classes as normal and studied them properly. Even though he was making a ton of money thanks to the game, he couldn''t tell when it would all come crumbling down, so he needed to have some knowledge to get jobs later on. After he was done with classes, however, he rushed back to the game. He logged into the game at 3 and a half o''clock and walked out of the home. He walked out of the gate of the sect without saying anything. He quickly found his way to an empty alleyway and entered there. Once inside, he went invisible to change his garments. He took off the yellow robes that would identify him as a Tiger sect disciple and wore light green robes representing the Hong Wu sect. Once he was changed, he turned off his invisibility and walked out. Then as swift as ever, he made his way to the Pink Cloud auction house. He wasn''t stopped at the entrance at all and was led to one of the rooms inside the hall without hesitation. After a few minutes, Cai Ping entered. It seemed that she was the only one told about his arrival whenever he came here. "Hello, Daoist Yu. It has been a week since I saw you. We missed your pills during yesterday''s auction. Quite a few people were disappointed." Cai Ping said as he teased Alex a little. "Ah, I''m sorry. I have been busy this week due to something that came upon me unexpectedly. I have barely gotten any time to make pills now. However, I had free time yesterday, so I could make some more pills." Alex slowly reached into his storage bag and pulled out a bunch of pills bottles. "Here you go," he said as he passed them along. Cai Ping looked at the pill bottles and picked them up to count exactly 21 pills in total. She then proceeded to take out a pill tester to check every single pill he had brought in. When she was finally done with all of them, she was dumbfounded. Half the pills among the 21 different pills were above 40% in harmony. 3 of them were even above 45% with 2 being at 47% and 1 being at 49%. This was beyond what she had been imagining he would take out. The few other times he had come here, she was already shocked by the sheer number of quality pills he had brought, but now, the quality had gone up in level once more. ''I almost started to believe it was him who made this pill, but even if he is really a genius, that should be impossible. Did senior Ma Rong make it? That would make sense since he was together with senior Ma Rong during the previous auction, but her Common rank pills should definitely go above and beyond Heaven grade.'' ''Did she send her failure with him?'' she started to wonder. "Daoist Yu, are you sure you want to sell these pills. They are quite amazing, so don''t you want to keep it to yourself?" she asked. "No. I''m an alchemist. I made those pills in the first place to sell. What would I do with them, if I just keep them in my storage bag, collecting dust?" "I, see. Then let me set up your contract," Cai Ping said as she proceeded to prepare a contract using the talismans available on the table. "Wait," Alex said as he saw her hand moving towards the talismans. "I have more to sell this time, other than just the pills." "Oh," Cai Ping said in surprise. "Can I see what it is then?" Chapter 140: Selling Alex reached into his storage bag once more and took out a small box from it. He then handed it to Cai Ping, who curiously looked at it. It was a wooden box and quite small in size. "An alchemy ingredient?" she asked. "No¡ª " Alex stopped for a moment. ''Wait, isn''t it an alchemy ingredient? Why else could I know what it was?'' he felt like he was missing out on this core information for a long time now. "It''s a Spirit Cleansing Lily," he answered, still trying to calm his reeling mind. ''It must be an ingredient to a pill I have no idea about.'' That was the conclusion he came to. Cai Ping opened the box and looked at the orange lily inside curiously. "A Spirit Cleansing Lily?" she was a little confused. "I think I have heard about this somewhere before, but I can''t remember. Please wait for a second, Daoist Yu, I will have to call someone." Cai Ping took out a communication talisman and used it. Within minutes, an old, white-haired man walked in. ''It''s him!''. Alex was surprised to see that the old man was the same person that had given them their spirit stones 2 weeks ago after the bi-annual auction. His master had even called him ''senior''. ''Who exactly is this person?'' he couldn''t help but wonder. "Senior, " Cai Ping bowed to the old man as he walked in. "What is going on? Why did you call me?" The old man said as he looked at Cai Ping and then towards Alex without a single bit of change in emotion. It seemed he was too used to meeting different people and seeing many different things. "Here is the thing, senior." Cai Ping passed along the wooden box with the Spirit Cleansing Lily to the old man. She waited for him to open the box and see what was inside. The old man, once again, showed no emotions as he opened the box and saw what was inside. He looked at the orange lily and didn''t seem to realize what it was either. To him, it seemed like a normal lily. "What is this?" he asked Cai Ping. "Daoist Yu here wants to auction this flower. According to him, it''s called a Spirit Cleansing Lily. I thought I had heard of it from the records but couldn''t remember it. So I decided to call you senior." The old man listened to this and then mumbled, "Spirit Cleansing L¡ª " suddenly his eyes turned wide open. He immediately took out a communication talisman of his own and called someone else. A lady came in with a stack of papers and left just as quickly. The old man immediately flipped through the records and landed on an image of the Spirit Condensing Lily. He looked at the image, and then at the flower in the wooden box. "It''s the same!!" he screamed with astonishment. Cai Ping was now getting confused as to what exactly was happening. The old man looked at Alex, with emotions in his face for the first time, and asked," Where did you get this flower, Daoist?" Alex was surprised that an auction house would actually ask for the origin. "Can I not sell this without revealing its origin?" Alex asked. "Ah, I''m sorry. I was too excited," said the old man. "Of course you can sell it. I was just surprised since it''s been forever since one of these popped up in the market. Are you sure you are willing to sell this?" the old man asked. "Yes, please do." Alex was looking forward to having it sold since it could really bring him a lot of money. "Yes, we will do that. However, it might take a while, Daoist," The old man said as he contemplated for a while and said, "I don''t think we can sell it here." "Huh?" Alex said with a surprised face. "Are you saying you won''t sell it? Didn''t you just say you will?" Alex asked with his head full of confusion. "Oh, no. We will sell it. Just not here. We will have to send it to the capital to our headquarters where we can get the full benefit of selling this." "The headquarters?" Alex remembered Ma Rong saying something about Pink Cloud auction house''s headquarters being in the Cardinal City. "Is there any special reason?" he asked. "Well, the Auction house in the cardinal cities has a lot more guests on a weekly basis and also is used to dealing with objects of high value. We will transfer this flower over there during the weekend and as per the result, we will give you your spirit stones right here," the old man said. "So, it won''t take any extra time? I will get my spirit stones this Saturday?" he asked. "Uh, it might be better if you come on Sunday. The auction in the Capital always takes a little too long." The old man said. "I see. Please do that then," Alex said. The old man himself set up 2 different talisman contracts for Alex, one for the pills and one for the flower. Alex thanked both the old man and Cai Ping and walked out of the auction house. He looked at the time and realized it was barely 5 PM. "Should I go to the library now?" he wondered. He walked towards an empty alleyway and changed back to his yellow robes for the Tiger Sect. Once he got out, he walked straight back to the Tiger sect. He walked past the gates of the Tiger sect, and as soon as he did that, his badge inside his storage bag started vibrating. "Hmm¡­" he sent his spiritual sense inside his badge and saw that he was registered to fight with someone. ''Someone wants to fight with me?'' The badge said that it was someone with the number 173. ''Is this another one of Huo To''s henchmen? I hope this isn''t someone strong like that last guy.'' ''On second thought, they do help me train. Let''s see who my opponent is this time." Alex walked straight towards the sect crater. Chapter 141: Finally Alex soon arrived at the sect crater. He looked at his badge once more and found his way to a fighting stage. He watched the fight on the stage go on and waited until it was over. Once it was, he heard his number being called. "Number 168 and 173," the elder screamed through the crowd. Alex walked up to the stage and saw another man come up. It was a young man with short hair and a thin body build. He looked like he had barely anybody mass on him. ''Is he okay?'' Alex wondered. He had never seen anyone this thin in his life. ''How does a cultivator even end up being this thin?'' "It''s him, right?" a girl whispered a small distance away from the stage. Alex could barely catch her voice thanks to his spiritual sense. "Yeah, I heard he had won all of his matches and breaks through very fast. Apparently, in the little time he has been here, he has broken through quite a few times already. It''s honestly unheard of how fast he is progressing." Another girl spoke, answering the first girl. ''Are they talking about me?'' Alex wondered. He was surprised that they found out about his breakthrough speed somehow. ''But they shouldn''t know about my cultivation breakthroughs at all. I make sure to keep it hidden most of the time.'' He was truly confused. "Do you know his name?" a boy spoke somewhere else in the crowd. "Hmm¡­ I don''t really remember. It''s a very weird name. It A¡ª something." Another person in the crowd spoke. Alex was truly surprised now. ''How do they know my name too? I have never used the world Alex at all.'' He was starting to wonder if the NPCs could see his real name or were bugged. "But why is he so good at cultivation, when he has a body like that?" another voice came. ''Huh?'' Alex got confused. "I heard he was at 7th Bone Tempering realm just a couple of days ago and now he is already at 8th Bone tempering realm. Honestly, that Adam guy might end up becoming a core disciple at this rate." Finally, it all clicked in Alex''s head. "Oh," he said as he realized that they were talking about the thin person in front of him. ''Adam? He is a player, isn''t he?'' this was the first time Alex had ever met a player in the game, aside from the first day when that person had helped him. ''I wonder if that guy already left this place and moved on to some other location,'' he couldn''t help but be distracted. "Ready," the elder shouted. Alex slowly took out his sword and got into a proper stance. The thin man named Adam proceeded to take out nothing and just fighting empty-handed. "Fight!" Alex immediately rushed forward, with friction to slow him down, and did a horizontal slice on the young man named Adam. Adam was surprised by the fast movement of Alex, and also started to immediately move away from the spot. He was somehow faster than Alex, who was moving around at incredible speed due to his strong legs and frictionless body, thanks to the Fluctuating Friction dance. Alex started chasing with his movement technique but couldn''t catch up at all. The man was just way too fast. ''Does he have an immortal grade movement technique?'' Alex wondered. It was very much possible that during the first treasures that were gifted to the new users, they randomly got a technique. Alex got [Alchemy God''s Knowledge] from that. It could be possible that this guy got a movement technique. Alex was starting to get annoyed seeing the man run away so much. So, he put his hands forward and tried to stop the man from running. Qi Manipulation easily stopped the man for a few seconds, enough for Alex to catch up. Just as he was getting close, the thin man used his own technique. Suddenly, an illusory wall of golden light formed in front of Adam. Alex didn''t want to stop from running his way, so he simply swapped the blade to his other hand and made a fist. His fist started glowing yellow as he immediately sent it to Adam''s way. Given that both of the abilities had yellow colors and were thus metal aligned, Alex thought that his ability would at best create an explosion and destroy itself and the barrier in the process. But, something very unexpected happened. Suddenly, the barrier made out of the golden light crumbled to pieces under the slightest touch of the flying Iron Fist Punch as it continued its way to Adam. Adam tried to move away from the line of target, but he found out that he was still stuck in the place due to Alex''s Qi Manipulation. Horrifying fear ran across his mind, thinking he would die now. Out of nowhere, the elder got into the middle of Adam and Alex and with a single thrust of their palm, the elder destroyed Alex''s punch. "Fight is over," the elder declared. Adam took a huge sigh of relief and thanked the elder. He then took the badge and immediately walked down from the stage. But as he did so, he turned back to look at Alex with eyes full of Hatred, Surprise, and Fear. Alex walked up to the elder and took his badge and left as well, leaving only the elder on top of the stage. The elder looked at his hands and then remembered the badge number. ''Number 168? What is his cultivation base? I couldn''t see it at all. Given that the attack was so strong, he must be around Organ tempering 3rd realm at the very least. Someone in the organ tempering realm and someone who can use the Iron Fist Punch, I wonder why I haven''t seen this disciple before at all.'' The elder suddenly remembered that he was still looking after the fights, so he proceeded to call along with the other 2 contestants and forgot about the previous match. Chapter 142: Revealing a bit "Anyone knows who the guy was? I don''t think I have ever seen him before." "I think I have seen him fight a few times before, but I don''t know his name." "I believe, he too is like Adam, someone who joined recently and is gaining ranks very fast." "Can you tell what his cultivation base was? I didn''t see it." "He must have a high cultivation base, his attack was so strong." Even after he was gone, Alex was the talk among the people watching below the stage. His display of power was too great for him to not leave a lasting impression. Alex, on the other hand, was himself shocked at what he had done in the match. ''How did my punch become so strong?'' he couldn''t help but wonder. Iron Fist Punch wasn''t supposed to be very strong, a realm or 2 above his own. However, the display of power that he had just shown was far above that. If his punch had been on the same level as the other guy''s defensive wall, they would have most likely cancel out each other. If it had been a few realms higher, then the punch would have caused a big explosion where most of his attack would''ve hit the other guy. But, simply breaking the defense like it was a sheet of glass, that meant that his attack was very strong. ''How did I get so strong?'' he couldn''t come up with a reason at all. He gave the problem a bit more thought and finally ended up with a reason why that might have happened. ''Does it have something to do with the blood essence from last night?'' he wondered. He was still confused as to what had happened to him last night. The most he could assume is that his body had to somehow fend off or absorb the blood essence, and that was what had knocked him out. He decided to ignore the thought for now. "So, do I fight some more, or do I go to the library?" he was in a dilemma. ''Can I tell my master that I need to learn about beast companions and fight for now? Oh, or maybe master even knows a lot about them. Pearl should be fine for today. I will ask master about him later tonight.'' He went on to register some more fights. He fought around 3 more times and realized that he had gotten a lot stronger. Every single battle, he was able to overwhelm his opponents, and as such managed to win the 156th badge by 9 pm. If he hadn''t had to log out for dinner or his 2nd opponent hadn''t taken forever to arrive, he might have reached a much higher ranking. ''Doesn''t core disciples start from 50th ranking? I wonder how many of them are truly in the Meridian realm and above. The difficulty level will only get higher, so I will have to level up as fast as possible as well. I wonder when I can do my next breakthrough.'' Alex was on his way to his master''s place. It took him a dozen or so minutes to go from the sect crater all the way to the training hall. "You are here, finally." Wen Cheng said as he sensed Alex coming his way. "Good Evening master," he greeted as soon as he saw his master. "Why didn''t you come yesterday? I kept waiting for you and you didn''t come at all. Were you busy with alchemy or something?" he asked. "No, uh¡­ something happened yesterday and I fainted for the entire night. I only gained consciousness this morning." Alex replied. "Lost consciousness? Did something happen? I didn''t bother calling you yesterday because I thought you were exhausted from the day''s alchemy and needed a break. Was I wrong?" Wen Cheng asked. Alex thought for a bit about how exactly to explain the issue. "We should go inside the first master," he said. Both master and disciple then walked into the soundproof training hall. "Come out, Pearl." With a bright shine, Pearl came out from his arm and landed between him and his master. Wen Cheng was surprised when he saw the little guy. Pearl was barely any bigger than his palm and that small size made him look quite cute. Wen Cheng squatted down on one knee and started petting Pearl, who happily let him pet him. "Did you get a beast companion yesterday? Is that why you were absent?" "Actually, no. But he is part of the reason." Alex said. Wen Cheng looked at him with a curious face and said, "Explain," Alex went into detail about what happened yesterday, but still kept some of the happenings vague. He didn''t tell about the Saint Monster core and kept a pretty vague explanation for how he came to acquire that ball of the essence. But everything else, he told his master without hesitation. Wen Cheng was shocked for a while, so much information that just seemed so ridiculous that he had a hard time believing it, but he couldn''t deny it since it was his disciple. While his disciple could also lie, he didn''t see why he would decide to. He then looked down to see the cat he was still petting. "So this is the child of the cat monster you talked about back in that crater?" he asked. "Yes, master. The reason we couldn''t find him back then was because he was bonded with me and had already come inside my arm to live with me." Alex felt better after informing what had happened to master. Finally, he didn''t have to suffer the burden alone. Wen Cheng''s face lost any sort of emotion as he got very serious for a moment. "Have you told anyone about the cat yet?" he asked. "Yes, I did take him to the beast care to see what he needed, so elder Xian knows about him," Alex replied. "If it''s only him, then that is fine for now. Remember, never let anyone know about the origin of your beast companion. That will only bring trouble to you." Chapter 143: Fighting Meng Yun "Bring trouble to me? Is it because his mother was in the saint realm?" Alex asked. "Yes. Since his mother was in the saint realm, he has a high chance of being able to break through the True realms and reach the saint realm as well. Since both you and he are very weak right now, people will either try to steal him from you or harm you both lethally." Wen Cheng said. "They can steal my beast companion? How?" Alex asked with surprise. "Yes, they can. they either make the owner break the bond willingly by force, or they kill the owner with the beast still out of him." Wen Cheng said. "I will make sure to not reveal Pearl to the outside then, master. Thank you for telling me." Alex said. He then thought of something and decided to ask about it right now. "Master, do you know anything about something called Sun God''s Divine Yang Body?" Alex wanted to know more about his body. Wen Cheng thought for a second and replied, "I don''t think so. But then again, I haven''t read every record in the library. Maybe you will find some if you read them." "But, won''t it cost a lot of spirit stones?" Alex asked. He was worried about having to spend too much money. "Ahem¡­ don''t tell anyone what I''m about to tell you okay?" Wen Cheng said, lowering his voice to a whisper even though they were in a soundproof room. "While the technique is all sealed, none of the records are. So you can just walk into the higher floors and read everything with your spiritual sense." Wen Cheng said. Alex was surprised that the sect master of the sect would teach his student how to steal stuff in his own sect. "Can I go all the way up without being a core disciple or elder?" he asked. "Yeah, there is no other restriction in the Tiger sect. As long as you can pay, you can go anywhere and get anything. So, you can walk all the way to the top of the library, while reading everything. However, maybe rent something just so it looks like you aren''t wasting your time in there and are not so suspicious." Wen Cheng''s advice seemed really enticing to Alex. "I will do that tomorrow then, master," said Alex and finally started to train for the day. "Alright, since you learned so many techniques, today you should just train in them. Let''s hold off learning another one for tomorrow. Okay?" Wen Cheng said. "Yes, master." Just as he said that he noticed someone coming near the door. So did Wen Cheng. Alex hurriedly called back Pearl. "You guys are training already?" suddenly a voice came from the door. Luo Mei walked in with Meng Yun behind her. Alex hadn''t seen her since that time in the forest and was surprised to finally see her. "Hello, senior sister." He greeted Luo Mei and turned towards Meng Yun, "Hello daoist Meng, it''s been a while." "Hello," Meng Yun gave a small response too and immediately turned towards Wen Cheng to give the sect leader a bigger greeting. "Little Mei, why have you brought along Yunyun? It''s time for your junior brother to train. You aren''t here to disturb him or worse beat him again, are you?" she asked. "Of course not master, what do you take me for? I brought Yunyun along to test how strong little brother had become." Luo Mei seemed to want to have Meng Yun fight with Alex. He was quite shocked when he heard that. He slowly focused himself and looked at Meng Yun, and was absolutely shocked at what had shown up. [Organ Tempering 1st Realm] ''Wasn''t she still in Bone tempering 7th or 8th realm back when I met her in the forest? It''s only been 3 weeks. How is she already so high in cultivation?'' ''Unless¡­ she is a player as well,'' He thought. "Alright, little brother, you should fight Yunyun. She is one of the fastest up-and-coming disciples in the sect right now. She joined only a few months ago and is already in the Organ tempering realm. Within a few months, she is sure to enter Meridian tempering. If you don''t focus on cultivating, you might never be able to catch up to her," said Luo Mei, who seemed to be quite proud of Meng Yun''s achievements. "Okay," Alex simply nodded and got into position. Under Wen Cheng''s instruction, Meng Yun walked to the other side and prepared herself as well. Alex brought out his normal sword, while Meng Yun brought out a not-so-simple-looking flute. ''A flute?'' Alex has heard people fought using music but had never seen it himself. Wen Cheng walked up to the middle and acted as the referee. With a single swing of his hand, he started the fight. A sweet sound started flowing out of Meng Yun''s flute that sounded very simple and sweet. Alex didn''t immediately attack as he felt a little apprehensive towards an unusual weapon like a flute. More sound slowly appeared and he started to feel something heavy pressing down on his consciousness. But, it was barely anything, so he ignores whatever it was. He crouched a little and in a single leap, crossed the entire fighting hall, arriving right in front of Meng Yun. He decided to use not techniques to attack her vulnerable self, but before he could even do anything, the music coming out of her flute changed dramatically, and Alex was immediately sent far away, hitting the wall on the other side. "Ow, what was that?" he asked as he got up once more. The flute''s melody had changed back to the first one that put some load on his consciousness. ''Seems I can''t attack just like that.'' He started to pour his Qi into his sword. However, instead of turning yellow like how most of his Qi lit up things, the sword started glowing a not-so-dark shade of green. Alex was preparing to use the second strike of the Elusive Heavenly Sword. Chapter 144: The Fight Continues The blade glowed bright green as Alex prepared to unleash the second strike of the Elusive heavenly sword. Meng Yun got serious when she saw this. Apparently, she could tell that the strike was going to be strong. Her flute immediately changed tone as she started to play an even more aggressive sound. Qi built up right in front of her, threatening to fly off at any moment. Alex took one step forward and with a single slash let go of the energy in his sword, sending a green slash flying towards Meng Yun. At the same time, Meng Yun as well let the pent-up energy lose, and the aggressive energy flew off towards the green slash. As expected, a massive boom appeared right in front of them, sending shock waves towards both of them. Alex somewhat stood his ground, while Meng Yun had to take a step back. ''Is he stronger than me?'' Meng Yun was shocked. She had expected herself to be stronger in general since she thought she had the higher cultivation, yet, he was doing very well with the fight. She immediately got even more aggressive. A sudden shift in tone caused a bullet-like energy projectile to be sent towards Alex. Alex barely managed to dodge the projectile, when another one arrived. He shifted his body to dodge that one as well when the next projectile arrived. One after another, multiple energy projectiles were thrown at Alex who was starting to get more at ease with the dodging thanks to the Elusive Heavenly Sword''s evasion footwork. ''Dammit,'' he thought. ''My blade is low graded so I can''t use my attacks to their full potential.'' Up until now, he had been fighting opponents that were weaker or equal in cultivation base as him. Each time, he had used his mortal grade sword that was enough to fight against his opponents. However, against Meng Yun, who was a realm higher than him, in fact, a minor realm higher even, the blade wasn''t as effective. Wen Cheng and Luo Mei watched from the side, still wondering where the match was gonna go. "Do you think little brother can win, master?" Luo Mei asked using Spiritual sense. "Hmm¡­ tough to say, it seems his skills aren''t enough to break through Meng Yun''s own counter-attacks. Even the 3rd strike of the Elusive heavenly sword shouldn''t be enough for him to disrupt Meng Yun''s momentum in any way. Especially, since he doesn''t have a wood-type superior spiritual root." Wen Cheng thought for a bit and said, "Although, if he had the same grade weapon as Meng Yun''s flute, he might be able to win quite easily. Also, there are a few techniques he isn''t using yet which would give him an obvious advantage. You could even say that he is fighting with both of his hand''s behind his back." Luo Mei''s eyes turned wide when she heard this. "Huh? Haven''t you given little brother a proper weapon yet?" Wen Cheng shook his head as he said, "Ma Rong suggested that I teach him fighting without any external help. So, I gave him a common mortal-grade sword and hid his relation to me. That also helped him from getting into trouble with the other elder''s disciples." "Not really. That merchant Huo''s second son is already after little brother for quite a while now." Luo Mei said. "Huo Zemin''s son, what was his name? Huo Tu. What does he want with Yu Ming?" Wen-Cheng asked with a confused look. He couldn''t understand why someone like Yu Ming would be in trouble with a scum like Huo Tu. "From what little brother told me, He tried to buy little brother''s pill for 10 spirit stones, and when little brother denied it, he got angry. Apparently, he has sent a few of his lackeys after little brother, but the little brother has been able to take care of them easily." Luo Mei said. "He never told me anything about it," Wen Cheng sighed as he said that. "There was no need to, master. If little brother needed anything, I could have just interfered." Luo Mei replied. "I guess so. Still, making everything in the sect available to one with spirit stones doesn''t really work well some of the time. We get scums like Huo Tu who only know how to flaunt their parent''s money and gather lackeys to do their tasks for them. He''s probably never been rejected in his life on anything. Sigh, if I could, I would remove him from the sect right here and now." "Alas, due to our trade with Victorious Snow merchant group, it''s impossible. I can''t understand how Huo Zemin can raise two children completely different in personality and talent." Wen Cheng sighed quite a bit. "Let''s forget about such matter, master. Tell me more about what you said about little brother." Luo Mei asked, trying to change the subject. "What I said about Yu Ming? Which part?" Wen Cheng questioned. "The part where you said that little brother is still not using quite a few techniques. Is that true?" Luo Mei was truly curious about this. From her perspective, her junior brother was having trouble with the fights, but if what her master said was true, then that might not have been the case. "Oh yes. Let''s see if the 5 techniques I have already given to him, he is only using 2 of them. And he is also not using a single of the techniques he learned back in Hong Wu Sect. Some of those would have the match over within seconds. He probably doesn''t want that and is only trying to fight properly" Wen Cheng explained. "Although, if he isn''t going to use any of the other techniques, he might end up losing soon. Hopefully, he doesn''t do that," Wen Cheng said while shaking his head. Luo Mei brought her attention back towards the match that was taking place between her junior brother and her trusted aid, Meng Yun. She then mumbled to herself, "Can he really win against her?" She would find that out very soon. Chapter 145: A Strong Fist The barrages of the sounds-based projectiles from Meng Yun finally stopped. She put down her flute and started breathing a little heavier. Droplets of sweat had formed across her brow as she tried to catch her breaths. The relentless playing of the flute was very exhausting, and worst of all, the damned guy in front of her had somehow managed to dodge every single one of the attacks. ''How good is his evasion ability?'' she wondered. Alex, on the other hand, wasn''t tired at all. Training for over 6 hours every night had been a norm for him during the last couple of days and the fight right now didn''t feel any different. Now that her attack had ended, he could finally use his own. Instead of pouring Qi into his blade, he put his sword into his bag. Everyone in the room was suddenly surprised. "Please be ready to intercept this attack," a familiar voice spoke in Wen Cheng''s mind. He immediately got vigilant as Alex was starting to prepare for his next attack. He made his hand into a fist and poured his Qi into it. A yellow glow started to appear in it as it started getting brighter by the second. Men Yun immediately put her flute next to her mouth and started using more tones. A tone started playing that seemed to wrap around Meng Yun, pushing anything that came towards her, aside. Seeing this, Alex finally let out his glowing fist, as he used the Iron Fist Punch towards Meng Yun. A large, golden-yellow energy in the form of a fist flew towards Meng Yun. Meng Yun prepared herself to take the full force of the attack with her own technique, but suddenly, someone else appeared in front of her. He looked to see the back of the sect leader. Wen Cheng put forth a palm and lightly sent it forward. That light palm immediately dispelled any energy the flying fist had, making it disappear as if it never had been there. "You lost, Yunyun," Wen Cheng said as shook off his hands and kept them behind his back. "I¡­ lost?" Meng Yun was confused. She never even got to face the attack, yet she had lost? "What is going on master?" Luo Mei came forward and asked. She was very confused with what had just happened as well. One moment her master was standing with her, the next moment he was in front of Meng Yun, saying she had lost. "If I hadn''t intercepted your junior brother''s attack just now, Meng Yun would probably have been gravely injured," Wen Cheng said as he looked towards Alex. ''That attack just now¡­ it was definitely in the 4th realm of Organ Tempering. But how did he get so strong suddenly?'' Wen Cheng wondered. "Congratulations on winning, Junior brother," Luo Mei came from the side and started patting him on the back. "Thank you, sister." "Whats your current cultivation base? I can''t see it right now," Luo Mei asked. Alex stopped using the Immortal concealment technique and let his cultivation aura spread out. "Oh wow, you''re still at only Bone Tempering realm and you already beat Yunyun who is at Organ Tempering 1st realm. You really are very talented, little brother. More than me and senior brother ever were." Alex got a little embarrassed, unsure of how to respond. " Oh, right!!," Luo Mei shouted catching the attention of everyone in the room. "Master said you weren''t using some of your techniques, brother, is that correct?" Luo Mei asked. "Yes, that is true," Alex simply replied. "Oh, Why didn''t you use it then? Were you trying to use Yunyun as training?" Luo Mei kept on asking the question. "Oh no, Of course not. I wasn''t trying to handicap myself or anything like that. It was just that¡­ the match would''ve been over immediately if I used them." Alex replied genuinely. "You would''ve won immediately? Are you saying you can win against Yunyun immediately if you wanted to?" Luo Mei asked after hearing Alex''s reply. "Well, kind of. Yes." "Oh," Luo Mei said with surprise. "How many techniques did you not use?" she asked. "Umm¡­" Alex counted in his head, and said, "3 primary ones." "Primary ones? What does that mean?" Luo Mei asked curiously. "Well, there were 3 techniques I had thought of absolutely not using. Others I just didn''t have to." Alex said. Meng Yun''s eyes turned wide. Not only had he admitted to having handicapped himself, he also said he could''ve been fine with a little more handicap. That was just an insult to injury for her. "Really?? wow. You will be as strong as me at this rate." Luo Mei said. After chatting for a bit more time, Luo Mei took Meng Yun and returned back to their houses. After the ladies were gone, Wen Cheng finally asked a question that was burning deep in his heart. " What is going on, Yu Ming? Why was your attack so strong?" "Yeah. I wanted to tell that to you earlier but didn''t get the time, Master. After I took in that blood essence, my Iron Fist Punch has gotten a significant leap in power. "I did feel it. Go on, use it once more on me. Let me see it once more." Alex did as Wen Cheng said and attacked him with the full force of his Iron Fist Punch. It was much stronger than last time, barely touching on the threshold of the 5th realm of Organ Tempering. "It really is so much stronger. It wasn''t like this Saturday night, was it?" "No master, and for some reason, that is the only ability that has increased in power. All others are still the same power as they were before." Alex was really confused by the current situation, and it seemed Wen Cheng had no idea either. "I don''t think we can do anything about it for now. Go read the records in the library and see if there is anything about it in there tomorrow." That was the only advice Wen Cheng could come up with for now. Chapter 146: Forced Cultivation "Alright, train by yourself for now. I don''t think there is anything you will need me for tonight, so I will come back at 3 AM." After saying that, Wen Cheng left the training hall. Alex didn''t know what to do, so he decided to let out Pearl. "Come out, Pearl." With a bright shine of light, Pearl appeared in front of him. "Meoow" "You are not sleepy, are you?" he asked. "Meow," Pearl seemed to say ''no''. "Alright then. I will practice my techniques for a while. As for you, you can¡­ uhh," Alex was stumped for a moment on what to make Pearl do. He wanted Pearl to practice as well, but he was still a child. He thought a bit more and came up with something. "You can use your cultivation method to cultivate a bit more," Alex said. "Meow," the little cat had no idea what cultivate was. "Uhh¡­ you don''t know? But it says you have a cultivation technique now in your status." Alex was a bit confused. "Hmm¡­ maybe it''s like mine and you have to meditate? But can cats even meditate? Let''s see, normal monsters just absorb the Qi in the surrounding to get stronger, or occasionally eat other monster''s cores to improve." "Sigh, just try to meditate for now and see what happens." Alex gave up in the end and went with his first choice. "Meow," the cat was even more confused. "Ah, just close your eyes and breathe slowly," Alex explained what meditating meant. The cat did as asked and closed its eyes to meditate. He watched to see if anything would happen. Nothing happened for the first minute, but after a few, Pearl''s fur started glowing a little white. Slowly, the white turned to yellow, which then turned to golden as time went on. Suddenly, as soon as the radiating light turned golden, Alex felt a small thump inside him. Then, came a flood of notifications. "AHHHH!!" Suddenly, a massive pain coursed through Alex''s body that brought him to his knees and then to his ground. His scream was loud enough that if there weren''t any soundproof formations set in the training hall, people could probably hear it all the way from down at the sect crater. The pain was the worst kind of pain Alex had ever felt. Even worse than when he ate the Yang Jade or when he had to fight that wolf to protect pearl and his mother. Pain pricked all over his skin and organ as it felt like he was surrounded by thousands of needles pricking every part of his body, and it was somehow amplified by a hundred times. Even his organs started to hurt. ''What is going on?'' he could barely form a thought as the relentless pain attacked him. He tried to open his eyes to see what was happening around him, but even his eyes and eyelids hurt a lot. The only thing he couldn''t feel pain in was his brain. So, he slowly let out his spiritual sense, barely able to concentrate on it. He tried to look at what was happening. ''WHAT!!'' he was shocked to see that numerous wounds were opening and closing all over his body. His skins split, muscles torn, bones micro fractured, organs tearing up, meridians constantly damaged and even his brain was bleeding somewhat. But as soon as those happened, they were also healed. His split skin shut tight, his torn muscle''s reattached, his fractured bones reformed, teared up organs regrew, meridians healed and the brain stopped bleeding as if nothing had ever happened to it. He tried to send his thoughts to Pearl. But the pain was too much for him to do such a specific task right now. He lost all focus and his spiritual sense retreated to himself. "Ahhhh," he was still shouting. His pain lasted a while. Whether it was long or short was irrelevant to him. For him, the pain lasted an eternity. Finally, after some time, he started to grow a little accustomed to the pain, or even numb to it. He resisted the urge to let go of all thought and scream once more and sent out his spiritual sense to pearl. "Stop Pearl!," he shouted directly into Pearl''s head. Pearl was way too focused on cultivating and didn''t hear any of the shoutings Alex had done the past however long it had been. "Stop!," he screamed once more using his spiritual sense. Pearl suddenly opened his eyes, color fading from his body. "Meow?" he said as he looked at Alex who was down on the ground. As soon as pearl stopped cultivating, the pain finally went away. The remaining wounds on his body slowly healed and within a minute, he was back to normal with no more pain running across his body. HUFF HUFF He wanted to speak out, but he couldn''t form any words to speak. The experience was just too traumatizing. Only after a few minutes did he manage to string up a few words to form a sentence, "What happened to me?" His eyes still had a hard time focusing when he remembered the notifications that he had read. "Pearl forcefully cultivated me?" he was beyond dumbfounded at what he remembered reading. "But how could he force me to cultivate along with me? What is going on?" he was very confused as to what had happened just now. Still breathing heavily, he remembered something. "Oh wait. what about that ''sharing'' thing mentioned in Pearl''s info?" he wondered as he looked up Pearl''s status. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Skin Tempering 9th Realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared)] When he saw Pearl''s status, he was surprised. "Huh? Did you breakthrough already?" Chapter 147: Faster Alex was surprised to see that Pearl was stronger than he was before just by cultivating for a little time. "Speaking of time, how long has it been?" Alex wondered as he looked at the time of the upper right. It was a few minutes past 12. "Sigh, I really have to suffer through that for over 2 hours huh. All so you can get stronger?" he felt a little agitated. "Hmm¡­ wait a second. It said I was being cultivated too. Could it be¡­." His eyes turned wide and hopeful as he quickly said, "Status," ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª [Player Name: Yu Ming Cultivation: Bone Tempering 9th Realm (1,000,000Qi : 100%) [Breakthrough] Body: Sun God''s Divine Yang Body Talent: God Spiritual Roots: 5 elements Yin-Yang roots Cultivation Method: Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method Qi: 1,947,354 ] ¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª¡ª "Huh? Why are there no changes?" he wondered. The numbers in the status were all the same as before. "Did I go through all that pain for nothing?" he tried to see if there were anything else that was different about him in all the other settings, but he couldn''t find any. "I don''t feel like doing anything anymore, but, what do I do then?" he couldn''t think of anything. So, reluctantly, he decided to go back to normal practice. "Alright, C''mon buddy, I need to train now, and I can''t have you cultivating. That will be bad for me. Get inside," he said as let Pearl get inside his arm. ''Alright, back to training.'' He started using all sorts of techniques and practicing with them. He deliberately chose to use the Iron Fist Punch more than anything, just to see how much stronger it was. "I need to measure all of my attacks and see just how much stronger they are." He remembered his attack having a 4 realm higher attack damage, so he needed to check if that was still the case. "Guess, I will have to visit the Training Hall while I go to the Library as well." He kept on practicing. He moved on to using the Elusive Heavenly Sword and Fluctuating Friction Dance as he practiced them too for a while. "Hmm¡­ Have I gotten faster now?" he couldn''t tell if he was projecting what he wanted to see, or if he really was more faster and flexible. After a while, Wen Cheng returned to see that Alex was still practicing. ''Oh, did he breakthrough again? He seems to be better now,'' he thought as he walked up to Alex. "Congratulations, for making it into the Organ tempering realm. It won''t be much longer before you reach the True realms at all." Wen Cheng couldn''t see Alex''s cultivation due to his concealment technique and thought he had broken through between the time he fought with Meng Yun and right now. "Organ tempering realm? I haven''t broken through yet master." Alex said as he got a little confused. "Huh? Aren''t you at Organ Tempering 1st realm?" Wen Cheng asked as he got a little confused as well. "No. I am still at Bone Tempering 9th Realm." "What? How are you so much faster then?" Wen Cheng had seen him use his movement technique and it was must faster than when he used it against Meng Yun just a few hours ago. Alex''s eyes shined. "I am, aren''t I? I thought I was fooling myself, but I really must be faster." "Can you tell me how you are so much faster without breaking through?" Wen Cheng asked. "Well, I think it''s because of Pearl again," Alex said still remembering the horror he had to go through. "Your cat? What does it have to do with you?" Wen Cheng said with confusion. "I don''t know how, but when Pearl cultivated after your left, I started feeling this pain all over my body. My entire body was covered with small cuts and tears all over the outside and inside, which also healed very fast. After I finally managed to tell Pearl to stop after 2 hours did my pain go away, and I was a little faster." Alex shivered at the thought of what he had gone through. "Damage all over your body¡­ and they healed? ¡­ No way," Wen Cheng''s eyes widened as he heard what Alex had just said. He immediately started speaking, "Withdraw all of your Qi into your meridian and hit my hand." He slowly put forth his palms to give Alex a target to attack. "Huh?" Alex got confused. "Do what I say. I want to check something," Wen Cheng started to get impatient. "Ok, Master," Alex slowly reeled in all of his Qi. All the Qi in his skin, his muscles, bones, everywhere. They all reeled back into his meridians. ''Urghh¡­ I feel so bloated right now.'' He no longer gave any sign of what cultivation he was in right now. Similar to the Immortal Concealment Technique, he looked like a complete mortal right now. The only difference was, with the Immortal Concealment technique, he hid the aura of his Qi and Cultivation base. While, by doing this, he was hiding the Qi and Cultivation base itself, basically leaving his body defenseless, as if he was a mortal. "This feels so uncomfortable, Master," he said as he tried to keep it all in without leaking any Qi. "Alright, since you are comparable to a mortal now, Hit my palm." Alex didn''t wait another second. He was already very uncomfortable and immediately decided to attack his master. With a single dash, he reached his master and delivered a perfect punch. BAM "Ow," Alex said as he started shaking his hand in pain. His master''s palms were harder than he had imagined them to be. After the pain settled down, he looked up to see his master. Only to find his eyes wide and his jaw wide open. ''What''s going on?'' he wondered. He released his Qi back and asked his master, "I am done, right master? Why did you want me to do that?" Wen Cheng returned back from his stupor. "Yes, yes. You are done. And I have confirmed what I had wanted to as well." After a few seconds of silence, he finally spoke, "You have become a body cultivator." Chapter 148: Mortal Cleansing "Huh? Me, a body cultivator?" Alex asked, stunned by what he had just heard. "Yes, Your body is stronger than what it used to be. From what you said about your experience earlier, you must''ve gone through a tempering of sorts. That''s how body cultivators are born. They temper their body through pain and hard work, and become stronger." Wen Cheng was still in shock as he explained. "But, aren''t body cultivators supposed to be very rare. I remember master saying something about there rarely being a body cultivator in the Crimson empire and that I don''t have to worry about them much." Alex repeated what he had remembered from Ma Rong. "Ma Rong explained to you about them, did she? Well, she is not wrong. It is extremely rare for there to be a Body cultivator in the Crimson Empire, but it''s not rare. There have been a few times that body cultivators arrived in the Crimson empire, but they don''t stay as one for long since there aren''t many things they can use to temper themselves with." Alex got curious about something, "Master, when you say Body cultivators temper themselves, is it different from the normal tempering realms of Qi cultivation?" "Of course there is a difference. The tempering for both is meant for completely different results. A normal cultivator''s tempering is meant to temper their body with internal Qi so that it is less resistant to the Qi during cultivation and they can succeed in future cultivation." "However, a Body cultivator''s tempering means he is destroying and fixing his body a lot of times so that he can make his body stronger." "Normal cultivators temper to improve cultivation, while body cultivators temper to make their bodies much tougher. You¡­ are now one of them." Wen Cheng finally let go of his shock. "That is not a bad thing, right?" Alex asked as he hoped for a positive answer. "No, but since you won''t really have that many ways to improve your body, you will stagnate later on and it will be quite useless in the long run," Wen Cheng just finished saying this when he thought of something and added, "Although, since your body tempering came from your cat, ¡­ maybe you can do it indefinitely." Wen Cheng started getting lost in his own thought. "Master?" Alex called to bring him out of his stance. "What are you thinking about?" "Hmm¡­ I¡­ want you to do it again." Wen Cheng''s reply came out of nowhere. "Do it again? But, it hurts so much, master." Alex''s eyes turned wide as fear crept upon them. "Yeah, that''s what body tempering is. You have to get hurt to become stronger, and you have to do that without going overboard and injuring yourself badly." Wen Cheng explained as such. Alex took a deep breath. "Alright, Pearl come out." Light shined from his left arms as Pearl came out of it and stood in front of him, licking his front paw. "Meow," it spoke as he looked towards him. "Master, make sure you stop him from cultivating if it gets really bad, okay?" Alex then tried really hard to find the next set of words to speak, "Pearl, Cultivate once more." "Meow" Pearl closed his eyes and started to meditate again. Slowly, a light started coming off of him. It started with white light, then yellow, and finally, it moved to golden light. Alex fully prepared for the pain to hit him, but even then he wasn''t ready at all. "AHHHH," his scream was as loud as ever as he found it hard to focus on anything other than the pain. The scream also shocked Wen Cheng. He wasn''t expecting such a horrific scream from his own student. He immediately wanted to stop the cat from cultivating any more but decided to wait. He used his spiritual sense to look all over Alex''s body. He was terrified to see what he was going through. Hearing the explanation of what had happened last time did not do the actual thing any sort of justice. "Should I stop it?" he started deliberating. He wanted to stop Alex from feeling more pain, but then, he saw something. Throughout Alex''s body, tiny black spots were oozing out of his skin. "No Way!! Mortal cleansing? Without any external assistance?" Wen Cheng was shocked at what he was seeing. "How is body tempering helping him in Mortal cleansing, when it should only be for normal cultivation?" Wen Cheng felt like he was seeing a miracle. He no longer gave any thought to stopping the cat and watched as Alex''s body kept on pushing out the tiny black bits. Alex''s screams, however, were ever so violent. Wen Cheng has to ignore all noises for a while. Only after a few hours did his scream started dying down. Finally, Wen Cheng saw that the black bits were no longer oozing out of Alex and decided to stop the cat. "Meow" the cat woke up from its cultivation with a single command from Wen Cheng. He then turned to look at Alex. He slowly walked up to Alex''s completely black and filthy body to give him a nudge. But as soon as he got close to him and realized what he really smelled like, he ran back. Wen Cheng looked at Alex who was on the floor, completely unmoving, and said," He''s gone unconscious from all the pain." He felt bad for letting his disciple go through this, but he also felt happy that his disciple had done through this. Mortal cleaning was one of the best things a cultivator could hope to experience, and his disciple had just done it. "He is really going to go very far in his journey as a cultivator," Wen Cheng started to feel proud. After a few minutes, he told Pearl to go back into Alex, to which the cat complied. "Yeah, you need a bath," Wen Cheng thought as he used his Qi to carry Alex and bring him inside his building to cleanse his body of the filth from Mortal cleansing. Chapter 149: Improvements Alex slowly opened his drowsy eyes as he felt something wet around his body. "What?" he asked through his sleep as tried to stand up. Suddenly, his leg slipped on something as he submerged into the liquid once more. He was now underwater and desperately tried to get back up. Once he came out of the water, he was fully awake. He immediately looked around, sending his spiritual sense to look at the different things. He found himself in a small room with a small pond-like bath inside of it. "Where¡­" he looked around confused. Suddenly, the door to the room opened and Wen Cheng walked in. "Oh thank god it''s all clean now," he said as he walked in. "Master, where am I?" he asked. He was still trying to recollect what the last thing that happened was. Only then did he finally remember the unbearable pain he had to go through once more. He shuddered as he remembered the pain and asked, "Why didn''t you stop Pearl master? It hurts so much." He actually felt like crying from all the memory of the pain. Wen Cheng looked a little guilty as he said, "Get out of the bath and change into these clothes here." He brought out a set of inner sect robes and pants. He also took out a bunch of storage bags and kept them on the robe. "You have quite a few storage bags. Do alchemists always need so many?" Alex was surprised when he saw that. ''Did he check inside?'' He was worried his master would find all the ingredients and talismans he found from the corpse. He didn''t want to explain that right now. Alex quickly walked out of the clean bath and changed into his robes. Following Wen Cheng, he walked out of the room. "I had to change the bath 3 times because of how much filth was on your body." Wen Cheng''s face seemed disgusted at the thought of this filth. Alex got surprised a little. ''It can''t be that I sh*t myself due to all the pain, can it?'' he started to fear this thought more than anything now. Wen Cheng walked out of the building, back into the training hall with Alex in tow. Alex looked at the outside and was surprised. ''It''s already day?''. He quickly checked the time and was stunned to find out that it was past 10 am already. "What?" he shouted out loud. "What''s wrong?" Wen Cheng looked back. "Oh, nothing master. I was just surprised at how late it was." "Yes, you were unconscious for quite a while. I was about to go get a healer if you didn''t wake up in the next 2 hours." Only after entering the training hall did Wen Cheng finally stop. "Sigh. Tell me, how does it feel right now." "Feel? I feel fine right now," Alex answered as he wondered if he had a fever or something when he was unconscious. "No, I mean your body. How does your body feel after going through such a long tempering process and an entire mortal cleansing." Wen Cheng seemed eager to find out just how much his disciple''s body had changed. Finally understanding his master''s questions, Alex moved around his arms and shoulders around trying to feel them. "Oh," he sounded surprised. He jumped a bit here and there, all while his eyes were wide. "It feels so much better master. Almost like I lost half my body weight or something. I feel so light." His words couldn''t explain how he was feeling right now. "Is this because of body tempering too, master?" "I expected so, and no, it''s not because of the body tempering. It kind of is, but it''s mostly due to Mortal Cleansing." Alex''s face got confused when he heard that. "Mortal cleansing? What''s that master?" he tried to remember if he had ever heard that word before, but he couldn''t remember. Not even his master had taught him that when she gave him a general lesson on everything. "It''s no surprise you haven''t heard of it. In fact, I would be more surprised if you had. Mortal cleansing is a very rare occurrence where one''s body discards all of its unwanted filth and leaves you with a pristine body that is prime for cultivation." Alex asked, "Have you gone through it as well master?" "Me? No. Like I said it''s very rare and you can only do this if you find¡­ some sort of fruit, that I do not know the name of. It''s said that only if you eat this fruit can you go through mortal cleansing. However, it seems that is not just the way. It seems your cat can somehow help you as well." "What exactly does mortal cleansing help me for, master?" Alex was still a little confused. "You remember how I said that self tempering helped your body store more Qi and thus progress in terms of cultivation?" Wen Cheng asked, to which Alex nodded. "Similarly, Mortal Cleansing also removes your body of everything not required for cultivation and leaves you with only that which is required to reach for immortality, the final destination of a Cultivator. Thus it also improves your bottlenecks for cultivation." "Hmm¡­ Does this mean I can store more Qi in my body now, Master?" he asked. "Sort of, yes. But it''s more so that your body can now use Qi more efficiently than before. Try using a technique, and see how much easier it is." Alex did as asked and circulated his Qi to use the Jade Skin technique. As soon as he started, his body produced textures around his skin that made him look like he was made up of jade. "Oh wow, it took less than half the time it normally takes to use it." His surprised voice gave all the answers Wen Cheng required. He nodded a bit and said, "Go and check how strong you''ve become in the actual Training Hall. Also, since you''ve become quite strong, reach as high as you can by tonight. I want to see you with at least a badge of number 120." Chapter 150: Such a Weak Body? "Oh yeah, make sure to keep training your body with your cat. Not many people get the chance to become a body cultivator. This is an amazing opportunity that you can''t miss." Wen Cheng said as Alex left the training hall. Alex looked at the clock and sighed. "Guess I am going to have to skip the first class today." He quickly went back to his house, hidden from the others and logged out. He hurried his way to the cafeteria and then went to his 2nd class, which he arrived during the 20-minute recess. Matt was there as well and looked at Alex and asked, "You didn''t log out for the lunch, what happened? Game so good, you forgot reality?" he asked jokingly. "No, I was just unconscious in the game. Barely managed to log out in time to catch the 2nd class." Matt said, "Oh, you gonna complain in the forums too? Hehe." "Complain? About what?" Alex asked in confusion. "About fainting in the game and becoming unable to log out of course. So many people complain about missing their work, or school, or in worst cases, not being able to log out for days, only to log out weak and hungry." Alex was surprised. " That really happens to people? I guess I did faint 2 days in a row, so I shouldn''t be surprised. It might not be as uncommon as I would want it to be then." "Of course it happens often, don''t you read the forums?" Matt asked. "Only in some cases. Otherwise, I like to stay unspoiled about the game. Finding out the things on your own had a certain charm to it." Alex didn''t think knowing every aspect of the game to be very appealing. He had done what he had to, to earn some necessary money, but now, he hadn''t even needed it. ''I was way too worried about a laptop, haha. They don''t even require it until the 2nd semester.'' "Ah, so you''re that kind of player huh," said Matt. "That kind?" asked Alex "You know, the kind that likes to go in blind to a game. It''s rare to see someone like you nowadays. Although, I can see why that would be fun to some," said Matt. Alex simply smiled. About 2 hours later, Alex''s classes ended and he went to the cafeteria. Afterward, he went back to his room and logged into the game. He looked at the names on the wall in front of him. Most of them were already changed and some of the names from previous times weren''t even there anymore. ''Why is it that it''s only the players that are leaving?'' he wondered. There were still a few names that were definitely from the players that he could recognize, but they were in the top 100, and it would take some time for him to get there. "Let''s go check just how strong I am first," he said to himself and walked out of the house. He soon made his way to the sect crater and went to the training hall. The Training Hall was a tall pagoda-like tower at least 20 floors tall. "That''s quite tall," he thought and walked in. He saw people waiting in a queue here as well. When his turn finally came, the elder asked, " What room?" "Sorry?" Alex asked in confusion. "What do you want to train in. Attack, Defense, or Movement?" the elder asked. "Oh, umm... is it possible to go for all 3? I want to train in all," Alex said. The elder nodded and took Alex''s badge. He then gave him a small wooden token. Alex looked at the token and saw that it was numbered ''4-12''. "Go to the 4th floor''s 12th room," the elder said. Alex thanked the elder and quickly found a staircase. "Oh, it goes down too?" he was surprised to see that the Training hall was not only tall, but it was also deep too. Alex walked up the stairs to the 4th floor, and quickly found his room. Similar to the production hall, he put his wooden token in the keyhole. The door opened to reveal a completely white room. "Hmm¡­ " Alex wondered and walked in. The room was quite wide and had enough place for him to try out his techniques. As he walked in, he noticed a metallic puppet on the other side with a rather long wooden pole extended horizontally around its arms. He walked up to it and saw that it had 3 switches on its head. He flicked the switch that said ''Offensive Training'' and left defensive and movement training as is. "Alright, does this work how I think it does?" he thought as he knocked on it a few times. "Oh, it does. Let''s try with just my body then." He started to pull in every single Qi he had in his skin, muscle, bones, and organs, back into his meridian. "Urghh¡­ Why is this so uncomfortable every time I do this?" he thought. Keeping all the Qi inside the meridian and not letting it flow as well, was an unnatural feeling he wished to avoid. "I better get it done with," making sure he wasn''t leaking any Qi unintentionally, Alex prepared his attack. ''Here it goes,'' with a single dash, he reached the puppet in front of him and¡­ BAM A strong sound rose out from the board that shocked Alex. ''That sounded so strong!!,'' he was shocked. He looked at the puppet and saw that it was taking a while to show the result. Only after a few seconds did it show the result. ''That¡­ is quite weak.'' He was surprised to see that the Body tempering that his master praised so much had resulted in such low damage. ''If it''s this weak, then what is so good about it?'' he wondered. Only after a few seconds did he realize, "Wait¡­ no, this is quite strong, isn''t it? Only one night of cultivation, and I''m already at Muscle Tempering 4th realm. Does that mean¡­ I can get a lot stronger this way?'' Chapter 151: Attack and Defense Alex felt like he had just realized the importance of body cultivation. Everything his master had said until now had barely influenced his thoughts against body cultivation. At best, he would reluctantly accept the pain and cultivate. But now, he had an incentive to. "Even if I could cultivate more than this with Qi cultivation alone, I still wouldn''t get as strong since continuous breakthroughs are bad for your foundation. But, this seems entirely different." "This is quite exciting." Now that he knew how strong his Qi-less body was, he decided to check how strong it was with the Qi. "If I''m remembering correctly, my fists did the same damage as my cultivation base. So, with the Body cultivation, it should be higher, right?" "Although, I don''t know how much more damage a simple muscle tempering realm can add to my current strength." Alex let go of the withheld Qi and let it fill his body. He prepared his fist once more and punched the metallic puppet as hard as he could. BAM This was a much louder sound than he was imagining. He looked up at the puppet to see what the result was. "Or-Organ Tempering 2nd Realm?" he blurted out, shocked at the result. "But..how? My body isn''t strong enough to show that kind of result. Was I mistaken earlier?" he wondered. The last time he had tested his physical strength was when he had just gotten the Smiting Blade technique. After that, he had trained under the assumption that all of his damage would always be equivalent to his cultivation base. "Even master had said the same thing. Due to one''s Qi, your strength without any external techniques or artifacts would be equal to your cultivation base under normal circums¡ª" His eyes went wide. "Is there something more to my strength other than the weak body cultivation right now?" he tried to think of the reasons. "I see¡­" he finally said after a minute. "It has to be either because of the Yang Jade, the Mortal Cleansing I went through, or the unknown blood essence, right? But which one? Maybe even all three." He punched once more just to be sure it wasn''t a fluke and the puppet indeed showed ''Organ Tempering 2nd Realm'' once more. He took out the normal sword and used it this time. "Woah! Even a normal Common Mortal grade sword''s damage increased by so much? What about my actual sword?" he thought as he took out the Steel sword and used it. "Yeah, that''s more like it." He went on to test on a few more techniques. He managed to deal a realm higher worth of damage with his Smiting blade. Sadly, techniques like the 2nd and 3rd strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword which were more focused on the Qi were the weakest of the different techniques Alex knew now. Iron Fist Punch, however, had become amazing. "But, it''s not even focused on the body. Why is only this Qi-based technique so strong?" he couldn''t help but wonder. After going through Mortal Cleansing, his strength had gone a realm higher. But he didn''t know that yet. "I should see if cultivation truly had no influence on body cultivation," he thought as he opened his status page, and pressed on the button, [Breakthrough]. ''Finally, on the 4th minor realm.'' Alex once more reeled in his Qi and tried to punch the puppet with just his body strength. "As I thought, it didn''t increase." He went on to test the other techniques and realized that they all had increased by a realm in damage. "I should test defense next," he thought and walked up to the puppet to flip the ''Defense training'' switch while switching off the other one. Out of nowhere, the puppet moved to the side, hitting him with the stick it was holding. His reflexes kicked in as he put up his arms to protect himself, only to realize that it didn''t hurt at all. The puppet returned to its original state, and Alex could see the words ''Skin Tempering 1st Realm'' written on it. The puppet moved once more attacking him. This time, it''s damage one step further. Hit after hit, it increased its damage with every hit, returning to its initial position with each one. Still, Alex didn''t feel any damage whatsoever. Even after the damage entered the threshold of the Bone Tempering realm, he was barely feeling any damage. "Is this how good body cultivation really is?" he couldn''t help but wonder. Only around the 5th realm, did he start to get hurt a little. Still, it was more of a pat on the back, than actual damage. Another attack came from the side, dealing a bit higher damage. Another attack with 7th realm damage came and he finally thought it was a bit substantial in damage. The 8th realm damage started to get him worried. The 9th realm damage finally hurt him a little. He braced for the next attack. Finally, an Organ Tempering 1st realm''s equivalent damage-dealing attack appeared in front of him and hit him, sending him flying backward. "Urghh, that hurt. But I can take another one." The puppet was already back to its original position, moving once more. Alex walked forward and braced himself again. BAM He was sent back flying. "Arghh," he shouted as that was the highest bit of damage he could take right now. "Urghh¡­" he stood up once more and waited for the attack to come back. Qi started flowing through his body as his skin started to get textured, making it look like it was made up of jade. Alex had used the Jade Skin technique and waited for the attack to hit him. "Umphh," he stopped the attack and felt a little damage. He smiled at the situation as he watched the puppet rotate back to hit him once more. Chapter 152: Quick Library Visit Organ Tempering 3rd Realm had hurt Alex a little through the Jade Skin technique, but he could keep going. He waited for the 4th realm attack to hit and braced himself. "Mmm," he screamed as the hit just now actually hurt. It wasn''t enough to make him suffer or anything, but it did hurt quite a bit. Alex started to wonder if taking the next shot was a good idea or not. Alas, he took a little too long to decide. The puppet had already spun, swinging its staff at him. Alex prepared his Jade Skin technique the best he could and blocked the attack. BAM He was sent flying back to the wall when he hit and fell down. "Argghhh," this had hurt him quite a bit. He immediately looked up, scared another attack was coming, but the puppet had stopped moving at all, and its body had nothing written on it. It took a few minutes for the pain to subside. "I can barely take the 5th realm attack, which I can easily survive a 4th realm''s attack. Maybe I can do better if I cultivate my body," he thought. But the thought alone was enough to make him shiver. "I will think about that later." He went to the puppet and switched off defensive mode. "How does movement training work though? Will it tell me what realm my movements are at? But that doesn''t seem like a quantifiable value, unlike cultivation base, which normal persons have the equal amount." Still, he decided to check it out, so he flipped the switch. Suddenly, multiple holes appeared on the white walls around the room. Alex prepared for what was coming. A burst of small air appeared near his face that he managed to dodge easily. Another burst of air came from behind him. He ducked to dodge this one as well. After that, burst upon bursts of air were sent out of the holes at a steady rate. Alex started with Elusive Heavenly sword''s evasion skills but soon realized that it wasn''t going to be enough. So, he started to use Fluctuating friction dance as well. He kept on dodging for at least 15 minutes, before finally, the number of air shots was just too much for him to dodge. Without a way to move out of the way, he got hit. All the openings in the wall closed off and Alex heard a ''click'' sound. He looked around to see that the Movement training switch was turned off. "This is actually quite a good way to train your movement technique." Alex left the room and walked out of the training hall after paying the spirit stones. He looked at the time and realized not much had passed since he logged in, so he went to the library. The library wasn''t as different from the library in the Hong Wu sect. It was in a pagoda shape with around 8 floors. He walked in to see not that many shelves of books. However, there were quite a few disciples in here, sitting around a table, reading the books. Somewhere even copying them into a talisman. "Finally, this feels like an actual library," he said out loud. He walked around looking for the different things to read. "Oh, most of these are just introductory books," he realized as he saw that most of them were just basic knowledge regarding the fields they were about. Cultivation books taught how to cultivate, Alchemy books taught how ingredients were required, and so on. So, he skipped the first floor and walked up to the second floor. "I can''t waste much time here today. I still need to go register a fight." The second floor was much the same. With the content being a little more advanced, it was still there for outer sect disciples to read. Alex wanted to skip this one too, but he found a beginner''s guide on beast companions so he quickly read it. There were other fun books too, but he had to ignore them for today. He walked up to the 3rd floor and found more books on beast companions, but they were still very basic. They mostly just explained how beast companions worked, how they formed bonds, and how they were stored. Although, he did learn the beast companions required no sustenance to survive after bonding with a cultivator, which relieved him regarding not feeding Pearl at all. "Still, I should give him some food from time to time just for enjoying a meal," he thought. He decided to go to the 4th floor. An Elder stood guard on the staircase that led to the 4th floor and asked for a spirit stone. "It costs me a spirit stone just to enter the 4th floor?" he asked in surprise. The elder seemed to be used to this question so he answered in a very practiced manner. "No, you do not. We will remove the cost from the book you will borrow. However, if you won''t borrow anything, you will not get the spirit stones back. This is a way to not overcrowd the upper floors with people who don''t mean business. All the books on the 4th floor cost 5 spirit stones. If you don''t have it, you can return back." The elder had a very monotone voice when he explained this. Alex decided to just go up and read whatever he could find there. He started searching for 3 different things in here. First, he looked for books on beast companions. Second, he looked for books on alchemy. Third, he looked for books or records that could give him the knowledge that was more trivia-like. He actually wanted to find information on the different bodies and see if his body was written in it or not. He sent forth his spiritual sense to check for everything in the area. Once he found what he was looking for, he started reading it. Time slowly passed, and before he knew it, it was time for him to leave. Since he had just used a single spirit stone, he didn''t bother renting anything else and just left the library. Chapter 153: Palm of the Sun Alex stood over his opponent he had just fought. The opponent was a lackey of Huo Tu. He had found it quite funny when the person he randomly chose for fighting today was actually one of the lackeys. The opponent was quite surprised when he realized who his opponent was. The fight itself was pretty easy since his opponent was only at the Organ Tempering 1st realm, the same as him. "Fight Over!" the elder shouted. Alex walked over to the elder to get his new badge, numbered 105. As he left, he heard the lackey saying in a low voice to himself, "I must tell brother Huo. This master-less bastard is starting to target us." "What?" Alex thought to himself, confused. "Is he misunderstanding the coincidence?" he thought but didn''t bother explaining. It was already 9 PM and he was late for his training with his master. "Ah, you came, finally. I thought you decided to skip today as well." Wen Cheng was waiting for him outside of the training hall. "The fight I registered today took a little too long to end master, I didn''t purposefully be late." "Oh what badge did you obtain?" he asked. Alex took out the badge and handed it to Wen Cheng. Wen Cheng looked at the badge and was shocked. "You are already this far ahead? In just a little over a week too. And here I thought those new people that keep joining and leaving were talented." ''Talented new people? He must be talking about the players,'' he thought. "Are these people really talented, Master?" he asked. "Well, not as much as you. But, they were pretty fast at learning techniques too. Such a shame they just leave the sect after learning a few more techniques. " Wen Cheng shook his head at remembering all the new talents he lost. "Although, they were still slow in cultivation so I guess its not that big of a loss. Some of them we actually expelled because they kept destroying the copies of the techniques they took and couldn''t pay the fine." "Honestly, I don''t know where this new surge of cultivators came from, but they are as talented as they are annoying." Wen Cheng seemed to change his opinions on the player quite frequently. "Nevermind them, since you did what I asked you to, take this offensive technique and learn it. I will come back around 2 am. After that, I will stay with you to make sure your body cultivation goes well. " Alex suddenly was horrified at the thought. "I will have to cultivate body tonight as well, master?" he asked. He had thought of doing it once more, but a little later down the line. Having to do it immediately after suffering yesterday, made his palms and feet sweat from anxiety. "Don''t worry," Wen Cheng said, "Since you already went through it once, it won''t be as painful as last time. Especially, since you also went through Mortal Cleansing. That should at least help you keep your mental bearings." Alex thought for a second and nodded. Wen Cheng handed him the book he had and left. Alex looked at the book he had with him and read it out loud. "Palm of the Sun?" he read with interest. ''Is it what I think it is?'' he thought. He read the introductory page and realized that it was in fact ''Yang Qi'' related. "Palm of the Sun. Throw a palm strike with Yang energy from a distance away. Works better for people with Yang-type spiritual root, but doesn''t necessarily need it." "This is quite good. Hmm¡­ will my body affect it at all?" he wondered. It didn''t take him long to learn the technique, so he started practicing it immediately. It didn''t take him long to realize that the palm strike was as strong if not stronger than the fist. "Hmm¡­ does this mean that I have something too that is making the fist strong?" he wondered, but couldn''t think of any answer even though he had a big suspicion that it had something to do with the blood essence. After an hour of training the palm, he started to get bored. He had done the same training for the last week or so and he didn''t want to do that either. "What do I do now?" he thought. He so desperately wished to make some pills right now, but there was no fire. "Hmm¡­ the books did say that beast companions needed no training for fights, but it can''t hurt to try, right?" he thought as he called pearl out. "Meow," Pearl looked around and realized he was in the same familiar place as yesterday. He immediately started to lay down and meditate as that was what Alex had been asking for him every time he was called out. "Wait, no." Alex''s heart skipped a beat as he immediately stopped Pearl from cultivating. "We are going to practice fighting today buddy." Alex brought Pearl to the center of the training hall and proceeded to train him. "Alright, bub. Come attack me." "Meow," Pearl tilted his head in confusion as he didn''t understand what Alex meant exactly. Alex gestured by punching himself in his own arm. "Come hit me here with your hands." Pearl finally understood what Alex meant and suddenly, jumped towards him to attack. BAM Or so Alex expected to hear. But what he heard was just a small ''pat'' sound on his arm. He barely even felt anything. "Are you weak? Or am I just too strong now?" he wondered and asked. He decided to check Pearl''s status. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Muscle Tempering 4th Realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared) ] "Oh, you already reached Muscle Tempering realm? That is very fast. As fast, if not faster than why I cultivate normally. Are you stealing Qi from me by any chance?'' Alex jokingly asked. And then, he noticed something weird. "Wait a second¡­" Alex was surprised. "Is your cultivation realm the same as my body cultivation realm?" Chapter 154: Progress Alex thought for a bit. Pearl''s cultivation base had come from sleeping for a few weeks in his tattoo, then eating the blood essence, and then finally, cultivating. Only one of which was responsible for his body cultivation right now. "So that can only mean that it is a coincidence right?" he thought. He then wondered ''Since we have the same cultivation base in a way, maybe it will be equal if I take back my Qi? Although it feels really uncomfortable, I should try it.'' He started pulling in the Qi into his meridian and leaving his body Qi-less. "Alright, hit me again buddy." Pearl didn''t wait for him to say anything else and immediately slapped his arm with his paw. Alex stumbled a few steps back as the hit was a bit harder than he thought it would be. "Shouldn''t be surprising that I took so much damage. We are the same cultivation base technically after all. Although, it doesn''t hurt as much as I expected it to." He then looked at Pearl and said, "Alright buddy, come attack me." Pearl once more hit him, but this time Alex dodged it. Alex did nothing but dodge as Pearl tried to hit him continuously. In the end, they had to stop because Alex realized that Pearl just wasn''t good at fighting. "I can''t even teach you how to fight, can I?" Alex fell into a dilemma. ''How do the normal monsters know how to fight then?'' he wondered. He continued fighting with Pearl once more. This time, he went on for as long as he could, however, Pearl barely learned anything once again. "Is it because he is still a child that he can''t learn how to fight? Or am I just that bad of a teacher?" Alex thought. "Guess, I will have to wait until he is an adult then." Alex decided to solo train for the next few hours. It was a shame, but he couldn''t train his Flickering Shadows technique in the brightly lit training hall. So, he just kept the training to the things he had learned in the Tiger Sect. But that was getting boring. Perhaps he was getting really good at it, or he just didn''t see the point of training solo for so long. He just wanted to stop for once and do something else. But his mind told him this was important. "Urghh¡­ I just want to go back to making pills. That is so much more interesting. But I also need to learn to fight so that I could protect myself." He reluctantly practiced for a bit longer until Wen Cheng came back around. "Did you learn it?" he asked. "Yes master," he proceeded to show exactly how good the attack was. "Hmm¡­ did your yang-type spiritual root amplify the damage a bit?" Wen Cheng said as he felt the dangerous aura radiating from the palm. "I think so master," Alex said. "Alright, let''s get on with the body cultivation. I will stay with you until the end to make sure nothing bad happens," Wen Cheng said. "Uh¡­" Alex wanted to complain some more, but reluctantly agreed. "Alright, master." He called out Pearl and told him to cultivate. Within minutes, Pearl''s fur was glowing bright gold, while Alex was gritting his teeth trying to not scream. Wen Cheng looked at Alex in surprise. "Wow, he isn''t screaming at all. Did the mortal cleansing actually help him that much? Or is his body just that strong that he doesn''t feel as much pain anymore?" Alex was grunting the entire time, but he never outright screamed. Morning came by and before Wen Cheng could even ask Pearl to stop, Alex did it himself. "Huh? You could think properly despite the pain?" Wen Cheng asked. "The pain¡­ it wasn''t as horrible as last time. So, I could maintain some thoughts," he said. Alex checked Pearl and realized he had gone up 2 realms. ''Is it the same for myself?'' he wondered. "Alright, go now." Alex didn''t go through mortal cleansing again, so he did not require any bath this time. Alex returned back to his room and decided to visit go sell some pills before visiting the library once more. In such a way, a few more days went by. Every day started with Alex opening his eyes after the intense pain of body cultivation subsided. He would then go back to his house to log out for breakfast. After his breakfast, he would visit the library for 3 hours, before logging out to go to his university classes. After school, he would return to visit the library once more for a few hours. Afterward, he would go fight some disciples in the training fields. After reaching the top 100s, it was getting really hard to progress higher. Everyone in the top 100s was a genius when it came to cultivation or fighting. Unless he got better in either, he wouldn''t make it far here. The problem with this was that he was only focusing on body cultivation the last few days so he was forced to eat a few monster cores. Monster cores however started to create more and more fights in his head. He could still fight the monsters quite easily, however, the monster spirits he had to fight seemed to be getting closer and closer in strength to their real self. With not having a spiritual sense or his body and having to only use Qi to fight, he was worried that sooner or later something bad would happen. During the night, he would train with Wen Cheng. He had learned another fighting technique and defensive technique, both of which he liked very much because they used swords. He would practice these techniques and train with Pearl until Wen Cheng came back. After Wen Cheng did, he would start to body cultivate once more. As such, by Friday, he had managed to reach the 3rd realm of Bone Tempering for Body Cultivation and 3rd Realm of Organ Tempering for Qi Cultivation. Chapter 155: Unexpected Match Alex was on the final floor of the library walking around looking at the different books and records on the shelf. From time to time, he would stop in front of a shelf, pick a book, look at it for a big and then put it back. Any outsider looking at him would think that he wasn''t able to find something that suited him. But, on the contrary, his spiritual sense was in full focus, reading a book regarding Beast Companions. Finally, there he found some information that he had been desperately searching for. "So, that is how beast companions learn to fight, huh," he sighed in relief knowing that Pearl wasn''t an anomaly. Beast Companions were born with inherent memories, or it might be more accurate to call them instincts. These instincts would allow them to learn how to fight, as well as learn new techniques. Also, another thing the book mentioned that caught his eyes was that the more potential or talent a beast had, the longer a child they would remain. "So, Pearl won''t necessarily grow up from his child form until he has overcome his latent potential, huh. I wonder how long that will take." He then looked all over the book, trying to find specific information, but there just wasn''t any. "What about evolution though?" he kept searching but didn''t find an answer. He decided to skip it for now and look at the other records. He walked up to another shelf and sent out his spiritual sense to search for other records that were free. He needed to see if there was any record of his body in here. "Hmm¡­" he suddenly sensed an unusual record among the many. "Ah, is this one of the records that survived that fight 50 some years ago?" he wondered and started reading it. The information in the record was very broken and scattered. From what he could gather, it mostly spoke of the writers wanting to return to the land where no one entered. "Is this the sacred lands where nobody placed their foot on because it was so holy to them?" he kept on reading. The Tiger Sect was set near the land where no one stepped in. But they had to move locations to where they were now. The records spoke of their reluctance but gave no reasoning as to why. "What was so sacred about that land?" he wondered. Finally, there was one bit of information that he managed to read. Where the Fiery Earth embraces the Yin-like Water, the Golden Wood of Yang emerges. "Fire, Earth, Yin, Water, Gold, Wood, and Yang. All of the 7 elements are in one place. Is it talking about some sort of Alchemy garden?" that was Alex''s first thought. "Yin like water¡­ what does that even mean? Also, Fiery Earth¡­ why would earth be on fire? Not to forget the Golden Wood of Yang¡­ huh?" the more he thought about the record, the more confused he was. Maybe his master was confused as well, which was why he didn''t mention this part. He stopped thinking about it and read the other records. None of them had any vital information. Suddenly, his badge started vibrating. He took it out looked at it. "98? I''m 12 levels higher than him. Why would he want to fight be? Whatever, I still have an hour." Alex decided to look around for a bit first. He spent the next 45 minutes reading as many of the records and books as he could and took a random book before leaving the library. After the fourth floor, each additional floor had cost him 5 spirit stones each to enter. By the 8th floor, he had spent 21 spirit stones and didn''t want to let it go to waste. So, he took a book that looked interesting. He paid an additional 20 spirit stones for the book and left. He quickly reached the fighting stage where the disciple with the 98th badge had registered for a fight with him. By the time he made it there, only 10 minutes were left on his timer. "Number 86 and 98" the Elder called out. Alex walked up to the Elder and handed him his badge. His opponent also walked up to the elder to hand in his badge. Alex turned around to see who his opponent was. When he saw who it was, he was shocked. In front of him was a young and fat man about the same height as him. "You!!" Alex said in surprise. "Not only did you disrespect me, but you also purposefully target my subordinates now. I will show you what the result is after you mess with me, boy." The man in front of Alex was Huo Tu. The last few days, 2 of the people he fought had turned out to be lackeys of this guy. So, he had started to assume that Alex was targeting his subordinates on purpose to mess with him. Alex started getting concerned. He had never expected the man in the 18th ranking himself to drop his ranking to the 98th position just to fight him. ''Sh*t. This is going to be troublesome,'' he thought. He looked at Huo Tu and saw that he was still in the Meridian Tempering 3rd realm like the last time he saw him. Alex being in the 3rd realm of Organ tempering was a bad match-up right now. "Hey, isn''t that senior brother Huo? What is he doing here?" someone recognized Huo Tu after he got on the stage. "Did that kid challenge senior Huo?" somebody else asked. "No, their rankings were 86 and 98. I think senior brother dropped his ranking to teach that guy a lesson." "Who is he? Does anybody know?" "His name is Yu Ming. He disrespected brother Huo, so he has come to take revenge today." The lackeys started making noise, so more people started to gather to watch the match. The match between the two was turning out to be a spectacle before it even began. Chapter 156: Explosive Talismans People started gathering just by the ruckus that was being made. Some recognized Huo Tu, some recognized Alex, some just came to watch what the hub hub was about. Knowing that a core disciple had registered a fight with an inner sect disciple, many other people started getting called by their friends watching the fight too. "What''s the point? It''s not like the inner sect disciple is going to win," someone said. "Yeah, but that''s not the point. It''s not every day you see a core disciple fight. Don''t you guys want to see it?" someone else said. "You sound like you''ve never seen Huo Tu fight. You must be quite new here then," another person spoke. "Huh? does he fight violently or something? Since he is a core disciple, he must be really good right?" the previous person asked. "Haha, quite the opposite actually. Just watch, you might be surprised by his fighting method," the person spoke once more. On the stage, Alex heard the person speak. ''Not good at fighting? Does he have a different fighting method?'' he wondered. He took out his Steel Sword for this fight. This fight was way out of his league, and he was not going to bother limiting his abilities only to get badly hurt in this fight. He looked around the stage. It was around 3 PM and the only shadow he could see was either his own or the opponent''s. ''I can''t use it then,'' he thought. ''Well, it''s the last option either way.'' He got into a fighting stance, waiting for his opponent to take out his weapon as well, but he never did. "FIGHT!" the Elder started the match. Alex got cautious. His opponent was just standing there with a smile on his face. "Come," Huo Tu gestured with his hand, inviting Alex to attack him. ''Is he not scared of my attack?'' Alex wondered. ''Whatever.'' He dashed straight to the front and swung his sword. Dark lines appeared on Huo Tu''s skin as he placed his single hand forward to block the blade. CLANK As if he just hit Iron, Alex''s hand shook from the rebound damage. ''He knows Jade Skin? How strong is his hand?'' Alex thought in pure shock. Huo Tu smiled in contempt when he saw the shock on Alex''s face. "Now you''re going to get it," Huo Tu said as he tried to punch back. However, Alex was fast and managed to run out of the attack range in good time. Huo Tu''s face got serious for a second when he realized Alex was faster than him. Then he started to get angry. He started to run towards Alex with his fat body and tried to punch him once more. However, Alex was too fast for him and managed to get out of his way. ''Why is he so slow? Does he not know any movement techniques?'' Alex wondered. If that was the case, then there was still hope for him. Alex started to run around the stage. From time to time, he came in and struck Huo Tu from his blind side. But not one of those managed to deal any sort of damage. ''Damn it,'' he thought and used Smiting Blade. Yellow Qi flowed into his sword, dying the whole blade yellow. With his strong body and his amazing movement technique, Huo Tu could no longer keep track of him. Alex started attacking more and more. His skin started so show some scratches after he used the Smiting blade, and also Huo Tu''s robes were slowly being cut apart. Something blue in color shone underneath, Alex cut more and more until the robe was in tatters and the underbody was visible. "That is¡­" Alex thought in shock. He looked at the shiny blue armor underneath the man''s body. ''That''s the armor from the auction house. I thought it was taken by that merchant guy. Why does he have this?'' he thought. "Haha, you shocked. This is a Common Earth Grade armor artifact that my father got for me. Your physical attack does nothing to me. Not even Luo Mei or Du Yuhan can harm me with their attacks when I''m wearing this." He started to laugh manically. The situation started to seem grimmer and grimmer by the second. Alex ran away after realizing that he couldn''t beat him by just attacking him. So, he decided to try some Qi-based techniques and see if those worked. Green Qi filled his sword and he got ready to swing it. He used the 2nd strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword and let the attack fly. Huo Tu didn''t do anything and simply let the attack hit him. An explosion rang out, but Alex could tell that Huo Tu wasn''t injured at all. ''Dammit,'' he thought and prepared another attack. Darker green light filled the sword as Alex got ready to attack. At the same time, Huo Tu did something as well. He reached into his storage bag and took out something. Alex looked at it and was surprised. ''A talisman?'' he thought. He let swung his sword and used the 3rd strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword. A green slash flowed through the air towards Huo Tu. Huo Tu as well threw the talisman directly at the incoming slash. BOOM Massive energy erupted where the two attacks met. Huo Tu had no problem standing through the shockwave, which Alex was pushed back a little. "What was that?" Alex looked at the explosion in shock. He hadn''t expected Huo Tu to use a talisman for fighting. He had remembered his master speaking about such things but had finally seen it for the first time. Suddenly, Huo Tu took two talismans out and looked at Alex with a smile. Before Alex could even prepare another attack, he immediately threw both the talismans on either side of Alex, trying to sandwich him in between the explosions. Alex got terrified. Without any other immediate ideas, he switched his holding of the sword from over to under and threw it right at Huo Tu just as the talismans exploded. BOOM Before Alex could even use any defensive techniques, the explosions devoured him whole. Chapter 157: Penta Blade Technique Huo Tu smiled seeing the explosion, but suddenly Alex appeared in front of him and hit him directly on the head with his blade. The attack did absolutely nothing to Huo Tu, but Alex''s presence did anger him. Alex immediately stepped back. His heart was beating crazily as he realized how close he was to being hurt. If he hadn''t sent out the sword in time and teleported to its shadow, he would''ve taken serious damage right there. He looked at the two small holes in the place where the talisman exploded. ''Was that damage in the Meridian tempering realm? I need to be more aware of my surrounding,'' he thought and activated focus mode. Suddenly, time slowed down. All the senses around him amplified, including what he picked up from his spiritual sense. His beating heart was just as loud as the rest of the crowd watching the fight. The lights around him were brighter and he could more distinctly see the hideous face of Huo Tu. The smell of smoke and dust was in the air from the recent explosions. He could feel the fluctuations in the air made by the last 2 explosions. He saw Huo Tu reach into his storage bag once more. This time, however, instead of a talisman, he took out a pill. "How did you survive that?" Huo Tu asked but got no response. He got angry and threw the pill right at Alex. Alex was prepared, however. He simply made a fist and punched out. A massive golden fist flew out from him and traveled towards Huo Tu. In the middle, the pill and the Fist met, creating another massive explosion. This time, Alex too stood unphased by the shockwaves. Huo Tu got angry and took out another 2 pills. Alex wanted to use another technique but wasn''t given any chance. The two pills flew out and struck just below Alex. Alex didn''t move. BOOM Another giant explosion rang out. This fight had ended up being a battle of explosion. The audience waited with bated breath to see what happened as the smoke and dust cleared. Alex emerged out barely damaged at all. He definitely took the damage, but the most it seemed to have done was make him disheveled. Alex''s heart, however, was beating faster as he realized he just survived another close call. ''Like I thought. Elemental Guidance technique works with the pills explosions,'' he thought. Huo Tu started to get even angrier. He took out dozens of talismans and pills at once. ''Just how many of those does he have?'' Alex was shocked to see the many pills and talismans with him. ''I guess that makes sense since he is the son of that fat merchant. He must really spoil his son to make him turn out like this,'' Alex thought. Huo Tu started to throw pills after pills talismans after talismans. Alex too threw whatever he could at the incoming attacks. Elusive Heavenly Sword 2nd and 3rd Strike, Elemental Guidance, Iron Fist Punch, and Palm of the Sun. ''Sh*t. I don''t think I can stand the onslaught anymore. I will have to finish this match in one shot,'' he thought. He kept throwing whatever he could at his opponent and waited for his opponent to end his current supply of ''attacks''. Finally, the moment came. Huo Tu threw his last pill and Alex threw a massive yellow palm towards the incoming pill. Immediately afterward, he slid his 2 fingers from another hand across the blade. Suddenly, the sword started glowing golden. He then made an arc around him with the sword. At specific intervals, the sword left a golden after image where it passed through. After leaving the final golden image, the light in the sword disappeared, and all that remained were the 5 golden sword images on top of him. This was the final attack technique he had learned called the Penta Blade Technique. It was a heaven-grade technique that made 5 images of the blade using Qi. All 5 images would be as strong as a normal attack from the sword. The technique could only be learned by people with Metal spiritual roots. This was the final technique Wen Cheng had given him and perhaps his strongest Qi-based attack. The 5 blade images on top of him slowly started to tilt on his command and targeted Huo To. When he saw this, Huo Tu disregarded the need to take out more pills for now and prepared to take the full brunt of the attack by himself. Dark lines appeared on his skin as he used Jade Skin to protect himself. "Go." With a single command, all 5 of the sword flew directly towards Huo Tu. Golden light shined through the air as they passed by and hit Huo Tu. BOOM No explosions occurred but shockwaves still appeared. Huo Tu blocked the attack with just his body and smiled. But then, suddenly, his eyes turned white and he fell to the ground. Huff Huff Alex breathed heavily as he stopped using focus mode and finally caught his breath. Huo Tu was in front of him unmoving, and the Elder waited for him to stand up. But Alex knew he wasn''t going to, at least not for a while now. He doubted someone in the meridian realm could withstand a full onslaught of Heaven''s Impact, an attack that made Ma Rong nearly lose consciousness. Hidden Behind the brilliant golden light of the Penta Blade technique was an undetectable fist made up of Spiritual energy that attacked Huo Tu''s mind, suddenly fainting him. "Elder, the match is over," Alex said, jolting the Elder out of his delusions. The Elder walked up to Huo Tu to make sure he was in fact unconscious and then looked at Alex in horror. The stage was full of holes and needed repair. That was what these two people''s fight had done. The Elder couldn''t imagine how an Organ tempering 3rd realm cultivator had defeated a Meridian Tempering 3rd realm cultivator. The result was just way too absurd. "Elder, the result," Alex reminded once more. "Ah, Fight Over." The Elder shouted out shocking the entire audience. Alex slowly walked up to the Elder and took his badge number 86 and left. Leaving the Elder and Audience in total silence. Chapter 158: Lunch talk "Huh?? He just won like that?" someone said in shock. "What was that last attack?? It was so dazzling." Somebody else said. "Look at that stage. The Elders must be angry right now." "Of course. If they had known that the fight was going to take this turn, they would''ve sent them to a higher numbered stage." "Is brother Huo Tu alright?" another person spoke. "What was that inner sect disciple''s name again? Yu Ming, right?" People started remembering his name. "Is he a core disciple now?" another person asked. Numerous people were talking about the outcome of the battle just now. Somewhere far away, a middle-aged man with a bald head and no facial hair was looking towards Alex who had long since left the stage and walking out of the sect valley. At first, when he had heard that the match was between a core disciple and an inner sect disciple, he had given no attention to the match, but after the first few explosions, he had turned his attention to the match and watched it ever since. "Who is that? His fight with Huo Tu left even stage 15 in tatters," he asked. Next to him were two people, both around the same height and wearing yellow robes with orange lining. "I have never seen him, master. He must be new here. Maybe he is one of those new disciples that keep joining and leaving?" The young female spoke up. She had fair skin, with long black hair tied behind her back. She looked like she was 20 years old. The male on the other hand didn''t bother speaking at all. He seemed to be in his early 20s and had no facial hair on him. His stoic and handsome face showed no emotions at all. The master didn''t wait for the male to speak up either. He knew how his disciple was. "Go and find out who he is and what his rank is," the bald man gave the order and the young female immediately ran off towards the fighting stage where Huo Tu was being carried out. After a minute or two, the female disciple returned. "His name is Yu Ming and his rank is 86. Apparently, he has been improving his ranks very fast. Like I thought, he must be one of those new disciples that are very talented. I think we should rope him in master," the female disciple said as she chuckled. "Hmm¡­ beating a core disciple as an inner sect disciple, that is quite a feat. I hope he hasn''t¡­," the bald mumbled almost to an incoherent level. He then looked at the Huo Tu that was being taken away. "Do you think you could''ve beaten Huo Tu as he did?" the master asked. "Absolutely not. I doubt I could''ve even won against him normally without his annoying pills and talismans. Not to mention, The pills and talismans do Meridian Tempering 1st realm damage. Thankfully, he doesn''t have higher-ranked pills and talismans" said the female disciple. "His father and master know he is trash, so they won''t let him get anything more expensive," The master explained and then turned to the young man next to him and asked, "Would you have problems fighting him?" he asked. The young man thought for a while and spoke, "The armor would be annoying." "Other than that, there is no problem, right?" the master asked with a smile and the disciple nodded. * * * * * * Alex was walking back to his house. Along the way, there was only one thought in his mind. "If I register for the 18th rank right now, I will be a core disciple too." That was all he could think of. "No, I can''t. That will only make the other core disciple''s target me. And after some time, I will have to fight against someone that would withstand Heaven''s Impact. I can''t handle them right now." He soon reached home and logged out for some afternoon lunch. This would be his last afternoon lunch in the dormitory. Just as he was about to leave, he saw his phone blinking. He opened it up to see that he had missed a call from his cousin. He immediately called back. "Oh, Alex. You finally picked up. Were you in the game?" Hannah was on the other side of the phone. "Yes, sister. Did you need anything?" he asked. "Yeah. I just called to tell you that you should pack your luggage today so that you won''t have to worry about early tomorrow. You did tell your parents you were moving, right?" she asked. "Oh yes, of course. Everything is ready. I just need to pack my luggage, which isn''t a lot." "Alright. I will send you the location tomorrow morning. Grab a cab and get there, okay?" she said. "Ok, sister." Alex went to have lunch with the rest of his roommates. "You are leaving tomorrow, Alex?" Logan asked. "Yes," Alex replied with a hint of melancholy in his voice. "Where will you be living?" Matt asked. "With my cousin, a few distances away from here. Her friends all left, so she was alone and asked me to move in with her." "What about university?" Eric asked. "Oh, it''s not that far away I hear. It should take me at most half an hour to get to the university," Alex said. "That''s not bad." "What about you guys? You guys decided to stay or leave?" Alex asked. The dorm had still not made any sort of announcement as to what they would do regarding the new capsules coming out. "We will wait until next week and see what the dorm says. Even finding a room in the city is hard and not to mention it costs a lot. I am surprised that your cousin and her friends can afford so much. Aren''t you guys supposed to be from the countryside?" Eric asked. "Oh, haha, Yes I am from the countryside, but my cousin is not. In fact, she is quite rich. Her parents pay for her apartment rent," Alex said. "Ah, I see." They talked for a while and Alex went back to the game once more. Chapter 159: First Elder Alex opened his eyes back in house number 86 and looked at the time. It was close to 4 pm so he checked his badge to see if anyone else had registered a fight with him. Thankfully, after the last match, nobody dared to register a fight against him. They had learned what he did to a core disciple and had thus left him alone. "I wonder if the poor guy at the 18th rank right now is fighting a core disciple right now," he wondered and chuckled to himself. Suddenly, he heard a knock on the door. "Who?" he wondered and sent out his spiritual sense. Outside of the door were two people. One male and one female. The female was a young woman wearing a yellow robe with orange linings, and the man was wearing yellow robes with silver linings. "A Core disciple and an Elder?" he was surprised. He walked to the front door and opened it. He acted surprised when he saw the two as if he didn''t know who was outside. "Greetings Elder, senior sister. Can I help you with something?" "Hello," the girl said with a jumpiness in her voice. "You must be Yu Ming, am I correct?" the Elder asked. "Yes, Elder," Alex replied. "Do you know who I am?" the Elder asked. Alex looked at the elder closely. He couldn''t remember seeing any bald Elder before this, especially not one that had no facial hair either. "This is my first time meeting Elder, so please forgive this disciple for not recognizing who you are." "I see. So, you must really be new here." The Elder spoke as he kept on nodding to himself. The girl beside him was also nodding continuously. "Yes Elder, I only joined 2 weeks ago," Alex replied. "Just 2 weeks ago? And already so much progress. You must be really talented. Do you have a master?" the Elder asked. Alex was about to answer when he realized that his master had told him to not reveal their relationship yet. ''He did that to make sure I don''t get targeted by the other elders. Should I keep lying?'' he thought. "No, I don''t, Elder," Alex replied. "Oh, good, good," the Elder said with a smile. "Then, do you want to be my disciple?" he asked. Alex was shocked. ''He came here to make me his disciple?'' he thought in surprise. The Elder continued, "I saw your match with Huo Tu today. You have a lot of potential. Come under my wing and I will teach you how to soar to the heavens." The Elder had a face of pride as he said that. Alex couldn''t think of any answer for his invite. So, he decided to just refuse directly. "I''m sorry Elder. But, I am not looking for any Masters at the moment." Alex tried to reject as politely as he could. "Hehehe," the girl behind the Elder giggled. "You don''t even know who master is, and you are already rejecting him. You got quite the confidence." Alex was surprised at her words. ''Who is this Elder?'' he thought. "Now now. Little Su, don''t say that. Disciple Yu, I am the First Elder of the sect, directly below the Sect Elder. Are you sure you don''t want to become my disciple?" the First Elder asked. "The First Elder?" Alex was even more surprised. ''Why is the First Elder here to take me as a disciple? Does he know about my talent, or is it really just the match with Huo Tu?'' he wondered. Still, he had to reject him, so he said, "I am sorry, Elder, but my answer remains the same. I am not looking for any masters at the moment." "Is that so¡­" the First Elder''s smile dropped a little. "Very well then, I shall leave you alone. However, my offer still stands. Come find me if you ever change your mind," the First elder turned to leave after saying that. "You are kind of dumb, aren''t you? Not even accepting master''s offer. What? You think you will get to the top without a master?" the girl named Su left after her master. Alex stood stunned for a moment and immediately locked the door. He then walked back into the house. He looked at the board in front of him and thought, "So that was Du Yuhan''s master huh. I should notify the master about this tonight. He sat down to read the book that he had borrowed from the library today. * * * * * * "That kid is kind of stupid master. Not even accepting after learning who you are. He will surely regret someday." The more she thought about what had just happened, the more irritated she got. "That''s enough, little Su. You don''t have to get angry at every little thing," the First Elder replied. "Master, are we just leaving like that? We could persuade him in other ways though," The girl immediately changed her tone of speech. "That won''t work. We have to be genuine in our approach to recruiting new disciples. What would you do if I threatened you to become my disciple," the First Elder said. "I didn''t mean threatening him. I meant like persuading him with spirit stones or some techniques and such," the girl pouted at her master misunderstanding her intent. "Is that so? I''m sorry then," the master said with a smile. "What do we do now then, master? I don''t think you will let him grow as he is, will you?" she asked. The master''s smile immediately dropped, changing with a serious look. "I can''t allow him to get higher rank and be noticed by the other elders. He is so young and talented that if the other elders find out about him, they might try to rope him in with whatever tricks they have. At that point, I will have no choice but make sure he doesn''t get in my way of becoming the next sect leader, even if it means seriously injuring him through a fight." "I see, master. Let''s hope it doesn''t come to that." The master-disciple duo then walked up the mountain and returned to their residence. Chapter 160: Clones Alex sat down on his bed and looked at the book in front of him. "The hell did I pick up?" he wondered with a strange face as he looked at the title on the page. How to create a clone. "A clone? Like another one of yourself? Master didn''t say anything about these other than that it existed," he thought as he started reading. The book in fact told what methods one could use to make different clones. It didn''t teach the ''recipe'' on how to create a clone but taught more of the methods to create one. The first method mentioned in the book was using dead bodies. If you took a recently dead body, you could have it resurrected with a part of your soul inside of it. The upside of this method was that there was no other requirement aside from a few materials to fix the corpse before resurrecting it with your own soul. The downside was that it took forever to properly integrate your soul into the body since it used to host another one. Also, it needed the real body to control it at all times, otherwise, it would be like a mindless puppet. The second way mentioned was to grow another body using a sample of the real body to create an entirely new body. This new body would grow a soul and mind of its own with memories from the real body. The upside of this method was, the clone had its own mind and had free thought. The growing process could be accelerated if needed, and the clone would be ready in just a few weeks. The real body also didn''t need to provide part of its soul to cultivate a new body. The downside of this method was that the clone could not be controlled by the real body at all. Also, the clone did not have any unique bodily constitutions or spiritual roots. Meaning, the body was born a mortal. There were possibly other ways out there, but the book only mentioned the two. "So, I could make a body of my own? I wonder how that would work." He wondered. After he finished learning the book, he kept it inside and decided to immerse himself into the other knowledge he had gathered the last few days. Some regarding cultivation, some regarding talismans, some regarding formations, some regarding artifact creation, and most of all regarding alchemy. He had managed to find alchemy books that recorded stuff he hadn''t read even in Hong Wu Sect. "So the explosive pills that Huo Tu used most likely came from Spring Song sect, huh. And the talismans from Little Dawn sect?" he wondered. "Oh yes, this is interesting. Making specific pills catering to specific requirements. Finding out new recipes on your own? Can I even do that his early?" At this point, he knew about a couple of hundreds of recipes and needed to understand the reason behind why they did what they did. "I should start focusing on the elemental aspects of the pills more," he thought. He kept remembering more and more of what he read. "Hmm¡­ so Meridian Tempering helps make the meridians stronger and carry more Qi around. Is it different from the tempering I have to sit through during body cultivation? Now that I think about it, I''ve never seen what cultivation really looks like. I keep falling asleep as soon as I use it." He started wondering how different normal cultivation was from his body cultivation. "Since it says Mind Tempering helps increase your mental strength, I wonder if it will have any impact on my spiritual sea." After thinking about it for a bit more, he decided to eat some more cores. He found himself in the familiar landscape of his spiritual sea, fighting against a snake monster. "Urghh¡­ I hate not having my sword with me." He started throwing punches and palms of golden and yellow color. Within a few minutes, the snake was dead. From a small shadow at the surface of the lake, a yellow aura was released that devoured both the snake monster and Alex. ''Hmm¡­ should I breakthrough right now?'' he wondered. "I should wait until after today''s lesson at least," He thought. He decided to go check his progress in the training hall. After about half an hour, he had gotten all the results he needed to know. His physical attacks were doing damage as much as 3 realms higher than his normal attack. Introducing Qi to those physical attacks increased the damage by a small amount depending on the grade of the technique. At the moment he had only 2 physical attacking techniques. First was the Smiting blade which dealt the same damage as normal attacks, but had a more penetrating force behind it. While the second attack, the 1st strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword dealt 4 realms higher than his current realm. The Palm of the Sun and Iron Fist punch did the same amount of damage even though they weren''t reliant on the physical body. He could make sense of why the Palm of the sun was so strong. But Iron Fist punch was still a mystery to him. The Palm of the Sun used Yang energy, which his body and Qi provided plenty. However, he didn''t have anything that increased the power of the Iron fist punch other than the mystery blood essence that entered his body. The other attacks increased a little in damage compared to normal cultivators due to his thick Yang Qi and a body that went through Mortal Cleansing. Still, they weren''t as substantial as the other techniques. "I got strong so quick that I don''t even know exactly how strong I am. Now that I think about it, have I even tried flying in while? I should go do some tests in the forest before I log out for dinner." "You might want to go on a small walk as well, won''t you Pearl," he said as he looked at his left arm. Thinking that he got out of the Training hall after paying the fee and walked towards the southern forest on the other side of the sect crater. Chapter 161: Pearls First Battle It was close to 5 pm right now. Alex walked to the gate on the southern end of the sect crater. Calling it a gate could even be considered wrong, as it was just a small opening in the giant wall that prevented monsters from the Southern Forest from entering. He walked up to the small entrance and was stopped by the elders guarding the gate. "Badge!" an elder asked. Alex took out his badge and handed it to them. The elders recorded the badge number and handed it back to Alex. "You should know that since today is Friday, you won''t be exempt from the matches by leaving the sect right?" the elder asked. "Yes," Alex replied and walked out of the opening. He looked back at the wall and wondered," Is this the wall for the Scarlet City?" He watched the wall go around the outside of the forest and curve outward after reaching a bit further. "I wonder where the wall lies on Hong Wu sect." He walked a bit further and started running. He didn''t want to mess around with weak monsters on the outer side and needed at least a late Muscle tempering realm monster for what he was about to do. His running speed, with zero air resistance thanks to making the air frictionless, was beyond amazing. In just a few minutes, he reached what would have taken him an hour at his speed a month back. Now that he reached this far he decided to bring out Pearl. With a bright shine, Pearl came out of his left arm. He focused and saw the new stats on Pearl after the last few days of training. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Bone Tempering 6th Realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared) ] "You are stronger than I was back when I came to this forest," he said with a chuckle. "Come, let''s see if there are any monsters around for you to fight." He started walking in a certain direction while spreading his spiritual sense at a max distance without overstretching. Finally, he found a small monster with a shell on its back. [Smooth Pangolin: Bone Tempering 3rd Realm] "Oh, that is perfect for you. You should be able to win easily, right?" Alex made Pearl go and fight the pangolin. Alex looked at the monster and deduced, "since it has a shell, it must be a defensive monster and have bad offensive ability." Pearl didn''t know what to do at first, but after Alex explained that he had to fight with the Pangolin, Pearl sped up and reached the pangolin and started purring at him. The pangolin got surprised by the sudden incoming of Pearl and immediately got into a ball. "Meow," Pearl jumped forward and hit the ball with his paw. Like a football being hit by a professional player, the ball flew far until it hit a tree, and jolted awake a few birds. The tree had a small dent on the trunk as the ball fell to the ground, taking no damage. The birds in the tree saw Pearl running towards the ball and started to target him. Alex looked at the birds and realized they were in the lower realms of Bone Tempering, so he wasn''t scared. Still, he ran a little behind Pearl to make sure he doesn''t get swarmed by different enemies. Seeing the birds coming towards him, Pearl jumped high into the air and swung his claws at one of the birds. In a single hit, the bird was sent flying to the ground with most of its body broken. The bird was dead, and Alex had gotten the notification for obtaining its core and feathers. Pearl landed lightly on his feet, leaving Alex in stun behind. ''Just one hit?'' he truly hadn''t expected the disparity of a few levels to bring forth such a gap in strength. ''Is it perhaps because his body is also cultivated?'' he wondered. Training with Pearl, Alex had realized that the cultivation technique that Pearl used was one that both cultivated his Qi and Body. Only because it wasn''t compatible, Alex had to suffer through intense pain and only get rewarded with Body cultivation alone. ''At this stage, he must be as strong as a late bone tempering realm monster.'' After seeing the attack just now, Alex had no doubt that he had been underestimating Pearl until this point. Pearl ran off towards the pangolin when another bird started to swoop down and attack him with its sharp talons. The small Pearl didn''t even bother protecting himself. He took the full brunt of the attack and shoved it off like it was nothing. His body was stronger than the bird''s talons, and so the talons did not even put a scratch on his beautiful, white fur. Pearl once more jumped up to reach the bird, but by this point, all of the birds had flown away. They had some intelligence and had already realized that this was an enemy they couldn''t beat. Pearl landed on the sticks and stones in the forest, disappointed. He then ran towards the pangolin and nudged it a little. It didn''t move. Pearl cocked his head and didn''t know what to do. Alex had arrived at this point and he used his spiritual sense to see what was going on with the Pangolin. "Holy¡­" he was astonished. The pangolin''s inner body had mostly been destroyed and it was on its last breath. Alex used his Qi to crush its body a little and got the notification that it had died now. "No need to keep it suffering," he said as he looked at Pearl in a new light. He might look like a little cute fluffy ball of goodness, but that strength was anything but cute. "Although you have started to slow down, if you keep on getting stronger like this, I can''t say how long it would take for you to overtake me," Alex said, and then with a smile added, "Actually, I will look forward to the day when you are stronger than me if it ever comes." Chapter 162: Testing Strength Alex let Pearl fight for a bit longer. He kept finding monsters a little stronger than last time and had Pearl fight them. In the end, it was still the massacre. The cute, little guy could kill anything a realm lower than him in a single swing of his palm. Even monsters in his own realm struggled to stay alive. Only monsters 2 realms higher than him could threaten him. Along the way, he had seen quite a few alchemy materials by now and had taken them whenever he found one. He then found an area devoid of alchemy ingredients and no other monsters around. "Alright, that''s enough training against monsters. I came here to train and see exactly how strong I have become compared to the environment." He stood in front of a giant tree and reeled in his Qi so that it was hiding in his meridian and was no longer available around his body. His natural defense and offense dropped by over an entire minor realm. He made a fist and punched straight into the tree. The tree was about 2 meters in thickness and Alex punches the exact center. BOOM The tree rustled as hundreds of leaves started falling. As for the place itself where he hit, there was a gaping hole, at least 20 cm deep. "Wow, that is more than I would''ve imagined. " He looked at the hole and realized just how strong he was. "Fighting against people in your own range doesn''t exactly help you understand this sort of thing, does it?" he thought. He punched the tree a few more times and decided to use different attacks. Legs, elbows, shoulders, fingers, palm, chops. He used whatever he could. In the end, the tree fell down from the overwhelming amount of holes in it. Alex wasn''t even a little bit out of breath. He looked around with his spiritual sense to see if he had attracted anyone, but thankfully he hadn''t. He proceeded to the next tree about the same size as this one. He let the Qi he was keeping inside his meridian flow out to every part of his body. Power coursed through his body once more as his cultivation base returned back to Organ Tempering 3rd realm. "Alright, let''s see what happens with a minor realm higher cultivation base. Although I don''t think my cultivation base counts as a normal cultivation base," he chuckled to himself as he thought about it. He separates his cultivation from his body, but he couldn''t separate his body from his cultivation unless he resorted to Qi-based attacks. He prepped his fist once more, expecting to make a deeper hole this time. Without further ado, he punched the tree. BOOM This time the sound was so big, that it caught Alex himself off guard. He looked at his arm, or rather, he tried to look at his arm, but it was so deep inside the tree that it wasn''t even visible anymore. He sent his spiritual sense to see inside the tree where his fist was and realized that his fist wasn''t actually touching anything. He slowly sent the spiritual sense forward and realized that beyond where he punched was another massive hole. Following the hole, he realized that a chunk of the back of the tree''s trunk had been entirely destroyed. He quickly pulled out his arm and walked to the back to look at the tree. "Holy¡­" he was genuinely astounded at what he was seeing. The hole behind the tree was massive in size, almost as if an explosive had been set off right there. The small bits of the tree trunk were all over the ground in front of the hole. "Am I really that strong?" he was curious. Without hesitation, he gave one solid kick to the side of the tree and the whole tree fell to the ground. Its truck had been decimated. "This is beyond comprehension." He tried attacking a bunch more trees, and the result was the same. Some trees were stronger and could survive a few more hits, but in the end, they didn''t take more than 5 kicks and punches to go down. "What about my techniques?" he wondered and took out his True Mortal sword. With the sword, it only took him a single hit to cleanly chop off the tree. He didn''t even have to use the Smiting Blade technique or the 1st strike of Elusive Heavenly sword. He threw around other techniques, sending Qi-based attacks to the trees nearby. Most of them fell down with a single attack. Especially Iron Fist Punch and Palm of the Sun, they were the cream of the crops among the abilities he had. "I wonder when the growth abilities would level up," he wondered. He looked at the time and realized it was close to half-past 6, so he had to hurry back to the sect. Instead of running, however, he decided to see how fast flying would be for returning. He manipulated his Qi to carry himself and was pleasantly surprised that he was taken off the ground pretty easily. "Woah," he immediately slowed down the Qi outpour and balanced himself in mid-air. Then, he used the Qi to slowly push him from behind. At first, it was really slow, but soon enough, as he started using more and more Qi, he was flying at phenomenal speed. It was much slower than when using his movement speed but still moderately fast enough. "Hmm¡­ How about if I use the movement technique to remove all friction?" he wondered. He started moving his Qi to use Fluctuating Friction dance, as he coated his body with his Qi to make it have zero resistance with the Air. Suddenly, his speed in the air pretty much tripled. It was now nearly as fast as when he walked, and before he knew it, he had arrived back to the sect. He walked into the small gate and registered his name back. Thankfully, nobody had bothered to challenge him for a fight while he was gone. Chapter 163: Popular Alex walked back to his house to log out and go eat his dinner, happy that nobody cared enough about him to challenge him. Unbeknownst to Alex however, his reputation in the sect was steadily growing. Pretty much everyone who went down to the fighting stages had heard about the match between the Inner sect disciple and the core disciple where the inner sect disciple won against the core disciple, going as far as to even make him unconscious. The news spread like fire, and quickly 80% of the people were in the know. However, they only knew the name of the disciple and were unsure of how he looked like aside from the general description of a tall and lean body with long black hair. Some people higher than him were scared that he might come for them next. Most people lower than him were waiting for him to beat the upper disciples. Core disciples were intrigued as to how he managed to beat Huo Tu, who they knew had a very tough defense that even they couldn''t breakthrough. However, Huo Tu was still unconscious and they couldn''t ask him. Alex returned back from his final dinner in the cafeteria and got back to his room. However, instead of going back into the game, he looked at the time. "Hmm¡­ it''s 7:21 right now. I should pack my stuff right now. I can go play the game later when it''s time for the daily training." He went to the closet and took out the small luggage he had brought from his home. He took out all of his clothing and started packing it. His roommates had gone into the game before he had even thought of doing this, so he was left alone working on it. He didn''t mind it though. He packed everything but a pair of clothes that he would be wearing tomorrow. With that done, he finally went back to the game. He entered the game a little bit before his meeting with the master, so he decided to eat another one of the monster cores. He took out two monster cores. One belonging to a monster with a cultivation base of Organ Tempering 4th realm, and another belonging to a monster with the cultivation base of Bone tempering 7th realm. "Come out Pearl," he said as he sent his Qi to the tattoo on his left arm. Pearl came out in a flash and looked around confused, and he had rarely been called out in this room before. "Meow," he looked at Alex, all confused. But just then, he smelled the brilliant scent of a monster core and started to climb on top of Alex to find the core. Alex showed him the core when he reached on his shoulder and let him eat it. While he was eating that, Alex himself too decided to eat the core. With a single push to his mouth, the core vanished into this stomach and Alex to his spiritual sea. He saw the monster the core belonged to, a massive rhino-like monster with no horns. Similar to last time, it only took him a few minutes to defeat the monster, but he could visibly see the strength of the monster in higher realms having a stronger form in the spiritual sea. Once the monster was dead, a yellow aura once again came out from around a shadow at the surface of the sea, devouring both of them. Alex opened his eyes and said, "It should be fine to break through now, right?" So he opened his status page and hit [Breakthrough] without even looking at anything. He used up 2.5 million Qi at once and broke through to the 4th realm of Organ Tempering. He looked at Pearl and saw that he was done consuming the core as well. "Come, let''s go. Or we''ll be late," he said and let Pearl get back to his arm. He disappeared and walked to the leader''s building. When he finally reached the building, he saw that there was more than just his master. There were also Luo Mei, Liu Xin, and Meng Yun. He let the illusion drop and showed himself. "You''re finally here. I heard you''ve made quite a bit of ruckus out there today," Wen Cheng said as soon as he came. "Ruckus? Huh, Senior Brother, Senior Sister, what are you guys doing here?" Alex looked at them curiously. "Of course, we came after hearing what you did, little brother," Liu Xin said. "What I did? Did the information about my fight with Huo Tu spread to you guys somehow?" he asked. "Not just us, little brother," said Luo Mei and continued, "The whole sect knows about your match now." "Huh? Did the information spread that much?" he was shocked. "Oh no, no wonder even the First Elder came to recruit me. I didn''t think it would be such a big event." Wen Cheng''s eyes perked up, as did Luo Mei''s and Liu Xin''s. Wen Cheng asked, "Did you say the First Elder came to recruit you?" "Yes. He came by my house with a senior sister, his disciple I think, and tried to make me his disciple." He relayed what had taken place. Wen Cheng''s face got solemn, and asked, "And? What did you say? You didn''t reveal our relationship yet right?" he asked. "Oh, no. I only told him that I was not interested in being anyone''s disciple right now. He left after I told him that," Alex replied. "That should be enough, right master?" Liu Xin asked. "I would say that''s a crisis averted if you ask me," Luo Mei said so too. However, Wen Cheng fell into deep contemplation, and he finally said, "Qiu Ju is not a man that would give up so easily. He will come back to recruit you a few times more. However, that is not the problem now. The problem is that you have been recognized by everyone in the sect as a genius, so the Elders will come after you to make you their disciple." "And not agreeing to a single one would make you the enemy of all of their disciples." Chapter 164: Heaven Impacts once more Alex and the rest of the group fell into thought. Finally, after a while, Alex said, "Will the Elders do something to me?" he asked. He was afraid that if the Elders themselves get in the way, then he would have little way to get out of the situation. Even his nigh-invincible Immortal Concealment technique could be detected if it were the Elders. They were after all a major realm higher than him. "No, that won''t happen. The Elders care either too much about the sect, or at the very least too much about their face to something so underhanded. However, they would start sending their disciples to mess with you. They won''t let you learn or train the entire week, and continuously register you to battles, trying to tire you and maybe eventually beat you." "If they do that, you won''t have enough time in the day to focus on yourself and go do something productive or maybe register your own fight to get to a higher rank. Who knows honestly what they would do? But they will try to hinder you, that''s for sure. Especially to not let the other Elders have you." Alex thought for a moment and said, "That should be fine then. At the very least, I am confident in beating any of the students I meet in the sect for now." Wen Cheng got a little surprised at such an ostentatious statement from his disciple. "What do you mean you can beat anyone? You think you can beat the core disciples?" he asked. "I should be able to, but that would be revealing all my secrets, master," he replied. Wen Cheng started getting more and more curious. "What do you mean? What other secrets do you have?" he asked. Alex stopped talking for a second and thought for a while. ''Should I tell them?'' he contemplated for a bit and said, "Let''s go inside first." He walked into the training hall where nobody could eavesdrop into. "Here is the thing master," he said as he brought out an old, dusty-looking book. The moment they saw it, both Wen Cheng and Luo Mei were surprised. "The book from the auction? You got it?" he asked. "Yes. Master bought it for me since I could read it," he said. The moment he said that both Wen Cheng and Luo Mei''s eyes turned wide, while Liu Xin looked at them wondering why they reacted in such a way. "Wait, did you say you can read it?" Luo Mei asked in surprise. "What is the book about?" Wen Cheng asked, accepting his disciple''s words without questioning. He had seen enough to be deterred by such small things at this point. "It''s a technique called Heaven''s Impact, that lets you use Spiritual sense to attack the other people''s mind. Depending on how different our mental capacity is, I can make them faint like I did Huo Tu back in the fighting stage today," he explained. "So, you really did read that language," Wen Cheng said in shock. "Does that mean you''ve read the language in the black stele as well?" "What is going on?" Liu Xin asked and Luo Mei explained to him. It was his turn to get shocked now. "But master, that stele has been here since before the sect even transferred here right?" he asked. "Yes, but if he can read it, it might help us know about its origins." Wen Cheng said. "Actually master, I can''t read that stele. I have tried it earlier and I felt like I was close to death." He explained the circumstances under when and how he nearly lost all of his spiritual sense and was almost hit with a spiritual attack from the black stele. Wen Cheng looked confused. "Why use spiritual sense at all if you can read it?" he asked. "Oh, uhh¡­ how do I explain this. I don''t exactly read the language. It''s more like I look over it with my spiritual sense and after enough time, the knowledge comes to me." "If it were normal language, I wouldn''t even have to use spiritual sense, but since it''s not, I have to. Which turned out to be a bad idea when concerned with that Black Stele. You guys shouldn''t use spiritual sense on the black stele either. It''s really dangerous." He cautioned the three. Meng Yun was standing behind Luo Mei, listening to the conversation. ''Attacking someone''s mind? Like what I do with my flute?'' she wondered. "Alright, let''s see what it can do. Use it on use, little brother," Liu Xin said as he walked in front. Alex hesitated for a bit, but then remembered that she was perfectly fine after using it on her, so he decided to do it. Without giving Liu Xin any chance to prepare himself, Alex used Heaven''s impact. A whirlpool appeared in his spiritual sea that drained an eighth of his spiritual sea, which turned into a mist that floated up and formed the shape of a fist. It immediately flew towards Liu Xin''s head. He wasn''t even ready when suddenly, he lost consciousness. His whole body went limp as he fell to the ground with a loud sound. "Wahh, Senior Brother?" Luo Mei immediately ran forward to pick him up. "Urghh¡­ " Liu Xin couldn''t form any words as his head hurt him like crazy. "What¡­. What was that?" he said as he woke up with his head in his arms. ''Huh? Is senior brother''s mental strength much weaker than master''s? She was able to stop herself from falling even a little bit, which senior brother fell to the ground,'' he started evaluating the two and quickly remembered, ''oh right, Master did say she ate some pills that increased her mental strength. That should be the reason why,'' he thought. Wen Cheng watched as Liu Xin barely got up from the floor, eyes moving everywhere as he couldn''t focus on anything immediately. "Are you okay?" he asked. "I¡ª I''m fine, master," Liu Xin replied. Wen Cheng then turned around to Alex and said, "It seems we were wrong in worrying about you." Chapter 165: My best Earth Grade pill? "Little brother¡­ that was too strong," Liu Xin said as he tried to stand still, his head still hurting a bit. Alex looked at Liu Xin, feeling a little guilty. "I''m sorry, Senior Brother. I should have told you when I was going to attack," he said with a hint of sadness in his voice. "It''s okay. In fact, it''s better this way since I get to see the actual effect of the attack. And I must say, it''s stronger than I would''ve expected. However, are you sure you can win against the disciples in the higher realms?" he asked. "Higher realms? Wouldn''t this work well against anyone without spiritual sense?" he asked. "I don''t think so, Junior Brother. I think you are mistaking the spiritual sense for mental strength. One can have high mental strength without having a spiritual sense. I don''t know if the other way around is possible or not, but anyone who is in the Mind Tempering realm should be able to get back up from your attack within 10 seconds. Unless you can somehow beat them to a victory in the 10 seconds, I don''t think you will be fine while fighting against them," Liu Xin said. Alex was left speechless for a few seconds. ''That''s right. Mind Tempering does increase the mental strength of a cultivator, and Heaven''s impact''s description does say that the damage is the difference between our mental prowess. Although gaining spiritual sense might have increased my mental prowess quite a bit, that doesn''t mean that other people won''t have it as well,'' he thought. Seeing that he was silent for quite a while, Wen Cheng finally spoke. "Stop scaring little Yu. Don''t worry, little Yu. There are only 7 disciples in the Mind Tempering realm and one of them is your senior sister. So effectively, you only have these 6 to worry about. And they won''t be able to come after that easily without the entire sect learning about their masters trying to silence an inner sect disciple." "Oh," Alex finally stopped thinking. He felt like a load had been taken off of his mind. "However, we should still think of something." Wen Cheng started to think of ideas to keep the elders away from his disciple. Just then, Alex spoke once more. "Umm¡­ Master? I don''t think we will have to do anything actually. At least, not for the next 2 weeks. Perhaps, even more, depending on the competition." "What are you planning little brother?" Luo Mei inquired. "Nothing really. I just thought I will go back to Hong Wu Sect tomorrow evening. After that, the Elders should be unable to do anything to me right? Also master said that the annual competition is coming up next, and I will have to prepare for that. I have ignored Alchemy for quite a while now. I might be getting rusty." Wen Cheng thought for a while and said. "Hmm¡­ Alright, that makes sense. Although there are still 2 more days, I don''t think there is anything you can do by staying here. At least back in Hong Wu Sect, you could get a little better in alchemy." The others in the room nodded as well. "Oh, now that I think about it, I don''t remember asking this, but how is your alchemy training. Have you made any progress? If not, you can leave the Hong Wu sect and come here. You have shown so much progress that you will definitely be somebody big in the future by staying here." He tried to steal Alex away from Hong Wu Sect. Alex chuckled a little. "Don''t worry master. I have made quite a bit of progress. Me studying is more than worth it," he said. "Oh, you act like you''ve made quite a few earth-grade pills by now. How many have you made?" Wen Cheng asked. Alex tried to remember, but it took him a lot of time to. "What''s wrong?" Wen Cheng asked," are you not answering because you have not made any yet?" "Oh, no master. It''s just that I have made so many that it''s hard to remember exactly how many. But it should be over 200 by now." As if a noise-removing formation had just been employed in the room, everyone went silent. Only after a while did Luo Mei finally manage to speak. "Umm¡­ Junior Brother, did you say you made 200 Earth grade pills?" she asked. "Is that so surprising? I thought you guys knew I was talented. Didn''t master tell you anything?" he asked as he turned towards Wen Cheng. Wen Cheng''s eyes were wide. He shook his head a little and said, "No. She only mentioned that you were talented. After seeing your speed in cultivation and learning new techniques, I thought I knew what she meant." "Oh, ok well, that was what she meant then," he said. He didn''t know what else to say. "What is the highest harmony of the earth-grade pills you''ve made?" Luo Mei asked. "Hmm¡­49," Alex said. """49??!""" All 3 of them shouted at once. "You''ve made pills with 49% harmony?" Luo Mei shouted. "How many of such pills have you made, little brother?" Liu Xin asked. "When did you manage to make such a pill so fast?" Wen Cheng asked with his eyes wide. "One at a time please," Alex said. "Yes, I''ve made a 49% harmony pill. I have only made one of such a pill, however, there are a few that came close to it among the different earth grade pills." "Why are you guys so hung up on it though? It''s not even my best pill." Alex had a smile on his face. Suddenly a thought ran through the heads of all the three master disciples. Even Meng Yun in the back had her eyes nearly pop out when she heard this. "Uhh¡­ Little brother, you don''t mean to say that¡­ uh¡­" Liu Xin never finished the sentence. "Yes. Just before I left the Hong Wu sect to come here. The last pill I made there was a Heaven grade pill with exactly 50% harmony." Chapter 166: Talisman and Armor "This¡­" Wen Cheng didn''t know what to say. He was having trouble coming up with words to form sentences to speak right now. Luo Mei and Liu Xin were the same. Alex on the other hand was just having fun. After a while, they finally calmed down. "Is that the only Heaven-grade pill you made?" Wen Cheng asked. "Yes. I haven''t been able to make another one since then. Although, I should be able to once I go back and focus only on Alchemy." "Hmm¡­ that should help you," Wen Cheng said. "Alright then. All of you go back to your residence. You too, Yu Ming. Go take a rest for today. You''ve been training every day for 2 weeks now. In fact, I don''t think you''ve cultivated in the last 5 days, have you?" Wen Cheng asked. "No, master," he replied. "Yeah, you should not miss those. Don''t just eat pills for your Qi. Cultivation is more than just gathering Qi. A little break in between is not bad, but you shouldn''t go too long without cultivating. "I understand, Master." Everyone left the room and started going back to their own houses. "Yu Ming, wait a minute. I need to talk to you about something," Wen Cheng said. "Yes, master?" he asked. "I decided to wait until you were a Core disciple, but it seems that they will come after you regardless of what rank you are in, so here you go." Wen Cheng took out a small talisman and handed it to him. "This is a talisman that can defend against the attack of a True Lord realm cultivator. Keep it on your body at all times, since you don''t know when you might need it." Alex looked at the normal-looking talisman and was surprised that such a little thing could withstand the attack of a True Lord realm cultivator. ''Isn''t True lord the third of the True realms? This thing can block their attacks?'' he thought to himself. "However, It can only block the attack for 1 time. So make sure that when it does happen, use your escape technique immediately. Since you have the concealment technique, you should be able to get out of harm''s way soon," Wen Cheng said. "I understand, Master," Alex said as he kept the talisman inside his robes, instead of his storage bag. "Also, take this," Wen Cheng took out an armor from the storage bag. Alex was a little surprised as he saw the armor. The armor looked very weird as instead of having 1 opening for neck, 2 for arms, and 1 for torso; it had 1 opening for the neck, 4 for arms, and a small opening for ¡­ another arm? "What type of armor is this master? Can I even wear this?" he asked. "Hahaha¡­ This is not for you silly. This is for your beast. Take it." Wen Cheng handed it to Alex as well. Alex curiously looked around the armor and felt that it was quite sturdy. Actually more sturdy than he could have imagined. He turned the armor all over and started to get confused as he saw the entire surface. There were 2 problems with the armor. Firstly, it was too big. Pearl was at most the size of two palms now, but this armor would fit a grown adult''s torso in it easily. Secondly, there was not a single seam in the armor, almost as if it was made entirely from a single ingredient. Looking at the material it was made up of, Alex thought that was impossible as the various green and brown colors would say otherwise. So, he decided to ask his master. "Master, do I wait until Pearl is as big as this armor before I make him wear it? I don''t think he will need an armor by the time he gets this big. Also, how do I even make him wear this? Do I just put Pearl inside here and wait for him to grow into this armor?" he asked. Wen Cheng chuckled at the hilarity of the statement and said, "Of course not silly. Just refine the treasure and you can freely use it on any beast companion you have. It can freely change its shape and size to match your beast." "Oh," Alex said, finally understanding. "How strong is it, master? What grade is it?" he asked. "This armor is a Common Heaven grade armor. The armor itself can block the damage of an early Mind Tempering realm cultivator. With your cat''s current cultivation, he should probably be able to block up to Mind Tempering 4th realm attacks." "Hmm¡­ Although, I don''t think that will be much help to you since your cat is so small and cant really block attacks." "I see¡­" Alex kept looking at the armor. "Oh, and also, It can stay with your beast in their personal space inside your body, so you don''t have to keep on putting the armor on them when they come out." Wen Cheng seemed to really like that part about the armor. "So, I just need to refine it and it''s fine right?" Alex asked. "Yes," Wen Cheng replied and he sighed as he continued, "honestly, I wanted to give you an armor as well, but with your current rate of body cultivation, there isn''t a single armor in the treasure hall that would be suitable for you. Also, I wanted to give your a sword too, but you already have that True grade sword, so I decided to change the sword for the defensive talisman." "I see, thank you, Master," Alex bowed a little towards Wen Cheng. "You don''t have to bow to me. When I first got you as a disciple, I had already promised you about 2 artifacts from the treasure hall. Although one of them isn''t really an artifact, I''m just keeping my promise." Wen Cheng said. "Either way, Thank you, master," Alex said. "Alright, you can go now," Wen Cheng said as he sent Alex back for the night. Saying his goodbyes, Alex too went back to his house number 86 to cultivate. Chapter 167: Moving Alex walked into his room and felt it a bit weird to be here during the nighttime. The only time he hadn''t left the house at night was when he had the Blood essence enter him and had fallen unconscious for over 12 hours. "Well, it''s not like something different is going to happen tonight either," he said as he chuckled to himself remembering, or rather not remembering, how each night of cultivation went. He sat down on the bed and closed his eyes. Abruptly, he opened them again. "It''s been so long that I nearly forgot," he said as he took out a small pink flower from his storage bags, the Spirit Cleansing Lily. "I can''t forget about increasing my Spiritual Sea," he thought as he closed his eyes and started to cultivate. Slowly, he fell into a trance and fell asleep. Early in the morning, just a few minutes past 6 am, Alex opened his eyes. He looked down at the flower and realized it was not there. He smiled. He sent out his Spiritual Sense and his smile went even wider as he realized that the Spiritual sea had grown once more. It was now 3 times as wide as the first time he unlocked it. "So, it will last a long while, if I don''t over-extend it right? Actually, it should be pretty much forever." He was happy thinking about this fact. ''Alright, let''s leave.'' He then logged out. He woke up and took off his helmet. He looked at the helmet, thinking this was the last time he would be using this. ''Well, I should stop being lazy and go buy my own,'' he thought. He freshened up and got back. He changed into a different set of clothes and made sure nothing of his was left behind. After he was all set, he was ready to leave¡­ except, "Why is she not picking up? Is she still in the game?" Alex wasn''t able to get a hold of his cousin, without whom, he wouldn''t get the address. He called a few times and decided to wait for her to call back. Time slowly passed by and it was 7 am now. The roommates slowly started logging out of the game and saw the Alex was all packed. "Are you ready to leave already?" Matt asked. "Yes. Oh yeah, Eric, here''s your helmet. Thank you so much for letting me use this. You can''t imagine how much this meant to me." He handed the helmet back to Eric who just smiled and said, "Don''t worry about it." TRING TRING Suddenly, his phone started ringing. He looked at the screen and it was his cousin Hannah. He picked up and could immediately hear the loud voice from the other side. "Alex? I''m so sorry. I was busy answering some important emails and I lost the track of time. Also, just my luck that my damn phone was on silent for some reason. Anyway, are you prepared to leave? I will text you the location now," she bombarded his ear with a whole bunch of things. "Okay, sister. You don''t have to worry about it. Just send me the location info and I will be on my way," he said. "Alright. Let me do that real quick. Call me when you are near okay?" she said and ended the call before she could even hear a reply. Alex looked at the phone and just shook his head. "Was that your cousin you are going to stay with?" asked Logan. "Yeah. She will send me the location soon and I will have to leave," he said. TING The location info arrived. "Alright, I should leave now. She will be waiting for now." Alex started to get up to leave. "Wait, let us escort you to the gate." The three of them stood up too. "You guys don''t have to," Alex tried to refuse but they wouldn''t budge. "It''s just the gate. Besides, we have to leave for breakfast right now anyway," Matt said. Unable to refuse anymore, Alex let them follow along. At the gate of the university, Alex stopped a cab and got on it. "See you guys in class," he waved the 3 goodbyes and finally left. In 10 minutes or so, he reached the location mentioned in the message. He paid the cab driver and got off. He looked around but couldn''t see his cousin at all. "This is the right place, right?" he thought as he started calling her once again. "Sister, I''m here," he said. "So fast. Wait, let me get down." She ended the call. Alex looked at the tall building in front of him. The building was mostly gray in color and was similar in height to the other buildings around it. A height of over 10 floors. ''Oh my god. She lives in such a tall building.'' He was quite surprised. Within a minute, Hannah came out of the door. "Ah, you''re finally here. Vinny left a few days ago, so I''ve been bored all alone in the apartment. C''mon, let''s go in." She made him follow her. They got into an elevator and Hannah pressed button 11. Alex was surprised. "You live on the 11th floor, Sister?" he asked. "Yeah. That was the only floor available to us when we moved in." She said. "Wait, the whole floor is just for you?" Alex asked in surprise. "It was meant for four different people, but now it''s just me, i guess. oh, and you too now." Hannah chuckled a bit. "How much does the rent cost here then?" he asked. He didn''t know anything about renting places and could only wonder. "Well, the monthly rent is around $10,000. The location is very populated, so it just costs a lot. I had to pay $2500 before, but ever since the other girls left, I have been stuck with it all." Her reply shocked Alex. $10000 dollars was a lot of money. ''I will be broke in 2 months if I had to start paying for the rent,'' he thought. DING Finally, the door of the elevator opened and revealed what lied beyond it. Chapter 168: New Place "Come, this is your new home for probably the next 3 years of university," Hannah said as she opened the door in the hallway outside of the elevator. Alex walked inside to see another door to his front and two smaller doors to his either side. "These are for shoes and coats, don''t worry about them and come on it," Hannah said as she opened the actual door to the house. Alex walked inside and saw a massive lounge room with white walls and gray sofas. There was a big TV in the middle of the room above the fireplace. ''No wonder it costs $10,000 a month. But still, isn''t that a lot?'' he wondered. "Come, I will show you the other rooms," she said as she walked towards another small corridor. There were 2 doors on either side and she opened one of them. "This will be your room from now on." Alex walked in a saw a massive room with light blue walls. The room was about the size of his dorm room, but instead of 4 different people, only he was going to stay there now. The room, however, was all but empty and only had a closet in it. "No bed?" he asked. "No. This room used to be used by the first girl that lived here, and she took everything in here when she left. We wanted to put a bed in here, but since no one was staying, we laid it off until someone came along." "We can go buy one today. I''m free all day," Hannah said. "It''s okay sister. Actually, I don''t even know if I will be needing a bed in the first place, since they will be releasing capsules next week where we can sleep all we want," Alex said. "Don''t be silly. Sleeping in a bed, and sleeping in a capsule are two entirely different things. You absolutely need a bed," Hannah reprimanded her little cousin. "Alright sister, if you say so." Alex just accepted her words as truth and didn''t go on further about getting just the capsule. "Okay, keep your luggage there and come eat some breakfast. You must be hungry," she said as she headed back out. Beyond the lounge area was a half-open room, which was the kitchen. Hannah put some bread in the toaster and started frying some eggs. Alex happily ate all of that. After they finished the breakfast, Hannah proceeded to show him more of the house. About 10 minutes later, she finally stopped when her phone got a notification. She picked up her phone and smiled when she saw what was in it. Alex was curious as to what could make his cousin smile like that but refrained from asking. If she deemed it important, she would tell him herself. ''Her phone looks quite good. I should probably buy myself one as well.'' Although the phone he currently had was a birthday present, it was a cheap model and was thus quite slow. '' I should get myself a laptop as well,'' he thought. After learning that he could complete his first semester of university without requiring a laptop, he had decided to buy it later. That later was now. ''What else do I need? Let''s see¡­ a bed, a VR helmet, a phone, a laptop, maybe some clothes as well.'' "I have something to do for a few minutes. Why don''t you go watch TV or something? I will come back, and we can go shopping," Hannah said and left Alex alone in the living room. Alex stayed behind and watched TV for quite a while. Since he had nothing else to do, he just switched the channels over and over, until he landed on a news channel with a flashing headline. Alex read the headline and thought, ''should I set a reminder so that I catch it?'' "Hey, are you ready?" Hannah suddenly appeared. "Oh yeah, I''m ready to go anytime," Alex said and got up. "Okay, let''s leave." They both got out of the house and Hannah locked the doors. "Oh yeah, keep this." She handed him a key. "This is the key to the house. You should keep it for now," she said. "Do we have to take a cab?" Alex asked. "No, the market is right around the corner, we can just walk there," Hannah replied. "What do you need exactly other than the bed?" she asked. Alex relayed everything he had thought of buying earlier. "Oh wow. You really want to buy so much huh? Thankfully, your big sister is rich and she can buy you anything," Hannah said with a smug face. "Oh, have Aunt and Uncle been sending you money?" he asked. "No silly. I''m talking about my own money. I have already told them that I don''t need their money anymore since I have a lot of it," Hannah said. "You have a job, sister?" he asked. He had never heard of his sister working during the last 2 times they had met. "No. I am making money from the game." Hannah seemed quite proud. Alex was surprised. "You make money from the game too, sister?" he asked. Hannah looked towards him with a curious look and asked," What do you mean ''too''? Do you earn money too?" she asked. "Yeah, I''ve been making pills in the game that I later sell to auctions. I have sold it a few times and was able to accumulate quite a bit of money," he said. "Not bad. Making money in this game is quite easy, so you shouldn''t have a lot of problems with it," Hannah said. But then she thought about something and said," Actually, maybe it''s just me that got really lucky, and making money isn''t that hard. How much money have you even made till now?" Alex thought for a second as to whether saying it was a good thing or not, but since she was his sister, he decided to say it. "I have managed to make about 25 thousand dollars by now. I should have some increments from my earning tomorrow," he said. Chapter 169: Shopping "Oh, 25,000 dollars? Not bad. So, I wasn''t alone case like my friends said." Hannah''s reaction was nowhere near what Alex would''ve expected it to be. She seemed to be completely fine with the idea of someone making 25,000 dollars a month after playing a game. This made him curious. So much so that he couldn''t help but ask. "Sister, you said you earned money. How much do you earn?" he asked. "Umm¡­ I don''t know. A couple of hundred thousand dollars. But that is just cause I am much higher in cultivation than you. So, if you reach my realm, you will make the same amount as well." Hannah seemed to be completely unphased by what she had just said. Yet, those words were like bombs to Alex. ''Hundreds of thousands of dollars? Do people make that? How does a company like Deva Corp even survive after giving that much money away to just a single player?'' Alex couldn''t understand. "What exactly do you do to earn so much money, sister?" he asked. Hannah seemed to be waiting for this question because when she was asked, she started giggling like a little child. "Hehehe. I don''t do anything actually. The money just comes flooding in." Hannah was still giggling. Alex didn''t know what to say. ''Money comes in without doing anything?''. He was surprised to hear that. "How exactly does that work, Sister?" he asked. "Don''t tell anyone the secret okay?" she said while moving in close to whisper, " I got married." "What?" Alex instinctively shouted. "Keep your voice down," she said while making sure so one heard her. Alex hurriedly quieted down. "What do you mean you got married? To whom? Do Uncle and Aunt know?" he asked. "In the game, Silly. The game. I got married to someone in the game," Hannah clarified. "Oh," Alex finally said in understanding. "Who did you marry?" he asked. "His name is Long Huan, he is really, really handsome, and he also turned out to be really rich," Hannah said. "Turned out to be?" Alex was confused. "Yeah, I didn''t know at first. He just randomly started talking to me and before we knew it, we were together most of the time. Soon after that, he asked me to marry him, and since it wouldn''t hurt trying once before doing the real thing here, I married him." Hannah had a little blush on her checks that she tried to desperately get rid of, but it never went away. "Do you like him, Sister?" he asked. "Yes, of course. He''s so sweet. Also, I didn''t randomly get married to somebody I didn''t think was worthy, okay? It was mutual liking. Either way, let''s not talk about this anymore. It''s too embarrassing to think about." Hannah started walking a little fast. "Ok, Ok Sister. Now, wait for me," Alex walked a little faster as well. Within 5 minutes, both of them came upon of rather large building. It was a store for different types of furniture. "Let''s see. You will need a bed, some small furniture by the bed, a studying desk and a chair. Do you need a bookcase?" she turned to Alex who simply just shook his head. Hannah went ahead and chose what she would think would be nice. Alex didn''t mind since she seemed to have experience doing this and was choosing some good-looking furniture and other things to go along with them. After selecting all of them, they went ahead to pay for it. Hannah decided to pay for it herself and was about to take out money, when Alex said, "What are you doing sister? I will pay for myself. Keep our money." "It''s okay, I will do it. You just keep your money. Uncle and Aunt will need it." Hannah didn''t back down and insisted on paying it herself. "No way sister. Don''t worry about mom and dad, I will have some money coming my way tomorrow as well." They argued for a bit as to who would pay and in the end, Hannah reluctantly backed down letting Alex pay for it. Learning that the furniture would be delivered to them later on, they decided to go buy the other stuff. In another store with big glass doors and windows, Alex saw a bunch of phones and laptops. "Let''s go in," Hannah once again walked in first. They walked in and saw a large number of people inside the store, browsing through the different items in there. "Look around and see what you like." Alex decided to look at the smartphone section first. "Woah," he was surprised. "I didn''t know phones could get this expensive." Most of the phones in there were between $800 to $1500. He who had a $150 phone, couldn''t imagine using such an expensive phone. "Hmm¡­ isn''t that there a new model?" Hannah said as she pointed at one of the phones. "I don''t know much about phones sister," Alex replied. "I think it is. You should get that one. It''s really good." Alex decided to do so and chose that phone. He then moved on to laptops. When he saw the laptops, he was floored at the variety. Even a laptop with similar-looking names was completely different on the inside. "You know much about laptops? Cause I don''t," Hannah said. "A little. I can tell what''s good from my Computer Science classes. However, I can''t tell how good they are so we will just have to go off of the numbers they provide," Alex replied. They decided to ask the store clerk which laptop was better. The store clerk politely explained the features and differences of the different laptops. At the end of that, Alex chose one of the better ones and bought it. "Alright, now that we are done with phone and laptop, let''s just buy the remaining item and get it over with." Hannah was starting to get a little hungry by this point. Finally, she took Alex deeper into the store, and only then did Alex see what he truly wanted. A VR helmet. Chapter 170: More shopping There were not a lot of people at the place where the helmets were stored. Most people were waiting for the new capsule to arrive and didn''t want to waste money right now. Alex looked at the brand new helmets on the shelves and was quite shocked at how many there were. Not just in amount, but in different brands too. There were barely any helmets for Eternal cultivation. ''Why did Deva corp even decide to make helmets if they were making capsules in the first place? From a business perspective, that doesn''t make sense. Aren''t they losing money in production?'' he wondered. He then looked at the other helmets in the business. They were nothing like the one made for Eternal Cultivation. These were the helmets, about which he mostly learned in the VR class. Apparently, due to having proprietary technology and design, no one was allowed to know how it worked or was able to produce such amazing realistic senses. So his class was stuck with these other VR technologies that were trash when compared to Deva corp''s helmets. "What can I do for you?" the Clerk asked seeing the two of them come towards the counter. "One of those please," Hannah said the moment she reached there. "The EC Helmet?" The clerk asked in surprise. "Yes, please," Hannah said. "Dear customer, we are required to let you know that a better version of the helmet is going to be available in about a week. Deva Corp will start selling a capsule at about the same price range for a similar amount of money," The clerk said. "Yes, we know, and we still want it." The clerk sighed and took one out from the shelves. They went to the front of the store where they paid for all of the items at once. Together with the phone, laptop, and helmet, Alex had to pay exactly $3200. ''Oh my god. Just one day of shopping and I''m already down so much money.'' The furniture had cost quite a bit as well, but not as much as these 3 items. They got a free backpack with the items, which they carried the 3 things in. "Let''s go back and eat something. The clothing section is on the other side of the house, which we can go to after eating." They walked back to their home. Alex was still surprised every time he saw the large building, but after being in the city for a month, he was starting to get used to it. They took the elevator back to their apartment and Hannah proceeded to cook some food. "You need some help sister?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ okay. Cut the onions and potatoes, while I prepare the other dishes," she said and proceeded to make the other food. Alex looked at the vegetables that were already on the table. He took a knife from the counter and started cutting them. "Hmmm¡­." He voiced out as he stopped cutting. Hannah looked back hearing him and asked, "What''s wrong?" "Oh, uh nothing. It just felt a little awkward chopping the onions for some reason. Maybe not cutting something for over a month has messed with my ability to cut." Alex tried to squeeze his palms almost as if that would reawaken his senses. "Oh, okay." Hannah went back to cooking. Alex resumed cutting as well. He finished the onions and proceeded to cut the potatoes. He still felt awkward cutting them but kept at it. Suddenly, "OUCH!" Alex screamed. "What''s wrong?" Hannah immediately came to him after hearing him scream. DRIP DRIP Droplets of blood fell onto the marble floor. Hannah then saw that Alex had ended up cutting his finger while cutting the potatoes. "Oh, no. Are you okay?" she rushed to check his finger. Thankfully, it was just a shallow cut and he was fine. "Yeah, I''m fine. I just cut a little." Alex held his finger up high. "Let me get some bandages," Hannah said as she left the room and came back with a small bandage and put it on his finger. "Honestly, you should have told me you were bad at it if you couldn''t cut potatoes. I would''ve done it myself." Alex''s finger had now stopped bleeding after the bandage was put on. "I know how to cut them, Sister. Or rather, I knew it. It seems I have lost my muscle memory. Probably because I spend so much time in the game," he said. "I think so too. You should exercise every day after playing the entire night. You probably have a really bad lifestyle right now with only playing games and sleeping. " Hannah chided quite a bit. "I guess so," he said. "Alright, go and rest. I will do the rest," she said as she took over the potatoes and started cutting them. Alex went outside to the lounge room and sat there watching the TV once more. "Have I really gone that bad with the rest of my skills as well?" he wondered. He continued watching TV, flicking through the channels but nothing fun was on it. So, he took out his new smartphone and started setting it up. After a while, he finally managed to get it working properly. When it finally worked, he was absolutely floored at how fast it was. He switched the number from his old phone and started using it. "Cmon, the food is ready," Hannah shouted from the kitchen. "Coming sister," Alex said and went to eat his food. The food was delicious, much better than the ones made in the cafeteria. After eating, they went to the clothing stores on the next side of town and bought a bunch of clothes for themselves. Just as they were returning from their shopping, their furniture was delivered as well. They opened the door for the delivery people and had them set up the bed and the other furniture. Alex put his clothes inside the closet and finally, after a long day''s work laid on his bed. Chapter 171: Back to Hong Wu Sect Alex set up his new, expensive laptop. He was really fascinated by how good the laptop was. He quickly set up everything required for his school and used it for a bit. At around 3 PM, Hannah asked him to go eat something. "Oh, this is quite tasty," Alex said as he ate the stir-fried noodles. "Right, Vinny taught me this recipe. I try to eat this whenever I can," Hannah said. "Oh yeah, sister, when is dinner? By what time should I log out?" he asked. "Dinner? Don''t worry about it. I will set quite a lot of it now and put it in the fridge. You can heat it up in the microwave whenever you want and eat it," Hannah said. "Oh, That is quite convenient," he said. "Yeah, we''ve been doing that ever since the game arrived more than 2 months ago." After finishing his food, Alex went back to his room, while Hannah remained for a little longer to prepare the dinner. Alex took out his new helmet and quickly found a socket to plug it into. With everything set, he laid down in his comfy bed, put on his helmet, and logged in. Alex opened his eyes inside the house. He looked around, and then looked at the time. "I guess it''s time for me to leave," he thought out loud. "Master, I''m leaving soon." He sent out a message on a communication talisman meant for his master. He expected his master to come and give him a farewell, but instead, he just got a message telling him to meet his senior brother before leaving. "Guess, I''ll just go say my farewells to Senior Sister, or who knows how much she will beat me when she meets me next." He laughed to himself and made his way to Luo Mei''s house. There was barely anyone on the mountain, and those that were didn''t bother with him. Only after walked higher up the mountain did he have to change his aura to not be noticed by others. He found Luo Mei still inside her house, learning some sort of book. "Oh, Junior Brother, you''re here," she said. He looked around and didn''t find Meng Yun, who usually was with Luo Mei. ''Is she logged out?'' he wondered. Based on her speed of cultivation, she could only be a player who had joined the Tiger sect from very early on. As to give her her privacy, he hadn''t asked or even talked about it with Meng Yun. After, she was just playing a game like him. "Are you ready to leave, Junior Brother?" she asked. "Yes, that is what I came to say, Senior Sister," he said. After a couple of exchanges, he bade farewell walked down the large, main road straight to the gate. There, he asked an Elder and was taken to his Senior Brother. "Oh, you''re leaving already?" Liu Xun asked when he saw Alex ready to leave. "Yes," Alex replied. "Alright. Master wanted me to tell you a few different things. He wanted to tell you himself, but he understood how hard it was for you with so many Elders in front of your door." Liu Xun shook his head. ''Elders in front of my house? Hope they don''t get mad just because I ignored them,'' he thought. "Anyway, the no-reply tactic must''ve worked since all the Elders left you so soon. Oh yeah, I completely forgot about the master''s message," Liu Xun said. "What is it, Senior Brother?" he asked. "Since it is unlikely you will be representing Tiger Sect in the Annual sect competition, Master wants you to focus solely on improving the Hong Wu Sect''s points in the competition. "We are pretty much guaranteed to upgrade to a First Grade sect even if we fail a majority of the events, but Hong Wu Sect requires quite a lot still, so you should do it. " "Also, don''t worry about hiding your face or anything in front of the Tiger Sect. Master plans to reveal your relationship the next time you come back to the sect." Liu Xun finished speaking. "I see. I will do as master says," Alex replied. "Also, can you return it to the library for me brother? I completely forgot." Alex handed the book about clones to Liu Xun. "Alright. Goodbye little brother, see you in 2 weeks." Liu Xun saw him off. Alex walked out of the gate and went past the busy market. "Hey, isn''t that the new disciple?" somebody spoke. "What new disciple?" somebody asked. "You know, the one from the battle yesterday," the first person spoke. "Hey, that''s him right?" another person spoke. "I was there during the fight, it''s definitely him," another person spoke. ''It seems more people know of me than I had hoped,'' Alex thought. He quietly walked past the market and when nobody was looking at him, he entered a quiet alleyway. He took off his yellow robes and swiftly changed into green ones. After walking out of the alleyway now, he was a Hong Wu Sect disciple. He slowly walked back to the sect, while looking through the entire city. ''I have never been to this part of the town, have I?'' he thought. He kept looking around and finally saw something that surprised him a little. "Oh, so this is where it is," he thought. In front of him was a store with many people walking in and out of it. The store was quite big compared to its surroundings and was ran by young men and women wearing green robes. This was the Hong Wu Sect''s Pill store. This was where most of the higher grade pills ended up after they were sold by the disciples. Most of the people working here were Inner Sect disciples, with a few elders behind looking over the entire thing. ''No wonder I never saw it. It was in such a place. I never had even bothered walking this way,'' Alex thought. He had heard about it from his master but had never actually seen it before. Having finally seen it, He walked towards the sect''s direction and reached it very soon. Chapter 172: Low Ranking Alex was stopped at the gate of the Hong Wu sect by the elders to check if he had permission to leave the sect, or not. But after looking at his nameplate, they immediately let him go. Alex simply smiled and walked along the outer sect mountain. ''It''s only been 2 weeks and I''m already getting nostalgic,'' he thought. He walked down the mountain and reached the sect valley. ''This place is as rowdy as ever,'' he thought as he laughed to himself. The disciples, both outer and inner were walking around the sect valley, minding their own business. "Hmm¡­ Let''s go see if the ranking has changed in any way," he thought and walked to the disciple hall. In front of the Disciple Hall was the black rock with constantly moving figures that spelled out the names of the students in the rankings. He looked over the contribution ranking and saw virtually no difference from the time he left the sect. His name had in fact went lower by quite a bit due to not contributing enough. ''I guess that''s alright,'' he thought. He saw no point in the contribution points for now aside from eating in the restaurant. If he really wanted to, he would do so in a restaurant outside. He then walked to the back of the black stone and looked at the list of Alchemy Achievements. The names were once again the same. Only this time, it was a problem. ''Where am I then?'' he thought. He started looking lower and saw his name around rank number 33. ''Huh? I''ve made a Heaven rank pill, and that puts me to rank 33? That''s impossible.'' He remembered his master saying that even core disciples had a hard time making Earth Grade pills with high harmony, and yet his Heaven Grade pill didn''t give him much Alchemy achievements. He also had a lot of other pills that should have increased his ranking by a lot. ''Just what is going on? I should ask master,'' he thought and took out a communication talisman. He then started sending a message to his master. "Master, I''m back. Also, I need to talk with you about something." He sent the message. He waited for a bit and got a reply. "Come to my residence." He skipped the rest of the places and walked straight to the sect master''s mountain. In a couple of minutes, he reached his home, but he skipped that as well and walked straight to the sect master''s home. He spread out his spiritual sense to see where she was and found her in her alchemy room, so he decided to wait outside. After a few minutes, Ma Rong walked out. She looked at Alex and said, "You are back quite early. Isn''t there still 2 more days to go before you had to return?" she asked. "Yes, master. However, something happened in the sect that forced me to leave early," he said. Ma Rong got curious and asked, "What happened?" Alex proceeded to explain everything that happened between him and Huo Tu and how he beat him using Heaven''s Impact. After listening to it all, Ma Rong said, " You made a good choice. I don''t know how Wen Cheng could''ve handled it all without revealing your relationship. That would''ve only added fuel to the fire at that point." "So, was that what you wanted to talk about?" Ma Rong asked. "Actually no, Master. I saw the ranking stone and found out that my name was in the 33rd position for Alchemy Achievements. Does making a Heaven Grade pill not put me in even the top 30?" he asked. "Oh, that? Of course, it does. It''s only that I never registered your pill in the first place, so you weren''t high in the list." Ma Rong seemed to be quite casual about it as if it wasn''t a big deal. "You didn''t register my pill? Why master?" he was confused and was starting to get a little annoyed as well. "I didn''t have time to absorb what you had really done at that point and had agreed without thinking. But later on, when I was about to register the pill, I finally remembered something very important that was not very much remembered because of how rare it was." Alex was both confused and curious at this point. "What is this important thing, Master?" he asked. "There is this rule amongst the core disciples where they have to make 50 pills with over 35% of harmony and register it to the sect. If they manage to do that, they are eligible to take a test to become an elder." "However, if any disciple can produce a Heaven grade pill, they are automatically promoted to the rank of an Elder. Because at that point, the sect deems it useless for a disciple to remain a disciple." "As such, had I registered your pill and someone realized that there was a heaven grade pill made from a disciple, the Sect would be in an uproar, and you would be forced to work as an elder from then on. Meaning, you wouldn''t be able to enjoy the freedom you have right now." Ma Rong explained the situation to the best she could. So, Alex finally understood what was going on. ''I see. So I was this close to suddenly becoming an Elder huh. But, is that really bad?'' he wondered. "What are the downsides of becoming an elder, master?" he asked. "There necessarily isn''t one aside from not having free time. However, if you, who became a cultivator just over a month ago, were to become one, it would seriously slow down your learning and training time. You would be forced to do work for the sect at a higher rate than the normal contribution." "Alchemy is a slow and gradual process, so most of the elders don''t actually mind not having much time since they wouldn''t be able to do anything if they even had one. However, you are different," Ma Rong said. "You are more talented than anyone I have seen in my life. So if there were even a single thing that hampered your training and cultivation, that would be disastrous." Chapter 173: Shocked Ma Rong "So¡­ what do I do now, Master? Do I not take part in the upcoming Core Disciple exam? I thought that was what you had told me," Alex said. Ma Rong made a judging face and said, "Of course not. You''re still taking place in the Core Disciple exam. You will just have to give me a pill that is not as good as the Heaven grade pill and I can immediately register you for the core disciple exam." "Oh, okay," Alex said. "So, do you have one or did you spend the entire time in the Tiger sect just fighting?" Ma Rong asked with a chuckle. "Most of my days were just fighting and training, so I was only able to make pills for a single day last Sunday. Unfortunately, I wasn''t able to make a Heaven-grade pill at that time. I think my last one was just a fluke and I will have to still train quite a bit to produce a Heaven grade pill again," Alex said. He then reached into his bag and took out a pill bottle with a single pill. He then handed it to Ma Rong. Almost instinctively, Ma Rong took out a pill tester and put the pill inside it. She slowly watched the fog rise up along the side of the glass until it reached 39% and stopped. She nodded affirmatively and took the pill out to look at it. She looked for a bit, and the more she looked at it, the more her eyebrows furrowed. She looked at it for a bit more and without any information, decided to ask Alex. "What is this pill? I have never seen such a pill," she said in curiosity and amazement. "Oh, that pill is called the Great Illusion pill. It''s like a Face Changing pill, but instead of changing one''s face, it puts an illusion on top of it for a limited amount of time. It can be maintained for a long time. Much longer than the Face Changing pill. However, the illusion disappears if you stop feeding it your Qi." Hearing Alex''s explanation, Ma Rong was stumped. She had never heard of a pill like this so she was confused as to whether her disciple was lying or not. "How did you make this pill?" she asked. "Oh, it''s quite simple, as long as you have the ingredients. I have the recipe right here," he said and took out the recipe from his storage. Ma Rong looked over the recipe and was surprised that it was actually a new recipe. "Where did you find this? Was this in the tiger sect? Can''t be. I know their entire catalog of pill recipes and this is absolutely not one of them. Did you get it from somewhere else then? Where? I have never seen such a pill before in the entire Crimson Empire." Ma Rong went off with her questions and speculations leaving Alex not a single room to answer her questions. Only after she finally stopped did he answer her questions. He told her how he was taken to an amazing place in the southern forest with a high amount of Qi and how he found tons of alchemy material there. He also told her about the skeleton where he found the recipes from. "So, you found recipes from the dead person? How many did you get?" Ma Rong asked in anticipation. Alex simply took out the storage bag and handed it to Ma Rong. "Take it, Master. These are the recipes. Also, there are quite a few formation blueprints that might or might not be useful to the sect." Ma Rong took the bag and used her spiritual sense to look at it. At first, she only showed amazement at the number of different recipes. But as she looked through more and more of the recipes, she was shocked. Absolutely shocked. "Th¡ªTh¡ª This¡­" she wasn''t able to form any sentence. Her eyes stayed wide while her jaws fell to the ground. "This is a Saint rank pill recipe," she said. Alex nodded while understanding her feeling. He was also quite shocked when he first saw them. Ma Rong went ahead and checked the rest of the pill recipes as well. Every time she saw a Saint rank recipe she would cry out in shock. This lasted for quite a while. At the end of this, she was breathless from all the shock. She tried very hard to calm herself and asked, "You really found all of this at the place?" "Yes, master. I think that man might have not been from the Crimson Empire and had instead come from outside," Alex said. "That could be the possibility. After all, there have been other such cases as well," she said. "Oh yeah, that reminds me, master," Alex said garnering Ma Rong''s attention. "Come out Pearl," he said. In bright white light, a 20-25 cm long white cat appeared in front of Ma Rong shocking her once more. She looked at the small white cat and could tell that it was a child. However, she could also see that it was giving off an aura of Bone tempering realm. "Is this¡­" she asked without finishing the question. "This is my beast companion, Pearl. Pearl, this is my master okay. She is a good person," he taught Pearl. "Meow," the cat meowed in affirmation. "He is quite good, isn''t he?" Alex asked. "You got a beast companion in the Tiger sect? Did Wen Cheng not deny this?" she asked. "Oh no. I didn''t get pearl in the Tiger sect. I actually had him all the time since my near-death experience back in that crater in the southern forest," Alex said. "The crater?" Ma Rong tried to recall back to what had happened there and suddenly remembered something. "The mother and child cat?" she asked in shock. Alex nodded. "Yes, master. Pearl is the little cat I told you guys about in the crater. He had made a bond with me when I was nearly dead, so I never knew about him. But after being released back in Tiger sect, I have been training with him," he said. Ma Rong''s eyes remained wide open. "You bonded with the child of a monster that was in the Saint realm," she said in shock. Chapter 174: More Shocks Ma Rong''s eyes were wide open as the shock came on coming one after another. Her disciple was just a fountain of surprises and shocks that never dried up. She looked down at the cat and took notice of its small size. "It really is a different monster. I''ve never seen anything like this," she said. "Elder Xian of Tiger sect said the same thing as well," Alex replied. "Elder Xian? Ah, the previous head of Cloud Valley. If he said so, then it must really not be from the Crimson Empire. Maybe it too came from past the southern forest," Ma Rong said. "Since your beast is still so small, I assume it doesn''t have very high cultivation. You should slowly build up its cultivation while constantly training it. Although, beasts usually have Inherent memory, getting their body used to fighting is always a good idea." Alex nodded and said, "I thought so as well, master. So, I''ve been training him for the last week and having him constantly cultivate to increase his cultivation. He''s already reached Bone Tempering 7th realm by now." Ma Rong was about to affirm when she realized what she had just heard. "Did you say this child is already at Bone Tempering 7th Realm?" she asked in surprise. "Yes, Master. Although Pearl has a child''s body, his cultivation has been really fast. I am actually afraid if his foundations would be shaky, but He''s also been training quite a bit, so maybe not," Alex said. Ma Rong breathed in and out slowly to bring herself back from the state of shock. "You are giving me quite a lot of shock today. If there is anything else that can shock me, lay it out right now," She said. "Anything that might shock you? Let''s see¡­ umm¡­ oh yeah. Master, have you heard of Mortal Cleansing?" "Of course. Anyone worth their money in Crimson Empire has heard of it. Although, I''m surprised you know the word as well. Did Wen Cheng teach you ab¡ª" she suddenly stopped as a thought came across her mind. "Actually Master, I went through Mortal Cleansing," Alex dropped the bomb. Ma Rong''s eyes went wide once more. " Wait wait wait¡­ Mortal Cleansing? YOU went through Mortal Cleansing. Where did you even find the Divine Devil''s fruit?" she asked. "The Divine Devil''s Fruit? Is that what is needed ?" He asked. He had never before heard of such fruit, but Wen Cheng had indeed mentioned some fruit being required for the Mortal Cleansing. Ma Rong''s eyes squinted as she got a questioning look. "Didn''t you say you went through Mortal Cleansing? You must''ve eaten some fruit, right?" she asked. "Oh no, master. My mortal Cleansing was different from others. Or at least that''s what the master had said at the time. He said that normally one would have to eat fruit to go through Mortal Cleansing. He must''ve been talking about this Divine Devil''s fruit. However, the way I went through mortal cleansing is by having Pearl Cultivate." "Every time he cultivates, I somehow get put under a body tempering state and have to suffer through it. The first time it happened, I also went through Mortal Cleansing," He explained. "Wait, so you didn''t eat any fruit and went through Mortal Cleansing just like that?" she asked. "Yes, Master. It happened while I wasn''t conscious due to my body tempering being very painful, so in the end, I only found out after master told me what had happened," he said. Ma Rong''s eyes once again squinted as she asked, "You keep saying you went through body tempering, don''t you mean just normal cultivation?" "No Master, I went through actual body tempering. I''m now a Body Cultivator as well," Alex said. Another Shock. This was the Fifth shock of the day she had received, and it hadn''t even been 5 minutes since her disciple had returned. The first shock was the new pill her disciple took out. The second shock was the rest of the pill recipes and formation blueprints her disciple had brought back. The third shock was the Saint realm monster''s child, the little Cat that her disciple had bonded to. The fourth shock was the fact that her disciple had gone through mortal cleansing. And now, learning that her disciple was a body cultivator, she was shocked once more. "You really are a Body cultivator? How exactly?" she asked. Alex went on to explain every single thing that had happened with him and Pearl cultivating. When she heard that he had to suffer through so much pain every single day, she winced a little. Finally, after hearing everything, she said," So, how strong are you right now?" "My body is about the same strength as a Body Tempering 3rd realm cultivator," he said. Ma Rong nodded and sighed, "That is quite strong. I didn''t expect you to leave to Tiger Sect for 2 weeks and come back so strong." "Speaking of which, what is your cultivation base? I can''t see it right now," she asked. "Oh, let me remove the concealment for a moment," Alex said and showed off his cultivation aura once more. A cultivation base of Organ Tempering 4th realm slowly spread out its aura and Ma Rong felt it. "You''ve truly become quite strong," she said with a sigh. She had expected him to get stronger, but not by this much. ''Am I stifling this child''s potential as a cultivator by not letting him cultivate and only having him make pills?'' she started to wonder. While he was good at making pills, in her eyes, he was better at cultivating. She started to have second thoughts about making him fully focused on Alchemy. "Master?" Alex asked seeing her lost in her thought. Ma Rong shook her head, ignoring the thoughts for now. "You''ve done well. You''ve increased your cultivation by quite a substantial amount. Although you stopped practicing Alchemy for a while, it isn''t as bad since you can continue it now. Alright, If you have nothing else to tell me, go register this pill and prepare for the upcoming core disciple test," she said. "Wait Master, I still have a few things more to tell you." Chapter 175: Asking for Permission "Hmm¡­ you''ve got something more to tell me?" Ma Rong asked. "Actually, I have this to give to you," Alex said as he took out 2 Spirit Cleansing lilies. Ma Rong had enough shock for the day, but she was shocked once more. Her eyes turned wide as she involuntarily screamed, "Spirit Cleansing Lily? 2 at that. Where did you find them?" she asked. "The same place I told found the corpse and the recipes. Not only that, I have quite a few alchemy resources as well." Alex brought out a storage bag to show them. "You can keep some if you want it," he said. Ma Rong sent her spiritual sense into the bag a saw a load of alchemy ingredients stacked on top of one another. She immediately screamed, "What are you doing keeping them like that? Put them in an individual wooden box or something." She was horrified seeing such precious materials being kept like that. "I know that I should master," he said as he brought out more storage bags and said, "There are just too many." Ma Rong felt like she was being tortured. Showing such a horrifying sight of keeping alchemy materials without any protection to keep their energies from leaking out or mixing with each other. She immediately brought out one of her storage bags with a ton of jade and wooden boxes and handed it to Alex. Alex complied and put the ingredients in, but there were just too many. He was able to only fit one bag''s worth of ingredients in there, while the rest of them were still the same. Ma Rong wanted to cry rivers of tears seeing those ingredients in such a state. "Don''t worry master, I will make a lot of pills very soon and use up most of these ingredients, and I will keep the True rank pills ingredients in the wooden boxes." He reassured her again and again. Finally, she was fine with how the pills were kept. "Alright, go register the pill and I will make your core disciple exam as soon as possible," Ma Rong said. "Okay, Master," Alex said and called Pearl back into his arm. He was about to leave when he remembered something. He turned around and asked, "Master, Do you know much about bodies?" "Bodies? What do you mean?" she asked. "You know. Cultivator''s body type," he said unable to explain properly. "Oh, those. I know about them, why?" she asked. "Then, do you know anything about Sun God''s Divine Yang Body?" he asked. Ma Rong thought for a moment and answered, "No. I don''t think I have ever heard of that body. I don''t think there are any records about them either. Why do you ask?" ''So, she doesn''t know it either huh?'' he thought. "Nothing important really," he sidestepped the questions. "Oh right, master. There are these small rectangular yellow jade-like stones that are found in the Forbidden Fields, do you know about them?" he asked. "Yellow rectangular jades?" Ma Rong quickly reached into her storage bag and took out a slightly yellow yang jade and asked, "Are you talking about this?" she asked. Alex''s eyes turned bright. "Yes, Master. That''s exactly it. Do you have more of these?" he asked. "Why do you ask?" Ma Rong squinted her eyes questioningly. "Uhh¡­ I''ll tell you later master. For now, do you have some more?" he continued asking. Ma Rong sighed and said, "No. This is the only one I have right now, and even this is almost done." "Almost¡­ done?" he asked questioningly. Ma Rong reached into her storage bag and took out 2 more of the same stones. Except, this time they were both white with not a single hint of yellow. She then said, "See how these are white? These stone lose their energies after being out of the Forbidden fields for a week or two. What''s more, they are incredibly rare and are only ever found once in a while." Alex walked ahead and reached out to the slightly yellow yang jade and looked at its name. [Jade Stone] There was no hint of Yang in these jade and thus the name had been changed to the game system as well. Alex sighed, "I expected too much." He then thought about what his master just said and asked, "Master, then can I go to the forbidden fields to try my luck? These stones are very important to me and I need quite a lot of it." "Absolutely not. The Forbidden Fields is a place we send to punish the students. There is not a single Qi in there and you will starve to death if you are not careful. We will ask the students who leave their punishment and see if they have any more of these stones, that should be enough," Ma Rong said. Alex thought for a moment and said, "That''s fine. When is the next disciple coming out?" he asked. Ma Rong looked into her medallion and saw that the next one was coming out in a week and relayed that information to Alex. "A week? But master, it will be too late by then. I will need to be stronger by the competition right?" Ma Rong thought for a bit and realized that he would in fact be in the competition within a week. "Tell me, honestly, why do you need them? How do they help you?" she asked. Alex wanted to avoid the question once again, but decided against it and answered. "I can use the Yang inside the jade to make my Qi thicker. I''ve used it twice now and it''s made my Qi at least twice as thick, maybe a little more, and even given it a yang quality," he said. Ma Rong was confused at first as to how it could possibly be true. But the more she thought about how vigorous her disciple''s Qi was or how he could do things beyond his cultivation base, she fully accepted it. "If what you say is true¡­ then I will allow for you to go to the Forbidden Fields." Chapter 176: Back to Pill Making "I shall allow you to enter the Forbidden Fields, but only for 3 days. We don''t have much time otherwise. We will have to leave for Cardinal City on Friday if we want to reach it," Ma Rong said. "When exactly is the competition starting, Master?" he asked. "It should start around Sunday, but it will take us time to reach there. So, you will only have 3 days of searching inside the forbidden fields. I don''t know how useful that would be, but you will get the time." "Thank you master!" he said from the bottom of his heart. Seeing that there was nothing more to talk about, Alex walked out of Ma Rong''s house and walked all the way down to the Disciple hall in the sect valley. ''Let''s see. I had 12 when I started, I used up 2, 4 were used by the folks at tiger sect, 1 was given to auction, and I just gave 2 to master. Meaning, I only have 3 left.'' Alex sighed as he counted the amount of Spirit cleansing Lily he still had. The sect valley was bright and full of light as the lanterns in the road gave it the feel of a festival. "Ah, I''ve missed this," he thought. He reached the Disciple Hall and went directly to the third floor under the stares of different people. He walked up the stairs to the third floor, and just as he was nearing the 2nd floor, he bumped into someone walking outside. Both he and the other person stumbled backward. "Hey, watch where you''re going," a voice came from in front of him. He saw a person being caught by another person they were with. They were both female disciples. "I''m sorry. It was my fault," he said as he looked more closely and realized that he knew one of the two females. The female disciple he had bumped into was a tall woman with black hair and an emotionless face. Although she looked a little angry right now. On the other hand, the girl who caught the tall girl was a little shorter than her and looked the same. Only, her face wasn''t as emotionless. "Oh, it''s you, sister Zhou Mi. I''m sorry about that, I was in a bit of a hurry," Alex said as he looked at the smaller girl. This was the girl he had met when he had attended Kong Yuhan''s ascension. "Junior Brother¡­ Yu Ming, right? What are you doing here? The upper floors are not for outer sect disciples," Zhou Mi said. "You know this guy?" the taller girl asked. "I''ve met him once before when I was with my other friends," Zhou Mi replied. As the two sisters were talking, Alex noticed something finally. ''A core disciple,'' he thought. He had only seen core disciples before, and only now he was interacting with one, finally. "I''m letting you go just because my sister knows. Be wary of your surroundings next time," said the taller girl, and started walking past Alex to go down the stairs. Zhou Mi nodded a bit and walked after her sister as well. ''But you bumped into me,'' Alex wanted to say, but he decided not to prolong the drama and simply went to the 3rd floor. He registered his new pill with the Elder in there and walked back out. Seeing that he had nothing to do, he went back up the mountain to his house. "Let''s make a few pills before logging out to have my dinner," he thought. He walked into his familiar alchemy room and sat down in front of the fire pit. He took out his cauldron and put it on the fire to heat it up. In the meantime, he looked through the different recipes in his mind that he could make right now. After choosing one, he gathered up the materials separated among multiple storage bags into a single one. He started making the pills and in less than 20 minutes he made one easily. The pill ended up having a harmony of 36%, which he found quite disappointing, however, since it was only the first pill of the day, it wasn''t as bad. He prepared another set of ingredients and started making his next pill. This one took a little less time, and by 15 minutes, he was done with it. He managed to make this one with a harmony of 43%. "That''s more like it," he thought as he smiled a little. He rested a little more and prepared another set of ingredients for a different pill. After the cauldron had heated plenty, he put in the first ingredient and started making the last pill before dinner. He started moving the ingredients inside and the energy started to get slowly released. He added another ingredient inside and slowly started moving that energy as well. Those two energies mixed and formed a new form of energy where one energy had the other energy suppressed for a new type of energy. He put another ingredient and the energy from this pill mixed with the energy in the cauldron as well, forming a different type of energy that was a mixture of all of these energies. Of these energies, there would mostly be a single type of energy that would be at the forefront in it due to the other energies suppressing each other. As Alex put more and more ingredients inside, it was soon revealed that the final energy that was at the forefront was Metal energy. Although the Metal energy wasn''t abundant, it was still abundant enough to make the pill''s energy alignment be Metal. Once everything was done, it was time to form that pill. He started forming the pill and used Elemental Guidance at the same time to move the energy towards the newly forming pill in hopes of adding more energy into it. Suddenly, he noticed something very weird. Usually, Elemental guidance was only there to help him guide the energy, he would have no way of forcing them to move in any way he wanted them to. But, for some reason now, a lot more energy was being guided around with elemental guidance. In fact, they weren''t even being guided anymore, but just moved around. Chapter 177: Metal ''What''s going on?'' Alex was surprised. This was an unprecedented event for him during all of his time, making pills. However, as an expert alchemist, he didn''t let the unusualness of the situation, derail his concentration. He made use of the situation and moved the energy directly into the forming pill. The pill absorbed as much as it could before the energy left it. While he couldn''t instill a lot of energy, he could tell that it was still better. He waited for the pill to be formed and when it did, he directly brought it out. He caught the pill in his hand and looked at its name. [Bronze Tiger''s Rage: 58%] "What??!" he was beyond surprised at this point. He had a hard time crossing 45% on normal pills and had barely reached 49% occasionally, yet today, he had somehow reached 58%. ''That¡­ has to be incorrect right? No way that''s correct,'' he couldn''t believe his own eyes and so he checked again. It was in fact 58%. "But¡­ But how?'' he couldn''t make head or tails of the situation. It was almost the exact scenario as when his Iron Fist Punch was all of a sudden much stronger. ''Wait a second¡­'' Alex fell into deep thought. He thought of the similarity between the two situations and realized that the only thing similar between them was¡­ "Metal!" he shouted out. "That''s it. Metal Energy. Iron Fist Punch uses Metal spiritual root, while the pill just now was had a majority of Metal energy. So, did I get a benefit regarding Metal Energy? But how?" he started thinking. It didn''t take him long to come up with the answer. "That blood essence. Did it somehow increase my affinity to metal energy?" he wondered. That was the only explanation he could come up with. This certainly didn''t feel like the advantage of Mortal Cleansing or Body cultivation. Besides, those came after he was already strong at using Iron Fist Punch, so the essence was the only answer. "But why?" he thought for a while, but couldn''t come up with an answer. Sighing to himself, he left the game. He logged out and woke up in his new room, in his new bed. The temperature of the room was perfect thanks to the AC and the bed was softer than any bed he had been in. ''Such a shame I won''t be able to sleep on it for long due to the new capsules.'' He walked out of his room to the brightly lit corridor that leads to the living room. Past that he walked to the kitchen, only to find that Hannah was also there about to eat. "Oh, you logged out?" she said as she looked at the time. "But it''s only 7 pm, don''t you want to play some more?" she asked. "I do, but it''s ingrained into me at this point that I should log out at 7 for dinner. Will take some time to adjust to the new changes," he said. "Alright, sit down. I''ll put some food for you in the microwave as well." Hannah set the timer on the microwave and sat back down on the chair. "So, how do you like your new crib? Isn''t it fancy?" she asked. "Very, sister. I didn''t even imagine that such a place was available in the world. I had thought that such places were only for the rich people with fancy business and titles," he said. "Well, we can be considered rich now," Hannah said with a giggle. She then looked down at his hand and asked, "Does the cut hurt anymore?" she asked. Alex looked down and finally remembered he even had one. "Oh yeah, it''s fine. It''s barely noticeable," he said. DING The microwave sounded after a few moments. Hannah went to bring out the food and laid it down in two portions. Without saying anything, they started eating. "Mmm¡­ This is quite good," Alex said. "I learned the recipe from the Internet. It''s quite easy, you can make it too I bet," she said. "I doubt it, sister. Not after I have already lost my muscle memory. It will take me a long while to be able to do that," he said. "Alright, let''s stop talking about that. There is something that I''ve been wanting to talk to you about but haven''t had the chance to," she said. "What is it, sister?" he asked curiously. "Do you have free time tomorrow?" she asked. Alex thought for a bit and said, "Yes I do. It''s Sunday tomorrow and I don''t have school," he said. "No, not just school. What about the game? It''s your source of earning now, you have to treat it like work. You cannot miss a single day if it hampers your pay," Hannah said. ''Think of the game like work?'' he was surprised that people had even thought of that. ''Why would I want to turn something I enjoy into work? Isn''t that the easiest way to lose interest in something?'' he thought. However, he didn''t voice it out loud. Instead, he replied to her earlier question, "I have some work during the day, but I am mostly free at night. I don''t know how much that would help you," he said. "Oh, that''s perfect actually. I want you to accompany me somewhere tomorrow night," Hannah said quite excited about something. "Where to, sister? Some sort of party or something?" he asked. "Uh¡­ no, more like¡­ you''ll see tomorrow. Let it be a surprise," Hannah said. She just couldn''t hide the excitement in her eyes. ''What''s going on with her tomorrow?'' he wondered. The two of them talked about a few different things for a while and after taking care of the dishes, went back to their individual room. Alex went up on the soft bed again and laid down on his back. ''Sigh, I just want to sleep in this bed for today,'' he thought. But, he had, as Hannah had put it, work to do. So he put on his helmet and once again, logged back into the game. Chapter 178: Experiment Alex went out of to courtyard after logging in. He felt like taking a bath before doing anything. So, he took off his clothes and jumped into the pond. He didn''t care about the little fishes in there and only enjoyed the cool water. "Pearl will probably like this as well," He thought and called out Pearl. With a bright white light, Pearl appeared on top of the water. SPLASH As soon as he appeared he fell into the pond, desperately struggling to walk out of it. However, having never been in the water before, he didn''t know what to do. He swung his little waves around, causing waves after waves to appear on the surface of the pond. "It''s okay Pearl, it''s okay," Alex immediately swam forward to hold the little cat and pet him. Only after being held out of the water did he finally stop struggling and let out a weak meow. "You don''t like water, do you? I should have known that would be the case. You are a cat after all. Still, you need to take a bath," Alex said and proceeded to dunk Pearl in the water and washed him off. He then put Pearl back into his arm and proceeded to wash. After he himself was fully washed he decided to get out. He started swimming forward but soon realized that even though he was so strong, he was still feeling a bit of resistance in the water. ''Wait a second,'' he thought. ''What if I¡­'' without deliberating any further, he immediately used his technique, Fluctuating Friction Dance. Soon, his body was covered in Qi, which his legs were exceptionally strengthened. He then pushed his Qi outside to remove the friction, but it barely worked. He pushed more Qi and it was starting to do some work, he was feeling a lot less resistance, but there was still some. Finally, he pushed the Qi to its limit and suddenly, there was no resistance. Suddenly, with no resistance, he started falling to the bottom of the pond, which wasn''t very deep. After reaching the floor of the pond, he simply started walking forward. He felt absolutely no resistance. It was as easy, no, easier than walking on land. The water was pushed around by the Qi faster than he could move forward. ''Wow,'' he was surprised. This was not a sight he thought he would be able to see when he became a cultivator. ''This is so good,'' he thought. ''Sigh, but it also costs a tremendous amount of Qi. If I were to keep it up, my Qi which lasts for hours on end will be used up in less than an hour,'' he thought. Thinking so, he walked out of the water, and put on his robes, and walked back into the house. It was time for him to make some more pills. However, he didn''t just make pills. He needed to test his theory too. "I need to see if it is only Metal energy or if there are other energies that I am unaware of that I can use just as well. He racked his brain thinking of the different pills he could make, and the different energy each pill had. Finally, preparing 6 types of pills for the 6 different types of energy, he started making these pills once more. "Shame there aren''t any pills that have Yin or Yang energy as their main result," he thought. He walked into the Alchemy room and put the cauldron into the fire to heat it up. He used Qi manipulation to get rid of any remnants from the previous alchemy process and started preparing his ingredients for the first pill. The energy produced for the first pill was none. It was a neutral pill where the resulting energy was a combination of all and thus neither of them. The resulting energy didn''t align with any of the other 5 elements so he decided to start with that. He took as much care as he could during the making of this pill, and finally, when it came time to form the pill, he used Elemental Guidance once more. He didn''t expect anything to happen, and just as to fulfill his expectations, nothing did happen. The energies were guided as expected and only some of them fused with the forming pill, while the rest of them moved away. Suddenly, the powder that was still in the process of forming the pill split into two, making two separate pills. Suddenly, two vortexes formed above the newly formed pills, sucking in all the energy from the surrounding, which was the inside of the cauldron. Finally, the two pills were formed at 36% and 42% harmony each. "So, Neutral energy pills aren''t it" he thought. He then proceeded to gather ingredients for the Fire energy pill. He started making the pill and after they were done being powder and the energies were up in the air, he started using the Elemental Guidance to guide the resulting fire energy. As expected it worked normally. It just guided the energy and did nothing whatsoever to move the energy. Finally, the pill formed with a harmony of 48%. "As I thought, Fire energy pills don''t work either,'' he thought. Next up was the Earth energy pill. Similarly, he turned the ingredients into powder form and once the resulting energy in the cauldron was earth aligned, he used Elemental Guidance. This one was a failure as well. The pill only had a harmony of 45% and it was a single pill at that too. "Sigh, not Earth either. Is my theory really correct?" he thought. The next one on the list was a pill whose resulting energy was water-aligned. As usual, he formed the powder and once the resulting energy was formed, he used Elemental Guidance to move the energy to the forming pill once more. The result was as expected, a failure. However, he did manage to push himself to the limit and formed a pill in heaven grade with 50% harmony. "Good pill, but the theory still stands. I couldn''t move the energy at all" he thought. Finally, it was time for him to make a Metal energy pill. Chapter 179: Successful Hypothesis He cleaned the cauldron of any remaining by-products and prepared his ingredients. The pill he was going to make was different from the one he had made before dinner. He wanted to make sure that it was the energy that was the cause of the advancement, and not the ingredients. Finally, when the time arrived, he put in his first ingredient. Slowly, one by one, he put in ingredients and turned them into power. Finally, when the time came, he used Elemental Guidance. The energies started being moved. They weren''t being guided but moved once more. "It''s happening, I was right," Alex thought but concentrated on the pill once more. He moved the energies towards the forming pill which were absorbed in a higher amount by the powders. Once again, a simple stream of Qi ran out of his body involuntarily and moved into the cauldron through the path established by his previous Qi. The pills were splitting into two once more. The powders were separated into two parts and formed into pills. As soon as they were pills, they started to vigorously suck in the remaining energy in the cauldron. Finally, after a while, the pill was ready. Alex expectantly brought out the pills from the cauldron. He was somehow both amazed and disappointed by what he saw. The harmony levels on the two pills were 43% and 45%. They had a combined harmony of 88%, which would have been amazing if it had been a single pill, but he knew that the pills rarely accepted that much energy. Which was why being split into two was good. However, neither of them had ended up being a heaven-grade pill which was disappointing. "Sigh, at least my theory is correct. Metal energy is in fact being controlled much easier than the rest of the energies." He didn''t still have complete control over the metal energy. However, compared to the other energies, it was as good as being fully controlled. "I will have to ask master what this means." He proceeded to make two more Metal energy pills. Neither of them split, so one of them ended up having 57% harmony, and the other one ended up with 59% harmony. The rest of the energies were still being let go of into the air. ''Sigh, if only I had complete control. I wonder if I would if the energies inside were fully Metal instead of Metal just being the highest amount,'' he wondered. Finally, he stopped making pills and decided to cultivate for the rest of the night. He put his cauldron into his storage and walked over to the next room. Before starting to cultivate, however, he took out one of the 3 remaining Spirit Cleansing Lily. He was going to increase his Spiritual Sea once more. Although they only increased in size, it was still worth it to him. The spiritual sense lasted longer now. "Ah, I should let master know that a Spirit Cleansing lily can be used twice. She will probably want to know about it," he thought and contacted Ma Rong using the communication Talisman. He let her know what he learned about it in the Tiger sect and returned back to cultivating. He took the flower in his hand and started meditating. Qi inside his body started moving on their own as he let go of all control and as usual, he fell into a trance, unaware of his surrounding. Alex slowly opened his eyes. He slowly sent out his spiritual sense and looked at his Spiritual Sea. "Huh?" he was surprised. The size of the sea hadn''t increased at all. He looked at the water in his spiritual sea and realized that that wasn''t the case either. It was then he saw it. The Spirit Cleaning lily in his hand hadn''t disappeared at all. It was perfectly intact, just the way it was last night. "What''s going on? Why didn''t I use up the flower?" he started wondering. He tried to think of any records he read that spoke of these things, but couldn''t find any. "Did I make a mistake somehow?" he started to worry. He looked to see if there was any change to the flower, but just like the first time he looked at it, it was intact. "I must''ve done something wrong then," he put the blame and forgot about the flower for now. He looked at his surroundings and noticed something out of the corner of his eyes. "Huh? No way." He immediately ran out of the dark room and into the courtyard. It was bright, unusually bright. Almost as if it were¡­. He looked out at the corner of his eyes once more. "So I''m not seeing things. I did over-cultivate. It''s already 10 am." He didn''t know how or why, but for the first time since playing the game, he had ended up cultivating till it was 10 am. The only other times he had woken up this late was when he had genuinely fainted. But that was different from the current situation where he was fine and it was just normal cultivation. "Thank god I don''t have college today or I would''ve missed it. If I were in the dorm, I would''ve already missed breakfast. Whatever, let''s go eat some food. Sister must be waiting for me." He went back into his room and logged out of the game. He had been in the game for over 14 hours, so he decided to take a bath. After bathing, he walked out into the kitchen and saw Hannah eating her food alone. "You took quite some time. Why did you log out so late?" she asked. "Sorry, Sister. I was cultivating and woke up only just now," he replied. "Woke up?" Hannah looked at him weirdly. "Aren''t you in the Organ Tempering realm?" she asked. Alex wondered why she could ask this, but he still answered, "Yes, sister." Hannah then asked, "Then why are you still falling asleep while cultivating? That should have stopped after the first few times." Chapter 180: Exam Date "What do you mean by it should have stopped, sister? Is this phenomenon supposed to stop after the first few times?" he asked. Hannah said, "Yes. At first, you fall asleep a few times, but after a while, you get used to it and can start staying awake during cultivation." "But, I have never been able to do that sister. I have always fallen asleep. Am I doing something wrong then?" he asked. "Uhh¡­ I don''t think so. I don''t think it has anything to do with you since it''s supposed to stop of its own. Maybe it''s your cultivation technique? Or maybe you are just an outlier. In any case, make sure you''re in a safe place when you cultivate then." "Okay sister," he replied. "Alright, eat some food. It''s in the fridge. Put it in the microwave for 2 minutes, and it should be okay. Also, don''t forget, tonight you have to go with me, ok? I hope you won''t end up cultivating and forgetting to wake up." Hannah put her dish on the dishwasher and left. Alex ate the food alone and put the dish in the dishwasher after finishing as well. He waited for the dishes to be cleaned and reorganized them into their original places in the kitchen. Only after then did he leave. He didn''t immediately go to the game and instead used his new phone and laptop for some time. He needed to get used to them if he wanted to use them. After an hour or so of using them, he logged back into the game around 12 pm. Just as he logged in, he felt a sort of vibration from one of his storage. He looked inside to find that it was his communication talisman from his master. He picked it up and looked at the message. "Come to my place as soon as you can." Without hesitation, he left for his master''s building. As he arrived, his master was also about to leave. "Oh, you''re here. I was about to go find you since you didn''t respond at all," she said. "Oh, sorry master. I was kind of busy and didn''t see your message in time. But I have some questions so I came rushing." "Come in, I also have something to talk to you about," Ma Rong said as she walked back inside. Alex followed her and walked into one of the rooms as well. "What do you want to talk about, master?" he asked. "Alright, your exam date for Core disciple has been set. It will be tomorrow morning around 8 am. Make sure you are at the Elder''s hall in time tomorrow," she said. "Oh, alright. Thank you, master," he said. "Alright, tell me. What do you want to talk about?," she asked. "It''s regarding these,'' he said as he pulled out 3 pill bottles. Ma Rong wasn''t sure what was happening, but she took the pill bottles and popped the stopper for one of them. Immediately, a strong medicinal scent escaped out from the bottle. With just a single smell, Ma Rong could tell, this was not a simple pill. She immediately took out a pill tester and tested the pill. 57% Her eyes turned wide seeing the absurdly high harmony percentage. "Wha¡ª how?" she asked, shocked that her disciple was able to make this so fast. "This is what I wanted to talk to you about, Master. Check the other two pills as well," he said. Ma Rong followed his suggestion and took the stopper out of the remaining two bottles. Similarly strong medicinal scent escaped from both of those bottles. Her hands started to shake a little as she put the pill into the Pill tester. Both of them resulted in 58% and 59%. This just caused her to have more shock. "What is going on? Did you make these?" she asked. As the harmony levels got higher and higher, the more difficult it was to make the pill. An alchemist could only have so much energy in the cauldron after the intense process. Due to the multitudes of minor mistakes, the energies released would always end up in some ways not mixing together. That would make the total energy in the cauldron have less than ideal amount of the resulting energy. This energy would then have to be absorbed by the powder before forming the pill, which was another place where the energy would be less. All in all, an Alchemist would have a very hard time making a pill with high harmony. Especially, once it got above 40%. And yet, her disciple in front of her had 3 pills all with harmony above 55%. This was something unprecedented to her. "Yes, master. I made these yesterday night," he replied "How did you do this?" she asked. Suddenly increasing your ability as an alchemist, at this level was not an easy task. "That is what I wanted to talk to you about master. In the tiger sect, I accidentally took in an unknown blood essence, and ever since then my ability towards anything Metal aligned has improved significantly. " "I can use metal aligned skills with damage behind them, and make pills where the final energy is Metal at Heaven grade quite easily. Do you have any idea why a blood essence would do this?" he asked. "What do you mean unknown blood essence? explain thoroughly," she asked. Alex explained all the circumstances surrounding the blood essence and the resulting effect as much as he could. Ma Rong fell into deep thought after hearing that the essence had targeted her disciple on her own. "I do not know the answer to this. I have never heard of someone directly taking in blood essence without putting it through a pill or something. Go and check if there are some other things that have changed in you. Since we don''t have any records about this, the only thing we can do is wait to get to the Cardinal City and look through the library ourselves," Ma Rong said. "I see, Master. Let''s do that," Alex said. Chapter 181: Problem with being Rich Alex left his master''s house and went back to his house. He made a few more pills to pass some time and prepare himself for tomorrow morning. "Hmm¡­ I should have asked the master how the test is done. I hope I don''t have to make a Metal aligned pill for the test or I don''t know how I would make it so that it doesn''t have a high harmony. Similarly, Other pills can''t have high harmony or it would cause some trouble too. Although, I should be fine as long as I don''t make a heaven-grade pill." " I should also not use Elemental Guidance tomorrow so that the pills I make don''t have a lot of Harmony," he said. He was making as many plans as possible to not do well in tomorrow''s test. After making those pills, at around 1 pm in the afternoon, he left the sect. It took him about 15 minutes to go from his house in the sect leader''s mountain to the gate at the outer sect, and then it took him about 15 minutes of walking to go from there to the Pink Cloud Auction house. "I hope the items have been sold by now. They did say A staff lady who knew his face took him to the inside of the auction house where the Cai Ping and the old person from before were waiting for him. "Fellow Daoist Yu, you''re here," the old man with the long white hair spoke. "Good afternoon, Fellow Daoist Yu," Cai Pint greeted as well. "Hello," Alex gave a single nod as a greeting in return. Alex sat on the chair opposite the two people and waited for them to speak. The older man simply reached for a storage bag and gave that to Alex. Alex looked into the storage bag with some expectations, hoping to make some good bucks, but what he saw astounded him. He started counting, one after another. ''1, 2 ,3 ¡­ 51, 52, 53 ¡­ 172, 173, 174 ¡­ 293, 294¡­ 389, 390, 391 ¡­ 422, 423, 429.'' His eyes went wide with shock. "429 True Spirit stones?" he asked the people in shock. "Yes," The old man nodded. "Is this¡­ after the 10% charge?" he asked hesitatingly. "Of course, Fellow Daoist Yu," the man smiled seeing Alex''s reaction. In fact, he himself was surprised at how much money had been issued for him to give back. However, he wasn''t surprised why that was at all. Being near the Saint realm himself, the man could understand the people''s willingness to spend so many spirit stones to get their hands on something that could help them get the fabled Spiritual Sense. Alex''s hands were slightly trembling, holding the most expensive item in his whole life up until now. ''If I sell my remaining 3 flowers, I¡­ I... I will be a millionaire,'' he thought. This was a very tempting thought for him, but he managed to shake himself out of that thought. ''Take it slow. There will be other changes for that in the future. Invest these flowers on yourself for now,'' he said to himself and started thinking about other things. "How much did the pills earn?" he asked. "The pills themselves earned you 29 True Spirit Stones. It was the flower that earned you the rest," the old man said. Alex didn''t know what else the two said by the time he was already out of the auction house. ''So much money¡­ nearly 400 thousand¡­ do I even have to worry about money anymore? I can just make pills daily and sell them, can''t I? I can probably take care of mom and dad like this,'' He thought. ''Is that what sister meant when she said to think of this like work? Is this what this is now? Work. I¡­ should start working hard. I will have to earn more money soon,'' he thought. The path back to sect took longer this time since he had a lot on his mind. He slowed down his pace quite a few times even. Slowly a different feeling started to appear in him. ''I can earn money by making a few pills every day. I don''t even have to stay online all the time. Why would I even stay online? I don''t even need to play the game most of the time. Is that what this is all forcing me to do? Stop playing?'' he asked himself. Having been handed so much money suddenly made him lose all sources of motivation to play the game for fun. He started thinking of how he could earn money or manage his time. Thinking so, he got back to the sect and went straight to his house. Once he reached there, he decided to send back all but a few spirit stones. He put in all 400 True spirit stones in the transfer settings and hit send. "Uhh¡­ the 10% charge. It took away more than what I earned the last time," he said as he felt a little annoyed but still clicked yes. The spirit stones disappeared from his inventory, and he logged out. He waited for a moment and heard a notification sound. He quickly opened his phone to see a message on it. <$360,000 has been successfully transferred to your account> He smiled and then thought, "What do I do now? Go back to making some more pills to earn more money?" he thought and then immediately got a little depressed. "Sigh. I don''t want to play anymore today. Let''s just stay logged out for the day. Hopefully, I have more will to play tomorrow," he said and went on to use his phone and laptop. He surfed the Internet to see what new things were happening, or just call home back to talk to his parents. He even decided to do some exercise to be a little more fit again. He did that until at 7 PM, he had a knock on the door. Chapter 182: Cab ride in the night "You can come it," Alex said when he heard the knock on the door. Hannah opened the door and walked in. She was wearing a beautiful purple dress that matched her fair white skin and dark brown hair very well. She looked at Alex who was looking at the computer and frowned. "Why aren''t you dressed yet?" she asked. "Dressed?" he quickly looked at the time and realized it was 7 pm. "Is it time for us to leave already?" he asked. "Yes! We need to leave in 15 minutes," she said exasperated. "Oh," Alex immediately stood and closed his laptop. "I will dress right now sister. Are we going to a fancy restaurant or a dinner party?" he asked. "No, it''s much better than that. Just dress well, you don''t really have to look the absolute best," she said and left him. Alex looked through his old clothes and didn''t find any that would be considered well enough for how Hannah was dressed. So he opened his bag of new clothes and chose a simple shirt, coat, and pants that looked sophisticated enough for whatever his sister was taking him to. After getting dressed, he took his phone and left the room. Hannah was waiting for him in the living room and stood the moment he entered the room. "Finally," she said and looked at him. "Oh, you look nice. You might just end up getting a girlfriend for yourself tonight," she said. Alex blushed a little and asked, "Are we going somewhere where there will be a lot of girls my age?" he asked. Hannah made an embarrassed smile and said, "Not really. At least, I don''t really know. Maybe there will be, but probably not. It''s not a socializing place either so¡­ sorry if I gave you any expectations." Alex chuckled a little and said, "It''s okay sister. I wasn''t being serious. Should we go now?" "Oh yes, let''s go," Hannah said as she took her bag and walked out of the house with Alex in tow. They went down the elevator and got into a cab a minute later. Hannah gave an address to the driver, but Alex didn''t know that many places in Oakleaf City, so he had no idea where this place was. He just looked outside the cab, enjoying the nightlife of the city. After 15 minutes of the ride, they were still in the cab, and Alex was surprised by how far away this place was. "Wouldn''t it have been better to take the train, Sister? It looks like this place is quite far away," he said. "No. I looked up the map and the building is quite far away from any train station, so it''s better that we took a cab," she said. "Where exactly are we going sister?" he asked. "To Channel 8''s station," she answered finally. "Channel¡­ 8? Isn''t that a news channel? Why are we going there?" he asked. "Hehe, Your sister has been selected for an interview in tonight''s 9 PM show," she said. Alex was shocked. ''An interview? With sister Hannah? What is going on?'' he wondered. "Interview about what?" he asked. "Oh, it''s an interview with the people in Eternal Cultivation who have really good starting points like High talent, or great spiritual roots and body," she said. "Huh?" Alex was surprised. "You have one of these, Sister?" he asked. "I have all of these," Hannah said with a smug smile on her face. Alex tried asking for more information, but Hannah just smiled and told him to wait for it on the news. "How did those people even find you?" he asked. "Oh, I saw it in the forum. The people at Channel 8 made a forum post requesting everyone with great talent to fill a form if we wanted to appear on an interview. I didn''t want to at first, but then thought, why the heck not. Maybe I can even be popular like this," Hannah said. "After that, I got a mail yesterday morning to verify some of the information I had put in. Can you believe I had to show them some screenshots of my transaction with Deva corp to prove that I was in fact a high-ranking player?" "Thankfully, that was all I needed to prove. So I get to have an interview today. Although, there will be quite a few others there with me too," she said. Alex fell into deep thought. ''I wonder if I could get in there with my current income as well?'' he wondered. ''Although I don''t think I would like that. I can''t imagine myself on the TV,'' he thought. Suddenly, he remembered something about the TV. ''That news yesterday¡­ that was¡­ Oh, so this was what they were talking about when they said not to miss it as it would be the greatest news regarding Eternal Cultivation to date. ''I did want to see it, but it seems I will be seeing it live,'' he thought. The cab ride lasted 30 minutes more where Alex just looked through the different buildings lighting up bright in the night. ''This looks exactly like Hong Wu Sect''s valley, only more modern. I didn''t know cities lit this much at night,'' he thought. This looked better than the festivals they had back in his hometown. Approximately, 50 minutes later, They finally reached the Building for Channel 8. It was a massive building that was wider than his imagination, going up to more than 30 floors. ''Woah!,'' he thought as he looked at it. Hannah paid the cab driver and walked out of the car with Alex. "It''s really big, isn''t it?" she asked. "Yes, Sister." "Is this the place?" another voice came from behind them. They both turned around to see an elderly man walk out of a cab. He looked to be in his 60s and was dressed quite well in a simple coat and pants. He looked at the sign that said ''Channel 8'' and said, "Ah, this really is it." He then turned his head around to see Alex and Hannah in front of the building too and asked, " Are you kids here for the Eternal Cultivation interview as well?" Chapter 183: Show Starts "Yes, I am, but my brother here is not. He''s just accompanying me," Hannah replied. "Ah, I see. Nice to meet you two," the elderly man said. "Nice to meet you too," both Hannah and Alex replied the greeting. The three of them walked inside the building and were stopped by the guards. After verifying their information, they were made to go to a certain room to wait before the program went live. There were already a few people, all young ones, in the room when the group of three arrived. Slowly people started being added one after another and soon it reached around 30 people in the room. However, not all of them were being interviewed. Half of the people were like Alex, who came with their friends or family to support them today. Nobody decided to start up a conversation with someone they didn''t know and only kept talking with the people they came in with. After a while, a woman from the staff entered and started calling out names. She called about 13 names before she stopped. Hannah''s name was among them as well. "Alright, I will be off. You should be able to see me on that TV over there," Hannah said and left. 12 other people consisting of 5 young women, 6 young men, and the elderly gentlemen left as well. Alex looked at the time and realized that there was still 15 minutes before the actual program began. ''Are they going to prepare their talking points or something?'' Alex started wondering. ''I wonder if these people think of their time in the game as a job too. Sister did mention that they were selected based on their bank transaction. Also,'' he looked around and thought, ''What happened to that guy that said he was the best in the game? He seems to be missing.'' After a few minutes, about 10 minutes before the show started, a woman walked in and asked, "Hello, would you people want to sit in the audience of today''s show?" "Yes, please," a bunch of people stood up and started walking out of the room. Alex decided to do so too. Along the way, the staff member gave them a bunch of information on the do and don''t in the studio like putting your phone on silent or vibration mode. Alex got seated at the corner seat with a girl about the same age as him seated next to him. She was wearing a small pinkish-red dress with frills all around it. She had glasses on that complimented her big and beautiful eyes. She seemed to be a little anxious about something and was constantly fidgeting about it. "Are you alright?" he proceeded to ask. "Oh!," the girl jumped in response. She then immediately apologized. "Oh, I''m so sorry. I didn''t mean to freak out like that. I¡ª I''m just not used to being around people," the girl said. "It''s okay. I just saw you fidgeting a lot and wondered if you were alright. If you are fine, then it''s okay," Alex said. "Thank you," the girl said. Alex looked back to the stage and nobody was there yet. There were still about 5 minutes for the show to start, so he decided to make some small talk. "Are you here with someone?" he asked. "Ah, yes. I¡ª I''m here with my roommate. She is quite good at the game and told me that she landed an interview and dragged me here. I wonder when it will start," she started to drift off with her thoughts and then remembered that she was still talking. "Oh, what about you?" she asked. "I''m here with my cousin. She didn''t tell me what was going on and just dragged me here," he said with a chuckle. "I''m Alex by the way," he said as brought forth his hand for a shake. The girl hesitated for a bit, but reciprocated at the end with a handshake and said, "I''m Emily. Nice to need you, Alex." "Nice to meet you, Emily," Alex said with a smile. Then, a bunch of noise started coming from the stage as the 13 people in the show starting walking up the stage to sit on one of the 13 seats on the stage. There was another seat a bit to the right reserved for the host. "Ah, she said interview, but it seems like it''s more of a talk show," Alex said. "M¡ªMy friend said it was an interview as well. Seems like there were too many people for it to be an interview and they will have to change the format," Emily suppressed her anxiety to speak. Once all the 13 people were seated in their seats, the host walked onto the stage and sat on his seat. Within a minute, the light in the audience dimmed and the show started. "Good evening everyone. This is your host, Drake Hamil from Channel 8. Tonight, we have these 13 people in front of us. Now, while they may look like some ordinary high school students ¡­ or maybe teachers for one person''s case, they are actually something way better." "Ladies and Gentlemen, Let me introduce you to the 13 Best of the best players in Eternal Cultivation right now," the host spoke. Countless applause rang up around the studio devouring any other sound. After the crowd was finally silent, the 13 people went around introducing themselves. Hannah introduced herself 3rd. When a lady named Sarah introduced herself, Emily let Alex know that she was her friend there. The old gentleman introduced himself as Sean White. He was at least 20 years older than the host, so the host didn''t try to make any more funny remarks about the man. Soon, after the round of introductions were done, the host spoke, "Let''s start tonight''s show where we talk with the current top players of Eternal Cultivation. Go in-depth with some of the mysteries surrounding the game and maybe have some questions that a game developer over at Deva Corp can answer to us, all in today''s show. Chapter 184: 7 Grades "First of all, let us tell the audience why you guys are the best of the best, shall we? Let''s start with your Cultivation base in Eternal Cultivation okay?" the host said. Some of the guests hesitated at first, but in the end, they all agreed. "Let us start with our first guest on the left, Mr. Sean." The host started talking with the older gentleman. "Can you tell us your cultivation base?" the host asked. "Yes, Of course. My cultivation base right now is the 4th realm of True Masters realm," the old man said. "Oh, that is quite low, isn''t it?" the host said. "Haha, compared to the energetic youths? Maybe. However, I only play 3 hours a day at most since I have a very young grandchild right now. I would rather spend the rest of my time with her," he said. "Oh wow. You only play for 3 hours a day and you are already in the True Master Realm? That is quite good," the host said. "Haha, yes. I believe so too." The host then went on to talk with the other. The young men and women he talked to were mostly in True King or True Emperor realms. None higher than the 5th realm of the True Emperor realm. But that didn''t matter to the audience. They gasped every time they heard the high cultivation base. However, Alex on the other hand cringed. ''That is clearly very bad, right? Getting to that high of a rank in 2 months would mean that they broke through non-stop using external means. Their bodies didn''t have enough time to get used to a cultivation base before they were in another.'' ''Why are these people acting like they are doing something very good? They are only seeing explosive growth for now. They will have to struggle to even breakthrough later on,'' Alex thought The host went on to talk with Hannah too. "What about you, miss? What is your cultivation level?" he asked. "I am currently in the 6th realm of True emperor," She said. "Oh wow, that is the highest we''ve heard yet, isn''t it?" the host said. The entire audience gasped hearing how high her cultivation base was. Alex gasped too this time. He hadn''t expected her sister to have such a high cultivation base either. ''But sister knows that cultivating fast is bad. Does she not worry?'' he wondered. Then he realized another possibility. ''She doesn''t care. Not only her but even the rest of them also don''t care either. If they are making money by having such high cultivation, why should they care? It''s only a game after all. In fact, it''s probably more than just a game to them, it''s their work. If being stronger earns them more money, they will gladly do so, won''t they?'' He felt like he was just enlightened about something. ''What about me? Should I go and eat lots of pills to break through very fast as well? There are not many monster cores left so I might as well make a lot of pills,'' he thought. ''Wait, these people are getting stronger to earn money, which means I won''t even have to get stronger since I make money without my strength,'' he thought. He suddenly realized where his thought process was being strayed to. ''Ughh¡­ money again. Why am I so fixated on it even when I can earn so much of it so easily?'' he started wondering. ''Is that how I think of the game now? Just a way to earn money? What happened to the little bits of fun I was having previously? Is it all going to drown in my need to make money now?'' he wondered. The host had at this point proceeded to ask the rest of the people about their cultivation base and the highest had still been True Emperor 6th realm, which belonged to Hannah and another man. These two were now unconsciously being viewed as the strongest players in the game, giving them respect much higher than the rest. "Now, let''s move on to the reason why these people, in general, had such a high cultivation base. The reason of which being undoubtedly their Talent and their Body," the host said. "More specifically speaking, the grade of their talent and body. Now we''ve come to learn a few critical pieces of information these last few days through the forum post that we made a few days ago. The most important is the true grades of everything. " "Dear Viewers, Did you know that there are 7 different grades in the game Eternal Cultivation?" The host asked and paused a bit. ''What?'' ''huh?'' ''No way! These sort of small murmurs ran through the crowd. Alex himself was startled when he heard of this. ''7? I only know of 5, maybe 6'' he thought. The host then spoke. "Yes! There are 7 different grades, and they go as follows. First is the three we all commonly knew from very long ago. These are the Mortal grade, Earth Grade and Heaven Grade." "Then we have the next two that we only learned a little more recently thanks to people sharing it on the forum. These are the Immortal Grade and the Divine grade." ''I knew it. Divine grade really is a thing. So am I ever going to figure out if my body is God grade or Divine grade?'' he wondered. The host continued, "And finally, the 2 new grades we have come to learn are the highest two grades available in the game. The first one is called Ancient grade. This is one of the best grades in the game." "However, the next one is even better. The final grade in the game is called God." ''Ancient grade? I don''t think I have ever heard about that one before. To be fair, I only thought about Divine grade thanks to my body, to begin with, and I wouldn''t have known about god grade if it weren''t for my talent.'' Alex thought. Chapter 185: Nine Revolution Ancient Body After letting the audience and the viewers have a bit of time to process what he had just dropped, the host continued the show. "Now, let us ask these top players what their body and talent grades are and why they are so high up on the list," the host said. "Let us start with the oldest of all, Mr. Sean once again." The host then turned to the old man and asked," Mr. Sean, can you tell us what grade your body and talent rank is?" he asked. "My body is not that good. It''s only Immortal grade," the man said with a small smile and continued, "However, My talent¡­ is God Grade." ''What?!'' Alex nearly screamed out loud when he heard this. Some people in the audience actually did shout out loud in disbelief. ''I had expected there to be other people besides me with God grade talent, but learning there really are others is truly surprising. No wonder the old guy could break through so fast. He must face no bottleneck at all, just like me,'' Alex thought. The host asked the others the same question and the answer he got were amusing, to say the least. Emily''s friend seemed to have a Heaven-grade body with an Ancient grade talent. The best body that had been mentioned yet was only a Divine body belonging to another girl in the group. The host had purposefully kept the two people with the highest cultivation at the last place. "Mr. Aaron, what about you?" the host asked. The man was a little smug as he said, "My body is just a simple Divine grade body that allows me to eat monster cores and gain a massive amount of explosive strength from it. Although I have only been able to use it rarely lately, it''s still good. As for my talent, it''s at God Grade as well." The host seemed to be curious about his explanation and asked, "Sorry, can you go back to your bit about your body. You said that you could eat monster cores for strength using it, but now you don''t. Can you give us an explanation as to why?" "I don''t really know the reason why, but I just had to. When I started very early on, I did exactly what my body, Divine Devourer told me to do. I devoured pills, spirit stones, herbs, and monster cores. The first three only gave me a little Qi when I ate them, but the monster core, whenever I would eat them, along with Qi, I would get the strength of the monster whose core I ate." "I slowly started to kill monsters and eat their core to become stronger and kill more monsters. Until about 10 days later, I got a small headache when I ate one. After that, from time to time I would get headaches whenever I ate one. Until one day I straight up fainted when I ate one. It also left my mind hurting for nearly a week. Ever since then, I have only stuck to the other items for Qi, and skipped monster cores." ''That is kind of like me,'' Alex thought. ''Does he also need to fight the monster in the spiritual sea which is why his head hurts?'' ''Wait, no. He probably hasn''t unlocked his spiritual sea yet. so, he can''t fight the monsters even if he wanted to. No wonder he has so much headaches. Atleast it''s good to know that nothing bad other than some headache would occur in case I lose to the monsters,'' Alex thought. The host nodded a little and asked, "So, do you use the Qi from pills, spirit stones, and herbs to gather Qi and breakthrough now?" "Kinda, but not really. The pills would help me gain Qi regardless of my body. I can just cultivate with a spirit stone instead of eating it. As for herbs, they are better if they are made into pills. Since these 3 things don''t really have a huge impact on my cultivation process, I don''t usually mention these when I talk about my body," he said. "I see. That is unfortunate. Now, let us move on to miss Hannah. Can you tell us about your body and Talent?" he asked. Hannah nodded and started talking. "My talent is not so special it seems. Most people seem to have Ancient grade talent, I have one as well. However, I also happen to have an Ancient grade body." "What?" The guest on the stage turned their heads towards her in surprise, not to mention the shock amongst the people in the crowd and back home. Alex himself was surprised by this sudden information as well. Even Aaron was surprised and slightly jealous of her now. Even though he had a better Talent than her, in the long run, the body would surely be much more useful. Especially if it was anything like his own. "Isn''t that your cousin? Does she have that good body?" Emily asked from the side. She was no longer timid as the shock had taken away any timidness in her for now. "I¡ª I did not know about any of this. She never shared to me about her talent or anything," Alex said. The host was stupefied for a moment as well. It seemed he was not informed about this fact from the TV studio, probably for a more genuine interaction on today''s show. "Ms. Hannah, do you really have an Ancient grade Body? What does it do?" he asked. Hannah chuckled a little and said, "Yes I do. It''s called the Nine Revolutions Ancient Body. Basically what it does is every day and night, it gathers Qi from the surrounding until I cannot gather anymore. Which for me is around a few million Qi. Even when I am asleep or offline, It constantly brings in Qi for me." Hannah''s words caused a great amount of shock and envy among the crowd, but the Host seemed to have thought of something and asked, "While it does sound like an incredible body Ms. Hannah, I find it a bit too dull to be an Ancient grade body. Is there anything else you have to add to that?" "Hehe, you are not a host for just any reason, are you? Yes. I do have something else it does that work in tandem with the Qi gathering. And that is the fact that I can break through any realms without using any cultivation method at all. My body allows me to bypass that restriction." Chapter 186: [Bonus Chapter]Continents "Sorry, you said you don''t need a cultivation method at all. Can you explain that?" the host asked shocked at what he had just heard. "Yes. What I mean is my body can gather Qi on its own which I can then use to breakthrough without needing to learn a cultivation technique. If I had relied on the mortal grade technique that was gifted to me when I first created my character, I would have probably still been stuck at the self tempering realm like a lot of others," Hannah said. "Oh, so does that mean that you breakthrough continuously without needing to stop at all?" the host asked. "Theoretically, yes. But realistically, No," she replied. The host got confused at that answer. So did the rest of the people watching the interview. "Can you elaborate?" the host asked. "Of course. What I mean is that while I can go on breaking through forever, I don''t do that. A bit recently, I came to learn that breaking through one after another without having a stable cultivation base first is really bad for you." "I''m sure everyone here can attest to the fact that they are weaker than their peers in the game who are at the same cultivation base. All because we didn''t spend much time in each individual realm, trying to become the best at that realm before moving on to the next one. I am regretting not learning about this beforehand." The host looked with wide eyes. "I didn''t know anything about this at all." He then turned to the camera and said, "There you have it, folks. If you aren''t at a high enough realm yet, this is your time to fix your cultivation right now." "Now, since spiritual roots don''t add anything to cultivation itself, we will skip asking the guests about that. So, let''s move on to another topic of today''s show, The geography of Eternal Cultivation. "Many of you viewers might already think you know this, but I promise you don''t. This is exclusive information that only 3 of our guests today knew. Others were completely in the unknown about this." Suddenly, a massive picture appeared on the screen behind the host and the guests. The picture consisted of a blue background with 4 irregular pieces on all 4 sides. It was a map. Alex looked at it and wondered, ''What is that giant blue thing in the back?'' "This is the map of Eternal Cultivation, or at least an estimation of it since no one has really seen a true map of it yet. To all the viewers who have never seen a map of the game, you are in for a big surprise." The host stood up and moved to the picture. "Look at this," he said as he pointed at the blue sections on the map. "Can you guys guess what this is?" he asked the oblivious viewers and audience. "This¡­ is¡­ Water," he spoke trying to create suspense. "These," he gestured to all the blue parts of the map and said, "are all water. It is called an ocean. It houses more water than the land in the world itself." The audience gasped. They had never heard of this ''Ocean'' thing and when they saw that so much of the game was just water, they were surprised. Alex himself was quite surprised too. ''If the blue is the water, then the different 4 objects on the map have to be land right? Even if the left most land is half the size of our world, that is still so much water.'' His eyes shined brightly as he looked at the thing. ''Ocean¡­ what a fantastical thing.'' The host continued, "Now, look at the lands themselves. We have 2 green ones on the east and west that are similar to our own world, full of mountains, trees and rivers and ponds and cities. The north one, however, is fully clad in snow¡­ all year round." "Yes, the same snow that only occurs once a while on the northern area of our own real world. The northern lands are forever covered in the snow. The south, however, is perhaps more so bizarre. The southern land is actually covered in sand, all of it. There is not a single place that doesn''t have sand in there," the host said. Alex was listening intently to the new information he was learning through the host. ''Forever snowing land? Place all covered in sand? What sort of mystical land are these? The developers must have really gone above and beyond preparing the world for this game,'' he thought. "This land full of sand is called a desert. This southern continent is just a giant desert, through and through." "Now, for the thing that is the most surprising of it all. For that, I will have to explain what Continents are. These all 4 lands are called Continents," the host said. ''That was what sister told me,'' Alex thought. "Continents are massive pieces of land on the ocean where the game actually takes place. Unlike our own real world, these lands have an actual edge to them. In our real world, if you walk in a straight direction, you will reach the endless forests and if you walk through the endless forests, you will just fall off the edge into the void and die. " "But in this place, if you walk in a straight line, you would just reach the water. No worries about falling off and dying," the host said. "Now, imagine the world we live in, all the 17 different cities with the nearly billion people was a circle, okay. Now look at this," the host said. Suddenly a circle appeared on the Northern continent that was always frozen. However, the circle that appeared on it was about the size of a door handle on a door. The host then spoke. "This is how big the lands in Eternal Cultivation are. Just the Northern Continent alone is about 40 times the size of our own world." "You can see why I would call it very surprising." Chapter 187: Fifth Most of the audience members including Alex were shocked at this information. This was such an out of nowhere piece of information that it had caught them truly off guard. The host was smiling wide seeing the look of disbelief on the faces of the audience. Not only them, but it also seemed that even some of the players, including the old man named Sean, were completely unaware of this information. "The world of Eternal Cultivation is truly vast, and it also contains a lot of different places not available in the real world. For example, in the northern continent, there are flowing frozen rivers called glaciers. In the eastern continent, there are mountain peaks that spew out fiery liquid from the top. The west has an unending forest." "There are beaches, which are small strips of land on the edge of the world that meets the water. There are giant cliffs with deep ravines in between called canyons. There are so many different things to explore, and most of us just stay in the cities. Such a shame," the host said while shaking his head. Alex thought so too. ''There is so much more world that I have yet to see, and I am just staying in one city. I should leave to explore other places.'' A small fire of excitement began to light up deep inside him, bringing the fun back into the game. "Now, returning back to the players while still staying on the topic of continents. How many of you are from the eastern continents?" the host asked the guests. 5 people raised their hands, including Hannah and Emily''s friend. "How many of you are from the Northern continent?" he then asked. 4 hands raised this time including the old man Sean. "The Southern continent?" the host asked. All of the remaining 4 hands were raised at this point, including Aaron. "And we can see that there are none of you from the Western Continent. It''s weird, isn''t it? We have seen the statistics report and surprisingly, only 12% of all players are in the Western Continent." "And furthermore, they are always slow on the rise. The resources there are lower than the ones in the other continent. Do any of you have an idea why that might be?" the host asked. ''Didn''t sister say that I was from the Western Continent? Is it really that bad?'' he wondered. The guests there made some guesses as to why that might have been. Some said they might have been slow to develop. Some said, the developers just made it that way. However, none of the guests could make any credible guesses, so the host decided to change the topic. "Since we do not know about it that much, let us move to another topic. That topic being¡­" the host immediately turned around to point at the center of the map which was nothing but water. Suddenly, a green land appeared in the middle of the map. "¡­ The Fifth Continent," the host spoke. Everyone was suddenly confused. Murmurs started appearing among the crowd as they tried to figure out how there could even be a fifth Continent. There were quite a few in the crowd that were quite learned regarding the geography of Eternal Cultivation. Even though they didn''t know the exact area of the continents or their relative location. They still knew that there were 4 different continents. Yet, the host was speaking about the existence of the fifth one that they had never heard of. The host smiled when he saw the different reactions on the faces of most of the guests and all of the audience. "You heard it here first. We are revealing to you the yet unrevealed fifth continent of the Eternal Cultivation. This is a very different continent from most of the other continents. Let us ask the three people who provided us with this information," said the Host. "Ms. Hannah, Mr. Aaron, and Mr. Shane, could you tell us how you came to learn about the existence of this continent and why no one else knows of it?" he asked. The man named Shane first spoke, "I actually do not know much about the Fifth continent aside from the fact that it exists. I came to learn about it on an accident when my master mentioned that we would have to take a detour through the Eastern Continent if we ever wanted to go the Southern Continent from the Northern continent. All because of the weirdness of the fifth continent." Aaron followed up, "The fifth continent is actually way more commonly known in the Southern continent. Well, at least on the higher level it is. There are records of land being visible from the southern continent itself when the weather conditions are perfect. Although, because of how hard it is to stay around at the northern part of the Southern Continent, I myself have never personally seen this fifth Continent appearing." "I see," the host said. He then turned to Hannah and asked, "What about you Ms. Hannah? How do you know about the Fifth Continent?" "My Hu¡ª Friend from inside the game told me about it. He has a rather high rank among the people in the Eastern continent and has access to a lot of important information. He let me know about, rather cautioned me against ever going towards the Fifth Continent cause of the dangers there." "Danger?" the host was curious. "Any idea what sort of dangers?" he asked. "Apparently, a very high-level battle took place in the fifth continent a few generations ago, and the land was left torn apart from the battle. Ever since then, the final continent has remained unapproachable by anyone due to the turbulent Qi in it." "However, I believe that is what the developers are telling us right now," Hannah said. "Hmm¡­ what do you mean Ms. Hannah?" the host asked. Hannah replied, "I believe that this Fifth Continent is going to be the next expansion of the game and is going to open up soon in the near future." Chapter 188: Developer "Oh," the host got a little curious. "Is that so? So you believe the reason no one can visit the fifth continent is that the developers haven''t fully made it yet and it is still under development. That kind of makes sense." "Doesn''t it?" Hannah said with excitement. "Imagine later down the line we reach the saint realm and have to go up, and the only way to do that is to move to the fifth continent where there will be much stronger people, better techniques, and all the pills and weapons and artifacts. It will truly be an amazing time." The host talked with the guests about the fifth continent for a little longer before saying that the talk with them was over and going on a break. Alex was still taking in the pieces of information he had just gotten. "I didn''t know there was so much more to the world of Eternal Cultivation. And here I am staying in one city in one empire in one continent," he said out loud. Emily didn''t know if he was talking to himself or to her so she just decided to respond, "I¡ª I also just stay in a city in the northern continent. I haven''t left the city yet since I started playing 2 months ago." "Oh, you played the game right after its release?" Alex asked. "Yes. My friend forced me to buy a VR Helmet within the first 4 days of the release. I''ve been playing passively ever since then," she said. "Oh, then you must be at quite a high realm," he said. "Not really. I¡ª I don''t go out to fight monsters or buy pills or even get spirit stones. So, I am very slow at cultivating. I barely reached the true realm a week ago," she said. "Oh, that''s not bad," Alex said. "What about you?" she asked. "I only started playing about a month ago, so I''m not really that high. Only Organ tempering realm," he said with a smile. The guests were taken to a different viewing spot in the audience reserved for them where they chatted amongst themselves and in a few minutes. Then, the show was back on. "Welcome back viewers. We finished talking with the 13 best of the best players in Eternal Cultivation. Now, we move on to the developer side of the game. I believe we have a developer from the game with us on the line." "Can you hear us, Mr. Developer?" the host asked. "Hello? Yes, I can hear you." The person on the other side of the connection said. There was no video and the audience and viewers could only hear the voice. "Can you please introduce yourself to the audience?" the host spoke. "Yes. Hello, I am Robin Howard and I have been a developer for Deva Corp for about 9 years now. I have been a part of the big games Deva Corp put out the past few years. Recently I was assigned to Eternal Cultivation as one of the people in charge of looking after the feedback and collecting data." The host then asked, "So, let me get this straight. You are not part of the developer team that made the game, and you only came to the team later on." "Uhh, you''re not wrong in saying that," Robin said. "Except for the fact that Eternal Cultivation has no developers team." The host and the other audience members were a little taken aback. "Sorry, what do you mean Eternal Cultivation has no developers team?" he asked. "Just what I said. The game Eternal Cultivation was not made by anyone in Deva Corp. It was actually sold to us by a different group of people using another person as a middleman." "We still have no idea how the game was made, how the helmets made the game seem so realistic, or even how the capsules work. However, we have already tested the capsules and they work fantastically. In fact, it might be considered better than the helmets due to a certain feature that I am not allowed to tell you guys yet," Robin said. This was a new piece of information that nobody in all the 17 cities knew. "So Deva Corp is not responsible for making and distributing the game?" The host asked to confirm. "Oh distributing absolutely, but not making the game. I know Deva Corp has gotten a lot of hate for not answering comments like why the game is not fair, or why we keep the helmet internals proprietary, or even just why we won''t let the technology be used in other sectors than just the game," Robin said. "I see, I was about to ask you if you guys got the idea for the world in the game from the old texts, but it seems you guys probably do not know about it," the host said. "What is this about the old texts? The ones left by our ancestors?" Robin asked. "Oh don''t worry about it. A player actually found it and had posted on his own forum, but due to lack of exposure, it had been left buried until now. The thing that person found was that Eternal Cultivation was inspired by the old texts. The geographical anomaly all matches the old texts. Of course, except for the part where they were mistaken about the world being round when it is perfectly flat. " " It would seem that the real developers of the game read the old texts left behind in Pinewood city, and implemented it onto their own game. Unfortunately, due to it being not allowed to be photographed, we couldn''t show exactly what the old text said." the host said. "I see. We wouldn''t know anything about that," Robin said. "Anyway, Thank you for taking the time to appear on today''s show, Mr. Robin." "Thank you to both you and Channel 8 for having me," Robin said and cut the connection. "Anyway, that is it for tonight folks. Keep watching for more fun stuff coming along. We will be sure to have prepared more Eternal cultivation. Goodbye." And with that, the show ended. Chapter 189: Blushing "Finally, it''s over." Alex took out his phone to look at the time and realized it was 10 pm. His stomach was starting to growl a little. GRRR He heard a stomach growl from his side too. He turned left to find Emily''s face nearly red in the studio light from the embarrassment. He chuckled a little and said, "You must be hungry as well. I haven''t eaten anything since during the day." Emily chose to say nothing. A staff member came by hauling everyone out through the side door. Alex met Hannah who was outside, along with the other 12 people. "That went quite well, right?" Hannah asked. "Yes. I can''t believe you hid how good you were in the game. If not for the interview, I would''ve never known," Alex said. "Nah, I would''ve told you sometime soon. I can''t keep it to myself at all," Hannah said with a giggle. "It''s so late, we should return now," Alex said. "Let''s get something to eat before we do," Hannah said. "Hey Sarah, you want to get something to eat before we leave?" "Sure," A voice came from the group. Alex was a little surprised because the person who had just spoken turned out to be Emily''s friend. "You guys are already familiar?" Alex asked. "Kind of. She was in one of my classes a year ago. I noticed her in the waiting room but didn''t remember her name, so I stayed quiet," Hannah said with a chuckle. "Yeah. I''m so hungry. Let''s get some decent meal if the restaurants are even open at this time," Sarah said as she walked towards Hannah and Alex. Emily was following her timidly among the group as well. They went to a nearby diner, the only one that was open at this time of the night, and ordered some meals. Hannah and Sarah started talking with each other, while Alex and Emily were just left there silently eating their food. "So, is he your younger brother?" Sarah asked. "He is my cousin. He is in the first year of university and is staying with me right now," Hannah said. "Oh, Oakleaf University?" Sarah asked. "Yes." "Emily here started studying at Oakleaf University too. She is in the 2nd semester of the first year," Sarah said. "Oh, Alex is joined just a month ago, so he is only in the 1st semester," Hannah replied. They talked a bit more and finished eating. They left the diner and Hannah started looking for cabs to return back home. "Since we are going the same way, why don''t you two come with us?" Sarah asked. "With you guys? Sure. Are we sharing a cab?" Hannah asked. "Oh god no. I brought my own car," Sarah said. "Oh, nice. I should learn to drive too now that I can buy a car myself," Hannah said. From a nearby parking lot, Sarah brought out the car. Hannah got on to the front seat, leaving Emily and Alex to take the back seat. There wasn''t a lot to talk about so, the car was mostly silent the whole way back. At some point, thanks to it being boring and having just eaten, Emily fell asleep on Alex''s shoulders. Alex thought of waking her up for a second but decided not to. "Oh, is she asleep?" Sarah said looking at them through the rearview mirror and quickly took a photo of them. "Hehe, she will be so embarrassed when she sees this photo." She then told Alex," Don''t wake her up. She usually goes to bed early, and it''s already 11 pm. We still have half an hour left before we get back." Alex just let her sleep on his shoulders the entire way back. He himself, however, couldn''t fall asleep. Having been homeschooled and having barely any contact with girls before, his heart was racing like crazy. It remained that way the whole way back. Hannah would look back through the rearview mirror from time to time and smirk. Finally, at around half past 11, Sarah stopped in front of a moderate building. "Let me just get Emily into the room and I will come back to get you guys to your place," Sarah said and got out of the car. "Oh, no need," Hannah said. "Our building is right over there," she said as she pointed to the tall building a few hundred meters down the line. "Thank you for giving us a ride, we can walk from here," Hannah said. "Alex, Come one, let''s go." Alex didn''t move however and simply pointed at the sleeping Emily. "Oh," Sarah said as she chuckled and pulled Emily towards her from the window to shake her awake. Emily woke up and looked around, confused as to where she was. "Am I still in the game?" she asked. "Haha, silly. You were asleep in the car back home. Now get out," Sarah said. Finally realizing where she was, Emily hastily got out of the car and fixed her clothes. Sarah and Hannah laughed and Alex finally left the car. Saying their goodbyes, Hannah and Alex walked back to their home. "It seems I was right," Hannah said. "About what, sister?" Alex asked. "About me telling that you might find a girl today," she said. Alex immediately blushed. "Oh look at you, already embarrassed about it," Hannah said. "You are blushing more now than when she was sleeping on your shoulder." "Can we not talk about this, Sister?" he said. "Hehe, alright, alright." They reached back home and Alex went straight to his room with the intention to sleep. He laid down on his bed ready to sleep when he remembered something. "Ah, that''s right. There is the exam tomorrow. I almost forgot. Do I go into the game or do I sleep?" he wondered. He decided to sleep for the night but everything he learned today started appearing on his mind distracting him from his sleep. ''Sigh, I will just go to the game and cultivate for now.'' Thinking so, he logged back into the game. Chapter 190: Second Best Alex logged into the game at midnight. He originally planned on cultivating when he came here, but then he remembered what happened this morning. "If I also mess up the time of me waking up tomorrow morning as well, I will miss the exam," he thought. So he decided to just not cultivate his Qi for now. Since he could manage to cultivate his body without going unconscious now, he decided to do that instead. He called out Pearl and told him to cultivate. Within minutes, Pearl was glowing gold, and he had started to cultivate. Intense pain shot throughout Alex''s body, but it was nowhere near concerning for Alex. He was perfectly fine handling this sort of pain, even though it hurt a lot. His pain tolerance had really gone up a few realms after the continuous body cultivation in the Tiger sect. Throughout the entire night, he cultivated his body, and a bit before 7 in the morning, he stopped. He sent Pearl back into his arm and logged out. After getting refreshed, he went to the kitchen to have some food. Hannah didn''t seem to have woken up yet, so he prepared breakfast only for himself and ate it. After having his breakfast, he logged back into the game. The exam started at 8 am, so he decided to leave now. He slowly trekked down the mountain and reached the Elder''s hall a bit before it was time for the exam. ''Woah,'' he thought as he looked at the slew of disciples standing outside the Elder''s Hall. ''What''s going on?'' he wondered. There were nearly a thousand of them here. If it had been only a few disciples in front of the Elder''s Hall, he would''ve just assumed they were here for the exam, but the disciples in here were from all 3 sections of the sect numbering in 4 digits. ''I¡­ am at the right place, right?'' he thought. "Alright everyone, come on in," an Elder said and the crowd of disciples walked in. Alex didn''t know what was going on, but since his master told him to come here, he didn''t think he was in the wrong reason. So, he just followed the group of disciples. He passed a number of doors and took a sudden left turn. He sent out his spiritual sense to look at everything and realized that he was walking into a big open area. As soon as the disciples walked into the open area, nearly 90% of them split from the group and started sitting on the floor all around the room. Alex was a little confused. ''Do I sit down too?'' he wondered. "Alright, Examinees and Viewers come with me," the elder said once more and walked even further. ''That''s where I go?'' Alex thought and walked along, but he still looked at the different disciples sitting on the ground, as if they were at a concert or something. ''A concert¡­ wait a second. Of course.'' He felt like facepalming right now. ''God, I can''t believe I forgot about the weekly lectures. No wonder there are so many disciples in here,'' Alex thought. The elder took them through a narrower corridor to a different open room, only this time it didn''t have many places to sit as there were fire pits all over the floor. ''Are we supposed to make alchemy out in the open?'' he wondered. The entire floor was about a hundred meters long and 50 meters wide. There were about 60 fire pits on the ground and a section had been separated for the spectators. "Wait here for the other elders to arrive," The elder said and left. Alex took the time to send away his spiritual sense into the crowd to see who was here. ''Oh, it''s the core disciple from yesterday,'' he thought when he noticed the core disciple that was with Zhou Mi, the one that had bumped into him the day before yesterday. He found Zhou Mi right next to her as well. He then found a man next to him, another core disciple, and he was looking directly at him. He started walking and came up right next to him. Alex looked at him in surprise and he hadn''t expected to see a core disciple''s robe on the man''s shoulders this soon. He smiled and said, "Congratulations, brother Kong. I see I missed your actual ascension." "Thank you, Brother Yu. You could''ve come watched me pass it as well. I did it last week," he said. "I was out of sect for the last two weeks, so I couldn''t have even if I knew it," he said. "It''s alright. Why are you here? To spectate?" he asked. "Oh no, I''m taking part in the exams as well," he said. "What about you? It can''t be you are already going to take your examinations for the elder role, right?" he asked. "Oh, you know about that? I''m quite surprised. Also, No. I''m actually here to cheer for sister Mi who is going to take part in the core disciple exam today," he said. "Oh," he said as he looked towards Zhou Mi. He also saw the core disciple with her and asked, "by the way, brother Kong. Who is that senior with Sister Zhou Mi? They look so similar," he asked. Kong Yuhan didn''t even have to look back to know who he was talking about. He looked at Alex with a small shocked expression on his face. "You don''t know who that is?" he asked as if not knowing who she was unheard of. Alex started to get more curious. ''Just who is she to garner such a reaction from a core disciple?'' he wondered. "Brother Kong, you seem to forget that I am quite new around here," he said. "Yeah, but it''s still unusual for anyone to not know who she is. Although, I guess outer sect disciples might have only heard her name and never really seen her." He then turned to Alex and started whispering as he said, " That is Zhou Mei, the second highest-ranking disciple of the sect." Chapter 191: Exam Starts Alex was a little surprised. "I should have guessed. They do look similar, so I could have just known name by associating her with sister Zhou Mi," he thought. He started wondering how good she might be at making pills or how far along she was at becoming an elder by now. He was also curious if she would be one of the people taking part in the annual competition. It was an obvious choice if he thought about it. He talked with Kong Yuhan for a few more minutes as the rest of the elders came to the exam fields. The elder from before started calling out names, sending the examinees to specific elders who were waiting for them. The names were at random from what Alex could tell and thus he had to wait a bit before he was called. "Yu Ming!" the Elder said out loud. Alex walked up to the Elder. The Elder looked him up and down and said, "You''re the sect leader''s disciple huh? I heard you''re quite good at taking pills. Good luck on your exam today." He then sent Alex to an Elder who was waiting for him near a fire pit. Alex walked to the Elder and greeted him. The elder was on the younger side like he had just been transferred from the core disciples to the elders. The elder didn''t speak much and directly told him to sit down and prepare. "Have you chosen what pill you are going to make?" the Elder asked. Alex didn''t have to think as he had prepared for this moment. He chose the Bone Sealing pill. The Bone Sealing pill was a pill that blocked the cultivation base of anyone in the Bone Tempering realm of lower for a few hours, depending on the pill''s harmony. It was one of the pills he had only made a few times and was thus one of the few pills that fell under the criteria for his choice in the exam. The criteria being it wasn''t registered to the sect, it was a recipe sold in the sect, and it was a recipe he had the ingredients for. "Do you have your own ingredients and cauldron?" the elder asked. Alex was about to nod his head in affirmation but then realized that it was probably not a good idea to show his True Earth grade cauldron in front of everyone here. So he told the Elder that he only had the ingredients and not the cauldron. The elder asked for him to take out the ingredients for checking. Alex happily complied and took out the ingredients. After seeing that Alex''s ingredients had no tampering done to them, the Elder said, " Keep your storage bags aside please." Alex was a little surprised at first, but then the Elder gave him a moderately big box that could fit about 10 storage bags in them. Alex put his bags in there and locked the box. He took the key with himself. The elder took out a simple black cauldron, the same ones that were found in the Alchemy hall. This one had no lid either. Alex had planned to not use Elemental Guidance and definitely not make pills whose resulting energy was metal so as to not stand out in the crowd. And now, he had to use a less than mediocre cauldron too. ''Oh god. If the pill splitting Qi activates, I might actually end up with pills below 20% harmony and just might fail,'' he thought. After the Elder handed him the cauldron and the ingredient, he said, "You have an hour to make the pill. Your time starts now." He then sat directly in front of him. Alex stopped caring about the Elder and focused on the cauldron. He put the cauldron on the fire and let it heat up. As he was doing so, a small film-like substance started appearing around him and the fire pit. Not even the Elder was inside there. Alex realized that this was a sound-blocking formation at work. ''I am really curious how these formations work,'' he thought. He then turned his focus back to the task at hand. The first thing he did, even before putting in the ingredients was clean the cauldron. Sending out a wave of Qi, he scraped off whatever bits of powder were left behind from previously made pills. The Elder simply nodded when she saw this, approving of the choice. Alex then waited for the cauldron to reach the proper temperature. The cauldron wasn''t very good at transferring heat fast enough, so he would have to time it right. Thankfully, he remembered what the pill was supposed to look and feel like throughout the process of making it. So, he could base how close he was using that memory. He could also use his spiritual sense to figure out the temperature of the cauldron. However, it wasn''t as accurate as Flame Mastery Scripture. When the cauldron was properly heated up, he put in the first ingredient, a tendon from a beaver-like beast. He waited until the tendon was heated enough and the energy started releasing into the air. Due to having no lid, most of the energy flew away, while some of them stayed behind and got recollected into the powders. He then put in the second ingredient and moved it around inside the cauldron, turning it into powder and releasing its energy too. The two energies mixed together in the powder forming a simple harmony of energy. Compared to the first time he made the pills in the Alchemy hall, this was a much easier time. Thanks to his increased mental energy due to the spiritual sea being unlocked, he had a far better concentration and multi-tasking ability than a month ago. He could also use spiritual sense to constantly check on the ingredients and energy, instead of just watching the powders move in the cauldron-like last time. All in all, he was doing much better than the first time he had made a pill. Which, he started worrying might come around to become a problem for him. Chapter 192: Failure Alex continued making the Bone Sealing pill as per the recipe. While more than half of the energy had escaped, he didn''t worry about it. The pills would have enough energy left for him to pass. He continued putting in more and more ingredients as the Elder kept on watching. Finally, with the last ingredient, he was done putting in everything. It was now time for him to form the pill. He slowly gathered the powder around to shape it into a sphere. It was beginning to form a clump of powder when suddenly, a different strand of Qi escaped from his body and went into the pills. ''No!'' he thought, horrified. This was the last thing he wanted happening to him. He wasn''t worried about the Elder seeing him split a pill into two. The cauldron was at a distance where the Elder couldn''t see inside at all, but the problem was¡­ The powder clump separated into two equally sized clumps that started forming into pills. A vortex started on top of them sucking in as much energy as they could from their surrounding. However, most of it had already escaped and so the pills were left with none. After a minute or two, the vortexes stopped forming and the pills were done. Alex went into Focus mode. Time slowed down as his senses started to become a lot more acute. A little scared, Alex quickly put his hands into the cauldron, hiding the pills from the Elder. As he brought his hands back towards him, he looked at the pills. [Bone Sealing Pill: 19%] [Bone Sealing Pill: 17%] ''Sh*t,'' he started distressing. He quickly shot the 17% pill down his sleeve and showed the 19% pill in his palm. The pill suddenly flew off as soon as he opened his arm, falling into the Elder''s hand. The Elder started testing the pill''s Harmony level in the Pill tester and sighed. He shook his head as he saw the number 19 on the pill tester''s glass body. Seeing that number was a little disappointing for him. The Elder had heard quite a bit about the Sect Leader''s disciple from the other Elders, especially the one in charge of registering pills for the core disciples. ''Was he lying? Or was the disciple cheating at those times?'' the Elder wondered. His gaze turned a little harsh now that he knew that the disciple was not very talented at making pills. However, nothing could be harsher than the way Alex was berating himself on the inside. ''You stupid idiot. You could''ve just used Elemental Guidance at the end and you would''ve been fine. Just a single percentage increase and you would''ve passed the exam. Goddammit! Why did the stupid pill splitting Qi had to get come out at this time.'' ''I should have just used my cauldron and I could have fixed this. If only I had a lid, the harmony would go up by about 5% for sure.'' He started thinking about the different things that went wrong or the mistakes he made. However, nothing would now change the fact that he failed to make a 20% pill during the core disciples exam. ''Sigh. Half an hour went just like that,'' he thought. The Elder stood up at this point and walked a little closer towards him. He then spoke. "Disciple Yu Ming, You have failed to make a pill with 20% harmony under an hour. Do you have anything to say," the Elder asked? Alex sighed. He was about to shake his head when he suddenly caught up on something. "Um¡­ Elder, Do I pass the exam as long as I can produce a 20% harmony pill in under an hour?" he asked. "Why are you repeating what I just said and asking if that is true? Of course, it is," The Elder replied a little annoyed at Alex. Alex however didn''t mind it. His eyes were shining from the bit of information he had just received. "Elder, so I can make another pill, and if it turns out to have a harmony higher than 20%, I am fine, right?" he asked. "Yes, but I will have to inspect your ingredients again and it''s already over half an hour now," the elder said. "No worries," Alex said and immediately opened the box to take out his storage bags. He looked into a few of them and took out the ingredients for the pill once more and handed it to the Elder. The Elder spent some time checking the ingredients and handed it back to him. Alex looked at the time and only 20 minutes were left. He had to hurry up. Alex was worried the Elder would waste more of his time if he brought out his cauldron at this point, so he decided to stay with the bad one for now. Without hesitation, he put the first ingredient into the cauldron. The tendon started turning to powder and releasing energy. Alex slowly used Elemental Guidance to keep those energies inside the cauldron as much as possible. After some time, he put in another piece of ingredient and used Elemental Guidance to keep its energy inside the cauldron too. As more and more ingredients were added into the mix, the harmony between the elements began to set. Alex made sure everything was fine when he decided to start forming the pill. ''Oh god please don''t release the pill splitting Qi,'' he prayed. He then collected the powders in the cauldron to a clump and used Elemental Guidance to move whatever energy was left in the cauldron. The little amount of energy passed through the powder, increasing the harmony ever so slightly. He could tell that the powders had absorbed a good amount of energy and that the pill would be high leveled now. He was starting to get hopeful about his chances to pass at this point. He looked at the time and realized he only had less than 2 minutes to complete the task. He proceeded to complete the task, but just then, the thing he least hoped for happened. The Pill Splitting Qi came out of his body once more. Chapter 193: Calling out Names ''Oh no,'' Alex thought as he felt the new strand of Qi come out of his body and enter the cauldron. The Qi immediately split the pill into two giving him horrifying thoughts about the result. He wanted to control the Qi, but as usual, it was beyond his control. The separated clumps of powder suddenly started sucking in the energy from the cauldron, taking in the remaining energy he had managed to keep in there thanks to the Elemental Guidance. Time was ticking down while the pills were still sucking in the energy. Alex only had 10 seconds remaining on his time when the pills were formed. Without hesitation, he took one pill out of the cauldron and gave it to the Elder as he had no time to look at it himself. As for the second pill, he couldn''t think of how to covertly take it out now. He couldn''t use his Qi manipulation or simply put his hands inside to grab it. There was only one thing he could do now. Using an intense Qi manipulation, He crushed the pill inside the cauldron, scattering it everywhere. He then watched the Elder put his pill inside the pill tester. He hadn''t touched the pill yet, so he didn''t know if he had passed yet or not. He watched with bated breath as the fog on the pill tester started to rise from the metallic plate. Slowly, the fog went up the glass beaker of the pill tester, soon reaching 10%. But it didn''t stop there, it kept on going up as more and more fog appeared on the beaker. At around 16%, the fog slowed down. Alex started worrying. It went up to 17%, which made him a little happy, but still worried. ''A little more, just a little more,'' he wished worriedly. 18%, the fog went up once again. And again it went up to 19%. ''Just one more, please,'' Alex started praying. He could almost swear that he looked at the pill tester for an eternity before it went up. 20%. A big smile appeared on Alex''s face as he saw the number. He had passed. The pill tester didn''t stop there however, it went up 4 times more and stopped at 24%. He had safely passed the test by a huge margin. The Elder looked at the harmony level of the pill and nodded. He then turned around to Alex and said, "Congratulations, You''ve passed the exam. You are now a core disciple. Give me your nameplate." Alex took out his nameplate and handed it to the Elder. "You can go and sit with your friends in the audience now," The Elder said and walked away. Having nothing else to do, Alex took his storage bags and walked back to the spectator''s zone. While walking back, he could hear the sigh of relief, the sigh of disappointment, the cry of sadness, the optimism, and a whole lot of other emotions on the voice of the numerous disciples that took the test. He looked ahead to the spectator''s zone and saw that Kong Yuhan was smiling happily while talking with Zhou Mi, who herself was smiling as well. The ever-frowning Zhou Mei was smiling too. ''It seems she passed,'' Alex thought. Alex went to a relatively isolated section of the spectator''s zone and waited for the results. Only after a few minutes did the elders return back to the hall. "Alright, we will now announce the disciples who have passed the exam," the Elder said. "For the first list, we have 9 new inner sect disciples. I will call your name and you come on the stage. The list is based on who passed the earliest," the elder said. He then started calling out names. Every disciple he called would walk up to him, whereupon they would be handed 2 sets of new robes, a new guidebook, and their nameplate. One by one, the new inner sect disciples were called to get their stuff. Once the disciples took their stuff, they walked back to the spectator zone. Kong Yuhan had at one point managed to find him and had made his way over to Alex. "Brother Yu, how was your exam?" he asked. "So-so, I would say. At least I passed," Alex replied. "Well, passing an exam is always good," Kong Yuhan said. One after another the disciples went up to the elder and returned back. Soon, the 9th name was called upon. The disciple walked a little ashamedly, hiding his face from the crowd as much as possible, and made his way up to the elder. After taking his stuff back, he hurried his way back to the spectators. "Now, let''s move on to the new Core disciples. This time, we have a surprising 3 new core disciples," the elder said. "Woah, 3 at once? That''s a good amount. But, brother Yu, didn''t you say you passed? Why was your name not called yet?" Kong Yuhan asked. Alex was still waiting for his name so he simply said, "I did pass. It will come up soon probably." Kong Yuhan was about to tell him he was wrong and that the names for inner sect disciples were done when the first name on the Core disciples list was named. Hearing the name, a male disciple walked out of the group of people with his head held up high and a smug smile on his face. "Tsk, it''s not sister Mi who was first?" Kong Yuhan clicked his tongue as he said that. Alex was a little surprised to hear him care about the order at which the names were called. "Is there an importance to the order of names being called? He asked. "Not really, it''s just that¡­" Kong Yuhan started to get a little embarrassed as he searched around for words to speak. "It''s just that the new core disciples get their houses based on who came first. Since I was the only disciple to pass last time, the one who passes first this time is housed next to me, and¡­ I really wanted it to be Sister Mi." Chapter 194: Core Disciple Alex was quite surprised by how open Kong Yuhan was being about his affection towards Zhou Mi. ''He must really like her,'' he thought. The student who had gone up first returned back with an equally smug look as when he went up. "Zhou Mi," the Elder spoke. Alex watched as Zhou Mei pat her sister on the back before sending her out. Zhou Mi walked straight to the elder and bowed. Kong Yuhan watched her with a smile on his face. Zhou Mi wasn''t smug like the first guy, only happy and had a cheerful smile as she returned back. "Brother Yu, I will go find that disciple from earlier and ask him if he can change his house with mine, Okay?" Kong Yuhan said and was about to walk out when suddenly, he stopped mid-step and looked back with wide eyes. The elder had just called the name ''Yu Ming'' to come out. "Brother Yu?" Kong Yuhan said as he tried to inquire, but Alex just gave him a simple smile and walked out. "Huh? An outer core disciple?" someone was surprised. "Wait, did he take a core disciple exam?" another person said in shock. "Not only that, he passed it too," another person was surprised. Zhou Mi had just reached her sister when she looked back when she heard the name the Elder call out. "Brother Yu?" she also shouted in surprise. The shock and surprise didn''t let go of Zhou Mei either. "It''s that guy from last time. He is a core disciple now?" she said in shock. She had been in the sect for a little over 5 years now but had never seen an Outer sect disciple jump straight to Core disciple. She kept looking at him in shock as he walked to the elder. Alex reached the Elder and bowed a little. "You finished last minute I hear," the Elder said in a low voice. "Yes, Elder. Some problems came up as I was making the pills," Alex said. "Well, it doesn''t matter. Since you passed, you are now a Core disciple. Congratulations," the Elder said as he handed the items to Alex who quickly put them into his storage bag. "You might live on the Sect Leader''s mountain, but since you are a core disciple now, you also have a house at the core disciple''s mountain. Check your new nameplate to locate your house," the Elder said. "Thank you, Elder." He then bowed to the Elder once more and started walking back. "The Tests are over. You are all dismissed," the Elder shouted. The student didn''t leave however, they kept looking at Alex in shock. He walked back to the spectator zone since that was where the way out was. Kong Yuhan was about to step out to question him when suddenly the hoard of disciples walked forward to question him first. "Hey brother, you are called Yu Ming, right? When did you join the sect? I have never seen you before." "Are you an Elder''s son?" "Did you cheat?" "Did you come from another Alchemy school?" "Brother, teach us how to go from Outer sect Disciple to core disciple too." "Hey, Brother Yu, Do you have a girl you like?" "I can be your girlfriend if you want. Just teach me a little Alchemy for free." "Brother, my name is Huang Lei, I can be your aid if you ever want to make pills in the Alchemy hall." "He is a core disciple now, he doesn''t need an Aid." "Hey, nothing wrong in just asking, right?" "I guess so, Brother you want me as an aid as well?" Alex was a little surprised when he was suddenly surrounded by all sides and asked multiple questions. "Ah, Ah," was the only words he had managed to get out. He couldn''t even see Kong Yuhan anymore. The pathway out was packed with the student and he didn''t know what to do anymore. He looked at the time and it was about time to log out as well. ''Sh*t, I''m going to be late for school,'' Alex thought. He tried to push through, but the students were truly a lot. Without any choice, he reached into his storage bag and took out a pill, stunning everyone in there. He raised the pill high up and shouted, "This is a 17% harmony Bone Sealing pill. Whoever catches this can take it." He then suddenly threw it up in the air. Numerous hands reached out to grab the pill, and only one managed to get it using their Qi. When the person grabbed it, the rest of the people looked back towards Alex, but he wasn''t there anymore. The disciples looked around for a bit but couldn''t find him. He had walked out while they were distracted. So reluctantly, they left the Elder''s hall and walked outside. Kong Yuhan and Zhou Mi were quite surprised at his sudden disappearance too but thought he must''ve walked out fast when he threw the pill in the air. "I can''t believe brother Yu is a core disciple now," he said. His mind was still reeling by the fact that a disciple that knew nothing about Alchemy a month ago, was now a core disciple. "Just how talented is he?" he wondered "Me neither. I thought he was just a normal outer sect disciple. No wonder he was there in the Disciple Hall that day," Zhou Mi said remembering back 2 days ago when she met Alex on the staircase to the top floors. "Alright let''s go out," Kong Yuhan said as there was nothing more to do here and started walking out. "Let''s go, Sister," Zhou Mi said as she tried to pull her sister, but she wouldn''t budge. Zhou Mi turned around and was a little surprised to see the face of utter shock on her sister''s face. "What''s wrong, Sister?" Zhou Mi asked, but her sister wouldn''t respond. Only after a while did she say 3 words out loud that formed an incomplete sentence. "That man, He¡­" Zhou Mei said out loud and thought the rest by herself. ''That man, He definitely just used the Flickering Shadows Technique.'' Chapter 195: Zhou Meis Confusion ''But how could he get his hands on the only immortal technique of the sect that costs over 50,000 contribution points, as an outer sect disciple?'' Zhou Mei wondered with her eyes still wide open. ''Could the disciples be correct and he is actually a son of an elder?'' she wondered. ''But even then getting your hands on the technique should be impossible, unless¡­'' her eyes turned wide at her own speculations. ''Unless he is the sect master''s own son. Besides, she is the only one that I know of that has fully learned the Flickering Shadows technique. Was she hiding him from us? Is he a secret love child with an outsider?'' Numerous thoughts ran across her mind trying to make sense of how an unknown Outer Sect disciple could become a core disciple directly, and how that person could have learned an immortal technique. "Sister? Sister!" Zhou Mi called out trying to wake Zhou Mei out of her own thoughts. "Yeah? What''s wrong?" she asked. "You seemed to be lost in your thought, Sister. What happened?" Zhou Mi asked. Zhou Mei thought for a second and asked, "You people know him right?" "Him?" Zhou Mi cocked her head to the side in confusion. Only after realizing who she was talking about did she say, "Oh you mean Brother Yu?" "Yes, that disciple, the new Core formation disciple. You guys seem to know who he is. Do you know how he is close to the Sect Leader?" she asked. "Close to the sect leader?" Zhou Mi was once again confused. "I have no idea sister, I have only met him once and that was during Brother Kong''s ascension too. In fact, Brother Kong knows more about him," she said. Zhou Mei turned her head towards Kong Yuhan and glared at him, waiting for him to answer. Kong Yuhan on the other hand started feeling uncomfortable under the intense gaze and said, "I''ve only met him a couple of times. Due to him helping me a few times I call him a brother. That''s just to the extent of what I know about him," he said. "Helped you a couple of times?" Zhou Mei got a little curious. "Explain." Kong Yuhan proceeded to tell her how Alex had managed to help him by finding him the incredibly hard-to-find Dwarf Berry, being an Aid during the preparation of the Qi Improvement pill, and then helping him once more during the pill cauldron exploding accident. "Explain more about the accident again," Zhou Mei asked. Kong Yuhan proceeded to explain in more accuracy how Alex had managed to throw away the cauldron just before it had exploded during his ascension and how he also blocked the incoming shockwaves and protected him. "You didn''t realize what had happened to your cauldron yourself?" she asked with a look of disdain. Kong Yuhan knew that she hated him for liking her sister, but didn''t say anything because of her sister, so he didn''t say anything except shake his head. Zhou Mei then turned to her sister and asked, "You were there too, right? You didn''t do anything?" Zhou Mi simply shook her head as well. "He moved and saved us before any of us even realized what had happened," she said. Zhou Mei could only think of one thing after listening to the story, '' This person definitely used Elemental Guidance. Another technique that is only known by elders and high-level Core disciples. Just who is this person?'' the curiosity was eating her up from the inside. "Sister?" Zhou Mi had to wake her sister once more as she was lost in her own thoughts once more. "Huh?" she was jolted awake again. "Aren''t we going to leave?" Zhou Mi asked. Zhou Mei took her eyes off her sister and looked at the testing hall only to find out that nobody was inside anymore. Not even the elders. "Right, let''s leave." Zhou Mei started walking up front and the two followed behind her. The lecture was already done, so the lecture hall was empty as well. Instead of leaving towards the core disciple''s mountain, however, Zhou Mei walked towards the place where the Sect Leader''s mountain and the left alchemy garden met. "Why are you going there, sister? Do you need something in the gardens?" Zhou Mi asked. "No, I''m not going to the garden. I''m going to the Elder''s quarters," she said and kept on walking. "But why, sister?" Zhou Mi asked in confusion. "Just go back to the Core disciple mountain, for now, I will come by later. I have something I need to ask my masters about," She left without waiting for a reply. "Bu¡ª " Zhou Mi was about to say something, but her sister was already far away. "Sigh, she''s always like this." Zhou Mi simply shook her head and looked at Kong Yuhan, who was looking at her too. Kong Yuhan gulped before he said, "Sister Zhou Mi, let us go back to the core disciple mountain and wait for your sister there. In the meantime, we can set up your new home as well," he said. Now that they were alone, Zhou Mi got a little embarrassed as well and made a simple "mmm" sound to show affirmation. Kong Yuhan smiled and showed her the way to her new residence. Alex, on the other hand, was already back at his home in the sect leader''s mountain. He had employed both the Flickering Shadows Technique and the Veiled Light technique to escape from the crowd of people. He was late for his university classes, so he took out the communication talisman and messaged his master. "I passed, master. I am currently tired due to cultivating all night and the exam, so I am going to rest. I will see you later for the talk about the forbidden fields." He got a simple reply back saying, "Okay, and Congratulations." He smiled when he saw that. Once he was inside the house, he walked into a random room, sat cross-legged, and logged out. Chapter 196: Walking to the University Alex logged out from the game at around half past 9 in the morning. Any longer and he would be very late for school. "Oh no," he said as he hurriedly ran out of the room to go have his lunch before leaving for his classes. He didn''t know how long exactly it would take him to reach his university, so he had to hurry up today. He reached the kitchen and found Hannah halfway through finishing her meal. "What took you so long? Were you asleep till now?" she asked. "Uh no. I had a promotion exam in the game and was late because of it," he said. "Oh, promotion exam? From what to what?" she asked. "Uh, from an outer sect disciple to a Core Disciple one," he said. "You passed it?" she asked. "Yes." "Congrats. Now get plate yourself the dishes and hurry up," Hannah said as she continued her food. Alex put some food for himself and ate it as fast as he could. Hannah however still had a quarter of the food left. "Why are you eating so slowly, sister?" he asked. "Why should I eat fast? It''s not like I have school or anything," she said. "Huh?" Alex was surprised. "Your school days are over?" he asked. "Nah. It''s only from Tuesday to Friday. I have Saturday to Monday free," she said. "Oh," Alex said in understanding and ate his food. Slowly he started getting anxious about how to go to the university now that he was alone. ''I don''t even know the way. Do I have to use my phone?'' he wondered. ''Sigh, whatever. I will just use the phone map.'' He quickly finished the meal and wore a fresh pair of clothes for his university class. He put his new laptop into his backpack and opened up the map app on his phone and walked out. He took an extra key of the apartment and put it in his bag. "I''m leaving," he said and walked out of the house. He got on the elevator and went all the way down. He then looked at his phone for which direction to leave in. ''Left from here,'' he thought as he looked at the map. He had just walked out of the building when he saw someone in front of him. There were 2 people there, but his eyes only saw a single person. It took him a second more to notice the other one. "Emily? Sarah?" he was surprised. "Good morning Alex," Sarah said with a smile. "Go¡ª Good Morning," Emily said in a shy voice with a blush on her face. Alex reciprocated their greetings asked them what they were doing in front of the building he lived in. "Oh, I was just on my way to take Emily here to school, but then your cousin messaged me asking if I would mind showing you the way if I had classes today, which I don''t," Sarah said. Alex waited for her to continue and she did. "So, when I heard that, I instead decided to just let Emily go to the university with you. She needs company, and you need a guide. You two are perfect for each other," Sarah said with a smug smile. There seemed to be another meaning hidden behind her words. Emily nudged her in the side with her elbow as she got even more embarrassed. Sarah just laughed it off and said, "Alright, I''ll leave you guys to it now, or you will be late. See you tomorrow. Have fun, Emily." Sarah returned back towards her home after waving them off. Alex was a little stunned at what had just happened, but he still managed to gather his wits and ask Emily, "Shall we go now? Or else we will be late, I think." Emily checked the time and meekly said, "We- We will still have over 10 minutes remaining on our time even if we walked right now. Either way, w-we should move." They started walking to the university. Alex was quite unsure of what to do, so he tried to start a talk a few times, but each time Emily would stop the conversation with a simple answer and not keep the conversation flowing. At first, Alex thought she was doing that on purpose, but then he saw her beet-red face and realized she was just as, if not more, nervous and anxious at being around him than him being around her. The path to the university was quite convoluted with a lot of twists and turns. "I would''ve probably been fine with the map, but I don''t think I could''ve made it here this fast if not for you," Alex said out loud. "Yo-You think so?" Emily asked. "Yes, really. Thank you," Alex said. Emily just smiled a little. They finally reached university, and it took them about 20+ minutes of walking. "Although walking is fine and healthy, a vehicle would be much better," Alex said. "Oh, w-why don''t I ask Sarah to give you a ride on the days she does have classes?" Emily said. "Will you? That will be helpful. I will start learning how to drive together with my sister as well," Alex said. "I- Should I learn it as well?" she seemed to be considering the prospects. "Although, I''m not as rich as Sarah so I don''t know if I can even buy a car. Not sure if my parents will get me on either," she said. "You should be able to earn a few bucks from the game, right? Especially now that you are in the True Realm," Alex asked. Emily hesitated for a moment, wondering if she should say it or not, but in the end, she did. "I am actually no longer in the True Realm," she said. Alex was a little surprised to hear that. At first, he wondered why she would lie about the realm yesterday, but when he thought more about it, he was shocked. "Wait, did you already reach Saint realm?" he asked with wide eyes. Chapter 197: Reincarnation Problem "Saint Realm? What? No," Emily said. She was a little exasperated from the absurd guess. "No, I- I actually just died in the game after I reached True realm. I am starting once more, but it''s hard since like everyone, I don''t have the same talents as my previous self. They are all mortal grade now," Emily said. "Oh. That sounds quite unfortunate. Would you mind telling me how you died?" he asked. "Um¡­ I was out on a mission from the sect, a-and I was attacked by a monster who caught me by surprise. I was logged out before I even realized I had died," she said. "After that, the next time I joined, I was made to create a new character and sent elsewhere in the same continent, and that was about a week ago." "Since I''m not as good as before, I can''t earn much money from the game," she said. "I see." He then thought of something and asked," by the way, what time do your classes end?" "Around 3 pm," Emily said. "Oh, the same as me. Would you walk the way back with me as well? I would rather not walk back alone," Alex said. "S-Sure. I can do that," Emily said timidly. "Would you mind adding your number to my phone?" Alex took out his phone and asked. "Of course not," Emily said and timidly took the phone from him and added her number onto his name. She then looked at the clock and said, "umm¡­ My classes are this way. I should hurry up now." "Oh, my classes are that way. Thank you for showing me the way today," Alex said. "It was nothing. Don''t worry about it. See you later," Emily said and walked towards her classes. Alex was left standing there feeling something deep within him make him feel weird. "Am I?¡­ no way." He walked to his class. After the classes were over, he messaged Emily for a place to meet, and together they walked back home. Alex walked a little further to take her to her apartment and returned back to his own. He got up the elevator to his apartment and entered. "Oh, you''re back already? What time is it?" Hannah was in the living room using her phone. "It''s half past 3. What are you doing sister?" he asked. "Oh, just browsing the EC forums, looking through the responses to the interview yesterday. Hehe, look at this, so many people are calling me cute and pretty. I might just have to go become a model at this rate," Hannah said jokingly. "Go change your clothes. I''ll prepare some food," Hannah said. "Alright, sister." Alex went to his room and freshened up. He walked to the kitchen to see Hannah shaking her head as if she had just read something very sad. "What''s the wrong sister?" he asked. "It''s this guy named Connor. You probably don''t know him, but this guy came out a month ago as one of the strongest players at the time," Hannah said. Alex remembered the person. He was the one with the interview from back when he was only a week into the game. "I saw his interview. What about him?" Alex asked. "Oh, you did? It''s just that people were constantly asking in the forums why this guy wasn''t invited to the show or why he didn''t want to show up, and he finally made a post on his own." Alex was a little curious about this as well, so he asked, "What about him? Did he not want to come?" "No, it seems he did. But it turns out, his character died while fighting a relatively stronger monster in the forest. He says, the monster wasn''t necessarily stronger than him, but it was more poisonous and he got caught up in the poison." "Tsk Tsk. Poor guy had to restart all over again, and also lost all of his amazing body and talent. He says he respawned as trash now. He is barely at Bone Tempering realm after 2 weeks of cultivating and constant usage of spirit stones. If this keeps up, he will end up using his entire fortune on the game." Hannah kept on shaking her head. "That''s quite a coincidence," Alex said a little surprised by the news. "Hmm¡­ coincidence? How?" Hannah asked. "Emily said that after her character died, she too got really bad talent and body. She is restarting her climb once again, but with mortal grade talent and body, it will probably take a long time," Alex said. "Oh, that is actually not a coincidence at all," Hannah said, which confused Alex a lot. "It''s not?" he asked. "Yeah, there have been many other people who have died and gone back to the game only to find that their new body was unbelievably worse than their first one. It''s like the game is punishing them for dying or something," Hannah said. "Woah, I''m glad I didn''t die a month ago. I was damn near close to as well," Alex said. "You were?" Hannah asked in surprise. "What happened?" Alex proceeded to tell her about how he fought against the wolf to protect Pearl and his mother. Hannah cringed when she heard that the wolf bit his skull and left him bloodied. "Ouch, that sounds like it hurt a lot. Well, at least you didn''t die from it. And hey, you also got a beast companion from it. I wanted to get one as well, but the monster cubs take too long to grow up," Hannah said. "Yeah, my cat is quite cute and very strong too," Alex said. They stopped talking and finished their food. Alex helped with the dishes and only returned to his room at around 4 pm. He logged back into the game and checked his communication talisman, but there was no message. So he messaged his master to ask where she was and if she had the time to meet him. He got a message back. "I''m in my home. You can come right now." Chapter 198: Pill Swines Alex reached his master''s home a few minutes later. He walked into the room he previously had gone to and waited for his master. Ma Rong came soon enough. "Congratulations on becoming a core disciple," she said. "Thank you, master," he said with a big smile. He didn''t know how being a core disciple would help him, but it should ease his master''s problem a lot. "Now that you are one, you should start dressing like it too," Ma Rong said. "Huh? What do you¡ª Oh," he looked down to clothes and made a goofy smile. "I just woke up from my sleep so I forgot to change," he said. Ma Rong chuckled a little too. "Although, I heard you did quite badly at the exams," she said. "Oh yeah, master. To not reveal our relationship yet, I decided to choose a normal cauldron without a lid, and I didn''t realize how bad I was at making pills without my regular cauldron and lid. I also stupidly decided not to use Elemental Guidance the first time and it made the pills quite bad as well," he said. Ma Rong nodded, "Well, at least you learned how to get a good harmony level even with a trash cauldron. Most other core disciples would simply fail at creating anything above 15% as well." "However, now you should start learning how to make a pill better, and for that, you need to understand how pills are made," she said. "How pills are made? Is there more to pill-making than what you''ve taught me?" he asked curiously. "Hmm¡­ my bad. I should probably say how pill recipes are made. What I mean is, you should start making your own pills," Ma Rong said. Alex was surprised. "I should make my own pills? Is that even¡ª" "Possible?" Ma Rong cut him mid-sentence. "Yes, it is possible. But it is also highly unlikely you will succeed anytime soon. At least, even with your talent, I doubt you will be able to make one without reaching the latter realms of True realm," she said. Alex got a little confused. "If making new pills are impossible for me until I get into the True realms then what is the point?" He asked. "Experience," Ma Rong said. "Making pills from the recipe will only help you understand how to make pills, they will never teach you how the interaction between the energies end up affecting a human body when they eat the pill." "You can tell that fire energy will overwhelm wood energy, but you can''t tell what the resulting energy will do. Will it harm a person? Heal them? Increase their strength or speed? What about affecting one''s Qi itself?" "There are many aspects to the energies that you will have to learn and figure out by yourself. And you can only do that by making your own pills," Ma Rong said. Alex couldn''t see any flaw with that statement. Until now, he had made pills based on the recipe. He would easily learn the recipe without any problem and would mostly know what to do. This, however, had dulled his instinct in pill-making. If only he started to make one by himself could he truly understand how everything worked. But there was one problem that he needed to think of a solution to first if he wanted to do that. "Umm¡­ Master, if I add in random ingredients willy nilly, won''t I cause an explosion? That would at best harm my cauldron and at worst kill me," he said. "Yes, I know," Ma Rong said. "Not only that, there is another worse problem too. Say you happened to make a pill, what do you do after that?" Ma Rong asked. Alex thought for a second, couldn''t come up with an answer that didn''t include eating the pill himself or giving it to some other person. However, that would be completely immoral and dangerous as he wouldn''t know what the function of the new pills would be. "I honestly do not know master. I assume it has nothing to do with feeding other people?" he asked. "There are evil alchemists out there who will do that, but not us. For normal alchemists there are two methods," Ma Rong said. "The first one is to feed it to a domestic monster called a Pill Swine. Pill Swine''s body composition is very close to a human body, however, they are very bad at cultivation and are slow to breakthrough. This makes them the perfect test subject to experiment on. It, however, can be considered immoral as well depending on your standing." "The ethics of the method is highly debated as to whether it is good or not among the higher level cultivators who can afford to make their own pills," Ma Rong said. Alex thought about it, but he couldn''t think of why it would be immoral. ''We kill the animals on our farm all the time. If they were bred with an aim, I don''t think it''s immoral for humans to use them for that,'' he thought. "They don''t seem any more different than the ones we rear for food, so I don''t think it is unethical at all," Alex said. "Well I disagree," Ma Rong said. "But, as I said, it''s still a debate and nothing is fixed. Maybe I will come to appreciate them at some point," Ma Rong said. "Are there Pill Swines in the sect?" he asked. "I don''t think I have ever heard or seen them." "That''s not weird at all," Ma Rong said. "Pill Swines are only useful for high-level alchemists who can create new pills, so most alchemists won''t even have a use for it. As such, we have elders rearing it behind the alchemy garden on the left." "You can reach it from both here, if you fly down left from here, or if you just walk to the back of the core disciple''s mountain. Since only Elders and Core disciples have any possible use for it, the sect keeps them at a place where they both can easily reach it." Chapter 199: True Nullifying Pill "I didn''t know there were other locations in the sect," Alex said. "There are. However, they only get revealed to you once you have been promoted. You could''ve learned about the Pill Swines'' location if you had read the new maps," Ma Rong said. "New map?" he wondered for a second what she meant. "Oh, the new guidebook. I should look at it later. Anyway, Master. What is the second method?" he asked. "The second method is a bit more controversial since it has to do with using the pills on yourself," Ma Rong said. Alex was both surprised and shocked when he heard this. This wasn''t what he had expected. "Experimenting on oneself? Isn''t that extremely dangerous, master?" he asked. "Yes, it is. But you only do that in the last case scenario where you don''t have Pill Swines or have zero clues about what your pill does. You read all the pill recipes, right? Then you must know the recipe to the True Nullifying Pill," she said. "True Nullifying Pill?" he looked into his memories and found a pill with the same name. However, he had never bothered learning or making it since it was a True pill, and all he could make were common rank pills. "It''s a True Rank pill, master. Is it even useful for me?" he asked. Ma Rong snickered and asked, "What? You think you can make proper new pills before you reach True realm?" she asked. "Besides, you will just use the Pill Swines most of the time due to the limitations of the True Nullifying pill," she said. Alex recalled the information about the pill. True Nullifying Pills. Nullifies the effect of any recently taken pills. The pill must be less than 5 minutes old to use and the pill taken recently must also be less than 5 minutes old. "What''s up with the time limitations on both pills for True Nullifying pill to work, Master? He asked. "Well, the first one is just an assumption. We just assume that a normal pill takes effect immediately and is fully integrated into your system within 5 minutes. It can be more or less depending on the pill." "The True Nullifying pill, however, is an extremely volatile pill that interacts with the energy on the environment itself and counteracts the energy on the environment to nullify it. In about 10 minutes, it can fully release all of its energy to nullify its surrounding. So it is suggested that we use it within 5 minutes to get more than half of its effect." "You don''t have to worry about it for now. Since you will need True Qi to even approach making this pill. Just focus on practicing normally for now," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded his head. "What about the exploding problem then master?" he asked. "Just get some random low-level cauldrons from the sect market. Since you have full authority in the sect, the elders in the sect market will accept Spirit Stones too for those cauldrons," Ma Rong said. "I see. Thank you, master. I will do that," He said. "However, I will have to lay it off until after the competition." "Why?" Ma Rong was a little taken aback. "You still have some time unt¡ª Oh, right. You still want to go there?" she asked. "Yes, master. I really need those yellow jade rocks from the forbidden fields," Alex said. Ma Rong sighed unable to deny it since she had already allowed him. "Alright. Go to the right alchemy garden tomorrow morning at 6, I will ask Lang Shun to take you to the fields." "Thank you, Master," Alex said. "Don''t thank me. I''m sending you to your torture. There is nothing for me to be thanked for. Instead, take this time to prepare yourself. You might be fine the first day, but the following days will be the worst days of your life." Alex got a little scared now. "I thought there was nothing in the forbidden fields. What you are saying is scaring me now, master," he said. "You are correct. It is a really weird place. We didn''t know what to do with it at first when we settled down here decades ago, so the sect leader at that time decided to make it a makeshift prison of sorts. " "There is nothing in the forbidden fields. This is also why it is the worst. The torture for the first few days is Boredom. However, after a week or two, the reason for torture slowly changes from boredom to hunger. There is barely any food, It''s all open so nothing to keep you safe from the elements. And probably the worst of all, there is no Qi." "Not only is there no Qi, but you also lose all of yours the moment you reach the fields." Ma Rong said. "Umm¡­Master. The other disciples were punished so they can''t, however, can''t I just take my own food and water there?" he asked. "Yes, you can. However, you can''t use a storage bag. It would have to be a mortal bag, and food that won''t get bad very fast," Ma Rong said. "I will ask Lang Shun to prepare some for you. You go and prepare for tomorrow," Ma Rong sent him back. Alex walked out of his master''s house and thought about the forbidden fields for a few seconds. There was one problem that he just couldn''t tell master because she couldn''t understand or relate to it at all. "God, what am I going to do about logging out? Do I really just leave my body out in the open. Hopefully, I will be perfectly fine since there aren''t any animals out there. I should be mostly fine given my body cultivation. I doubt not having Qi will affect my cultivation at all," He thought and walked back to his home Instead of staying back at his home to prepare for tomorrow, or going to the sect market to buy some low-grade cauldrons, he decided to change his robes and go check out what the core disciple''s mountain really looked like. Chapter 200: Core Mountain Alex gave the guidebook a general look-through. It didn''t have anything that would pertain to him, other than the fact that he could be an elder if he ever made 50 pills over 35% in harmony or a Heaven-grade pill. It also marked the location of the Pill Swines, but he already knew where it was now. The only new thing he really got to know was the general location of the forbidden fields. But the map was vague about it for some reason. It didn''t mark any specific places. ''Is that because it''s big?'' he wondered. He walked down to the base of the mountain and walked left to go to the core disciple''s mountain. Now that he was a core disciple, he felt like there were more eyes on him, looking at him with slight respect. Alex didn''t let it get to his head, however, and walked directly to the core mountain. Looking at his robes, the elders that stood guard didn''t block him at all. Alex remembered the way to his house and walked along the pathway, keeping all locations in mind. He looked at the houses along the way, however, none of it were inhabited. "Hmm¡­ is that what brother Kong told me? Everyone gets put into the houses in order of their entry to the core mountain. So right now, I must have the final inhabited house." He walked along the way and finally reached his house. From the outside, it didn''t look like anything fancy at all. It looked just like the hundreds of other homes lined by its side. However, he wanted to check how it was on the inside. The door had a similar system to the one in the Alchemy hall, wherein he could place his nameplate on the door frame and it would open up. He walked inside to check the interior, but it was hardly worth talking about compared to his home in the sect leader''s mountain. "At least it has an alchemy room too," he thought. He walked to the back of the house and saw that it also had a courtyard with a pool in it. Although both were much smaller when compared to his other house, they weren''t that bad. After checking it all, he decided that he liked his other home better and prepared to leave. He took the nameplate out of the outside and walked out. "You should be fine staying here now that all the furniture and stuff has been transported. Do you want me to wait here with you for your sister to come back?" a voice came from a house over. "Yes, I will be fine. Although, I won''t mind if you wait with me," A girl''s voice came. Alex didn''t even have to look to see who it was. "Brother Kong, it''s good to see you again," he said as he walked out of the house. He then turned to Zhou Mi and said, "It''s good to see you''ve settled in already Sister Zhou Mi." "Ah, Brother Yu," they both shouted when they saw him. "You are here finally. I was waiting for you. Congratulations on becoming a Core disciple, Brother Yu," Kong Yuhan said. "I was quite surprised to see you become a core disciple too, Brother Yu. Congratulations," Zhou Mi said. "Thank you," he simply said. "How did you get so good at alchemy? Were you hiding your abilities when you met me?" Kong Yuhan asked. "Uhh¡­ I don''t think it will be appropriate of me to reply that with anything. Sorry brother Kong," Alex said. He didn''t want to lie and say that he was good from the very start, or tell the truth and reveal his talents here. Kong found it a little weird that he wouldn''t answer a simple question, but decided to think nothing about it. "By the way, did you go back to take your stuff too?" Zhou Mi asked, trying to change the topic at hand. "Uhh¡­ no. I won''t be staying here, I got a different place," Alex said. "Where are you going, Brother Yu? It can''t be that you are going to go back to the outer sect, right? Are you leaving the sect for another few weeks?" Kong asked. "I¡­ " before Alex could even answer anything, a voice came from behind him. "He is going back to the Sect Leader''s mountain. He has a place there after all." Alex sighed. He had sensed her coming, but he didn''t expect her to reveal such information. "Isn''t that correct? Sect leader''s disciple?" Zhou Mei asked. "Sect leader''s¡­ disciple?" Kong Yuhan was shocked. Zhou Mi gasped as well. "Yes. He is the sect leader''s first and only disciple. I had my suspicions after seeing his techniques today, so I went to my masters to ask them, but it seemed that they were already in the know. " "In fact, most of the elders in the sect are in the know that he is the sect leader''s disciple by now," Zhou Mei said. Alex heard a bit of hatred and jealousy in her voice and was confused for a second if he had ever offended her to get such a response. "Yes, that is me," Alex said. "Can I do something to help you?" "Yes, in fact, you can. Stop using the fact that you are a sect leader''s disciple as a reason for getting all the different techniques to learn. Some of us here had to struggle for years and still haven''t been able to gather enough contribution points for the Flickering Shadows technique, and you''ve already learned it." "You must''ve gotten it months ago and hid your identity from the public, didn''t you? Why did you become a core disciple now? Was it to take part in the competition?" "If so, you better forget about it. Disciples are chosen based on their Alchemy ability. A new core disciple like you can''t match up to anyone." Zhou Mei grabbed her sister and went inside her sister''s house, leaving Alex and Kong speechless outside. Chapter 201: Unfair? "Uhh¡­ don''t mind her, she is known to be cold around here," Kong Yuhan tried to make Alex feel better, but he couldn''t think of anything proper to say in response to what had just happened. In fact, if what she said about him getting everything for free was true, even Kong himself felt that the situation was really unfair. But, he didn''t want to say anything about that until he got more information. "It''s okay brother Kong. She wasn''t wrong about it being unfair," Alex said. Kong was stunned. "So, it''s true?" Kong asked in a stupefied voice. He couldn''t accept what he was hearing. "About it being unfair? Yes. But what can I do about it? I got lucky. I can''t just throw away my luck in search of fairness for others, now can I? It''s not like I deliberately went out looking to create problems for others by getting what I got. I took what I was handed and used it to the best I could. If that is unfair, then I am the least of its offender," Alex said. "But still, If you truly got everything with 0 contributions, then it is wrong. It makes us who actually try and contribute feel like we are looked down on by the sect, never give anything," Kong Yuhan said. "I never said I didn''t contribute at all," Alex said. "I did a lot of things to contribute to the sect. While it is true what I got back might or might not measure up to what I contributed, it is still wrong to ignore my contribution and only look at what I got." Kong Yuhan''s eye brightened up. "So you did contribute. Even if it''s a little, it makes me feel better. It no longer sounds like you got everything for free," he said. Alex simply smiled. He turned around to look back at the house he was going to leave empty for who knew how long. He then looked back to the house two sister''s house. "Zhou Mei''s house should be further away, right?" Alex asked. "Yes, but she says she wants to spend a few days with her sister now, so she is staying here," Kong said. "I see," he said as he looked around the place with the lined-up houses. "By the way, which one is your brother Kong?" he asked. "Mine? It''s that one. The one after that one," Kong said as he pointed to a house that was two houses over Zhou Mi''s house. "Oh right, I recall saying you were the only passing inner sect disciple from last test right? So the house in between yours and sister Zhou Mi''s must be that guy from this morning," Alex asked. "Yeah. He already brought all of his stuff over and is down at the sect valley, I think," Kong replied with a dejected voice. "What''s wrong? You sound depressed right now," Alex asked. "Remember when I told you I would ask him to switch houses with me? Well, I did and he refused. He had already brought in all of his furniture by the time I got to ask him, and he didn''t want to go through the hassle all over again." "I even offered to do it myself, but the man said he didn''t want to live in a house that was already inhabited by someone else," Kong said as he sighed. Alex thought for a moment and asked, "So¡­ correct me if I''m wrong, but you don''t really want his house, right?" "No, I do want it," Kong replied with a weird look. He wondered why Alex would ask something he had already explained beforehand. "No, what I meant to say is, you only want a house that is next to sister Zhou Mi''s right?" Alex asked. Hearing this, Kong Yuhan''s checks started getting red as he blushed. "Ye-Yes," he answered. Alex smiled and asked, "Why don''t you take mine then?" Kong Yuhan froze for a moment after hearing Alex''s proposition. Then, he immediately facepalmed himself, screaming to himself, "Idiot. Why did I not think of that? Brother Alex, would you really be willing to swap house with me?" Kong asked, desperately. Alex chuckled. "Didn''t I just say you can take mine?" Kong Yuhan''s eyes started shining. "Thank you, brother Yu. You are a lifesaver. Let me go get my stuff from my house and we can swap the keys," he said. He immediately ran to his house to get all of his stuff. It seemed he was waiting for this moment for quite a while and took less than 5 minutes to store everything into his storage bag. He came running back out. "Let''s swap the key, Brother Yu," he said. Alex nodded and handed over his nameplate. Kong Yuhan took no time to swap the key and handed Alex''s nameplate back to him. Alex checked the nameplate, nodded, and kept it in his bag. "I have the stuff to do tomorrow, so I will leave, brother Kong," he said. "Huh, you are not going to look at your new home?" Kong asked. "Is it because I used to live there? Cuz I can promise you, it''s only been a week since I got it and I haven''t touched anything in there aside from the alchemy room." "That''s not it, Brother Kong. Remember, I have a home in the sect leader''s mountain as well? Well, it''s actually better than this house and it''s closer to my master''s so I like staying there. I might actually just ask master to give away the key to this house to someone else if I get the chance," Alex said. "Ah, I see. That makes sense," Kong Yuhan said. "Anyway, it was good seeing you, Brother Kong. See you later," Alex said and started walking away. While returning, he passed along the sect valley to check if there were any Yang Jade, but there weren''t any. Disappointed, he returned back to the sect leader''s mountain and went back to his house. Chapter 202: Calling Parents Alex made a few more pills before the end of the day. They turned out to be pretty fine, although none of them reached Heaven grade. One did come very close though. Afterward, he logged out of the game. "I haven''t talked with my parents for a while. I should let them know about the money at least," he thought. Until now, he had been scared that they would scold him for not studying properly when they specifically sent him here just to study. But now that he was making a lot of money from the game, he didn''t fear anything they would say. In fact, he hoped to change their views. His mother picked up the phone after only 2 rings. "Hello? Alex? How are you doing son?" she asked. "I''m fine, Mom. How are you? How is dad?" he asked. "Oh, we are perfectly fine, did you eat your dinner?" she asked. "No, I was just about to go eat it and I thought I should call you first," Alex said. "Awww, Did you hear that? Our son has grown up so well," Alex''s mon said. "Of course I didn''t hear it. You don''t have the phone on loudspeaker," his dad''s voice came from the back. "Yeah, yeah, I''m putting it on. So, how is the new place, and don''t lie to me. You''ve lived for 3 days now, you must have some ideas, right?" his mom asked. "It''s actually one of the best places to live in the city, I think. It''s really high in the building and it is very fancy. Let me show you my room," he said and quickly turned on the camera. He showed around his room and started describing everything he thought his parents would not recognize. "Wait, go back, go back, go back," his mother said. "Where?" he asked. "To your bed," she said. He quickly turned his camera to show his bed, and only then realized why she had done that. ''She is really sharp,'' he thought. "What is that? Is that game thing?" she asked. "Yes mother," he said. "Who gave you that? Give it back immediately. It is so harmful to you," his mother said. This quite surprised Alex. He hadn''t seen her go this angry ever since one of the neighbor''s cows escaped the enclosure and ate a lot of the growing plants on their farm. ''Is the severity of the situation the same in her eyes?'' he wondered. "Nobody gave it to me, Mom. I bought it myself," he said. "What? With what money?" she exclaimed. "Dear, did you send money to our son without telling me?" she asked his father. "What? No. Don''t accuse me of such a thing willy nilly. I don''t even have the money to pay for the new tractor''s installment this month. I will have to ask John for some. Why would I be sending him money?" he said. "You guys are lacking money?" he asked. His parents never talked to him about the finances other than the occasional stuff he would hear about accidents. He only knew that his parents didn''t have a lot of money, but still did their best. "That is not the topic of discussion we are having right now. I asked what money you bought that harmful thing with," she asked. "Harmful? It''s not harmful, mom. It''s for playing games. It just makes you see and hear different things; it makes you feel like you are in a different place. That''s all. There is nothing harmful there," Alex said. ''No, I know it''s harmful. I heard what it does to your body. John''s sons both started to get lazy and stupid after using that thing. He bought it for them a few weeks ago and now he regrets it, saying that his children are all lethargic all the time, never there when he needs them and worst of all, they can''t even work in the fields properly anymore. So, he had to make them get used to it all over again." "He already sold back those things, and is now starting to rehabilitate his children, making them get used to the work again," his mother said. "Anyway, give that back to who you got it from. Was it Hannah?" she asked. "What? No. I got it myself," Alex said. "With whose money?" she asked again. "With mine. I earned money from the game," he said. "What? Who do you think you are lying to? You think I will believe something as stupid as someone earning money from those childing video games?" she said. "I did, mom. I actually earned a lot more than just a little," he said. He then switched the subject. "Do you know how much this apartment costs, mother?" he asked. "What? Apartment? I don''t know. 300 dollar? 400 dollar? I know it''s expensive, but it shouldn''t be more than that right?" she asked. Alex chuckled a little. His parents were just as oblivious about the expensiveness of the city. "It costs about 10,000 dollars a month," he said. "What?!" both his mother and father shouted at the same time. His father who had been silent for the most part started speaking. "Is that true, son? Why are you staying in such an expensive place? I doubt my sister and brother-in-law can pay for that much every month," his father said. "That''s the thing, father. They don''t. Sister Hannah pays for it all herself. She too earns money from the game," he said. "But¡­ 10,000 dollars is a lot son. That''s what we make in a year before counting the profits," his father said. Out of nowhere, his voice grew solemn, "are you really making that much son? Are you really making that much money son?" he asked. Alex tried to nod and say yes again but instead decided to do something else. He quickly went onto the internet to access his account and took a screenshot of the money. "I have something coming for you," he said and then sent the screenshot to his parents. Chapter 203: Transferring Money "Hmm¡­ what is this?" his parents didn''t realize what was sent to them so they opened it up on their old smartphone. "Why is the text so small? Wait for a second, let me get my glasses," his father said and left the room, leaving his mother with the phone. She didn''t know how to zoom the picture either, so she just waited for her husband to come back with his glasses. He returned in less than a minute with a large, string-tied spectacle on his face. "Let''s see then, what is this?" he looked at the text, but the only thing that he immediately saw was a number around 380,000. "What is this number?" he asked. "Look carefully, father," Alex said. "Alright," his father said as he looked at the picture a bit more. It didn''t take him more than a second to realize he had missed a crucial symbol from the number when he read it beforehand. He had missed the $ sign. "This¡ª This can''t be true," he said as his hands started shaking and he nearly dropped the phone. Alex''s mother hurriedly grabbed the phone and started scolding, "stop acting like an old man and hold the phone properly. What are you doing shaking like that suddenly?" "But honey¡­ L-look at that. Look at what our son just sent us," Alex''s father said in a shaky voice and handed her his glasses. "What? What did he send us?" she said as she took the glasses and put them on. It didn''t take long before she started shaking too. "A-Alex. What is this?" she asked. "That is what I earned from the game, Mom," he said. "But..but how? How do games pay so much? You aren''t lying, right? You didn''t get into any shady business, right son?" she asked. Alex wholeheartedly chuckled. "No mom, it''s all from the game. In fact, sister Hannah makes more than me," he said. "Oh, lord! These children are going to earn more in a month than we did in our lifetime," his father''s voice came from behind. "So, father. You said something about payment for the tractor or something. How much do you need?" he asked. "It''s an installment system. I need about 600$ a month for 4 years to pay off for the new tractor," his father said. "Hmm¡­ so, about 30 thousand? How about I send you guys 50 thousand today. I will wire it into your guy''s bank. Buy yourself something good with the remaining money," Alex said. "No, son. You earned that money. You keep it yourself. So, you keep it for yourself. We will manage on our own. Just seeing our son grow so much is more than enough for us," his father said. "Don''t say that father. I wouldn''t be here if not for you. I will send you the money today. I don''t have much need for it. You guys might as well put it to good use," he said. "Besides, I can earn more if I needed to." "I-is that really true, son?" his mother asked. She had tears on her face. "Yes, mom. You can finally buy that solar-powered water heater you have wanted for so long," he said. "Oh," his mother chuckled. "You know about that too? I thought I kept that to myself quite well," she said. "Yes mom," Alex said. The parents-son talked for a little longer before ending their talk. Alex then opened his account once more to transfer 50 thousand of his money to his parents for their needs. He felt no hesitation there whatsoever. In fact, he felt proud of himself. Pride in what he had done to help his parents further. Proud of what he had become. He looked at the time and realized that it was almost 8 pm, so he quickly walked out to go to the kitchen. "Oh, hey sister. You are done with your food?" he asked. "Yeah," Hannah said as she looked back from the sink. She was just done washing her plates. "What took you so long? I even waited for you for almost half an hour." "Oh, I called my parents and we talked for a lot longer than I had expected to," he said. "What? You called Aunt and Uncle and didn''t let me talk to them? What kind of stupid little brother are you?" she said. Alex laughed and said, "I told them about the money I earned. I doubt they would be interested in anything else after that." "Oh, so they know you make 25 thousand dollars now? I haven''t told my parents yet," she said. "You probably should. Also, it''s not 25 thousand anymore sisters. I made an additional 360 thousand dollars yesterday," he said. "Wait, you did what?" Hannah was surprised. "I thought you didn''t have that high of cultivation base. How did you earn so much? Did you follow me and got married to someone too?" she asked. "Haha, no. I got lucky and found a very special flower called Spirit Cleansing Lily that allows you to unlock Spiritual Sense before even entering Saint realm," he said. "What? There is a flower-like that? What do you do with it? Eat it? Make a pill with it? Some sort of soup? Or use it in a formation?" she asked many questions. "No, you just cultivate with it," Alex said. "As long as you hold it with you while you cultivate, you will unlock spiritual sense," he said. "Oh, I don''t know if such a thing will even work for me," Hannah said. "Why not? You just have to cultva¡ª Oh, that''s right. You don''t have a cultivation method. Well, I don''t know what to do about that. Maybe it works? Who knows. Either way, if you ever get your hands on them, use them. That is if you haven''t already reached Saint realm by then," Alex said. Hannah left Alex behind and went back to her room, while Alex finished eating what was prepared today. After washing the dishes, he too went back to his room and logged into the game once more. Chapter 204: Just before Alex logged back into the game at around 9 pm and decided to make some more pills for now. During the next 3 hours, he made the pills, he managed to make exactly 2 pills in heaven grade. One of them was a metal-aligned pill, so it was not a surprise when it came out with 53% harmony. However, he was pleasantly surprised that the wood-aligned pill also turned out to be 50% harmony. He was quite happy with himself with this result. "Once again, I can''t cultivate, can I?" he thought. He needed to wake up at 6 tomorrow morning as well, so he just didn''t cultivate once more. He didn''t want to fall asleep and not wake up in time. So, he called out Pearl once more. "Meow," Pearl said as it came out. He walked up to Alex and started licking his arms. Alex slowly rubbed his back and said, "We are going to cultivate once more, buddy. You alright with that?" he asked. "Meow," Pearl screamed in confirmation. Pearl''s body started glowing once more. Going from white to yellow to golden light when numerous small cuts appeared all over Alex''s body. However, he was easily enduring these. "Sigh, ever since the pain has disappeared, my body cultivation speed has dropped significantly as well," he said. "Do I feed pearl some monster core so he can get ahead of my body cultivation and I have to catch up once again?" he wondered. There were numerous theories in his head as to what was going on, however, none of them made sense due to the sheer lack of information available to him. He still had yet to find anything about Evolution in the game itself. "Do I really have to go and check the internet? But I don''t want to spoil myself." He was falling into a dilemma. For now, he decided to ignore the possibilities and concentrated on the ongoing circumstances. Pearl cultivated in peace over the course of the entire night, while Alex just sat there bearing the pain that barely got him any stronger than he already was. Still, he was sure that this small amount of increase would soon gather up and be substantial enough. Early morning, at 6 PM, he finally stopped Pearl from cultivating anymore. Once he was done, he sent Pearl back into his tattoo space and got ready to leave. "Martial uncle is supposed to get the food for me, right?" he thought back to what his master said, and hoped she remembered. Suddenly, a string of information appeared on his communication talisman which he took out to read. -Lang Shun is waiting for you at the Right Alchemy garden- -Take your food from him- -Stick to the safe parts and return in 3 days- "The safe part?" he wondered what that meant. ''Wasn''t all part supposed to be dangerous, yet not?'' He thought. He assumed he would know what she meant after entering the forbidden fields and went out of his house. He went down the sect leader''s mountain and quickly reached the Alchemy garden on the right side. "Oh, there you are martial nephew Yu." Lang Shun was a bit further away when he noticed him. "Good morning, Martial uncle Lang. I will have to rely on you this morning," he said. "That is no problem. Congratulations on becoming a core disciple, finally. I knew you could do it," Lang Shun said. Alex thanked him with a big smile. "I heard you said you wanted to go to the Forbidden fields. Why?" he asked. "I ¡­ have my reason," Alex decided to not speak about his pans. "Whatever. If my senior sister couldn''t make you stop, then I''m not even going to try," Lang Shun said. "Alright, come with me," he said and took Alex towards the crevice between the sect leader''s mountain and the alchemy garden. There, Alex finally saw a small opening. "Is this what leads to the forbidden fields?" Alex asked. "Yes. You have to go through here and only then will you reach the forbidden fields. Now, I must warn you about a few different things," Lang Shun said. Alex started to listen attentively. "First of all, since you will lose all of your cultivation temporarily once you enter there, you will start to get hungry very soon. So, Senior sister asked me to prepare these foods for you," Lang Shun said as he took out a small pack of food. "Don''t put these in your storage bags, or you won''t be able to take it out anymore," he said. "Yes, martial uncle," Alex said as he took the food. "Secondly," Lang Shun continued, "If you do end up finishing your food too early, there are cliffs along the side of the field with food growing on top of them. Try to hit them with stones to drop them. Absolutely do not try to climb them." "You sometimes end up forgetting that you are nothing but a mortal in there and try to get up there when you are really hungry. Try not to do that. Go against your instincts. However, I hope it doesn''t come to that, since you will have plenty of food for now." Alex was still listening. "Oh yeah, if anyone asks what you were punished for, just say something generic like you stole some ingredients from your neighbor. Although¡­" Lang Shun looked at Alex''s cloth and said, "You might want to change to less attracting clothes." "Less attracting?" Alex looked down on himself and realized his Martial Uncle was talking about the Core sect''s robe. He swiftly changed his clothes to the ones from outer sect one that he had kept. "This should be fine, right?" Alex asked. "Yes, That is enough," Lang Shun said. "Now, the third and most important thing you have to remember. A few kilometers past where you enter, you will find a river with clean flowing water. Most people in their punishments stay around here for the water source, and that is how far the forbidden fields under our control actually goes to." "Beyond that live dangerous beasts. Not very dangerous to cultivators, but to mortals, any attacks of theirs are lethal. Make sure you never cross the river," Chapter 205: The Forbidden Fields Alex was a little shocked. He had not heard about this danger from his master or anyone before. "But I thought that the Forbidden fields were a bunch of grasslands with nothing in it. Was that false?" he asked. "Oh no, it is what you have heard for the most part. The part we call Forbidden Fields is actually just a small part of the otherwise huge land where one''s cultivation is stifled. Forbidden Fields just last until the river, after that is the desert where the monsters live," Lang Shun said. ''Desert?'' he was shocked. ''A land of sand, like the southern continent? Aren''t I in the western continent according to sister?'' he thought. "Are these monsters in the desert of high cultivation?" he asked. "Cultivation? No. As I said, the forbidden fields and beyond don''t have Qi. These monsters just grew up with a strong body after adapting to that environment," Lang Shun said. "So, do we know how strong they are?" Alex asked. "Not really. From the speed and strength they show, it is assumed that they are around the Muscle tempering realm in terms of strength, but who knows. There could be stronger ones inside the desert. No one who has ever entered the desert has ever come back to give us information." "So, just try to stay away from the desert. Be careful when you drink the river water too. Although the monsters stay on the other side of the river, they might come to this side if they see you. There has been only a few cases so far, but it''s okay to be careful." Alex fell into contemplation. Assuming the lack of Qi did not stop his body from being as strong as it is, he should have no problem in the forbidden fields. However¡­ ''What will I do if I have to leave the grassland and enter this desert,'' he thought. Soon, Lang Shun and he came across light at the end of the tunnel. After coming out of the tunnel, he finally saw it. A vast land of green grass far away into the distance. Beyond that was a slight color of reddish-yellow. Alex looked directly in front of him and saw the steep slope all the way down to the grassland. There were two elders standing guard on either side of the openings of the cave he had just exited, probably looking after the ''prisoners'' in this open prison. "Another disciple, Eighteenth Elder? We weren''t notified about this," the elder on the left asked. The elder on the right just looked at him and asked, "Isn''t he the sect leader''s disciple? It can''t be that he did something worthy of this punishment, right Eighteenth Elder?" "Don''t mind me and my martial nephew elders. He requested to enter the forbidden field himself," Lang Shun said. "Requested himself? Does he not know how troublesome the forbidden field is?" the elder on the left asked. "It''s alright, Elders. I requested this despite knowing the problems," Alex said. "Alright then. Since you are going in on your and are not being punished, you can come back here whenever you want," the elder said. "Thank you, Elders," he then turned to Lang Shun and said, "Alright, Martial Uncle, I will leave now." Alex thanked Lang Shun and left the cliff. The road downhill was steeper than he realized. Thankfully the rough terrain had plenty for his sole to grip. Now that he was coming down, he looked at the side of the cliffs. Numerous trees were growing on it horizontally. ''Is that where the fruit grows?'' he wondered. Below the cliffs were tiny, nearly dust-sized specs of something moving. ''Are those the disciples being punished?'' he thought. Judging by the number, there were a lot. ''I wonder what they did to deserve their punishment and how long they''ve been here. From the Elder''s explanation, any time over a week would be a torture,'' he thought. Finally, after a few minutes, he reached the bottom of the path and was in the grassland. Suddenly, a force surrounded his body, forcing his Qi to stop showing out. He tried to fight it back, but the force was too strong. Slowly, all of his Qi was pushed to inside his meridians and his body was now a mortal. At least, it was mortal from the perspective of Qi cultivation. ''Is my body cultivation fine?'' he wondered. He tried jumping high and was happy to find that his body wasn''t changed at all. However, he realized that his Spiritual sense was suppressed as well. ''Welp, at least that is there. Still, this force¡­ feels so familiar, and yet so distant. What is this?'' he wondered. Either way, he needed to look for Yang jades now, so he moved along. The grassland was truly vast. It was only from the top of the cliff that it looked like he could see it all. From the bottom, it looked like it was endless. He didn''t know where he should start looking for the jades, so he starts with wherever was closest and moved out. The problem he had now was that he would soon have to log out to go to his classes and due to the lack of Qi, he couldn''t hide his body. ''That is going to be a problem,'' he thought. Still, there were around 2 hours before he had to leave, so he was fine for now. Searching for the Yang jade should have been easy for him. All he had to do was be in the vicinity and his body would locate the yang jade itself. And yet, no matter where he went, he couldn''t find a single one. ''Damn, can I even roam it all in 3 days?'' he started to worry. The flat plain was so vast that Alex couldn''t even see a single disciple. After 2 hours, he got unnaturally hungry. ''Is this because I haven''t eaten in ages?'' he thought as he brought out the food his martial uncle had given him and ate some of it. Finally, once his stomach was full, he found a batch of tall grass and laid down on it. He didn''t know if this was the correct thing to do or not, but given that both his master and martial uncle said there was no danger in the grassland itself, he logged out. Chapter 206: Zheng Min Alex logged out of the game and woke up from his bed. He had woken up on time today. He freshened up and decided to check his school works for a bit before going to the kitchen for dinner. Hannah was out already and had cooked the food. When she saw Alex walk in she asked, "Don''t you want breakfast? Why didn''t you log out earlier?" "Ah, I had things to do in the game," he said. "This early in the morning?" Hannah asked. "Yes," he replied. Hannah stopped asking any further questions and got the food ready. "Sorry about not helping you sister. I will try to log out to at least help with the vegetables, "he said. "No need, I can do it myself. Besides, I don''t like eating potatoes with blood all over them," Hannah teased him. Alex sighed as he looked at the finger he had cut. ''Mom was somewhat right about us losing our abilities to function normally, wasn''t she?'' he thought. He quickly got ready for his classes and walked out of the house with Hannah. Sarah and Emily ''happened'' to be outside their door when they arrived at the bottom of their buildings. "Oh, you guys are finally down. We waited for nearly 10 minutes," Sarah said. It seemed Hannah was now good friends with Sarah after their last meetings and Hannah had asked Sarah to take them with her in her car. Alex was still somewhat shy around Emily but did his best to not show it. Soon, they arrived at the University and walked towards their own classes. While returning, however, Alex was stuck walking back with Emily. It seemed Sarah had more classes even after 3 pm, while Hannah''s classes were done more than an hour ago. So they walked back together, talking about different things. Alex came to know a few more things about Emily, while she learned a few more things about Alex. Both giggled their way back home. Alex wanted to bring her to their apartment to serve her some snacks while she waited for Sarah''s classes to be over, but he remembered that he left his body alone back in the game. So he hurriedly said his goodbyes and went up the elevator. Thankfully, Hannah had the lunch prepared which he hastily ate and went back to his room. Then, he logged in. Alex realized that he was right where he had left his body, his food right next to him as well. GRRR He felt himself go a little hungry and was surprised. "Just how hungry can I get? I only ate this morning," he thought. But then he remembered that what he ate this morning was nowhere near what a mortal would eat in a day, so he just shook his head and ate a bit more. He hung the bag in front of him and looked at the size of it. Only half a day had passed, and he was already done with more than a third of the food his Martial uncle had sent him. "Urghh¡­ martial uncle miscalculated how much food a mortal needed to eat," he thought. He was disappointed, but he didn''t have time for that. He needed to search for the yang jades. He put his food inside his robes and walked around the land waiting for his body to tell him anything. ''I hope I don''t need to have Qi for my body to find the yang jades. That would be tragic,'' he thought. He didn''t believe that to be the case, however, since it had to do with the Body and not cultivation at all. He walked around for hours searching the yang jades but found nothing. "Damn, just how rare is it?" he thought. Suddenly, Alex heard some groaning nearby. He looked back and saw someone lying down on the floor, trying to move around, but unable to. He couldn''t tell what was happening, but he immediately ran towards the person. The person was on the floor, with chapped lips and sunken cheeks. "What''s wrong?" Alex asked seeing the dastardly look on the person''s face. "Wa¡ª wat¡ªer ," the man said, unable to form a single sentence. Alex was shocked to see someone like that. He didn''t have any water on him, so he decided to carry him to the river source a few kilometers ahead. He picked the man upon his back and started walking in the direction of the river. It didn''t take him long to arrive at the river source where he put the man down and walked forward to the river to get him some water. "What do I gather water with?" he thought for a second. He didn''t want to bring the dying man here due to the dangers his Martial Uncle told him about. He decided to gather water in his two palms. By the first time he walked back to the man, he realized how ineffective that was. He needed to find another way. Suddenly, an idea struck him. He took off his robe and dropped it in the river, waiting for it to absorb the water. He then brought it back to the man and put it over the man''s mouth, letting the water drip on his face. Within a few minutes, the man started to show signs of recovering and by 10 minutes, he was back to walking and talking. The man still had chapped lips and sunken cheeks but his complexion was healthier than before. He looked at Alex with his hollow eyes and said, "Thank you brother. You saved me. If you weren''t here, I would''ve died of thirst in this treacherous place," he said. "It''s okay brother. It is my duty to save a fellow disciple from my own sect," he said. Alex only now looked at the man''s robe and realized that he was actually an inner sect disciple. "My name is Zheng Min, what is your name, brother?" he asked. "Yu Ming," Alex replied, giving him his in-game name. Chapter 207: Trust "Once again, Brother Yu, thank you for saving me." Zheng Min nearly got on his knees to thank Alex for saving him. "As I said, Brother Zheng, don''t worry about it," Alex said. Zheng Min stood up and walked to the river to drink some more water. By the time he returned to Alex, he was breathing very heavily. "Are you okay, Brother Zheng?" Alex asked. "Huff huff, My body is still not fully ready for me to walk so much," Zheng Min said as he laid back down on the ground, breathing rather heavily. Alex was going to ask him about Yang jades but decided to wait until he was ready to talk. Zheng min looked around and looked at Alex. He noticed something black on Alex and asked, "Brother Yu, what is that black thing?" Alex didn''t know what he was talking about at first, but then he saw the little black bag where he kept his food, and answered him, "Oh, this? This is my portion of food." Zheng Min''s eyes perked up. "That''s food, brother Yu?" he asked. "I am really hungry right now, brother Yu. I haven''t eaten in days, can I ask you to give me some food?" Alex didn''t want to waste any more food, but seeing the sorry state of Zheng Min, he decided to hand him some. He took out some food and gave it to him. Zheng Min finished the given food in less than a minute. "Ah, that was good," he said in satisfaction. "Where did you get such food, Brother Yu?" he asked. "I brought it along with myself," Alex said. "You brought it yourself? They allowed you to?" he asked, but then noticed the wet robe Alex was holding and said, "Is your cultivation base really not that high that the sect decided to let you carry your food? Hehehe." He started laughing and didn''t stop for a while. "Anyway, what crime did you do to come in here, Brother Yu?" he asked. "I¡­ uh stole some ingredient from my neighbor while he was sleeping," Alex lied through his teeth. However, Zheng Min thought nothing of it. "Same here brother. I''ve been here for nearly a month now. I hope yours is not that long, or you won''t last with that little food," Zheng Min said. "I should be fine," Alex said. They stood up and walked back away from the river. It was dangerous and they didn''t want to stay there that long. Along the way, Alex asked Zheng Min about the yang jades but turned out Zheng Min didn''t even know what Alex was talking about. Disappointed, he dropped the subject. Soon, Zheng Min started to huff and puff again. Learning that the time was nearly 8 pm, he decided to log out for now. "Why don''t you rest, for now, Brother Zheng? I will rest too," Alex said. "Really? Thank you, brother Yu," Zheng Min said as he fell down to the ground and started taking deep breaths again. Before Alex could even say anything, he fell asleep. ''He must''ve been really tired,'' Alex thought and he sat down near and got into a meditating lotus position. After that, he logged out. He had gotten into the game without changing his clothes, so he quickly changed his clothes before going to the kitchen for dinner. Hannah was already there waiting for him, so he had a proper dinner with his sister. After helping her with the dishes, he went back to the game half an hour later. He logged back into the game and opened his eyes. In front of him was Zheng Min, standing a little further away. His eyes were wide open. On the right hand, he held a pointed stone with a red tip, dripping something. On the left hand, he had a lump of something black. Due to not being a cultivator anymore, Alex couldn''t see everything as clearly as he could when he was a cultivator, but thanks to body cultivation, it was still much better than normal humans. "What is that?" he asked, a little disoriented as to what was happening. Suddenly, a sharp pain appeared in his chest. Alex looked to his left chest to see that his robe was in tatters and there was a large cut on his skin. The cut was a little deeper than his skin, but that still hurt him quite a bit. He quickly tore off his robes and put them on the would. The wound itself wasn''t bleeding a lot, but he still decided to do it. Once the robe was torn, he realized that there was nothing inside. His ration of food had disappeared. His eyes turned wide and he immediately looked at Zheng Min who was still in shock. It was then Alex realized that the black lump on his hand, was his food. It didn''t take much after that to realize that he had been attacked by Zheng Min. "Wh-Why?" Zheng Min asked. "Why won''t you die? How are you still alive?" he asked. "You¡ª You attacked me?" Alex asked in shock. He had helped the guy so much, even saved him from near death, and yet, he had attacked his heart with a sharp rock If it wasn''t for the fact that he cultivated body, he probably would''ve successfully plunged the rock into his heart. "I saved you¡ª why would you attack me?" he asked. "Ha¡ª Haha¡ª ha ahaha," Zheng Min started to laugh. "Can''t you see? I want your food. I nearly died due to the lack of food. I''m not letting that happen again," he said. "But I saved you?" Alex asked. "So? As a criminal, you must know that trust is as fickle as the snow in summer. Still, as a thank you, I wanted to kill you while you were in your sleep. Why wouldn''t you die? What kind of treasure are you wearing over your body?" he started asking. "You¡­ betrayed me because you wanted my food and tried to kill me in my sleep as thanks?" Alex asked in shock. He was starting to feel something he had never felt before. Chapter 208: Hurt Betrayal. Alex had heard about that before. Seen them in many movies and television series. He even made sure to remember not to get tricked when his master had taught him different things. Yet he never understood what it felt like to be betrayed. Well¡­ now he had. Multitudes of emotions were running across Alex. Shock, surprise, pain, anger, and disbelief. He couldn''t believe that the person he saved today had not only tried to steal his food, but also tried to kill him. "A criminal, huh?" Alex said. "I should have known about this. You guys aren''t good people. Some, maybe¡­ but definitely not all of you. Haha" Alex laughed at himself. " I was too gullible to have helped you in such an environment. Not only did I helped you, but I also did more than I needed to do, and for that I got back-stabbed. Well, that is a good learning lesson. Thank you for that," Alex said as he stood up which still holding the cloth to his chest. "Now, if you would be so kind as to return my food back to me, I might consider letting you go with simple bruises for what you did to me," Alex said. "Wha-What? Do you think you can take this from me? Keep dreaming," Zheng Min said as he turned around and ran as fast as he could. Alex simply shook his head and dashed forward. With his incredible strength, he crossed a great distance in an instance. In less than 3 instances, he reached Zheng Min and tried to grab him. Zheng Min blocked with his left hand, and Alex accidentally grabbed the black bag of food. Alex decided to pull the bag out of Zheng Min''s hands, but he had a surprisingly good grip. Unfortunately, the bag wasn''t as strong as either of their grips. Right through the middle of the bag, a tear opened up that slowly traveled all over the bag, and before either of them could do anything, the contents of the bag got thrown all over the grasslands. Alex was scared to see the food get thrown all over the place. This was his only food for the next 2 days and he had now wasted it. "No, the food," Zheng Min cried out in shock. He was more horrified at the sight of the foot getting thrown away than Alex was. After all, Zheng Min had to stay here until his punishment was complete, while Alex could leave anytime he wanted. Alex got angry at the situation. "You not only betrayed me and tried to kill me, and now you ruin my only supply of food too," he said angrily through his gnashing teeth. He immediately jumped forward and dropped Zheng Min to the ground. "You are here for punishment for some crime you committed, right? Let me punish you then," he said as he stepped on Zheng Min''s arm. "ARRRHHHHH,'' loud, painful sound came from Zheng Min''s mouth as Alex pressed down on his arm. "Stop, please stop. NO. I''m sorry, I won''t do it again, stop," he started crying, but Alex didn''t lift his leg. Instead, he pressed more. "AHHHH." A more painful sound came out of Zheng Min''s mouth as the pain started to become unbearable. "Wasn''t this the arm you tried to kill me with? Don''t worry, I won''t kill you for trying to kill me. I''m not as petty as you," Alex said. "Ahhh, then stop. Stop hurting me," Zheng Min shouted. Alex, however, just said, "I said I''m not as petty as you. That doesn''t mean I''m not petty at all." CRACK Suddenly, the sound of a broken bone rang out from Zheng Min''s arm after Alex finally crushed it beneath his feet. The sound that left Zheng Min''s mouth after that couldn''t be put into words. The sound was so painful and loud that even Alex winced a little. He lifted his leg to look at the nearly flattened arm. "That is for trying to kill me," Alex said. Zheng Min continued to wail, listening to nothing Alex was saying. "As for betraying me and stealing and ruining my food¡­," he trailed off as he moved his leg up the arm to his shoulders and placed it there. "You really deserve to be punished." Without a single ounce of hesitation, he crushed his shoulder too. Audible cracks could be heard even through the wails of Zheng Min as the shoulder plates and collar bones broke in succession. Even Alex felt a little shiver when he heard that. He decided to leave him there and looked for his dropped food. He found a few, but due to being unable to use spiritual sense, he could not find any others. It didn''t matter, he was sure they were dirty now. He didn''t even have anything to carry, as even the robes he was wearing were in tatters. ''Sigh, now all the food is gone and I feel horrible,'' he thought. He left the place soon after there were no more cries in the air as Zheng Min was already unconscious from all the pain. Alex first wanted to destroy both his arm in anger but decided to let him a way to live. He didn''t want to get on the level of a criminal like him and kill people. He ate what food was remaining along the way, while still holding his wounds. He looked at the wound that was still bleeding a little and said, "Dammit, why has it not healed yet? Does healing has to do with Qi too?" he wondered. All the other times he had healed quickly from the cuts, he had assumed that it was because of his body, but it turned out it was because of his Qi. The pain wasn''t unbearable, but it also wasn''t something he wanted to stay with. Soon, he stopped walking. He looked at the dark sky and sat down there. He wanted to do nothing more after how sh*tty the night had been. So, he decided to search for the Yang Jades tomorrow morning, and for today he simply logged out. Chapter 209: Party? For nearly two hours, Alex couldn''t sleep at all. After how horrible the night had been, the feeling of being betrayed still left a bad aftertaste in him. He saw where the problem lied, he knew he was good to others. But he would have never imagined that someone could do such a horrible thing to their own savior. "He must''ve lied about how he became a criminal too," Alex thought. Nobody capable of doing such a thing could be a simple thief. The other thing that had horrified him was the reaction he had shown to betrayal. He had nearly killed the man. Although the man had tried to kill him too and definitely deserved it, he was still shocked that he could even think of doing such a thing. "At least I didn''t kill him. I don''t think I am capable of that right now," he thought. His master had said that he would have to kill to survive in this cruel world very soon. He didn''t want the very soon to become now. However, if push came to shove, he wouldn''t hesitate to do that either. Just like what he did today, he knew deep down, that he was capable of doing that as well. No, he had to be capable of doing that. "You can''t live a kind soul in a world of cruel ones. You end up getting even more tainted." Alex decided to forget about everything and fell asleep. Early in the morning at around 7 am, he woke up from his sleep. He quickly freshened up and went to the kitchen for breakfast. Surprisingly, Hannah wasn''t up yet. So, he decided to return the favor for her, and make some toast and eggs. By the time he was done, Hannah had already come out of her room. "Wow, I thought I smelled something nice. What are you making?" she asked. Alex served him and his cousin as he put the breakfast on the table and said, "Toast and Eggs. Come sit. You''ve been preparing me food for so long, so I decided to return the favor." "Oh, you didn''t cut your finger again right?" Hannah teased. It was either this or something about Emily that she always teased him with. "Oh, right. I need to ask you about something," Hannah said. "Yeah, go ahead," Alex said inquisitively. "So, on upcoming Saturday, Sarah has asked me to go shopping with her for the new capsules. It will be us 4 and some of her other friends, I think. Do you think it''s a good idea to throw a small celebration party of some sort afterward?" she asked. "Saturday? I don''t know, sister. I have something important going on in the game around that time, and I don''t know if I can leave that or not," he said. "Important?" Hannah was surprised. "How important?" she asked. Alex thought for a bit and said, "Depending on the time frame, I might have to skip classes that week." Hannah was a little shocked at his response. "Skip classes? That important? What is happening in the western continent?" she asked. "It''s just in the Crimson Empire. We have an upcoming annual competition for all the sects there. I haven''t confirmed how long it will last, but I will leave for the capital city around Friday. So, I may or may not be able to do anything on Saturday," he said. "Although, the competition should be starting on Sunday, so maybe we might get lucky," he said. "You know what, let me confirm with my master on Friday, that should be enough time for preparation, right?" he asked. "Yeah, that should be fine. It''s just ordering some stuff online," Hannah said. Soon they finished breakfast and Alex helped Hannah prepare their lunch before they left for their classes. Alex went back to his room and logged in to check on himself. He was back in the familiar grassland, laying on the ground. The sky was as clear as ever, with no signs of clouds, let alone rain. "Now that I think about it, has it ever rained since I got in this game?" he thought. He remembered quite a few days with clouds hanging in the sky but It never rained. "Urghh," he grunted as he stood up. His hand was somehow still holding the torn robe to his chest. He tried to pull it off but turned out, the blood had dried up and left the robe stuck to his chest. He slowly pulled it out, making sure he didn''t reopen his closed-off wound. Finally, he sighed in relief once the robe was out. While his physical healing wasn''t as good as his Qi one, it still was enough for him to not lose too much blood to such a small wound. He tried to see if he was hungry, but thankfully he was not. However, given that he would have to get some food for himself later on in the day, he decided to do it now and leave later for finding the yang jades. He still wasn''t getting anywhere close with that thing. He walked to the cliffs where the fruits were growing high up and reached there in about 15 minutes. "I still have more than an hour before I need to leave," he thought. There were more than a few people near the cliff. Some trying to climb up the side, some just throwing stones, hoping to hit the fruits. However, neither of them was successful as the fruits were over 50 meters up the cliff. That was a very high place for all of them to reach. Alex was also stumped for a second. He didn''t want to climb the cliff, so he could only throw stones at the fruits. But at such a height, his accuracy would suffer a lot. The dozens of disciples there were all either outer sect disciples or inner sect disciples. He didn''t see a single core disciple. "That Song Zun guy was sent here too right? For 2 months I think. I wonder where he went," Alex thought, but quickly ignored it. It was time for him to get some food for himself. Chapter 210: Butterfly Pears Alex walked up to a relatively free spot and picked up a decent-sized stone. BAM A small noise came from right next to him as a stone rolled a few times before stopping. "Sh*t. I need to be careful of falling stones too, huh?" he thought. With everyone throwing rocks high up in the air, it felt like a rain of rock was falling on them. Alex looked up at the fruit hanging high up the side of the cliff and threw his rock at a moderate force. He didn''t know how strong he could throw the rocks, but given that he could punch dents into trees, it should be quick hard. The stone flew off of his hands like a professional baseball throwing his perfect pitch. The speed was amazing, however, the accuracy was nowhere near enough to even hit the trees on the side of the fruit. He missed the entire thing by at least a 3-meter margin. Alex cringed at himself, seeing the bad throw. He looked to his left and shouted, "Oi, dodge. The stone is falling." The man who was about to throw his rock took 3 steps back and Alex''s rock fell exactly where he had been standing. The man nodded to Alex and continued throwing his rock. Alex found it a little funny that he couldn''t even reach 30 meters with his throw. ''How are they ever going to eat that food?" he wondered. Alex tried his own a few more times and got the hang of it. Soon, he was passing by the side of the fruits by a couple of centimeters. "Ohh, so close," he thought. He threw a few more times and hit the branch holding fruit, and the fruit came floating down. The leaves of the fruit made a sort of parachute for the fruit so that it didn''t smash into pieces as it fell to the ground. Alex caught the fruit and looked at it more carefully. Suddenly, a name popped into his head. [Butterfly Pears] ''It''s an alchemy ingredient?'' Alex was a little surprised. Still, he didn''t bother thinking about it a lot. He rubbed it a bit with his cloth and dug into it. Juices dripped down the side of his mouth as the sweet nectar slid down his throat. This was the first time he had bothered eating something that was not cooked in the game, and it truly showed just how much he was missing out on. Before he even realized it, he had finished the entire pear. He could feel his body being revitalized from that single fruit and he couldn''t help but be curious just how much better he would feel after eating more. Suddenly, a notification appeared in front of him Qi appeared in his as it passed through his body. He felt the wound on his chest quiver a little as if they were being healed. That wasn''t a lot of Qi. However, he wasn''t expecting any, so that was quite a surprise. Suddenly, on his mortal body, he could finally feel where the Qi he acquired went. The Qi traveled across his entire body until it came down to his naval area and suddenly grew dormant. It was so still that Alex had a hard time knowing whether it was even there or not. Any other time he ate a Core or pills, or the new Qi he acquired would vanish into his body, never to be used towards his cultivation. They would only show up on the status page and nowhere else. Alex had started to believe that the Qi that did not belong to his cultivation base were just random numbers that would produce extra Qi for him when he broke through. But finally, he needed to be a mortal to figure out that the new Qi was actually going to his naval area and hiding. "But why there?" he wondered. However, there was no answer. Alex continued throwing a bunch of more rocks and got 3 more fruits. By now, the nearby disciples had already come to ask him for some of the fruits. However, Alex wasn''t so naive as to hand over them his own food. Especially to these disciples who were being punished for some crimes they did in the sect. He told them to get their own and left the place with his fruits. Some tried to follow him, seeing his 3 fruits, but after realized that they would be far away from the cliff, they returned back. Alex ate the three remaining fruits and searched for the yang jades a little more. In the end, he never found any. So, reluctantly, he logged out. It was time for lunch, so he went to get some food. Hannah was already there, so they ate together. After washing the dishes, they both went back to their rooms to get ready for their classes and left. Once again, Sarah and Emily were waiting for them. The 4 of them got in Sarah''s car and went to their classes. "God, I need to learn how to drive a car too. It looks so handy," Hannah said. "Why don''t you? You should have enough money, right?" Sarah asked. "Yeah, but I don''t have the time. I will try to make some soon," Hannah said. "I will need to talk to him about it," she said in a small voice. "What?" Sarah asked, unable to hear what she was saying. "Nothing," Hannah changed the subject. Soon they reached the university and went to their own classes. After the classes ended, Emily and Alex were once more left together, forced to go home. They didn''t complain. They walked back home together, talking the entire way. After getting back, Alex once more wanted to invite her in, but couldn''t. He went back to his apartment, ate some snacks, and jumped back into the game. It was time to seriously hunt for some more Yang Jades. Chapter 211: Scorpion Alex logged back in and woke up in the familiar grassland. He stood up from where he was sleeping in the grass and looked at his wound immediately. Fortunately, it was all but healed. "2 more fruits should do it," he thought. He would go back to the cliff once he was hungry. For now, he decided to start looking for the yang jades. His tattered robes were not a good sight to look at and he desperately wanted to take another robe out from inside his storage bags. Unfortunately, due to his qi not working, he couldn''t. "God, even if my spiritual sense just worked, I could do something," he thought. He tried to push out his Qi, against the pressure of whatever was suppressing it, but in the end, his efforts were futile. Next, he tried Spiritual sense once more. He tried to push the suppressing force once more, using a lot of his spiritual sea in the process. It was working. He was pushing back the suppression force from his mind and was starting to be able to use his spiritual sense a little. It was one a few centimeters around his mind, but that was a positive result nonetheless. In the end, he ended up drying his spiritual sea in the process and stopped. The suppression force slammed back, making him unable to use it again. Alex breathed heavily as what he did took a lot of effort out of him. Beads of sweat appeared on his forehead and he was feeling really hot right now. After resting for a while and cooling down, he moved on. Every location in this place looked the same. There was not a single tree in sight and the entire land was covered in grass. If it were not for the cliff behind him and the sun''s location, Alex doubted he could even remember where he had been and where he had not with his eidetic memory. He walked on and on and on, for hours on end but still didn''t manage to find any yang jade. "Damn, just how rare is it?" he thought. He continued searching and searching and found that he had searched every single place in the grassland. He only had 2 places left to be searched. One was the cliffside where the disciples were. He could go along the base of the cliff and see if there were any. He could also try to swap fruits for yang jades with the desperate ones if they had any. The next place was the river bank. There could be some there, but Alex hesitated a bit due to the danger his Martial uncle said was there. However, he couldn''t stop now because of some danger. He was quite thirsty too, so it was the perfect time to go there. He reached the river bank on one end, where the cliff met it. The other side of the river was a desert that Alex had seen previously. He didn''t have time to admire it last time given that Zheng Min was dying and he was busy helping him. He did however remember the yellowish-red sands. Those were quite surprising to him. When they had mentioned that a desert was a land filled with sands, he had assumed it would be white sand, like the ones found in river banks, but this was different. "How different are the other places too? These volcanoes, glaciers, oceans," he couldn''t help but wonder. He drank water from the river and was about to leave when something rustled behind him. He immediately turned around to see what it was. Surprisingly, or maybe as expected, it was a monster. It was a normal-looking scorpion, with a black exoskeleton and a pointed tail that was sure to have venom in it. The thing that surprised Alex the most was its size. It was nearly 2 meters in length and a meter in width. He looked at the scorpion with wide eyes, and the scorpion looked back. The scorpion showed no contemplation before it directly ran towards him to attack. It tried to snap at him with its two pincers in the front, but Alex was fast enough and he jumped back. The scorpion didn''t stop, however. It continued moving forward and tried to snap at him a couple more times. Alex didn''t have to worry much, however. His Elusive Heavenly Sword was good enough for him to dodge the monster''s attack. He tried to look for an opening to smash the beast''s head. The scorpion attacked him once more, trying to snap at him. But Alex managed to dodge and threw a punch at its head. Suddenly, the scorpion''s tail came at him, faster than any attack that the scorpion was doing until now. Alex hastily dodged backward and the venomous stinger barely went past his head. Had he been a second late, he would have lost his head right now. Even if his body was strong enough to survive the hit, the poison would surely kill him. Putrid smell hovered in the air as Alex subconsciously breathed it in. Realizing what he was doing, he immediately exhaled every single breath of air he had taken just now. "That was close. I nearly breathed in the venom," he thought. He didn''t know if the venom in fact did work like that or not. But it was never a bad idea to prepare against the worst. He once more tried to attack the scorpion, only this time he was ready for the stinger. The stinger came as expected and went past him. Just as the tail was outstretched, Alex jumped on the scorpion''s back and grabbed its tail with all of his body. And then, he ripped it out. Surprisingly, the scorpion''s defense wasn''t as strong as he had assumed. He rotated the ripped tail and slammed the stinger back into the scorpion, killing it in an instant. Only then did Alex got off of it, and look a large breather. The fight hadn''t lasted long, but it was a very dangerous one, and he was happy to have won in the end. Chapter 212: Snake Monster A full moon hung in the southern part of the sky and illuminated the grassland. The sun had been down for nearly two hours, but thankfully, there was light now. Alex was walking down the river, searching for the yang jade, but he couldn''t find any. He had come across a few more scorpions as well and had killed them just like the first one. He had also come across a few torn bodies, clearly belonging to the Hong Wu Sect. He managed to find a perfectly fine robe belonging to what he assumed was a now dead inner sect disciple, so he quickly changed into it. "I will continue later," he thought and walked back towards the grassland. He had been walking along the river bank for over 4 hours now, and it was time to log out for dinner. After finding a good place to keep his body, he logged out. Hannah had been waiting for him at the kitchen table. He quickly ate his food and helped his cousin with the dishes. After they were done, he quickly got back into the game. Once he stood up from the place, he realized that he was getting hungry. However, he still had to search for the yang jades. That was the entire reason he had been here in the first place. If he couldn''t find a few tonight, it would be 2 days wasted here, just like that. "Why are they so rare? Master had 3, and those at the marketplace had one each, so why am I having such a hard time finding it, when I should be the one finding the most," he thought. Reluctantly, he started to scour the river banks once more. He was extra careful not to fall victim to an ambushing monster, so he kept his eyes and ears open. The river kept on flowing, and the moon shone bright; the night was beautiful, and yet Alex hated it because he couldn''t find any yang jades. "That is just ridiculous. Why can I find snakes, and centipedes and scorpions and not a single Yang Ja¡ª " Suddenly, he felt a THUMP inside him. "This feeling¡­ " His eyes started shining brightly as he knew what was happening. He had finally found one. He started looking around for the yang jade, trying to locate it using his body. It didn''t take him long to realize that the yang jade was inside the river. He started to get worried. Outside the river, he could fight with the monsters and be on the lookout for them. But in the water, where nothing was visible and made no sound¡­ that was a problem. "Sh*t," Alex thought. He started thinking of ways to go into the river and not get attacked in the water. He tried thinking of ideas and only a single one came to his mind. If he didn''t want to get attacked in the water, he needed to get attacked out of water. He started shouting and smashing rocks together to make as much noise as he could and tried to lure the monsters in the vicinity so that they would leave the water. It was a crazy idea as the noise he was making, made it hard for him to hear the monsters approaching as well. But he had no choice and could only hope for the best. He did stop once in a while to make sure there was nothing around him. However, no monster or even humans came by. In the end, he figured there were none in the vicinity and decided to walk in. Just then, he saw an unusual pattern of waves on top of the river, illuminated by the moonlight. "Something''s there," he said to himself. Suddenly, a rather large snake appeared from the water as it started hissing at him. Alex''s first thought was to run away, but then he felt something. The yang jade was moving. His eyes turned wide as he looked at the snake. The yang jade was inside the snake. The snake itself was about half a meter in diameter, but it was way too long. Thankfully, it looked like it was a water snake, so the chances of it being venomous were very low. Still, it was a good idea to stay cautious. The snake saw him and slithered towards him, opening its mouth wide, showing the two bright fangs. Alex immediately dodged its attack and started punching at the snake. The snake wasn''t as fast or had a poisonous stinger as the scorpion, so Alex freely attacked it, keeping tabs on where its head was at all times. But suddenly, its tail came from behind him, slamming at him and sending him flying away. Thankfully, Alex landed on the grass and wasn''t hurt much. "Sh*t," he said and ran back at the snake. The snake was pretty beat up with just a few attacks, so it was nothing strong. So, he went and attacked some more. The tail made it very annoying to hit it for long and the fangs were just as scary, even when he had deduced that they weren''t venomous. In the end, he managed to kill the snake with enough blunt trauma. He pulled the snake''s corpse onto the grassland and started ripping it apart with his own hands. Slowly, he felt his way through the snake''s body, until he found something. He yanked it out and saw it under the moonlight. It was a disciple''s corpse, and he was holding the yang jade with him. Alex was stunned for a second. A disciple had just died like that, eaten by a snake. Did this disciple really commit a crime that was worthy of death like this? The cruel fate the disciple had to suffer made Alex nauseate. Was the sect right in doing what they were doing? Was cheating or stealing punishable by a death sentence? He couldn''t understand what was going on. In the end, he dug up some land and buried the disciple while taking away the yang jade. Chapter 213: Boss Alex walked along the river once more, but couldn''t find any yang jades anymore. He had washed the yang jade and kept it in his new robes and hoped that he didn''t lose it. How he wished he could use a storage bag right now. Seeing that there was nothing in the area, he walked towards the cliff to gather some fruit to eat. He was after all starting to get really hungry. When he reached the cliff, there were very few people there, only 3 at most. "Are they all asleep right now?" he wondered. It was late into the night and their mortal bodies probably couldn''t handle the fatigue all they, so they had gone to rest for the day. As for these people awake right now, they probably hadn''t had anything to eat all day and were really hungry. Alex was hungry too, so he could understand their sentiment. He picked up a stone from the ground and targeted one of the branches with multiple pears. He arched his arm back and released the stone with a massive swing. He hadn''t used his full power, and yet the stone made a swish sound in the night, very audibly. Unfortunately, he missed. "Look out for the stone coming down," he cautioned them. It was especially hard to see the stones now in the moonlight when they were moving really fast. Once Alex heard the stone fall somewhere behind him, he picked another one and threw it up. He had to throw a couple of times to accurately hit the branch that was over 50 meters high above him, and even then, only 1 butterfly pear fell down towards him. He caught it and bit into it. Once more, juicy sweet nectar slid down his throat. He just couldn''t get enough of it. The 3 disciples around him looked at him in envy, at the fact that he had only just arrived and was already eating something. They directed their anger towards the fruit and started throwing the stones harder. Alex could hear both the grunts and the growls the 3 disciples were doing. He ignored them and focused on hitting more of the fruits. After a few more tries, he managed to hit the branch once more and two more fruits fell down gently. He caught both of them and started eating another one. His hunger was starting to be satisfied, but the taste of the pears was so good that he started to want to overeat them. The other 3 disciples were more than just jealous now, they were subconsciously thinking of how to get the food from him. Alex saw that too. So, before they could do anything, he spoke. "I have an extra fruit here, and I am willing to trade it," he said. "Trade?" the three disciples made a weird expression. "We can''t access our storage bags, how do you want us to trade?" they asked. "Simple," Alex said as he brought out a Yang jade and showed it to them. "If you can find me one of these, I can give you this fruit," he said. The disciples looked at each other for a few seconds, making an awkward atmosphere, and then violently started laughing. "HAHAHAHA, What? Are you trying to be the boss?" they said with tears in their eyes from laughing too much. Alex was not expecting this reaction from them. In his mind, they would either get angry, saying that they didn''t have it, and order him to give it to them if he didn''t want to get hurt. Or get happy and show him a yang jade, in which case he would swap one with the food. But he never expected them to just laugh at him. This was a really weird incident. "What''s going on? Why are you laughing? Do you not have these?" he asked. "Hahaha, Stop trying to act like you''re the boss. We''ve already seen the boss before," one of them said. "Haa, That might have worked on some poor newcomers, but us who have been here for a while now won''t get so easily scammed. If you think you can swap the yang jade with us old ones for a single fruit, then you are mistaken boy," another one said. "It seems you don''t know that the boss trades two fruits, instead of one for the yang jade," the third one said. "Huh?" Alex was truly confused now. "What boss are you talking about? It seems you know what a yang jade is, so, will you swap it with me or not?" he asked. "Go away kid, we don''t have any. If we did, we wouldn''t be stuck here, trying to hit the fruits down," the first person spoke. "We could''ve just trades yang jades with the boss for food if we had one. We wouldn''t be in this current predicament." Alex was really intrigued by the current information, so he said, "Give me information about this boss and I will give you this fruit." The three guys looked at him weirdly. "You want to know about the boss? We don''t have much information about him," one of them said. "Give me any. This is my first time hearing about this boss and is really curious why he wants yang jades so much," Alex said. "You really don''t know anything about the boss?" the three asked in confusion. If he didn''t know about the boss, why did he try to impersonate him? They were quite confused right now. "No. I only came to the Forbidden Fields two days ago and I do not know much about this boss," Alex said. The three people''s eyes went wide when they heard this. "If that is true, then¡­ you really don''t know about the boss?" They asked. Alex simply put forth the pear towards them and said, "Enough nonsense, do you know anything or not? I don''t have time to waste on you people." "Wait, wait, wait, we will tell you. We will tell you about the boss," he exclaimed and continued, "It all started about a week and a half ago." Chapter 214: A few weeks ago "Everything was normal for a while now. I had been here for half a month by then, these two came a few days after me. At first, we had no problem living in this place. It was dangerous around the river, but that was that." He said. He then pointed up the cliff and asked, "Can you see that? Around 30-meter marks." Alex looked at where he pointed and saw marks of something. He couldn''t make it out exactly due to it being so high up and the moon wasn''t at an angle to hit the walls of the cliff yet. "What is that?" Alex asked. "That, my friend, is the remnant of the trees that used to grow there," he said. "Before the boss came here, there used to be trees around those marks. Numerous fruits hung there, and those who were punished would stay around here, hitting the tree in hope of making it fall." "We were still punished, but life wasn''t terrible. But then, he arrived, the boss." "Around a week and a half ago, he came to that spot in the corner and surprisingly, climbed all the way up to the 30-meter mark on the cliff. And then, he destroyed everything," the man said. The other two were just listening. Alex was a little surprised at where the story was going. ''Did a glutton enter the forbidden fields?'' he wondered. "There already wasn''t enough fruit for all of us, and yet the man took most of them all himself. People started to criticize him at first, but quickly stopped and instead cheered him. That was because he moved along the side of the cliffs and started dropping all the fruits to the ground." "Before a day had even passed, he managed to drop hall the cliff''s worth of fruits to the ground. Everyone was happy seeing this, but soon, they started to get worried. The man had gone to the other side of the cliff as well." "People realized too late that he was getting rid of all the food for us. In the end, aside from the boss, nobody could get the food. It was then that the boss named himself the boss and put on a new rule," the man said. "What rule?" Alex was curious. "He said that if we could get him Yang Jades, he would give us 2 fruits. Now, yang jades were rare, but not impossible to find. However, the many disciples here scoured the entire grassland and in less than a week, there was none to find." "Some stupid idiots even tried to go to the other side of the river to get yang jades. Some succeeded, most died there. In the end, most of us got stuck here trying to find food for ourselves," said the old man. Questions started running across Alex''s head. So, he decided to ask. "What is this boss''s name?" he asked. "No idea, he only refers to himself as the boss," the man said. "Then, what does he want with the yang jades?" Alex asked. "Again, No idea. He takes the jade and leaves. He never tells us what they are for," he said. "Where does this boss of yours live then?" Alex asked. "He is not our boss. We just refer to him as one. Also, he lives in a cave on the cliff on the left side," the man said as he pointed far away. Alex realized these people didn''t know anything about this boss. So he decided to change the question. "What did you do to get here?" Alex asked. "Me? I got into a fight with someone else and beat them. Both of us got sent here, but the other person didn''t have to stay as long and left a week ago," the man said. Alex looked at the other two and expected them to answer too. "I stole ingredients for a pill from the inner sect disciple I was aiding," said one man. "I destroyed the house of someone who was trying to court the girl I liked," the last person said. Suddenly, hearing their reasons for being sent here, Alex''s perception of them changed. At first, he thought they were vile criminal scum that deserved to be hungry and punished, and now, they were just broken people who did stupid things on impulse. One stole, another got into a fight, and the last one destroyed a house. What was stolen, could be given back. One could make up after a fight. Houses could be rebuilt. But sending people like these to suffer for so much time was not something he saw the sect doing. "Unless¡­" he thought. It originally wasn''t meant to be a tough punishment. "Master did say one would be really bored here. Hunger was just something that came later," he thought. ''These people were sent here to be banished from society for a few weeks and contemplate on their mistake. And yet, their very survival has become hard. I should tell master about this when I get out.'' ''Also, I will have to find this boss and see what need he has for these yang jades. Given that he collected them, he must have a lot,'' Alex started to get excited at the notion of dozens of yang jades. "How much longer do you have to stay here?" Alex asked "A few more days," they all answered. "All right," Alex said. He picked up a couple of rocks and shoot them at the trees up above. Soon, the pears started dropping and he handed out one to each of them in thanks for the information. The three were nearly brought to tears seeing food after so long. It turned out, they hadn''t eaten in over a day and were really desperate for it. They were even planning to go to the boss and try to beat him up for the food. Alex asked them why they didn''t already. If the boss had so much food, they should have tried to at least steal it, if they couldn''t beat him. Their response was simple. The boss was way too strong. Chapter 215: Sword "Strong?" Alex asked. He was a little surprised to hear the word ''Strong'' on a disciple from Hong Wu Sect, in the forbidden fields. ''Is the boss a body cultivator like me as well?'' he thought. Those were supposed to be incredibly rare due to the limited opportunity one had to become a body cultivator. ''If he really is a body cultivator, what need does he have with yang jades? Could it be?'' Alex started thinking of many things. One thing he felt was guaranteed. This man was definitely not a player. So, if an NPC had a body similar to his own¡­ Alex had some questions to ask. ''But if he really is a b0dy cultivator, then dealing with him will be hard. I will at least need a weapon with me.'' There was only one thing he could think of doing to increase his opportunity of winning against this boss if they ever got into a fight. He needed a weapon. And what better weapon was there than his steel sword. Alex had tried to use the inventory, but the system said that he did not own any storage bags and was empty. Thankfully, He knew of another method. "I need to fight against this suppression and increase my area until I can release my sword from my storage bag," Alex said to himself. He knew that was possible. At least, it was possible to fight against the suppression with his spiritual sense. "I should be able to do it if I bring my storage bags next to my head right?" he thought. The idea felt a little stupid, but if it worked, it wouldn''t be stupid at all. Alex left the three men and went along the side of the cliff, constantly trying to fight the pressure with his spiritual sense. He didn''t immediately use everything in his spiritual sea and instead sent out a steady stream of spiritual sense that continued to replenish at the same rate as his expenditure. He was trying to get used to fighting the pressure before actually fighting it. Along the way, he asked a few more people for yang jades just to see if they had it, but he found that almost all of it had been given to this boss in exchange for food. ''Damn, If I had gotten here a few weeks ago, I would''ve had yang jades everywhere,'' Alex thought. He didn''t go ahead anymore and instead just walked over to a random spot in the grassland and started intensely practicing his pushing with a spiritual sense. At first, it felt easy cause he was getting used to the pressure, but once he tried to actually push with more than just minimal force, he remembered just how hard it was. His spiritual sea was getting used up very quickly and had disappeared a lot. He felt his spiritual sense spill out of his head and go a little further away. His range was around 30 cm now. He quickly took a storage bag and brought it to his head. He sent what little spiritual sense was coming out of him and sent it into his storage bag. Once inside, he realized that his spiritual sense couldn''t enter all the way through the bag. Even inside the bag with massive space that was disconnected from the real world, he was still being suppressed. Thankfully, a different sword was right on the front. He quickly pulled it out using his spiritual sense. A muffled sound rang out as the sword fell onto the grasses. Alex stopped fighting the suppression force and let his spiritual sense get pushed back into his spiritual sea. Huff Huff He hadn''t realized how much pressure he was putting himself in and had even forgotten to breathe somewhere through the process. He lowered himself and picked up the sword. The sword he had taken out was the common mortal grade sword that his master had given to him. Unlike his Steel sword, however, even after refining, this sword had never displayed any better abilities. "Guess that is what you get from the trashiest of the swords out there," he thought. Alex practiced his Elusive Heavenly sword to make sure he could still use it even without the Qi, and he could. He then looked at the time. It was 4 am. ''Sh*t, I need to find the boss and take away his yang jade,'' Alex thought and walked towards the direction the 3 men had given him. It took him about an hour to reach the place where the boss stayed. Surprisingly, there were a few different people already here. "Please, just a little bit. I swear I will find the stones tomorrow," a man cried. "Please boss! I haven''t eaten in 3 days. I don''t have the strength to look for the yang jades or even throw stones. Please, give me something to eat," another woman was wailing. Her cheeks looked very sunken. "Brothers, please ask the boss for something. I¡ª I can join you guys too. I can help you. Just give me some food." Everyone here was here in the first place because they were desperate for some food. The feeling of hunger was not something one enjoyed after being content for months on end. Now their bodies didn''t have Qi to survive, and the boss had taken away all other forms of satiety. They were ready to do anything for just a single bite of the fruit up there. Alex felt bad for them. Even if they did the most heinous of crimes, they were already being punished. They didn''t need another random person to come here and add more punishment onto them. "Get away from here. Go and find some yang jades for the boss. Only then will you get something to eat," a big-bodied person said to the group of people that were begging. His body was almost as big as Kong Yuhan''s but he looked more like a thug with his current situation than a cultivator. Alex knew exactly where he had to start his operation from. Chapter 216: The Boss Alex had the sword somewhat hidden behind his back. If someone were to give him more than just a glance, they could see the hilt in his hand and the shiny tip revealing from the side of his shoulder. Hiding was never Alex''s intention in the first place. He only wanted to not stand out immediately. He walked straight ahead, past the begging crowd who ignored him. The big guy and the other lackeys of the boss that were behind him saw him coming and said nothing. In their eyes, he was just another person coming to beg. However, the boy that had just come looked straight at them and asked, "I''m here for you boss. Can you tell me where he is?" Alex wasn''t expecting a proper answer but still wanted to see how these henchmen of the bosses would react to him asking that. As expected, they started laughing. "Hahaha, you want to meet the boss? Dream on kid. Even we get to barely meet the boss every day, and you think you can meet him after just arriving here? Haha," the man kept on laughing. "Brother!!," one of the other lackeys walked up to him and said in a small voice and said, "look behind him, is that¡­?" "Hmmm? What''s behind him?" the big guy to look. Alex didn''t bother hiding the sword anymore. "You guys talking about this? Oh, I only brought it here to deal with your boss. However, I can use it to deal with y0u too, if you want me to, that is," he said. The group of henchmen was shocked. Not at his statement, but the fact that Alex had a sword. No one was allowed anything before they were sent away here. Even their storage bags were confiscated by the elders. "How do you have a sword in the forbidden fields?" the big guy started to get a little scared. He could fight against these empty-handed, weak, hungry, and tired folks that knew nothing but how to beg. But a fine person with a weapon on top of it was an actual problem. "Oh, let''s just say I got lucky, hehe," Alex said. "Anyway, so is your boss not here?" he asked as he poked his head to the side and looked toward the hole in the cliff. That was where he was supposed to be staying. "You can not meet the boss. You think our boss is afraid of a random sword from a nobody?" a henchman at the back screamed. "Oh, then what about you. Will you take a sword strike from this nobody?" Alex asked as he stared at him with a slight smile on his face. The henchman hesitated. "Alright, I will have to ask you to step aside so I can meet this boss of yours," Alex said as he started walking towards the cave. "No you don''t," the big man tried to use his carelessness as an opportunity to strike at him. Alex was waiting for him to do that. The punch was very slow for him, as it was done by a mortal after all. Alex easily dodged the incoming punch by a hair''s width of distance and returned a simple punch with no force, to his solar plexus. The goon fell to the ground and start wheezing as the pain and difficulty to breathe hit him at once. The other people behind him got shocked that the strongest one of them got defeated in a single hit. "You dare!!," another of the henchmen screamed and came right at him. Alex straight kicked his legs, stumbling him to the ground and have a solid kick to the back of his head, fainting him in the process. Alex turned toward the rest who had made no movement yet and asked, "You guys gonna fight me too?" The goons immediately shook their head violently and started pointing towards the cave. "The boss is there, don''t hurt us." They immediately shouted and gave up on their boss and ran away. The begging disciples on the ground had noticed the violence and were now staring at Alex in shock. They couldn''t believe that someone would actually dare come fight against the boss. "Is he¡­ stupid or brave?" someone asked. "Whatever he is, if he can succeed, it will be awesome. I will help a little if he needs my help," another person said. Alex ignored the rest and started walking towards the cave. He had his sword with him, still unused, shining in the moonlight. Just as he was nearing the cliffside, he suddenly heard something and saw some movement at the opening of the cave. "Goddammit, who is making so much noise during the night. I''m trying to sleep here," A voice came from inside. It was the voice of a man unenthusiastic about what was happening and angry that he had been woken up for no reason. Soon a man with a lean body and scruffy beard came out of the cave, being lit by the distant moonlight. The man lazily stretched himself as he yawned and looked at the different people in front of him. He saw the group goons that he had employed looking at him terrified. He saw the group of beggars on the ground looking at him and another man that was standing there. He finally looked at the single man standing in the moonlight with a blade on his back. At first, he didn''t care much for the newcomer. Plenty had tried to fight him before, but they never won against him. However, when he looked at his face a little more carefully, he lost all sense of laziness and an evil grin appeared on his face. "It''s you." Alex was shocked when he saw the boss as well. The dark green robes, the lean-looking body, and the face of someone bad. He remembered this core disciple very clearly, as he had helped Alex a lot indirectly. The boss was Song Zun. Chapter 217: Revelation "It''s you!," Alex said in shock as he stared at Song Zun standing in front of him. "So you came here by yourself brat. I wanted to kill you myself when I went back to the sect, but it seems that I won''t have to do anything crafty to find you and kill you. You came to your death yourself," Song Zun said. ''Kill me?'' Alex was shocked that that was the intention Song Zun had. If he was strong, it would be dangerous right now. "Kill me? Just because I found you doing something evil?" Alex asked with a snort. "Hehe, I''ve killed people for less," Song Zun said as the grin on his face became even more dangerous. Alex finally realized. He wasn''t up against a person who did some low-level crimes and got sent here for a few months. He was now going to fight against an actual killer. ''Damn, does that mean he had killed people from Hong Wu Sect before too?" Alex wondered but immediately ignored the different thoughts popping in his mind as this was not the time to be getting distracted. "You should be ashamed making so many people hurt and hungry for no reason at all," Alex said. "Is that all you want to say to me? Don''t you want to apologize before I kill you?" Song Zun asked. "Apologize? You got into this situation because of yourself. If you hadn''t stolen your alchemy ingredients from the alchemy gardens, you would''ve never been here in the first place," Alex said. "Besides, I''m not here for them in the first place. My original intention is to take away the yang jades you have gathered anyway. So our intention to fight each other is the same." Song Zun frowned. "You want my yang jades? What use do you have for them?" he asked. "What use do you have for them?" Alex asked the same question back. "Pfft. HAHAHAHAHA," Song Zun laughed. "Nice one kid. Alas, you are a day late. I have used up all the ones I gathered by now," He said. "Used up?" Alex asked in confusion. ''He knows how to use the yang jades too? Does he had the Son God''s Divine Yang body like me or is it something else?'' Alex wondered. "Enough talking. You can go die now." Song Zun launched forward and delivered a normal punch at Alex. Alex immediately brought both of his hands upfront and tried to block the attack. Instead of blocking, however, he was sent flying backward by the sheer force behind Song Zun''s punch. Alex managed to flip in mid-air and landed on his feet, but he couldn''t help but be surprised by the force behind Song Zun''s punch. His arms were fully numb from the strike. Song Zun was shocked to see Alex perfectly fine as well. He had expected to put a hole in his body, and instead, he was just sent flying backward. There weren''t even any signs of broken bones or anything. "Did¡­ Did the boss get weaker?" one of the people on the side asked. "No way, he defeated that terrible Zheng Min without any problem. He can''t have gotten weaker than before," another person said. "But, that new guy wasn''t even hurt," another person said. "Are you guys idiots? Look at how far he was thrown back with a single punch. You think somebody weak can do that. Instead, the newcomer must be really strong as well. Hell, I''m getting out of here. I don''t want to get in the fight between these two," the girl said and immediately ran away from the area. The others got up and ran away as well after realizing that she was right. Song Zun looked at him with a stunned expression and asked, "Was that a fluke, or did you really block that?" Before Alex could even answer anything, Song Zun once more rushed forward with a much stronger punch. Alex didn''t let him get him this time. He too threw a punch right back at him. A not-so-small sound resulted from the clash of their two punches. They were both sent back and stood on their feet. Song Zun looked back at Alex dumbfounded. "How are you not dead right now?" Song Zun asked. "You blocked my punch without a single treasure or armor. That would only mean your body is strong." He then looked at Alex more curiously and asked, "hmm¡­ are you a clone? Did someone make your body strong too after your death and are using it?" "No, can''t be. Only your skin or muscles would be strong that way. But you are actually fully strong from the inside out. That could only mean¡­. A body cultivator?" he was shocked by his own analysis. "That''s right," he smiled as he looked at Alex and asked, "You are a body cultivator, aren''t you? It''s very rare to see your type. No wonder you came here trying to fight me. You must''ve thought you could beat me." "Well, bad luck to you. I have a strong body as well," Song Zun said. Alex heard everything that was said. He understood how Song Zun came to the answer that Alex was a body cultivator. Body cultivators were rare, so it was no surprise Song Zun would be surprised by the fact that Alex was one. However, at the moment, Even Alex himself was surprised. Somewhere along with his speech, his analysis, Song Zun had slipped something that he probably didn''t intend to say, but accidentally did. "So you are not a body cultivator like I thought you would be, huh?" Alex asked, still with some surprise on his face. "Hmm? A body cultivator? Sorry to say it you kid, but I''m not one of your types. I wouldn''t even know where to begin," Song Zun said. He was very honest about it. "I understood that. I came here expecting to fight a body cultivator. However, I would''ve never in my wildest dreams expected the boss of these forbidden fields to actually be a clone." Chapter 218: Assumptions "Oh, a clone huh? And what made you come to that conclusion?" Song Zun''s face had changed to show a weird emotion when Alex guessed that he was a clone. "You asked if I was a corpse that was strengthened and turned to a clone too, didn''t you? That would mean that you were either one or were currently using one somewhere else. I would go as far as to guarantee that you are actually the one that is the clone" "Which means¡­ your real body is out there somewhere," Alex said with a stunning face. He hadn''t realized what Song Zun being a clone meant before he spoke it out himself. "You¡­ you have a real body somewhere else, and this is just a clone of yours that you made from a dead body. The clones are always supposed to be worse than the original. So, if ¡­ if the body that got to the 3rd spot in alchemy achievements and had immortal grade techniques is a clone then¡­" Alex got serious and looked at him dead in the eyes and asked, "Who are you?" Clap Clap Clap "Bravo little guy. You perfectly figured out everything. Hah, I must be getting old to let slip such an obvious thing, haha. I''m surprised that someone from the Hong Wu sect even knows about clones." "I don''t remember seeing any information about ones in the library. Not to boot, you are a body cultivator, someone impossible to find in the Hong Wu Sect as well," Song Zun said and his face got serious as well. "So, who are you, and why are you trying to get in my way? What? Are you trying to act like a savior so that you won''t have to work hard to get accepted by the people here before you do what you came here to do?" Song Zun asked. Alex was surprised at the conclusion Song Zun came to. ''I can see why he would think that,'' he thought. Song Zun too Alex''s silence as an acceptance of guilt. "Well, I don''t care what you came to do here anyway. At first, I thought you had ruined my chances of doing what I came here to do. But in the end, the exact thing you did send me here, the place I wanted to come to, but didn''t know." "You¡­ wanted to come here?" Alex asked. "To find the yang jades?" "No. I came to find something else. The yang jades were just some interim stuff to get me stronger. Was it not for them, This body would''ve died to your punch just now," Song Zun said with a smile. "You got stronger after using Yang jades? Then, does that mean¡­ you have none of it anymore?" Alex asked in shock. "Hahaha, not anymore. When I first came here, this body was weak. However, thanks to a technique of mine, I managed to use the yang jade to temper this body. It was then that I realized that yang jades were extremely important for my body. So after strengthening a bit, I made everyone gather me some more in exchange for the food." "And now, I''m ready to go venture out into the desert and find what I was looking for," Song Zun said. "Who knows, maybe my body will get stronger under the harsh atmosphere there," he said. "Anyway, why don''t you tell me why you are in the Hong Wu sect? Maybe I can help you," Song Zun asked. "Well, I don''t know what to say. I am a genuine student of the Hong Wu sect," Alex said. "Hahaha, who are you lying to? I know the Hong Wu sect has nothing about clones. If you know about clones so much, then you must''ve learned it somewhere else," Song Zun said. "Yes, I did learn it from the Tiger sect, but I''m still a disciple of the Hong Wu sect," Alex said. "Tiger sect?" Song Zun''s face changed when he heard that. "I see, then you have to die now." "You don''t get to decide that," Alex said as he prepared his common rank sword. Song Zun lunged at him with his bare hands, while Alex swung his sword at him. Song Zun easily knocked the sword out of the way and punched Alex. Alex was using the Elusive Heavenly sword, so he didn''t have to worry about dodging the attacks in close combat. A punch to the left, a kick to the right, an uppercut, a horizontal sword slash. Attacks after attacks were thrown at each other. Alex was too slippery while in close combat, and Song Zun couldn''t land a single hit on him. While, Alex couldn''t do any damage, as Song Zun''s entire body was as strong as armor. ''Sh*t. Is this guy''s skin stronger than my sword?'' Alex thought. Song Zun was stopping every single attack with his arms without fear. Alex swung his sword sideways and tried to hit his chest. Song Zun instead didn''t bother blocking and punched towards Alex''s head. The sword strike landed cleanly at the chest but didn''t do anything to Song Zun. Alex on the other hand easily dodged the punch, making Song Zun hit empty space. "Hehe, you can dodge quite well¡­ not bad. It''s your sword technique, isn''t it? So you must really have been to the Tiger sect. I can''t believe they let you learn one of their techniques," Song Zun said. ''Huh? Does he know about the Elusive Heavenly sword? Or did he just fight with master and knows of this stuff?" Alex wondered. Song Zun was starting to get worried. He couldn''t keep up the fight with a body cultivator he couldn''t hit. If this went on for much longer, he would surely lose. So, he decided to go all out. "So, you aren''t going to back off, are you?" he asked. "No way. Not until I beat you," Alex said readying his sword once again. "Sigh, what sort of hot-headed youth did I stumble upon. I guess you can go die now." Chapter 219: Blade Song Zun started moving his legs a little, jumping ever so slightly each time. Alex was surprised at first since he didn''t know what the opponent was doing, but soon he figured out. " A footwork!" Suddenly, Song Zun disappeared from the spot. Before Alex could even realize where he was, A punch came from the side of his face, barely missing his ears by a few centimeters. Alex immediately stepped to the side and looked back to see a Song Zun taking a deep breath. "Urghh, I haven''t used this technique with this body. I am not used to it," Song Zun said. He took another deep breath and disappeared once more from the spot. Another punch appeared from the side, however, this time it managed to hit Alex straight onto the back of his head. Alex was sent flying to the grasses. "Ah, I missed again. At least my punch did land on you, just not where I wanted it to," Song Zun said and disappeared from the spot. Alex really didn''t know how he was disappearing, but he knew he needed to dodge. So, he hurriedly crouched. A punch passed his head previously was, stopping just a meter ahead of him. Alex saw Song Zun standing in front of him. His legs were trembling beyond crazy. ''He is using something his body can''t handle just to deal with me,'' he thought. He slashed the sword directly at Song Zun''s neck from below, but a casual hand blocked it. "You are¡­ huff¡­ not going to get me¡­ huff¡­ so easily," he said while continuously taking in breaths. ''Sh*t. At this rate, even my movement technique won''t be able to handle this kid. He just won''t take much damage. Unless I get a clean hit on his head and manage to knock him out, I won''t win this fight,'' Song Zun thought. Alex on the other hand rubbed the back of his head. He was still kinda numb from the last attack and didn''t have the time to attend to the pain. He ignored the pain once more and readied himself for another attack. The moment Song Zun disappeared, he moved too. Elusive Heavenly sword had footwork too. It was in a way, a sort of movement technique. But since it didn''t improve a user''s speed, it wasn''t considered one. Still, that was his best bet at the current fight. ''That or if I manage to take out my steel sword. I doubt his skin is tougher than that,'' Alex thought. Song Zun was done taking his breath and once more disappeared. Alex used the Elusive Heavenly sword''s footwork to increase his speed somewhat by taking better steps around the battlefield. He managed to dodge Song Zun''s attack by a hair''s breadth and immediately struck his neck. Song Zun wasn''t hurt, but he was hurled far away. The fight continued for a little longer before both Song Zun and Alex were breathing heavily, neither able to get a hold of the other. "Do you still want to continue, kid?" Song Zun asked. "Yes, I will surely kill you if that''s the last thing I do tonight," Alex said. He immediately launched towards Song Zun and delivered a sword blow to the head, but Song Zun locked the sword with his hands. "This is getting an annoying kid. Neither of us can hurt each other, let''s just go our own way," Song Zun said. Alex didn''t budge however, he continued churning out attack once more, annoying Song Zun even further. His plan was working. "You little sh*t!," Song Zun shouted and started attacking himself. The fight went on for much longer than both of them expected it to. Alex never managed to cut Song Zun and Song Zun never managed to hit Alex''s head like he wanted to. Suddenly, Song Zun disappeared. ''This is it," Alex thought. Instead of moving sideways or backward, or even forwards. Alex jumped up. He used the full strength of whatever remaining ones he could use on his leg and jumped high up. Song Zun appeared where Alex was previously and looked up. Suddenly, a glint of light appeared in the darkness as a sword came flying down at Song Zun from above. Song Zun managed to barely turn his head around and let the sword fly past his head. BANG A rather large noise appeared from the place where the sword struck. Song Zun was sure that he wouldn''t have been hurt from that, but he sure as hell would''ve been dizzy for a long time. "Haha, you missed," He said as he turned around to look at Alex who was still in mid-air. However, before he continued saying anything else, he froze. There was another sword in Alex''s hand. It was already weird enough to see a sword in the forbidden fields, and now there was another one. This new sword looked even better. Its crossguard shone with silver light, the handle had red leather poking out of it, and the blade itself wasn''t like anything Song Zun had ever seen. It was brownish in color and had a noticeable golden hue around it. Alex had used his spiritual sense as a last-ditch effort to take out the steel sword. He had flared his spiritual sea to use all of it just to find the steel sword, but he never got to it. However, he found another sword. A sword that he had never used because of how heavy it was. He had taken out the Ebony Corundum Stiletto. He still couldn''t handle it around or use it like any other normal sword. But what he could do was let it fall by itself, guided by gravity. And that was exactly what Alex let it do. The stiletto fell from the sky making no noise whatsoever and the blade barely shining any light. Song Zun brought up both of his hands to block the attack. However, the moment the blade touched his hands, he realized. He had f*cked up. Chapter 220: Get Over It The brown blade cut into Song Zun''s arms like it was butter. It then went through the side of his shoulders, chest, and leg, chopping the right side of his body clean off. BAM A massive loud sound erupted from where the blade landed. The blade itself was halfway into the earth, only a part of the blade and the remaining part of the sword was up above. The right half of Song Zun''s body dropped to the right as the innards started spilling out from wherever it could. "You¡­" Song Zun was still a little conscious as he spoke a few words in a daze. "You killed this body. I¡­ I worked hard to make this body and you¡­" his eyes could no longer focus as his mind was starting to go blank due to the lack of blood. "I will kill you." He managed to say that just as he fell to the ground. He was dead. Alex breathed deeply. He had never intended to kill him, only incapacitate, and yet¡­ "I killed someone," the realization of what he had just done was coming back to Alex. He had killed many monsters before, but they were just that, monsters. To him, they were like the farm animals back at home. However, a human on the other hand. "Oh no¡­. Oh my god. What have I done?" his face started to drain in color as he slumped to the ground and got face to face with the corpse that had dropped to the ground. The moment he saw that his stomach started churning and everything he had eaten beforehand came out the wrong way. He would vomit for a bit and see the mess he made once again and vomit again. It took him about 4 to 5 vomits to even manage to turn around from the gore in front of him. Both of his swords were right there, but he cared about none of them for now. He ran a little forwards to the grass and fell onto it. He put his hands behind his head tried to forget everything. But that was impossible. He could never forget what he had just seen, what he had just done. The experience remained vivid in his mind as he couldn''t forget anything. He wanted to forget everything, and just go hide inside his mind. He felt like his soul was reaching a breaking point and he would tear it down into different pieces at any moment. Suddenly, he felt someone touch him. It wasn''t a real person, only something he felt in his mind. He imagined himself standing behind him, with a hand on his shoulders, telling him, "It will be fine. You will be fine.". Alex looked back in real life, but obviously, no one was there. "I will be fine?" he thought. He stopped constantly remembering the gore and the event. "He¡­ was a clone. Not a real person," he tried to tell himself. He knew the body belonged to someone else that the man stole and used, so in his head, he knew that it was a real person before this. However, on the outside, he kept telling himself that it was not a real person. It was then he remembered his master''s words. The exact words. "You are young and you are pure-hearted, but that heart will for sure dye in the filth of the world of cultivation. Make sure you never let that filth stick to yourself. You might get drowned in it, but you have to learn to climb over it." "I wish you never have to kill anyone, but I know you will have to, even if it''s just to defend yourself and your loved ones. The only thing I can do is hope is you don''t lose yourself along with your enemies." He remembered those words as clear as if they were said today. "Climb over the filth," he said in a monotone voice. "Don''t lose yourself along with your enemies." His eyes started turning serious. "Don''t lose yourself, Alex. Climb over the filth. Get over it. You will have to deal with stuff much worse than this. You can''t let yourself be devoured by the ones you destroyed," he said with an angry tone. "I am not going to lose myself because of filths like them. There are bigger things in the wait for me. I can''t let these incidents be roadblocks for me. I will NOT let these incidents be a roadblock for me," Alex stood up and turned towards the corpse. He felt his stomach churn, but he held it in. Instead, he walked up to the corpse and reached the Ebony Corundum Stiletto. He needed to get down to the sword to put it inside his storage once more. He was right next to the innards, but he didn''t let it bother him anymore. Once the stiletto was back into the storage bag, he took hold of the second sword. Suddenly, he heard rustling behind him. He immediately turned around, sword at the ready to cut anyone else if necessary. "Woah, brother wait, I¡­" before the person could even finish saying anything, he saw the corpse in the moonlight and immediately went to the side to vomit. More sounds of vomits and general disgusts arose from the surrounding, It seemed many people had come back after the sound of fighting was done. Many people voiced disgust towards the dead body, but there were some who were awed in amazement. These were the people who had actually fought the boss before and got their butts handed to them. They were stunned to see that the boss who had beat them so effortlessly was now dead. Not just lost, dead. This was something these people would''ve never expected. Even the three men who gave Alex the information about Song Zun were amongst the crowd, looking at the scene in disbelief. Alex ignored everyone that was watching, however. Instead, he put his sword behind him once more and walked into the cave. Chapter 221: Gray Alex walked up to the cave and entered. The cave wasn''t as deep as he was expecting. Inside was darker than he expected it to be, and without Qi. His eyes couldn''t view that well Still, with what little light there was, he managed to find outlines of a pile of stuff. He couldn''t tell exactly what they were, so he walked over there to check. He slowly put his hands on them. They were round and juicy, just as one would expect them to be. "So he stored quite a few of them here as well, huh," Alex thought as he picked one of them and took a bite of it. Sweet juices flowed out of the Butterfly Pears and entered his body. His numbed body got a bit better as the energy from the fruits healed him a bit. He ate a few more as he was extremely hungry after the battle and moved further into the cave to look at the thing he was most curious about. There were a bunch of stones, laid all around the cave and interesting-looking art was drawn on the ground. "What''s that?" Alex went around looking at what the drawing was of. He moved around the small pieces of stones all over the place. The more he cleared the stones, the more the art became clear. When he finally swiped away the last stone with his feet, he finally saw what it was. It was no art at all. It was actually a formation drawn on the ground itself. Alex was shocked. He could feel a small force pushing on him, something other than the suppressing force from outside. "What? How is this formation working? You need at least an energy source for a formation to work," he said. He didn''t know a lot about formations, but he knew at least this much. Even the sect running formation could only work because it took energy from the spirit veins on the sect ground. But there was none of that here. "How the hell is this formation working without any source of energ¡ª " he realized what he had missed. He immediately lowered himself and picked one of the stones he had moved aside because it was blocking him. In the darkness, he couldn''t see the color, but he could see the shape and size of the stone. They were all small stones, rectangular in shape. Alex knew exactly what it was. It was in fact what he had been looking for in the first place. They were all Yang Jades. "But all the energy is gone. He used them to power the formation and make himself stronger," Alex said, dejectedly. He looked through the rest of it, but he didn''t have to do it. If his body didn''t tell him there was any, then there was no way there was any. "Sigh, guess I was expecting too much," he said. His disappointment was immeasurable right now. He decided to forget about it and walked outside. The moment he was at the opening of the cave, he saw a bunch of people standing a little outside it. There were signs of dawn approaching in the sky. "He-hello brother, are¡ª are you our new boss?" a girl asked. "Boss? No, I''m no such thing," he said. "But¡ª but then who will bring us the fruit now? You killed our only source of the fruits," the man standing next to her asked. Alex was surprised. He had helped them by taking out their oppressor, even nearly ruining himself in the process and the first thing they did was tell him their selfish wishes. ''I see¡­ master was right about these guys. They are selfish, jealous, envious, the filth that knows nothing but to think about themselves,'' Alex thought. "What the hell are you saying?" someone screamed from the side. "He helped us by getting rid of that demon and instead of thanking him, you blame him for your own incompetence?" "Yeah! Brother, thank you for getting rid of the boss. He was the worst thing to come out of our sect in years. Please tell me your name brother, I will leave this place in 3 days, I will tell the Elders to lessen your punishment," someone else said. "Brother, you must be tired from the fight. Come, I will give you a massage," another man in the back spoke. The light of dawn shone through the clouds as Alex''s views of the surrounding started to change once more. ''Of course. Not everyone is bad. But not everyone is good either. I will need to judge each person on their own. I see this will be a good lesson for me,'' he thought. "Anyone with ability in your body, go call everyone here. There is more than enough food for you here," Alex shouted. Immediately, people started scattering to tell the others about the death of the boss and the free food available in the place. Soon there were at least 50 people in the group. Alex was truly surprised at how many people were actually being punished. He called a few people to carry the fruits back out and distribute them to the rest of the disciples there. Once he made sure everyone was fed, he left the group. People wanted to stick with him, but he ran away fast and found an open, quiet place in the grasses. He sat on the grasses and felt them. Not a single hit of dew. "This place is really strange," he thought. His only purpose in coming here was gone now. There were no more yang jades here. "Wait, what did he say about the desert? He said that yang jade was just an interim solution before going to find whatever was there," Alex thought as he turned around to look towards the direction of the desert. He tried to think of what to do, but too many things had happened today and he couldn''t focus his mind at all. "Sigh, I will think about it later," he said and logged out of the game. Chapter 222: Human Alex didn''t log back into the game that day. He woke up, ate some breakfast, studied a bit, helped prepare lunch, ate it and went to school. Once more it was with Sarah and Emily. These 4 were now very close friends. "Urghh¡­ I can''t wait for saturday. Oh god, it must be so fun in the capsule," Sarah said. "I''m highly anticipating it as well," Hannah said. Alex didn''t listen to any of their talk. He was so out of it today that he didn''t even remember half the thing that happened today. Emily seemed to be curious as well as to why he was so distant today, but she couldn''t bring herself to ask anything. In the end, they went to their respective classes and didn''t get to say anything. On the way home, Sarah seemed to not have classes on thursdays, so she took them both back home. Alex ate some snacks and went back to his room. He wanted to go back into the game, but just couldn''t motivate himself to touch the helmet on the bed. So instead, he took out his laptop and went online. He went to a video sharing site to watch something, anything, but there was nothing of interest there. He then came upon a video and was shocked at the sheer number of clicks on it. The video of his cousin speaking about the body she got in Eternal Cultivation, and it had gotten nearly 200 million views. For a world with less than a billion people, 200 million views were more than good enough. That was enough to show the true reach of Eternal Cultivation in the real world. However, he was surprised that the video wasn''t popular because of the content, but rather the unfairness behind it. There were people who wanted to hate on his cousin and Eternal Cultivation all because his sister got lucky. He clicked on these people''s profiles and saw that they had left some beautiful messages on other videos for other peoples. These people knew nothing about the other people, yet they showed their hate and love just as openly. Once again, Alex saw the two sides of people. People were quick to hate on something completely unrelated to them. Even when new information was being given out, people focused on what they personally did not get. However, there were also people who were good. Whether there was a reason or not, they were all sending out positivity towards the ones they didn''t even know. ''It seems it is the same inside and outside of the game, huh,'' he thought. ''Good or bad, you can''t tell something about a person without getting to know them.'' He felt a little better about himself. The guilt of killing someone was very low for Alex since he knew there were others that were helped due to what he did and were in fell support of him. He didn''t know if they hated him inside or not, but that didn''t matter. What mattered is that he now knew not to after a single interaction. He looked through more of the videos and ate his dinner. Only then at dinner did he finally returned back to his room. He really wanted to play by now. So, he put on the helmet and got into the game. "AH, goddammit, why does it prick so much?" Alex thought as pulled whatever was behind him on the floor. It was his normal sword. He had been in a hurry to leave, so he had slept on top of it. He sighed and put the sword aside to think of something to do. He looked in two direction, one was the direction to the south of him, towards the top of the cliff. He could go and tell the elders about the happenings here and they could probably take the disciples back and give them another punishment fitting their crime. The other direction was to the north of him. It was the desert he had heard so much about and wanted to visit so much. He was really interested in going there, but that would mean he needed to let the people suffer for a little longer. ''Sigh, what should I do?" he thought. He thought for a few seconds as to what exactly he wanted and needed more. In the end, he just shook his head. "Humans really do all have the same duality. Wanting to help to do good, and wanting to leave for the desert and leave people to starve. There is an obvious answer that anyone not selfish could choose in a heartbeat. And¡­ hehehe¡­ sigh,I am a human after all," he said as he ridiculed himself with laughter and got up. He then started walking straight towards the river to go to the desert. He was being a human and taking the selfish choice. He stood up and walked towards the river in this pale moonlight. With a sword in his hands, he didn''t worry about any monster in the area. The river was about 20 meters wide, and monsters easily hid there. This was a dangerous place. "Can I jump across 20 meters?" he wondered. He had checked his strength with his physical body but never did any other forms of tests with it. ''Maybe it can work?'' he thought. He wouldn''t know until he jumped across. He walked back to create some runway to launch himself off of one bank of the river to the other. With a deep breath, he held his sword on this right hand and ran. He could clearly feel himself slower than when his Qi was working, but those were unfair to be compared. He ran in the fastest speed he possibly could. At the end of the bank, he launched himself up and leaped. The speed was amazing enough that he didn''t fall into the river and would easily cross the river. However, on the other side of the river, a centipede appeared. And it was ready to attack him any chance it got. Chapter 223: Desert Alex grabbed hold of his sword midair and pulled it out from behind him. In a single sweep, the sword hit the centipede square in the head. He didn''t manage to cut it open, but the force alone was enough to break it open. Alex landed with a thump and roles over a few times to stop himself. He immediately turned around to attack the centipede again, but it was dead. He took a deep breath and calmed himself. He wasn''t expecting a monster to appear out of nowhere here. "Damn, isn''t there a ton more monster around this place?" he thought. He had to be careful now. He felt the heat radiating from the ground and was surprised just how hot the ground still was. He leaned down to grab a handful of the sand and felt it. It was way hotter than he was expecting it to be. He let it fall from his hands and watched just how fine it was. Riverbanks had sand too in the real world, but they were nothing like this. The sands outside were mostly white in color and were usually wet and lumpy from being around the rivers. This, however, was yellow in color and very, very dry. Even just a few meters away from the river, it was no humidity in it. He felt it a bit more and said, "It''s so coarse and rough." He looked around the desert; It was everywhere. He was baffled by just how much sand there was in this place, and even more so baffled by just how large the land itself was. As far as his eyes could see, there was nothing but desert. "I''m going to get dehydrated at this rate,'' he thought and went to the river to drink some more water before leaving the place. He didn''t know where he had to go in this vast desert, so he randomly chose a direction and walked forward. Along the way, he made sure to drag his feet or sword and make a marking wherever he went. He wanted to find his way back in case he reached a place from where he couldn''t see the cliff side anymore and needed to come back. The dire direction he chose to go was in a small angle from the river such that the further he traveled, the further he would get from the river. Still, he didn''t wish to go very far away as he didn''t know exactly what monsters there were in the desert. Just the ones on the river shores were skin tempering and muscle tempering equivalent. If he went in and found some bone tempering equivalent monsters, then he would have a hard time fighting them. If he found some organ tempering equivalent monsters, then he would be as good as dead. A lizard monster appeared a few minutes after he started walking, so Alex killed it without hesitation. A few minutes later, another centipede appeared. Alex had no problem dealing with that as well. However, he was a little slower in killing this monster. He went further and killed more monsters. Within the next hour, he had killed over 15 different monsters in the desert. They were all the same speed and strength as any other monsters he had fought till now. But he realized that killing them was taking longer than usual. That was all because of the pressure he was feeling. The same pressure that suppressed his Qi and spiritual sense, was now starting to suppress his body too. It was very little suppression when compared to the one he got for Qi and spiritual sense, but it was still there. He could clearly feel the slight pressure all over him. And it got worse as he walked forward. A snake monster slithered towards him from underneath the sand. Alex could clearly see the undulations on the ground and got ready. As usual, just as it was near him, the snake monster jumped out of the sand and tried to bite and eat him. Alex sidestepped the attack and prepared his sword. As soon as he saw the exposed neck of the snake, he hacked at it. BANG A large sound appeared as the sword dug deep into the snake''s body, but the snake didn''t die. The wound wasn''t enough to cause severe harm to the snake, and could only harm him. The snake launched an attack with its tail and managed to hit Alex. Alex immediately grabbed the snake''s tail in hope of not being thrown away. The snake shook its tail around, in hopes of making him let go, but it couldn''t. In the end, Alex took the opportunity to leave the tail and run right at the snake. The sands made it hard to run, but he still managed to reach it in time. The snake was once again bringing back its tail around to hit him, but before it could even do anything, Alex slashed it one more time, with extra power this time, and managed to fully hack through the snake''s already half cut neck. He took a few minutes for a breather and thought to himself, "The monsters are getting stronger and stronger. Thankfully, the pressure is stopping them from becoming strong as well. Still, their defense is unaffected." He looked at his sword that was starting to get dull and thought, "will this even be useful anymore?" After killing the monster, he walked forward until he felt like he wasn''t going anywhere. He could still easily see the cliffs and knew that if he were to walk for a few minutes, he would reach the riverside. "I do have to walk towards the north if I want to get anywhere. However, that would mean getting attacked by the monsters that are much stronger than the snake just now. Can I even do that?" he thought. He deliberated for a while and in the end decided to walk towards the north direction, directed away from the cliffside. If anything dangerous came up, he thought he could just run away. Chapter 224: Return The feeling had returned. Alex had barely walked 10 minutes north in this treacherous desert, and he was already finding a new yang jade. He got happy and sped up the pace. A new monster came towards him, with the intention of killing him, but he didn''t care. Monsters were very normal for him now and he could kill them easily. However, that did not mean that it was a swift process. Due to the increased pressure on his body, fighting the monster was more taxing than usual. "At some point, I won''t be able to fight at all," he thought. He was already second thinking about his decision to walk directly up north as more monsters were showing up. Still, the feeling of being near a yang jade was too enticing, so he didn''t go back. He finally arrived at the place that contained the yang jade. It was a simple land, filled with sand everywhere like any other place in the desert. His body was telling him it was right there, but he couldn''t see any. "Sh*t, is it buried?" he thought. He started moving away from the sand from the place he sensed the yang jade from. However, the sand would slide down from the pile he made, filling the hole again. It was slowing down his progress a lot. He hadn''t interacted with sand before and was really annoyed by what was happening. In the end, he started using more force to throw the sand further away such that it didn''t go back into the hole he made. After 10 minutes, he finally made a meter deep hole and jammed his arm through the rest. When he pulled his hands back out, he was holding a yang jade. It was the second yang jade he had found after coming to the Forbidden Fields. He looked at the stone in his hands and sighed in relief. "It''s not a waste of time if I got at least 2 right?" he thought. He was breathing heavily now as the pressure from the surrounding was making him feel as though he really was nothing but a mortal. His super-human abilities from being a body cultivator were questionable at best right now. He took out his sword and looked at it. The metal sword no longer had the same edge as it did when he first got it and was full of dents and chips on it. "Even my sword is almost as destroyed as I feel," he said. He used his spiritual sense and barely managed to send the yang jade into his storage bag. The pressure was starting to catch up to his spiritual sense too. "Damn, should I even go on anymore?" he thought. However, a familiar feeling arose inside of him. There was another yang jade nearby. After a while of deliberation, he went to find that one as well. He fought another few monsters and managed to defeat them. However, the sword was getting more and more tattered and he didn''t know how much longer it could hold on. He didn''t know how much longer he himself could hold on. However, there was one good outcome from all of this happening. Just like all the monsters in the desert, his body was getting stronger as well. It was very slow and annoying, but he was cultivating his body right now. The pressure was making him cultivate his body. It didn''t have the same efficiency as his body cultivation with Pearl, and he doubted that anyone could start body cultivating here just like that without at least having a muscle tempering body. But, if one did have that, they could do it. Alex could sense one more yang jade a little further away. He didn''t want to go there, but it was close enough that he didn''t care about the dangers. He walked towards it and slowly felt that the feeling wasn''t getting stronger at all, no matter how close he got to it. The yang jade was right in front of him now and he still didn''t have an increased feeling of wanting it. The pressure was crashing on him harder than ever, but that was not what was causing this loss of want for the yang jade. No, it was actually another feeling of want coming deep inside from him. This one was similar to how he felt around yang jades but far stronger than any. He could tell that it was somewhere far away in the north, and even then¡­ the feeling of wanting it was much stronger than the yang jade right in front of him. "Just what is there?" he thought in awe as he looked to the north. It was around 1 am at night, and he couldn''t see clearly, but he was sure he could see nothing in that direction even if he wasn''t suppressed all around right now. He picked up the yang jade and unconsciously started walking forward, but then he stopped. "What am I doing?" he thought. He shook himself out of the intense want his body was making him feel, and started walking back in fear. "What the hell is there that is making me do things against my will?" he spoke in fear. He immediately turned around and started running in the opposite direction. Once he was sufficiently far away and could barely feel it anymore, he stopped. The previous time he was here, the yang jades were masking its location, but now without the yang jades, he could feel the small sense of desire his body was giving off. He could tell that whatever was there in the north was very good for him, but right now, it was very dangerous for him. "I can''t go there right now. I get suppressed the closer I get to the north and at some point, I will end up having to find a monster and d¡ª " Suddenly, he heard movements in the sand and looked back. Behind him were two pitch-black scorpions standing side by side. They had found themselves a meal. Chapter 225: Run Alex got a little scared. He didn''t think he could fight scorpions right now. His body was still suppressed quite a bit by the pressure and his sword was nearly useless. Fighting any monster right now was difficult for him. Fighting 2 monsters at the same time were completely suicidal. There was only one thing that Alex could do right now, and he did exactly that. He ran. He ran away from the scorpions and maneuvered his direction towards the river. However, the pressure in the area was stopping him from showing off his best physical ability, and running in the sand wasn''t exactly the easiest thing to do. As such, his overall speed at running was very weak. The scorpions didn''t stand there either. The moment they saw Alex run, they followed him as well. They were used to the pressure and their exoskeleton was strong enough to handle it right now. And they didn''t have a problem running in the sand as Alex did. So, even if they weren''t exactly the fastest thing in the desert, they were fast enough to keep up with Alex. They were actually much faster than him and were going to catch up sooner than later. Alex put all of his hope right now on the fact that the pressure would lower once he ran further south and he wouldn''t have to worry about his body functioning at a lower rate than usual. However, in his terrified state, he forgot to realize that the same thing applied to the scorpions as well. The further away they went, the faster they were becoming. And soon, one of them caught up to Alex. It brought forth its pincers to grab at his legs, but Alex jumped up and dodged it. However, because of that, he rolled forward and came to a stop. He had now stopped and both of the scorpions were upon him. "Sh*t, " he thought. He couldn''t run away anymore, so he took his sword and got ready to fight. He had one weapon, fighting against their 6, he had to be very careful now. "That venom will be dangerous," he thought. He didn''t want to die in a place like this, especially not from a scorpion sting. His eyes flickered side to side as he looked at both of the scorpions. Suddenly, the second scorpion moved forth and tried to snap at him with its pincers. Alex dodged the pincers and swung his sword at its overextended hands. The sword was nearly at the hand when the scorpion''s tail came right at him. Alex had to stop his movement mid-attack and return the sword back to stop the stinger. He barely managed to change its direction so that it hit the ground and not him. He stopped breathing for a moment to let the venom''s smell go away from the air. He immediately turned his sword around once more and swung at the overextended tail. It was a clean sweep, but he managed to cut only half of it. "Their body is too strong," he thought. He immediately ducked as a pincher grab went just past where his head previously was. After that, Alex rolled to the side to dodge the tail. He had been keeping an eye on the second scorpion, and when it did, he managed to dodge it quite easily. He was about to go attack the overextended tails once more, but the other scorpion came running at him. It immediately jumped into the air, shocking Alex. When it landed, it was on top of Alex and was attacking him with its pincers. Alex jumped and rolled to the side, dodging the scorpion. Immediately, he ran back and attacked the scorpion''s tail once more. This time, it came completely off. However, at the same time, the pincers came towards Alex''s torso. Alex swiftly returned the sword back to the scorpion in a uniform motion and tried to attack its hands. However, Alex made a mistake. He didn''t think before he attacked and instead hit the pincers instead of the arms. CRACK A massive snap sounded out in the surroundings as Alex''s sword snapped in two at the base. He didn''t even manage to get a single scratch on the pincer and yet his sword was now in 2 half. There wasn''t even half a sword attached at the handle he could use to fight with. "Sh*t," he cursed at the situation. He jumped back to dodge the next pincer that was next to him. But then, the other scorpion had made its way here too. So he dodged once more. They were relentless in their attacks and weren''t giving him much room to fight with. He desperately wanted to use the escape technique he had learned, but without Qi it was useless. "I can''t do this anymore. Running away is not the option," he thought. It was time to properly fight back. The scorpions were already attacking him. His Elusive Heavenly Sword''s footwork was pretty good, but he couldn''t use it as well in the sand. So, his dodging ability had also gone down. So, he decided to care about the one with the tail more than the one without it. Their pincers were way slower compared to their tails so the tail was what he was worried about. The scorpions snapped at him once again and attacked him. Alex didn''t dodge. Instead, he jumped over the skeleton and landed on it. It was the one without the tail so he had no worries. The scorpion wiggled its half tail around and tried to hit Alex, but it couldn''t reach him. He started punching the back of the scorpion while constantly taunting the other one. The other scorpion came rushing at him and tried to snip at him. Alex easily dodged the pincers and continued attacking the scorpion he was on. It was trying to wiggle itself to throw Alex from its back but it couldn''t. Alex was firmly grabbing onto its back with one hand while punching down with the second. The scorpion was now half dead. Chapter 226: Victory The other scorpion tried to use its pincers once more, but Alex could easily dodge it. In anger, it used its tail to attack Alex. Alex jumped out of the way and landed on the sand. He immediately turned around to see that exactly what he wanted to achieve had happened. The scorpion with the tail had pierced the other scorpion''s back with the stinger. It was now dead. Finally, there was only one enemy left. Alex was tired, but now was not the time to rest. He stood up and looked towards the scorpion. It was now time to fight it. Alex remembered the first time he had fought the scorpion a day ago. He had used the stinger to kill that one, so he wanted to kill this one the same way as well. He ran forward. The scorpion too came running at him, blood dripping on its back from its tail; blood that belonged to the other scorpion. The pincers came as expected and Alex managed to dodge it in time. As expected, the tail came down too. Alex easily dodged it and jumped onto the scorpion''s body, expecting to rip off its tail. He grabbed it with his arms and pulled it. However, no matter how much he tried, he couldn''t rip it off. "Damn, this is way harder than the one back in the river. Just how strong are the ones in the desert?" he thought. Unable to do what he wanted, he punched and kicked the scorpion a few times and tried to jump off. Suddenly, the scorpion turned around at a terrifying speed and grabbed his left arm. It tried to snap it, but the most it could do it crush it. Still, that was enough. "ARGHHH," he screamed as intense pain ran inside him from the multitudes of broken bones. The scorpion didn''t let go of the arm and brought around another pincer to grab his right arm. CRACK His right arm was gone too. The pain was equally as intense, forcing Alex to cry out as loud as he could. He tried to pull out his arms, but they were firmly in the scorpion''s pincers. It was now holding on to him. Suddenly, it attacked him with its tails. Alex managed to barely move away from his head enough so that the stinger barely went past his head. This time, however, he couldn''t hold his breath as the pain was too intense and he had to cry out. His mind was starting to go numb from the scent of venom. It wasn''t enough to kill him or even harm him, but it was making his mind dull and lazy. "That''s¡­ bad¡­" he barely managed to think, when suddenly, he heard a bunch of notifications. His mind went back to being as sharp as ever, as all the venom from his body was destroyed by his body. He didn''t think about the notifications for now, and instead, used his legs to hit the scorpion''s head as hard as he could. Usually, the head was protected by the pincers, but now the pincers were in use. It tried to pull back its pincers while still grabbing Alex''s hands, but couldn''t as Alex was equally as strong. Instead, Alex pulled his on its pincers with his own broken arms. And then, BAM He hit its head with his legs as hard as he could. The scorpion tried to hit him with its tail, but he could dodge that easily. He hit his head as hard as he could while dodging the tails. The scorpion''s head was starting to bleed a little now. Finally, the scorpion let go of his arms to protect itself, but just then, Alex caught it. He was the one now pulling on the pincers while continuously attacking its head. Finally, the scorpion started to lose consciousness from all the damage its head was taking and stopped fighting. Soon, it had fainted. Alex didn''t stop, however. Now that there was no threat of the tail attacking him, he kept on hitting its head until it was completely destroyed. The scorpion was dead. He finally slumped onto the ground and cried out in agony as he finally felt all the stress and pain hit him altogether. He slowly lifted his arms to see that around the wrist area, they were completely swollen. Both of his arms were blue and black, and it hurt like hell. He needed to find a fruit to eat to heal himself a little or just directly go to the sect. After a while, the pain subsided and he could no longer use his arm. If he were to come across some monster here, it would be bad. He stood up and looked around. He found his broken blade a little further away, so he walked towards it. It was beyond usable now. He sighed and just left it there. It had helped him as much as it could. He silently and carefully made his way back towards the river. Along the way, he met a few monsters, but thankfully, they were weak enough that he didn''t need to use his hands to kill them. Finally, he reached the shore. He needed to jump once more. He didn''t know if he could do it without his arms or not, but he tried. He walked a little back to make some runway and ran as fast as he could. In a single leap, he flew high into the air and went past the shore on the other side, landing on the grasses. There were no monsters on this side like last time when he jumped to find the centipede. "Thank god," he said in relief. He rested for a few minutes there to let his throbbing arm stop hurting. Then, he went to the river and drank some water. Afterward, he turned around and walked towards the cliff, back to the sect. Chapter 227: Okay Alex was walking up the cliff with both of his hands inside his tattered robes. It was still nighttime, however, dawn was soon approaching. Alex looked along the side of the cliff and saw nobody. ''Everyone must be sleeping peacefully now that they didn''t have to worry about food and water anymore,'' he thought. The walk uphill was steep, but it wasn''t a problem to Alex. There was a lingering pressure around him as he walked upwards that was slowly leaving him and his cultivation base was starting to return. Soon, his body was invigorated by the yang qi being released from the meridians and the pain and fatigue in his body slowly subsided. Soon, the pressure stopped affecting him and his entire cultivation base came back to full. The first thing Alex did was looking into his storage bags and find a healing pill. He didn''t hesitate at all as he took out one of the true pills his master had given him when he left for the Tiger sect. Without even checking what pill it was, he ate it. A wave of energy passed along his body as it found its way to his arms. A little energy was spent away when it reached the tattoo on his arm, but most of it still went to the broken bones and torn muscles. Slowly, his arms were healed and were back to normal. Then, he got a set of information. <'' Body Restructure Pill''s energy aligns with your spiritual root> "Ahh, finally," he said as his hands stopped hurting. He put his yang stones into his storage bag and reached the cave on the cliff. The two elders were slacking around as there wasn''t anything to do. As soon as they saw someone approaching, they focused back on their work. But when they saw that it was Alex, they lost their guards. "Is it time for you to leave, disciple?" the elder on the right asked. "Yes, Elder," Alex said. "Very well, let us call someone to take you back," he said. "No need elder, I will call someone myself," he said as he took out the communication talisman and called his master. Her first reply was her telling him to just come directly to her, but once he explained that it had to do with the sect and the disciples down at the forbidden fields, she couldn''t stay back. From up above the cliffs themselves, she came down flying. The elders were a little surprised to see that Alex had called the sect leader herself, but said nothing as they knew their relationship. She looked at his tattered robes and asked worriedly, "Are you okay? Do you need pills?" Alex felt warm in his heart hearing that. "No, Master, I''m fine. I called you to talk about the other disciples in the Forbidden Fields," he said. "What about them?" Ma Rong asked. Alex explained everything exactly as he had heard from the 3 disciples and later from Song Zun himself. He let her know that Song Zun was actually a clone of someone that entered the Hong Wu sect in search of something, and that something was in the Forbidden fields. Ma Rong listened in shock as she heard how the different disciples had come to be used by Song Zun to look for Yang Jade and in the end, how Alex killed him. Her eyes went wide when she heard this. Even the elders beside her were shocked to hear that someone fought in the forbidden fields and actually managed to kill the other person. "Are you¡­ really okay?" Ma Rong asked softly. Alex gave a soft smile and said, "Yes, master. I''m fine. I didn''t let it drag me down." "Good, Good. Come, let me take you back. Let the elders here take care of the other disciples," Ma Rong said. "Okay, master," he said. "I will send a few elders here, make sure you get all the disciples out. If every single one of them were to die of hunger now, that wouldn''t be fair to them. Their crime isn''t worthy of death," she said. "Yes, Sect Leader," the elders said. "Come, let''s go," Ma Rong said as she wrapped him with her Qi to pull him up. "It''s okay, Master. I can fly on my own," he said as wrapped his body with it himself. After not using Qi for 3 days, it felt like a dam had been opened as it all came flooding out. Soon, he was hovering in the air, and both master and disciple were flying away. The Elders were shocked to see a disciple actually being able to fly. "No wonder sect master took him as her disciple, he is so talented," one of them commented. They waited for more elders to arrive and once they did, they went down to the forbidden fields to call them back. Alex was surprised to finally see the back of the sect leader''s mountain. He had never been on this side of the mountain. It turned out, the back of the Sect Leader''s mountain was actually part of the cliffs in the forbidden fields. Finally, Ma Rong reached her home and flew down and so did Alex. "Come in, tell me more about what transpired in there. I want to hear everything," she said. Alex nodded and walked in. Back at the cave opening, he had only given them a general story about what happened, but in here, he told her everything. He told her about the first day and how nothing happened, aside from the fact that a disciple tried to kill him, so he broke all of his arms. Then about the second day and his meeting with the boss, Song Zun, and how he managed to kill him thanks to being able to use his spiritual sense for a few seconds. "That bastard! I should''ve just crippled his cultivation like I originally wanted to. instead, I cared about what the other elders would say and just threw him in there for 2 months," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded and finally, but reluctantly, explained to her about his adventure on the other side of the river. This had truly shocked Ma Rong to her core. Chapter 228: Approaching Danger? "You went to the other side of the river? You were supposed to only stay on this side of the river. Did Lang Shun not explain how dangerous the other side was for the mortals like us?" Ma Rong started scolding him, rightfully so. "But master, I am a body cultivator. So it was mostly fine going to the other side. As long as I didn''t go very far away, the monsters wouldn''t be very strong," Alex explained. "Still, the desert is an unknown ground, we don''t know what lies over there," Ma Rong said. "You were supposed to stay on this side of the river because there were no monsters here. Why would you go looking for monsters on your own?" Alex was a little surprised at this question, and a little confused too. "I remember both you and martial uncle telling me that the monsters were on the other side of the river, but that''s not true." "I fought plenty of monsters on this side of the river too. I even found a few corpses on this side of the river. Going to the river itself was very dangerous," Alex said. "What? No¡­ that can''t be. The monsters have always stayed on the other side of the river. That has been the case for the last few years I have been a sect leader," Ma Rong said. "Oh¡­ what about before that?" Alex asked. "I don''t know. Not many people from the previous era are still active right now. The only one who is would be¡­" Ma Rong stopped talking and instantly took out her communication talisman and called someone. Soon, she got an answer back, and her eyes started getting wide. "Even beyond the river¡­ there was grassland before," Ma Rong said in shock. "What?" Alex was surprised too. He was expecting to hear if there were monsters on the other side, but the answer he got was different. ''What does that mean?'' he couldn''t help but think. "It can only mean that whatever is stopping the monsters from leaving is weakening. But that would mean that monsters could leave far away and there weren''t any beyond the river banks right?" Ma Rong asked. "Yes," Alex said. "Then it can only mean that the monsters don''t live on the other side because they are being stopped from leaving. It means that they don''t choose to leave it. Which would tell us that¡­ whatever is making them stay on the other side of the river, and is turning the entire land to the desert is growing." "In other words, soon, the forbidden fields will also become desert. After that¡­ the sect," Ma Rong''s eyes were beyond wide after realizing what information her disciple had brought back. "Does that mean our sect is in danger?" Alex asked. "Possibly. But not right now. You shouldn''t worry about it unless you plan to become the sect leader," Ma Rong said. "No, no. I don''t want to become something like that," Alex said while shaking his head. "Something like that? You think being a sect leader is bad?" Ma Rong asked with a smile. "Oh no master, I think it''s wonderful. I just don''t see myself as one," Alex said. "Alright, alright. You brought back useful information, so I won''t punish you for not obeying what I said. So, you said Song Zun used all the yang jades to strengthen his body?" Ma Rong asked. "Yes. He made some sort of formation to use yang jade as a power source and tempered his body," Alex said. "Are you sure about that? Do you know much about formations?" Ma Rong asked. "Uhh¡­ not really, but I learned a few things about them in Tiger sect, and I do know it needs a power source to run, and he didn''t have one," Alex said. "Do you know what formation it is?" Ma Rong asked. "Hmm¡­ no. I know around 20 formations, but that blueprint matches none of them," Alex said. "Alright, draw me the formation. We can ask the experts in the Cardinal city when we go are there tomorrow," Ma Rong said. "Oh, we are leaving for the capital tomorrow?" he asked in surprise. "No. We are leaving for the capital in a few hours. We will be reaching there by tomorrow," Ma Rong said. "Oh, it takes that long?" he asked in surprise. He had been on bullet trains and those took a few houses to cross hundreds of kilometers. If it took nearly a day to reach there even with the speed his master had taken him then¡­ "Just how far is the Cardinal City?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ I don''t think it''s been measured yet, but it should be something like 10,000 kilometers," Ma Rong said without any amazement at that number. Alex however was shocked. ''Woah, 10,000 kilometers? At that much distance, I could go back and forth from home to Oakleaf City around 12 times,'' he thought. That was truly a long distance for him. "Are you surprised at that distance?" Ma Rong asked. "Yeah. I don''t think of distances like that ever," he said truthfully. "What the hell? Why are you acting like that from just 10,000 kilometers? What will you do if you learned the true size of the crimson empire?" Ma Rong said with a snort. "True size of the Crimson empire?" Alex asked curiously. "It''s somewhere between 50 thousand and 70 thousand kilometers in length. And something like 20 to 1000 kilometers in width," she said. "Woah, so long. But not very wide. Why is that so master?" he asked. "It''s all because of the Southern forest. Someplace like Scarlet city, it only allows a single piece of land to existing, while in some pace, there could be over 20 cities in a row width-wise. So, its not the same distance everywhere," Ma Rong said. "Anyway, enough about the distances. You went to get yang jades for yourself right? You said it helps you? Show me if you got any." Chapter 229: One after another "Oh right," Alex said as he took out 4 very yellow yang jades from his storage bag. "I managed to get 4. 1 was from a snake''s stomach, the other 3 were in the desert. Song Zun had managed to make the disciples find all the other ones by himself," he said. "I see, and they are full of yang energy too. So much that I kind of feel uncomfortable around it. Anyway, how do you use it again?" Ma Rong asked. "Like this." Alex took one of the yang jades and put it in his mouth. Ma Rong immediately started shouting with her eyes wide open, but it was already too late. He had swallowed it. The already hot and vigorous Yang Qi in his body started to feel more hot and vigorous. The pain was nowhere as intense as he had remembered it. Maybe he was used to being in pain, or maybe his body was strong enough that this little pain was nothing for him. Either way, he was now perfectly fine even while ingesting a yang jade that completely burned his insides. "Are¡­ are you okay?"Ma Rong asked with fear in her eyes. "Of course, master. Don''t worry, I know what I''m doing," he said as he took another yang jade and devoured it. And again. ...¡­. And again. ...¡­. Finally, he was out of yang jades. He looked up to see Ma Rong''s shocked face looking at him like she had just seen a ghost. "How did you eat that many stones and survive?" Ma Rong asked. "I don''t know master. I could always do this from the first day I joined the sect," Alex said. "You¡­ you¡ª is anything different now then?" Ma Rong asked. "Different huh?" he thought as he tried to feel his own Qi. It was beyond vigorous now and it felt really dense and viscous now. He Qi had condensed about 40% once more and could thus hold onto a lot more of Qi in general. Their strength, however, didn''t seem to increase all that much. Aside from the first yang jade he ingested, the following once had only benefited him in condensing the Qi, and not really in increasing damage of his skills, however. ''It didn''t even go up a realm in strength from what I can feel it,'' he thought. "My Qi is a lot denser now, so I can probably fly much easier now and use Qi manipulation more effectively. Hmm¡­ feels like the cultivation base is the best it can be at this level," he said and opened up the status page. Then, he hit [Breakthrough] Immediately, he jumped from Organ Tempering 4th realm to Organ Tempering 5th realm. He had been in the realm for a while now, so he felt it was right to increase it now. Ma Rong was surprised at the random breakthrough no matter how many times she saw it. "At some point in the future, you are going to give me a heart attack, I swear," she said. "Alright, go and rest or maybe try to stabilize your cultivation base. After that, be ready to leave at 8. I will come to get you," Ma Rong said. "Yes, master," he said and left her house. His master was trying her hardest to not show it, but she really was worrying a lot today. Her precious disciple had to kill someone, Someone had infiltrated her sect for some reason, the forbidden fields were increasing in size. Then there was the fact that she had to now take disciples to the annual sect competition and also make sure to get good points in the competitions to become a 1st-grade sect. Alex didn''t realize exactly what it must be like having so many burdens on oneself, but he promised himself to help her relieve a bit of it. He couldn''t stop the forbidden fields from increasing in size. He couldn''t stop the person behind Song Zun from infiltrating. He couldn''t stop her from worrying about the different disciples that would be at the capital city. What he could do was show her that killing someone hadn''t changed him for the worse but instead made him better, and he could help the sect win a lot of points at the competition. Sun was up the horizon and Alex went inside his home. He realized that he was still in the tattered robes and full of sand everywhere. So he took off his clothes and jumped into the pond inside the courtyard. "Ahh, this feels so good," he said. "Ah right, come out Pearl," he said as he called Pearl in a flash of white light. Pearl appeared for a moment before disappearing from view as he fell underwater. Alex used Qi manipulation to carry him out and gave him a good bath too, despite his constant disapproval. After taking a bath for what felt like forever, Alex got out and changed his clothes to the Core disciple''s robe that he was given after becoming one. Not sure when exactly they were to leave, Alex decided to log out and have some breakfast. Chapter 230: Gathering Early morning, Alex got out of his room and made his way to the kitchen. Hannah was probably still in-game, so he didn''t bother preparing anything for her. It was too early after all. Once he was done, he left her a note at the dinner table saying that it was Friday and he didn''t have any classes, do he would eat later whenever he could. Once that was set, he went back to his room and logged back in. It was still a while before he would be taken away, so he decided to practice his techniques. Fighting with a mortal body had made his body move way better than it did before. When combined with Qi, he was on a higher level. He practiced the Elusive Heavenly sword. A slash, a stab, a swing, he practiced every stance there was in the Elusive Heavenly Sword and before he knew it; he was starting to lose vision of the surrounding. It was just one man and one sword against the world. Soon, Alex lost himself too, and it was only the sword. After a while, he abruptly stopped practicing. Alex felt a sort of mental whiplash from suddenly being in control of his body once more, fully conscious. "It happened once again¡­" he thought. The first time he learned the sword technique, he had fallen in a trance as well. ''Why does this keep happening?'' he wondered. "You out of it now?" A question came from the side. Ma Rong was standing at the door, looking at his train. "Ah, master. When did you get here?" He asked. "I''ve been here for 5 minutes now. Took you quite a while to notice me," she said. Alex just gave small smile and didn''t tell her that he didn''t notice her at all. He quickly looked at the time and was shocked at how late it was. ''It''s 8 am already?'' he thought in surprise. More than an hour had gone by without him even realizing it. "Come one, we are leaving now. People are going to arrive at the place soon," she said. "Oh, okay," he said as he walked out with her. "Have the disciples who are leaving been already selected?" he asked. "Yes. There are over 15 disciples who will leave with us. Considering that one sect can only have 3 disciples in each of the competitions at once, and each disciple can only take part in 3 competitions; we will need a lot of these disciples," she said. "Oh, we can only take place in 3 competitions huh. Have you decided what competition I am going to take part in?" he asked. "I am going to put you in two of the alchemy competitions. The Ingredients Recognizing competition and the best pill-making competition. As for the third one¡­ I haven''t thought about it yet." "There are other alchemy competitions such as the fastest pill making, where as long as you make a mortal grade pill, you pass the competition. Or the one where one is made to make the most unique pills out there." "I could put you in the second one, but that would mean you will have to show the different recipes you got from the corpse, and I don''t want to do that right now," Ma Rong said. "I see. Alright, master, I will do as you say," Alex said while nodding. He could be said to be above average in terms of speed in making pills, but he was nowhere near the fastest amongst his peers according to his master. He flew with his master and landed directly in front of the Elder''s hall. There he saw about 11 different disciples and a few elders standing around. "Hmm¡­ are the 3 not here yet?" Ma Rong asked. Just as she said that a voice came from behind her. "We''re here. Sorry, we took a while. Hmm¡­ are the other 2 not here yet, sect leader?" an older man asked. Alex looked at him and felt like he saw him somewhere before, but didn''t know where. ''That face looks so familiar,'' he thought. Next to the older man was a girl with blonde hair in ponytails who was looking around with playful eyes. Her eyes fell on Ma Rong and she quickly greeted her. She then switched her eyes to Alex and was puzzled for a second before she realized who he was. "Ah, you are the sect leader''s new disciple, aren''t you?" She said in surprise. It seemed that she was in the knowhow about the sect leader somehow. Alex was a little surprised. A girl he had never seen before suddenly knew who he was. He looked at her robes and realized that she was a core disciple as well. ''I don''t remember interacting with her before, have I?'' he gave a confused look as he thought about the girl, but couldn''t remember anything. Even without eidetic memory, he was sure that such a lively girl with a not bad face and child-like attitude would be hard to remember. He was about to ask his master who she was when she instead talked first. "Yu Ming, greet the First Elder," Ma Rong said. "He is Lang Shun''s father, Lang Luoyang." "Ah, good morning First elder. It is really nice to meet you," he said with a slight bow. ''Martial uncle''s father? No wonder he looks so familiar. They practically have the same face.'' He then turned to his master, waiting for her to introduce the lively girl as well, but instead, she just looked at him in confusion. "What?" she asked. "Umm¡­ who is she? She seems to know me, but I don''t remember ever meeting her," Alex said with his spiritual sense. Ma Rong nearly face-palmed herself. "Don''t you interact with your fellow disciples or what? How come you don''t know her?" she asked. "Umm¡­ master, I usually spend my free time learning alchemy and remember that I have been absent for the last 2 weeks and a half?" he said. "Sigh, I understand," she said as she looked at the girl and said, "My disciple doesn''t seem to know you, introduce yourself, Fanfan." "Oh," the girl said in surprise and then proceeded to introduce herself. "Hello, My name is Fan Ruogang, you can call me Fanfan." Chapter 231: Wan Li "Ah, hello, my name is Yu Ming, nice to meet you," he said. "Nice to meet you too, Mingming," she said. ''Mingming? She is already making nicknames for me? Anyway, Fan Ruogang, I know that name rig¡ª'' his eyes went wide as he realized where he knew her name from. ''The third-ranked core disciple?'' he said in shock. He finally remembered her. Both the contribution ranking and Alchemy Achievements ranking were as follows. 1. Wan Li 2. Zhou Mei 3. Fan Ruogang He was surprised that such a bubbly girl would actually be so talented in alchemy. ''You really can''t judge a person''s ability by their appearance.'' "Oh, thank god." "We made it in time." Two voices spoke, one male, one female. Alex turned his head to see two Elders flying down with a disciple behind them. He didn''t recognize the elders, but he sure as hell recognized the disciple. ''Zhou Mei? Of course, she is going too,'' he thought. Zhou Mei seemed to have also noticed him and was making angry faces while looking at him. She seemed to be still mad about the fact that he got for free what she had to work hard for. "You are on time. Yu Ming, these are Song Heng and Su Shu. They are the second and third Elders respectively," Ma Rong said. "Good Morning Elders," Alex greeted them "Oh, we finally get to see the Sect Leader''s disciple we''ve heard so much about huh?" the man Song Heng said. "I didn''t expect him to be this young, however. He barely looks 20," the woman Su Shu said. "Right, Honey? I was thinking the same thing," Song Heng said. "Ughh," Ma Rong said as she rolled her eyes after seeing the two husband and wife pair being lovey-dovey with each other. Even Zhou Mei was cringing a bit. "Meimei, where is Wan Li?" Ma Rong asked. "He told me he would come by on his own earlier, so I went to find masters. Is he not here yet?" she said while searching for him. "Sigh, that guy. Alright, let''s just wait for him," Ma Rong said. About 5 minutes later, they finally saw someone walking down the core disciple mountain. Alex looked at the man coming down the mountain. He was quite thin in build and wasn''t very tall. His short hair was a mess and looking at his face, Alex thought he was the same age as him. ''Is that¡­ ?'' Alex thought. "I''m sorry Elders, Sect Leader. I am late, aren''t I? Oh no. I was sure I would make it here in time. I¡ª I started making pills and soon forgot about the time. I am so sorry," the disciple started saying. "It''s okay, Wan Li. You aren''t late. We only got here too," Ma Rong lied a little to make the disciple not feel as bad. Alex was quite surprised that she actually let him get away with being late. He didn''t think being late was punishable or anything, still lying outright to make him feel better¡­ was this what it meant to be the best disciple in the sect? "Oh, so I am not late? Ah, that makes me feel so much better." The disciples in the back seemed to be in the know about Wan Li''s personality, so none of them got angry at all. "Alright, since everyone is here, it is time for us to leave. First Elder, I leave the sect in your care while I am away," Ma Rong said. "Don''t worry sect leader. We old men will look after the sect. You just take care of the disciples that are away," the First Elder said. Ma Rong nodded and pulled out a small item from her robes. It looked like a¡­ ''A ship? Can a small ship even fit all of their disci¡ª'' before he could even finish thinking anything, Ma Rong threw the ship into the air, and suddenly, a massive ship of over 100 meters in length and 20 meters in height and width appeared. Alex''s jaw nearly dropped when he saw the massive ship in front of him. The ship was nothing like what he had seen before. Even the ships in real life were nowhere near as big as this. ''Woah,'' he thought. The more he looked at it, the more absurd it was. How is such a massive ship even floating in the air? How was such a massive ship, even so, small that it could fit in his master''s hands? She didn''t even pull it out of any storage bags from what he could see. Many questions ran across his head. "Alright, everyone gets up," she said. 5 elders beside Ma Rong and the 2nd and 3rd else flew up to the ship while carrying the other 11 disciples. 2nd Elder carried Zhou Mei, while 3rd elder carried Fan Ruogang. Wan Li looked at only Alex remaining along with the Sect leader and said," I can go second. Let little brother here go up first." Ma Rong smiled a little and suddenly grabbed Wan Li with her Qi, and turned to Alex to say, "Let''s go." Alex nodded and used his Qi to fly into the air and land on the deck of the massive ship. Some of the disciples who were paying attention realized that he flew up on his own. "Woah, how high is his cultivation?" they wondered. All of these disciples were either core sect or inner sect disciples. Alex landed beside his master and Wan Li and looked at the deck full of people as he thought, '' if even Inner sect disciples are being taken, then that means that we will be taking part in more than just the Alchemy tournament right? I hope it''s not a battle. I don''t have a very high cultivation base to fight against other people.'' Ma Rong looked at the surroundings to make sure everyone was there. Once she made sure no one was left behind and they were all settled on the deck of the ship, she said, "Forward." Chapter 232: Headache At first, the ship barely moved an inch. But slowly, it started catching up speed. Before Alex could even think of anything to say, the ship started moving at a faster speed than the bullet trains he had been in ever could. ''Holy Sh*t, that is a fast speed. Just how fast is this boat going?'' he wondered. Ma Rong was the one giving orders, while the one actually running the ship was actually an elder who was staying at the bridge of the ship. Ma Rong instructed the elder something and started walking towards Alex. "So, how are you feeling? Do you think you can handle the b0at? Most people usually vomit when they get on something so fast," Ma Rong said. "It''s fine master, I am perfectly fine," he said. Thankfully, he was used to being on such fast vehicles, Or else he would have gotten dizzy by now. Ma Rong nodded when she heard this and voluntarily started explaining the origin of the ship. "This is actually a sect treasure that the sect leader gets to use once in a while if the sect requires it. The boat was made around 40 years ago, and it has been used maybe 100 times at most. " "It''s mostly used to carry around disciples from the sect to a different location and back. If not for this ship, we wouldn''t even reach Cardinal City by day after tomorrow," Ma Rong said. "Hmm¡­ but the small boat you use is also pretty fast master. Maybe not as fast as this, but it shouldn''t take more than twice what this one takes right?" he asked. "Oh, that''s not how flying works though. At some point, with small boats, we will exhaust all our Qi and have to rest. While with this boat, it uses True Spirit stones as a power source, so we can fly around non-stop," Ma Rong said. "Oh, that makes sense," Alex said as he looked around. He looked at the back of the ship, beyond where the different disciples were staying, and asked his master, "What are those rooms? Do we get to stay there?" he asked. "Of course. Just go into any open room and lock it from inside. It will be yours until you leave," Ma Rong said. "Can I go there now? Honestly, I''m feeling kind of exhausted after staying up for nearly 3 days. Can I get the rest of the information later?" he said. "Oh, okay. Sure, go and rest," Ma Rong said. He could hear the concern in her voice. He nodded to his master and walked towards the back of the ship where the rooms were. Just as he was about to enter the rooms, he heard someone calling him. "Hey, brother." It was a whisper at best with how quiet the voice was. If not for his acute senses thanks to his body cultivation and Qi Cultivation, he wouldn''t even have heard anything. He looked around and found Wan Li staying behind a crowd of elders as if he was trying to hide or something. "What''s going on?" Alex asked him in his regular voice. "Sshh Sshh. speak quietly," Wan Li whispered "What''s going on?" Alex asked in a whisper as well. "You are the sect leader''s disciple right?" he asked without any other questions to bridge it. Alex was a little surprised at the sudden question and started to wonder if he wanted to tell him that he was being unfairly treated, just like Zhou Mei. "Yes, I am the sect Leader''s disciple. Nice to meet you," Alex said showing a fake smile, waiting for the obvious question to arrive. Instead what he heard next was truly out of the left field. "Oh yeah, Hi. I am Wan Li. Brother Yu, can you do me a favor and take me inside the door to the different rooms?" he asked. Alex surely wasn''t expecting this at all. "Take you inside? You want me to carry you?" Alex was a little weirded out by the response. "No, no. Just hide me while you are going inside. You just need to hide me until I enter the door," Wan Li said. "Why though?" Alex asked. "Please brother hurry up. Don''t ask any questions or I will get into trouble," Wan Li said. ''Is it so serious?" Alex was a little surprised. "Alright, let''s go," he said and stood up. Wan Li hurriedly stood up and hid in front of him as they both walked towards the door. Wan Li hurriedly opened the door and walked in, closing the door behind him. Alex was surprised at how hurried he was. ''Does he have to go to the bathroom or what?'' "Wanwan, where are you? Wanwan! Come on out and we can play. Oh, Mingming, have you seen Wanwan?" Fan Ruogang suddenly walked up to him and started asking him questions. "Wanwan? You mean Wan Li?" Alex asked as he got a foreboding of what the answer was. "Yeah. I have been looking for him but he went somewhere. Doesn''t matter now; I found you. Wanna come play with me? It will be fun, I promise!" Fan Ruogang said. Alex''s eyes were wide open as he finally realized what Wan Li was running away from. "Umm¡­ I have a headache, and I was going to go to sleep for now," Alex tried to lie to get away from her. "Oh, you have a headache? That''s bad. Here take this," she said as she took out a pill from her storage bag. "This pill will help you with your headache. Eat it." Alex was dumbfounded at what just happened. ''Sh*t. I didn''t expect her to take out a pill,'' he thought. "Actually, It''s more than just a headache. I haven''t slept in a long while and I feel like I am going to faint anytime now. So I really need that sleep. How about I play with you after I come out later?" he said and went inside without even waiting for a response. Soon, he found an empty room and settled in it. After that, he logged out. Chapter 233: Game Alex logged out of the game and realized that it hadn''t actually been that long since he had gone in, only 8 am. It had just felt like it had been a while due to the different people he had met. ''Whatever, I will just eat something that will keep me full until late afternoon today'' he thought. So, he went to the kitchen to get something to eat. "Oh, hey sister. Why are you here so early? Are you cooking lunch?" he asked. "No, I got your note," she said as she showed the note and said, "it''s my day off too, so I decided to take a break and cook the lunch later on," she said. "Oh, ok." "Oh yeah, did you ask about tomorrow?" Hannah asked. "Tomorrow?" Alex was a little confused. "The party? Will you have free time to party tomorrow?" Hannah asked. "Oh, that. Uhh¡­ so many things happened that I forgot to ask. Although we left our sect and are going to the capital city which we will reach tomorrow morning, I think. So I don''t know if I will even have time for the shopping itself, let alone the party," Alex said. "What? Try to make some time," Hannah said. Alex got some food to eat and fill his stomach for the rest of the day. After that, he went back into the game. He logged into the same room on the ship. It was getting a bit boring to stay in the room so he walked out of the room to go back to the deck with his master. ''I need to ask her about tomorrow,'' he thought. He opened the door of the room and saw Fan Ruogang dragging the nearly crying Wan Li outside. ''What the¡­ '' he didn''t even finish talking when Fan Ruogang saw him. "Oh hey Mingming, is your headache gone?" he asked. "Uh, yeah. It''s gone," he said reluctantly. "Oh, then you come too, we are going to play," she said and started dragging Alex with her other hand. She found a relatively spacious place on the deck and sat down. She made both Wan Li and Alex sit a little further apart. "Ok so¡­" Fan Ruogang was about to speak when Zhou Mei arrived from the side. "Meimei, come sit and play with us," she said. Zhou Mei looked towards Alex and asked, "What is he doing here?" she asked. "Mingming? Of course, he is here to play. I brought him here," Fan Ruogang said. "No, I mean he barely passed the core disciple a few days ago, you think he can play your game?" Zhou Mei asked. Alex was a bit surprised. ''Just what sort of game is this?'' he wondered. "He is the sect leader''s disciple though, so he should be fit to play this right?" Fan Ruogang asked. "I don''t know. Try to play some and you will know," Zhou Mei said. "Alright, you sit too," Fan Ruogang said. Zhou Mei nodded and sat down between Wan Li and Fan Ruogang, opposite Alex, and kept staring daggers at him. Alex was getting used to that. "So, what is this game? How do we play it?" Alex asked. "Oh, it''s quite simple. So, we take out a pill from our storage and hold it in our closed palm. Then the other people will go around guessing the ingredients, and the one holding the pill will tell if they are correct or not." "The goal of the game is to know what the pill is and you can guess it anytime. However, if you guess wrong, you are out for that round, understood?" Fan Ruogang asked. Alex thought for a bit and nodded. ''That sounds pretty simple,'' he thought. "Alright, I will start," Fan Ruogang said and brought out a pill from her storage bag and quickly hid it in her hand. "Meimei, guess," she said. "Aquatic Berry," Zhou Mei guessed. "Haha, No. Wanwan, your turn," Fan Ruogang said. "Hmm¡­ what about a Curling Dragon root?" Wan Li asked. "Nope," Fan Ruogang said with a giggle. "Mingming, your turn," she asked. Alex could look into her hand and see what the pill was, but he decided not to. "Umm, Morning Rose seeds?" he asked. "Yes. Finally, someone got it," she said. Alex simply smiled. Alex was looking into the recipes of the pills in the Hong Wu sect and choosing the most common ingredients. It was working. "Spirit Rat Femur?" Zhou Mei asked. "No," Fan Ruogang said. "Uhh¡­ Star Deer guts?" Wan Li asked. "Yes, good job Wanwan," Fan Ruogang said. ''A pill that uses both Star Deer guts and Morning Rose seeds? There are 4 of them. However, if I narrow it down any further, it will make it easier for them,'' Alex thought. "Spirit ginseng," he chose a random ingredient that didn''t align with any of the ingredients in the pills. "Nope," Fan Ruogang said. The game continued as they each said more and more ingredients and soon Alex realized, they were circling around the pills as much as he was. ''No wonder they are top 3 of the sect. They know just as much as, if not more, than me,'' Alex thought. He then decided to cheat a little. Suddenly, he went into focus mode. All of his senses were enhanced in this state and he could do something that was nearly impossible for him to do before this. He could smell the pill. Normally, it was very faint for him, but with focus mode on he could smell the pill all the way from where he was sitting. ''I see, '' he thought. "Hillside Roses?" Wan Li asked. "Nah, you guys need to choose better answers, I''m getting bored," she said. "Mingming, please choose a serious answer, okay?" Ning thought for a second and said, "Is it the Dawn Spirit pill?" Fan Ruogang forgot to speak for a second and said, "Yes! It is. Finally, someone got it." She turned to Wan Li and Zhou Mei and said, "You guys couldn''t even guess that much? You guys need to study more." "Alright, let''s continue. Whose turn is it now?" Chapter 234: Beast hoard Alex was forced to play for quite a while before he was allowed to leave. Aside from the first time, he didn''t cheat anymore and decided to play fairly. Finally, he made his way to the front of the deck where his master was. "Did you have fun playing Fanfan''s little game?" she asked. "You were spying on us?" Alex asked with a chuckle. "No, you guys were just creating too much of a ruckus. The top 3 disciples playing with the sect leader''s disciple. That causes a small commotion no matter how one thinks of it," Ma Rong said. "I see," he said as he looked around the area they were traveling through. Although the nearby areas were passing by in a flash, the areas further away were moving very slowly and were thus much better to look at. "The southern forest is really large, isn''t it?" he asked. "Yeah, from what I have heard, it''s larger in width than crimson empire is in length," Ma Rong said. "What? Is that true master?" he asked. "I don''t know. As I said, I only heard that. Might be true, might not be," Ma Rong said. Alex looked around and thought of a question and asked, "Master, do you know what an ocean is?" "Ocean? Of course, who doesn''t? The ocean covers just as much of Crimson empire as does the Souther forest," Ma Rong said. "What? There are oceans around the Crimson empire? Can I see it on the way to the Cardinal City?" Alex asked. "Oh no. The Oceans are around the outside of the Crimson Empire, while the Cardinal city is at the center of the empire, so you will never see the ocean around there. But don''t worry, once you are strong enough, you can go roam the empire and see the different sites," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded in disappointment. "What about continents then? You know about them?" Alex asked. "Continents? Hmm¡­ that word doesn''t feel familiar at all, so no," Ma Rong said. "Oh, ok," Alex said. He was dejected, but he had guessed the answer. ''So people really don''t know we are in the western continent, do they?'' he thought. ''Ocean and Continent, I will need to travel away from the city soon on my own,'' Alex thought. "By the way, Master. We will be reaching tomorrow morning right? Since the competition will start on Sunday, what do we do all day tomorrow?" Alex asked. "Well, we usually give disciples free rein in the capital so that they can go out and grow. You can do the same," Ma Rong said. That solved one of his worries. He could now go get a party happening in his place without worrying about not being able to participate in it. Alex stayed on the ship talking with Ma Rong until a few hours later. He was once more reminded about the Royal Fu family and the different things he needed to take care to not reveal in the capital city and competition. Afterward, they spent some time in silence, just looking towards the distance. After a while, Alex started feeling drowsy from the lack of engagement to anything. ''Maybe I should go sleep for real,'' he thought. "Master, I will go back to the room. You should go take some rest too," he said. "Alright, go. I will take a rest when the second elder is done resting as w¡ª Hmm" Ma Rong stopped abruptly when she noticed something in the distance. She suddenly stood up and walked towards the front of the deck. "Stop there," she told the elder responsible for flying the boat. As ordered, the elder stopped the boat right on top of a group of people who were on their way to another town. From the looks of it, they were part of a caravan. Currently, they were being ruthlessly attacked by different monsters from the southern forest. Alex had at some point reached the edge of the deck and was looking down as well. When the people in the caravan saw the large shadow appear and stop near them, they started shouting at the ship for help. "Stay here," Ma Rong said and took a step off the edge of the ship. Suddenly, she disappeared. Many disciples didn''t see where the sect leader went and was surprised. Alex was surprised too, but he soon found her. Ma Rong was already at the bottom, in front of the various monsters. With the Flickering Shadows technique, she could teleport to her shadow regardless of the distance between her and the shadow. Once she was below, she waved her hands once, and suddenly, all of the beasts were on the ground, frothing at their mouth. They were already dead. Alex was beyond shocked when he saw the display of prowess. ''A single palm to clear a hoard of organ tempering realm monsters. I wonder when I can do that,'' Alex said in pure surprise. "Thank you senior for saving us, Senior. We thank you very much," the people in the caravan started to show their gratitude towards their savior. However, Ma Rong wanted none of it. She got straight to the questions. "Why were you attacked? Do you have something in the cargo worth attracting a monster hoard?" she asked. "No, miss savior. There is no such thing," the caravan merchants told her. Ma Rong had already checked the insides with her spiritual sense and really had found nothing from there. She turned around and stored all of the dead beasts into her storage bags and said to the people, "Continue along." After that, she flew to the boat and landed on the deck. Many disciples had gone to either side now, and while they missed Ma Rong''s fight, they had seen the multitudes of monster corpses lying by the side. When paired with time, they knew what exactly had taken place down there. Ma Rong went to where she was previously seated and sat down. She then said to herself in a small voice, "So the beasts really are getting restless." Chapter 235: Unusual Activity The ship started moving once more and soon they were back to the same speed. Alex sat down next to Ma Rong looking at her contemplating something and thought, ''the beasts are getting restless? What does she mean?'' He didn''t speak for a few minutes, but the curiosity got to him in the end, so he asked, "Master, What is happening with the beasts? Why are they attacking the caravans?" Ma Rong thought for a while and said, "I do not know. I have tried making sense of what little information we have, but nothing makes any sense." Alex got more curious, "What exactly is happening, Master?" "Ever since a while ago, the monsters in the southern forest have been getting restless in several places. Monsters that never leave their side of the forest are coming out, attacking the people in the roads." "I previously thought that these were just one-off incidents and would go back to normal after a while, but¡­ it has only started to escalate since then," she said. Alex fell into thought as well. There was no such thing happening in the Scarlet city yet¡­ but what if it did? What if suddenly, one day the monsters started attacking them from the south, while the monsters in the desert arrive from the north. If that happened, the city would have to evacuate and relocate. ''Are these two things related? Can''t be, right?'' he thought. The monsters in the desert were strong, but they were not strong like regular monsters that had access to Qi. No monsters in the desert could ever make him feel fear the way the worm had back then. ''Worm¡­?'' he thought. "Master, did I ever tell you about the strong worm? No, right?" he asked. "A worm? What''s this about?" she asked. He proceeded to explain to her how he met a worm that was stronger than both her and Wen Cheng. Ma Rong heard it all with a face of shock. "Thankfully, you didn''t get caught by it. You¡­ I don''t even want to think what would''ve happened to you," Ma Rong said. "So, do you think the worm might be behind it?" Alex asked. "No, I don''t think it''s possible for a worm that is not even the peak of True Realm to do anything so as to launch a coordinated attack against the empire. Besides, given how random these beast attacks are, I doubt a single monster could plan the attacks that currently happening. No, it''s something else. Something entirely different," Ma Rong said as she looked far away into the south. "Then¡­ " Alex asked, "Could it be Pearl''s mother? Is her corpse somehow responsible for this?" he asked. "The cat monster? Why do you ask that?" Ma Rong asked. "I mean, she was a saint realm monster. Considering how nonexistent saint realms are in the crimson empire, maybe that has something to do with it?" he asked. Ma Rong chuckled a little and asked, "Who told you saint realms are non-existent?" "Wha¡ª aren''t Saint Realm what everyone in the crimson empire is looking to be?" Alex asked. "Yes, but that doesn''t mean that no one has reached it. There are a few hidden figures in the Crimson Empire that are in the Saint Realm. Heck, I know for sure there are some old foggies in the Royal family that are hiding away in a dungeon as a saint realm expert, hoping time won''t catch up to them," Ma Rong said and then immediately gestured to him to never talk about the royal family in this way again. "Wait, if Saint Realm is not unreachable, then why were you guys so hung up on Spirit Cleansing Lilies and pearl''s mother then?" he asked in confusion. "It''s not that Saint Realm is unreachable, but more so that we have no idea what to do in that realm. Admittedly, from what I know, Saint realm is nothing like the self-tempering realm and True realm that comes before it." "They say that the process of cultivation itself changes when one enters the Saint Realm. I have no idea what that means and I would love to get some. But those goddamn old people will die with their secret buried with them," Ma Rong said. "We just want Spirit Cleansing Lilies cause spirit sense is helpful early on. As for the cat mother, I don''t think there has been a saint realm monster in the crimson empire in a long time, so it was curiosity that we cared about them. Also, having a monster beast that can grow to Saint Realm for guarantee is very tempting." "Which is why you shouldn''t show around Pearl willy nilly. Not everyone you meet is a good person. Until you can be a good judge of character, try not to reveal your hands too much," Ma Rong said. "Yes, Master." ''I know. I''ve seen those people who will take help and return poison instead of gratitude," Alex thought. "By the way, you guys never found Pearl''s mother''s body right? What happened to it?" Alex asked. "No idea. We searched the area for a long time, but there was no sign of anything from the outside interfering. Unless there is a strong bird that flew away with the corpse before we arrived, we don''t know what happened to it. Why do you want to know?" she asked. "Oh, I¡­ just wanted to perform a small funeral for Pearl''s sake," Alex said. Ma Rong nodded and patted his head while saying, "I hope you can stay just as kind forever." Alex kept quiet and thought to himself, ''I hope so too.'' Alex talked to Ma Rong a little more and asked different questions such as the Royal family''s saint realm experts or the forbidden realm. But Ma Rong didn''t know much of either, so the two remained mostly quiet. "Sect Leader, You can go back, we will take it from here for now," A voice came from the back. Both Ma Rong and Alex looked back and saw that the second and third elders had arrived. Chapter 236: Second and Third Elder "Ah, You guys are here. Alright, take over. I will go get some rest," Ma Rong said as she looked towards the two elders. "Are you gonna go take a rest as well, Yu?" she asked. "Umm¡­ I will stay here for a while and leave around evening time," Alex said. "Very well. You can stay here with Second Elder and Third Elder," Ma Rong said as left. The two elders came and sat a little to the left of Alex and looked towards the horizon. "I''m really surprised sect master is letting you take part in the competition so soon, Disciple Yu," the Third Elder said. She was a little younger than Ma Rong and was shorter too. She also had robes that were custom-tailored to fit the curvature of her body. Overall, she looked much more appealing to the eyes than any of the other Elders Alex had seen, including his master. "Yes, Elder. I was surprised when I learned it too," Alex said. "But I heard you are quite talented, Disciple Yu. Is that true?" the second Elder asked. "I wouldn''t really know about that. I haven''t had much interaction with the other disciples, so I don''t know what is normal and what is not in terms of talent," Alex replied. "Oh, nice reply. Not arrogant at all, I like it," the Third Elder said. Far away, Zhou Mei saw her masters talking with Alex and got a little ticked off. She walked up to them and heard, "So you will be taking part in two of the competitions huh? Any idea what the third one will be?" Second Elder asked. "He''ll be taking part in the competition? Isn''t he too new to all of this to take part in them?" Zhou Mei asked. "Oh, maybe. But he is talented, so he gets to," Third Elder said. "How talented can he be if he only just entered the core sect? Master, you must be pulling my leg," Zhou Mei said. "Oh, then you mustn''t know about his ingredient finding and pill-making abilities. I thought you already talked with him after finding out who he was a few days ago?" Second Elder asked. "I¡­ I didn''t talk with him. Why? How talented can he be?" Zhou Mei asked. "Oh, Disciple Yu, what is the highest harmony pill you''ve made yet?" Second Elder asked. Alex was a little surprised by the line of questioning. ''Why would you ask that of someone?'' he thought. But they were elders and probably already knew about the ones he registered, so he replied, "It was 43%." The two elders nodded as if they were just testing him, but Zhou Mei''s eyes were wide open. "Wait what? No way he is making 43% harmony pills. That is way too high. Even Wan Li can barely make 40%, and that''s under best conditions," Zhou Mei cried out. "What can I tell you, Little Mei, that is true," Second Elder said. The third Elder giggled at the side. "But¡­ But¡­ That must be because he got everything handed to him. He learned everything in the sect was treated with bias," she tried to make accusations. Alex started to get annoyed a little. ''Why do I have to sit here and listen to her bullsh*t?'' he thought and decided to leave. But then, the second elder spoke, "No, there was no bias in his treatment as far as I know. To be fair, me and her were out here learning about the competition when he joined the sect. But from what we heard afterward, he made a great contribution to the sect." "So big, that everything in the sect was given to him to use with full authority," he said. "What? What could he have done to gain that?" she asked. Full authority over everything meant that everything in the sect was free for him to use. That would obviously help everyone get a little better even if they put no effort into anything. "Oh, that''s a secret for now. I don''t know if anyone other than the elders is allowed to know it or not. You will have to ask the sect leader herself," Second Elder said. Not getting any answers, Zhou Mei left. Alex felt a little weird about everything and left them as well and went back to the room in the ship. Having nothing to do anymore, he logged out. He woke up from his bed feeling hungry. "Uhh¡­ I haven''t eaten in nearly 9 hours," he thought and walked out of the room. He made his way to the kitchen and found Hannah in the living room watching the TV. "You ate already, sister?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ oh yeah. Go get your food," she said. Alex went to the kitchen and got himself a snack. He then walked back to the living room and sat down on the sofa watching the TV. "What are you watching?" he asked. "Oh, I was watching the news about the capsules and one thing lead to another. Now I''m just watching whatever is on," she said. "Oh, what was the capsule''s news about?" he asked. "Oh, it seems we won''t have to go to the shop for shopping at all. It will be delivered to us. We only have to go to the shops to give them our helmets and get a discount," Hannah said. "Oh, then I should go there tomorrow, right?" he said. "What? Do you really care about some measly discounts after earning so much?" she asked. "Umm¡­ I guess not?" he said. "Oh yeah. My master said that we can stay in the hotel tomorrow, so we can have that party you''ve been meaning to have for the longest time." "Oh, nice. I will start ordering stuff. Wait, no. I have to let them know first," she said and started messaging the guests. Alex just stayed there and ate his snack. "Sister, I think I have a little problem for next week. I don''t know what to do about it," he said. "Oh, what problem?" she asked. Chapter 237: Buying Rush "You see, it seems like there are going to be a lot of different competitions in the upcoming annual competition and I might end up missing a lot of days of classes," he said. "Haha, you are worried about that? Then you will love the news that came out today at noon," Hannah said. "Hmm¡­ what news?" he asked. "Look," Hannah said as she handed him her phone. Alex took it and saw that it was an official email from Oakleaf University. -Due to the upcoming release of a gaming capsule from Deva Corp. for the game Eternal Cultivation, the university is going to remain closed for the next week. Classes will run as usual from next week- "What? They are stopping classes just for a game, why?" he asked. "Just a game? Do you not know how big Eternal Cultivation is right now?" Hannah asked in surprise. "I mean I know, but still. Closing a university due to the game, isn''t that a little extreme?" he asked. "Not really. Just think about how many students will be absent from their classes due to playing forever. Especially since you won''t have to log out as much with the capsules. Besides, I''m pretty sure the teachers want to play the game too," Hannah laughed. "Maybe that is the case," Alex thought and nodded. "Yeah, either way, it doesn''t matter to us, d¡ª," Hannah stopped talking and looked at the news. "Oh, sh*t. Go get your laptop and phone, fast," she said and ran from the sofa. "What?" Alex was a little surprised and looked at the TV. There was flashing breaking news at the bottom. - From Deva Corp. - Sales for Capsules will start at 5 PM today. The sales system will be a first come first serve. Meaning, whoever orders first will get a capsule delivered to them first. - One will only be able to order a single capsule at a time. "Ah," Alex exclaimed and ran to his room too and brought back his laptop and smartphone. Hannah was already in the room with her laptop open. She was furiously typing something. Alex looked at the time and saw that it was only 4:50 PM right now. So the sales shouldn''t have started yet. "What are you doing, sister?" he asked. "Oh, you are here. Open your laptop and start typing everything necessary for buying a capsule, like the home address, your bank account, and everything. It will be easier to copy-paste later," she said. "Oh, that''s not a bad idea," he thought and started typing the same as well. Time started ticking by. They were constantly refreshing the website trying to not miss it. The clock hit 5, and the page was available. Both of them furiously started inputting the data into the different fields. There were a few more fields to type in than they had prepared for, but they could just type that right now. "Done," Hannah said and exclaimed. Alex jumped of fright from the sudden exclamation and missed the ''BUY'' button. So he brought the cursor back and pressed it again. "Sigh, I did it as well," he said as he took a breath. "Hmm¡­ tomorrow at 3 pm huh? That''s¡­ around the time the party will end. That actually works out for me perfectly," Hannah said. "Oh," Alex heard her and looked at his information as well. Then, he started laughing. At first, he chuckled and then broke out into a burst of full laughter. Hannah was caught off guard. "What''s wrong?" she asked. That was definitely not good laughter from her perspective. "I finished a split second later than you, and yet my delivery date became Monday in the morning," he said. "What? That''s so late though," Hannah said, not realizing that she was the entire reason he was slow in the first place. "It''s fine, I can work with my helmet for 2 more days," he said. "Alright then," Hannah said. Alex went back to eating his snacks. With the laptop right next to him, he decided to check a few things that had been bothering him for the last few days. He went to the forum and looked up stuff about Crimson Empire. Especially, he wanted to see if he could find any information about the beasts getting restless. "They only talk about the beasts attacking and never say why," he thought as he read through the information. He looked up other information about the Crimson Empire and found out that the upcoming competition was quite popular amongst a small group of people. These were probably the only people who were in the Crimson Empire. Most of them were taking part in it as well. Next up, he looked up the Evolution thing that was in Pearl''s status. Unfortunately, only 30 people had even managed to bond with a beast and of them, not one of them had a beast with over 2% in evolution chance. The highest one was 6% that the person acquired through a guardian in their sect. Aside from that, there was no information about evolutions at all. Everything else was just speculation. And they matched what he had been thinking in the first place. He sighed and looked through more information that was popular on the forum. Apparently, a tournament in the southern continent had just ended, and a lot of players had managed to get a good result there. He looked through the other information and found a post that talked about the reincarnation problem the game had right now. Unfortunately, it was nothing but people complaining. There was nothing informative about that post, so he closed it. He went to the kitchen to help his cousin prepare food for the night and ate it afterward as well. At the same time, the things she had ordered for the party arrived as well. "I can do it myself, you can go," she said and sent Alex who wanted to help. So, he returned back to his room and logged back into the game. Chapter 238: Raining Alex logged back into the game and walked out of the room. As soon as he was in the hallway, he heard something. It was an ambient sound, like a static of a radio. "Could it be?" his eyes went wide and he walked out. Opening the door, the sound got much louder and he could hear each individual sound that collectively made the overall sound. Cold air with drops of water struck his face. It was raining. This was the first time he had seen rain in the game. "Haha, it''s actually raining," he said with a smile. He looked out and saw many disciples in the rain, practically dancing, letting the rain hit their faces. Alex was quite surprised, but he understood. ''They haven''t seen rain in a long time as well, have they?'' he thought. He walked out into the rain and let it fall on him. He could easily create a layer of Qi to block it, but he didn''t do so. He walked to the front of the ship and saw that his master was already there. So were the two elders. "Ah, you are here disciple Yu. Came to check the rain?" the Second Elder asked. "I just came out because I thought I had enough rest," he said as he looked around the deck. The various disciples were all happily walking around in the rain. Fan Ruogang had Wan Li in her clutches and was walking around the rain with him. Even Zhou Mei was smiling a little after seeing the rain. He then looked up at the sky and saw the clouds were looming for quite a long distance. There were even some lightning discharges in the rain. "We¡­ won''t get hit by the lightning, right?" he asked. "Don''t worry, the ship has protection. It can divert lightning attacks around us with its barrier, similar to how air is diverted away," Ma Rong said. "But the rain still hits us?" he asked. "That''s because we can allow what to enter and whatnot," Ma Rong said. "I see," he said. "Anyway, this is my first time seeing rain since I joined the sect. I wouldn''t have imagined the sect to be in such a place of drought," he said. "It''s not really in a place of drought. There are springs of water deep underground. It''s only that it never rains. Even when the sky gets cloudy, it immediately goes away," Ma Rong said. "Huh, Why?" Alex asked. "No idea. It''s never rained in Scarlet City for nearly hundreds of years. Thankfully, the weather doesn''t get too hot, or we would be a desert right now," Ma Rong said. "Like the forbidden fields?" Alex asked. "Yeah, like the forbidden fie¡ª," Ma Rong stopped. She remembered what was happening in the forbidden fields for the last few years. The land was getting deserted. Alex realized what she was thinking. It was not far off in the future when the scarlet city would become a desert as well. And no one knew the reason why. "I think we should put up the barrier, sect leader. Or the deck will be full of water," Second Elder said. Ma Rong got out of her stupor and nodded. Suddenly, with a wave of her hand, the rain stopped falling. All the disciples stopped and looked up. Rains were streaming down the air as if there was a glass roof on top of them. "We will go back now, sect Leader," Second Elder said and walked away with the third elder. Alex was left alone with his Master. "Are you worried about the sect becoming a desert later on?" he asked. "Yes. As a sect leader, I can''t help but be worried about it. At first, I thought it not raining in Scarlet City had to do with the geographical location, but now, I''m starting to think it has something to do with the desert in the forbidden fields," Ma Rong said. Alex had no answer for that. "Anyway, you should go back and cultivate or something. You don''t need to stay out here in the rain. I can stay all by myself," Ma Rong said. "It''s okay, I can cultivate here too," Alex said and called out Pearl. "Hide him," Ma Rong got a little frantic. "It''s okay, master," Alex said and quickly hit Pearl in his robes. "Pearl, start cultivating," he said. "Meow," Pearl said and started to snuggle up on his body before glowing a bright white color. He then turned to yellow before fully glowing in golden color. Thankfully, Alex''s robe was hiding most of the light so only Ma Rong could see the shine. Slowly, cuts started appearing on Alex''s skin. Ma Rong got scared a little thinking he was hurt. "Yu Ming, are you okay?" she asked in a hurry. "I''m okay, don''t worry. This is just how I body cultivate," he said. "But¡­ that looks so painful. Are you really fine?" she asked. "Yeah, don''t worry about it. I''m used to the pain now," he said. ''Used to the pain'' and not ''it''s not painful''. Ma Rong felt a deep pain in her heart when she heard that. She knew she couldn''t shelter him forever, but she wanted to keep him safe for as long as she could. However, he was already getting hurt in ways she couldn''t imagine. The physical pain of such body cultivation and the psychological pain of killing a person. She never wanted him to feel those. Yet, he did, and she couldn''t stop it. She stood there for a few hours, watching him cultivate and making sure that he didn''t make a mistake during his cultivation. Fortunately, she was worrying needlessly. Alex could talk through his cultivation now, so she just talked back whenever he spoke and let him be when he was just cultivating. Soon, the clouds parted away, giving ways to the moonlight. Clears rays of moonlight lit the world below. And in that light, Ma Rong saw something. Another monster hoard attack. Chapter 239: Fraudsters ''Another one?'' she thought in surprise. "Stop the ship," she ordered the elder who was currently driving it. Feeling the ship stop suddenly, Alex opened his eyes and told Pearl to stop cultivating. The cuts all over his body quickly healed from the Qi his body had. "What''s going on master?" he asked. "Another monster hoard attack, down there," she said. Alex looked from the front and saw a bunch of monsters attacking a small carriage. "Come, let''s see what is going on," Ma Rong said and beckoned Alex. Alex nodded and flew with her to the bottom. On the ground were a bunch of young people trying to fight the monsters with an elderly at the front trying to fend off the beast. The young people had at best the Bone Tempering realm of Cultivation and the old man seemed to be at 1st realm of Organ tempering realm too. They were very weak against the hoard of beasts in front of them. Just the fact that they were alive right now was a miracle. Ma Rong couldn''t quickly teleport down as she did during the day without her shadow being there. However, before even reaching the 10-meter mark, where one was supposed to be able to teleport, she disappeared. Alex was surprised. "How did she teleport 30 meters away?" he wondered in surprise. Ma Rong immediately suppressed all the beasts down there and waited for Alex to arrive. Once he was there, she said, "Kill them." Alex nodded and took out his Steel Sword. The monsters were around the Bone Tempering realm, with some being in the mid organ tempering realm, but that was no problem for Alex. He easily cut through the different beasts with his sword like it was a hot knife attacking butter. Within a few slices, most of the monsters were dead. For the monster in the Organ tempering realm, he used Smiting Blade, and soon they were dead as well. He quickly took the corpses into his storage bag. Ma Rong saw that the fight was over and nodded; she then looked towards the old man asked, " Who are you people and what are you guys doing here?" The 5 young people in the back were shivering with fear and didn''t speak at all. So, the old man decided to speak. "We come from a nearly by village. I am a sect leader and these are my students. I wanted to take them to the capital to register them in the annual competition." "We were riding the carriage to the capital and¡­ and¡­ the beasts, they came out of nowhere and attacked us." "I thought we were going to die, but you saved us. Thank you, Miss, young man. You saved this old man''s life," the old man said. Alex nodded and said nothing as he accepted the gratitude in silence. Ma Rong nothing whatsoever. Alex looked at the poor young people, still shivering from fear. ''I would probably be scared just like that if I knew I was going to die too," he thought. "Can I ask who you are Miss? I see that your ship is big. You must be from a well-known sect," he said. "You don''t need to know," Ma Rong said and looked around. She then asked," Where are your horses?" "They were eaten by the monsters miss. Gobbled up entirely. Honestly, I was scared to death. Thankfully, you guys saved me. I don''t know how I can repay you," the old man said. "You don''t have to repay us. We were just doing what anyone would do in this situation," Alex said. Ma Rong kept quiet. "Alright, you said you were from a nearby village right?" Ma Rong asked. "Yes, it''s about a few dozen kilometers that way," the old man pointed behind him. "I see. Then gather up your belongings and go back. You do not have horses to carry the carriage anymore, so you won''t make it to the capital before the registration date. I doubt you could''ve made it even if you had one. So just return back to your village," Ma Rong said. "I can''t do that. These disciples of mine have wanted to take part in the competition for such a long time. I cannot let their dreams go to waste. Please, can''t you just let us up on the ship? I''m sure you have a lot of room, right?" the old man asked. "No," Ma Rong said with a cold face and flew away, forcefully pulling Alex along with her. Alex was surprised at the abrupt pull, but let her do it. They both landed on the ship and Ma Rong told the elder to start moving again. Very soon, they were moving at a fast speed away from the place. Alex was confused as to what had just happened. His master was unusually cold today after helping the people down there. ''Does she hate outsiders that much? Can''t we just take little stowaways? I''m pretty sure there is plenty of places,'' he thought. "What''s going on master? Why didn''t you help them?" Alex asked. "They¡­ didn''t need our help," Ma Rong said. "But their carriage is broken. I''m sure we could''ve ta¡ª " "No, before even that, they didn''t need our help. That old man was crafty. I don''t know if he is a thief or what, but he wanted to get onto our ship for some reason." "If I am not mistaken, that wasn''t a monster hoard that randomly attacked them either. It was clearly set up beforehand to make it look like they were attacked. The horses were never there either, it was all a lie." "He must''ve paid some kids to act like they were in trouble and take the chance to rob whoever stopped to help them. The old man was looking towards our ship from the very moment we arrived." "He wanted us to help him, that bastard," she said. Alex was surprised. ''How much experience do you need to have to catch things like that? If it were me, I would''ve just let them into the ship openly,'' he thought. ''I still have a lot to learn.'' Chapter 240: Death Down at the ground where the old man and the 5 young people were staying at, The old man watched the ship fly off into the distance with his crafty eyes and made an angry smile. "Tsk, that young girl is too crafty. She saw through my ruse too easily," he said. He shook his head and looked at the blood on the ground. "Sigh, I worked so hard to gather the beasts. You could''ve at least stopped the young man for a few moments if not for a minute," he said. His eyes would have hints of irritation whenever he remembered the young man''s face behind the young woman. "Tsk, I''m getting annoyed again," he thought. He looked back at the 5 young people and looked at their shivering figures. "Stop shivering for one second," he shouted at them. That only made them shiver harder. The fear on the faces of the 5 people was even higher than it was when fighting the monsters. He stopped looking at them and thought, "Urghh¡­ I could''ve killed them if I was just a little stronger," he thought. "At least that young man. Ughh¡­ I so want to kill him," he said in agitation. "And then, I would kill that girl, Ma Rong. That little girl thinks she is something huh." " Well, she did help me a little¡­ No, I will still kill her someday." He then turned back to the young ones again and saw them shivering with a face full of fear. "Sigh" Suddenly, the old man''s cultivation base flared and started increasing. From Organ Tempering 1st realm to 2nd realm to the third realm¡­ Organ Tempering 9th realm¡­ Meridian Tempering 1st realm¡­ Meridian Tempering 9th realm¡­ Mind Tempering 1st realm¡­ Mind Tempering 9th realm¡­ True Disciple 1st realm¡­ True Disciple 9th realm¡­ True Master 1st Realm¡­ True Master 9th realm¡­ True Lord 1st realm¡­ True Lord 5th realm. Finally, it increased once more to True Lord 6th realm and stopped increasing. "Ahh¡­ It feels so much better when you don''t have to hide your cultivation base. Sigh, I''m still too weak to fight the girl with her True King realm cultivation," The old man said. He then turned around to the 5 people and said, " You guys must be lonely. Why don''t I send you to your friends and families from the village?" The young people were relieved for a split second before realizing what he meant. The man in front of them had killed their entire village to capture the 5 of them for this one thing. If he were to send them back, then¡­ Before the young ones could even think anything anymore, the old man swung his hand horizontally and 5 heads fell to the ground. "Ahh¡­ I wish I could do the same to those people. Especially the boy. Although, letting him grow a little stronger before taking his body doesn''t sound too bad either," he said as he looked towards the distance where the ship had flown to. And then, his cultivation base started to disappear once more until it was no more. Not even the previous organ tempering realm remained and he looked just like a mortal. Then, he turned right and started walking into the southern forest. Before entering, however, a veil of light came upon him, and soon, he disappeared from where he was. ******** Alex was back to body cultivating on top of the ship under Ma Rong''s supervision. He didn''t need it, but having someone look after him why he was cultivating was still very much appreciated. Ma Rong kept on watching him for a while and asked a question that she had in her heart for a long time. "How long has it been since you cultivated normally?" she asked. "Hmm¡­ normally? Let''s see¡­ I have cultivated my Qi for a single time since I could do body cultivation," he said. "Hmm¡­ do you find body cultivation better than Qi cultivation?" she asked. She was genuinely curious about body cultivation. "Not really," he said. "It''s both the same. At least with Qi cultivation I don''t have to feel this pain, and it doesn''t get slower as you get stronger," he said. "Oh, sounds like body cultivation is not as good as Qi cultivation. Then why do you keep on body cultivating? You can just cultivate your Qi too. I can look after you," She said. "Uh¡­ you remember the first time you came to teach me? The thing I said that morning you found me in the room?" he asked. "Hmm?" Ma Rong didn''t know what he was talking about. It was before she had unlocked her spiritual sense, so it took her a while to remember. "Ah, that time I found you asleep? What about it?" she asked. She remembered the first time she went to his house to give him his alchemy lessons, and he was in one of the rooms, asleep. "You see¡­ I still fall asleep when I cultivate and¡­ I don''t know when I stop doing it," he said. "What? You haven''t fixed that yet?" she asked. "I don''t know how to, master. I keep falling asleep. At first, I thought that was normal, but it seems that it is not. I don''t know what to do," he said. "You should have let me know that way earlier," Ma Rong said. "Alright, Cultivate right now and I''ll try to see what the problem is." Alex nodded and asked Pearl to stop cultivating. "That''s enough for today, Pearl. You can go back now," Alex said. "Meow?", Pearl woke up from the cultivation and went back to his beast space in Alex''s arm. Ma Rong waited for Alex to start. Alex knew he was in safe hands, so he sat in a relaxed posture and closed his eyes. He started breathing in and out slowly, and soon the cultivation method kicked in. And, as usual, Alex fell into a trance and lost consciousness. Chapter 241: Cardinal City Alex slowly opened his eyes and saw the rays of sun hitting him in the eyes. It was early in the morning, and the sun had just come up of the horizon. He looked in front of him and saw a massive cityscape in front of him. He was high in the air, so he could see everything clearly. Surrounded by giant mountain ranges was a massive city, at least 4 times as large as the scarlet city itself. Alex saw the tall buildings all over the city with a central area that was a massive open space with a single castle in the center. Most of the houses were painted red, so the whole city had a red aesthetic. "The Cardinal City?" Alex thought. Only then did he realize that the ship had stopped moving. He looked to the left and saw a few more ships approaching the city and stopped just as far as they had as well. The disciples in that sect started getting down as well with the help of their elders. Alex looked back to check the disciples of his own ship and saw that there were none anymore. ''Are they gone anymore,'' he thought and spread out his spiritual sense to check the surroundings. "Oh, you are right here maste¡ª " he turned around to see his master with red eyes and generally redder face. She had been crying. "What''s wrong, Master? Why are you crying?" he asked in surprise. Ma Rong woke up from her stunned state and quickly rubbed her eyes. "Nothing. I''m not crying," she said as she sniffed a little. "C''mon, let''s go. Everyone had already left for the hotel. We are the only ones left," Ma Rong said and got up. She walked to the edge of the ship and jumped down. Alex stood up and followed her. Alex still didn''t know why she was crying. ''Did something happen while I was cultivating?'' he thought. ''Speaking of which, I fell asleep once more, and master didn''t wake me up? I thought she was going to.'' He looked at the sun and thought, ''Well, I woke up in time, so I guess it''s fine.'' Once they were both down on the floor, Ma Rong swiped on hand mid-air and the ship suddenly changed into its miniature size. Ma Rong kept it in her robes and started walking in. "Master, what happened in the ship? Why were you crying?" he asked once more. "As I said, don''t worry about it. Nothing happened," she said. But Alex didn''t believe that whatsoever. ''Something definitely happened,'' he thought, but he couldn''t tell what. So he decided to change the question for now. "So, about me falling asleep while cultivating, is that fixable?" he asked. "Don''t worry about that either. Just cultivate normally, and you will be fine. There is nothing wrong with you falling asleep," Ma Rong said. Alex was genuinely confused now. ''Me falling asleep while cultivating is fine? What? That shouldn''t be the case. That was the entire reason I cultivated last night. why would she say that?'' he wondered. He wanted to ask more questions, but they reached the gate of the city. "Oh yeah, there are hidden masters all over the city, so try not to use your spiritual sense recklessly. They can sense it too if they have it," Ma Rong said to his through spiritual sense. "I see, I will try not to use it then, Master," he said and quickly sucked in all the spiritual sense he was spreading to check the place. There were many people lined up to enter the city, both individuals and big merchant groups. "Daoist Ma, is that you?" a voice came from the left. Ma Rong turned around to see who was calling her, and forced herself to smile a little as she said, "Nice to meet you again, Daoist Li, it''s been a while." "Haha, yeah. I haven''t seen you since last year''s competition." The person named Li was a tall man with a white robe and a clean, shaven face. He was holding a paper fan in his hand and made an amicable face when he spoke. He then looked around her and asked, "Where are your sect members? Did they not arrive?" "Oh no, they''ve already gone in first. I had a little something to do, so I stayed behind," she said. "I see,'' he said and then turned to Alex and asked, " Who is this young fellow?" "This is my disciple, Yu Ming. Yu Ming, this is Daoist Li, the sect leader of Golden Eagle sect, from Rose City," she said. "Good Morning, Sect Leader Li," Alex greeted. The person named Li simply nodded. "So, where are your sect member, Daoist Li?" Ma Rong asked. "Oh, they are getting off the ship right now. I saw your ship earlier and came here to meet you," he said. "I see. Oh, they''re there. You will probably need to make some arrangements of yourself too, so I will leave you to it," Ma Rong said and walked away. Alex felt that that was a very abrupt change in conversation, but he made no comments. Soon, they reached the gate and Ma Rong was way too recognizable to be stopped at the gate. Only after walking in did Alex ask, "why did we leave the sect leader Li like that?" "Cause he is annoying," Ma Rong said. Alex was a little surprised. "But you seemed quite happy to talk with him," he asked. "He''s not a bad guy, it seems he likes me a lot, so it gets annoying when he keeps talking. See how he literally left behind his sect members to talk to me?" Ma Rong asked. "I see," Alex said. "Come, let''s go to the hotel. The others must''ve already settled. You should get settled too," Ma Rong said. Alex walked amongst the busy street of the capital city, looking at the festival-like atmosphere with everyone moving around in the street as if they were dancing. This was much crowded than the big cities in real life. Chapter 242: Wan Lis Past "Is this a regular thing, or are there more people here due to the competition," Alex asked. "There are a little more people here due to the competition, but it''s mostly just like this," Ma Rong said. She too was a little affected by the festival-like environment but not nearly as much as Alex. Soon they reached a massive building with floors in the dozens. "Woah, that''s a tall building," Alex said. He knew there were taller buildings in real life, but had never seen any personally. Even the tv station building he had gone to with his cousin wasn''t as tall as this. Ma Rong walked in with Alex behind her. The hotel clerk did nothing when they saw the robes and stayed aside. Even if they dared to, the aura Ma Rong was sending out would scare them away. "Ah, sect leader, you are here," Second Elder was standing in the hallway with the 18 other disciples and a few more elders nearby. "You got the room?" Ma Rong asked. The second Elder shook his head, and said, "They say they need the talisman from the association I gave you." "Alright," Ma Rong said and walked up to the registration and showed the talisman. The man quickly nodded and gave them a bunch of keys. "Let''s go," Ma Rong said and was about to walk to the stairs when suddenly someone spoke up. "Oh my, Oh my. If it isn''t the sect known for getting second place in the alchemy competitions last year. What a stroke of luck that we could meet them here," someone said. Ma Rong''s face turned a little cold and a general air of hostility appeared in the other elders and disciples too. Only Wan Li and Alex were looking around the place, unknown about what was going on. "I see you successfully found the way to the hotel, Daoist Xu. It''s good to know that all those explosions haven''t left you blind," Ma Rong said. "Hah, why would they blind us?" the person named Xu asked. "Oh, it''s truly a surprise that you weren''t deafened either. I''m happy for you, Daoist Xu," Ma Rong said. The person named Xu was a short, chubby, hawk-faced cultivator wearing orange robes. He was currently seething in anger, and so were the rest of his sect members. "Ah, you must be late to go make some more explosions. I won''t stop you," Ma Rong said and left up the stair. The rest of the elders and disciples did the same as well. The Daoist Xu remained behind, fuming at the fact that he didn''t get the last word in. Alex walked up to Ma Rong and asked, "Who''s that?" "Xu Beng, sect leader of the Spring Song Sect," Ma Rong said. "Ah, that sect that makes the explosive pills? Those were annoying to fight against," Alex said. "Yeah, they are one of the best alchemy sects in the Crimson Empire," Ma Rong said. There was a hint of annoyance in her voice. "What''s their grade? Are they better than us too?" Alex asked. "They are around the same level as us in terms of Alchemy achievements. But they were created before us so they are already a first-grade sect. Since we are so close to each other in prowess, we have a deep-rooted history of the rivalry." Ma Rong didn''t seem as angry when she talked about this aspect of their relationship. "Also, they said we were the second-best in last year''s exam. Does that mean that we didn''t do very well?" He asked. "We did well. It''s just that they did better. However, that won''t be the same case this year. This competition, we will surely win," Ma Rong said with an eye full of determination. "What makes you say that?" Alex asked. ''It''s not just because of me right?'' he wondered. "Because this time we have you and Wan Li," Ma Rong said. "Wan Li? He wasn''t there in the last competition?" Alex asked. "No, he¡­ we made him stay behind to grieve the loss of his parents," Ma Rong said. Alex didn''t expect such reasoning. "His parents died?" he asked. "Yes. His parents were merchants that left their son at Hong Wu sect ever since he was 10 years old. He''s worked his way up to where he is for the last 9 years." "While he was here, his parents were away on their business. But then, one day during a normal caravan ride, they were targeted by bandits and were killed. We tried to find the bandits, but they got away," Ma Rong said. Alex remained quiet. ''Why is there so much death and tragedy in this game? Can no one have a normal life here?'' he wanted to shout. Alex turned back to look at Wan Li who was walking up the stairs with Fan Ruogang holding his arm. "The boy hadn''t been with his parents for so long that he didn''t know how to feel when he learned the news. Poor boy didn''t even know how to grieve. He spent his days doing nothing but preparing for the competition, holed up in his house." "He didn''t listen to any one of us, so when the time came for leaving, I made him stay behind and made sure he took care of his emotions. His grief was too much and it was eating him away inside. He just didn''t know it," Ma Rong said. "Thankfully, after the competition, Fanfan has been there with him, making him do other things aside from just alchemy, trying to take his mind off of his feelings once he was done grieving." "She has truly been a blessing for him," Ma Rong said. "I see," Alex said. He couldn''t have imagined that the bubbly girl that seemed to want to do nothing but play was actually just trying to help him. Alex started seeing both of them in a new light. Finally, he stopped looking at them as just Number 1 and Number 3 and instead thought of them as actual human beings with thought. Chapter 243: Decorations "Floor 18, this is our floor. Everyone listen up. There are about 12 rooms on this floor. That will be enough for the 23 of us. Get a partner and get yourself a room," Ma Rong said. "Also, if you want to go outside, visit the shops, you are free to do so. However, do not cause any commotion or problems. If you want something, get it, if you can''t leave. Also, don''t leave the city, and be here by 6 pm in the evening. Dismissed." She handed 1 key to the 2nd elder, kept 1 for herself, and handed the other 10 for the elders to distribute. "Yu Ming, You will stay with Wan Li," She said and went to a room that the key belonged to. Alex took a key from the elders and walked to the room. He opened the door and ¡ª "Woah," he said in surprise at the somehow traditional and yet somehow modern-looking room. The floor was all marble and yet the beds and closets had no designs on them, making them look simple. There was a window to the side, showing an amazing view of the city. Alex walked up to the room and opened the window. The room was facing south and he saw the tall trees of the southern forest far away from the wall. The door opened once more. "Oh h-hey Yu Ming, we are together for a while now, huh?" Wan Li tried to make some small talk. "Yes. I see that is the case," Alex said. Wan Li looked around and saw the two beds and asked, "Which one do you want?" "I''m fine with either. You can choose one," Alex said. "Really? Ok then, I will take this," Wan Li said and took the bed that was left of the door. "By the way, are you excited about the competitions?" Wan Li asked. "Kind of, yes. I actually don''t really know what to expect so I can''t get more excited," Alex said. "Oh. I wish I could get excited. Instead, all I feel is nervousness. I- I have never done alchemy in front of many other people. Oh god, what if I fail?" he started worrying. "Hey hey hey, you''ll do fine. You are the best disciple of our sect. What are you worrying about?" Alex asked. "But I''ve never made pills in front of others. It feels a little scary. I think I might mess up," Wan Li said. "Didn''t you make pills to pass the core exam in front of everyone?" Alex asked. For his turn, there were nearly a hundred people there, so he assumed the same would have been true for everyone. "Y-yeah, but those were elders and a few other disciples. Not the thousands of people that are going to be there tomorrow. Just the different sects alone would reach a thousand members. Add onto that the competition staff and the audience¡ª Oh god I''m getting nervous again," Wan Li said. Alex was a little surprised. He hadn''t really thought of how many people were going to be there. ''Sh*t. Thousands of people is a lot. Now I''m getting a little nervous,'' he chuckled as he thought that. "Don''t worry. It will be fine. Besides, it won''t be only you who takes part in the competition, it will be all of us. Have some faith in your teammates," Alex said. "Yeah, I guess you''re right," Wan Li calmed down a bit. "Arghh, I''m quite tired. I think I will go sleep for a while. What will you do, Brother Wan?" Alex asked. "Hmm, I think I will study for a while. Need to prepare for the competition the following days," Wan Li said. Alex smiled and went to lay down on his bed. He laid down in a sleeping position and logged out. Alex got up from his bed and checked the time. "Quite close to 8 huh, I guess I have some time. Although, when is the party happening?" he wondered and quickly freshened up before walking to the living room. What was waiting for him there was a surprise. "Woah," he said as he looked at the different decorations his cousin had put up on the house. To him, the amount of work that had to be put into this was beyond ridiculous. He quickly found his cousin in the kitchen. "Sister, you did all of this?" he asked with a look of disbelief. The decorations were truly a sight to behold for him. "Oh hey, you are awake quite late," she said. "So¡­ you like this right? I don''t really know about designing myself, but¡­ I think it looks good." Alex looked at the decorations once again and said, "I am going, to be honest¡­ I don''t really know what is good and what is not. Now that I think about it, I don''t even know what city parties are like. However, this does all look brilliant, so you can be proud of yourself, Sister." Hannah smiled after hearing the compliments. "Alright sit, I will put on some breakfast for you," Hannah said, but Alex cut her off. "Just sit and eat. I will get my own; you''ve already done too much today," Alex said and walked up to the counter. He put himself some milk and cereals and started eating. He looked around the kitchen while eating and asked, "So, when are the guests coming? It should be early now that there is no shopping involved, right?" Alex asked. "Yeah, they will come over for lunch. So we have¡­. About 3 hours or so. Enough time to cook. I''ve already put the turkey in the oven for a roast. As for the other things, we can cook an hour later," Hannah said. "Alright, I will help you. I don''t have anything to do today in-game, so I''m pretty free," Alex said. "Okay, I will need your help anyway," Hannah said with a smile. Alex soon finished his breakfast and started helping his cousin with the preparation of the different dishes for the party. Chapter 244: The Party TING TONG TING The doorbell rang at around 10 am. Alex and Hannah were in the kitchen and had just started to cook. They had finished making a few side dishes but the main dishes were still remaining. "Who is that?" Alex asked. "I¡­ don''t know. It''s barely 10 am. There''s still an hour before the guests should be arriving. I wonder who it is," Hannah said and walked to the door. She looked at the footage from outside of her door and after seeing who it was, she quickly opened the door. "Hey, Hannah!!" Sarah said with a big smile and immediately hugged her with a few bags in her hand. "Hello." Emily walked in from behind Sarah. "Hey! Why are you guys so early? Did I give the wrong time on my message?" Hannah asked. "Oh no. We thought that you guys might need some hand in getting everything ready, so we came to help," Sarah said. "Oh thank you so much. I don''t know if we need it, but a few extra hands never hurt anybody," Hannah said with a smile and looked at Emily as she said, " Thanks for coming too, Emily. Both Alex and I really appreciate it." Emily made a meek little nod and said nothing. "Haha, it was Emily''s idea to come help in the first place. I was fully ready to come on time, but she made me come help," Sarah said. "Oh," Hannah said with a surprise. Emily quickly pinched Sarah on the side, clearly not enjoying the attention. Sarah just said ''ow'' a few times and jumped to the side. "Haha, here. We brought you guys a housewarming gift," Sarah said as she handed Hannah the bags. Hannah smiled and took it as she said, "Thank you, we really appreciate the both of you coming here today. Come on in." Hannah took them inside their home. Sarah and Emily walked in and were immediately shocked at the utter size of the place. "Woah," Sarah said as she looked at the place that looked like it was meant to house a millionaire. "Damn, you guys own this place or rent it?" Sarah asked. "We rent it. My parents are from the North and Alex is from the south, so we are here temporarily for at least a while," Hannah said. "Still, this is an amazing crib. How much does it cost monthly? I assume it''s something like 4000 dollars right?" Sarah asked. Emily was a little surprised when she heard the price. Hannah gave a smug smile and said, "It costs 10,000 dollars a month." Both Sarah and Emily''s jaw dropped in surprise. "Wait wait wait, you are pulling my leg, right? We have the exact same amount of space back in our place and it costs 2000$." "I know this is better furnished and in a better building, but¡­ isn''t 10,000 dollars a lot?" Sarah asked. "Oh, that''s probably because we don''t have the same space," Hannah said. "What do you mean?" she asked. Hannah simply pointed to the staircase at the side and said, "The upper floor is ours too." "Wait? You guys are taking up 2 floors?" Sarah asked in surprise. "Yeah. Come let me show you guys," Hannah said and took them both upstairs. Alex was left alone to do all the current cooking and simply just waited for them to come down. "Damn, if that is truly what you get for rent then¡­ I can see why it would be worth it. Wow, I thought I hit the jackpot in apartments, you guys are something else," Sarah said. Emily was still silently carrying the look of shock. "Hello, Alex." Sarah and Emily made their way into the kitchen and started helping. An hour quickly passed and they managed to finish making the dishes 15 minutes before the guests were to arrive. Most of them were friends of Hannah from her classes, some were Sarah''s friends. Alex hadn''t invited anyone since he didn''t have the time to. So, the guests who arrived were all girls. Alex talked to a few of them out of courtesy, but it seemed they talked back to him out of courtesy too. He even secretly asked her once. "Sister, you don''t have a guy friend?" "I do, but I decided not to. I didn''t know who was coming, so I only brought the girls," she had said. The foods and drinks were soon distributed and Alex was simply surprised at just how much these girls drank alcohol. The party was for the release of the capsules, so they eventually ended up talking about the game. Alex sat there listening to the different things they were saying. Only one of the girls there was from the western continent but not from the crimson empire, so he couldn''t even ask her anything. In the end, after a couple of hours, the party was over and people started leaving. Soon, everyone but Sarah and Emily was gone. "You guys should return too," Hannah said. " No, we will help you with the cleanup," Sarah said. Hannah simply smiled and said nothing. She really needed the help. Soon everyone was helping with the cleanup. Alex picked up the paper plates and started stuffing them down the trash bag, Sarah vacuumed the floor, Emily cleaned the tables and furniture while Hannah washed the remaining dishes. After 15 minutes, they finally finished it and sat down in the living room to rest. "That was a nice celebration party," Sarah said. "Thank god everything went as planned," Hannah said with a laugh. "So many people kept commenting on how nice your place is haha. To be honest, I can understand their feeling. It really is a nice place," Sarah said. "Yeah, it''s a nice place. I got it with 3 of my other friends, but they all left after their studies ended. So now, only Alex and I stay here. Honestly, the extra rooms are wasted on us," Hannah said. But then, she thought of something and slowly turned and asked. "Sarah, Emily, would you guys be willing to move into the spare rooms?" Chapter 245: Delivery Alex was a little surprised that his cousin asked the two something like that without consulting him. However, he didn''t find himself opposed to the idea. "Stay here? I¡­ I don''t know if we could. It''s an amazing place, but it''s quite expensive I have to say," Sarah said. "Why would you care about that? You are making a lot right?" Hannah asked. "That¡­ is true. But still, it''s quite a lot of money," Sarah said. "Don''t worry. We will be sharing the rent. To be honest, that will help us alleviate some of the pressure too," Hannah said. "Hmm¡­ I will have to think about it for a few days. What about you, Emily?" Sarah asked. "I''m¡­ not really opposed to the idea. It''s just that I don''t think I will be able to afford the rent at all. Just 500 dollars a month is already a lot for me. 2500 is not something I can do easily," Emily said. "Alright then, I will let you guys think about that. You are always welcome," Hannah said. TING TONG TING "Huh? Did someone forget something?" Hannah said and went up to check the live footage outside her door. There were two men standing there, but they were someone she didn''t recognize at all. At first, Hannah got scared a little, but then she noticed their clothing. It was a matching uniform. "Oh, wait for a second, what time is it?" She quickly took out her phone and checked the time. It was 3 Pm. "Hey guys, my capsule is here," Hannah said. "Oh, it''s time already?" Alex said as he walked up to the door, which Hannah opened. "Hello, are you Ms. Hannah Wright?" the men asked. "Yes, that is me," Hannah said. "We have a package from Deva Corp., please sign here." Hannah quickly signed the package and 2 meters by 1 meter by half a meter cardboard package was soon hauled in by the two men. After bringing it inside, they left. "Huh? They aren''t gonna help us set up the thing?" Alex was a little surprised. "I don''t know. How are we even going to carry such a heavy thing?" Hannah worried. "Oh, you guys didn''t read the forum this morning?" Sarah asked. Alex and Hannah looked at each other in confusion. "Why? We''ve been busy with the party all morning, so I haven''t had time to check it," Hannah said. "Of course. Umm¡­ you two, try carrying it," Sarah said. Hannah didn''t know what she meant, but that was the only thing they could do, so Alex and Hannah got to either side and started grabbing the bottom of the package. "On 3 okay? 1, 2, 3" Both Alex and Hannah put massive force into picking the package. "Woah" they both screamed as they nearly lost their balance. The capsule was incredibly light. Perhaps only 30 kilograms at best. "Hahaha, that''s a nice reaction from you guys," Sarah said as she put down her phone that she was using to secretly film them. "W-Why is it so light? Did they forget the capsule?" Alex asked. "No, it''s just supposed to be that light. People have been posting about it in the forums all day long," Sarah said. "Let''s open it up here then," Alex said. Hannah quickly brought a knife from the kitchen and started cutting open the cardboard box open. Alex spread apart the cardboard flaps and revealed the capsule. "Woah," he said in surprise. All 3 of the girls came in close to check as well. "Damn, that looks better up close than in the picture," Sarah said. The capsule was a little smaller than the cardboard it came in. It had a curved cover on top and was made entirely of something that felt like both steel and metal. It was mostly white in color with the occasional gray and blue streaks of lines running across it. Alex and Hannah carried the capsule up to her room and put it in the corner of the room. "Wait, it''s so light. Won''t it fall over if I move while I''m in the game? Or even when I''m trying to get in or out of the capsule?" Hannah asked. "Oh that. Wait for a second, it should be in the box," Sarah quickly ran downstairs and came back up a minute later with a bunch of things in her hand. Some of them were wires for the capsule, but there was one thing that was a little unexpected. They were suction cups. "Take these and put them under the capsule or around the side. If you manage to grab hold of something smooth with these like the floor or the wall, you don''t have to worry about falling over at all," Sarah said. Alex quickly took the suction cups and put them under the capsule before setting them on the floor. After pushing on it a little, the suction cups got to working and the system was as rigid as if it were super glued to the place. "There are also screws in the box, but I don''t think you guys would want that," Sarah said. They put the cables in place and finally, the capsule turned on. They admired the capsule for a bit. "Should I¡­ get in?" Hannah asked the crowd. "Uhh¡­ you can get in, but we will have to leave for now. Sorry, but My capsule will be coming soon too, so we have to leave," Sarah said. "Oh, when?" Hannah asked. "Should be within the hour." "Oh, then you better hurry. Let us walk you down," Hannah said and along with Alex, took the two girls to the building door at the bottom. "Thank you so much for coming today. We will see you guys next week when the classes are back on," Hannah said. "Oh, and don''t forget to think about the proposal. We would love to have you two as roommates." "Ok, bye." After the girls left, Alex and Hannah went back to their apartment. They couldn''t wait to try out the new capsule. Chapter 246: Feature Alex and Hannah were back in the room. "Umm¡­ you wanna try it first?" Hannah asked after seeing Alex''s enchanted face. "No, sister. It''s yours, you should get in," Alex said. "Stop trying to act nice and just get in," Hannah said as she pushed him towards the capsule. Alex stopped rejecting the offer and got into the capsule. The suction cups worked very nicely and the capsule did no wobbling as expected. He slowly sat down inside and then laid inside it. It inside had its own mattress and pillow to make the players feel comfortable. It was a snug fit for him. "What do we do now?" he asked. "Um, try closing the lid? I''ll see if there are some manuals somewhere," Hannah said and left the room. Alex did as she said and lied back down before closing the lid to the capsule. As soon as he did that, his mind started feeling heavy, and soon, he logged into the game. He opened his eyes and got up from the bed back in the room inside the hotel. He had successfully logged in without any notifications from the system. He immediately put up his hands to block the intense light coming from the window. There was a loud noise right next to him. He turned around to see that Wan Li was reading his book in a very loud voice. Also, he felt like he had a massive fever right now with how hot he felt. ''Is that me or is something on fire?'' he wondered. There was also a weird smell in the air that he just couldn''t put a finger on. Wan Li seemed to have noticed him moving and very slowly lifted his head. He then said something quite incomprehensible. "O-H-H-E-Y-B-R-O-T-H-E-R-Y-U-Y-O-U-A-R-E-A-W-A-K-E." Wan Li spoke so slowly yet so loudly that Alex couldn''t really understand what he meant. Alex realized just then what actually was happening. Everything happening right now hinted that his Focus Mode was on. The bright light, the hot environment, the slowness of time, the weird smell, and the loudness of the sound we''re all the things that happened when his focus mode was active. He quickly tried to cancel his focus mode, but he couldn''t. ''Huh? What''s happening?'' he wondered. He tried to cancel the focus mode once more, but nothing was happening. Not sure what was happening, he wondered if it was a bug of the game or something. This wasn''t a normal Focus mode either. All of his senses were on another level when compared to the normal focus mode. "A-R-E-Y-O-U-O-K-A-Y-B-R-O-T-H-E-R-Y-U," Wan Li spoke once more. Alex looked at him and slowly did a gesture to inform him that it was okay. He didn''t want to tip him off that something was weird. ''Damn, maybe it really is a bug. I should leave and check it online," Alex thought and immediately logged out. He slowly opened the lid back and got out of there. Thankfully, he wasn''t disoriented or anything. He was still weirded out by the experience. Hannah walked into the room with a manual for the capsule. "Hey, why are you out? Get back in. I told you to try it out, didn''t I?" Hannah said. "Huh? Oh, I¡­ already logged in and came back out," Alex said. "Oh, so you found out how to get it working? Then you should have to spend a little more time in there," Hannah said. "I¡­ It was weird. I think the capsule has a bug in it. I can''t stop the Focus mode at all," Alex said. "Huh? A bug? Don''t tell me we have to return it back. Tsk. Let''s check the internet, maybe they have some answers," Hannah said, and quickly opened the forums. "Oh, here it is, the Bugs post. Let''s see¡­. Huh? It says that it''s not a bug though. Lemme check this link, wait for a second," Hannah said and clicked some link the comments had. "Features? Look at this, Alex. It says that the focus mode is a feature, not a bug," Hannah said. Alex quickly went and read what was written on the post. -Focus mode has been permanently added to the players who play with capsules. Players will have to learn to deactivate it, instead of activating it now.- "It''s auto from now on? That''s gonna be a problem," Alex said. His pill-making required expert precision in his timing and movement when using his Qi. With focus mode ON, it was very hard to grasp the proper timing of when to follow the recipe as his perception of time would not be correct at all. "Hmm, maybe. Or maybe it''s easy to deactivate it. You should try it out extensively when your capsule comes too," Hannah said. "Maybe," Alex said as he kept on reading. There weren''t many other in-game features worth reading and most of the features were from real life. One of the most beneficial ones he found was that if the player ever lost consciousness, they would be ejected from the game, unlike the previous times when they would just be in the game forever until they woke up, they were now force logged out. ''I wonder that will work with my sleeping issue if that even counts as a faint in the first place,'' Alex thought. "Alright, I will go back in. Since we won''t need to eat food anymore, if I don''t get out, don''t wait for me, okay?" Hannah said and went into the capsule. She closed the lid and soon logged into the game. Alex left the room and went back to his room. He couldn''t wait to have his own capsule as well. He entered the room and got on the bed. He looked at the helmet on his bed, something that he would have to store away soon. ''Ah, I probably have some explaining to do,'' He thought as he remembered his interaction with Wan Li and put on the helmet before logging back into the game. Chapter 247: City Tour Alex opened his eyes at the same place he left. The window was no longer glaring with intense lights. He couldn''t feel the hot temperature or hear the loud sounds. Wan Li seemed to have gotten back to reading his books and didn''t bother with Alex. ''This feels much better. Why would the developers have to do something so stupid like making Focus Mode permanent?'' he thought He really disliked the complete change in senses from when he was out of the game to inside the game. He stood up from his bed and looked at the time. It was around half past 3. ''Maybe I should go out and check the city,'' Alex thought. "Hey brother Wan, you want to go see the city?" Alex asked. "The city? Uh¡­ I already did it in the afternoon. You were asleep the entire time I left and came back," Wan Li said. "Oh, then I will go check it out. Is there anything good I should check?" Alex asked. "I don''t really know; we didn''t cover a very large area," Wan Li said. With the sheer scope of the city, Alex could understand why. "Alright then, I''m leaving," Alex said and walked out of the room. Wan Li was in the room, so he didn''t really care about locking the room. "Hmm¡­ Yu Ming, you are out? Are you going somewhere?" Alex saw his master walking up the staircase with a bunch of elders. "Yes, master. I was thinking of going out to visit the city," Alex said. "Where are you coming back from, master?" His master and elders didn''t look like they were coming back from a normal visit to the city. "We are coming back from the sect meeting that was held by the competition holders in the city. They gave us some more information about the upcoming competitions," Ma Rong said. "Oh, it must be something important then. Do I need to stay and listen?" Alex asked. "No, I will tell you guys later tonight. For now, just go and visit the city. Remember to not leave very far away and come back to the hotel by 6 am," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded and bowed to the elders before leaving. He walked down the 17 flight of stairs and finally left the hotel. The hotel was situated in the western quadrant of the city. He remembered the location and started walking towards the north. Along the way, he saw the general festiveness of the city. There were many people out on the streets. The vendors shouted the best they could to attract the people on the streets, while the people looked around for fun things to buy. Alex was a little overwhelmed seeing so many people in the city. When he had entered the city this morning, it was just that, morning. That couldn''t compare to the late afternoon when most people left to shop. He looked around him and saw an unnatural amount of young people in similar robes. "So many sects are here today," he thought as he looked at the myriad of different robes. He walked along the roads as he looked for more things. "That looks nifty." He would buy it. "Master might want that." He would buy it. "That should fit Senior Sister." He would buy it. "Ah, I really like that." He bought that too. The items were quite cheap and didn''t even cost a single spirit stone in total. He was buying items not very useful to normal cultivators. He saw a weapon and artifacts shop and looked at the armors on display. ''Should I buy an armor? I do need them quite a bit,'' he thought, but soon decided not to. "I should buy one at the auction house; Those are probably better," He said to himself. So, he left the place and walked to other places. He entered an area that was made for cultivators. There were places that sold cultivation methods, different techniques, formation blueprints, formation flags. Talisman inks and papers, Alchemy ingredients, pills, puppets, etc. The stuff around him was on another level. He could even feel a high cultivation base walking right past him from time to time. ''Damn, so many experts. I need to be careful here,'' Alex thought. He looked around but didn''t really see anything that was worth buying. Still, he walked into the alchemy buildings to see if they sold any new types of pills. He walked in and started looking through the glass cases that showed the different names of the pills and transparent pill bottles within. Unfortunately, nothing there caught his eyes. The pills were mostly Earth Grade pills and almost all of them were common rank pills. The True Rank pills and Heaven-grade pills were hidden in the back room probably. He wanted to buy recipes, but unfortunately, nobody sold any that he already didn''t have. ''Master must''ve already bought everything available for free in the market,'' he thought. As for the alchemy ingredients, he found a few that he didn''t have and bought them. It cost him a few spirit stones that he was willing to let go of. After finding nothing else to buy, he walked out of the alchemy building. Talisman and Artifacts didn''t really interest him. Formations, however, seemed quite¡­ intriguing. ''That formation Song Zun had¡­ it somehow used the Yang Jade to strengthen his body enough to not take damage from a sword that was being used by me. He didn''t have much attack himself, but the defense was very high.'' ''I might not be able to get the same formation for me, but¡­ there might be others that do the same thing. I will need to understand formations to even begin to understand what I have in my mind,'' Alex thought and made his way to the formations building. However, before he could even make it to the building, he saw someone coming out of the building. It was a man around the same height as him. That didn''t catch Alex''s attention, however, what did was the yellow robe he was wearing. ''Tiger Sect.'' Chapter 248: Ambition Alex looked at the man in front of him. He was a couple of years older than him, not much, and had a stoic-looking emotionless face that was cleanly shaven. The most surprising thing about him to Alex however was the orange linings on his yellow robes. ''A Core disciple? Of course, that makes sense,'' Alex thought. He didn''t remember seeing the man anywhere in the sect before, so the man shouldn''t remember him at all. ''To be fair, I didn''t see very many core disciples in the sect,'' he thought. The man looked at Alex for a single moment before ignoring him. He didn''t care about anyone else at all. He started walking down the stairs and soon went past Alex. Alex secretly checked his cultivation base and nearly missed a step of stairs in surprise. ''Holy sh*t. 3rd Mind Tempering realm? That''s nearly as strong as Senior sister. The core disciples of Tiger sect are no joke,'' Alex thought. As he turned away from the guy, a girl walked past him. "Brother wait for me, don''t walk out so fast," the girl said as she tried to catch up to the man. ''Sh*t,'' Alex thought. He quickened up his pace to hide inside, but suddenly, a hand fell onto his shoulders stopping him in place. "Hey mister, wait for a second," the girl stopped him. "Can you turn around?" she said. Ning sighed. He didn''t know if he should turn around or not. In the end, it would be more suspicious to just keep walking, so he turned around. "Can I help you with something?" he asked. "YOU!" the girl said in surprise. "I thought I recognized you, but how could it be you?" She said in surprise. She looked all over his body and asked," W-Why are you wearing this uniform? Where is your Tiger Sect uniform?" ''Sigh, Master made us go separately so that I didn''t have to face this same situation, and yet, here we are,'' he thought. He looked at the girl in front of him. The twin-tailed cheerful girl, he recognized her very well. ''She''s the First Elder''s disciple, right? She came with him to recruit me. Which mean¡­'' Alex''s eyes moved past her to the young man behind her who had stopped to see what his junior sister was doing with this man. ''Du Yuhan, Number 2 of the Tiger sect. He had finally met the second-best disciple of the Tiger sect.'' Alex looked at him a bit and thought, ''His reputation suits him.'' "Hey, I am talking to you," the girl said. "What are you doing in these robes? Who did you even come with? I didn''t see you on the ship?" "I am a disciple of the Hong Wu Sect. Is there anything wrong with me wearing these robes?" he asked. "What? What are you talking about? Did you leave the tiger sect? Is that why nobody has seen you this last week?" she asked "SuSu, what''s wrong?" Du Yuhan walked up after seeing his junior sister in a heated talk with the man. "Brother, it''s him. The disciple that defeated Huo Tu; the one master wanted to recruit but got denied," the girl named Su said. Only finally did Du Yuhan''s bother to take notice of the man in front of him. He was very far away when he checked the man''s fight on the stage back at Tiger sect, so he hadn''t got a good look at him, but now, he saw him clearly. He took notice of his clothing and asked, "Are you not part of the Tiger sect anymore?" he seemed genuinely confused as he asked the question. ''Damn him, he got straight to the point I wanted to avoid. Sigh, the master said he would reveal the next time, but I am afraid I might have to do it now. Damn, should I say it or not,'' he quickly thought and in the end decided to say that he was still part of the Tiger sect. "If you don''t want to speak, then you don''t have to say anything. If you aren''t part of the Tiger sect, I''m not going to say anything about it. Even if you are and are dressing like this for some reason, I will just ask that you don''t do anything to bring down the name of both Tiger sect and Hong Wu sect." Du Yuhan then nodded and left Alex. ''What the¡ª? I didn''t expect that at all,'' Alex thought. "Huh? Brother, are you going to leave just like that? Don''t you want to ask him how he won against Huo Tu" the girl asked. "It doesn''t matter. As long as I become the strongest, nothing else will matter," Du Yuhan said and started walking away. The girl wanted to ask Alex some more questions but quickly left behind her senior brother. Alex stood in the middle of the stairs, dumbfounded at what had just happened. ''I thought the First Elder wanted to recruit me, so I assumed he would be the same type to either get me on his side or get rid of me in case I turn into an opposition in the future.'' ''However, he seems nothing like that. He¡­ just wants to become strong huh? I can''t help but admire his resolve. The strongest, as long as I become one, nothing else will matter.'' Alex replayed the man''s words in his mind. "One doesn''t simply become the second greatest disciple of a nearly 1st-grade sect without having an ambition huh?" Alex thought. "What about me? Do I have any ambition?" he started thinking. He had wanted to see the city from early on, which he fulfilled. He wanted to earn money; he fulfilled that as well. Now, the next thing he wanted to do was¡­ "I want to explore the world. I want to see The desert, the ocean, the frozen lands, the giant jungles, the volcanoes. But I can''t do that unless I¡­ I cannot do that until I become strong as well." Chapter 249: Frivolous Purchases Alex walks into the building with the different formation items. Only after entering did he realize that he didn''t know the first thing about formation. He realized that what he knew about formations from the books and hearsay didn''t even crack the surface. There were items around him that he didn''t even know the use for. People were talking about stuff he didn''t understand at all. ''Damn, I thought knowing that it was just putting flags and items in a specific order was all it was, but it seems even they themselves are very specific. This is not any less extensive than alchemy, huh,'' he thought. ''Still, I need to buy at least the most basic formation blueprint and required items. I want to start learning with it,'' He thought. Although, learning both Alchemy and formations might have him spreading himself too thin, but he had planned to focus on Alchemy more than Formations, so that should be fine. He bought a basic formation blueprint called the Qi Gathering formation. It was a common rank formation that gathered Qi from 5 spirit stones in 5 points of the formations and gathered it all at the center of it. It was a common rank formation that would be about 2 meters in radius at most. ''This should be a good starting point,'' Alex thought. ''I should go learn some better formation books from the library here in the capital in the following days.'' After getting what he wanted, Alex walked out of the building. He looked around at the other buildings and thought, ''Now that I''m already here, it will be a waste to not visit the other buildings right?'' he thought. He went to the talisman building and bought himself a few pairs of communication talismans that could work up to 2 kilometers away. These talismans came in pairs and were always linked to one another. ''Shame it''s not like a smartphone. I will have to take one for each contact,'' Alex thought. He then walked to the Weapons and Artifact building. He surprisingly found that there were a lot of things to buy here. "Oh wow, these storage bags allow so much extra space. I should buy a few," he thought as he looked at the various storage bags in the sale. They ranged from the ones he currently had to ones that had nearly 20 times as much space. Although, those cost a lot. So, Alex only bought around 5 storage bags that were about 5 times larger in storage capacity. These would help him hold a lot more items in fewer bags. He wouldn''t have to carry around nearly 10 different bags as he did right now. He was also surprised when he found disposable cauldrons. These were much worse than the ones in Alchemy hall, and that was perfect for Alex who was looking to make random pills that might explode at a moment''s notice. They were also incredibly cheap, so he bought around 100 of these. He wasn''t sure if that was enough or nor however. The next thing he did was buy a Common Mortal grade sword and armor. They weren''t cheap but were cheap enough for Alex who held hundreds of spirit stones. ''These should help me a bit. The sword can be used as a decoy during fights, and the armor will help deceive my enemies into thinking my defense is good because of the armor. Although, it should help increase that a bit,'' Alex thought. He wasn''t optimistic about getting an armor at the Auction house now. Especially, since he didn''t have many True Spirit stones anymore. Once he was done buying other things like boxes for alchemy ingredients and bottles for the pill, he was left with not a lot of spirit stones. ''Sigh, I might have to sell some of the pills in the auction houses,'' Alex thought. He didn''t have many pills that he had made for the purpose of selling, and the ones he did, he didn''t think were worthy of being sold. ''I might have to find a place to specifically make pills to sell,'' he thought. He remembered master talking about Alchemy guilds and halls that allowed rogue alchemists to make pills, so he would try going there someday. Once he was done with that section of the city, he took a detour back to the hotel. Along the way, he saw a restaurant for cultivators and went in to see how it was. Apparently, one could spend a little extra to go upstairs to get a premium service, but Alex didn''t care. He sat alone by a window and ordered a simple stew. It wasn''t as simple, however. With every bite, his system kept on activating to give him notifications about his body accepting the meal and its Qi. It was almost annoying at one point. The Qi was only at the 1000s though, so it was quite negligible. Still, the taste was heavenly. The vegetables in the stew were well cooked and the meat practically melted with each chew. Finally, after 15 minutes of continuous eating, he finished the meal. He paid the money and left the restaurant. Just as he was walking out, he saw a girl enter the restaurant. She was quite beautiful, but not captivating. Quite tall, but not taller than him. Lean and thin, but not anorexic. Anyone who saw her would think of her as a true beauty, But Alex didn''t. He only had a single thought, ''Have I seen her before?'' The girl quickly walked past him and he didn''t dare use spiritual sense to check her face again. So, he just forgot about it and walked back to the hotel. He bought a few casual clothes for himself along the way, before reaching the hotel a few dozen minutes before it was 6 pm. He walked up the 17 flight of stairs, wondering if a lift was even feasible in this place. Finally, he reached his room and walked in. Chapter 250: Handwriting The door was open, and Wan Li was inside still reading. ''Damn, he must be really studious. No wonder he is the best disciple in alchemy,'' Alex thought. ''I should read some more advanced knowledge in the library some next days. At the very least, I can keep them in mind while I tread for True realm,'' he thought. His next course of action was to go to the Tiger sect and fight a lot to stabilize his cultivation base and breakthrough as fast as possible. It was getting late but he had already eaten a lot at the party so he didn''t want to eat anything for the day. He couldn''t even cultivate in front of Wan Li, so he just decided to stay there doing nothing. ''Oh right, let''s manage my storage bags,'' he thought and started to quickly swap items around. He quickly filled 3 different bags with 2 different types of ingredients, two bags for common rank pill ingredients, and one bag for True rank pill ingredients. He kept the Saint Rank pill ingredients in their original bag since that was enough. He kept his weapons and armors and cauldrons all in a single old bag, and everything miscellaneous was spread around the older bags. He decided to keep the other 2 new bags for something he might end up encountering in the future. "What are you doing, brother Yu?" Wan Li asked. "Oh, I was just organizing my things," Alex said. "Ah, I thought you were just bored or something. It looked like you had nothing to do," Wan Li said. "You''re¡­ not wrong. I didn''t know what to do so I started to organize my bags," Alex said. "I see. Do you want to read my books? I have a lot of those," Wan Li said. Alex thought for a bit. He didn''t really have anything to do so he accepted. Wan Li took out a book from his storage bag and handed it to Alex. Alex sat back down on his bed, looking at the very unprofessional-looking book. ''There isn''t even a title,'' Alex thought as he opened the book. The very first page of the book was surprising for him. That was because the handwriting on the book was very bad. ''Huh? What sort of person sells a book with such bad handwriting?'' Alex wondered. He thought for a bit and a possibility struck him. "Brother Wan Li, did you by any chance write this book?" he asked. Looking at the condition of the book, that was the only thing that fit the situation. "Oh yeah. I have a not-so-great memory, so it takes time for me to learn stuff. As such, I instead write everything down on my book so that I can easily read it later on and remember it," Wan Li said. "You will hopefully learn something from it too, Brother Yu," Wan Li said with a smile. Alex was surprised. Someone actually wrote a book on their own? He couldn''t believe it. He sat back down and decided to read it despite the nearly illegible handwriting. He read for a few minutes, and soon his eyes started opening wide. The more he read, the more he would be surprised. ''What in-depth analysis. He has written everything that happens during an alchemy process down, and that is despite the fact that he doesn''t have a spiritual sense.'' ''Just how good of an alchemist would he become if he could use spiritual sense and the Eidetic memory that came after unlocking it,'' Alex thought. The book alone was evidence enough as to how much Wan Li had put in to reach the spot he was at. It was easy to see someone''s success and assume they were successful because of their luck. However, nobody saw the labor and pain that went into making a successful person. Wan Li was such. In the sect, he was revered as a disciple on a status that couldn''t be touched. But many people forgot that he was once an outer sect disciple too. He too started right where they had started. He worked hard, while others waited for their luck. Alex continued to read the book and absorb more of the information. The book was about normal common pills and the in-depth analysis of their production. They were more of an experimental log where Wan Li would make the same pills and determine why they came out different. From his perspective, it seemed that the most common causes were ingredients. The second was timing, and the third was the temperature of the flames. The better one was at controlling or choosing these things, the better a pill would be. Alex knew these things from his lesson with master and his pill-making as well. But, he had never seen such a detailed note down of the things that happened when the pills were made. ''Damn, this is comprehensive. It details everything he discovered. One does not simply become so good in alchemy huh. I am the only one who got something that helped me in alchemy. How long would it take me to reach my current level if I didn''t have the Alchemy God''s Knowledge? 10 years? 15 years?'' Alex wondered. He continued reading the book and took in as much as he could, and finally finished the book after nearly an hour. He had read as fast as he could and even then the contents in the book had taken him an hour. He walked up to Wan Li and handed the book. "Thank you, Brother Wan," Alex said. "Oh, you finished it? You want another?" Wan Li asked. "It''s okay. I will need time to absorb what I just read," Alex said. "Okay" KNOCK KNOCK "Hmm" both of them turned towards the door. "Oh god, it''s probably Fanfan. She must be coming to play," Wan Li said. Alex walked to the door to see if it was her. However, the person at the door was Fan Ruogang. "Sect Leader has called everyone to her room for a meeting," she said and left for another door. Alex turned around towards Wan Li and said, " Brother Wan, it seems it''s time for the meeting." Chapter 251: Rules 15 disciples, 7 elders, and 1 sect master were all currently standing inside Ma Rong''s room. Within 5 minutes of being summoned, everyone was gathered. Ma Rong quickly did a headcount and determined that everyone had in fact come to the room. "Alright, since everyone is here, I will start talking about the competitions. Listen up carefully," Ma Rong said. All the disciples and elders got more attentive, ready to listen to what was coming. "The different mini-competitions for the next 5 days have been revealed. For the next 4 days, meaning Sunday to Wednesday, there will be different competitions from 7 am to 12 pm in the morning. This is the time in which the different production and specialty-related competitions will take place," Ma Rong said. Alex was a little surprised when he heard that the battle would take place in the morning. ''That would leave enough time during the day to do what we want. Was that the competition holder''s plans? To allow the different sects some free time during the day?'' Alex wondered Ma Rong continued to speak after a small pause. "As for the battle-related competitions, they will take place on Friday, starting from 7 and going until as long as it is required," Ma Rong said. "Now, we don''t care about the battle competitions all. We are a production sect, so our focus will be all on Alchemy, and a few other production battles," Ma Rong said. Everyone nodded when Ma Rong said that. Alex didn''t expect them to be okay with what she had said. ''Do we even have disciples capable of taking part in the other production matches?'' he wondered. "First of all, the rules have been confirmed. Only those who are not in the True realm and under 25 in age can take part in the competitions." "There can only be 3 disciples from a sect in a single competition, and a single disciple can take part in only 3 competitions. So, we will have to carefully choose what competition to send you guys out on," Ma Rong said. "For the next 4 days, the competition has been separated into 4 themes. Sunday will be all about ingredients. Alchemy ingredients, formation flag, and ingredients, Talisman ink ingredients, etc. The exact competition hasn''t been revealed, however, so we will have to choose the participants tomorrow on the ground." "For Monday, the theme is Speed. It''s how fast you can do stuff. I assume for alchemy it will be making pills very fast, but we will have to wait until the competition is revealed." "For Tuesday, the theme is Perfection. It''s how well you can do a single task. It''s almost certainly the highest harmony for pills. But, as I said, we will wait until the competition is revealed." "For Wednesday, the theme is said to be Learning. From the way the competition holders talked about it, I assume it has to do with who can learn the fastest and use it. You might get a new recipe, technique, whatever. We will have to wait until it is fully revealed." "Thursday is a break and the normal sects will have an ample opportunity to get ready for the battle competitions next. This is until where we can do anything. Past this, the chances of us winning is almost nil," Ma Rong said. The disciples listened to the sect leader solemnly. They didn''t know if they could do good or not, but they would certainly do great. "Now, time for you newcomers to learn something. It''s the point system. The point system for the first 4 days and the last one is completely different. For battle-related competitions, the point is always fixed to the top 16 place holders." "The Winner gets 100 points. The 2nd winner gets 80. The 3rd and 4th winners get 60 points, and 5th to 8th winners get 40 points and 9th to 16th winners get 20 points," Ma Rong said. "For the production and specialty competitions, its¡­ kind of weird. You basically get points equal to 100 divided by your rank." "If you are 1st in rankings, you get 100 points. 50 for a second, 33 for a third, 25 for a fourth, 20 for a fifth, and so on. So, the higher your ranking, the better points you get," Ma Rong explained. "Now, we need exactly 523 points to get upgraded to a 1st-grade sect. That is what we will be working for. In the overall competitions, we need to get at least that many points." "Any questions?" Ma Rong asked. "Sect Leader, can''t we go by last year''s competition to figure out what this year''s competition will be?" someone asked. "No, it''s always different," Ma Rong said. "We have no way of telling." "Will there be no non-battle and non-production-related competitions?" someone else asked. "There will be. Those are considered battle-related since fights are sometimes inevitable," Ma Rong explained. Everyone else thought and found nothing else to ask. Seeing that no one had any more questions left Ma Rong dismissed everyone. "Yu Ming, wait," she said as everyone was leaving. "What is it, Master?" he asked. He wondered if she was going to tell him what competitions he was going to take part in. "Starting today, I want you to cultivate both body and Qi at the same time. Don''t stop one for the other. You can only get stronger if you can increase both body and Qi cultivation at the same time," Ma Rong said. "But, Master I can''t wake up in time if I cultivate Qi. I was thinking of skipping Qi cultivation until the end of the competitions actually," Alex said. "That won''t do. Just do as I say and cultivate both while you can," Ma Rong said. "But I can''t wa¡ª" he remembered this morning, his master was crying. She told him there was nothing wrong with him falling asleep, but explained no further. ''Does she know something?'' Alex thought. "Master, can you explain to me why I will be fine if I fall asleep while cultivating Qi," he asked. Chapter 252: Dual Cultivation Ma Rong shook a little when she heard the question. It seemed she found the question a little too hard to answer. "I can''t tell you right now. You will find out on your own someday. You naturally finding out what is happening is the best we can hope for," she said. Alex was now even more intrigued. ''What does she know? And why is she trying to hide it from me?'' he wondered. "Still, Master, I can''t go into cultivation knowing I might end up being late tomorrow. Why don''t I just cultivate body?" he said. "Don''t worry. Just go and cultivate. If nothing else, I can guarantee that you will wake up on time," Ma Rong said. "That''s a lie right, Master? There have been many times when I woke up at random times," Alex said. Ma Rong saw that the conversation was going nowhere, so she said, "If you don''t wake up on time, then it will be on me that you couldn''t take part in tomorrow''s competition. I will take the blame. Now go and do as I say." Alex finally saw that she was really serious about this. He nodded and left to his room. He sat down on his bed and started wondering. ''Why is she not telling me this? Is something wrong with me? Is this a disability? Do I have a short lifespan? What is it?'' From Ma Rong''s expression and tone of voice, he knew that it wasn''t anything good. However, he was unable to tell if it was anything bad either. He thought of many possibilities, but in the end, none of them fit the situation. ''Sigh, I guess I will do as she says,'' he thought and called out Pearl. The moment Pearl came out, he told him to stay quiet and sneaked a glance at Wan Li who was busy reading his book. Alex put Pearl into his robes and told him to start cultivating. Pearl didn''t meow once at all and started cultivating. Soon, light spilled out of his robes and numerous cuts started appearing all over his body. Wan Li accidentally caught sight of that and nearly screamed. "Brother Yu, are you okay? What happened to you?" he said, clearly concerned about his situation. He immediately brought out a bunch of pill bottles and started flipping through them to find ones that would help Alex at the moment. "Don''t worry about me, Brother Wan. This is my cultivation method. I''m fine," Alex said. "A-are you sure? You have so many cuts all over you," Wan Li said. "Yes, I am sure. Please get back to your reading," Alex said. He then thought of something and said, "I''m going to meditate now, so, please don''t bother me overnight, okay?" he asked as politely as possible. "Sure, Brother Yu," Wan Li said and got back to his studies. Alex started to meditate. He took a deep breath to start his Qi cultivation, but the pain made it hard to focus. It was nearly impossible to blank out his mind when he had to constantly keep on feeling the pain. ''Ignore the pain. You''ve felt it many times already. Ignore it,'' Alex said to himself and started focusing back on the cultivation. He ignored the pain as much as he could, but as soon as he let his mind slip away, the ignorance would slip away as well and the pain would bring him jolting back to awareness. He kept on trying to cultivate Qi many times after that, however, most of the time he would forget to ignore the pain. ''I can''t keep on doing the same thing and fail without changing my approach.'' He decided to try something else. He started to split his consciousness. His mind was capable of focusing on 10 different things at once, although it was a little difficult. 2 things were a piece of cake. He used a small part of his mind into ignoring the pain and the other big part to start meditating. He took deep breaths in and out. Soon, he was starting to feel like letting go of all control and just fall asleep. But Alex kept the ignorance in check and made sure to never let go of it. He failed to do that. In the end, he let go of the ignorance and the pain was back. Fortunately, this was enough time to fall unconscious. Alex slowly opened his eyes as pains creaked throughout his body. "OW! OW! OW!. Pearl stop," he ordered. "Meow," Pearl said as he stopped cultivating. The cuts all over his body disappeared and the body returned to its pristine state. In fact, it looked like he got a little bit stronger. "Wait, did I miss the match?" he quickly turned his eyes towards the top right to check the time. It was 6:12 am. He had woken up on time. "Woah, so master was right. But why? Damn, if only she explained to me straight and didn''t say anything convoluted like ''it''s better if you find out on your own'' sh*t," Alex thought. "Damn, isn''t it time soon for us to leave for the tournament? I must be getting really hungry outside. I will eat something fast and return back," Alex thought and quickly logged out. He freshened up quickly and went to the kitchen as fast as possible. He reheated some of the foods that remained from yesterday''s party and started eating them. ''I can''t get hungry prior to 12 pm,'' he thought and ate. After eating, he returned back to the game. Wan Li was still reading his book. "Brother Wan, I think you should get ready to leave," Alex said. Wan Li was distracted by Alex and looked up from his book. "Did you say something brother Yu?" he asked. "Aren''t you going to leave? It''s time for the competition," Alex said. "Huh?" Wan Li immediately looked towards the window and saw the morning light. "Oh, it''s already daybreak," Wan Li said. "Yes, Brother Wan. So get ready, we are leaving for the competition." Chapter 253: First day Everyone got ready and went downstairs. Once everyone was gathered, they left. Most of them were returnees, so they knew where the competition took place. The group walked for about 15 minutes, going through the busy streets of the west side of the capital, all the way to the east, where the competition was being held. Right inside the wall on the east was a massive coliseum. People stood in front of the coliseum entrance in a line encompassing a large area. They were all different people of different status, coming to watch the once in a year competition between the various sects from around the empire. They all wore clothes of different colors and types, according to the current fashion of the city they were from. There were also hundreds of different disciples with robes of myriad colors. "Will they make it in time?" Alex asked his master. "Yeah. There is still a small briefing to be done by the Royal Fu Academy to tell us about the different competitions today. These people will make it in time by then," Ma Rong said. "Royal Fu Academy?" Alex was a little confused. "Aren''t they the sect run by the royal family? Is the competition set by them too?" Alex asked. "Yes. They are the competition holders for each year. And are also the winners most of the time," Ma Rong said. "Hmm¡­ they must be a 1st-grade sect then. Oh yeah, by the way, master, how many 1st grade sects are there in the competition? Any numbers that have been revealed by now?" he asked. "There are around 12 by now. Also, there are 36 2nd grade sects and some 80 3rd grade sects that will be taking part," Ma Rong said. "Woah, that''s a lot. Won''t the competitions take too long?" Alex asked. "Don''t worry, it won''t. Most of the sects will only take part in some of the competitions, not all. Especially since their limited disciples have a limited number of times they can take part in." "I mean, just look at us. Even if we were to put a single disciple in a single competition, we would only take part in 45 of them. However, we don''t have that luxury. We will only take part in as much as it is required to get 1st grade," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded and walked into the coliseum with the nest of the sect members. They were freely allowed entry once Ma Rong showed a card. They were soon led to an open area inside the giant coliseum. As Alex and the rest walked out, they finally saw just how massive the coliseum was. ''This is bigger than most sports stadiums back in the real world, isn''t it?'' Alex thought. He hadn''t been to any, but he had seen them on TV, and this looked so much bigger. ''I could probably fit my farm in here,'' he thought. ''Although¡­ if they are going to have multiple competitions at once, won''t this space actually be really congested?'' A man got onto a temporary stage. He had a head full of white hair, all tied up in a knot, and wore a black robe with white linings. He stood in front of the hundreds of sects and started. "Good Morning everyone. My name is Fu Zhen. I welcome you all to the Annual Sect Competition. You must be pretty excited about the competition, so I will skip the actual speech for later. " "We have learned that everyone is here, so we will start the explanation for today''s competitions." "The theme of today''s competition is ingredients. It''s mostly focused on the production and specialty sects, so the competition will have to do with ingredients required in these fields." "Please look at the screen, These are the competition for today," Fu Zhen walked to the side and an image popped up behind him. There were a bunch of texts written on it. Everyone in the competition started looking at the screen and reading it. The list contained the different competitions and their descriptions as well as the time they were going to take place. ''Oh, there are 2 alchemy competitions huh,'' Alex thought in surprise. Ma Rong looked back and said, "Alright, aside from alchemy, is anyone confident in any of the other ones?" she asked. A male and female disciple spoke up from behind. "I can do the formation ingredients, sect leader," he said. "I think I can do well in the poison ingredient competition," she said. "Okay, good. As for alchemy, Fanfan and Wan Li will take part in the pill ingredients recognition, while Yu Ming and Meimei will take part in the raw ingredient recognition," Ma Rong said. Alex looked towards the screen once more. The Pill Ingredients test, according to the explanation, was where the participants would be given a mystery pill and would have to recognize the ingredients in the pill from the effects it provided. These pills were usually new common rank pills made exclusively by the royal alchemist for the competition, so there wasn''t any way for others to really know the recipe beforehand. The second ingredients test was the raw ingredients test. It didn''t mention the exact procedure of the test, but given that it dealt with ingredients, Alex was sure that he would be able to do well in the competition. "Sect Leader, I want to take part in the second test too," Fan Ruogang shouted. "No. There are only 3 competitions a participant can take part in. I want you to take part in only a single one today," Ma Rong said. "Okay," Fan Ruogang said with a dejected voice. However, her voice immediately got cheery as she said, "Let''s do well okay, Wanwan?" "Mmm," Wan Li said nothing more. Ma Rong chose the third participant for either competition. Alex didn''t really know them or care about them. Ma Rong looked back to check on the screen once more. "Since the first one is at 8, and the second one is at 11, we have ample time for preparation. Okay, let''s go register your lot in the competition." Chapter 254: Registration All the sects walked over to a room inside the coliseum. The sheer number of people in the room was enough to scare anyone away. ''Just how many cultivators are there in this room alone? And they are the best of the best too,'' Alex thought. Alex looked around and saw a lot of different people. All of them were from sects he had never heard of before. ''I only know a handful of sects, to begin with, and even amongst them, I only know Tiger sect and the Hong Wu sect by looking at them,'' he thought. He looked around and caught sight of someone. It was a lady in a red robe and was surrounded by other cultivators of her own sect. ''Ah, that''s the lady I saw in the restaurant. Her face still seems so¡­ familiar. Who is she?'' Alex wondered. He looked at her for a few more moments but could remember nothing. ''Weird, I am pretty sure I haven''t seen her before,'' he thought. Soon, he forgot about her and focused on what was happening in front of him. There were multiple stands with people in black robes noting the name of the participants and which competitions they were taking part in. It was sect wise and the 1st-grade sects got their turn first. The 12 different 1st-grade sects had disciples taking part in nearly all of the tests, so it took quite a while for Alex''s turn to come. Alex finally saw the group of disciples from the Tiger sect a bit further away getting ready for their registration. However, he didn''t see his senior sister anywhere. ''She must not be participating until the final day,'' he thought. Soon, it was Hong Wu Sect''s turn as well. There were 8 people in total taking part in the competition today, so they all walked forward. Ma Rong gave the black-robed woman working in the registration her card and soon they were ready for registering. The woman tapped on a metal ball next to her that was being kept on next to her and it sounded a small TING. "Grab the metal ball and put some Qi into it and put it back," the woman said. "Go, Meimei," Ma Rong said and Zhou Mei walked forward and grabbed the sphere. She then put some Qi into it. The sphere made no denotation of it being filled with Qi, but Zhou Mei was sure that it was. She slowly put it down on its place in the metal sheet. The woman checked the result and said, "Hmm¡­ 23-year-old, 4th realm of Meridian Tempering. tell me your name and the competition you are participating in?" "Zhou Mei, for the raw ingredient recognition test at 11 am for Alchemy," Zhou Mei said. "Alright, registered. Next," the woman said. Fan Ruogang did the same thing. She walked up and grabbed the metal ball before infusing her Qi into it. After she was done, she put it back in its place. "20 years old, 9th Organ Tempering realm. And your name and competition?" the woman asked. "Fan Ruogang for Pill ingredients competition for 8 am," Fan Ruogang said. The woman registered it and called for the next person. Alex walked forward and picked up the ball and infused his Qi into it. The metal ball glowed a little yellow, but no one noticed it. Alex put it back on the metal plate and the woman read the information with a little surprise to her voice. "18 years old, 5th Organ Tempering realm. Not bad kid, what competition are you here for?" the woman asked. "Yu Ming for Raw ingredients recognition for Alchemy. 11 AM," Alex said. Next up was Wan Li. Alex hadn''t bothered checking any of their cultivation bases yet and only went by feelings like everyone else did. Due to his rapid growth and unusual battle prowess, he still hadn''t been able to accurately measure other''s cultivation base yet. He still needed some practice. However, he could tell that Wan Li was quite weak. Or at least Alex got that impression. ''He must''ve spent the majority of his time on Alchemy.'' This was the only reason why he would be so weak in cultivation right now. Wan Li put down the sphere after infusing it with his Qi. "19 years old, M-Mind Tempering 3rd realm, what are you taking part in?" the woman asked. Alex''s eyes went wide. ''Mind Tempering realm? But I can''t feel it at all. How is he hiding his cul¡ª Ah, Master must''ve given him the book,'' Alex thought. The immortal Concealment technique was quite useful, and Alex had learned it fully. Ma Rong was still not used to it and Wan Li from the looks of it was just starting to practice it. ''No wonder he is just weak and not actually hiding his presence all the way,'' Alex thought. There was no way that the top disciple of the sect who had been in the sect for nearly 9 years was going to be so weak. Once Wan Li told the woman his competition, he walked back. The other remaining 4 members walked forward and got registered as well. However, they weren''t good enough in Alex''s eyes to hold up to Wan Li''s performance. "See, Brother Alex. I told you there would be so many people here. I''m starting to get nervous once more," Wan Li said. However, Alex didn''t bother consoling him this time. "Honestly, I am kind of nervous too. However¡­ I am confident in my abilities enough to not let this nervousness hamper my performance. You should be better than me Brother Wan, I''m sure you will do well despite the nervousness." Wan Li smiled after hearing that. "Yeah, I will do fine," he said. Once the registrations were done, Ma Rong took the group with her to dedicated seats for the sects in the coliseum''s audience. Different people were still coming in and the various sects were still getting registered. Only after 20 more minutes of patiently waiting did the people from the different sects finally arrived at their seats and the audience was fully packed. The competitions were finally going to begin. Chapter 255: Space Alex looked at the coliseum arena being set. He then looked at the schedule handing in the air and was confused. For the 8 AM schedule, there was going to be 4 different competition at once. Alchemy pill recognition, Artifact Material recognition, Talisman paper ingredients, Poisonous Material recognition. ''They are going to have 4 different competitions at once?'' he thought in surprise. ''Yeah they are is quite large, but so are the number of people. If nearly 100 people take part in each competition, how are they going to manage it on the stage?'' Alex wondered. Suddenly, something weird happened on the ground below. The arena that was a bit larger than a football field suddenly grew to two times as large, without actually increasing in size at all. "What?" Alex said in shock. A lot of other people throughout the audience were shocked a little too. Even Wan Li was shocked. "What? You guys haven''t seen it yet? Hehehe," Fan Ruogang said with a smug smile. She had been here last year as well and had seen this happening before. "Master, what is going on? Why does it look like everyone in the arena just shrunk down and the area doubled?" Alex asked. "That''s¡­ thanks to a space formation employed by the Royal Fu academy," Ma Rong said. "Space¡­ formation?" Alex said slowly trying to figure out what that meant. Before he could even come up with an answer, however, Ma Rong explained. "They basically manipulate the space inside the arena to make it larger or smaller as required," Ma Rong explained. "Manipulating space¡­" Alex couldn''t understand just how complicated this topic was. Space was something he couldn''t imagine being able to interact with, let alone touch, and yet here it was in front of him. ''Damn, this game is something else,'' he thought. Suddenly, he thought of something. He had seen space manipulation before. He had ignored it previously because it was a game, however, it seemed everything in the game was on purpose. So, maybe this one was too. "Master, is this the same thing as what they do to storage bags?" Alex asked. "Storage bags are a little different. The thing we see in front of us is people using a formation to manipulate space to stretch and shrink it was required. However, in a storage bag, it''s actually a part of space ripped directly from our world and put into the storage bags," Ma Rong said. "What? People can rip space apart?" Alex asked in shock. "Haha, no. Maybe people can, but not when making storage bags. They instead use a special formation passed throughout the ages to drag the space into a premade bag. Of course, the bag has to be made out of special materials to be able to handle space being put inside it, but I do not know how they do it," Ma Rong said. "It''s a heavily guarded secret amongst the Granite Forest sect and the Southern Sanctuary sect. We don''t know exactly what is used to make the storage bags. But we can guess that it''s probably not very expensive given how cheap storage bags are," the Second Elder said from the side. "I see," Alex said. The other disciple also nodded as they learned something new today. Fu Zhen walked up to a newly set stage and started talking. His voice seemed to be amplified as he started speaking. "Welcome to the Crimson Empire''s Annual Sect Competitions. I am going to be your main host going forward. We are truly excited to have every one of you here," he said. He went on to speak some more flowery words and told the audience about the competitions that were going to take place today. "Wan Li, Fanfan, go and get ready. Your competition is up next," Ma Rong said. It was nearly 8 AM and the competition would start at any moment. One of the elders stood up and took the three disciples to the gate. Soon the stage was separated into 4 different parts and the competitions were going to start. Disciples started gathering along the different stages and the audience waited with bated breaths. "Ah there they are, it''s starting," one of the disciples said when they saw Wan Li and Fan Ruogang walk into the coliseum arena. They walked to their respective spot where the competition was taking place. The host was a middle-aged woman for the alchemy contest and she started explaining the competition rules. "Here are the rules of this competition. Each one of you will be given a single blank talisman to write your answer into. You will be given a Pill made by the alchemists working for the Royal Alchemist. He is the founder of this current pill and it is your job to find the ingredients used to make the pill." "You only need to write as many ingredients as you can recognize. Each correct answer will award 2 points, and each incorrect answer will deduct 1 point. In the end, a half an hour later, the one with the most points wins." Suddenly, an image appeared behind the woman. "This is all the information you will get regarding the pill and what it does. At 15 minutes mark, we will also feed one of the pills to the Pill Swine, and you can look firsthand what the pill does." Someone brought out a pill swine to the stage and kept it there for later. Wan Li and Fan Ruogang waited for the pill to be handed out. "If you yourself eat the pill or were found to have cheated in any way, you will be instantly disqualified from this competition and will lose all remaining turns to participate in the upcoming competitions," the woman said. Similar explanations were going around all throughout the coliseum arena as all the different sect disciples were getting ready. Wan Li and Fan Ruogang were finally handed a pill after some time along with everyone else, and at exactly 8 am, a bell rang, announcing the commencement of the competition. Chapter 256: First Competition Wan Li and Fan Ruogang could only use 2 senses of their 5 senses to fully understand what the pill was made up of. Sight, and Smell. Everyone in the area started checking the pale yellow color of the pill. It had a size of nearly 2 centimeters in diameter. The explanation for the pill was hung up behind the woman in front of them. -The pill increases the muscle density of the human body by a certain percentage above 10% and below 25%. It increases the strength of someone''s physical body by just that amount. However, it does not increase the bone''s rigidity, so there are chances of breaking the bones due to high strength.- That was all that was written in the text. With the sight, smell, and information floating in front of them, everyone got into thinking about the potential ingredients that might be in the pills. "Woah, I don''t think I could figure out a single ingredient if I were in this competition," Alex said. "Yes, until you start making your own pill and testing them, it is hard to understand what ingredients are responsible for what in a pill." "Once you are used to it to an expert level, you can even start tailoring pills to meet your requirements. However, not many people can reach that level. I am still far off from that. The only one aside from hidden experts that can do this is the Royal Alchemist," Ma Rong said. Time slowly passed as Wan Li, Fan Ruogang and the rest started to insert their answers into the talisman. Wan Li found specs of minuscule red dots at some places in the pills when he looked closely. "Hell Chery pits?" He wondered as he went in for a sniff. Yes, this was exactly what it smelled like. So, he quickly jots down the answer. Fan Ruogang read the muscle density increasing part and thought of Red-eyed Stork tendons. There was no visual or Olfactory aspect of it to the pill, but it rarely did. So, Fan Ruogang put that in as well. Similarly, everyone else used their own experience to figure out answers. Soon, 15 minutes passed, and most people had put in what they believed were the answers. "We will now show the effects of the pill on the pill swine," the woman said and brought forth the pill swine that was brought to the front of everybody. The footage of whatever happening was all floating in giant panels in the air and the entire audience could see it. The woman took the pill and fed it to the pill swine. From Alex''s perspective, a pill swine looked no different from a normal swine, so he was curious why the pills worked for them. Once the woman fed the pill, the swine started to fidget a little, and soon people could see well-defined muscular figures appear on the swine''s body beneath its skin. The participants quickly looked at the information they could gather from this event, aside from what was already told in the explanation. The swine fidgeting, its muscle getting stronger from the feet up, its eyes turning slightly red, the amount of time taken for the change to happen, the slight increase in temperature and heartbeat they could tell from all the way back where they sat, Everything gave them the exact information they were looking for. The group started to quickly answer the questions, and by 20 minutes mark, most of them had already handed their answer. Getting a wrong answer deducted points, so many didn''t want to take the chances and stuck with what they had written. Soon, the competition was over. The group stayed where they were as they waited for the competition holders to tally the result. "The result is ready. You all did well, and some exceptionally well. The pill had exactly 17 ingredients, you people, in total, managed to figure out all of them," the woman said. "As for the result, we will now announce the top 3. The top 3 people who successfully answered the most ingredients, starting with the 3rd place is¡­" "Wan Li, from Hong Wu sect, who managed to get exactly 28 points." Wan Li''s face drooped in slight disappointment when he heard that he was in third place. "In the second place is¡­ Fan Ruogang, from Hong Wu sect as well, managed to get exactly 29 points." Fan Ruogang''s eyes opened wide when she learned that she was in 2nd place. "As for the first place, it is none other than, Huang Fu from Royal Fu Academy, who scored exactly 31 points. The rest of the results are on the board," the woman said as a ranking screen appeared behind her. "Huang Fu, is that supposed to be someone famous?" Alex asked. "Yes, he is the Royal Alchemist''s direct disciple. Considering that he got 31 points, he must''ve made a mistake on the final ingredient. What terrifying talent to know that there were exactly 17 ingredients in the pill," Ma Rong said. Alex wished he could be that great of an alchemist soon. It seemed he had to forget about everything else and focus solely on cultivating and making pills now. After returning back to the sect, he doubted he would have anything else to do, so he would have a lot of time. ''Oh, I will have to go back to the tiger sect as well. That''s gonna cause a lot of problems,'' Alex thought. He was a little worried about that. Wan Li and Fan Ruogang returned back to the seating area. "I''m sorry sect leader, I couldn''t do better," Wan Li said in a sad tone. "Are you kidding me? You only got 1 less correct than me, and I''m used to playing such games. Why do you keep talking down on yourself? She said as she patted his back a little too strongly. "She is correct. You did well, far better than I would have expected honestly. Come and sit now, the rest of the competition is continuing," Ma Rong said. Chapter 257: Rules of the Competition The competition continued as per usual. There were always two or more competitions taking place at once in the arena and people could see whichever one they wanted. "Is us being able to individually hear and understand the different competition something to do with formations?" Alex asked. "Yes. It''s a formation that only provides sounds based on which screen you are looking at," Ma Rong said. Alex focused on the competition regarding formations itself. The goal of this competition was for the participants to recognize which flags belonged to which formation and gather the different materials that were used for those formations. He was in part curious about this competition in part because it had to do with formations, and in another part, because the familiar girl was taking place in it. After several minutes people started completing the competition one after another. The girl didn''t take long to gather them, but she wasn''t the fastest either. The top 3 winners were Sky soaring sect who won 1st and 3rd, and Royal Fu Academy who won 2nd place. "The Royal Fu Academy is quite terrifying, aren''t they?" Alex asked, not really looking for an answer. "They are the Royal Academy after all. A place where only the best and brightest go to. You don''t really hear its name when people talk about sects specializing in certain aspects, but make no mistake. They are amazing at every single part of cultivation," Ma Rong said. "Haha, True, True. It''s collected so many points throughout the different annual competitions that it probably has enough to go a step beyond the 1st grade too," the Third elder said from the side. Alex sat there, watching the competitions for a while longer. He saw sects that focused on poison, sects that focused on the talisman, sects that focused on music, sects that focused on artifact making. Finally, it was his turn for the competition. An elder stood up as he took him, Zhou Mei, and another disciple to an area inside the coliseum. They reached a separate room where people were made to go past a certain barrier. Alex didn''t know what was happening, but he did as everyone did and walked past it. He felt his Qi fluctuate a bit as he moved past the barrier giving him a weird feeling. "Oh, so it''s just checking my qi to see if I am taking part or not," Alex realized. They were then taken to the arena. Alex walked past a certain area, and suddenly he felt as if the world around his had expanded by a lot. The audience who were just a few dozen meters away were suddenly hundreds of meters away. ''Can I possibly get used to such a magical phenomenon?'' Alex wondered. The place they were going to take the competition in was a little different from the ones for Wan Li''s turn. The disciples were made to stand in a line with a curtain behind their backs. They were then made to give away their storage bags and store them in a box that could only be opened by them. A man wearing black robes walked up on the stage and started speaking. "Everyone, Welcome to the Ingredients Recognition Competition. I will be your host and competition holder for this competition." "I will now explain the task and the rules of this competition," the man said. "Behind every one of you is a curtain hiding a hoard of ingredients that will remain invisible to you until you cross a certain line. Once you go past the line, you will have exactly 5 seconds where you can pick an ingredient." "Each ingredient will give you points of anywhere from 10 to 1 points. How do you know which ingredient is cost what? Easy. All you have to do is look at the list of names hung in the sky when you enter the curtain." " You can only pick ingredients that are in the list. Picking up any ingredients, not on the list will result in you earning negative 5 points." "You will go 5 at a time and you will have to cross the line on my command. Speaking at any moment throughout this competition will have you immediately disqualified." "Not physically touching the ingredients, and choosing more than 1 ingredient at a single turn will have you disqualified." "Delaying to return back after the 5 seconds have passed will have you disqualified." "There are exactly 100 ingredients on the list, and the exam will end when all the ingredients on the list are gathered," the man said. Everyone nodded once they understood what the competition entailed and got in a single queue, waiting for their next turn. The ones at the front of the queue had a higher advantage than the ones at the back, but the competition holders didn''t seem as worried about that for some reason. ''There must be some level of difficulty in this exam that going first won''t give a large enough advantage,'' Alex thought. With 5 people going in every turn, Alex was in the 4th group, while Zhou Mei was in the 2nd. The last disciple was around the 11th group, but they didn''t care about that. Soon the competition started. The first 5 people walked past the curtain and no one on the other side could see what was inside. "Go," the host said and the people in the queue could hear some scurrying. After 5 seconds passed, 5 dejected young men and women walked out from behind the curtain. They weren''t allowed to speak so they couldn''t vocalize their current feelings, but if they could, they would surely say the words like ''Hard'' and ''Difficult'' for sure. Maybe some would even use the word complicated. ''It isn''t so simple after all,'' Alex thought. Next up was Zhou Mei''s group. They too went in and were given the signal to proceed. 5 seconds later, all 5 disciples came out with similar emotions on their faces. Zhou Mei was clearly frowning from the difficulty of the task. The same was the case for the 3rd group of disciples as well. Next up was Alex''s turn. Chapter 258: The 10 Ingredients Alex and 4 other young folks walked past the curtain onto the other side. 5 men stood there, who swiftly handed them an empty storage bag. "You will be using this to gather the ingredients," they told them. Alex looked in front of him and all he saw was a black barrier blocking his view from what was in front of him. He looked to the side and saw the other 4 quite nervous about the various things. The host was to the side and without wasting a single moment he told them to go. Alex activated Focus Mode. Time slowed down as all of his senses amplified to another level. Alex walked in with all of the rest, waiting to see what was in there that made everyone so worried. The moment he entered, 2 things became clearly visible for him. The first was the list that was hanging in the air, and the second was the ingredients laid out in front of him. The list had exactly 10 groups inside of them, each group consisting of 10 ingredients. The groups were separated into points where the first group of ingredients won them 10 points, the second 9 points, all the way down to the last which earned them 1 point. This was a little overwhelming to remember at just 5 seconds, but not as much as what the others were. On a large surface in front of them were nearly 1000 different ingredients, all laid down randomly. The entire front of him lit up as thousands of names started popping up. The number was so much that even he was easily overwhelmed. ''I could use my spiritual sense to easily check through it all individually, but it seems I will have to wait until my next turn to do so,'' he thought. The 5 seconds were over. All 5 of them walked back to the end of the queue. The other 4 were currently frowning as they didn''t even know where to begin with finding the ingredients, while only Alex was the first person without a single negative emotion. He was overwhelmed when he saw so many names for sure, but now that he had time, he could slowly digest it and see where everything was. ''I am sure I can actually afford to waste next turn too,'' Alex thought. His first course of action was remembering all the 10 ingredients that would earn him 10 points. He recollected all of his memory from the few seconds worth of massive information that was in his head. He first remembered the list of 10 ingredients. [Blue Spirit Lotus] [Dizzying Daffodil] [Fire Ox''s Tendons] [Spirit Cows Milk] [Tear Bearing Plant] [Demon Faced Leaf] [Solar Tree''s Apricot] [Midnight Fox''s Blood Essence] [Crying Deer''s Tears] [Earth Chrysanthemum''s Bud] These were the 10 ingredients that in total got a person 100 points. If the other participants were anything but bad, they would definitely go for these ingredients. They would do their best to remember the names from this list and look for it on every turn they got. Alex thankfully was all done with remembering the names, he was now looking for the ingredients among the 1000 ingredients that were laid there. It took him a while to remember where exactly the ingredients were and which ones were the easiest to find. He would target the easy ones first. ''I will focus on those 10 for now and then move on to 9 points and 8 points and so on,'' he thought. He didn''t know if he could get all 10 turns to gather the 10 ingredients or not, but he planned on making the best of what he would be given. Soon, it was his turn to gather again. He walked into the curtain and stood in front of the dark barrier once more. ''I wonder if I could see what is beyond here if I used my spiritual sense,'' he wondered. He wasn''t stupid enough to use it here however though. Considering how many different people were in the audience, having a single powerhouse who took interest in a self tempering realm brat that could use Spiritual sense could end up being a dangerous situation. "GO," the host gave them the signal to enter. Alex removed all sorts of thoughts from his mind as he entered the barrier and immediately ran to the group of ingredients and grabbed an ingredient directly without hesitation and put it in his storage bag. He had got the Solar Tree''s Apricot. ''That''s 10 points for me,'' he thought and looked at the list of ingredients above him once more before returning. Alex returned back to the queue with no worry on his face while the 4 other people besides him were still frowning. This was especially increased when they saw Alex actually choosing an ingredient on his 2nd try alone. He looked upon the list of ingredients that were in this mind from the recent most viewing and smiled as he realized not a single one of the ingredients were taken yet. He wasn''t sure how long it would last, but he would wish for it to last as long as it could. The queue was so long that it would take him another 3 minutes before it was his turn again. During this time, he made sure to revise this plan again. He had taken the apricot, so he planned on taking another one of the easy to get ingredients. ''I should try and get the Tear Bearing plant. It''s one of the biggest ingredients in there and quite easy to recognize in a single glance,'' Alex thought. He planned on how to get some of the other ingredients as well. All in all, he now knew exactly where all the 9 remaining ingredients were and exactly how he could get them. Soon, it was his turn to go in again. He walked up to the curtain and entered it, standing in front of the barrier. The other seemed troubled, but not him. Alex simply waited for the host to give him the go-to enter. Chapter 259: Results With a single gesture from the host and the word ''go'', Alex and the other 4 people entered the dark barrier once more. While the other 4 stayed behind to remember the list and the ingredients in front of them one more time, Alex went ahead and gathered the Plant. ''That''s two down,'' he thought and looked at the list of ingredients. He was slightly shocked. He returned back to the queue along with the other 4 people. ''So, someone managed to grab an ingredient from the 7''s list huh?'' he thought. When he checked the list just now, he saw that there were two names that had been grayed out from the list. The first was the apricot that he had gotten the turn prior, and another one was an ingredient from the group that earned one 7 points. ''The ingredients are going to get taken away faster now that we are coming up on the 4th turn,'' Alex thought. As expected, on his next turn, 3 more ingredients from the list were taken away. Alex grabbed the Demon-Faced Leaf and walked out. On his 5th turn, he grabbed the Spirit Cow''s Milk. By now, around 20 items out of the 100 were taken. This was just going to get snowballed and soon, there would be no more ingredients left to gather. On the 6th turn, he walked up to the Fire Ox''s tendons and grabbed them. A few of the 4 people along with him also grabbed some of the ingredients. Alex didn''t know if they grabbed anything important or not as he would only know what was missing on the other round. He looked up at the list of the remaining ingredients and was a little surprised. Yet, he also knew it wasn''t something he needed to be surprised about. Dizzying Daffodil was grayed out of the list of names with 10 points. ''Someone got to it before me, huh? I guess it about time people start to obsess over the items with 10 points,'' he thought As of now, including the 4 10-points ingredients, there were only about 50 ingredients in total left. ''I can''t think of which ingredients to pick now. I will have to make my choice depending on what is left,'' he thought. On the 7th turn, he walked into the dark barrier and immediately looked up at the list. He saw that there were only 3 names lit up for the 10-points ingredients. Someone had taken away the Midnight Fox''s Blood Essence. Alex gave no thought to what was taken and immediately walked up to the Earth Chrysanthemum''s Bud and picked it up before walking back. ''Tsk. There are only 30 ingredients remaining,'' he thought. Everyone went through their turn and eventually, it was Alex''s turn once again. It was his 8th turn and so he walked in once more. By now he had gathered 6 ingredients in total. Given that there were nearly a hundred participants, that was one of the best results one could get. Once he was given the go, he entered the dark curtain for the 8th time and looked up at the list to check what ingredient he could go for. ''Wha?'' he was surprised. The list had very few names that actually were not grayed out. They were about 12 in total. The worst part was that all of the 10 points ingredients were taken away. ''Sh*t,'' he thought. He quickly looked over to the other list and then to the different ingredients laid out below. There weren''t many ingredients left, and he hadn''t been concentrating on the remaining ingredients at all. So, unfortunately, he had to give up on this turn. Alex returned back to the end of the queue and started remembering the position of every single ingredient there. He wouldn''t be caught off guard this time. 2 more turns passed by and Alex took a 5 point and a 3 point ingredient, earning in total 68 points. ''That should be enough to win right?'' Alex thought. He had only missed 2 of the 10 turns, so he was confident that his performance was one of if not the best today. Once all the ingredients were done and the list was fully grayed out, the host made them all hand over their storage bags for a tally. In the meanwhile, Alex and the rest of the participants took back their storage bags. Alex checked to see if anything was missing just in case and was relieved that it was all there. They waited for the results to be done for over 10 minutes, and only then did the host return back from beyond the curtain. He stood up on the stage and started speaking. "Congratulations everyone on competing in today''s competition. You guys managed to complete the task faster than we anticipated." "I am now going to announce the results." "In the third place, with 33 points, is Nan Ren from the Spring Song sect," the host said. A man dressed in the same dress as the fatty from yesterday got happy when he heard the result. "In the second place, with 42 points, is Jia Fang from Royal Fu Academy." The young lady in black robes seemed a little disappointed that she didn''t manage to obtain first place even though she believed she had gotten a good enough point in the competition. Alex didn''t even need to keep listening to know that he had won. Still, he let the host announce the result before he showed any signs of celebration. "And in the first place, with an incredible 68 points, is Yu Ming from Hong Wu sect. Congratulations to the winners. The rest of the rankings, you can see on the board behind me," the host said and got off the podium he was standing on. Alex looked at the list hovering in the air. He truly had gotten quite a lot compared to the rest of the people. With nothing else remaining, he walked back out of the arena, returning to the seating area in the coliseum. Chapter 260: Alchemy Hall of the Capital Zhou Mei looked at the list and sighed a little. She had gotten 26 points in the competition and had thus become 5th in the rankings. Normally, she would''ve been happy, but right now, she only frowned. ''How did that guy get so many points while everyone else struggled?'' she thought. It was really hard to believe that someone that was not even in the same cultivation realm as her could possibly gather so many ingredients. ''Does he have a really good mind or what?'' she wondered. She knew he was talented. Even with all the opportunities, one was given, it was impossible to reach where he was without having some talent of one''s own. But she found it difficult to accept precisely because he was given so many opportunities. She sighed and moved out of the arena along with the other nearly hundred disciples. Some of the hundred disciples were a little happy to have earned something, but most were actually sad and frustrated. It wasn''t so easy to go in, look at the list, remember it, look at the thousands of ingredients in front of them and pick one that matched the list. Even if they did remember a few, they weren''t sure if they would be gone by the next day. That was just how hard the competition was. Alex and Zhou Mei as well as the other disciple made their way to the seating area. CLAP CLAP CLAP "Congrats on the 1st place Yu Ming" "Nice job." "That''s the sect leader''s disciple for you." "No wonder she took him as her direct disciple." Alex smiled and thanked them as he walked up to and sat in his seat. "Great job Yu Ming. I knew you could do it for sure. You too MeiMei, good job on getting 5th place. That was a terribly difficult task. I doubt Fanfan could get that much, let alone Wan Li." Zhou Mei nodded when she heard Ma Rong say that, but internally she was still disappointed. Out of the top 3, she was the only one to not be in the top 3 of the competition. "Alright, let''s leave," Ma Rong said and stood up. The rest of the members stood up and started walking too. The competition was over for the day, so everyone else would be leaving soon as well. The other sects didn''t want to be stuck among the waves of the audience trying to leave the place, so they started to leave as well. Alex and the rest smoothly got out of the coliseum and went back to their hotel. "You guys can go around and roam you know? You don''t have to follow the rest of us back," Ma Rong said. Some of the disciples nodded and got out of line to leave but the rest of them followed the group back. The group walked all the way to the west of the city where they finally went to their hotel room. "Alright, everyone. The rule is the same as yesterday. Do what you want until 6 pm, by which you must be in the hotel," Ma Rong said and went to her room. Alex went to his room with Wan Li as well and made some excuse about being tired and went directly to bed before logging out. "Urghh¡­ that took a while. I am so hungry," he thought and quickly went to the kitchen to get something to eat. There was something in the refrigerator, so he simply microwaved it and ate it. It wasn''t very tasty, but he was too lazy to want to make anything on his own. After finishing his food, he went back to his room and logged in. He was now back to the game after leaving for 20 minutes. "Ughh¡­ I can''t sleep," he said as he woke up and stretched a little to give Wan Li the impression that he really did try to sleep." "Do you want to go out to the Alchemy Halls Brother Wan? I want to make some pills," he said. Wan Li thought for a few moments and said, "It''s alright brother Yu. You can go by yourself. I want to write and study what I learned today in the competition." He then took out a pen and a book and started writing on them. Alex was blown away by how incredibly hardworking the boy was. ''If only he had a mind that could keep up with that,'' he thought. Wan Li was already in the Mind Tempering realm, and that was supposed to have boosted his mental abilities quite a bit. However, if he was still such a forgetful person then¡­ ''I really want to give the poor guy one of the flowers so that he could have an eidetic memory too. But I can''t. If someone else from the sect ends up finding out that I had some, I would be in deep trouble,'' Alex thought. "Alright then, I''m leaving," Alex said and walked out of the room. He soon walked out of the hotel and started walking towards the middle of the city. The middle of the city was where the Alchemy Guild and Halls were. This was where all the different guilds and halls were, so he swiftly made his way there. He didn''t know how much it cost to make pills for around 5 hours but hoped that it didn''t cost any more than 2 true spirit stones. That was all he had left now. He finally reached the place and saw the gigantic buildings that were the different halls. There were hundreds and thousands of people going in and out of these places. Some were mortals, some were in the Self Tempering realms and some were in the True Realm. He quickly found the Alchemy hall right next to the Alchemy Guild. It was a building colored in light green and had perhaps the most number of people going in and out of it. Alex thought nothing else and directly walked into the Alchemy Hall. Chapter 261: 3 Different Pills The light green building looked big, at least from the front. Alex walked into the building''s registration hall and asked for a room for one of the many people waiting to help the customers. "Do you have an Alchemist rank?" the man at the registration asked. "Umm¡­ I can make Common Rank Earth grade pills, so Common Earth Rank I guess," Alex said. He was really confused. Neither the Hong Wu sect nor the Tiger sect ever asked for what grade pills he could make before letting him take a room. ''Is the capital different somehow?'' he wondered. "Please take out your badge then," the man said. "My¡­ Badge?" Alex asked in confusion. "You do not have a badge?" the man asked. "No, sorry. I have no idea what this badge is," Alex said. "Ah, you must be new to the city. Gaining a badge based on your achievement from the Alchemy guild can gain you certain discounts in the Alchemy Hall. If you haven''t ranked yourself yet, we will have to charge you for the full price," the man said. "Can I know what the cost will be for 5 hours?" Alex asked. "5 hours¡­ at 12¡­ will be 60 spirit stones. Are you ok with that?" the man asked. "Ah, yes. Of course," Alex said and handed 60 spirit stones to the man. The man led Alex to one of the rooms and let him go inside before locking the door from outside. "The door is now impossible to open from the outside, and can only open from the inside." "You can leave before the 5 hours are up or we will come to escort you out once the 5 hours are over," the man said. "Thank you," Alex said and turned around to look at the room. The room seemed way better than the muddy-looking rooms back in the Alchemy hall of the Hong Wu sect. He sat in front of the brilliantly glowing fire and took out his Golden jade cauldron and placed it on top of the fire. He smoothly cleared away any dirt and debris that were remaining behind them since the last time he made pills nearly a week ago. He let the cauldron heat up while he started thinking of what pills to make. ''I only want to sell these pills for the money, so I should make something that is on-demand or hard to acquire,'' he thought. He went through the list of pill recipes in his head, but only the ones that he learned in the sect. He didn''t want to introduce the ones he learned from the corpse to the market just yet. He needed to be stronger before he could freely do that. He thought for a bit and ended up thinking of exactly 3 different pills he could make. The first was a pill called the Fat Converting pill. It rapidly burned the fat of the person who ate the pill and gave them extra power for the duration of the fat conversion. The second pill was called the Element Negating Pill. This was a pill that increased the natural resistance of your body and Qi to the different elements and protected you from taking too much damage. The third and last pill was called the Rubber Body pill. This was a pill that made your entire body as flexible as rubber. It didn''t make it elastic, but the flexibility alone was something many would want. It was especially good because you could control which parts you wanted to make flexible. Given the circumstances, people would find a lot of usage for it. So, Alex prepared the ingredients and started making the pills. This was the first time he was making these pills. The Fat Converting pill was a Fire elemental pill, the Element Negating Pill was a neutral elemental pill, and the Rubber Body pill was a wood elemental pill. None of the three pills were of Metal elemental variety, so Alex was a little sad that he couldn''t guarantee a Heaven grade pill amongst these all. That would''ve sold for a lot. Still, he had some chance at making them, so he didn''t give up hope. He started with the Fat Converting pill and put the first ingredients into the cauldron. Alex started doing what the recipe told him to do. 2nd ingredient, move it around, release energy, wait for the two ingredients to react to each other, put in the next ingredient repeat. That was the formula to making all of the pills. In the middle of making the pill, Alex''''s mind started thinking of something else. ''What if I put in two ingredients at once? If I put the first and the third ingredients at the start, and somehow be able to keep them from interacting with each other, or better yet, they don''t react at all, I can easily put in the second ingredient and make them react at once,'' Alex thought. However, now was not the time to test this theory out. He quickly threw this thought to the back of his mind for when he had the time and brought his attention back to the pill at hand. He put in another ingredient and continued. By the end of 15 minutes, he was nearly done making the pill. Alex quickly started forming the pill and thankfully, the pill-splitting Qi did not appear at this moment. The pill was successfully made and he looked at it. Fat Converting Pill - 47% He was so close, and yet so far. ''I should be able to make a Heaven-grade pill soon,'' he thought. He stored the pill into a pill bottle and moved on to the next pill. For the next hour and a half, he performed alchemy exactly, 6 more times and managed to make 9 different pills. The double pill rate truly was 50% for those 6 times. As for the harmony of the pills, the worst one was a 42% pill he made in pair with another pill, and the best one was a 53% Heaven grade pill. Chapter 262: Leaving the hall Once he was done with the Fan Converting pill, Alex moved on to the next pill on the list, the Element Negating pill. The Element Negating pill was perhaps easier than the Fat Converting pill. At least, the ingredients were easier to acquire, but still, the effect of the pill was so good that having more than a few with oneself at all times wasn''t a bad idea at all. He cleaned the cauldron and put in the first ingredient. Soon a second one and a third one. Before he knew it, he had put in all the different ingredients and they were all powder by now. Finally, when it was time to form the pill, he started moving the powder and turning it into a ball shape. Suddenly, the pill-splitting qi appeared from within him. The pills were separated into two portions as two vortexes appeared above them and started sucking in the excess energy that was in the air. Very soon, all the energy was gone and the pills were formed. Alex took out the two pills and looked at them. One of the pills had 43% harmony and the other one had 44% harmony. Alex nodded to himself in satisfaction. ''I wonder if it was possible to an 87% pill if I somehow collected all the energy there and put it into the pill,'' Alex wondered. That would be a genuine achievement if he could ever do any. The higher the harmony, the harder it was to improve. Going from the beginning of heaven grade to a level of harmony to which he didn''t even know the name of was truly a dream he wanted to be true. Alas, a dream was a dream. He brought out another set of ingredients and continued to make the pills. He made exactly 7 pills in the next hour and a half. Every pill after the first one was better and the best one was a 51% harmony Heaven grade pill. He stored the 9 pills into the pill bottles and moved on to the final pill. The Rubber Body pill. He didn''t have a lot of ingredients for this one, so the remaining hour and a half he had in this room didn''t seem as necessary. He swiftly started making the pill. He focused his mind on the pill for the next hour and a half and managed to make exactly 8 pills out of the 5 sets of ingredients he owned. The worst pill he made was a 38% harmony pill. He wasn''t used to making the pill and was just starting to he ended up making some minor mistakes for the first one which lead to such a bad result. Of course, that was when compared to what he was capable of. If anyone else heard him call this pill bad, they would start searching for a shovel to dig a big enough hole on the ground that could not only fit his body but also his ego. The best Rubber Body pill he managed to make was actually the best pill he made today. It was a 55% harmony pill. A Heaven-grade pill with such high harmony would certainly earn him quite a few spirit stones. Finally, after making all the pills, he rested a bit. He looked at the time and saw that there were only a few more minutes before he had to leave. He decided to go on his own, instead of someone else''s asking. He quickly stored everything away properly and opened the door. He walked out to the registration desk and let the person know he was leaving. Once he got out of the Alchemy hall, he now had to decide if he wanted to go to the hotel or find some auction house to put up the 27 new pills he made in the last 5 hours. ''I wonder if that is enough to place me in the speed competition that will take place tomorrow,'' he wondered. But he was sure his master wouldn''t let him take part in those. ''Are the others faster than me? Maybe that is why,'' he thought. It would make sense that other people who have been making pills for nearly a decade would be much better than him. ''Sigh, whatever,'' he thought and looked at the time. It was 5:23 pm. ''Doesn''t look like there is enough time to make it to an auction house and back to the hotel. I guess I will just go back,'' he thought and left the place. He still had quite a little time so he slowly walked amidst the festival-like city and bought a few more things with what little money he had. However, he was relieved by the fact that he now had pills, especially for this reason. A few minutes before it was 6 pm, he made it back to the hotel and went to his room. Wan Li was still there, studying the new notes he had written. ''I wonder what level I would be at if I put in the same amount of work,'' he wondered. No matter how much he wanted to believe that he was hardworking, he could always tell that the game was aiding him in some way. He could already recognize all the ingredients in the world with a single glance. The recipes, no matter how convoluted, would immediately go into his head the moment he looked at them. And then, there were the double pills he could make once in every two pills. Those were all skills that boosted his starting points by a lot. While he did put in work after that, it would never be to the same level as others who had to work their way to even reach his starting point. ''Whatever, just because I didn''t have to do that, doesn''t mean I will have to look down on my hard work. While I might not have put in as much as everyone else, I did put in quite a lot,'' he thought. Thinking so made him feel quite a bit better. KNOCK KNOCK Someone was at the door once more. "Sect Leader had called everyone for another debrief." Chapter 263: Royal Family Alex and the rest were gathered in Ma Rong''s room. "Everyone, great job in today''s competition. We have managed to get exactly 210 points for the sect today. If we just manage to get 313 more, we will be easily entering the 1st-grade list," Ma Rong said. "So, tomorrow''s competition is based on speed. We can''t guarantee that there will be 2 competitions tomorrow as well just like today, so the group for tomorrow will be decided on the spot as well. But, it will definitely include you Fanfan, so be prepared." "Depending on the situation, I might or might not include Wan Li and Meimei," Ma Rong said. She didn''t even say anything about Alex, so he believed that he definitely didn''t have any chance at all. Ma Rong spoke a little longer and dismissed the group. Alex walked back to his room and logged out. He walked to the kitchen and found his cousin hungrily gulping down food. "You seem like you haven''t eaten anything in days," Alex said. Hannah simply looked at him with a guilty face. Alex was stunned, "You didn''t eat anything since the party?" he asked. "I didn''t have to. The capsule stopped all my hunger all day. I''m only eating right now because I know that my body needs it. It is so scary. You might get lost in the game for days on end now, and it won''t even be that bad since your body will conserve energy," Hannah said. Alex couldn''t help but shake his head in the thought that he might end up being the same when his capsule arrived. "Oh, that''s right. Sister, can you get up in the morning to accept my capsule at around 8 am? I will be in the coliseum looking at the competition at the time. I will log out around 12 pm and then we can take it to my room," Alex said. "Sure. That reminds me, how was the competition today? Did you take part in any?" she asked. "Of course, and your brother got first place," Alex said with a thumbs up. He quickly ate his food and returned back to the game. It was nearly 8 pm now, so the only thing he could do right now was cultivated. He sneakily took out Pearl and hid him in his robes. Soon, there was slight golden light spilling out from his robes and his body was full of cuts. He was body cultivating. He didn''t immediately go and start cultivating his Qi, however. He instead brought out the Spirit Cleansing Lily. He hadn''t used one for a while since he hadn''t cultivated his Qi properly in a while. ''Last time I did it I failed for some reason,'' he thought as he remembered to when the flower was intact with him even after he was done cultivating. ''Will the same thing happen again? Or will the spiritual sea increase this time?'' Alex wondered and finally started cultivating. It took him a while to get into the groove of ignoring the pain while trying to meditate. After a while, he succeeded, and soon, he fell into a trance and fell unconscious. Alex woke up early in the morning. His body was still full of cuts so he stopped Pearl from cultivating and checked his hand. The flower was still there. He was now sure that there was either something wrong with his body, or there was something wrong with the flower. ''Or many neither. Maybe I have just reached the limits of the flower usage and can''t use any more raw ones,'' he thought. That seemed to be the most logical answer. ''I should go to the library with master and check today or tomorrow,'' he thought. He pets Pearl from outside his robes and checked his status. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Bone Tempering 8th Realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared) ] ''It''s taking so long now,'' Alex thought. ''I should be fine giving him a monster core, right?'' He quickly took out a monster core for a Bone Tempering 9th realm beast. He didn''t dare give him one for an organ realm beast as he wasn''t sure if Pearl could fight the mental battle that started randomly appearing after the Organ Tempering realm. He quickly sent Pearl back into the tattoo and looked at the time. ''6:30 am huh? It should be right abo¡ª '' KNOCK KNOCK "It''s time to leave." Someone at the door said and left to speak to more people. Alex stood up and left the room along with Wan Li. Outside, the group of people was all ready to leave. Once everyone was out, they walked down the stairs and left the hotel. It took them around 20 minutes to reach the Coliseum on the east side of the city. The second Elder slowly walked next to Ma Rong and asked, "Sect Leader, did you see the royal family yesterday?" "No, I didn''t. Maybe they aren''t planning on coming for the first 4 days and will only arrive to watch the final combat section? After all, that is what most of the people are here for," Ma Rong said. "That sounds about right. Sigh, I guess we won''t be showing off to them at all," the second Elder said. Alex was a little curious. So he got close to Ma Rong and asked, "Master, isn''t Fu Zhen part of the royal family too?" According to Ma Rong previously, the surname Fu belonged to the royal family, and seeing that he was part of the Royal Fu Academy that managed the competition, he was surprised that the second elder still asked for another member of the royal family. "Although I don''t know the relation, Fu Zhen is definitely related to the royal family. But he isn''t considered a part of the royal family itself." "To be considered as part of the royal family you must be born as siblings to the Emperor, or cousin to the prince and princess. Any more and you aren''t considered as part of one." Chapter 264: Can Hide No Longer "Do you know how many royal family members there are?" Alex asked "Hmm¡­ The emperor has 3 siblings as far as I know, and 3 children. As for the sibling''s children, I am not sure. Although, the youngest one isn''t even married despite being very old by now. I heard he is¡­ " Ma Rong stopped. "He is what?" Alex asked. "Shh. We can''t talk about these things in the open, Disciple Yu," the second elder said. "You never know whose eyes and ears are focused on us. It''s better to take caution and not say anything." Alex was a little surprised. But from the reaction, he could guess that whatever his master was going to say about the little brother of the emperor, it definitely wasn''t going to be anything good. ''So the emperor''s brother is a bum or something?'' Alex wondered. Soon, they reached the arena in the coliseum and Fu Zhen was there to explain to them about the different competitions that would take place today too. The Alchemy competition for today was the fastest pill making. There was only a single one, so Ma Rong made Fan Ruogang, Zhou Mei, and Wan Li take part in the competition. With the top 3 of the sect taking part in the competition, they could be pretty sure that they were going to win at least some points. Alex and the rest of the group went to their seating area while Ma Rong took the three to get registered. "Ah, Yu Ming. There you are." Alex heard someone call his name. From the sound, he knew who the person calling him was, but he wasn''t sure if he should turn around to say something or not. ''I''ll get beat if I don''t say anything,'' he thought and turned around. "Hello, sister," he said. The one whole called out to him was none other than Luo Mei. "I saw your competition yesterday. Congratulations on the first place," Luo Mei said. "Thank you, sister," Alex said. There were people behind both Luo Mei and Alex, and they were all surprised. The people couldn''t understand why they were acting so close. Du Yuhan was right there too and he was paying attention to the two of them talking. "Senior Luo, do you know this guy? He was part of our sect but then he defected to Hong Wu sect," the girl named Su spoke from behind. "He was the guy that beat Huo Tu in a fight." Sounds of gasps and surprise appeared from the Tiger sect side of the group. They all knew about Huo Tu losing to an inner sect disciple, but they never expected him to be part of the Hong Wu sect. People started murmuring to themselves, wondering if Alex left the sect because he was scared of Huo Tu''s retaliation. Luo Mei frowned a little and said, "He did no such thing. Don''t try to bring down my junior brother''s name," Luo Mei said. The girl named Su was a little surprised at Luo Mei''s reaction. "Your¡­ junior brother?" she asked. Just then, the rest of the Tiger group returned from the registration place. Wen Cheng was followed by a few disciples, one of which was Meng Yun. "Hmm¡­ Yu Ming, what are you doing here? What is this crowd?" Wen Cheng asked. Alex fell into a dilemma. ''Should I say it or not?'' he thought. Wen Cheng seemed to understand his thoughts quite well, so he said, "it''s okay. I was going to tell them soon either way." "Ah, that is good then, Master," Alex said. "Huh? Master?" "Did he just say, master?" "He called the Tiger Sect''s sect leader his master." "Is he defecting to Tiger Sect now?" People on neither side of the group could understand what was going on. Wen Cheng decided to take the opportunity to explain. "This is my direct disciple, Yu Ming. He is also the direct disciple of the Hong Wu Sect''s sect leader Ma Rong," Wen Cheng announced. The amount of noise because of the confusion only increased. Ma Rong returned with the registered disciples and saw the crowd. "What''s happening here?" she asked. "Haha, Sect Leader, it seems Sect Leader Wen doesn''t plan on hiding your disciple''s relationship any longer. He''s openly explained everything," the Second Elder said. He had known about Alex''s situation since the start and had been silently looking at the situation unfold. She quickly understood the situation and decided to explain the situation. She quickly told the group how Alex was trained in part by both of them and was actually a disciple of both of the two sects. "He will return back to the Tiger sect for 2 weeks after the competition ends," Ma Rong said. "Junior brother, are you not taking part in any competitions today?" Luo Mei asked. She had seen him not with the group that was registered so she was sure of it. "No," Alex said. "Then, why don''t you come to sit with us for today? You should see how the sect does at least once in the competition," Luo Mei said. "I¡ª" Alex didn''t know what to say. He was part of Hong Wu Sect right now, so leaving the group was not something he was thinking of. "You can go with them for today. Just remember to return before we leave," Ma Rong said. Alex didn''t have anything to do for the day, so he was free to do what he wanted. "Alright, you guys have seen the drama for long enough. Go back to your own seats," Ma Rong scolded the group of people as she took them to the seating area. Alex watched them leave and turned around to go back to the seating area of the Tiger sect. He sat down next to Luo Mei who herself was seated next to Meng Yun. Wen Cheng and the rest of the elders were sitting on the seats behind and above them. The rest of the disciples were sitting on the seats that were on the same level or one step lower than the rest of them. Chapter 265: Sister The girl named Su was staring daggers at Alex. Now that it was revealed that he was the direct disciple of the sect leader, he was another obstacle most people would have to fight against once Luo Mei graduated from her Prime Disciple spot. Du Yuhan on the other hand didn''t seem to care about that for some reason. According to his perspective, he was going to be the next prime disciple regardless. "Hey, brother, what''s your name?" A guy sitting below Alex turned and asked Alex. Alex didn''t know who the disciple was, but he still answered nonetheless. "I am Yu Ming," he said. "Hmm¡­ I see. My name is Yang Ma. Nice to meet you, brother Yu," he said. The guy had a square face with no facial hair and a head full of slightly red hair. He wasn''t as tall as everyone around him and seemed quite short. Alex didn''t know what to say to the guy, but then he remembered the rankings from the Tiger sect. ''Yang Ma¡­ that''s the third rank holder in the sect,'' he thought. He quickly checked the man''s cultivation base and found that he was in the 2nd Mind Tempering realm. Based on combat alone, he was probably stronger than Wan Li. "So, Brother Yu, how did you beat that fatty Huo? You made him unconscious for 3 days from what I hear," Yang Ma asked. "I¡­" "Screw off, Yang. My junior brother doesn''t need to answer you anything," Luo Mei said from the side. Alex was a little surprised, but he decided to remain quiet. Yang Ma''s face twisted for a split second before becoming full of smiles and said, "Ah, if sister Luo doesn''t want her junior brother to have new friends, then I can''t do anything." He turned back and focused on the arena in front of him. ''That''s one fake person. He can''t even hide what he is thinking,'' Alex thought. It might have taken him a little more to realize without Luo Mei''s help, but given how blatantly hypocritical the man was, Alex would sooner or later know not to trust him or be friends with him. He turned his attention back to the arena as well and looked at the different competition floors that were getting ready. There were 3 competitions being held for the 8 am slot. An artifact-making competition, a talisman-making competition, and a formation escaping competition. Out of those 3, only the formation competition seemed to be the one that had nothing to do with production itself. That would come later on. "Make sure to pay attention to the competitions. You will a lot more from these than you can from just reading about it in some books," Luo Mei said. "Ah, I should have paid attention yesterday too then. I was too focused on my upcoming competition, and don''t really remember what happened in most of the other ones," Alex said. "Nah, yesterday was ingredients themed, so there was no reason for you to remember what happened there," Luo Mei said. Alex nodded after listening to that. "Hmm¡­ she is taking place in today''s too?" Luo Mei said softly, but Alex managed to hear it. He looked to where she was looking and saw a bunch of people walking out of the coliseum gate towards the Formation arena. Alex saw a man from the Hong Wu sect and another lady from the Tiger sect. But the one he looked at curiously, and also seemed to be Luo Mei''s target of attention was the girl that Alex found familiar. "Do you know the girl in the red robes, sister?" Alex curiously asked. "Yes," Luo Mei said. "She is my sister." Alex thought he heard wrong for a second. But once enough time passed and his brain comprehended what he had just heard, he asked, "Huh? Your sister? Now that I think about it, she really does look like you." ''No wonder I found her so familiar,'' Alex thought. "But why is she in a different sect and not Tiger sect? Also, I don''t remember you mentioning anything about a sister before," Alex said. "Our father won''t let us go to the same sect so that we both can independently grow. And since our father doesn''t have a son, whoever ends up being the strongest will take over the family once he retires from the head position," Luo Mei said. "So you will be the head of the family once your father leaves the position?" Alex asked in surprise. In his eyes, Luo Mei was a million times better and stronger than her sister. "Although, why not do it by seniority. Whoever amongst you two is old could just become the family head," Alex said. "Can''t do that. We are both of the same age, and were born on the same day," Luo Mei said. "Woah, are you guys twins?" Alex asked. "No," Luo Mei said as she shook her head. Alex was a little confused. Luo Mei smiled and continued, "She is my half-sister. We both have different mothers." "Ah, I see," Alex said. He wanted to ask some more but Luo Mei didn''t answer anything. So, he instead just watched the formation exam that was beginning. There were 10 different formation flags around the stage and the slight fog was gathering on the surface of the stage. The host explained that the purpose of the competition was to leave the stage without lifting the formation or destroying it. The formation reminded Alex of the Qi gathering formation back in the special alchemy garden place, but it was nothing like that. According to the host, the stage was going to be massively expanded on their location alone, and the contestants were all going to be randomly allocated inside. Then the Illusion formation would be started and the contestants would have to find a way to stop getting confused by the illusion formation. They would then have to leave the formation as fast as possible without getting in the way of any other participants or messing with any of the formation flags. The fastest person to escape won. Chapter 266: The Different Competitions From the audience, Alex and the rest could see the different people in the Illusory Formation randomly staring around in different directions. "Do they perhaps see something different from what we do?" Alex asked. The name Illusory told him that there would be illusions, just not what. "It''s a common rank formation, so I doubt it''s anything that impressive. It''s probably just a bunch of fog messing with their sense of direction," Luo Mei said. Alex kept watching the competition, but at some point, it started to get boring seeing the people at the same place, unmoving. Alex diverted his attention to the other competitions. The artifact-making competition was somehow the most familiar to Alex. It had a large cauldron on top of the fire, and the participants were putting in ingredients one after another. The aim of the competition was to make an artifact from the given blueprint as fast as possible. Anything above certain criteria would qualify as having been completed. The cauldrons the participants used to make artifacts were a lot larger than normal pill cauldrons as the number of materials required in making a simple artifact was must more space-consuming than the ones for simple pills. The artifact they were making was a simple shield. To make the shield, they needed to make a metal shield itself and a leather strap. Soon, some of the disciples took the molten metals and started pouring them onto a shield-shaped mold. The metal cooled down, and it took the shape of the shield. "Woah, is that how they normally make artifacts? That looks quite easy," Alex said. "Nah, normally it''s better. They use manual, physical methods to shape the molten metals. But since this is a speed test, they are willing to take the easy route out. After all, they only need to get an Earth Grade shield out of it. The people quickly finished putting on the strap and the shield was ready. They went to go show it to the host. Alex lost a little interest after learning that that was not the proper method for the artifact-making process. He changed his attention to the Talisman competition now. The talisman competition was a little different from all the rest. The disciples were on the ground, continuously mixing various ingredients on a stone slab. The creation was slowly flowing onto a small area where it was getting pooled. That was what the people were going to use as Ink for the different drawings they made. Once the inks were ready, they all took out a brush and paper and slowly started drawing onto it. "So, it''s the fastest person to make the talisman who wins right? I wonder who will draw the rune first," someone in front of Alex asked. "Hey idiot, just cheer for your fellow disciple who is taking part," someone else asked. "To be fair, they have the Royal Fu Sect, and Little Dawn sect to fight against. I doubt anyone other than those two is going to win the top 3," another person said. "Oh god, look at him. He hasn''t even finished making the ink yet. I doubt we are going to win at all," Someone else said. Alex looked at the disciple wearing the Tiger Sect''s robes and saw how slow he was. The various other disciples dipped their brush in the newly made ink and started making the runes in the paper they had. They needed to be very slow with it, or they would end up messing the entire paper and would have to start again. Also, the better the ink, the more volatile it usually was. So one needed to be extra careful when making the talismans. Disciples were soon starting to finish and one by one, they handed in their work to the host. The talisman they were made to make was one that create a burst of water when it landed on something. And the only way to show the audience who won was to use up all the different talismans. They could''ve just tested it using a talisman formation, but visual showings sit better with the onlookers. So, the host started throwing the talismans one after another towards a wooden target. As soon as the talisman landed on the wooden target, a column of water would burst out. The larger the burst, the stronger the talisman. In the end, the winner was as expected, Little Dawn sect and Royal Fu Academy. Alex could also see a few Grand Void sect names quite a bit up in the final rankings. On the Artifact side, they were on the final testing too. The shields were made to strike with continuously increasing damage and would stop once the shield couldn''t block anymore. The highest damage block that they encountered was a shield that could block normal attacks from the 3rd Organ Tempering realm. For a competition that focused on being fast, that was an excellent result for the shield. Soon the results came out for them too. As expected, the Royal Fu Academy was victorious on this field as well. The other two sects with good results were the Tranquil Union sect and the Southern Sanctuary sect. Once the two competitions were done, finally did the participants from the formation test come out as well. One after another, the disciples started walking out. Surprisingly, Luo Mei''s sister was in the top 3 this time. She seemed to be from the sect called Earth path sect. They were a famous formation sect. For her to be part of the examination while being part of a formation sect, she must''ve been very good. The other winners for the formation competitions were out as well. As expected, one of them was the Royal Fu Academy. While the other one was called the Sky Soaring sect. Soon, the host laid out the rankings and the list of the winners was for everyone to see. Alex read his senior sister''s half-sister''s listing. ''Luo Xing, so that''s her name, huh?'' Alex thought. Chapter 267: Music Alex was watching a bunch of participants makes poison on the stage. The task wasn''t a very visual task as everyone tried their best to hide their methods from the audience. All they did was mix a bunch of ingredients with each other and soon the poison would be completed. "That guy from your group is quite fast, junior brother," Luo Mei said. Alex looked at a man currently finishing the preparation of the poison. "Ah, yes. What was his name again? Tang Bao, I think. He is ranked 8th in our sect if I remember correctly. He seems to be quite adept at poison," Alex said. He hadn''t known the person''s name before today and had only learned when Ma Rong had chosen him during the registration. "He should make it into the top ten," Luo Mei said. Alex silently nodded. As expected, he finished in the 7th position. That was more than what anyone from the Hong Wu sect was expecting from a competition that was not about Alchemy. As the poison competition was ending, Meng Yun stood up and walked away with an elder. "Is sister Meng taking part in a competition too?" Alex asked. "Yes. Meng Yun is quite good with the tunes, so she is taking part in the music competition," Luo Mei said. "I see," Alex said and went back to watching the competition. There was another competition going on, one that he had never seen before, a puppet competition. The competition holders provided the puppets and the participant''s job was to refine the puppet and make it theirs the fastest. The puppets were just small mechanical rats so the competition holders didn''t lose much by handing them out. The winner of the puppet competition was someone from a sect called the Thousand Hands sect. After the puppet competition and the poison competitions were over, it was time for the music competition. Meng Yun and a bunch of other disciples got onto the state and the host started explaining the rules. As the competition was themed Speed, the participants had to play a certain piece at a fast speed while staying above a certain threshold of errors. Everyone was made to take out their instruments. Some took out drums, some took out zithers, some took out guitar-like stringed instruments. Meng Yun took out her flute that he had used against Alex''s fight. When they were given the go, everyone instantly started playing the music piece that was floating in front of them. Alex couldn''t understand what the bunch of lines floating midair meant, but it seemed the participants fully understood them. As soon as they started playing, a graph of sorts appeared on top of each of the participant''s heads letting the audience know how correct they were. Everyone aside from a few kept on fluctuating up and down on the accuracy scale, but never dropped below a threshold marked by 25%. Only a few could consistently keep it at around 40%. Meng Yun was one of them. She was very good at playing the piece as if she had learned it all her life and her average level seemed to be around 42%. "Oh wow, Mengmeng is so close to becoming a Heaven Grade musician," Luo Mei said from the side. "Heaven grade is at 50%?" Alex asked. "Yeah, it''s always the same for any profession that can check its quality in percentage. 10% is the mortal threshold, 25 is the Earth, and 50 is the Heaven. Honestly, if Mengmeng spent just a bit more time practicing her craft instead of trying to serve me, she would definitely be Heaven grade by now," Luo Mei said. "S- Serve you?" Alex was a little confused. ''Isn''t Meng Yun a player? Why would she serve senior sister?'' he thought. "Oh yeah, didn''t I mention it yet? Mengmeng is my maid. My family sent her to the sect with me to take care of me. Although it turned out that her talent was quite good, so master agreed to make her a disciple of the sect. However, she still tried to take care of me and follows me around," Luo Mei said while shaking her head. "Oh," Alex said, unable to articulate any more words. His entire view of Meng Yun came crumbling down. ''Wait, so she isn''t a player, but is just a talented NPC?'' he thought. Meng Yun was on the stage currently finishing up her piece. She was quite fast, even when compared to participants who came from genuine music sects. Finally, she finished and ended up being the first to do so. Her highest melody was around 45% and her lowest was at 38%. On average, she stayed at around 42% melody. She had passed without question. Other participants also started finishing one by one. A few of them actually had a higher melody than her, but they weren''t as fast, so they failed to get into the top 3 rankings all the same. Once the results were out, Meng Yun happily returned back to the seating area. "Congratulations Mengmeng," Luo Mei said as she stood up and went to hug her. "Good job. You got us 100 points where we weren''t expecting any," Wen Cheng said. "Congrats, sister Meng," Alex said. Other people started congratulating her too. Soon, Meng Yun was red as a beet from all the attention and quickly went to hide near Luo Mei. Alex looked back onto the stage. He had nearly missed the formation setting competition, but even after watching it, he didn''t realize what was happening. He couldn''t understand the logic as to why the participants threw their flags at the place they did. Soon, that competition was over too without Alex really knowing what took place. ''It seems watching a formation-making competition without the slightest idea on formation making is not a good idea,'' he thought. Finally, he looked back towards the Hong Wu sect''s seating area and saw that Ma Rong was missing. So were the three disciples. It was time for the pill-making competition. Chapter 268: Talent Wan Li, Zhou Mei, and Fan Ruogang all walked out of the barrier and went into the arena. Inside was a section separated entirely for pill-making. It was a similar place to the artifact-making section, and thus had small openings on the ground from where the fire was constantly burning. They walked up to their place and were given an empty storage bag. They were made to keep the pill''s ingredients in the storage bag and give all their storage bags away except the one they had provided. Everyone took their one storage bag and walked up to a random seating area. Not a single one of them was provided a pill cauldron as at this level they were all expected to have one of their own. All 3 of the disciples took out their own pill cauldrons as expected. It was hard to tell a cauldron''s grade just from looking at the visual information, but each of them at the very least held a Common Heaven grade cauldron. The information from this morning had a bit of info to get the participants ready, but the host needed to explain it in detail and to the audience. The host was the one from Alex''s last competition and he started speaking. "Ladies and gentlemen, welcome to the Fastest pill-making competition. Without delay, I will explain how this competition will work." "You each have chosen to make a pill of your own choice and have thus prepared your own ingredients. You will get one shot, one opportunity to make the pill." "You are considered to have completed the task if you make a pill and quickly run up front and put it inside any one of the pill testers that will be laid out soon." "If the harmony crosses over 25%, you will have completed the task. If not, you will have failed and will not be in the final ranking," the host said. "You will be disqualified if your ingredients burn or your cauldron explodes. You will be disqualified if you intentionally create disturbances for the other participants." "You will be disqualified if we find out that you cheated during the pill making process in any way. That is all," the host said. "Now prepare," he said. Everyone started heating their cauldron and got ready. The competition would begin the moment they put in their first ingredients. Once everyone was ready, The host gave the go. "Start." Immediately, the entire group of participants poured in their first ingredient and started constantly stirring it. Wan Li, Zhou Mei, and Fan Ruogang did the same. They now had 5 more ingredients to go. One of the methods to making a pill fast was choosing a recipe that didn''t have a lot of ingredients. The lesser ingredients there were, the faster one could complete making the pills. That was obvious. As such, all the participants had chosen a pill that required ridiculously few ingredients. The recipe that the Hong Wu sect disciples chose was a simple pill called Gorilla strength pill. It did what it was named, and gave a person the strength of a gorilla for a short burst of time. It didn''t last long and honestly wasn''t a very good pill. Most alchemists wouldn''t make this pill if possible, but this was a perfect pill for the competition. Already, people were on their second ingredients, controlling the energy coming out of it. These alchemists didn''t have spiritual sense, so they couldn''t really feel the energy, but thanks to their experience they knew it was there. Wan Li was the first to put in the third ingredient, followed by Fan Ruogang and then Zhou Mei amongst the group from Hong Wu sect. As for the other ones, the Royal Alchemist''s disciple wasn''t here, so instead there were other disciples from Royal Fu Academy, and a few disciples from the Spirit Song sect who started putting in the third ingredient. Alex was in the seating area with the Tiger sect, completely flabbergasted as to how the competition was going. "Are they good, junior brother?" Luo Mei asked. Ever since learning that Alex made Heaven-grade pills, her respect towards him and his credibility as an alchemist had shot up high in her mind. "They¡ª they are good. Very good. Much better than me actually," Alex said, still in awe at what he was seeing. "What? They are better than you," Luo Mei said in surprise. Then she slowly came close and whispered, "but you can make Heaven grade pills are they still better than you?" she asked. "No. This is a different kind of better," he said. Luo Mei was a bit confused so Alex explained. "What do you think is easier sister, making a pill with high Harmony, or low harmony?" Alex asked. "Of course, it''s high harmony," Luo Mei said. That was an obvious choice. "Yes, but that is very hard to do without proper focus and time. You need to be careful of your mistakes every single step of the way," Alex said. "That makes sense," Luo Mei said. "However, they are doing something else. They are¡­ deliberately making mistakes," Alex said. "Huh, Mistakes?" even Wen Cheng was curious now. "Yes, master. They are doing the best they can while constantly making small mistakes in their pill making that would either let them speed up some steps or skip it entirely." "Making a lot of mistakes would ruin your pills, that obvious. However, their objective isn''t to make the best pill, it is to make the fastest. As long as they can make a pill in Earth grade, they are safe. So they are deliberately making mistakes that will help them get a faster time, while still staying above 25% harmony by the end of the process." "Just the fact that they know what to do is amazing enough, but the ability to do so is something else. What they are doing requires years and years of practice, something I could not hope to replicate in the near future. As such, each and every single alchemist on that stage right now are much better than me." Chapter 269: Speed Results Listening to Alex acknowledge the alchemists on the stage made everyone in the seating area focus back on them. Alex did so too. He checked back on the competition. Wan Li was still the fastest. He had practiced pill-making so many times that he knew by instinct what he could do to save up on some time. Add onto that fact that he read up on it every single day, he was a beast of an alchemist. Zhou Mei was quite good as well. Her years of practice weren''t in vain either. She was proving her worth as the 2nd best disciple in the Hong Wu sect in front of everyone. Fan Ruogang was having a hard time keeping up. She was mostly used to making pills slowly while having fun. She didn''t like the competition aspect of pill-making. Still, since this was one, she didn''t want to lose either. The 3 disciples from the Spring Song sect seemed to be keeping up quite well as well. Soon the competition was on the last stretch as well. Everyone started putting in their final ingredients and started making the pill. The entire audience that was focused on the competition watched with bated breaths. The different sects taking part in the competition prayed that theirs be the first person to stand up. Alex watched with plenty of anticipation as well. Suddenly, there was movement. Wan Li stood up from his seat while pulling along a pill with his cauldron and ran to the pill tester. No sooner had he reached the pill tester, 3 other participants stood up at nearly the same time. They were Zhou Mei, a disciple from Royal Fu Academy and another from the eSpirit Song sect. They were all a step behind Wan Li, however, as Wan Li''s pill crossed the 25% threshold without a problem and only stopped moving once the fog on the pill tester reached 29%. The other 3 dropped in their pills on the pill tester as well and waited. Everyone had successfully managed to cross 25%, yet they didn''t realize who crossed first. They would''ve to wait for the host to give them the result. Fan Ruogang was a little late and was the third group of participants to stand up. However, she was sure that she wouldn''t get into the top 3 now. She was quite sad. Still, she hurriedly put her pill onto a pill tester and watched it go up to 26%. She had barely survived. The other participants stood up one by one and started filling the lineup of pill testers as well. Surprisingly, around 20% of them had failed to produce an Earth-grade pill. They seemed to have made a bit too many mistakes than they should have. After a while, all of them had submitted the pills and it was time to reveal the results. The host walked up to a small podium and started speaking. "Congratulations to all of you who passed. That was an amazing show of skill that I know anyone with the most simple of alchemy knowledge can appreciate." "Unfortunately, skill alone won''t help you win the competition. What will is speed, and here we have the list for the top 3 winners." " On the 3rd place, we have, from Hong Wu Sect, Zhou Mei." A round of applause appeared as Zhou Mei herself was surprised that she managed to win the competition. "On the 2nd place, we have, from Spirit Song sect, Han Long." Another applause sounded as Han Long smiled. He seemed pretty confident about the second place even before getting it. "And in the 1st place, the winner is from Hong Wu Sect, Wan Li," The host shouted. Sounds of shouts and applause surprised Wan Li very much. He wasn''t used to having too much attention and was starting to get a little nervous. Fan Ruogang took the opportunity to jump on both Wan Li and Zhou Mei and hugged them as she congratulated those two. "Damn it. I wish I could be in the top 3 too, then all three of us would be in the top 3," she said. Soon they started walking back to the seating area. "I will go back now too, master," Alex said. The competition was over and their sect members would be leaving soon. "Alright. We will talk next time. You will take part in tomorrow''s competition, right? We will watch that," Wen Cheng said. "Take care, Junior brother," Luo Mei said. Alex said his goodbyes and left. Even as he left, he could see the stares from the girl named Su, and the guy called Yang Ma. Alex ignored them and walked to the Hong Wu sect''s seating. "Ah, you are back, disciple Yu. How was your time? You did watch the competition instead of talking all the time, right?" the second Elder said. The third elder snickered from the side. "Yes, second elder. I managed to see every competition quite well," Alex said. "Good. This is a very good opportunity to view all forms of production and fighting methods using by cultivators in one place. We shouldn''t miss it at all," the second elder said. Alex could see the truths in those statements. Soon, Ma Rong returned with the 3 disciples. Everyone congratulated the three of them as soon as they returned. While Wan Li had acquired 100 points, and Zhou Mei had gotten 33 points, Fan Ruogang had also managed to come at 5th place with 20 points. Together with Tang Bao who earned 14 points, they had earned a total of 167 points from simply 2 different competitions. They were now at 377 points and were 146 points away from entering the 1st grade. They all celebrated for a while. Afterward, since there was no more competition taking place, the group decided to leave first just like yesterday. Alex wasn''t against this idea at all, as he was looking forward to returning back to the hotel and logging out. His cousin should have already taken the capsule by now and he couldn''t wait to try it out himself. Chapter 270: New Capsule Not every one of the group decided to return to the hotel. Most of the disciples didn''t have anything to do, so they instead decided to split away from the sect and do their own thing for the rest of the day. The others who took part in the competitions, however, were very tired and just wanted to go back to the hotel and take some rest. As such, they walked for 15 minutes or so and returned back to the sect. Alex wasn''t tired like the others, but he was very excited, so he went to his room and immediately went to the bed. He didn''t even wait for Wan Li to enter before he simply logged out. As soon as he woke up, however, his excitement disappeared as he realized just how hungry he was. "Ah, that''s right. I haven''t eaten anything since yesterday night," he thought. He quickly freshened up and walked out of the room. There it was, in the living room, a large cuboid cardboard box. "My capsule!" Alex said in awe. "Look at you. You look like a kid who just walked into a candy shop," Hannah said from the side. She had been staying there waiting for him to log out before they could go set up the capsule. "I feel like one," Alex said. "You want to set it up right now?" Hannah asked. Ning was about to nod when his stomach growled. He made an embarrassed smile and said, "Can I eat something first? I am famished." "Haha, alright. Come, I will get you something," She said ad prepared a meal for him. Alex ate the food like there was no tomorrow. " I really shouldn''t have skipped my meal today. This is a horrible feeling to log out to," he said. "Well, good for you, you won''t feel it anymore," Hannah said. "Ah right, the capsule," Alex said. He quickly finished his meal and walked out to the living room along with Hannah. Instead of unpacking in the living room like last time, they decided to take the whole thing to Alex''s room. His room was on the lower floor, so it was fine. They took the capsule in and started unboxing it. The capsule was the same in design with blue streaks in a while body. Alex put on the suction cups at the bottom of the capsule and set them against the wall on the far side of the room. Once everything was set up, he plugged the cables into the wall and opened the capsule. "Alright sister. You can go to your own game now. Thanks for taking this for me," Alex said. "Alright, be careful. The permanent focus mode is quite hard to get used to. Don''t panic if you can''t get used to it," Hannah said. Alex nodded and got into the capsule before closing the door. The space was quite spacious inside even though it looked very small from the outside. With his body completely free, he let it all loose and slowly let his mind drift. Before he knew it, he had logged in. He slowly stood up from his bed. The same intense senses attacking from all around him. This time, however, he was ready for it and took a deep breath before taking it all in. He let the different information attack him and simply soaked it in like a sponge. The loud sounds, the bright light, the intense smell, the weird flavor of his own saliva, the robes brushing along his skin, the slow passing of time; he let it all enter him. He closed his eyes and slowly let go of the breath. He then took in another breath and let it go as well. He started doing it over and over again. With each breath of air, he was slowly getting used to the feeling and it was starting to feel like it was going away. However, he knew what was happening was that he was getting saturated with the different information and was learning to ignore it. He learned to ignore the bright lights, he ignored the loud sounds, he ignored the smell and the taste, he ignore the feeling of the heat and the clothes in his body. The one thing he couldn''t ignore immediately was the perception of time. Human beings weren''t designed to sense such a sudden change in the speed of time and it was going to take him a while. He didn''t know how long passed in real-time, but from his internal clock, he felt like it took him half an hour before time was back to normal as well. He had managed to ignore that as well. He looked around and suddenly thought of something. Immediately, the information that he was ignoring came rushing in. The focus mode was going to be there all the time now. He was just going to have to ignore it. He listened to the sounds and movements of the staff around him. He had a hard time right now, but he felt like if he mastered it, he could instinctively choose what to ignore and what to allow in the long run. Although, that would take a long while of training. Wan Li was reading his book as usual and writing stuff to it. Alex could see that the time was normal around him once more. So, he decided to leave for now. He walked out and thought of something. ''Do I go to the auction house? Or do I go to the library to learn more?'' he thought. He went to Ma Rong''s room to see if she would be willing to visit the library with him, but she told him that she was busy and could only visit the library tomorrow. So, he decided to skip the library for today. He would now go to the auction house to sell his new pills. He walked down the 17 flight of stairs and got out of the hotel. As soon as he walked out onto the street, he was bombarded with a ton of information and he could keep a handle on the focus mode anymore. Chapter 271: A Group of Girls Large amounts of slow information started bombarding his brain. Thankfully, he had the spiritual sea, so he could handle this amount of information. The quantity of information alone broke through the focus mode he thought was under control. Out in the streets, he had to practice it again. It took him only a few minutes now, but he managed to tone down his sense. The first thing he got a handle on was Time. Once that was under his control, the others would slowly come down as well. The next two were the visual sense and the auditory sense. Being able to see and hear less was a blessing for him right now. He then took care of the feelings, taste, and smell. After that, he was back to being a regular human once again. Well, that was a lie. Even after ignoring all the senses, there was still information that would skip to him from time to time. Like the time suddenly slowing down, or sense of his skin suddenly feeling very hot under the sun. His cousin had told him it would take a while, and it looked like it was certainly going to take that long. Finally, once the focus mode was under control, Alex walked onto the street. The first thing he did was get a map of the city. It only cost him a few silver coins, and it told him the list of all the major buildings in the city. He scoured through the map and saw exactly where the auction house was. The auction house he was looking for was on the southern side of the town, a few hundred meters outside of the royal palace''s gate. ''That''s a little far away,'' he thought but still decided to go. It took him around the same time to go to as it did the coliseum. Due to the Royal palace being at the center of the city, he had to take a roundabout path. Along the way, he practiced controlling his focus mode a bit more. He was still suffering from lapses of control but was getting good overall. As he was walking through the city, he had another one of such lapses. Time suddenly slowed down, and he saw everything way too clearly down to a minute level. A group of girls, clearly gathered around the most pretty one were walking down the road. The most pretty girl was wearing a light blue robe that was thin around her snow-white arm. She had a skinny yet tall body and her short face made her look very cute. The girls around her were quite pretty too, but none could compare to her beauty. However, that was not what Alex noticed the most. The thing he noticed was actually way behind the group of girls. There was a dark shadow that would flash by from time to time, constantly following the girls. ''A stalker?'' Alex thought in surprise. The person was very fast, to the point that Alex couldn''t even see them properly, yet they were clearly stalking the group of girls. Alex felt that he needed to let the girls know. However, the person stalking was clearly very strong, so he couldn''t directly let them know, or the stalker might decide to take revenge on him. So, Alex took out the map from before and walked up to the group of girls. "Excuse me, can you help me find a place," he said. The girls seemed to want to immediately want to send him away, but the main girl spoke up first. "What is it, little brother? Where do you want to go?" she said. "Can you tell me where this place is?" he asked while randomly pointing to a place on the map. "Oh that is¡­ " the girl properly explained the direction to the location Alex had pointed to. "Ah thank you," Alex said and in the same sentence, but with a lower voice he whispered, "I just wanted to let you know that you have someone in black following you guys from behind, be careful," he said and immediately walked away. The other girls looked around in confusion trying to see who would dare follow them, but the girl in blue simply stared at Alex''s leaving figure with a hint of surprise in her eyes. A black figure suddenly dashed up next to the girl. The one who had just arrived was actually an older lady in her late 20s, who was wearing the signature black robe of the Royal Fu academy. "Your highness, are you alright? I saw that boy say something to you," the new arriver said. "Yeah, Fumi, I am alright. It''s¡­ just that boy just now actually told me that you were following me. How did he manage to see you?" the girl asked. "A boy... saw me? That is impossible your highness. I am one of the fastest guards among your guards. The young boy could not have seen me," the woman named Fumi said. "I don''t think he saw you exactly, but just your silhouette, but that too was quite surprising. Do you know who that boy is?" the girl asked. "Hmm¡­ he must be quite good if he managed to do that. As for who he is, I do not know your highness. The competition has a lot of different people come to the city. He is probably one of them. Do you want me to check on him?" the woman named Fumi said. "It''s alright. Forget about it. You can go back now," the girl said. The guard immediately disappeared and the girl went back to mingling with the other girls and going around the city. Alex had no idea what had just happened as he had finally reached the place he wanted to come to. He looked around the place and was surprised just how many auction houses there were, but for various reasons, this was the one he had chosen. He looked up at the giant nameplate on the front of the auction house that said, "Pink Cloud Auction House." Chapter 272: Han Jing The Pink Cloud Auction House was the main headquarters of the auction house of the same name back in Scarlet city. He was used to doing business with them, so he naturally came here as well. He walked up to the auction house and was stopped at the gate. "I''m sorry customer, the auction is already ongoing, we can not let you enter right now," a lady in front of the gate said. "An auction is going on already? But it''s only Monday. Don''t you have auctions only on Saturday?" Alex asked. "Normally yes. But due to the annual competition and the high number of people in the capital, the auction house performs an auction every single day for this week," the lady said. "I see. Well, I am not here for some auctions though. I am here to sell some items of my own. Am I not allowed to do that?" Alex asked. "Ah, of course, you are. Please come with me," the lady immediately took Alex with her inside the auction house. The interior of the auction house was painted pink as per its name and was uncannily the same as the one in Scarlet city. ''Did they purposefully made the auction house to be the same everywhere around?'' Alex wondered. "Please sit here, I will call someone," the lady left him in a familiar yet completely new room and went to get someone. A middle-aged man with a short, gray stubble on his face walked in. He was a little surprised to see Alex''s young face but refrained from making any hasty judgment. "This one is called Han Jing, may I know what I can call fellow Daoist?" Han Jing asked. Alex was about to give his name but refrained from it. Instead, he said, "You may refer to me as the White wolf." "May I ask what fellow Daoist is here to sell?" the person asked. Alex reached into his bag and brought out a few pill bottles that in total contained 27 pills. These were the same 3 types of pills he had made yesterday. The group consisted of a Fan Converting pill, an Energy Negating Pill, and a Rubber Body pill. Alex explained what pills he had and what they did in brief just in case the man didn''t know about it. Han Jing however was used to such pills and was made to remember them all. Still, he didn''t interrupt Alex during his explanation and simply nodded. "I hope you don''t mind if I check the pills, fellow Daoist," Han Jing said. "Sure, go ahead," Alex said. Han Jing brought out a pill tester and started testing the pills. 42%, 48%, 51%, 49%, 45%, 43%, 50%, ¡­47%, 44%, 46%, 55% After each pill he tested, Han Jing''s eyes went wider and wider, showing no signs of returning back to normal. He couldn''t believe that he was handling so many pills with above 40% harmony. There were even 5 pills with over 50% harmony, meaning they were all in the Heaven grade. This was a really high-profile customer and had he known this, he would''ve simply let Yu Fan take care of it like she always did. "F-Fellow Daoist, did you make all of these pills?" Han Jing asked. Normally, Alex would simply say yes. However, he now knew better than to trust just about anyone with such information, so he instead said, "Of course not. These pills were made by my master. She asked me to come to sell them to the auction house." "I-I see. Do you have any request or demand as to how we should sell these pills?" Han Jing asked. "Hmm¡­ Master didn''t say anything so I will leave it to Mr. Han to do with it what he likes," Alex said. "Thank you for giving me the opportunity. Let me prepare the contract," Han Jing said and immediately prepared a contract that said that the auction house was in possession of 27 pills with their individual name and harmony listed out. The contract said that the auction house would sell the pills by tomorrow and return 90% of the earnings back to ''White Wolf''. Both Alex and Han jing signed on it, and Alex walked out with the contract. Han Jing was very polite even until he reached the door and saw Alex out. As soon as Alex walked out, however, he immediately started jumping up and down. "Woohoo, I did it," he screamed. The ladies near the gate were curious and asked, "What happened brother Han? Why are you so excited?" Han Jing immediately told them about the items he had acquired which brought a round of gasps from the surrounding females. "How come someone is selling so many pills at once, of such high quality too? Was that person someone the Royal Alchemist sent?" A girl asked. "Stop talking nonsense. Those pills are trash for the Royal Alchemist. Must be some elder from one of the sects in the capital right now," Another girl said. "Still, I wonder how they made so many pills. It can''t be they made it for the simple purpose of auctioning it right?" "No way, that would be stupid. You could get much more money from taking commissions on a daily basis," another girl said. "Alright guys, enough talking. I am going to register these pills for tomorrow''s auction, and also I want to see Yu Fan''s face when she sees that I got such a good item today," Han Jing said. "Ah, brother Han, you better not. Sister Yu is used to getting way better items. You will only end up embarrassing yourself," the girls said. Han Jing got a little depressed when he heard that but quickly shook his head and walked in. He needed to quickly register the pills for the auction taking place tomorrow. Alex didn''t know what to do anymore for the day. So, he decided to just not do anything else for the day today and go back to the hotel to better adjust to the new focus mode and hopefully, master it. Chapter 273: Not Hungry Alex used the rest of the day to try and get a better grasp of the new enhanced Focus Mode. In a place with not as much information being sent to his mind, he could easily get used to it. But he knew that was wrong, so he walked up to the window and looked at the streets down below and took in the information. Slowly, over the course of the, he managed to finally get used to it. Now if he went down to the streets, he would still be bombarded with the same amount of information, but his mind was capable of ignoring all other information except for the relevant ones. He was still getting the same amounts of information, he was only processing it differently. As such, he could now have the Focus mode turned on 24/7 and not worry about it. As a result, his overall senses had gotten a lot more acute. Alex went back into the hotel and kept on practicing it more until he and Wan Li were called for the meeting in Ma Rong''s room once more. "Good job guys. You really did great in today''s competition as well. If we can keep this up for a few more matches, we will definitely enter the 1st grade," Ma Rong said, leading to a bunch of people clapping. "You three did a great job today, so for tomorrow''s competition, you guys can rest if you want to. You can take part in Wednesday''s competition for the Learning theme," Ma Rong said. "Sect Leader, I am not really that good at learning immediately so I think I will take part in tomorrow''s match. I can make a really strong pill for sure," Wan Li said from the side. "Hmm, sure. So, Meimei and Fanfan will skip tomorrow to take part in Wednesday''s competition," Ma Rong said. Both the girls nodded in agreement. "Alright, that settles it then. For tomorrow''s competition, we will have Wan Li, Yu Ming and one of you guys take place. Anyone of you wants to?" Ma Rong asked. A few raised their hands, and Ma Rong chose a girl who was 9th in the Alchemy Achievement ranking in the sect. "We are 146 points away, so I need the rest of you to join random competitions tomorrow. Even if you don''t get in the top 10, getting a few points here and there will be a lot of help," Ma Rong said. Everyone nodded, and then they were dismissed. Alex had seen Tiger sect''s point gathering system today. They had a lot of disciples that took part in every competition and got points here and there. Hong Wu Sect''s disciples weren''t that broadly gifted, so they couldn''t take part in every competition they came across. Still, Ma Rong seemed to be going for that approach just in case. ''If the disciples can take part in a few non-alchemy competitions and take the load off our back, that would be a lot of help,'' Alex thought. Everyone returned back to their own room and started cultivating. Alex too went back to his room and decided to log out. He opened his eyes and instinctively reached for the helmet, but stopped when he realized his arms couldn''t come to his head. ''Oh yeah, capsule,'' he thought and instead pushed open the lid on top. The door opened and Alex finally walked out. He looked at the time and realized that it was 7 pm. It had been about 7 hours since he had eaten anything, and yet he was nowhere near hungry. ''Damn, this is really good. I can''t feel like I lost energy while in the game at all,'' he thought. Normally, when he got out of the game, he would either feel hungry or would need to go to the bathroom. But now, he could feel neither. This was a truly advanced technology that he didn''t dare try to understand. Alex went to the bathroom to freshen up a bit and then went to the kitchen. Hannah was already there with little food on her plate. "Get yourself some food," she said and continued eating. Alex went ahead and got himself a load of food but realized that he wasn''t feeling hungry at all. ''Is this the aftereffect of the capsule usage?'' he wondered and served himself very little. It took him no time to finish eating the food, but not before Hannah was done with hers. They washed the dishes together and Alex finally returned back to the game. He went back to the capsule and opened the lid before getting back into it. He laid inside and closed his eyes and before he knew it, he was logged back in. Logging in this time was very smooth compared to the last two. While he was bombarded with the different enhanced senses, he was already used to them and could thus handle himself better. He looked around and saw that Wan Li was already focused back on his books. Alex thought about asking for something to read but decided against it. Using other people''s research to learn didn''t seem like a good idea on a topic as experimental as this. Who knew, maybe he could come up with different answers, and reading Wan Li''s notes would only stop him from taking a different approach with his experiments. Instead, he decided to simply cultivate and prepare for tomorrow''s competition. Tomorrow was the Perfect themed competition. Perhaps the most important one of all. So, he decided to waste no time. He called out Pearl and kept him in his robes. With a single word, Pearl started cultivating and numerous cuts appeared along Alex''s body. It hurt a lot more than yesterday. ''Is it because the cuts are more severe or because of my new senses?'' Alex wondered, but couldn''t come up with an answer. He then took out the Spirit Cleansing Lily. It hadn''t worked the last few times, but he wasn''t going to give up now. As such, he held the flower and slowly started cultivating. And before he knew it, he was deep asleep. Chapter 274: Third Day Alex woke up early in the morning. As soon as he was even a little awake, the several painful cuts along his body woke him up immediately. He was jolted awake and he asked Pearl to stop cultivating. Pearl let out a small ''meow'' and got up from his cultivation. By now, pearl must''ve been very strong as well. He checked Pearl''s status and saw that as expected, he was now in Bone Tempering 9th realm in cultivation. Pearl was one step away from reaching the Organ Tempering realm as well. ''Does that mean my body cultivation is at Bone Tempering 9th realm as well?'' Alex wondered. He seriously thought of going to check it at someplace in the capital today, but then remembered that he had to go to the library with his master today. That was much more important as there were a lot of things he needed to check in the library. He put Pearl back into the tattoo and looked at the time. It was 6:15 am. He then looked at his hands again and saw that the Spirit Cleansing Lily was still in his hands. ''Why can I not use it anymore?'' he wondered. This was the third time that he had cultivated with a Spirit Cleansing lily and it hadn''t worked at all. He didn''t know what was happening, so he just sighed and put the lily back into his storage bag, and logged out. He got out from the capsule and realized once more that he was neither hungry nor was he in need of the bathroom. ''Ah, this capsule is seriously going to mess with my physiology,'' he thought. He still went to the bathroom to freshen up and forced himself to each a few pieces of bread for breakfast. After that, he returned back to his game 15 minutes later. He woke up back on his bed and got up. He walked over to Wan Li who was focused on his book and told him it was time to leave. As expected, someone came to knock on the door to let them know just that. Alex smiled towards Wan Li and they both walked out of the room. After a few minutes, everyone was ready and they went down the staircase. Along the way, they met the group of Spirit Song sect, who were also going down the stair. "You guys in a hurry to go somewhere? To lose maybe?" the fatty Xu said as he showed an annoying smile towards Ma Rong. Ma Rong didn''t have any funny or clever comeback to the fatty''s words and so she simply said, "Just watch us." The fatty didn''t seem to like the serious answer and scoffed towards her but said nothing else. There was rivalry between the two groups, not animosity, and he wanted to keep it that way. The two sects were together on their way to the coliseum, and along the way, one of the Spring Song disciples came up to Wan Li and tried to strike up a conversation. Alex saw the disciple and saw that he was the second place holder for yesterday''s speed pill-making competition. ''If I remember correctly, his name was Han Long I believe,'' Alex thought. Han Long tried to talk with Wan Li, trying to ask him if he was going to participate today and if so what pill he was going to make today. Wan Li was naturally very shy and thus didn''t answer any questions at all, which the boy thought was rude. He didn''t realize that Wan Li was simply like this and he wasn''t trying to intentionally be rude towards him. He then moved on to Zhou Mei and tried to strike up a conversation, but she was naturally coded to everyone aside from the elders, Wan Li, and Fan Ruogang. Seeing that they weren''t responding, Han Long returned back to his group. "Hey, why didn''t he try to talk with me? Rude. Does he not know that I am the third-best in the sect?" Fan Ruogang said acting as if she was insulted. Everyone in the group laughed a little, including Ma Rong. "You can show them how good you are tomorrow, Fanfan," Ma Rong said. "Yes, Sect Leader," Fan Ruogang said and was back to her cheery self. Soon, they reached the coliseum and entered it. As a sect, they could directly skip the queue to enter and could go to the arena to look at today''s competitions. The host, Fu Zhen was there once more to tell them about today''s theme, Perfection. He let them know the criteria based on what the results would be set and what being perfect meant in general. In simple terms, the higher the grade of the produced product was, the better. He then showed a list of competitions for today. As expected, Alchemy''s competition was the Highest Harmony pill making. Ma Rong made a few more people take up different other competitions. While she didn''t expect much from them, she still hoped to get a few stray points here and there. However, her hope for today''s competition was still with Alex and Wan Li. "Alright, let''s go register you lot," she said and took the disciples that had taken part in some of the competition, while the rest of them went to their predetermined seating area. Along the way, he was the Tiger sect too, but the only one he knew from that group was Meng Yun, and she was too far away to strike up a conversation. Once Wan Li''s turn was done, he walked forward to the metal ball and picked it up before infusing some Qi into it. They made the participants do it every day to keep track of their turns, as well as to see if there were some random jumps in cultivation which would mean that someone was probably doing something illegal. Alex told her his name and that he was going to take part in the alchemy competition at 10 o''clock. Once everyone was registered, the group returned back to the seating area. Chapter 275: [Bonus Chapter]Artifacts Grading The first set of competitions was for Artifact making, poison making, and dancing. Alex watched from the seating area as the group of participants put in metals and different materials inside the giant cauldron and started melting them. However, unlike last time, they didn''t put all the ingredients in and instead just the bare minimum of them. Instead, once the cauldron had melted what they had put in, the participants took out the molten object and started beating them with giant hammers as they were cooling. From time to time, they would put in other ingredients and hammer it away. Once the new object was cooled, they would put it back in the cauldron and melt it once more. Then, they would take it out and start beating it with a hammer once more. As such, through a back and forth method, they used up all the materials they owned and made the perfect artifact they could. Everyone started giving their resulting product to the host, and Alex realized it would take them some time to test out the effectiveness. So, he diverted his attention to the poison-making. Poison making was very simple to grade. All the host had to do was check the effectiveness of the poisons by mixing them with a predetermined solution and the winner would be easily determined. Within a few minutes, the result was up. The winner was a disciple from a sect called the Heaven Poisoning sect, beating another participant from the Dark Forest sect by a small margin. Royal Fu academy wasn''t even in the top 5 this time around, which was surprising. Alex then looked towards the Dancing competition, however, that was over already. It was the first one to have been completed and he had missed it. So, he went back to looking at the artifact competition. The way to determine whether an artifact was good or not was a little different from grading a pill or formation or poison. Pill grades were based on the harmony of said pill, poison on the effectiveness of the poison, and formation on the efficiency of the formation. They all could have had different ranks, but that was what the grades were based on. For artifacts, however, the things were rather arbitrary. An artifact didn''t have a specific grading system and instead lied at the whims of its maker. Still, they had to follow some sort of sense because the rest of the world had the ability to set its grade as well. The creators mostly set the grade based on what the artifacts could do and how well they could do it. For example, a simple sword made using the True rank recipe. No matter how well it could be made, would still only remain a normal sword. As such, it had anything more than a mortal grade was hard to justify. Unless it could somehow suddenly cut through metals like paper, it would always have a mortal grade. In comparison, a pill cauldron made using the finest of golden jade, one that could transfer heat very well could be an Earth-grade artifact without a problem. If it was very well made, it could also be a heaven-grade artifact. As such, the grade was there to just show the value of the artifact based on its purpose. The rankings for the artifacts currently were being checked as exactly that. The artifacts were being based on their usefulness. A weapon would be graded based on how strong it was, an armor was based on how much damage it could stop, a necklace was based on what effects it had, a storage bag was based on how much storage it had, and so on. Alex simply watched the host of the artifact competition do a bunch of testing with the different artifacts, and in the end come up with the rankings. The third place was someone from the Royal Fu Academy, the second place was from the Southern Sanctuary sect, and the first place was from the Tranquil Union sect. The next set of competitions were Formation and Music. The formations were simple. Whoever could set up the highest efficiency formation would win. As for music, whoever could keep up the overall melody would win. Alex watched the different disciples take part in the competitions. The formations required quite a lot of space so the competition holders only held a single other competition concurrently. Alex watched Luo Mei''s sister, Luo Xing take part in the formation competition and watched it as he wondered how she would do. At the same time, he also saw Meng Yun taking part in the music competition. While the formation competition participants started laying down the formation flags carefully, the music group started playing their instruments. Meng Yun didn''t have to rush through her piece like last time, so she played it very slowly. The green line on top of her head never dropped below 40%, while it went to over 50% quite a lot. The other participants were playing their piece quite well as well. A lot of them were around Meng Yun''s level, some even higher. Alex switched his attention to Luo Xing and saw that she had finished preparing her flags. After that, she placed a few spirit stones around the area and suddenly closed her eyes to do something. At once, the formation came to life and a purple barrier appeared around Luo Xing. The other disciples finished theirs as well, and the host decided the rankings. Surprisingly, Luo Xing got second place in the formation competition. On Meng Yun''s side, they were finished as well. Everyone''s information on the piece they performed was clearly floating on top of them. Meng Yun was good, but she only managed to get 3rd place with an average melody of 46%. The second place got an average melody of 47%, and the winner got an average melody of 49%. None of them managed to reach Heaven grade, but reaching what they did was already was amazing. After that, the group left the arena to make room for the next set of competitions. Chapter 276: Beginning of the third Competition It was time for the next set of competitions. Alex leaned next to Ma Rong and asked, "Master, how well should I do in the next competition?" Ma Rong made a weird face and said, "What do you mean how well? You should do your best." "But that would mean using Spiritual sense. You told me not to," he whispered. "Hmm¡­ I did say that. But¡­ you will be so far away from the audience, and there is no one in the competition staff that can use Spiritual sense, so you will be fine," Ma Rong said. "How do you know that master?" he asked. "You still don''t understand how lucrative and rare spiritual sense really is. If any one of those people had spiritual sense, they wouldn''t be working as a staff. So, just feel free to use it in the arena. As long as you keep it to a moderate amount, you should be fine," Ma Rong said. Then, Alex, Wan Li, and the girl in the 9th ranking stood up and walked to the gate below. "You guys have your ingredients ready?" Ma Rong asked. """Yes""" they all replied. "Good. What pills are you making?" she asked. "I am thinking of making the Face Changing Pill. I am used to making those and I think I will be good at it," the girl said. "I have had the most success with a Hundred Poison Antidote, so I think I will make that pill, Sect leader," Wan Li said. "As for me, I will make a Bronze Tiger Rage. That is the one I had the most success with yet," Alex said as he named a pill with Metal energy as the resulting energy. "Very well. Since you guys are confident, I won''t say anything else. Good Luck," she said. They reached the place with the barrier and one by one, the participants started to leave for the competition. Alex walked in as well and felt the barrier touch into his Qi and tried to check him. After knowing that he was a participant, it let him be. Along with Wan Li and the girl, Alex reached the location of the competition. The arena was quite big, even bigger than the one from yesterday. ''Are there more disciples taking part today?'' Alex wondered and looked around. Surprisingly, there were a lot of familiar faces. There was Han Long and his two fellow sect disciples that Alex had seen during the last 2 competitions. There were a few other disciples that were either with him during the last ingredient finding test, or one that he saw in yesterday''s Fastest pill-making competition. Aside from them, there was also the 4th place winner of yesterday''s competition, the guy from the Royal Fu sect. And finally, with an air of Elegance, sitting in front of one of the fire pits was perhaps the best alchemist amongst the competitors here today. He was Huang Fu, the Royal Alchemist''s disciple. Alex hadn''t seen him properly the first time as he had only heard the person''s name and caught a glimpse of him while he was leaving the arena. Today, he got to see him very well. Huang Fu was a moderately tall man that seemed to be not even 20 years old. He had a slim face with a pointed nose and sharp eyes. Huang Fu seemed to notice Alex''s eyes and turned towards him before giving a small nod in greeting. Alex reciprocated with a nod as well. Everyone else was randomly seated around the place. No two sect disciples were allowed to sit with each other. A new female host walked up this time and stood on top of a small podium and started talking. "Welcome everyone, to the Best Pill-making competition. I hope you guys are doing well and are well prepared. You guys probably went through this already but please take these storage bags and keep your required ingredients in there. Everything else, please put it in the box," the female host said. A group of staff members walked forward handing everyone a box and storage bag. Alex took them both and stored everything aside from the required ingredients into the box. He locked the box with his Qi and handed it to the staff. He looked at the ingredients in the storage bag. He had kept two sets of ingredients just in case. ''Ah, hopefully, the double pills won''t happen this time,'' he hoped. Even if the pill splitting Qi did appear, he was sure that he could reach at least 42% harmony level. However, that wasn''t enough to win the competition. The best of the best were gathered here. Even if they couldn''t reach Heaven grade, which he wasn''t sure about, they would definitely make better pills than 42% harmony. So, he was prepared just a bit. Now, all he could do was wish he didn''t need to. The host saw that the storage bag situation was taken care of, so she started to speak again. "As every one of you knows, this is the competition where you rank based on the best pill you can make. So you will be given an hour exactly to make the pill." "The competition will rank you based on the best pill you make, so you are allowed to make multiple ones. In fact, we urge you to make multiple pills," the host said. All the participants seem to have expected that and were ready with the extra ingredients just like Alex. "There are also rules that you will have to follow. If you are unable to follow them, you will be disqualified." "If you don''t have a pill by the end of the hour, you will be disqualified. If your cauldron explodes, you will be disqualified. If you disrupt others intentionally, you will be disqualified." "If you are found guilty of having cheated during any of the parts in the competition, you are disqualified. Those are the rules, everything else, you are free to do what you like. Good luck." Chapter 277: First batch of Pills The host got off the podium and waited for everyone to prepare. Alex and the other few participants all brought out their cauldron at the same time and placed it on top of the fire. As they waited for the cauldron to heat up, the host started the competition. A massive timer floating in a blue panel in the sky started counting down. No one rushed, however. This was a competition that selected winners based on the best. So, everyone would be the most patient self of themselves they could ever be. Alex took in long, deep breaths while waiting for the competition to start. He had a lot better sense than before and he looked at the timer in the sky to see if his timing was accurate. After getting the capsule and gaining the permanent Focus Mode, he had managed to control everything, including the slowed downtime. However, unlike the other senses, Time was never something that bombarded him with the information. So, it was impossible to say if he was back to normal or if it was just a little off still. So, he decided to check it before he started making the pills as time was a really important factor in making pills. For the first 10 or so minutes, everyone waited for their cauldron to fully heat up normally. After that, they started to put in ingredients one by one. Wan Li put in his, so did Han Long and so did Huang Fu. Alex was among the last of the people to finally start making the pills. Alex''s ingredients had a total of 13 components to them and he needed to make sure every single one of them was in the perfect condition it could be. So, he took the first ingredient and placed it inside the cauldron. However, unlike everyone else, he immediately closed the cauldron. The staff members and the host were a little surprised at a participant doing something so bizarre but said nothing. Alex followed the recipe and waited for the first ingredient to turn into powder. Once it was powder and the energy had escaped into the cauldron, he quickly took off the lid and put in the 2nd ingredient. He wasn''t faster than the other participants, nor was he slower. He was about the same speed as everyone else, and that was a little comforting for him. He had always wondered if he was slower than the other people at making pills, and it seemed he was not. Once the sect ingredient''s energy mixed with the first one and created a new energy, he put in the third ingredient. Seeing him close the lid once again, the staff members got a little confused once again. "Senior, do you think he is cheating?" one of the staff members asked. "I don''t think so. There doesn''t seem to be a reason as to why he is doing that. Maybe it''s a technique?" the host said. The other staff member got quiet after that as there didn''t seem to be a problem anymore. So, they just waited for the different participants to finish. Few more minutes passed and the participants got to the end of their pill-making process. The staff hurried up and placed a load of pill testers in front of the group. Alex was on the last leg of the pill-making as well. He put in the final ingredient and the energy of the final ingredient escapes from the burning ingredient and mixed with the already dense ingredient inside the cauldron. Once those two energies reacted with each other, the final resulting energy of the pill became metal energy, just what Alex wanted. Alex then proceeded to move the powder around a little more before it was time to form the pills. He used Elemental Guidance to move the energy around and force it towards the power to make it stick in there. However, even though it was Metal energy, he couldn''t control the energy perfectly, and more than half of the energy escaped back into the open air in the cauldron. However, that alone was very good. Alex then started to form the powder into a pill. However, just then the thing he didn''t want the most to happen, happened. Suddenly, a stream of Qi moved around his whole body and escaped out of his palms before moving into the cauldron. He wanted to curse right now, but disturbing the other disciples would get him disqualified, so he simply endured it. However, on the inside, he had pretty much given up on the pill becoming any good now. Still, he wasn''t going to not perform his best now. The stream of Qi slowly go into his forming pill and separated it into two. After that, the two vortexes he was waiting for appeared and started sucking in the energy from the environment. Slowly the two pills started forming. Suddenly, out of the corner of his eyes, he saw two people simultaneously get up and walk to the lined-up pill testers at the front. Alex was a little surprised and he kept his eyes on them while his two pills were forming. The two contestants put their pills into the pill testers. He watched the two pill testers slowly grow fog outside of it that reached above 30% in harmony. Soon, one of the pill testers stopped at 34%, while the other one stopped at 38%. The one with the 34% got a little sad, while the other guy was happy. However, they were both going to try it once again, so they returned back to their place and started preparing. Soon, more and more people started standing up from their seats to test their pills. Some were good, some were bad. However, both the sad and happy people went back to their places to make the pills once more. Alex looked away from the people and looked down on his own pills. His two pills were finally prepared. So, he took off the lid and put his hands in to take out the pills. Chapter 278: Next Batch "Woah, the participants are quite good this time around, aren''t they?" one of the staff members said. "Yeah, look at that fellow, his pills just showed 42% harmony. Wow, is that the highest yet?" the other staff members asked. "No, the highest one belongs to that one guy in green. His pill had a 43% harmony," another one of the staff said. "Let''s wait for our Huang to do his best. He will probably win this competition," they said. "Oh look, here he comes." Huang Fu stood up from his spot and walked up. Alex too stood up, only 1 step behind. His pills hadn''t shown the harmony level he had desired, so he had taken the best of the two and left the other one inside. He would take care of it later. Huang Fu walked up and put his pill inside the tester. By the time Alex reached his, the pill tester slowly fogged up and started going up. Alex put his pill inside the tester too to show his harmony level. He, just as everyone around right now, looked at Huang Fu''s pill tester rise up. Soon it crossed 30% and kept ongoing. Alex''s own pill tester was above 20%, but he didn''t care about it as he already knew the result. Huang Fu''s harmony level kept on increasing and increasing until it stopped right before it reached Heaven grade. His pill''s harmony was 49%. Sounds of gasps appeared from everywhere as people realized how great his pill was. Alex turned around and looked at his own 43% pill and shook his head. ''If the pill splitting Qi appears once more, I''m as good as having lost the competition,'' he thought. He took his pill and went back to his area. The other pill inside the cauldron was at 42% harmony. So in total, he had lost about 15% of the energy either due to the ingredients being bad, him making a mistake, or the energy just escaping from the cauldron. He couldn''t do anything else, so he simply just crushed the extra pill inside the cauldron and removed all the powders outside. And then, he was ready for another batch of ingredients. He looked at the time and realized that he still had a little over half an hour to make his pill. So, he could take his time. He looked around and saw that a few of the participants had beads of sweat on their faces. ''Huh? I remember master saying that normal people can''t make pills for too long, but is it really this bad? They are only done with a single pill though,'' Alex thought. He looked around and saw that it was only a few of the participants. The good ones weren''t really tired and could probably go on for a few more rounds. However, unlike Alex, they couldn''t last for a whole day of pill-making. ''That''s because of how robust my qi is right?'' he thought. Finally, he stopped distracting himself and put in the first ingredient once again. He slowly moved it around the cauldron. He wasn''t in a hurry, so he followed the recipe as well as he could. Once the ingredient was down to powder and all the energy had escaped from it, Alex put in the second ingredient. The lid was still on the cauldron, but by now the staff members had pretty much ignored it. They were still talking in low voice about how the Royal Alchemist''s direct disciple had nearly made a heaven rank pill. Alex continued making his pill but was definitely taking his time. He looked up at the clock from time to time and by the time he put in the 5th ingredient, only 15 minutes were remaining. He continued making the pill and put in ingredients every minute or so as per the recipe''s instruction. After 10 or so minutes, he finally finished putting in all the ingredients. The metal energy was now fully covering the inside of the cauldron. Just at this time, a contestant stood up and went to get her pills tested. Alex continued his task while keeping an eye on the contestant''s harmony. Unfortunately, the contestant got 41%. She had lost. A few more contestants started standing, while Alex decided to focus back on his pill-making. He used Elemental guidance to force the energy to flow into the powder to make the energy in it more concentrated. He needed as high a harmony level as possible. Thanks to the resulting energy being Metal in nature, controlling it wasn''t as hard as with the other energies. Finally, it was time to form the pill. He slowly got the powder together and started forming the pill. He kept on using Elemental guidance to help the energy go into the powder, but it didn''t do as well as he could have hoped for it. Suddenly, he heard gasps throughout the surrounding, most of it coming from the staff members. He wondered if Huang Fu did something good again, but he wasn''t there this time. Instead, he saw a familiar green-robed figure standing in front of the pill tester. Alex saw that Han Long was there too with his dropped jaw. Alex noticed that he had a 47% harmony pill, yet he was flabbergasted by Wan Li''s performance. Alex turned his attention back to Wan Li and saw that the fog in the pill tester had reached unusually high. He slowly looked at the number and was surprised himself too at how great the harmony was. The pill he made had 49% harmony. That was the same as the harmony level of Huang Fu. Most of the contestants stood up and went to check their pill''s harmony level, and only 2 were remaining. One was Alex and the other was Huang Fu. With 1 minute left on the clock, Huang Fu stood up from his seat and took the pill out of the cauldron before walking upfront to the pill tester. It was time for him to check. Chapter 279: Huang Fus Pill Harmony Alex finally finished making the pill. Fortunately, He didn''t involuntarily release the Pill Splitting Qi and managed to make a single pill. With 30 seconds left on the clock, he took the finally prepared pill out of the cauldron and walked to the front. He stood up and walked behind Huang Fu to register his new pill. Many other participants were just done checking their pills yet none of them had done better than Huang Fu or Wan Li with their 49%. That was still the best harmony in this competition. However, Huang Fu had another pill, and people were expecting more from him the second time around. The various participants silently waited for him to put in his pill. Huang Fu didn''t care about the onlookers and walked up to the pill testers before putting in his pill. As soon as the pill touched the base of the pill tester, fog started rising up the side of the tester. It slowly rose and crossed 10%, however, it wasn''t stopping right now. It showed no signs of slowing down even as it reached 20%. Alex came over to watch just at that time and watched the pill tester work instead of putting in his own. The fog slowly rose past 25% and reached 30%. However, there was still some distance for the fog to move up. 31, 32, 33%. The speed of the fog slowed down a little, but not a lot. It was still going up at an acceptable rate. Soon it crossed 40%, and people got more attentive. They doubted that the pill would stop in the early 40s, but you never knew. 41, 42¡­ 45%. The fog still rose and was now reaching the high ranking harmony level. Up until now, the third place was held by Han Long, who had made a pill with 48% harmony. While the second and first place was shared by Wan Li and Huang Fu with 49%. However, that would soon change. 46%, 47%, 48%¡­ 49%. The pill''s harmony level reached the same level as the one with the highest rank right now. However, there was something else about the number 49%. This was the highest harmony one''s pill could have while it was in the Earth grade. A single percentage higher, and the pill would be in Heaven grade. 50% Everyone gasped when they saw Huang Fu''s pill cross the threshold and jump into the Heaven grade category. Han Long sighed when he saw that. He was already sad about making a pill that was 1% away from the winning rank, but now it was 2% away. Wan Li felt sad too. He was the winner of the competition along with Huang Fu, but now, he jumped one step ahead, leaving him behind in 2nd place. However, Huang Fu''s pill wasn''t done yet. Just as everyone was surprised about seeing the pill in the Heaven grade, the pill tester had the fog rise a single percentage more. 51% The different viewers whether they be the other participants, staff or the audience realized, the pill wasn''t done yet. There was more harmony that the pill had to show still. 52% This brought out more reactions from the crowd. Huang Fu had 3% higher harmony than the person in the 2nd rank. While the number seemed small, it was a very hard number to achieve. However, that wasn''t the end. 53% Finally, the fog stopped moving and stayed still. The final harmony of Huang Fu''s pill was 53%. He was a clear-cut winner of the competition now. Huang Fu smiled after seeing the result and went ahead to grab his pill. At the same time, Alex moved forward as well, but he was going to put in his pill. He put in the Bronze Tiger''s Rage and watched the fog slowly build up around the pill tester. His first pill was 43% in harmony level due to it being one of the double pills, so, most people had ended up ignoring him. The only person who was watching Alex''s pill tester were the staffs who were obligated to do so, Wan Li who wanted to see how his fellow disciple was doing, the girl from his sect and Alex himself. Everyone else already believed that the winner of the competition was revealed and had gone to congratulate Huang Fu. Slowly the fog build-up reached 10% and climbed up at a high speed. In front of the onlookers'' eyes, it climbed up to 20%. In the audience, all the Hong Wu sect members and some of the Tiger sect members were looking at Alex''s pill tester''s numbers go up. Ma Rong especially, who knew just how good Alex was, was looking at his pills with great attention. The others had praised her for raising a good disciple when he showed a pill with 43% harmony when he hadn''t been in the sect for long, however, he had been disappointed. Now that it was his second pill, she expected greater results. The pill tester soon reached 30% mark but showed no sign of slowing down. It caught the attention of a few more people, but wasn''t enough to cause a commotion yet. 32%, 34%, 36%. Alex watched as the harmony level soon reached 40% right in front of everyone. However, it still wasn''t showing any sign of slowing down. 41%, 42%, 43%. The harmony level gradually got higher and crossed his previous pill''s 43% to reach 44%. The people from his sect commended him for doing better than last time, however, Ma Rong expected more and wanted more. So, as she watched, the harmony level reached 45%. It started to catch the attention of more people as it went up one more level and reached 46%. People were now starting to curiously watch his pill. 47% The fog around the pill tester went up once more and people started looking with wide eyes. Han Long''s eyes were especially wide as he wished for the pill tester to stop raising. But things rarely happened as one wanted. And so, the Harmony level increased one more step and reached 48%. Chapter 280: Alexs Pill Harmony Han Long felt a load of shock when he saw that the person he wasn''t expecting suddenly reached the same harmony level as him. He looked at Alex, who also looked back at him and smiled. It was then Han Long realized something was wrong. 49% The fog increased by one more level. Gasps of shock sounded from around the place. Wan Li looked at Alex with shock in his eyes, let alone Han Long who had just been beaten. The amount of shock he was feeling right now was unreal. Even Huang Fu seemed to be interested right now and looked at the pill tester which was the center of attention amongst everyone on stage and a lot of audience in the coliseum. "Woah, Mingming just got 2nd place? Was he always that good sect leader?" Fan Ruogang asked. The rest of the disciples were also in shock, dumbfounded at the harmony his pill had reached. Recognizing ingredients was one thing, but making a good pill required a different set of skills. However, Ma Rong didn''t recognize this current result and simply said, "Just watch." 50% Another Heaven Grade pill appeared on the stage. Han Long, Wan Li, Huang Fu, the staff, the host, and the audience, all of them were shocked. "A-Another Heaven-grade pill?" someone said in shock. "T-That''s the second place holder now," another person said. "This participant didn''t have such a result on the first pill right?" One of the staff asked. "Nope, he only had a 43% harmony pill," another staff member said. "Am I¡­ really out of the third-place?" Han Long muttered to himself. However, that wasn''t the end. 51% The pill tester hadn''t stopped and the fog was still rising. Now, even Huang Fu started getting anxious. His pill was just 2% lower than Alex''s. While that was a massive hurdle to pass, it didn''t seem like Alex''s pill tester was going to stop right now. Unfortunately for Huang Fu, however, he was right. 52% Now Alex''s pill was 1 step away from having the same amount of harmony as Huang Fu''s. He was starting to sweat. He walked a little closer to check the pill tester more clearly and in doing so he caught Alex''s eyes who had just looked to the side. From his perspective, Alex had no sort of tension in his eyes, almost like he didn''t care what harmony his pills would get. No. He realized that wasn''t the case. It wasn''t that he didn''t care what the harmony his pill was going to be, it was more like He knew what it was going to be. A strange premonition sprung up inside Huang Fu''s mind and at the same time, it happened. 53% The harmony level in the pill tester increased once more. Now, Alex was the first place holder of the competition along with Huang Fu. There were going to be two winners. "Wow, a random disciple nearly beat the Royal Alchemist''s direct disciple?" a staff member said in shock. "What sect is he from? Can you guys check?" the host said. "He seems to be from the Hong Wu sect. Ah, no wonder. They are well known for being great in alchemy," one of the staff members said. "What happens to the rewards? Do we give out 100 points to both of them?" another staff member asked. "If both of them get the same harmony then they both get the same points," the host said. "Oh. But what do you mean¡­ if?" 54% Everyone talking suddenly stopped doing so. A pin-drop silence spread throughout the stage as the people''s jaws dropped in shock. A new champion was here. Huang Fu was genuinely surprised that he lost to a participant that wasn''t even that well known. He didn''t want to believe that he had lost. But he couldn''t deny it at all after seeing the fog reach 55% in the pill tester. "Huh? 55?" he looked in shock. Everyone else did the same and was then dumbfounded. The harmony level of the pill had grown by another point. "Wait, it is up to 55% now. That''s like a professional Alchemist right there," someone said. "Forget about that. How many Heaven Grade alchemists have you seen that are still a disciple?" another person asked. "He would have to make a few more Heaven grade pills to be considered one, but if he can make 55% pills consistently, it wouldn''t be wrong to consider him one," someone else answered. "Umm¡­ why are we talking about 55% as if that is the final harmony?" a timid voice among the bunch asked, prompting everyone to stop and look back at the pill tester. Within 3 seconds of them watching, the harmony increased once more. 56% Gasps rang out this time around, but nobody said anything. The staffs were already shocked beyond belief. The participants were equally shocked at someone making such a high-grade pill. Han Long had long since accepted his fate. Wan Li was surprised at how talented Alex was, and Huang Fu could do nothing but look at the pill tester in shock. 56% was a lot of things. But what it was not, was the end. 57% The harmony increased once more. The audience thought that they were jaded to it by now, but that wasn''t true. They were still shocked. Whispers ran about the coliseum but none of it reached the stage. Everyone expected it to stop now, but the pill tester seemed to have its own mind. 58%. This was an unprecedented event for everyone in this competition. This was something that had never happened before and was likely never going to happen again. While everyone was in shock, Alex was smiling, for he knew, this was not the end either. 59% Alex''s pill had now beat Huang Fu''s pill by 6% of harmony difference. While everyone thought Huang Fu''s pill beating Wan Li''s pill by 4% was already amazing, having a 6% higher than his was something they couldn''t comprehend. Everyone turned to look at Alex and see the face of the winner. But Alex wasn''t happy or excited. He was simply smiling looking at the pill tester in front of him. At the same instant, the harmony level increased by 1 more. 60%. Chapter 281: Up-Grade 60%, that was the harmony level of the pill that was the center of attention right now. The pill tester had finally stopped working and the final result was 60%. Alex walked up front and picked up his pill before putting it into his storage bag. He didn''t have a bottle right now and had to resort to keeping pills in the storage bag. Although externally, he didn''t act like what had just happened was a big deal, that was only because he was already done celebrating internally when he had found out the pill''s harmony level before he had even brought it. He waited for the staff and host to get on with announcing the results, but no one was saying anything. He looked around and realized that everyone was still looking at him. Alex felt a little anxious with so many eyes on him and turned to the host. "Umm¡­ what about the result?" he asked. "Ah, yes. Sorry about that. Everyone, please get your stuff, we will prepare the results right now," the host said and went to consult with the staff members. "What''s your name?" Huang Fu walked up to him and asked. "Yu Ming," Alex said while looking straight at Huang Fu''s eyes. "Yu Ming¡­" Huang Fu murmured, "I will remember it. Congratulations." "Haha, you too," Alex said. "Brother Yu, that was amazing. Since when can you make such amazing pills," Wan Li asked. "Ah, I got a little lucky with this one. It was only because I made the Bronze Tiger''s Rage that I was able to get such a result. Had I tried any other pills, I doubt I could''ve gotten the same results," Alex said. "I see, still, that was amazing. Although¡­." Wan Li trailed off as he thought of something and asked, "Are you an elder now?" "Ah!" Alex had forgotten about the Elder rule where if one made a Heaven grade pill, they would be upgraded to an elder. "I shouldn''t right?" Alex said. "After all, I am not registering this pill." "That makes sense," Wan Li said. "Everyone, gather around. The results are set," the host said. "Congratulations to everyone who managed to make the pills. I have good news for you lot and your sects. Thanks to so many people getting such close results, a lot of you will get the same ranking, and thus a high point from this competition in general." "As for the winners, we already know who the Top 3 are, but let me still announce them so everyone in the audience who didn''t catch the incredible event can learn it as well." "In the third place is Wan Li from Hong Wu sect who made a Hundred Poison Antidote with an incredible harmony of 49%." "In the second place is Huang Fu from Royal Fu Academy, who made an Ulterior Bones pill with an incredible harmony of 53%." "And now, in the first place, the star of this competition, and perhaps the entirety of Alchemy competitions for this year''s competition in whole, is Yu Ming from Hong Wu sect, who managed to make a Bronze Tiger''s Rage with a beyond amazing harmony of 60%," the host said. Everyone started applauding and the rest of the results showed up on the ranking board behind the group. The girl from the Hong Wu sect managed to get 41% of harmony in her pill, making her 7th in the ranking. There were more than 9 people in the same ranking as her, but that didn''t deduct from the fact that her 41% harmony pill was considered to have ranked in the 7th place. The young men and women took their items and returned back out of the arena, and went straight to the seating area. As soon as the sect members saw the 3 of them come back, everyone started congratulating them. "As expected of the set leader''s disciple, that was great" "You can make Heaven-grade pills?" "Wan Li you did great too." Heaps of praises rained down from both the elders and fellow disciples. Alex nodded towards everyone thanking them for their congratulations. Fan Ruogang and Zhou Mei congratulated the 3 too. "Good job you kids. That was amazing. That was much better than I could''ve expected of you guys. I doubt Fanfan or my Meimei could''ve done that good," the second elder said. "True, true," the third elder said. "You guys come take some rest. You deserve it," Ma Rong said. Everyone went back to their seats and looked at the next competitions starting soon. "Is that the best pill you''ve made till now?" Ma Rong asked Alex slowly. "Yes. If I remember correctly, the last one that I made was 59% in harmony. So this beats it by a little," Alex said. "Good. You''ve improved a lot. Thankfully, the metal energy pills are great for you. We will go see why those are the only ones that work in the library today," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded. He was looking forward to going to the library since he had a lot of things to read up on. Things that pertained to both himself and the things he had. Alex thought about something and asked his master, "Master, are we in the 1st grade now?" he didn''t lower his voice so everyone heard it loud and clear. Suddenly, everyone started counting. The girl got 14 points, Wan Li got 33 points and Alex got 100 points. Altogether, they needed 146 points to advance onto the next grade and they managed to get¡­ 147. "We¡­ we got 524 points in total. We¡ª We did it right?" the second elder said. "We got more than that. The others got a few points here and there too. Woohoo, we finally did it," Fan Ruogang said. Suddenly, everyone celebrated. Even Ma Rong smiled when she realized that she had succeeded in what she came to accomplish. "Master!" Alex called, jolting her out of her happiness. "What is it?" she asked. "You see¡­ since we succeeded in becoming a 1st-grade sect¡­ can I not take part in tomorrow''s competition?" Chapter 282: Request Fulfilled Ma Rong was a little surprised at the sudden request. "But tomorrow is the last day of alchemy competitions. If you don''t take part tomorrow, you won''t get to take part at all," Ma Rong said. "That''s the thing master. There are other competitions on Friday too right? Aside from the battle ones of course," Alex asked. "Hmm¡­ yes there is but¡­ you can''t be thinking of taking part in those right? First of all, we don''t even know what competitions there will be, and second of all, your cultivation base is still quite low. You are still only at the 5th realm of the Organ Tempering realm. That is not enough to be able to do anything," Ma Rong said. "How about I just wait for a suitable competition. If there is one on Friday, I will take part in it, if not, I won''t," Alex said. Ma Rong was about to refuse when suddenly someone else spoke. "Sect leader, can I not join in tomorrow''s competition as well?" surprisingly, the person who spoke just now was Wan Li. The other sect members had been listening to the Master-Disciple talk and hadn''t said anything, so they were quite surprised when they saw Wan Li speak up. "Why do you not want to take part in tomorrow''s competition? Don''t you want to earn points for the sect?" Ma Rong asked. "I do, but you know me, Sect leader. I am very bad at learning anything quickly, so I will need a lot of practice tomorrow if I want to get a decent rank. I doubt that will be possible with how quick they will want us to be. Besides, while Brother Yu might not have the cultivation for fighting, I do. I can take part in the fighting competitions, right?" Wan Li said. Ma Rong fell into contemplation. Wan Li was correct. His cultivation base was quite high. Even she was surprised when she saw his cultivation base last time during registration. "Please master. I want to take part in a competition other than alchemy. I feel like it is a waste if I spend half my time in the tiger sect and still don''t take part in a non-production competition," Alex said. "Sigh, okay okay. You kids win. I will let you take part in those competitions. But only if it is suitable for you," Ma Rong said as she gave up on refusing any further. She didn''t want to deny the disciples what they wanted just for the sake of the sect. "Sigh, what about you two girls? You have any such aspirations too?" Ma Rong asked Fan Ruogang and Zhou Mei. "Haha, No way sect leader. I''m too weak to want to do anything. I''m fine with tomorrow''s competition," Fan Ruogang said in her usual cheery self. "I am looking forward to tomorrow''s competition actually. I feel like I haven''t done very well in this competition," Zhou Mei said. "What? You''ve done pretty well MeiMei. Don''t be down on yourself. Hehe, maybe with WanWan and Mingming not taking part in tomorrow''s competition, you will be the best? Oh, of course, that''s if that Huang Fu guy doesn''t join. Tsk, Now I feel anxious thinking about tomorrow," Fan Ruogang said. Everyone simply smiled seeing her talk so much. "Alright. We will talk about this more during tonight''s meeting. For now, just enjoy the competition," Ma Rong said. So everyone focused back on the competition. The contestants in front of them were having a Talisman competition. According to the rules of the competition, it was to check who could make the best talisman. Everyone was given an hour to make the best talisman they could, and the competition was coming to a close. They had to create their own ink before making the runes for the talisman so it took them quite a lot of time to make the talisman. So, compared to alchemy, they didn''t have enough time to create multiple ones and had to stick with a single one. One tested the talisman was not by its effects or usage, but by the stability of the runes and the accuracy of the ink. Any slight inconsistencies in the ink mixture or irregularity in the talisman runes affected the output of the talisman. Have the problems be big and you end up with a talisman that is not usable as all. There were formations to check the inks and runes, just like pill testers. So, one by one, the contestants put their talismans face down on the talisman tester that was just a flat metal surface with a rectangular indent on it. The talisman tester checked both the ink and the runes, and the balance between them. The higher the balance, the better the talisman. Slowly, the results started coming in one by one. It didn''t take long to realize who the winners were for the talisman competition. As expected from the sects focused on talismans, like the Grand Void sect and the Little Dawn sect, they took first and second place respectively. As for the third place, those were taken by none other than the Royal Fu Academy. No matter what the competition was, they were always there to take part in and most of the time ended up in the top 3. Finally, there were no more competitions for the day, so Ma Rong stood up. "Let''s leave," she said and started walking. All the sect members followed her as well. Along the way, they saw the Spring Song sect standing up to leave as well. Ma Rong didn''t make any snarky remarks at all. However, she did simply just smile at them as she left. The fatty started fuming in the ears, but couldn''t do anything since he had undoubtedly lost today''s competition. Ma Rong felt a sort of relief at what had just happened. The shame from losing last year was finally cleared in her mind. Once again, everyone was allowed to do whatever they wanted, while the rest of them returned back to the hotel to rest. Chapter 283: Good Reviews As soon as the group returned back to their hotel, Alex went directly to his room. "Yu Ming, we leave for the library in an hour. You lot as well. Come meet me in an hour if you want to visit the library," Ma Rong said just before everyone went back to their room. Everyone kept that in mind and went to their room. "Oh wow. I wonder how many alchemy books there will be in the library. I can''t wait to go there at all," Wan Li said as he followed Alex behind to the room. "Should be a lot," Alex said and went back to his bed. "Brother Yu, why do you always sleep for small periods of time. Is something wrong with your body?" Wan Li asked as he cocked his head. He had been curious about that for quite a while but had kept to himself. "Oh, I¡­ ah¡­ I am just taking a power nap. I feel refreshed after napping for half an hour or so every day," Alex said. "Oh, I see. Maybe I should do that as well," Wan Li said. "Umm¡­ you probably don''t have to. Just spend your time how you are doing right now," Alex said and sneakily acted like he was sleeping before logging out. He opened his eyes inside the capsule and pushed it open. As he walked out, he felt like he was really dull somehow. As if he had lost all senses and feelings. "Damn, spending too much time in the game through the capsule seems like a bad idea. I hope it won''t harm me physically," Alex thought. He was still feeling no hunger at all and that was a little concerning as well. ''Should I switch to the helmet from time to time?'' he wondered. Surprisingly, even after so long, he didn''t need to go to the bathroom as well. ''They are really messing with my body,'' Alex thought and started to get scared. He grabbed his phone and walked out. He went to the kitchen to get some food, despite not being hungry at all. He needed to force down a bit of food. So he served himself some and went onto the forums to check about the capsule. Surprisingly, there was nothing but praise regarding the capsule. There were obviously people concerned about their physical health, but surprisingly there were no posts about the grave consequences of long-term capsule usage. Alex clicked on a post and read about some doctors and scientists doing experiments on people who used capsules. Aside from the slight disorientation due to the change in senses they felt when coming out of the capsule, there was nothing else wrong with the person. Their physical strength was the same, motor coordination was the same and even their metabolism rate was the same once the player left the capsule. Unlike the helmet, which had apparently failed to keep that during the early phases of the game''s release, the capsule was miles better. So both doctors and scientists were urging the player to keep on using the capsule as much as possible as opposed to the helmet. ''Huh, so it''s okay?'' Alex wondered. He decided to check other sites and sources as well. But no matter where he looked at, they sang nothing but praises regarding the capsule. As long as the player was being a responsible human being and didn''t play unnecessarily long, they would be fine. Finally feeling some sort of relief, Alex quickly finished his food and went to his room. He climbed into the capsule without fear and covered the lid. He slowly let his consciousness wander and before he knew it, he was inside the game once again. He slowly got up from the bed and took a long, deep breath to bring his suddenly flared-up senses under control. Once he was done, he looked around and saw Wan Li writing something. "What are you writing, brother Wan?" Alex asked. "Oh, you are up, brother Yu. It''s nothing much, just what I realized from the competition today. I had a few enlightenment during the competitions and I was writing them down before I forgot them" "I believe that if I use this new knowledge of mine properly¡­ I can reach the Heaven grade with my pills too," Wan Li said. Alex looked at Wan Li very attentively. Despite being the number one disciple of the sect, he seemed to be the most hard-working of them all. Or maybe that was the wrong way to look at it. He was most likely the number one disciple BECAUSE he was hard working. However, despite being so hardworking, he still had to struggle through his learning process because his brain couldn''t pick up on things instinctively and he had to write everything down. That surely slowed down his progress a lot. However, Alex wondered, if he perhaps didn''t have to bother with writing each time, and could easily remember everything¡­ how great of an alchemist would he be? Alex''s mind went to the 3 Spirit Cleansing lilies he still had on him. Unfortunately, the lilies seemed to be useless by themselves to him. And unless he could find a pill recipe that included the Spirit Cleansing lilies as an ingredient, it was probably going to remain useless for a long time. However, if he could just give the flower to Wan Li¡­ that would help him a lot and secure his sect''s future as well. ''Should I even do that?'' Alex wondered. ''What if he isn''t as good as he shows himself to be on the outside. I can never judge a person by how they look or act. Anyone is capable of sudden changes. I¡­ I can''t trust a person just based on what I feel of them,'' he thought. He had been traumatized by the events in the forbidden fields and didn''t want to repeat the same mistake again. For now, the only people he could truly trust were his two masters and his senior brother and sister. Everyone else, he would have to judge on a case-by-case basis, and he wasn''t sure his judgment was refined enough to do that. Chapter 284: Cardinal Library Alex walked out of the room a little early and went to talk with Ma Rong. "Master, are you there?" he asked as he knocked on the door. He didn''t dare use his spiritual sense to check inside as that would be intrusive to his master''s personal space and a stupid move in general. "Come in," she said and called him in. Alex walked in through the automatically unlocked door and saw Ma Rong cultivating on top of her bed. "What''s wrong? You need something?" she asked. "It''s¡­ I''m actually here to talk about Wan Li," he said. "Wan Li? What about him?" Ma Rong asked with a weird face. "Wan Li looks like he is really hardworking and genuinely interested in alchemy. But he seems to be held back by his bad memory. I was wondering if I should give him a Spirit cleansing lily or not," Alex said. "You have more? I thought you used up all?" Ma Rong asked with surprise. "I was planning to use them up, but for some reason, I can no longer use them. I was going to check about that in today''s visit to the library though," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ Wan Li is a good boy. He will definitely benefit from the lily if he got one," Ma Rong said. "However, those lilies are something you got. You don''t need to hand them over to people just because you feel sorry for them. Keep them to yourself. Just because it''s not working right now doesn''t mean it won''t work forever." "Maybe you just need to break through to make it work again," Ma Rong said. Alex got to thinking. "I hadn''t thought of that. Of course, maybe I need to be in a higher realm and then it will work," he said. "Okay, I shall do that master," he said. "Alright. Are you ready to leave? People should be gathering by now," Ma Rong said. "Hm¡­" Alex checked the time and saw that an hour had passed. It was time to leave for the library. He and Ma Rong walked out of the room and saw a few disciples were waiting outside the door. Wan Li had also come out at some point and was waiting with Fan Ruogang and Zhou Mei. Ma Rong decided to wait for a few more minutes and started walking down the stairs. Soon, the entire group was out of the hotel. Alex took out the map he had bought the other day and gave it to his master, but she already seemed to be in the know about the location of the library. "Haha, disciple Yu, you seem to forget that we come here every year. We are more or less familiar with the layout of the entire capital," the second elder said. Alex felt a little bashful but didn''t let it show on his face. The Library was located right on the South East side of the capital, about 500 meters away from the Royal Palace. Since it was exactly opposite to where they were in the capital, they had a walk a long while before they finally reached the Library. "Woah," the disciples said when they finally saw the library. Fan Ruogang and Zhou Mei had come before so they didn''t show any intense reactions, but others, including Wan Li were very surprised by the sheer scale of the building in front of them. The library was a 20 story tall building with about 600 square meters of area. The building itself was painted in reddish-brown and had a design aspect that felt both modern and traditional at the same time. It looked like it was a pagoda-like building, but it didn''t have the traditional slopes of the pagoda on each floor. "The library itself is free and maintained by the Royal Fu Academy on the behest of the Royal Family. You can read whatever you want as long as you follow those rules written on that wall," Ma Rong said as she pointed to a bunch of texts written along the side of the wall. The disciple walked forward to better see the rules amongst the crowd that was already gathered in front of it to read it. Alex walked in close as well and started reading it along with the others. -Welcome to the Cardinal Library- -Please feel free to read any book, on any floor as it is public knowledge- - Please be mindful of the other readers and be as silent as you can most of the time.- -Please do not fight with the other readers on books you might want to read. We suggest you take a first come first serve approach. However, we have multiple books so that shouldn''t be a problem.- -Please do not destroy any books- -Please do not steal any books- -Failure to comply with any of these rules will be an indefinite ban from the library, and in worse cases, a punishment from the local law enforcement- Alex read all of it and was quite surprised at how serious they were with the library. ''It must contain a lot of knowledge in there for them to be this careful,'' he thought. Once everyone had read the books, they walked in. One by one, the disciples entered the library from the front door and looked around in a weird manner each time they did so. Alex was curious why they acted as they did, but he soon realized why that was. On the gate of the Library was an invisible barrier that constantly checked the Qi of everyone entering the library. That was probably something to do with checking if the people were violating the rules written outside. As soon as Alex entered, he looked around and was a little surprised at the sheer number of readers as well as shelves upon shelves of books scattered everywhere. There were boards hanging from the ceiling that let the readers know the category of the book they contained. Ma Rong said in a low voice, "Go ahead and do what you want, but be mindful of the rules." She then left on her own towards a staircase as well. Chapter 285: Lower Floors Alex was a little surprised that his master didn''t call for him to follow her since their original plan was to come and check the books to see if there was some knowledge about anything they had trouble understanding. But after seeing everyone else basically start to look for books, he decided to look for them on his own too. He looked up and checked the names hanging from the ceiling and searched for any that caught his interest. The first thing his eyes naturally went to was Alchemy. ''Do I check alchemy? I don''t think there can be anything there¡ª Ah, the pill made from Spirit Cleansing Lily. Maybe there is some information about that,'' he thought and went over to the area. He saw quite a few disciples from his sect hanging around the shelves. As one would expect, this was where the disciples from an Alchemy sect would hang out at. Alex looked through the shelves at the titles of books and tried to search for any that he would want to read. A few books caught his attention, but when he read them, he was disappointed. They contained knowledge that he already knew or wasn''t very helpful to him. He looked through more books but they weren''t very good. ''Perhaps the first floor is too low level for me,'' Alex thought and left them there. Disciples like Wan Li and the others who had been learning Alchemy for half their life also didn''t need this information, so they decided to go up the floor. Alex didn''t immediately go up, however. His books of interest in the library weren''t alchemy books necessarily. He wanted to learn about the Lilies and his body. He looked around the lower floor and came across the formation section. For the last few days, he had been really curious about the formation and had wanted to learn it. There was also the formation that gathered Qi that he had acquired the tools for from the place in the southern forest. They had been sitting in his storage bags, doing nothing and he wanted to desperately make use of them. If possible, he wanted to learn formations and swiftly recreate the formation in the Hong Wu sect''s alchemy garden. ''Arghh, I need to focus on Alchemy. Practicing two different veins of production might slow me down on both of them,'' he thought. However, the curiosity still remained in his heart and he couldn''t throw it away. So, he opened some of the formation books from the shelves and started reading them. He didn''t bother understanding what the books said. He only concentrated on remembering everything he was looking at and reading. He couldn''t send his Spiritual Sense to swiftly look through all of it, so he had to manually flip through the book to read it. He read through a few of the basic knowledge books and stopped. There was nothing significant he had to read here. He stopped searching through the first floor at all and moved up a floor. There were a lot more people on the 2nd floor than there were on the first floor. Perhaps the first floor was really beginner level for these people to bother with them. Alex chuckled softly and shook his head. He was not even a beginner in formations, so it was okay for him to waste his time there. He swiftly found his way around the floor and went to the alchemy section. There wasn''t a lot here and it seemed most of his fellow disciples had already gone up a floor again. ''This must be too easy for them too,'' Alex thought. He didn''t bother reading these books at all. He instead started searching for any slightest hints of Spirit Cleansing lily in the books. Unfortunately, there weren''t any here either. He found some mentions of Spirit Cleansing Lily, but they more so talked about what it looked like more than anything else. Those information were useless for Alex. He then went around searching for any other places that could mention the lilies such as cultivation. After all, one could unlock the Spiritual sea when cultivating with one of them. Unfortunately, there weren''t any. He searched for information on bodies at the same time too, but he could find none for it as well. ''Damn, how high must I go to find any relevant information at all?'' he wondered. Thankfully, the formations were new ground for him and any information was relevant information. He read them for a few minutes, basically cramming anything and everything into his brain without trying to understand it. Once he was done, he left that floor as well. He went to the third floor and looked through the alchemy section once more. He once again found mentions of the lily, but none of the information was new to him, so he reluctantly went to search for other things. He started looking for books on the different bodies, but something else caught his eye. It was a book in the artifact section that talked about different materials. ''Maybe¡­'' Alex wondered as he had a small premonition. Alex quickly opened the book and started looking through it. It took him a dozen or so seconds, but his eyes caught it. The thing he was looking for in the book. ''Yang Jades,'' he read it. He found information about Yang Jades. There wasn''t much information on it, only that they were jades with Yang energy in them. However, there was something in them that intrigued Alex way too much for the book to not be worth it. According to the book, Yang Jades were actually not naturally occurring jades, but something that was a result of something else. The book didn''t say anything else but that alone was worth it. He now knew where he could search for more information. Alex spend a few more minutes looking through the different books in the Formations section of the floor, and once he was done, he went up a floor again. Chapter 286: History ''How many floors was it again? From the outside, it looked like it was 20 stories tall. But from the inside, the ceiling seems much higher than what one would expect.'' ''Is it 2 stories for a single floor? The size seems to match that. Hmm¡­ so there must only be 10 floors in total, and I am on the 4th floor already,'' Alex thought as he walked up the staircase to the 4th floor. He immediately walked over to the Artifact section since it was the closest and started looking through books, searching for information on Yang Jades once more. It took him a while, but he successfully found it. ''Ah here it is, let''s see. Yang Jades are originally just normal jades with no Qi in them. However, when those normal jades come in contact with the incredibly dense source of Yang energy, they start getting affected by the Yang energy and turn to Yang jades.'' ''Yang jades are very rare as places with extreme yang energy is¡­ nearly impossible to find¡­ what? How can it be rare? There is literally slew of yang jades in the forbidden fields,'' Alex thought. The book was giving information that didn''t seem to match with what he knew about the yang jades. ''That means¡­ the book is wrong¡­ or the other possible scenario, the Forbidden Fields is just that unique. But according to the book, the Yang Jades are only made when they stay around in the extreme yang spots and swallow some of the yangs to themselves.'' ''However, if the forbidden fields had Yang energy, shouldn''t my body react to it¡ª No wait, it did react, in the desert. That thing¡­ that reaction my body showed towards the place in the north of desert... Was that the extreme yang spot? If so¡­ then how are the Yang Jades so scattered away from them.'' ''None of this makes sense,'' Alex thought. He didn''t know if his hypothesis was right or not, so he tried to look for information on eating Yang Jades. As he had expected, there were none. He left the book and went to the alchemy section to look for Spirit Cleansing lily, but there was nothing about it. So, he moved to the cultivation section where he searched both about the lily and the different bodies. However, he was disappointed when he found out there was no information about them here. ''Sigh, I will have to go up a floor,'' he thought and moved away from that section. He went to the formation section to read for a few more minutes before he went up a floor. He walked up the staircase and now he was on the 5th floor. He directly went to the artifact section of the floor and read up on yang jades again to see if there was any additional information. There was, but it only talked about how Yang Jades would lose their energy over a few months if one didn''t use it at all or kept it in yang concentrated place. ''A few months? Didn''t master say it lost energy very quickly? Was she wrong?'' he wondered. Seeing that there was no more information, he left that section and went to the alchemy section. He looked through the books and searched for information on Lilies again. Finally, he found some relevant information. The book talked about using the lilies to cultivate and unlock the spiritual sea. That wasn''t anything new to him, but it was a good start. He now knew that he would be able to perhaps find more information if he went up the floor. He went to the cultivation section and searched for bodies. There was some information but none of it was what he wanted to learn. He decided to leave the floor once more after remembering the formation books of this floor. He walked up to the 6th floor and searched around for any information he could find. He went to the artifact section for the yang jades but there were none anymore. The alchemy section didn''t have much for Spirit Cleansing Lilies either. At least, the information they did have was useless to him. He was a little excited on the lower floor, but it seemed he would have to look around some more. He wanted to go to the cultivation section to look for more information on the lily and bodies but instead stopped, because of what he saw in one of the other sections. The section he stopped at was History and the book that caught his attention was The Entire History of the Crimson Empire. ''Oh, history of this empire, huh? I''m quite curious,'' he thought and started reading. Before the Crimson Empire was formed, the place was called the Shattered Kingdoms. There were multiple small countries that ruled their own lands and were in constant war with each other. Each of these kingdoms had their own king that tried to fight against other kingdoms to add those lands to their own country. The kings were obviously a cultivator, so the mortals remained in fear every day, hoping this wasn''t the day that they were randomly attacked and killed. The different cultivators showed no mercy to anyone they met and freely killed people in the name of their kings. The war-trodden times were a time of terror and fear. Each of the kings wanted to rule over the entire land, but they were all equal in strength so they couldn''t do anything to each other. The king''s armies weren''t very strong either when compared to the others. So, this caused a lot of small skirmishes and battles that simply showed aggression for the sake of aggression. None of the kings could win against the other kings and they knew it. That, however, lasted for not so long. A person appeared out of nowhere and became the king of a small land near the southern forest called the Cardinal Kingdom. The name of this illustrious person who was going to change the stability amongst the different kingdoms was Fu Qiong. Chapter 287: Maximum Fu Qiong, according to the book, appeared out of nowhere and swiftly defeated the gang leader of a bandit group that was taking residence in the Cardinal Kingdom. He then slowly defeated everyone and turned the Cardinal Kingdom into his own land. He then slowly started declaring wars against the rest of the kingdoms and one by one defeated them. It took him 8 years to fully destroy all the 18 different kingdoms that were available at the time and took them all under his own rule. Once the land was too large to keep calling it a kingdom, he took the chance to call his land an empire and named it the Crimson Empire. Then he named himself an Emperor as well. Fu Qiong ruled as the first Emperor of the Crimson empire for nearly 6 decades before he retired and passed along his throne to his first son. The son of the emperor was also talented as well as being very strong. He successfully took over his father''s work and continued to keep the empire united. Thus came the rule of the Fu family. All of that happened nearly 1200 years ago. Alex was a little stunned as he read all of this. ''It''s not different from when our real world was separated and people fought over land. I guess they really did take inspiration from real-life stories to make up this game world,'' Alex thought. He then read the final page of the book. ''It was later revealed that the first Emperor¡­was not a resident of the Shattered Kingdoms but someone that came from¡­ beyond the Southern Forest.'' Alex''s eyes went wide when he read that. ''Another person from beyond the southern forest. How does one traverse the giant forest?'' Alex wondered. Just as he was wondering that someone tapped on his shoulder. He was jolted awake from his stupor and quickly turned around. Behind him was Ma Rong who had at some point appeared on the 6th floor. He looked at the book he was holding and said nothing. Instead, she just gestured for him to follow her. He was curious as to what she had found, so he quickly closed the book and put it away before following her. Ma Rong climbed the staircase and went up floors without stopping anywhere. 7th floor, 8th floor, finally 9th floor. Only after reaching the 9th floor did she stop climbing the stairs and walked towards the books. Alex expected her to walk towards the Alchemy section, but instead, she walked towards the Cultivation section. She picked up a book as soon as she reached there as if she knew exactly which one to pick up and turned the page. Once she reached a certain page, she handed the book to Alex. Alex curiously looked at the page and was surprised to see the information about the Spirit Cleansing Lily that he had been looking for all this time. ''Finally. No wonder I couldn''t find it on the lower floors. It''s so high up,'' Alex thought. He quickly read the chapter of the lily and learned the thing he had been so desperate to learn for the last 10 days. ''Spirit Cleansing Lily can help unlock the Spiritual Sea of a cultivator before they even reach Saint realm. Simply cultivating with a lily allows one to unlock a spiritual sea.'' ''Spirit Cleansing Lily in its raw form is useless for Saint Realm cultivators.'' ''Self Tempering or True realm cultivators with unlocked Spiritual sea can use Spirit Cleansing lily to expand their Spiritual sea.'' ''A cultivator can only use 3 Spirit Cleansing Lilies in their lifetime... So that''s what it was. I used up all of my available lily turns. So I guess I can no longer use the lilies huh. That would be quite a waste of these flowers,'' Alex thought. He looked through the book to look for more information, but that was it. There was no information about any pills or items that could be made using the lily as an ingredient. He was disappointed that he couldn''t learn any more information, but what he got was enough to satisfy his thirst for learning what was up with the lilies. He turned towards Ma Rong who was looking at the book behind his back and thanked her. Ma Rong nodded and left, basically leaving him to do what he wanted. He decided to look at the book about bodies that were right next to him. The book recorded information about different bodies but it wasn''t extensive enough to be of any use to Alex. In fact, it didn''t even have any information about his body. Alex had to reconcile with the fact that it was pretty much impossible for him to learn anything about his body through the books. ''Maybe there are NPCs out there that know about my body,'' Alex hoped. Once he was done with that section, he went to the Alchemy section but realized that it had information about True Pill making processes. From what he could read, it wasn''t any different from what he was doing, other than the fact that the book was teaching him to use something called Qi sense. He didn''t really know what it was so he decided not to bother with it until he was in the True realms. He tried to search about Yang Jades in the artifact section, but unfortunately, there was none. He could find 0 information about the yang jades. Alex was a little disappointed regarding that and went to the formation section and started reading those books. He had directly jumped to the 9th floor, so he didn''t even know what he was reading right now. Thankfully, he could recall later on once he was freer and look over the different information he had gotten right now. Still, he didn''t want the gaps to exist in his knowledge, so he went down the staircases to the 6th floor once more and started reading everything before going up. He was going to grind for a little while more. Chapter 288: Earnings Alex searched a bit more about the different bodies. He found some information about few bodies, but nothing concrete. He didn''t find the thing he was especially looking for, the Sun God''s Divine Yang body. He searched through the 6th, the 7th, the 8th, and the 9th floor and couldn''t find any. He wanted to go search on the 10th floor, but unfortunately, it seemed that he was wrong. There was no 10th floor and 9th was the highest. Once he realized there was no information that could help him at all, he was a little disappointed. He instead read everything he could about the formation and put them in his mind. He also looked for some information on True pills as well on the alchemy section. According to the books, True Pills required True Qi to make. This was something he already knew but what he didn''t know was that one didn''t necessarily have to be in the True realms to make the True Pills. ''Anyone who has True Qi¡­ meaning when I start converting my common Qi to True Qi, I can start making those pills that soon,'' he thought. His hypothesis was proven correct by the information in the book. Another thing about True Pills was that they were highly volatile during the process of making them. The energy they produced during preparation was a lot more prone to instability than when making the common pills. ''Is this why master told me to wait until learning about True pills? Because they are very violent and didn''t want me to get hurt?'' he wondered. It had been a few hours since he had come to the library. The elders were all gathering the disciples who were willing to leave and started leaving the library. Alex wanted to join them but decided not to. He stayed in the library for another hour reading up on different things and finally left it. The reason he didn''t leave with the group earlier was that he wanted to take a different route and go get his spirit stones from the Auction house on the southern side of the city. It was only a few minutes walks away from here, so he walked towards there as soon as he left the library. Along the way, he tried to process the information about the formations as much as he could, but he didn''t know the first thing about formations, so it was impossible to learn about them on the fly. So along the way, he simply gave up on it. He instead focused on the Alchemy knowledge he had learned today, but unfortunately, none of them were revelatory enough for him to dwell on it for long. So, he gave up on it too. Fortunately, the auction house was quite close so he reached it before he would have to think about something else. The attendant at the door of the auction house tried to stop Alex, but he just showed her the contract and was quickly taken in. The familiar hallway was way too familiar and he felt a little uncomfortable, knowing that he wasn''t in the place that his brain was telling him he was. Alex was taken to one of the waiting rooms where he sat down and waited for the person in charge to return soon. After a few minutes, the door opened and Han Jing walked in with a face full of wide smiles. "Greetings fellow Daoist, I hope you didn''t have to wait too long for this unworthy attendant to arrive," he said. Alex was a little taken aback when he heard Han Jing call himself unworthy. ''What''s going on?'' he wondered but didn''t ask. "Is today''s auction over?" he asked. "Yes, fellow Daoist. Today''s auction ended nearly 3 hours ago. Thanks to your pills, it was a smashing success. At least for my part, it was, hehe," Han Jing said while showing his teeth. Alex didn''t say anything else and instead asked about the thing he was here for. "So, how much did I earn?" he asked. "Fellow Daoist, your pills were extraordinary. Even for being a common rank pill, Heaven grade ones are rarely seen so freely on the market. Not to mention you brought so many great pills at once." "Those sales were a smashing success. So much so to the point that the audience nearly rioted trying to ask for the alchemist that made those pills. So¡­ would it be possible for you to reveal who your master is?" he asked. "I am afraid my master does not wish to be named. Which was also why he sent me to sell his pills, instead of coming on his own. Now that it is clear, can we get onto the part about my pills being sold?" Alex asked. "Ah yes, yes. Of course. Your 23 pills sold for a total of¡­ 66 True spirit stones. The Fat Converting pill earned you 16 True Spirit stones, the Rubber Body pill earned you 18 True spirit stones. And most surprisingly, the Energy Negating pill earned you 32 True spirit stones," Han Jing said. Alex nearly asked Han Jing to repeat those numbers again, because of how unbelievable they were. ''But I only got 29 True spirit stones when I sold 21 pills back 2 weeks ago. Suddenly, it''s doubled now? Wow, I must be still underestimating how lucrative the Heaven grade pills are,'' Alex thought. "Those stones¡­ they are after the 10% tax right?" Alex asked. "Oh, yes of course. We have already taken our part, and these are yours," Han Jing said. He handed a storage bag over to Alex, who took it and started looking inside. He couldn''t freely use Spiritual sense, so he would have to use normal means. He checked the spirit stones and was once again surprised to see so many at once. If he converted them, he would get around 55 thousand dollars, but that was not the reason he sold those pills. He looked at Han Jing and asked, "When is the next auction?" Chapter 289: Next Auction "Sorry?" Han Jing was caught off guard a little and immediately started running his little minds regarding the different scenarios that might come true. ''Does he have more pills to sell? I got a 3% commission from everything I sold today. Since he was the highest, I got above 2 True spirit stones from his alone. If he is willing to sell more of those pills then..'' His mind started running wild. "Um¡­ fellow Daoist?" Alex called. "Uh. Uh¡­ yes?" Han Jing answered. "About the next auction, can you tell me a little about it," Alex asked. "Um¡­ Fellow Daoist, do you have more pills to sell?" Han Jing asked. "Sorry? No, I don''t. I was just thinking of taking part in the next auction. So I was wondering, is it still taking place every day? When will it take place tomorrow?" Alex asked. "Oh, fellow Daoist, you meant to ask that," Han Jing said in a dejected voice. He could practically hear his wild daydreams shatter around him. Still, he was professional and answered professionally. "No, we do not have any auctions planned for tomorrow. Since Thursday is a break from the competition, the auction house is organizing an auction as big as the bi-annual auctions it has every 6 months. That will be the final auction for a few days," Han Jing said. "Thus, if you wish to take part in the auction, I suggest you either take part in Thursday''s auction at 10 am, or the one that takes place right after the competition ends," Han Jing said. "After the competition ends? When is that?" Alex asked. "Umm¡­ we have no idea fellow Daoist. You must know too that the final competitions can sometimes last for days. So, the very next day after the end of the competition will be another auction held by the auction house. However, that is too far away, so I suggest you join the auction for the day after tomorrow," Han Jing replied. Alex thought for a second and said, "Very well. Thank you for the information. I will take my leave now." "Umm¡­ Fellow Daoist, Should I save a VIP room for you?" Han Jing asked. Alex thought for a bit and agreed. He knew there were VVIP rooms as well, but since he was a single person a VIP room alone would suffice him. Alex thanked Han Jing and left the auction house. He looked at the time and realized that it was around 5 pm, so he didn''t dilly dally and went straight back to the hotel. He reached the hotel 15 minutes later and returned back to his room. "Oh, brother Yu, you are back," Wan Li said, while constantly writing on a new book. He had probably learned a lot of new things and he was trying to write them down before he would forget them. Alex really wanted to give him a flower right away but was still a little hesitant. It was going to take him a while to trust anyone on the same level in the game again. "Yes, I''m back. You guys returned quite early," Alex said. "Well, I didn''t see any point, hehe. It''s not like I could remember anything by just staying there. So I decided to come as quickly as I could and start writing the stuff down," Wan Li said. "I see. Then continue writing Brother Wan, I will try to recall what I read as well," Alex said and went to sit on the bed. Finally, he was free enough to revise everything he learned today. One couldn''t use more than 3 Spirit Cleansing lilies at once. That meant the remaining 3 of his lilies would be useless until he found other usages for it. The Yang jades were just simple jades that found a concentrated spot of Yang energy and absorbed it. That didn''t explain why they were available in the grassland of the forbidden fields, but Alex would find the answer later on. Especially, regarding the thing that attracted him to the north of the desert. Perhaps the information he wasn''t expecting to learn was about how Fu Qiong conquered the Shattered Kingdoms and combined them to form the Crimson Empire. Also, the fact that he was from beyond the Southern Forest was something Alex was still curious about. He wanted to know how one could traverse in and out of the crimson empire. If he could do that, then maybe he could go out and see the true continent. The outside world knew the secrets to the saint realm, he could perhaps learn those too. ''That guy was from outside the Crimson Empire too, wasn''t he?'' Alex thought as he took out the one talisman he had acquired from the guy. There were a few things that he had never revealed to even his masters, to who he revealed everything. One of those things was the Ebony Corundum Stiletto. Another thing was this talisman that he got from the man. The sword he had hidden before they even took him as a disciple so he never revealed it to them afterward, especially because he wasn''t sure they would let him keep such a strong sword. The talisman, however, he wasn''t sure why he was hiding it. Still, he had kept it and tried to understand what it was but was still unable to. ''Maybe I will know what this is after I reach the other side,'' he thought. He was still a little disappointed that he didn''t learn anything regarding his body, but he would probably have to leave the crimson empire for that too. At least the trip to the library was partially successful, so he was quite happy. He went on to recollect what else he had learned from his trip to the library and tried to learn it. He didn''t bother with the formation stuff for now as that would take truly too long for him. He learned everything else he could for the next 30 minutes or so until there was a knock on his door. It was time for the next meeting. Chapter 290: Natural Law of the Body Alex and Wan Li walked over to Ma Rong''s room and joined the meeting. "Alright, everyone is here right?" Ma Rong asked as she looked around and nodded to herself seeing everyone there. "First of all, let us celebrate us reaching the 1st grade as a sect. Congratulations to everyone who helped make it happen," Ma Rong said and started clapping. Everyone followed and soon there were smiles and cheers amongst the disciples. Now that they were a 1st-grade sect, they had a better reputation in the land and more young folks would decide to join the Hong Wu sect leading to them joining the sect. "We needed 523 points to enter the first grade, and from what I calculated¡­ we have actually reached 594 points as of today. The alchemy competitions helped, but the rest of you who took poison, formations, and talisman competitions also helped quite a bit." "So, thank you to everyone who took part and helped us go a level higher as a sect," Ma Rong said. Everyone was smiling at her mentions. Ma Rong let them celebrate for a little while before continuing. "Now, on to the second part of today''s meeting. Since Yu Ming and Wan Li decided to skip out on tomorrow''s competition, who wants to enter as the third person along with Meimei and Fanfan?" Ma Rong asked. A few people raised their hands and Ma Rong chose a male disciple who was good at learning as that was tomorrow''s theme. She then asked what other people wanted to do. She got a few answers but in the end, everyone decided to wait until they saw tomorrow''s competition before agreeing. Ma Rong thought that was for the best and dismissed the group. Alex and Wan Li returned back to their room and Alex immediately went to log out. ''Sigh, tomorrow''s going to be kind of boring,'' he thought. There wasn''t anything really happening in tomorrow''s competition that he was either taking part in or looked forward to. So, nothing about tomorrow''s events attracted him. He got out of the capsule and commented to himself how he was still not feeling any hunger or need to go to the bathroom. ''That is really weird. I really hope it''s okay and the doctors and scientists didn''t mess up the tests,'' he thought. He went to the bathroom to freshen up a bit but that was useless. Inside the capsule, there was the perfect temperature and was hidden to the outer environment, so he never sweat or got dirt on him. Still, he freshened himself and got out. He wanted to go eat something but he just wasn''t hungry. ''Sigh, let me check if it''s really okay,'' he thought and went online to check again just to be sure there weren''t any bad complaints. There were complaints as one would expect. People just weren''t getting hungry, but nothing was physically wrong with people. And the only suggestion for them was¡­ don''t play. That was not something people were going to do. Still, some people were really happy regarding what was happening. They could go on for nearly 2 days with a single meal. That was a lot of money saved for people who needed to spend quite a lot on food. Alex wondered if he should go eat, but didn''t want to feel uncomfortable, so he simply decided to skip today''s dinner. However, he did decide on one thing. He was going to use the helmet for today. He wasn''t sure if it was necessarily a good idea or not, but he decided that he wanted his hunger back, so he went to his bed, put on the helmet, and logged in. Alex opened his eyes inside the game and nearly thought he was still in the real world because of how dull everything was. He immediately activated focus mode and felt like he finally got his senses back. It was a little harder to control for some reason, but he very quickly got used to this focus mode as well. ''That¡­ feels a little more¡­ natural,'' Alex thought. Even after the senses were amplified, it wasn''t to the same level as the one from the capsule and honestly, it just felt like something he was able to use on a normal day even in the real world. ''The capsule one is a little too¡­ amplified. This one is way better,'' Alex thought. Still, he couldn''t argue that the capsule one probably was more useful than this one. He looked around and saw that Wan Li was back to writing as usual, totally focused on himself. So, Alex also decided to focus on himself. He sneakily called out Pearl and hid him in his robes before starting to cultivate. Before long, he was asleep. Alex opened his eyes early in the morning. He looked around and saw that Wan Li was cultivating. ''That''s new,'' Alex thought. He had only ever seen him read and write. ''Maybe he cultivates during the night,'' he thought. He sent Pearl back to the tattoo and realized something was different. ''It''s still night?'' he thought as he looked outside. He could see the sky light up a bit, but the sun had still yet to rise. ''Oh, I woke up earlier today,'' he thought and looked at the time. It was 5:48 am in morning. ''Whatever, let''s leave,'' he thought and logged. As soon as Alex logged out, he wasn''t greeted with the usual dull sense like when he did from the capsule. Instead, he was greeted by 3 new senses, that he had honestly missed for the last 3 days. He felt hunger and need to go to the bathroom for both number 1 and number 2. "Oh sh*t," he thought and quickly sprinted to the bathroom to relieve himself. Once he was done, he went to the kitchen to eat something. He was really hungry, so he ended up eating two bowls of cereals by himself. Once he was done, he went back to his room and got into the capsule. After that, he logged back in. Chapter 291: Fourth Day Alex was greeted by the now-familiar Focus Mode. He very quickly adjusted to the amplified sense and looked around. The sun was up by now and the room was lit. ''What''s the time?'' he thought and looked. It was 6:42 PM. ''Oh, I took quite a while today to log back in,'' he thought. Had he not woken up early, he might have missed today''s competition start. Very soon, there was someone calling them by knocking on their door, and in a usual fashion, Alex and Wan Li walked out. "Everyone is here. Let''s leave," Ma Rong said and walked down the stairs with the whole group. In 15 or so minutes, the group reached the coliseum and entered it. They went to the stage along with the other dozens of sects looked at the competition for now. For the Alchemy competition, the competition was that they would learn a new pill recipe, made specifically for the competition by the Royal Alchemist and the participants would have to follow it to make the best pill in under an hour. This required a lot of knowledge regarding the different pills and how ingredients interacted as well as being able to remember every single movement from the pill-making process, including the timing, the flame temperature, the order of ingredients as well as the movement they had to make in the cauldron. The competition asked for a lot, and only those that could deliver on it could win. Alex was sure he would do quite well in the competition but still didn''t want to take part in it. He wanted to experience the combat or specialized competition at least once. Ma Rong took the ones that wanted to participate and took them to register, while the rest of them went to the seating area. Alex saw the Tiger sect and greeted his master and his senior sister, but didn''t go join them. Luo Mei insisted on it so he promised he would do that the next day. Once she agreed, he went back to the Hong Wu sect seating area. "I don''t think I''ve said this before but I am really surprised that you are the disciple of the sect leader of Tiger sect as well," Wan Li said. "Haha, that sorta just happened. I can''t believe it myself as well," Alex said. "Learning both Alchemy and battle at the same time, I''m very envious of you, Brother Yu," Wan Li said while making a weird face. ''Huh?'' Alex was a little surprised but Wan Li focused back on the stage, so Alex let go of it. The first few competitions started and Alex looked at them. He felt very unenthusiastic towards the whole competition as a whole today. People were learning before doing anything, so they made a lot of mistakes and not many intense competitions took place. Even the formation ones that kept his attentions usually didn''t manage to grab his interest. ''Sigh, this is boring,'' he thought and looked around the coliseum. It seemed a lot of people held the same sentiment as him. Some of the audience members even left their seats and left the coliseum entirely. "Sigh, the Royal Fu Academy should have made the learning competitions on the 2nd day or the third day and kept yesterday''s competition for today. That would''ve made the competitions much more exciting," The second elder said. "Yes, I feel the same way dear. They screwed up really bad this time. Well at least the alchemy competition starts at 9, so we can leave early if we want to," the third elder said. Alex nodded when he realized that. Soon the competition on the stage ended and the girls walked onto the stage for the alchemy competition. Nobody really expected the male disciple to show any amazing performance and only Fan Ruogang and Zhou Mei were what the rest of the sect were focused on. Alex looked at the stage and saw all the top 3 disciples from the Spring song sect as well as the Twin harmony sect, which was another well-known alchemy sect. Only the Hong Wu sect didn''t send out their A team for today''s competition. "Oh wow, even that guy is there," someone commented. Alex looked at the stage and saw Huang Fu, who seemed to be looking around the stage for someone. He walked up to Fan Ruogang and asked something, who replied back. Huang Fu immediately turned towards the audience and looked at Alex and shook his head in disappointment. ''He must''ve been looking forward to winning against me today. That''s a shame, I would''ve probably taken part if I could take part in the combat ones as well,'' Alex thought. The competition soon started and the host relayed the basic rules. The rules were the same as the ones for the other competitions. The only difference this time was that everyone got the ingredients from the staff themselves. So no one had to bring any on their own. The regular rules applied and everyone was handed a recipe. Then, the timer started. Each one of them had exactly 60 minutes to learn the recipe and make the pills. The audience could do nothing but watch them just read the recipe for nearly half an hour, if not more. They needed to memorize every movement, every step before they could hope to make the pill. The timer was running out, so everyone started making the pills immediately. There wasn''t enough time to make multiple pills so they had to rely on this one pill. The audience was a little surprised when a pill cauldron actually exploded while the person was making their pill. Thankfully, the staff member immediately went and stopped the explosion and sound from spreading. Slowly, one by one the participants started finishing the pills and started walking to the front to show off their creations. Fan Ruogang, Zhou Mei, Han Long, and Huang Fu too walked to the front of the stage and started putting their pills into the pill tester one by one. Chapter 292: Unexpected Result Fan Ruogang was the first one to put hers in, so her result was the first to come up. Up until now, the best result belonged to a random participant for 22% harmony. That looked bad in comparison to what everyone was used to making the previous days, but one had to remember that this was the first time they had made this pill. So, it was actually a very good result for them to be able to make a near Earth grade pill on the first try. As for Fan Ruogang''s result, it was the best as of yet. She managed to make a pill with exactly 28% harmony, making it the best until now. Han Long was second and his result was actually better. Fan Ruogang humphed quite audibly when she saw Han Long''s pill harmony reached 29%. He had won over her result with a single percentage. Huang Fu was next and his result stunned the entire stage and competitors. He surprisingly managed to reach a high harmony of 41% on a pill he had never seen or made before. That just went to show the terrifying level of ability this man held regarding Alchemy. Zhou Mei was next and honestly, no one was expecting anything from her. She wasn''t a well-remembered figure from the previous matches as her only notable achievement was getting third place in the speed pill-making competition. In fact, even she herself was doubtful of what she had made, but when the result came back that she had actually managed to make a pill with 35% harmony, she was exhilarated. A big smile came upon her face as she learned that she had won 2nd place. The people from the Hong Wu sect cheered when they saw that, and Fan Ruogang went to give her a big hug for winning. The host announced the results to the audience and the sect accepted her with open arms. "Great job you girls. Ah, you did not bad yourself, disciple Song. 11th place is not bad at all, " the second elder said. The male disciple felt a little better after hearing that. The rest of the sect members congratulated them when they came to the seating area. The group quietened down for a few minutes when the second elder said something. "Sect leader, there is nothing interesting happening today, so can''t we simply leave?" he said. Ma Rong didn''t immediately say anything and looked at the other''s reaction. It seemed everyone was really bored today. "Sigh, alright. There is nothing worth watching, so we will leave for today," Ma Rong said and stood up to leave. Alex stood up as well and looked towards the Tiger sect to say goodbye if they saw him, but surprisingly, they had already left. ''Well, I can''t fault them for that,'' Alex thought. He left the coliseum and as usual, Ma Rong asked if anyone wanted to leave on their own instead of returning to the hotel. Alex thought for a bit and realized that he didn''t need to return to the hotel since he didn''t have to leave the capsule at all. Since he wouldn''t feel hungry for nearly 2 more days, he was free to stay inside the game for just that amount of time. "I will leave today, master," Alex said and said his goodbyes. Surprisingly, Zhou Mei also decided to take a leave and walked in the same direction as Alex. Alex was taking the road to the Alchemy hall when he noticed Zhou Mei following behind him. So he slowed down for her to catch up to him. "Do you need something?" Alex asked when she finally caught up to him. Zhou Mei fidgeted a bit and finally spoke up. "Yes, I¡­ I want to say something," she said. "Very well, please speak," Alex said. "I¡­ " Zhou Mei stopped for something and continued, "I''m sorry. I apologize for all the hurtful things I said to you before. I had thought that you were given everything for free before, and advanced to where you were at the time because of it." "But I never realized how wrong I was. There is no way a person can make such an amazing pill as the one you made yesterday simply by being given everything." "So, now I''ve come to respect your talent and want to apologize for holding a grudge against you," she said. Alex was very surprised to hear all of this. Honestly, he held a negative view of her until today. He felt that she was petty and couldn''t see things from any other perspective than her own. But it seemed that he was wrong and that she was more than just a hateful person. You really couldn''t understand a person just by looking at them or even meeting them for a while. Everyone was different on the inside, it just took some time for their real self to show themselves. Thus, Alex smiled and decided to forgive her. "It''s okay. I can see where you were coming from. I accept your apology," he said. Zhou Mei seemed to have a massive load taken off her head as she sighed in relief and bowed toward Alex. "Thank you for forgiving me," she said. Alex was a little taken aback. He already forgave her, so he wasn''t sure what more he could say. "Uh¡­ we are in the middle of the street. Please get up." He hurriedly went forward to grab her by her shoulders and get her up. "Aww¡­ that was so sweet. I didn''t know you had a grudge against Mingming, Meimiei. At least you apologized and that is what is important," Fan Ruogang spoke from the side of the road. "Fanfan, what are you doing here?" Zhou Mei''s face immediately went red with shame when she saw her standing there. "Hehe, you guys left, so I also wanted to join you guys. Thus I came here. Look, I brought him too," she said as she pulled out Wen Li who was hiding behind her. "So, now that you are done apologizing, where are we going?" Chapter 293: Beast Attracting Pill Alex smiled and asked, "Do you guys have ingredients to make pills?" "Of course, we are alchemists. We always have different ingredients on us," Fan Ruogang said proudly. "Haha, Yes we do, brother Yu," Wan Li said with a nervous smile. Zhou Mei nodded as well. "Well, if you guys do have them, then let''s go to the Alchemy hall to take some pills. You guys are probably agitated from not being able to make pills for the last few days," Alex said. Zhou Mei and Wan Li''s eyes shined when they heard they could go somewhere where they could make pills. Fan Ruogang however made a weird face. "Ahh¡­ I don'' really care about pills, but whatever. Let''s go make one. Actually, let''s go by the market once. I want to try making today''s pills. I want to beat the harmony level of that Huang Fu guy. He probably already learned about that pill from his master before me, and simply flaunted his knowledge today," she said. "Ah, Fanfan, that''s not possible. For the sake of competition, he isn''t allowed to do that. Sect Leader said so herself," Wan Li said. "Oh, did she? Well, whatever. I still want to beat him," she declared. Alex smiled and asked, "Why don''t we make a competition out of this then. We will all learn the recipe and¡­ in 6 hours after entering the Alchemy hall, whoever makes the best pill is the winner," Alex said. Fan Ruogang''s eyes lit up abnormally when she heard that it was going to be a competition. "Alright, here you guys take the recipe," she said as she gave her recipe to Wan Li. Zhou Mei took hers out and gave hers to Alex. Alex looked at the recipe just once and immediately learned it. The recipe was for a pill called Beast Attracting pill. The pill was made using a bunch of beast parts that were used to make a pill that spread a very strong fragrance when it interacted with Qi. The pill then attracted various beats depending on its harmony level. Mortal grade pills attracted Skin tempering and Muscle tempering realm monsters. Earth Grade pills attracted Bone tempering and Organ Tempering realm monsters. Heaven Grade pills attracted Meridian Tempering and Mind Tempering realm monsters. The purpose for pills with a higher level of harmony was not written. Probably, not even the Royal alchemist was capable of making pills with 75% harmony, even if it was a common rank pill. He had already learned the pill recipe but giving it back immediately was a bit suspicious, so he asked Wan Li to write the recipe down for the both of them and took it. They then took a detour to a place that sold the different ingredients. Since the ingredients were mostly beast parts, Alex, unfortunately, didn''t have them. So he had to end up buying a lot of those. Thankfully, he was loaded with money right now and didn''t have to worry about the cost. Once they got their ingredients, Alex showed them the way to the Alchemy Hall. At the register, he asked for a room for 6 hours and paid upfront. He and the other 3 were then taken to 4 different alchemy rooms at the back of the hall. After the door was closed, Alex sat on the seat with the Golden Jade cauldron in front of him and got ready to make his pills. "This is the first time I''m making an all monster ingredient pill right?" he thought. Monster corpses usually had one or two parts that could be used as ingredients. But he had never come across a pill recipe that used only them. ''I wonder how the Royal Alchemist came up with the recipe,'' he thought. The cauldron had heated up and it was time for him to put in the ingredients. The recipe appeared in his mind as he knew what to do next. He took out the first ingredient and put it in. He slowly swirled it around until it became powder and the energy was all released. Once the first ingredient was done, he put in the second one which released more energy that mixed with the already existing energy. Then third, and fourth. He kept doing that until he finally put in the last ingredient. ''Oh, so the final energy is wood, huh,'' he thought. He quickly started compressing the powder, and a minute later, he had a pill with him. He quickly pulled out the pill and held it in his hand. Beast Attracting pill - 38% ''Hmm¡­ not bad. I could''ve probably done better if I had focused more on the pill making,'' he thought and started making another one. The first one had taken him only 20 and the following ones took even less. In an hour, he ended up making 3 pills. However, every hour after that, he ended up making 4 pills each. Sometimes, he made more due to making 2 pills at once. By the end of the 6 hours mark, he had managed to make exactly 28 pills. He looked at the time and realized he only had 3 minutes left. So he cleaned his cauldron, put everything back into his storage bags, and left the room. Fan Ruogang was already outside, constantly tapping her foot, annoyed about something. Alex walked up to her and asked, "What''s wrong?" "I''ve been waiting here for nearly half an hour, that''s what''s wrong," she said in an annoyed voice. Alex was a little surprised and asked, "Why did you leave half an hour earlier then?" Fan Ruogang''s face suddenly turned all red and said, "I didn''t know how long it had been while I was making the pills and unknowingly left too early." PFFTT Alex started laughing. "Hey don''t laugh. I didn''t have a clock with me okay. That''s why I left so early," Fan Ruogang said with a red face. Alex couldn''t stop laughing for a few more minutes and only stopped laughing when the other two arrived. Fan Ruogang seemed still mad so she said, "Alright, let''s just see who won and get it over with." Chapter 294: Unknown Figure "Wait we just got here. Why was he laughing? Why are you red?" Zhou Mei started asking. "Doesn''t matter. Show me your best pills," Fan Ruogang practically ordered. "Well, this is mine. A 43% pill," Zhou Mei said as she took out a pill. "No, I don''t believe you. Use a pill tester," she said. "Right here? Okay," Zhou Mei said and brought out a pill tester. Wan Li and Fan Ruogang also brought out their pill tester. Seeing them all take those out, Alex also brought out his spare pill tester, one he kept just for consistency with the other alchemists. If there ever came a day where he was asked for a pill tester and he didn''t own one, that would start making people think of him as weird. Once he took it out, he also brought out one of the pills with him. He didn''t want to embarrass them or make them feel bad about their alchemy achievements, so he brought out a high-grade pill, but not the highest he made. He put his pill into the pill tester and looked at the others. Zhou Mei was the first to put the pill first, so hers was the one that moved up the first. As she had said, her pill harmony reached up to 43% and stopped moving any further. "Sigh, this is the best I could do. What about you guys?" she said and looked at Wan Li''s pill tester which was the second one to be used. The fog slowly rose up and soon caught up to the 43% mark as Zhou Mei''s eyes got dejected. She had lost again. At least it was to the first ranking disciple of the sect. The fog soon rose up to 46% and stopped. "Wow, you actually managed to make such a great pill," she said. "Haha, yeah. I got to research a lot for this pill in the last 6 hours and managed to make this amount," he said. "Wow, Wanwan. Your pill is only 3% lower than what you made for the competition yesterday," Fan Ruogang said. "Haha, yeah. I was a little surprised myself too," he said. "Although, if I had taken part in today''s competition, I would''ve failed for sure. My first pill was only 22% in harmony." "Geez, whatever. You won in the end, so be happy. Look at me, my pill is so bad," Fan Ruogang said as she showed the pill tester with 41% harmony." "Fanfan, you are more focused on the ingredients than pills. You need to give some effort into making pills too. Once I start teaching Mimi better, she will make better pills than you very soon," Zhou Mei said. "What? Do you think your sister can make better pills than me? ¡­ is she really that talented?" Fan Ruogang asked with a little nervous voice. "Sigh, no. It will take her some time. She is still young," Zhou Mei said. "Umm¡­ is she as young as Mingming?" Fan Ruogang asked. "Umm¡­ no. She is older," Zhou Mei said while shaking her head. "Oh, it crossed 40%," Wan Li said. He was the only one of the three focusing on Alex''s pill tester. "Huh?" Fan Ruogang turned around to catch the fog go above 41%. "No! I am at the last place," she said. Soon the fog crossed 43% as well. "Sigh, as expected," Zhou Mei said. Soon the fog rose up and reached 45% and acted stayed there for a few seconds, giving the illusion of stopping, but it increased once more to reach 46%. "Aii, you are too good, Brother Yu," Wan Li said. Just then, the percentage went up once more to 47%. Wan Li and the rest knew better than to assume this was the end, so they silently waited for it to go up. The fog did rise up twice and the final result was 49%. "Sigh, you have my respect brother Yu. This is truly amazing," Wan Li said. "Oh wow, Mingming, you nearly made a Heaven grade pill from something you learned just today?" Fan Ruogang said excitedly. "Haha, that is a really interesting thing I am seeing right now," A voice came from behind Alex. The four of them turned around to see a man in his late 20s staring at them. He wore a simple grayish robe with black linings. He was wearing a small hat, but Alex could see his handsome face clearly. The man walked forward stood next to Alex. He was nearly 3 finger-widths taller than Alex. "Young man, can I take a look at your pill?" the man asked. "Umm¡­ " Alex wasn''t sure what to say. A random person coming up to him and asking to look at his pill was something he had never experienced or prepared for before. "Thank you," the man said, taking Alex''s non-responsiveness as agreement. He took the pill tester and dropped a pill out. He brought it close to his face and looked at it. He frowned a little and brought out another pill from his bag and immediately ate it without hesitation. He shook his head as if electricity coursed through his body, and the next time he opened his eyes, the pupils were wide open. He looked at the pill once more and now he started nodding at it. "Good, good. The composition of the powders is a little flawed, but the overall structure is good. You also managed to get the timing correct a lot of the time¡ª No, almost all the time." "Temperature control was good, but it could be better if you acquire a better cauldron. Hmm¡­ aside from that¡­ you just need better ingredients and you can easily make Heaven-grade pills," the man said while nodding to himself. He seemed to be fascinated with the pill, more so than any other person Alex had seen in his life. He finally looked up from the pill and stared at Alex and asked, "What''s your name, little brother?" Alex could tell that this man was a pill-making genius or at least one that could analyze as greatly, so he decided to answer, "My name is Yu Ming." Chapter 295: He is... The man was a little taken aback by the name and suddenly smiled, "haha, Yu Ming. You are the person that make a 60% pill on the competition yesterday, aren''t you?" the man asked. "Yes, I am," Alex said without a hint of arrogance on his face. The man looked at his face with a slight smirk and said, "You are quite talented, aren''t you? What sect are you from?" "We are from the Hong Wu sect," Alex said. "Hong Wu?" the man dropped his head into a thinking face and said, "Ah, Little Ma''s sect right? No wonder you guys are so talented." "You took a recipe and learned it in a single day to this level. That''s worthy of compliments. Especially you little brother, I don''t think even my disciple can do what you did in a single day," the man said. Alex and the rest felt a little awkward listening to his compliments. They didn''t know how to react to a random man, albeit a great alchemist, complementing them. "Ah, I am a little late now, so I must leave. I hope our paths cross in the future," the man said as he handed the pill back and nodded to the group. The four of them also bowed a little to show respect. He started walking away, but as soon as he reached a little further away, he stopped. "Oh, and another thing, a suggestion. Cut the Fire lizard''s tail into 4 equal pieces before putting them in one after another with a 1-second interval and follow the rest of the recipe. " "I just discovered that a few days ago and didn''t get to give the academy guys the updated recipe. Haha, my bad. Do that and you guys will have a much better pill come out. Goodbye," the man said and quickly walked in. The guy at the register saw him and quickly stood up to greet him with a deep bow. He did not stop the man at all. Fan Ruogang was the first to come out of her shock as she said, "D¡ª Did that man just say he couldn''t give the updated recipe?" "Doesn''t that mean¡ª " Zhou Mei didn''t speak any further and waited for confirmation from the others. "Yes," Alex said. "It seems¡­ we just had our first meeting with the Royal Alchemist." Even as the words came out of his mouth, he couldn''t believe it. He had been hearing how good the man was and how talented he was, but never in his life did he expect him to look so¡­ young. "He looks younger than Master, doesn''t he?" he asked. "Yes," Wan Li said. "I¡ª I wonder if it''s some sort of pill or¡­ his cultivation base is just that high." The only way someone could stay young despite being old was if their cultivation base was high or if they ate some sort of heavenly ingredients or pills that gave that effect. Alex was still in thought when he checked the top right of his vision and saw that it was already 5:45 pm. "Oh no. It''s late. We need to hurry back," he said and immediately walked out of the Alchemy hall, with the rest following quickly behind. They tried hurrying back to get before 6, but the streets were crowded in the evening, and they couldn''t fly over the people. So, they ended up being a little late. They quickly went up the stairs, but there were Ma Rong and the other elders with a frowning faces, waiting for them. "Where did you guys go? You were gone for the entire day. You guys didn''t even come back once, and now you turn up late. Did you know how worried we were?" Ma Rong said with an angry face. "Master, we can explain," Alex said. "Go on, explain why you were gone for so long," Ma Rong said "Umm¡­ the thing is¡­ " Alex went on to explain how they went to the alchemy hall to make new pills. "So, you didn''t think to leave on time?" Ma Rong asked. "No, we did leave on time Sect leader, but then he appeared out of nowhere and we couldn''t leave sooner," Fan Ruogang said. "He? Who is he?" the second elder. "Umm¡­ we think he was¡­ the Royal Alchemist," Zhou Mei replied. Suddenly, everyone''s eyes perked up and they looked at the 4. "You guys met the Royal Alchemist?" Ma Rong asked. "We''re not sure. We think so from the comments he made," Alex said. "How did he look? Why was he there? What comments did he make? Explain everything," Ma Rong said. Alex proceeded to explain everything he remembered from the comments about the composition and structure of the pill to his height, so him calling Ma Rong ''Little Ma'' and etc. Ma Rong was a little surprised. "Sigh, it seems you really did meet him. Alright, I will excuse you guys for today. If you don''t want to be punished, you better keep track of your time from tomorrow onwards. I can''t have the best disciples of my sect disappearing on my watch," she said. "Yes, Master" "Yes, Sect Leader," the 4 of them said at once. "Good, now you can go," she said and let them pass on. The 4 of them went to their own rooms and closed the door. The Third Elder looked at Ma Rong and said, "I can''t believe the kids got lucky enough to meet with the Royal Alchemist himself. Even I have never seen him." "Yeah, it''s hard to spot him. He likes to change his appearance from time to time, so it''s impossible to recognize him by his looks. It seems he is opting for a young face this time," Ma Rong said. "Haha, they got to learn something from the Royal Alchemist himself. It''s not every day that happens. They really did get lucky," the Second Elder said. The other elders also talked in small voices surprised about the disciples meeting the Royal Alchemist. "Alright, let''s forget about this. Call everyone to my room. It''s time for the meeting." Chapter 296: Breakthrough Alex opened his eyes early in the morning at 7 am. There was no competition today and the only thing he had to do was go to the auction house later on. "You can stop now Pearl," he told Pearl who was inside his robe currently cultivating. "Meow," Pearl meowed lightly and stopped. The minor cuts around his body all healed and he was back to being fine. "Have you broken through yet?" he wondered and asked Pearl before opening the status page. Unfortunately, he was still in the Bone Tempering 9th realm. "Do I really have to give you a monster core? I am afraid the same thing that happens to me will happen to you as well. Not to mention, I don''t have that many anymore. Only a couple more. I will soon have to go to the jungle to fight the beasts some more," Alex said softly. "Meow," Pearl meowed. "Sigh, I will think of someway. Come enter," he said and let Pearl go back into his arm. "Hmm¡­ I should be fine to breakthrough now right?" he wondered and opened his status page. He looked at it and thought, ''Oh, I''m a few hundred thousand Qi less than the required amount.'' So, he took out an Organ Tempering 7th realm monster''s core and sneakily ate it so that Wan Li couldn''t see what he did. Suddenly, his consciousness disappeared. When he reappeared inside the Spiritual sea, he could see the vast, turbulent water in there. "I guess it won''t increase or get stronger until I reach the mind tempering realm huh? Thankfully, I can eat a few pills in the True realm to increase my mental strength," Alex thought. He looked around and quickly found a red stork with a golden beak hovering in the air without moving its wings. ''This should be easy,'' he thought and started attacking the beast with everything he had. The metal techniques especially were very strong and he could easily defeat the stork. It did take him nearly 10 minutes though due to him not having the physical strength to close the gap as he did outside the spiritual sea. The beast died and as usual, the yellow mist appeared from a small shadow at the surface of the lake and quickly devoured the both of them. When Alex came on the outside, he was bombarded with the notification about gaining Qi. Once the notifications subsided, he clicked on breakthrough and immediately went to 6th Realm of Organ Tempering. It wasn''t the strongest in the competition by a long shot, but it was progress for Alex who had to focus on Alchemy too. ''Just 4 more, and I can reach Meridian Tempering realm,'' he thought. He finally decided to log out of the game. He slowly opened the capsule lid as the lack of intense senses made his entire world very dull. It took him a few seconds to get used to it, but that few seconds, he hated every time he had to experience it. "Ah, I''m a little hungry today," he thought. He had stayed inside the game for nearly a day and missed all food since the cereal yesterday morning, so when he felt hunger, he got happy. It meant that just staying in the capsule didn''t mean that he wouldn''t have to ever eat. It also meant that his body''s functionality was normal, albeit a little slow. Alex walked out to the kitchen and saw Hannah in the kitchen. "Hey, sister. Are you eating?" he asked. "Yes, come eat¡­ or don''t. If you don''t feel hungry, you don''t have to force yourself," Hannah said. "Oh, it''s fine. I haven''t logged out in over a day, so I am a bit hungry," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ try not to stay in the game for that long. We still don''t know if it''s good or bad," Hannah said. "It''s fine, or at least the scientists and doctors say so," Alex said. "They do? Well then, I guess it''s fine. I will look at it later. You eat right now," Hannah made him get his food. Alex nodded and ate what food they had. "I need to grocery shop. If we both end up playing the game, we won''t have food anymore," Hannah said. "Hmm¡­ I don''t think I have free time today. Well maybe in the evening. I can go with you then," Alex said. "No need. I will just order online," Hannah said. "Oh right. I keep forgetting that this is a city and people can do that," Alex said while shaking his head. "Alright, I''m going back to the game, see you later¡­ or tomorrow. Whenever our timing matches," Hannah said and left. Alex too quickly ate his food and went back to his room. He looked at the time and saw that there was a lot of time left before the auction, he decided to do a few things he had been ignoring until now. He called his parent and talked with them for a bit. Apparently, his father had paid the money for the tractor and had used some of the remaining ones for building a better shed and stable for the animals. He also showed off a new phone he had bought for himself and Alex''s mom. Alex smiled seeing them happy and said his goodbyes. He then went on the internet to check a few different things. The library didn''t have the information he was looking for, but maybe the internet did. So, he started searching for Sun God''s Divine Yang Body and the Spirit Cleansing Lilies. There were very few mentions of the lilies as they were not easily acquirable. As for the body, no matter how deep he searched, even going as far as to look at the second page of the search results, he couldn''t find any. Alas, he had to accept the fact that there wasn''t any information and give up on finding it. Once he was done with all of it, he went back to the capsule and logged in. Chapter 297: Auction day Alex logged back into the game at around 9 pm. He stood up from his bed and saw that Wan Li was already gone from his room. ''Where could he have gone?'' Alex wondered but didn''t really give much thought to his disappearance. He walked out and saw a few people from his sect walking up and down the stairs. He saw a few elders leave as well. Suddenly, his master walked out of her room as well and saw him standing. "Oh there you are, I was about to go look for you," Ma Rong said. "What''s going on master?" he asked. "Oh, there are auctions taking place in the capital today, really big ones. One of the auction houses saved a VIP seat for us. Do you want to come?" she asked. "Is it the Pink Cloud auction house?" he asked. "No. It''s a different one. Why? You wanted to go to that one?" Ma Rong asked. "I have a VIP room in that auction house for today. I will be going soon too," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ Who will you be going with?" Ma Rong asked. "I''m going there alone, I guess," Alex said. "Hm, be careful out there. Don''t try to get into a bidding contest with others. If they really want it, just let them have it. You are very weak in the grand scheme of things, so it''s better if you don''t make enemies, okay?" Ma Rong said with concern in her voice. Alex nodded and said, "I understand master." "Alright, you need some spirit stones? What are you looking for today?" she asked. "I don''t need spirit stones. I sold a few pills some days before and have enough for today. As for what I want to buy, I''m thinking of getting armor for myself. As you said, I am weak and need better protection," Alex said. "As for the other things, I will see what I like," Alex said. "Alright, take care. I''m already late so I will leave now," Ma Rong said and left down the stairs. Alex looked around and the other ones had left as well. ''Damn, everyone is gone somewhere huh. Well, it is a free day after all.'' ''I should leave as well,'' he thought. However, before that, he decided to change his robes to something more normal like the Blueish-gray robes his master had given him when he went to the Tiger sect. So he changed into those before walking out of the room and going into the southern side of the capital city. The roads were particularly lively today since most of the people weren''t in the coliseum and instead of enjoying the free day from the competition. Alex weaved through the crowd of bypassers and made his way to the auction house. There were more than a few auction houses at the same spot, so the crowd was very huge today. Alex squished through the people to reach the auction door, but that too seemed impossible. Thankfully, he was able to make his way to the door and a staff member who recognized him accepted him and took him inside. As for those that didn''t have a VIP room registered to themselves, they would have to wait until it was time for the auction. The staff took him to a VIP room that was much smaller than the one he was in back in Scarlet City. However, that was a VVIP room and this was a VIP room, so that was to be expected. Alex walked over to the window and looked down on the hall. This was something that was completely different from the auction house back in the Scarlet City, however. The hall was beyond massive and could easily house over 2000 people. Alex then looked to the side and saw other similar rooms lined up all over the wall of the hall. There were about 200 rooms counting both the VIP and the VVIP rooms. The VIP rooms were lower while the VVIP ones were higher. ''So that means there will be someone above me, huh?'' Alex thought. He turned around and saw the staff member standing by the door, the same as the last time. "Umm¡­ you can come to sit here if you want. I''m not so important that you have to stand there," he said. "It is our job and we are used to it. Respected guest does not need to be concerned about this lady," the staff politely said. "Are you sure? Cause you are welcome to sit," Alex said. The lady just shook her head, and Alex left it at that. He went to sit on the chair and waited for the auction to start. More and more VIP and VVIP rooms were filled but he couldn''t see who was near him. He wasn''t going to randomly use his Spiritual sense in a place like this, especially when there would be so many high-level people in the auction. As more and more people entered, it seemed that it was time for the regular folks to enter, so the doors were opened and the people started entering in droves. Alex watched as the lower hall managed to be filled in practically minutes. Once the entire hall was full, including the VIP and VVIP rooms, the lighting in the hall changed and soon a spotlight appeared on the curtain that hid the stage away. The curtains opened in a single unstopping motion and revealed a lady behind them. The lady was around 25 years old with a face that had fair skin and hair redder than the empire itself. She was wearing a pink dress with cloud patterns on it, just as the name of the auction house itself. The crowd full of people was mesmerized at her beauty as this was the first time most of them had even seen her. The lady smiled at them and finally spoke, " Welcome to the Pink Cloud Auction House. I am your auctioneer and host for the day, Yu Min." Chapter 298: First Few Item Sales " Welcome to the Pink Cloud Auction House. I am your auctioneer and host for the day, Yu Min," the lady in pink spoke on top of the stage. "I hope all of you are doing good on this fine day. We have a massive catalog of items we have on sale today. For those who already know what is coming up, you must be excited." "For those who haven''t, please bear with me, everything will be revealed in due time," the lady named Yu Min said with a smile. She turned to the side and nodded. A group of staff members walked onto the stage with item covers in pink cloth. The audience tried to figure out what it was, but it was in the shape of a box and was thus impossible to tell. Yu Min walked up to the item and pulled away the pink cloth to reveal the box. No one could really see what it was, so they waited for the lady to start speaking. The lady slowly reached into the box and brought out a small bottle. "Pill?" Alex thought, but it couldn''t be. The bottle was just too big for it. The crowd started murmuring and the lady decided to speak. "The first item being auctioned today is this Spirit Wine, made by one of the greatest winemakers of the Cardinal City if not the entire Crimson Empire." "This spirit wine is said to be able to heal minor injuries and even give you some advancement in cultivation as well." "It can also get a True realm expert drunk in just 3 sips. If you''ve ever disliked the fact that you couldn''t get drunk anymore, here is your chance." "The bid will start at 80 spirit stones and the minimum bid can only be 1 spirit stone. Please start," Yu Min said. "81 spirit stone." "83 spirit stone." "84 spirit stone." People started bidding in droves. It was only the people at the lower hall that bid, and none of the people. Alex was in his room a little surprised at how much the people were bidding for the wine. "Is it because it can help them in cultivation and healing¡­ or because it can get them drunk?" he asked himself and looked down at the crowd. "Yeah totally because it can get them drunk," he thought and laughed to himself. The bid went for a little longer until the man at one of the VIP rooms bid 3 True spirit stones and no one outbid it. It seemed the wine was nice, but not worth that much to most people. "The spirit wine goes to the guest at room N5 for 300 spirit stones," the lady said and hit a wooden board with a gavel she had taken out at some point. The staff came forward and took away the item as another group brought along another item. This time it was another item covered in a cloth, but it wasn''t a box. Instead, the item looked slightly circular in feature. The lady Yu Min walked forward and pulled up the cloth revealing a white egg with small black splotches on its shell. "This is the egg of an Emerald Winged Lizard. As many of you might know, the Emerald Winged Lizard is a very rare beast to find even in the southern forest." "It has very high chance of reaching the True Realms and very, very tiny chances of reaching the Saint realm. Since it''s an egg, you can get it attached to you and very easily bond with it." "So, we are starting the bid at 100 spirit stones with the minimum bid being at least 1 spirit stone. Begin," Yu Min said as he hit her hammer. "Another beast huh? Those seem to be quite popular in these auction houses. Although, I can''t complain. They really are quite great," Alex thought as he remembered how strong Pearl was. However, he also knew that Pearl was an exception to all of these and probably had a guaranteed chance to enter the saint realm, just like his mother. "I just need to find a way to speed up his cultivation," Alex said. The bid for the egg continued at a high rate. Anyone with a brain would bid for a beast that could easily reach the True realm. In the end, the people had to stop bidding cause the bid was getting too high. Yu Min did the countdown and ended the auction for the egg. " The final bid is 600 spirit stones. The egg will go to the guest in room D4," Yu Min announced. Once again the staff members swapped the items. "D4?¡­ isn''t that directly above mine?" Alex thought. He looked at the other rooms outside of his windows and could see the names. His own room was N4. Since there was 20 lettered room each with 10 individual names to themselves, D4 was directly above N4. ''I wonder who is staying there? Some kind of sect leader or elder?'' Alex wondered. The next item on the list was announced. It was a Common Heaven-grade sword that had decent sharpness and weight to it. It could be used by any sword user without any drawbacks. The sword was auctioned for 110 spirit stones and it went up until a man in room J7 won it for 250 spirit stones. Unfortunately for the auctioneers, this one didn''t go as high as they wanted it to. The next item being sold on the list was a cultivation method. Alex wasn''t interested in it first, but when Yu Min said that it was a Cultivation Method for a true realm user, his interest was caught. ''Should I get it?'' he wondered. However, he wasn''t in the True realm yet and this would be like putting the carts before the horse. ''I need to reach the True realm first before I worry about Cultivation methods. Besides, this is an Earth-grade one. Maybe the Tiger sect has a higher one,'' Alex thought. In the end, he decided to give up on it. The Cultivation method was sold to a person from the hall down below for 360 spirit stones. Chapter 299: The Man from D4 A bunch of more ingredients was being sold and the auction wasn''t close to being halfway done. The prices were barely at around 4 to 6 True Spirit stones. There were items with a lot more value being sold later on for sure. Alex was getting lazy when suddenly a feeling appeared inside him. It was very, very, very minute, but he caught it and thought, ''An alchemy ingredient?'' Yu Min pulled the cloth and revealed a box with a small flower inside of it. Yu Min pulled out the flower to show to everyone and said, "This is an Umbra Lotus, a flower with incredible Yin Qi. " "It can be used to make pills with Yin energy or be used in poisons. There are also Yin bases formations and artifacts that can possibly use this flower as it''s incredibly versatile." "The bid for the Umbra Lotus will start at 280 spirit stones and can only be increased by a minimum of 5 spirit stones," Yu Min declared. The audience was a little taken aback. The minimum bid price had suddenly increased. Meaning, everything from now on was going to be way more expensive with each bid. "You may now begin," Yu Min said as she banged the gavel on the wood. The bid amount had increased but that wasn''t a deterrent to any of the people with money. As soon as they were allowed, they immediately started to bid. The bid increased 5 spirit stones at a time and soon the bid was at 400 spirit stones. ''Should I get in on it too?'' Alex thought. An alchemy ingredient, especially one that had the higher energy Yin as well. ''Why not? Not like I''m going to lose anything whether I get it or not,'' Alex thought and started bidding. "500 spirit stones," he bid. However, his bid was immediately outbid by someone else. Even though many people wanted it, Alex could head that the guy in D4 really tried his best to outbid everyone. ''Does this guy want everything?'' Alex wondered. "580 spirit stones," Alex tried to bid again. "600 spirit stones," the man immediately outbid him again. A few other people tried to bid against him but people couldn''t really outbid the man. "Ahem," a voice came from the same room where the bid was happening. The voice was quite low, however, and only Alex and a few others near the room could hear it. ''Did they accidentally leave the mic on?'' Alex wondered. "Uncle, let the other people get the flower. You don''t really need it right?" A young voice appeared from the room in contrast with the old man''s voice. "630 spirit stones," the man bid loudly and addressed the young man''s queries. "Uhh¡­ Nah. I''ll just get it cause I can," the man said. "Sigh, uncle. What will you even do with that flower?" the young voice asked. "I don''t know. I will let the alchemists and formation masters figure it out," the older voice said and continued bidding. Alex was beyond dumbfounded by what he was hearing. ''Get something just because he can? Just how rich is this guy. Could it be he is the son of a rich merchant?'' Alex wondered. The man reminded him of Huo Tu. He also was used to throwing around money to get what he wanted, even when fighting, and didn''t really care about others. ''I hate these types of men,'' Alex thought. Unfortunately, the world loved these people. The man managed to outbid every single person in the Umbra Lotus big and successfully won it. "The Umbra Lotus has been won by the guest in D4 for 740 spirit stones," Yu Min announced. Not many people clapped at the announcement as they did earlier on. It seemed the people had already started hating the man on D4. Yu Min didn''t pay attention to the people''s sentiment and proceeded with the auction. The next item was a Fan artifact that sent out gusts of wind which could disrupt the balance as well as the focus of anyone below the True Lord realm. The bid started at 300 spirit stones and went up 5 spirit stones at a time. As soon as Yu Min hit the gavel, people started bidding immediately. People started outbidding each other, but the man from D4 never joined the bidding war. 450, 500, 550. The bid quickly reached 600 around which the bid started slowing down. There were still a few dedicated bidders who really wanted it, but the others had stopped by now. "760 spirit stone," a man from VVIP room I5 bid. He waited for the other woman that was currently on a bidding war with him to bid, but she never bid again. It seemed the bid was finalized. Yu Min waited for a few minutes and asked, "Any more bids?" seeing no one answer, she started hitting the gavel. "760 spirit stones going once." "760 spirit stones going twice." "760 spirit stones go¡ª " "770 spirit stones" A familiar, but equally hated voice spoke at the last moment. The people in the hall looked up with hateful eyes at room D4. Although they couldn''t see anyone that was inside, they could still let the person know that they hated it. "What? Do you guys want the fan too? Then why don''t you bid it?" the man said. The audience got a little angry and a person decided to bid. "775 spiri¡ª " "780 spirit stones." Before the other man could even finish, the man from D4 outbid him. "785¡ª " "790 spirit stones," the man bid again. "800 spiri¡ª" "810 spirit stones." The man who had been bidding all this time tried to join the bidding war as well, but he was immediately outbid. In the end, the man couldn''t continue and gave up the fan to the man in D4. Yu Min waited a bit more and counted. However, there was no one that was going to stop the gavel now. "Congratulations to the guest in D4 for buying the Millennium Feathered Fan for 810 spirit stones." Chapter 300: True Mortal Grade Armor The auction continued. It had been half an hour now and around 8 items had been sold until now. 6 out of those 8 items however had been won by the man in D4. People were extremely angry at the man right now. Normally, one would only be jealous or envious of seeing a man with so much money. But the man from D4 was not only showing off his money, he was ruining the auction for the rest of the people here. Not only did he bid for items immediately after someone else bid for it, from time to time he would tell them to bid for it if they could. That was a level of arrogance that people did not like. The latest item sold was a pill cauldron of True Earth grade, exactly the same in grade as Alex''s Golden Jade cauldron. The cauldron was sold to a person from room F8 for 950 spirit stones. It seemed the man from D4 was not interested in alchemy at all. Another tray of items appeared and Yu Min pulled off the cloth from atop it revealing a thin, black shirt. "Huh?" Alex thought. "Why is a T-shirt being sold here. How did the design even come into the game? Is this an¡­ what is it called? easter egg? or are the players already influencing the game world enough?" Alex wondered. Whatever the case, he was looking forward to why a t-shirt would be in an auction this late. Yu Min picked up the T-shirt and showed it to the audience. "This is an armor, crafted by an elder of Tranquil Union sect and recently brought here to be sold. It is a True Mortal grade armor that can block the physical attacks from anyone below True Master realm." "Let us show you," she said and brought out two different people. One was in the self tempering realm, while the other one was in the True Disciple realm. The weaker man wore the armor and withdrew all cultivation base until he looked like nothing more than a mortal. Alex had seen this before and as he expected, the True realm man hit the Self tempering realm man and he was not hurt at all. ''Wow, this is much better than blue armor Huo Tu was wearing. I must get this,'' he thought. "As you can see, the armor is truly amazing, especially for those still in the Self Tempering realm. Best of all, the armor needs no refining to work properly and is 100% usable from the very start." "The bid will start at 800 spirit stones and increase by 10 spirit stones at a minimum. Please begin," Yu Min said and hit the wood with her gavel. The armor was very valuable and thus everyone jumped on the bid. Alex wanted to join too but decided to wait for just a little longer until the number of people bidding was lower. Soon the bid reached 1000 spirit stones. Everything was fine, and people were bidding happily, but then the man from D4 decided to join the bidding war as well. "1040 spirit stones," he bid. As soon as he joined, the rest of the crowd grew quiet. "1050 spirit stones," someone else tried to bid while everyone was silent but was immediately shut down when the man bid once more. Someone else tried to join in but they were shut down as well. Alex looked at the situation and frowned. He really wanted the armor and was an amazing one too since it was so thin and wouldn''t be seen as one. But he didn''t want to go against this man. ''F*ck. I need to get braver and take my chances,'' he thought to himself and decided to join in. "1100 spirit stones," he bid, but he knew another bid was coming. "1110 spirit stones," the man in D4 bid, but Alex didn''t let him get away with it. "1120 spirit stones," he immediately bid back. "1130 spirit stones," the man bid back too. "1140 spirit stones," Alex wasn''t backing down either. The back and forth was intense and lasted for a little while until it reached 2000 spirit stones. 20 True spirit stones were considered a bit too much even for an item like this, but Alex didn''t care. He needed armor and had the money, so he would spend it as he saw fit. The man was about to make another bid when suddenly a small voice only a few rooms in the vicinity could hear appeared once more. "Uncle, why are you fighting for an armor like this? I can''t understand you. You have a galore of armors much better than this," the young man spoke once more. The staff lady in Alex''s room suddenly walked up to him and said, "Please excuse me for a moment, dear guest." Then she left the room. Alex didn''t know what she was doing but he didn''t bother her. "Haha, but it''s fun though," the older man from D4 replied and bid back, "2010 spirit stones." Alex didn''t want to give up just now, "2020 spirit stones." "It seems the fellow from below us really wants it, Uncle, why don''t you stop this?" the young man said. "Haha, his voice sounds so young, it must be a kid younger than you, Nephew. Let me see," the man said. Alex didn''t understand what the man was saying but suddenly, his heart dropped. He could feel something washing over him. Over his body, over his cloth, and over his face. ''Spiritual Sense,'' Alex thought in shock. It was good that he didn''t send out spiritual sense to check the different people in his vicinity, or he would''ve revealed himself by now. He tried to not show his shock and stayed as calm as possible. "Oh, this young fellow¡­ hahaha¡­you are right Nephew, I should let this young man take the armor. It might¡ª" the man suddenly stopped as another much smalled and barely audible voice appeared from the room. "Dear guest, you are pressing the button for the speaker and your words have been broadcasting to the nearby vicinity." Chapter 301: Spirit Stone Cave Alex could hear his staff member''s voice from the room above. ''So that''s where she went. To let them know what was wrong,'' he thought. "Hmm¡­" the young man said, "oh, my bad." After that, no more sound leaked from the room. But the spiritual sense was still on Alex and it didn''t leave him a bit. The man didn''t bid a spirit stone more and most of the others were already too disheartened to continue bidding. Yu Min saw that there was no more bid and asked, "Does anyone have a bid higher than 2020 spirit stones?" No one dared bid anymore. "2020 spirit stones going once." "2020 spirit stones going twice." "2020 spirit stones going thrice. Sold," Yu Min said as she hit the surface with her gavel. "The armor has been sold to the guest on N4 for 2020 spirit stones," she announced and proceeded to start preparing another item to sell. Alex should have been incredibly happy to get his hands on the armor, but he couldn''t right now. In fact, the emotion he was feeling right now could be in a way considered the exact opposite. Fear He was terrified out of his mind that he was being monitored by a person with a spiritual sense. The spiritual sense was hard to come by as barely anyone could get their hands on the Spirit Cleansing Lilies due to their difficulty in harvesting them. That meant that¡­ ''This man most likely has a saint realm cultivation,'' Alex thought. Ma Rong had told him that Saint Realm folks were available in the Crimson Empire and that they liked to hide, but Alex never thought that he would actually meet one. Not only meet but get targeted by one. Alex had a perfectly calm face, in fact, he even had a small smile on his face, but on the inside, he was freaking out. ''What does he want? Is he after something I own? Did he notice my spiritual sense by some chance? Did he notice my talent and body? Is he after my body? Is he a pervert? Was he there in the coliseum when I made the 60% pill? Does he have good intentions or malicious ones? Why is he keeping his spirituals sense on me for so long?'' Hundreds of thoughts ran across Ning''s head, but none he could answer. The auction went along normally, and the people as well as the Saint Realm man bid on the different items. But Alex could not focus on any of it. All of his focus was on not making a single wrong move that could tip off the man that he had spiritual sense and that he could sense him too. The man already seemed interested in him, he didn''t want to give any more reason. After half an hour or so, Alex started to feel less nervous as he got used to the constant supervision. He finally started paying attention to the auction. "The deed of the land in Cardinal City has been sold to the gentlemen at I9 for 4500 spirit stones," Yu Min announced. The land sold just now was on the outskirts of the town and away from the market and other business places. Even then the land was sold for 45 True spirit stones. Alex was surprised how far people would go to get a piece of land in the capital city. The auction continued and more and more amazing items started getting auctioned off. An armor that could stop any attacks below the True Lord realm, a pair of communication talismans that worked up to a thousand kilometers distance, a poison that could kill anyone under the True King realm if they did not get an antidote in the next 5 minutes. The things being sold in the auction were amazing and something that Alex had never seen before in his life. He even saw an Earth grade Thousand Poisons Antidote, a True rank version of Hundred Poison Antidote, with a harmony of 42% be sold for nearly 50 True Spirit stones. "We are onto the final 2 items of the day. The 2nd most valuable item of today''s auction is this," Yu Min said as she revealed a piece of paper. People started wondering what it was and waited for her to start speaking. "This is a contract that allows you to claim ownership to the newly discovered spirit stone cave in Cochineal city." "The bid will start at 50 True spirit stones and go up 50 spirit stones at minimum, begin." The gavel hit the table. This was a very expensive item and not many people could afford it. ''Oh wow, a deed to a spirit stone cave. Anyone who manages to get it would be incredibly rich,'' Alex thought. Spirit stone caves were where the spirit stones were mined. Spirit stones were normal stones in caves that mutated after absorbing all the energy of a spirit vine and running it dry. If a spirit vine was of Common rank, the spirit stones that formed would be normal spirit stones. If a spirit vine was of True rank, the spirit stones that formed would be True spirit stones. The spirit stones always formed in a cuboid structure but were incredibly hard to break off from the walls. Not only that, but they were also very delicate and could easily lose all Qi in it if one were to accidentally damage it too hard. So anyone that owned spirit stone caves would also have to hire talented and strong workers so that the harvest would be done with minimum damage to the spirit stones. Still, anyone that owned a spirit stone cave was bound to get rich, given that they didn''t mess up really bad at acquiring quality workers. Alex saw that most of the people really wanted it but not many could bid for its immense price. Thankfully for everyone else, the man at D4 did not get in on the bidding war. People kept on bidding and the bid soon reached 70 spirit stones. That was more than the cost entire 23 pills he sold 2 days ago. It still didn''t stop increasing. In the end, the spirit stone cave''s ownership was sold to the guest in room B10. Chapter 302: Spirit Disorienting Formation "The ownership of the spirit stone cave is sold to the guest at B10 for a price of 89 True Spirit stone," Yu Min announced to the crowd. The rest of the people sighed in disappointment that they did not get to acquire such an amazing item, but looked forward to the next item as it was the best in the auction. Alex was also curious as to what the best item in the auction was going to be. If the second last item was a spirit stone cave, then what was the final one going to be? Even though he was constantly being monitored by the man at D4 for some reason, he had given up on trying to worry about it. As long as the man with a possible cultivation base in the saint realm was looking at him, he doubted he was going to get free so easily. After the auction, he decided to confront the guy. ''There is a high chance I might end up dying, so I should send out my money as soon as I can,'' he thought and started cautiously making gestures in the air. He made sure to not making it obvious that he was doing something as the man above was watching him. He quickly sent 40 True Spirit stones back to his bank account and kept the 26 True spirit stones for himself as he would need them to buy the armor. The final item of the auction appeared on the stage and Yu Min walked up to it. She stayed there for a few seconds letting the audience''s expectations reach sky high and finally revealed the item. On the tray in front of Yu Min were a bunch of metal poles with cloth attached to the top. ''Formation flags?'' Alex was a little surprised. He did not expect the item being auctioned off at the final was actually going to be a formation flag. "These are the formation flags for the formation called Spirit Disorienting Formation. It''s a True Rank formation that can be used to trap anyone inside of it." "As long as the one being trapped is not in the Saint realm, you can trap anyone in it for a very long time." "With a Mortal grade formation placement, you can trap someone for up to 2 days." "With an Earth Grade formation placement, you can trap someone for up to 20 days." "With a Heaven grade formation placement, you can trap someone for up to 50 days." "The formation traps the enemies by disorienting them, and not letting them know where the exit is. It also spins the space inside from time to time to keep the enemies trapped for a long time." "The instruction to the usage and setup is all written on this paper that you can acquire along with the formation flags." "The price to start the formation is 2 True Spirit stone every time. So, the starting bid for the formation flags is 60 True Spirit stones and will only allow an increment of 1 True spirit stone at a minimum. Begin," Yu Min said. The people lost their cool as soon as the bids were allowed and before anyone could even comprehend what the other person was speaking, the bid jumped up to 80 True spirit stones. "81 True Spirit stones," someone bid. "82 True Spirit stones," another person bid. The bid continued and soon it had grown to 100 True spirit stones. There were still 10 or more people who kept on bidding on the formation flags. As things started to die down and the competition wasn''t as intense anymore, someone else finally joined in on the fun. "112 True Spirit stones," the Saint realm man from room D4 bid. "113 True Spirit stones," another man tried to bid, but he knew he was simply throwing a stone at the ocean, barely making a splash. "115 True spirit stones," the man bid. People couldn''t help but wonder what the person did as a job to earn so much money. He had nearly spent over 1000 True spirit stones today alone. Even if he was rich, he was incredibly frivolous. Other people tried their hand at bidding once more, but that didn''t work. They would be easily outbid by the man in a single second. In the end, a few tried to screw with him by giving him a higher price for the item, but he didn''t back down. At some point, he simply stayed quiet. People started getting scared that they would have to pay the amount they had bid, but thankfully the man continued. Once people learned how easy it was to destroy their own lives by overbidding in exchange for a moment of happiness, they stopped. "140 True spirit stones," the man bid, still confident to take on anyone joining, but no one would bid anymore. They couldn''t even bid even if they wanted to. Yu Min checked the atmosphere and asked, "Does anyone have a bid higher than 140?", but nobody answered. "140 True Spirit stones going once." "140 True Spirit stones going twice." "140 True spirit stone going thrice. Sold." She hit the gavel. "The formation flags and instructions have been bought by the guest at room D4 for 140 True spirit stones," Yu Min declared. The staff arrived and took the trolley away. "This marks the end of the auction. Thank you all for coming and making this auction as successful as it was. For those that have bought or sold something today, please follow the staff to where they take you." "As for everyone else, you may leave as you like. Thank you." Yu Min bowed to the crowd and the curtains closed in on her, hiding her away. "Please follow me dear guest," the staff member that was standing with Alex the entire time spoke and brought him along to a room down the hall on the outside of the auction hall. Even as he left, however, the spiritual sense of the man loomed over him, making him fear every single second of being here. Chapter 303: Run Alex was brought to a room where the armor artifact was already on the table with another man sitting on the couch beyond it. As soon as Alex walked in, he stood up and greeted. Alex returned the greeting too, but it was a bit awkward. He was still very tense from the constant monitoring of the man in the spiritual realm. However, all of a sudden, it stopped. Alex could no longer feel any spiritual sense in him. ''He stopped after I entered the room? Did he just want to check where the armor was? Or is he just not interested anymore?'' Alex wondered. ''Or was I just paranoid and the man was just sending out his spiritual sense everywhere and not just at me?'' Alex thought and almost called himself stupid. He sighed in massive relief. That was the most possible explanation and he felt dumb that he didn''t think of that. However, in his defense, he felt the spiritual sense of a Saint Realm cultivator and couldn''t think straight due to his fear. ''Yeah, what would a Saint Realm cultivator even want from a Self Tempering realm brat like me? Sigh, at least that is over,'' he thought. "Dear guest here is your armor," the man said as he presented the armor to Alex. Alex walked up and checked it as he stroked the surface. He could see a name pop up with not much information to it. [Onyx Skin Armor Grade - Mortal] Alex nodded and took out 20 True spirit stones as well as 20 spirit stones and handed them to the man. The man bowed and gestured for Alex to take it. "May I wear this right now?" he asked. "Whatever you wish, dear guest," the man said. Alex thanked him and took off his upper robe. His incredibly well-built body was on full display. His muscles were really toned and he didn''t look much strong. But one could tell that those small muscles carried incredible strength. Alex already had a good-looking body from when he randomly chose one when starting the game, but after body cultivating for over a month, it was even more incredible. The staff lady blushed a little when she saw him. Alex did not care about them and wore the T-shirt armor. "Woah," he was surprised. It felt like the cloth was hugging his body and he could no longer feel any air or temperature from the outside. "I can''t feel it despite my focus mode being perpetually active?" Ning thought in surprise. He hit his chest a bit, but couldn''t feel anything. "Well, it doesn''t cover my whole body, but simply having some protection on my vital organs should be good," he thought. Once he was done checking everything, he nodded farewell to the person and walked out of the room. The staff lady accompanied him to the door where he left her and walked into the busy streets. The normal guests were leaving the auction house just now as well as the many other auction house guests. So the crowd on the street was quite a lot. Alex could see the disciples from many other sects too and wondered what items the other auction houses sold. Having nothing else to do, he decided to leave. He started walking east to reach a crossroad from where he could take north and reach his hotel. He walked at a normal pace, slightly happy about finally getting armor. Just as he reached the intersection, however, something happened. A spiritual sense washed over him, nearly stopping him in his tracks. ''No, it''s probably not for me. The man must be just randomly sending it out,'' he tried to hope for the best. Still, he knew that he had to prepare for the worst, so he went south instead of north. He kept walking south and suddenly turned east. The spiritual sense did not leave him a single moment. The feeling of fear that had left him started returning. After walking for a little while, he turned north. The spiritual sense was still on him. He walked further for a bit and turned west and continued walking. The spiritual sense did not leave him at all. Finally, he reached back to the crossroad he was at before and yet the spiritual sense was still on him. He was absolutely sure now; He was being followed by the Saint realm man. ''F*ck it," Alex thought and immediately started sprinting, but the street up north and west was crowded, so he was forced to run towards the west. He wanted to run as fast as he could and walk out of the range of the spiritual sense. He ran as fast as his body allowed him to and soon, he was out of the range. But the man was in Saint realm, so Alex knew he wasn''t getting away at all. Alex went into an alley and disappeared. He went invisible and contained all of his aura to make him untraceable. However, just as he was about to teleport to somewhere close, an aura descended upon him, letting him know that the man was here. The man landed in the middle of the dark alley and used both his cultivation base and spiritual sense to check for Alex nearby. "Oh, there you are," he said when he saw Alex hidden away near him. Unfortunately for Alex, he couldn''t escape the spiritual sense even when his aura and image had disappeared. "That''s an interesting technique you have there. Seems quite useful too. I will think if I want it or not later though," he said. Alex was trapped in the place due to the cultivation base and couldn''t move. The pressure was somehow stopping him from moving his Qi altogether. The veil disappeared and Alex appeared in normal light. He looked at the man in front of him. The man looked like he was in his early 40s. He still had his black hairs but looked like they would go gray at any moment. His face was a little square-ish and the beards on them were short and rough. The man was wearing a red robe and was about the same height as Alex. Out of all of this, however, there was only one thing that really surprised him. The man was not in Saint realm. Chapter 304: Devouring Earth ''How could it be? He is weaker than Master,'' Alex thought. He was under the assumption that the man was in the Saint realm, but seeing that he was around True lord or maybe even True Master realm, Alex was really surprised. Still, the difference in cultivation was so high that Alex couldn''t do anything to the suppression. ''Does that mean that he used a Spirit Cleansing lily? I shouldn''t be surprised. I might not be the only one capable of picking one in the entire game,'' Alex thought. The pressure on him was starting to get bad, but he could only struggle. However, at that moment, a warm flow of hot energy burst out from deep within him. It relieved a lot of pressure from him, but he still couldn''t move or use his Qi. "Haha, little brother, don''t struggle. I''m not going to hurt you," the man said with a smile on his face, but he didn''t bother lifting the pressure at all. Alex had learned his lesson before and didn''t trust the man at all. He glared at him with eyes that would harm if they could. "Haha, don''t look at me like that, it''s true. I only want to know a little something from you brother. You see, I am still not sure that it is you who I am looking for," the man said. "What do you want?" Alex asked. "My armor? Did you come here for that?" Alex asked. "Armor? I don''t need that crappy armor. I have many fine armors back at home. I am here for something else," the man said. "What do you want then? Do you want my money? My life?" Alex started shouting at the man, but it was all a ruse. He was secretly preparing something. He needed a split second, that was all he needed. For that, he could use his heaven''s impact and create an opening. That was when he was going to run away from the man. The Flickering Shadow technique had a maximum range of 10 meters and the man had a much higher range with his spirit stone alone, so he couldn''t just teleport out of here now. He needed a different strategy. Thankfully, he had one. "You see kid, a week or two ago, I was in an auction where I managed to buy¡ª " the man suddenly lost consciousness. Alex had used the opportunity of the man talking to sneakily launch Heaven''s impact. As soon as one was launched, he launched another one as well. The man had barely come back to himself when Heaven''s Impact landed on him once more making him unconscious once more. When he finally opened his eyes in the next moment, Alex was gone. "Damn, where did he go?" the man frantically searched for Alex with his spiritual sense reaching a distance of nearly 100 meters, he couldn''t find his anywhere. He tried to remember back to the moment just now when he was attacked. "That was¡­ Spiritual energy, wasn''t it?" the man asked himself. "Ha- Haha¡ª hahaha, So it really is him. I was right, I finally found him," the man started laughing with immense pleasure for some reason. "I must search him once more and thank him personally. I must thank him for auctioning that Spirit Cleansing Lily and allowing me to acquire this Spiritual Sense," the man said. "Now I must find him and know how he acquired them." Now that Alex was no longer in there, the man walked out of the alleyway. His clothing caught the attention of many who immediately bowed towards him once and started walking away. The man seemed to be used to it and didn''t mind any of it. He took simply walked away from that place. ******** Far away, somewhere unknown, Alex opened his eyes and quickly wiped away the dirt on his face. He used his Qi to quickly get rid of the red of the dirt. ''Where am I?'' he wondered as he looked around. It seemed to be an old abandoned warehouse or something. Alex quickly went out and looked around, only to see that he was in the residential area of the city, and sighed in relief. His third Immortal grade technique worked just as it claimed. Alex had gotten 7 techniques from Wen Cheng aside from the Elusive Heavenly Sword. Of them 3 were attack techniques, 2 were defense, 1 was movement and the final one was an escape technique. Of them, all of them were at Heaven grade, except for the escape technique, which was called Devouring Earth Escape. The Devouring Earth Escape technique was an Immortal grade technique. The technique devoured the user with the land underneath them and pumped them out of a different place. It wasn''t a teleportation ability as the earth delivered him to the destination on its own. When one used the technique, the earth would open up below them and carry them through the ground to a different location on its own. Alex had used the technique at the perfect time when the 2nd Heaven''s impact had hit the man and he managed to run away at the same time. "This really is a cool technique," Alex said. Still, the technique had its flaws as well. First of all, the user could never set the destination. He would have to use the technique and hope for a good direction to go at. Second of all, the distance was based on the user''s Qi density. The higher the density, the further the man would go. The user could choose to go lower than the maximum distance, but never higher. So the low-level cultivators couldn''t use it very well. However, to Alex whose Qi was very dense, this wasn''t a very big problem. Alex looked to the surroundings and hoped that the man in red didn''t see him. ''Just who was that?'' Alex wondered. Once the vicinity was a little bit quieter, he took out a pill and ate it. Suddenly, A veil of light appeared from his body that was using Qi to create the veil. After that, his face changed. Chapter 305: I Sold It The Great Illusion pill used the person''s Qi to create a face and continued staying there as long as the Qi was supplied. The higher the harmony of the pill, the lower the qi requirement. Alex walked into the road with a different face. It took him a while to realize that he was in the south west part of the city. He now had to walk all the way diagonal to the other side of the city to reach his hotel. Thankfully, it was only 3 PM and he wouldn''t get scolded like the other day. It took him a little over half an hour to reach his hotel. Even though he tried to walk very fast, the crowd just didn''t let him. Finally, after reaching the hotel, he walked directly up to his room. He opened the door and walked in. Wan Li was already inside, looking at some sort of map or something when he noticed Alex. He hurriedly hid everything and brought out a small dagger. "Wh¡ª Who are you?" he asked while pointing the dagger at Alex. A strong pressure emanated from Wan Li that nearly suffocated Alex. Alex immediately undid his face change and said, "Brother Wan, it''s me. Please stop." The 3rd Mind Tempering realm Wan Li was a little too strong for Alex, even with his body cultivation. "Oh," Wan Li said when Alex''s veil came off and his real face was shown. "It''s you, brother Yu. I thought you were a thief or something. You should have changed your face before entering the room," he said. "Sorry, I needed to make sure nobody could see me coming here," he said. Wan Li tried asking a few questions but Alex didn''t say anything. "I will just go rest for a while, Brother Wan. It''s been a long day for me," Alex said and went to his bed. Wan Li went back to his papers and didn''t bother with Alex anymore. Once on the bed, Alex logged out. Alex was now out of the game, but he couldn''t stop wondering why the man was after him. ''How did he get a lily to begin with? Even the book in the library said its incredibly difficult. Are there others like me who can see the names?'' Alex wondered. It wouldn''t be a stretch to say that there were probably others with a skill like Alchemy God''s Knowledge. That would mean that there were others who could recognize the ingredients as well. He tried remembering what the man had tried to say, but his memory wasn''t as good outside of the game. ''Sigh, my mind is probably connected to some sort of server for me to be able to remember everything in the game, but not outside of it,'' Alex thought. He took his phone and walked out to the Kitchen. Hannah was there already, eating some food herself. "Oh, you''re here? Aren''t you going to spend the whole day in the game?" she asked. "I could, but I didn''t want to today. Anyway, what are you looking at? Shouldn''t you be focusing on your meal instead of your phone?" Alex asked. "Oh, look," Hannah said as she showed him her phone. -$238,400 has been transferred to your account XXXXXXXXXXX87- "My hubby gave me a few more spirit stones today to cultivate with. Shame I can''t really use them since I don''t have a technique. Still, I can''t believe he loves me so much. For an NPC, he feels so real," Hannah said. "Oh, that reminds me," Alex thought and immediately checked his phone. As expected 36,000 dollars had been added to his bank account as well. "Well, it''s not as much as yours, but I earned it on my own," Alex said as he showed her the phone. "Oh wow, that''s amazing. I probably couldn''t even make half of what you are making if it weren''t for my hubby," she said. Alex couldn''t help but smile a little hearing her call a game character ''Hubby''. He looked at the date and time while eating and lamented at the fact that the 1-week break was going to end soon. ''I hope the competition lasts no more than until Sunday. I don''t want to waste too much of my classes in case I am stuck there,'' he thought. Once he finished eating he went back into the game. He didn''t have anything else to do, so he spent his time understanding the alchemy knowledge he had acquired in the library. Finally, it was time for the meeting. Last night''s meeting had nothing happen in it, so he wasn''t expecting much from this day''s meeting as well. Just as he thought, the meeting had nothing happening in it today as well. The production-based events were over, so there wasn''t much effort on Ma Rong''s side to keep these meetings interesting. She simply told them that they could do whatever they wanted and spoke a few words of encouragement and the meeting was over. "Master," Alex walked up front while everyone else left. "What do you need?" Ma Rong asked. "Actually¡­" he explained everything regarding today''s event and told her how someone with a spiritual sense followed him. Ma Rong was immediately concerned and asked more questions, but Alex didn''t have answers either. "I thought it was for the armor I won against him, but it was more like he allowed me to win it. I do not know what is going on," he said. "That is weird. Someone with a spiritual sense¡ª That would mean that he used a lily right?" Ma Rong asked. "Yes, I wonder if he found a lily or bought¡ª " Alex stopped mid-thought. Now that he was back in the game, his Eidetic memory was back as well. "Oh no," he said as the color drained from his face. "What''s wrong?" Ma Rong asked. "He¡ª When I was about to escape, he said he bought something a few weeks ago. If what he bought was the lily then¡­ He is after me because I am the one who sold it." Chapter 306: Face Change again "What did you say? You sold a lily?" Ma Rong said in surprise. Alex''s face still had shock written all over it. "Yes, i¡ª I thought it was a good idea at the time to sell a single lily since it would bring me so many spirit stones," Alex said. "How could you be so stupid to sell a precious item like that?" Ma Rong scolded. "I¡ª I hadn''t realized how terrible this world was at the time and ended up foolishly selling the flower away," Alex said. "Lord and this man is the one that bought it?" she asked. "I assume so. I think he was trying to capture me to get some more, but I managed to escape, so I couldn''t fully understand his intentions at the time, but that must be it," Alex said as he started thinking more. Ma Rong asked more questions regarding the sales of the flower and Alex told her everything he knew. She fell into deep thought for a while and Alex waited for her to speak. "But how could he have gotten your face?" Ma Rong asked. "How? The auction house probably gave it, right? Everyone there seems to know the guest''s face" Alex asked. "That''s not possible. Especially since your face alone isn''t enough. The staff doesn''t know what you are there for, they only know that you are important. Your actual information would only be circulated amongst the innermost staff, and that too would be nearly impossible in this case since your sale was remote," Ma Rong said. "That means that there are likely only 3 people in the auction house that could possibly know your information, but even they wouldn''t do something shady like that. The reputation of their entire auction house is on the line if they ever see inside information, especially of a guess as expensive as you," Ma Rong said. "Then how could it have happened?" Alex asked. "I don''t know. Tell me about the man once again?" Ma Rong asked. Alex described his face the best he could. "That is too generic of a face. What about his cloth?" she asked. "He was wearing a red robe," Alex said. "Red¡­ that too is generic. There are dozens of sects in the competition with a red robe. It is likely an elder from one of these sects," Ma Rong asked. "I figured that too master, so I was thinking of changing my face for the rest of the competition," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ That might be a good idea," Ma Rong said. "The committee won''t say anything about that right? What if they don''t allow me?" Alex asked. "Don''t worry. There are too many disciples in the competition, and no one remembers your face. So as long as your Qi remains the same, you won''t be in any trouble," Ma Rong said. "I see. Thank you, master," Alex said. "Do you need Face Changing pills?" Ma Rong asked. "I''ve got these, they might work," Alex said and showed his pills. He hadn''t made any new Face Changing pill recently, so the highest one lasted for 42 hours. "That won''t do. Take this," Ma Rong said and handed him a Face Changing pill with 58% harmony. The pill would last 58 hours too. "Thank you, master." With nothing else to say, he bid Ma Rong a good night and left the room. He returned back to the room and go onto his bed. Wan Li was still reading his paper, so Alex didn''t bother him and directly started cultivating. He called out Pearl and kept him in his robes. Once Pearl started cultivating, he too started body cultivating. After that, he started cultivating normally, and soon, he fell into a trance and lost consciousness. Alex opened his eyes at 6:00 in the morning. He stopped Pearl and sent him back to the left arm. ''Today is going to be a long day,'' he thought. Unlike the other 4 days, today was supposed to last for a really long time. He was told that today would last until the competition ended, but that would take a long time, so he wasn''t sure how long ''today'' was going to last. Since he didn''t have much time in the day to eat, he decided to log out now and eat. Alex opened the lid to the capsule and walked out. He went to the bathroom to freshen up and then went to the kitchen to eat some light meal. He made a light milkshake with some fruits and drank it before returning back to his room to disappear back into the game world. He opened his eyes back in the game and looked at the time on the right-hand corner of his screen. It was about time to leave. However, before that, he needed to do something. He reached into his storage bag and pulled out a Face Changing pill. Unlike yesterday''s pill, this was irreversible and he would get access to his face back only after the duration was over. The one he had in his hand was a 58% harmony pill. That was enough for him to have a different face the entirety of today, tomorrow, and partially into Sunday as well; and finally, get his face back around the nighttime. So, without thinking, he popped the pill in his mouth and swallowed it. Energy started releasing from the pill as it coursed into his bones, his muscles, and his skin. Although the pill was called a Face-changing pill, it changed everything about a person''s body, making them practically a new person. ''Imagine having this pill, but a permanently working one, I wonder how much that would sell for,'' Alex wondered. He knew what to do here, so he simply thought of a face, one that he saw in the mirror all the time. The bones and muscle remained the same as he wished for them to be so, but the face slowly started morphing and changing until he was no longer recognizable. Chapter 307: Combat Competitions The hair receded back into his head as his eyes changed colors and went back to being brown. His facial structure also moved a little and he was back to looking like his real-life self. "Brother Wan, I''ve changed face once more, please don''t freak out," he told Wan Li. Wan Li seemed pretty trigger happy last time so as to caution he let him know beforehand. Wan Li looked up from his papers and said, "Oh, you look¡­ different. Why did you change? Aren''t you going to take part in the competition?" "I needed to change my face a little, and master said I can take part despite having a different face, so I did," he said. "Okay. As long as it is allowed," Wan Li said and no longer bothered him with questions regarding his face. A knock landed on their door and both of them left the room. Once he walked outside, the various people looked at him weirdly for a second, until he explained to them what was going on. Ma Rong left her room and asked, "Is everyone here?" "Yes, we are ready to leave," an elder said. "Hm, where is¡ª Oh, you changed face already. I didn''t recognize you. Let''s leave," she said and started walking downstairs. Down at the ground floor, they met Fatty Xu once more, but this time, he didn''t have any remarks for them. Instead, he said, "Congratulations. You guys beat us fair and square," and left with his group. Han Long was in the group and turned to the few and waved to them. He looked for Alex for a few seconds and left after not finding him. Ma Rong also took her group and left. Along the way, Ma Rong called Alex forward and silently asked, "I don''t remember seeing anyone in the sect or the Scarlet city with a face like that. Is that a face belonging to someone from the Tiger sect?" "Uhh¡­ no. You have never seen this person before," Alex said. "Oh, where is this person from?" Ma Rong asked. "Uhh, it''s my brother''s face," Alex said. "Your brother?" Ma Rong looked at him with a confused face. "I thought you had no siblings," Ma Rong said. "Um¡­ I have, but he was a mortal, and before I left my village, uh¡­ he died," Alex lied. Ma Rong looked at him with shock on her face. He controlled herself and said, "I see. It''s a good-looking face." Ma Rong no longer asked any question and left him be. Fan Ruogang then started pestering Alex for more information on why he changed his face and even Zhou Mei started asking some questions. But these were questions that Alex could not answer so he just gave a random explanation and satiated their curiosity. Around 7 pm, they finally reached the Coliseum and went straight to the arena where the majority of the sect was gathered. "Woah," Alex said as he looked at the various sects. "There seem to be a lot more people here today. What''s going on?" Alex asked. "Yeah, there''s nearly double. Did new sects get added at the last moment?" Wan Li asked. "Pfft. You guys are letting your newbie-ness spill out right now," Fan Ruogang said while holding back her laughter. Alex and Wan Li looked at each other in confusion. "Haha, you do know what today is right?" the Second Elder asked. "Of course, the combat section of the competition," Alex said. "And who takes part in the combat section?" the Second Elder asked. "Who? Isn''t it everyone?" Alex asked, but then immediately realized. "Ohhh, I see. So people skipped out on the initial part of the competition because they weren''t here for the Production segment of the competition," Alex said. "Yes, but now that it''s combat, everyone including those that took part in combat is here to take part now," the Second Elder said. "I see. No wonder there are so many people here right now," Alex said. Fu Zhen walked into a small podium and started speaking. "Fellow Daoists, welcome back to the competition. Today starts the combat portion of the competition. There is no theme to this competition, but we have set various different competitions, so you can take part in any of it," he said. "However, the majority of the competition is going to be our main attraction, the single battles. Please send the best of the best from your sect to take part in those. As for the rest, please choose as you want," Fu Zhen said. Suddenly, a massive blue screen appeared behind him. One that was larger than any of the ones that opened up before in any of the other days. Alex looked at the competition page and was surprised by the list. "What? Why is the setup of the competitions like that?" Alex asked. As Fu Zhen had said, the main attraction of the competition was the single battles. So, the Single battles were what took the majority of the competition. Surprisingly aside from the very first competition, none of the rest had any time assigned to them. All they had was an order, and the competition would last as long as it possibly could. Alex started reading some of the competition through the top. The first competition was called the Damage test. It was part of the Single battle apparently and those who took part in that competition had to go through this. Then came a race between the cultivators using only movement technique, race between the different beasts, race of the cultivators using only artifacts, race with both beasts and cultivators together. Then the first main event of the day started the Singles battles. After that was over, there were other various competitions. Then there would be another Singles battle than another competition, then other singles, then another set of battles, and finally another Singles battle would end the competition. "That is a really weird way to set up a competition," Wan Li made the same comment Alex was about to. Chapter 308: Final Registration "This actually makes very good sense. They had it the same way back a year ago too and this worked perfectly," Zhou Mei said. "Why though?" Alex asked. "If the singles battles are the main attraction then, why not have it all be done at the last, instead of spreading it thought like this?" "It''s mostly to keep the competition interesting. If the audience knew that the Singles battle was at the end of the day, they would just leave for the day and come back when the singles battle starts," the Second Elder said. "Yes, if they do it like this, they can retain a lot more audience. Also, this helps the participants something other than just fighting continuously," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded when he heard those. "By the way, are those 4 races going to take place at the same time? Isn''t that a little disadvantageous for the Beast taming sects?" Alex asked. "No, all the competitions you see in the list will take place one after another," Ma Rong said. "Alright, quickly look at what you want to take part in. I will call out the competitions and you raise your hands. Aside from the Singles which will take 4, every other competition is still going to only take 3," Ma Rong said. "Singles take 4?" Alex said with surprise. There was nothing about that in the announcement or the list. "Yeah, its an information the competition holders don''t reveal, but you can have 4 competitors in the singles competition. That usually gets thinned by the first competition," Ma Rong said. "Isn''t that unfair? How are the new sects supposed to know that?" Alex asked. "The world is not fair. If they are worth the 4 spots, they will find out on their own," Ma Rong said. "Alright choose now, Singles," Ma Rong asked. Wan Li and two others raised their hands. One was a girl with a 6th Meridian Tempering realm cultivation base and a man with an 8th Meridian Tempering realm cultivation base. Anywhere else, these two would be a core disciple for sure. But in the Hong Wu sect where they measured achievement in terms of Alchemy, these two could only remain inner sect disciples. "We can do 4. Anyone else?" Ma Rong said and looked around the group, but soon realized that they didn''t have a very high cultivation base. "Never mind, you guys won''t even pass through the damage test," she said and moved on to the next competition. "The normal race one?" she asked. 2 disciples raised their hands. One of them was the man from just now. He hadn''t taken part a single time the last 4 days, so he had all of his 3 chances still. He also raised his hand in another competition. "The Maze run?" Ma Rong asked. Alex immediately raised his hand, so did the other girl. This was the competition Alex was looking forward to joining after seeing its name on the list. Mazes were intriguing, to say the least, and Alex was more interested in it since it was a race as well. To him, this was much better than the normal races. Ma Rong asked for a few more competitions, but no one really wanted to take part in them. "Alright, Second Elder, go take them to their seats, I will get them registered," Ma Rong said and walked towards the registration place with the few of them including Alex and Wan Li. Once in the registration place, they waited around for the others to free up spaces before it was their turn. Alex looked around while waiting and tried to find a sect that had red robes like the man from yesterday. He found a few red robes, but none of them matched the shade of red the man was wearing. ''Is his sect not here?'' Alex wondered. He looked to another sect, that wore red robes too. It was the sect belonging to Luo Xing, Luo Mei''s half-sister. Ma Rong noticed him looking at them and softly asked, "Is it them?" "No, the shade of red doesn''t match," Alex said. "Yu Ming?" suddenly someone called from the side. He hadn''t been using his spiritual sense, so he didn''t sense anyone coming. He looked to the right and saw that it was Wen Cheng. "Master, Good morning," Alex said. "You changed your face? Is something wrong?" he asked. "Nothing''s¡­.uh, well something''s wrong, but I can''t explain here," Alex said. "How did you recognize him?" Ma Rong asked curiously. "Oh, he''s used this same face before when I took him to¡­ uh somewhere," Wen Cheng stopped himself at the last moment. "To that alchemy place? You take my disciple into your sect and hope to still keep secrets?" Ma Rong said with a smirk. She seemed to be thinking of something but didn''t let it show on her face. "Tsk. I should''ve known with how loose his mouth is," Wen cheng said. "Anyway, are you taking a part in the Singles battle? You can win against anyone below Mind Tempering realm, but you can''t go past the first competition to even get to the actual battles," Wen Cheng said. "Oh, no. I am taking part in the Maze run," Alex said. "Ah, that''s¡­ that''s going to suit you. You might actually be too good for that," Wen Cheng said as he fell into thought. Luo Mei arrived and greeted Ma Rong before turning to Wen Cheng and said, "Master, We are done." "Oh, ok. Before that, this is your Junior brother, remember his face," Wen Cheng said. "Huh? Yu Ming? Why is your face changed?" she asked. Alex gave the same question. "Alright, we will leave. Looks like it''s time for you to register as well," Wen Cheng said. Alex nodded and walked forward with the other disciples to get registered. The others registered for their own one and Alex registered for the Maze run. Once that was completed, the group returned back to their seat and waited for the competition to start. Chapter 309: Royal Family Alex walked back to the seating area with his master and the other disciples and sat along with the rest of the group. "Master, why didn''t we left the 3 back there, their competition should start anytime now, right?" Alex asked. He wasn''t sure why Ma Rong brought Wan Li and the rest back to the seating area. "Oh, it won''t start right away. Since this is the fun part of the competition, we will have more audience now, as well as special guests soon," Ma Rong said. Alex found it a little disappointing that what he loved doing, and what many loved doing wasn''t fun to watch for many other people. More than half the audience only liked watching the fights. To be fair, that was where the cultivators shined the most, but it still stung a little knowing that production competition was a little more niche. "Oh" "ah" "Woah" "oh lord" "they''re here Multiple small murmurs appeared from the crowd. Alex wasn''t sure what was happening when suddenly Ma Rong poked him. "What''s wrong Master?" he asked. "You¡ª You said that the guy who tried to capture you wore red right?" Ma Rong asked. Alex felt that this was a weird time to ask the question, but he still answered, "Yes, Master. Red robes, why are you asking me this?" "Are you absolutely sure it was just a simple red robe?" she asked. "Yes Master, I''m sure. I saw it with my own eyes," Alex said. Then, Ma Rong slowly pointed her fingers to somewhere in the sky before turning towards Alex and asked, "Are you sure the robe was not Crimson?" Alex could see a little bit of fear in his Master''s eyes. He slowly turned his head to look to the sky where her finger was pointed and saw a bunch of people flying in the sky. Despite the city being a no-fly zone, there were people flying there. However, more importantly than that, the people were all wearing red robes¡ª Crimson, to be exact. "Th¡ª That''s the man Master. The one at the second last," Alex said seeing the man with the spiritual sense. His face seemed like he was bored but still needed to come here. Seeing the people''s reaction, their color of robes, and their freedom of flight, even Alex could guess who these people were. "They are¡ª " Alex turned to Ma Rong in shock who simply just nodded and said, "The Royal Family." Alex felt shocked and looked back at the flying group of people. There were around 6 people in the group of flying people. Surprisingly, he knew more than just one person flying right now. That was the girl behind the couple at the front. ''It''s her,'' Alex thought, remembering back to the time he helped the few female girls. "Master, who are they exactly?" He asked. "You see the person at the front? That is the emperor of the Crimson Empire, Fu Zexian," Ma Rong said. Alex looked at the man, and he looked like he was in his 30s. "So, the one behind him is Gao Xia, the empress?" he asked. He remembered reading about the royal family. But reading about someone and knowing it from seeing was completely different. "Yes, and the one behind them is the princess, Fu Wuying. Followed by the second prince, Fu Yuhan. The last two are the High Princes, the Emperor''s little brothers. The one on the front is Fu Zemin, and the one behind him, the one that wanted to capture you is the notorious third brother of the Emperor, Fu Zexi," Ma Rong said. Alex looked at the man with cold eyes. If Alex hadn''t been quick on his head, he would''ve probably been dead right now and was reincarnated to a random location. ''Sigh, whatever. Let''s just forget about it. Once I return back, I won''t have to worry about him anymore,'' Alex thought. The Royal family landed on a platform at the highest spot on the south end of the coliseum, where the sun would be behind them most of the time. Alex looked towards them and saw a bunch of people below them as well, with almost the same height, but not quite. "Who are those people, Master?" he asked curiously. Ma Rong looked to the side and said, " Oh, those are the nobles. The Dukes, Marquess, Earl, Viscount, and Barons of the empire. There might also be the ministers, but I don''t really know them." " I see," Alex said. Fu Zhen walked up to the stage and bowed towards the royal family before speaking. "Good Morning ladies and gentlemen, fellow Daoist. Let me welcome all of you to this wonderful day where we will have the battle competitions of this year''s Annual sect Competitions." "Besides just the battles, we also have many short and long competitions set up for today and the following days. All of which is very much fun." "So without any further speech, let me bring on the competitors for today''s competition. Everyone, please come on to the stage," Fu Zhe shouted. "I will take the disciples, sect Master," the Second Elder said and stood up before taking the three disciples to the arena. The audience waited for a bit before the participants finally walked out. Alex and the rest looked at the ground before the hoard of disciples finally arrived at the stage. Just the sheer number of participants for the single battles was staggering. Alex wanted to count the number of participants, but it was so many that he just didn''t bother. "Finally, here we have all the participants for the Single battles," Fu Zhen spoke. "However, as you all can see, there are just too many to have a single''s battle." "There are exactly 317 people taking part in the singles battle, which as you can see is not an even number. So, to fix that issue and bring the number of participants down to a manageable number, we will now start the prelude to the Singles battles, The Damage test." Chapter 310: Damage Test Alex looked at the different people on the stage and saw that he recognized a few. He obviously recognized his senior sister as well as Wan Li and the other 2 participants of his own sect. But he also saw Du Yuhan, as well as the guy his senior sister seemed to hate for some reason, Yang Ma. He tried searching for other people, but he couldn''t recognize any of the other participants aside from their robes, which wasn''t very helpful. Just as he was looking at them, 3 Metal puppets appeared on the stage out of nowhere and stood there just waiting to get hit. Fu Zhem walked to the puppets and said, "I will now explain the rules of this competition." "The Damage test, as its name suggests, will be looking at your ability to deal damage to these puppets. The puppets have zero defense and no resistance, so you can attack without any worries," Fu Zhen said. 3 screens appeared in the air above the puppets, as well as 3 others high in the air for the audience to see what was happening. Each of the small screens was blank for now, while the screen in the air showed everything that was happening around the wooden puppets, including the smaller screen. "Alright, this screen up here will show your damage on the wooden puppet," Fu Zhen said as he flicked the head of the puppet. The word appeared on the black screen. "As you can see, this is my physical damage." Fu Zhen then moved to another puppet and flicked it, "As you can see, the screen doesn''t pop on this one. That''s because this one only accepts elemental damage," Fu Zhen said as he threw a small Qi attack towards it. Suddenly, the screen lit up and it showed the words "Lastly, this is a special puppet as it only takes damage from mental attacks. Close your ears," Fu Zhen said as he called for someone. A young female walked up and suddenly screamed. The nearby people thankfully had their ears plugged, so didn''t take any damage. "As you can see, if you have a strong mental attack, you can use that here as well," Fu Zhen said. "I will call out your names one by one, please come forward and attack the puppet of your choice. You will get 3 attacks and may use any weapons. The top 256 people with the highest damage will move on to the next round." "First of all, From the Undying sect, Tian Hao. Please come forward," Fu Zhen spoke. A strong-looking young man walked out of the group and walked to the puppet that took physical damage. "Alright, attack," Fu Zhen said. The man nodded and took out a blade from his storage bag. He took a deep breath and the blade started glowing red. He immediately dashed forward and swung the sword right at the chest of the puppet. CLANG There was not a single scratch on the puppet, but words did appear on the screen. "Good, you have 2 more chances. Do you want to use it?" Fu Zhen asked. Tian Hao thought for a few seconds and nodded. He attacked the puppet twice more, but the result was the same. "Okay. Tian Hao from the Undying sect. The highest attack is at Meridian Tempering - 6th Realm," Fu Zhen announced. "Next up is Hua Mexin from Hanging Fruit sect," Fu Zhen announced. Alex watched from the seating area and was a little confused, "Is¡­ is it going to be just this for the next 300 or so turns?" he asked. "Yes. This will work as an introduction for the audience to the various people fighting in the competition. Besides, it won''t take just as long as the first one. Since the others know what to do, they won''t take much time," Ma Rong said. "Alright," Alex said and looked back at the stage. The elemental damage-taking puppet had a hovering on the screen above it. The lady who just attacked, however, decided to not attack twice, and it was time for the next contestant. "Oh, she must be confident in her skill huh. Is the peak of Meridian tempering really that strong?" Alex asked. "It should get you to the Top 50 in terms of strength with just that," Ma Rong said. "Oh, then the overall strength must no¡ª " Suddenly, gasps rang out from the people. Alex turned around to see that the physical puppet had 4 words hovering over it. Seeing those words made him stop speaking and rethink what he was going to say. "Who is that guy?" Alex asked as he looked down below. The guy was wearing a white robe and had a smug smile on his face. "Tsk. I want to punch that face." Alex looked to the side with surprise when he heard Ma Rong speak that sentence. "What?" He asked in confusion. "Sigh, never mind. I just hate that robe," Ma Rong said. Alex looked back and focused on that robe and realized where he had seen it before. "Ah, it''s that guy''s sect," Alex said as he remembered Sect Leader Li of the Golden Eagle sect who tried to flirt with Ma Rong. No wonder she was getting annoyed. "Did they never take part in the production competitions?" Alex asked. "Probably not. Their sect is a normal one like the Tiger sect, so a few might have taken part in different competitions. But none were good enough to stand out. "I see," Alex said. The Damage test actually went far faster than Alex would''ve thought it would. Every minute new people were being tested, sometimes 2 or even 3. In half an hour, nearly 50 people were already tested. Amongst those people, only 3 people managed to go beyond the Mind Tempering realm. Alex soon realized how hard it was to find a Mind Tempering expert in the Crimson Empire that was also below 25 years of age. Chapter 311: Damage Tests - Finale "Yang Ma from Tiger sect," Fu Zhen called out. By now, an hour had passed and around 100 disciples were done with their tests. Amongst the latter 50, only 2 had been a mind tempering realm expert. In total, there had been around 5 right now. The red-haired, 3rd ranking disciple of the Tiger sect walked out. Alex knew that he had a 2nd Mind Tempering realm so he expected his damage output to be around the same as well. He walked up to the Elemental puppet and threw a fireball at it. Words soon popped up on top of it. Alex looked at it too but was a little surprised. "Huh?" The words on the puppet were "That''s not right," Alex said. He thought for a moment and finally realized what was happening. "These guys are trying to hide their strength," Alex said as a peculiar smile appeared on his face. "That means¡­ the previous 5 that only had 1st Mind Tempering realm¡­ might actually be way higher in cultivation," he thought. People kept attacking the puppets and their damage information was recorded. The two disciples from the Hong Wu sect didn''t have the luxury to hide their cultivation base as they weren''t very strong in the first place. "Hmm¡­ He will probably get accepted, but she is still debatable," Ma Rong said looking at the two disciple''s results. Everyone else who had a high enough cultivation base was hiding their cultivation so Alex couldn''t tell just how high their cultivation base was from the screen. Finally, Wan Li was called forth. Wan Li took out a simple sword as he walked forward and stood in front of the puppet. Once he was given the go, he slashed the puppet right on the chest. He didn''t hold back as much as the others did. "Is brother Wan talented in cultivation as well?" Alex asked. "Hmm¡­ He isn''t¡­ or rather he wasn''t. After his parent''s death last year, he seemed to have not only taken Alchemy, but also cultivation as a method of coping." "Before any of us knew, he went up a minor realm and even crossed 3 realms," Ma Rong said. Alex looked back at the competitions. There were more Mind tempering realm cultivators appearing now. One of the Mind Tempering results came from a participant that wasn''t even the person themselves. They had let their tamed beast attack the puppet. There were other folks who used their puppets to attack the puppet. That too apparently counted since they were considered weapons just as any sword and spear. Alex was really surprised when he learned that. ''I wonder if next year around I can have Pearl fight for me as well,'' he thought. But he also thought how it would probably be too late for him since he at this rate, he would reach the True realms in just a few months. There were about 50 more people left when Fu Zhen finally called someone he had been waiting to see for the last 3 hours. " Tiger sect, Luo Mei," he called. Luo Mei walked forward in the yellow robes with red linings. As soon as she came up to the elemental puppet, she swirled her hand around a few times. Blue Qi escapes from her hands as they quickly turned into a blob of water. Without much thought, she threw the water at the puppet and go a reading that said That was a very simple attack, and yet it got such a high result. ''I wonder how far her cultivation has advanced,'' he wondered. More people came and went after her; Few were in the mind tempering realm, most close to it. Some were quite low as well. The remaining participants were thinning very fast until only a few remained. Finally, the last member of the Tiger sect was called forth. "Du Yuhan of Tiger sect," Fu Zhen spoke out loud. Du Yuhan walked forth with a sword in his hand. He was holding it with his left arm and it was sheathed at the moment. He walked up to the physical puppet and took a deep breath. In a single sweep, he pulled the sword out of the sheath and hit the puppet. It happened so fast that Alex could barely see it at all. "Woah," Alex thought. A simple attack from all 3 of the top-ranking members in the Tiger sect had amazing results. "How come all the disciples from Tiger Sect are so strong and yet they haven''t even reached the 1st grade yet," Alex asked. "They''ve always been strong due to the intense inner competition of the sect, but this batch has been astoundingly fierce." "I knew Luo Mei and Du Yuhan were good, but it seems even the Yang Ma fellow is good as well. I didn''t see him last year," Ma Rong said "As for the reason why they didn''t reach the 1st grade yet is that most of the years, they didn''t bother taking part in the production segment of the competition. Even in the battle segment, there weren''t that many taking part due to the 3 per competition constraint." "However, they will surely reach the 1st grade this time. That is as long as the 3 do well¡­ and they don''t have to fight against the Royal Fu Academy early on. That would be a disaster for them," Ma Rong said. "Are¡­ they that good?" Alex was a little surprised. "Perhaps better," Ma Rong said as not even she really knew how strong the disciples from the Royal Fu Academy were. Alex wondered if his senior sister could perhaps have a chance at winning. But for that, he would have to know just how strong these Royal Fu Academy folks were. The rest of the participants delivered their attacks the test ended. Fu Zhen revealed the results after a few minutes. All 3 members of the Hong Wu sect had surprisingly passed. Even the female disciple passed at around 230th rank amongst the 256 people that passed. Chapter 312: Race "5 spirit stones on the red robe guy with the horse." "Cheapskate put in more. 62 spirit stones on the blue-robed girl with the red bird." "I''m going 70 spirit stones on the green-robed girl with the jaguar. You guys are picking some stupid monsters really. Jaguars are very fast. Ah, MeiMei, Wanwan, you guys come to put in spirit stones too." "You skipped out on the last one, but not this one," Fan Ruogang shouted at the 3 who were staying away from gambling away their money. "I¡­ don''t really know who will win Fanfan, So I will stay out of it. I don''t want to lose my money," Zhou Mei said. "I¡ª I don''t like gambling," Wan Li said. "I am low on money, sister Fan. So I will stay out of it," Alex said when he was called to gamble. "What? You all are cowards. Elders, you guys wanna bet?" she asked the elders to bid on the winning beast for the Beast race. "Fanfan, stop being so rowdy. It doesn''t reflect well on the sect," Ma Rong scolded her for standing out too much in the audience. "Oh, sorry sect leader," she said and tried to get quiet when the race started. "Oh, it has begun," she immediately started screaming again. "Go Jaguar," she cried out. The bird, the jaguar, and the horse were the main 3 beasts that everyone expected to win. However, when the beasts did reach the other side, a result that nobody expected occurred. The winner for the beast''s race was actually a tiny little squirrel. "What? I lost again" Fan Ruogang couldn''t believe it. She had lost during the cultivator''s race just before this as well. The rest of the disciples who bet were also disappointed. The lucky guy who started the bid now took all of their money. "Hey, don''t keep that yet. The next race is happening right now," Ma Rong said as she pointed the various disciple who came out with their own artifacts. Ning simply shook his head and looked at the stage. ''I wonder how well I would''ve done on the cultivator''s race,'' he thought. His cultivation wasn''t very high, so he couldn''t really tell how good he was compared to them, but if he had taken part in the race, he would''ve lost without a doubt. ''Those guys were so fast,'' he thought and subconsciously looked towards the southern side of the coliseum where the big shot was staying. Suddenly, his eyes got cold and a hint of anger appeared in them. But then he controlled himself and looked away from them. The artifact race was starting. Everyone sat on some kind of a small boat and once the horn was blown, they flew away. The stage was expanded to be around a kilometer long in length, but it was no time for the participants. In a matter of seconds, they all crossed that distance. "Woah, that is so fast," Alex said. Ma Rong''s boat was a little faster, but that was because she was in the True Realm. These Self Tempering realm cultivators reaching close to her speed was already very amazing. More races occurred after that some of which were the Beast and Cultivator riding race, Puppet race, and a flying race where the cultivators had to fly the whole way through. Once this competition ended, it was around 2 pm in the day. "This is taking a lot longer than I had expected. How long does it usually last, Master?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ they should end it by 5 pm, regardless of if the competition ends or not. Either way, this is the last event of the day," Ma Rong said as she stood up. "Come with me," she said as she walked away from the seating area. Alex didn''t understand what was going on, so he followed her. Surprisingly, she had taken him to the seating area of the Tiger sect. Wen noticed Ma Rong walking and looked back. "Why are you guys here?" he asked. "You are better at the upcoming stuff. Teach him," Ma Rong said and pushed Alex forward. "Learn something," she said and turned back. "Come, sit Yu Ming," Wen Cheng said and made him sit beside him. "Where''s senior sister? Did she leave for the competition already?" Alex asked. "Yeah, the 3 of them already went down," Wen Cheng said. "By the way, why did you change your face?" he asked. Alex thought for a second and decided to tell Wen Cheng the whole story. "What? You will be staying with me now. I will see what that troublemaker can do after this," Wen Cheng said. Alex smiled and said, "It''s a fine master. With my face changed he shouldn''t be able to recognize me." "Yeah I guess that is true," Wen Cheng said. Fu Zhen walked onto the stage and started speaking. "We will now begin Single Battles. There are a few rules the contestants have to follow before taking part in this competition." "First of all, you cannot use anything that is above the Common Rank. No weapons, armors, artifacts, formations, nothing." "Secondly, you are considered to have lost the battle in 3 scenarios. Either if you forfeit the battle, if you faint, or you get thrown out of the stage, you will lose the battle." "If you fail to show up to the battle in the first place within 2 minutes of me calling, you will automatically fail as well." "So, please everyone come down up to the stage, we will choose your opponents now," Fu Zhen said. Everyone walked up to the stage and was made to draw numbers from a box in secret. "Keep that number with you. That will be what chooses who you are going to fight. There are 2 pairs of the same card for a total of 128 pairs." "For the first match, we will start with numbers 1 through 4. Everyone else, please return back to the waiting room," Fu Zhen said and made the others leave. "Come, the stage will be set for you soon." Chapter 313: The Royal Family High in the coliseum, on the southern side, were the royal family of the Crimson Empire. "Urghh¡­ this is so boring," a voice rang out in the group. Nobody even had to look to know who was speaking right now. "Why don''t they make those in the True realm fight. What''s so fun about watching these kids fight?" "I told you, Uncle, it was going to be boring. It''s not like we didn''t warn you," the second prince, Fu Yuhan said. He was a thin man with short hair and a clean-shaven face. "That''s right, Brother. We told you the competition wasn''t for you, why did you even come? You never came before," Fu Zemin, the second brother of the Emperor said. He looked the eldest of the bunch, despite being the second brother due to his lack of talent in cultivation. Still, he had managed to get where he was thanks to all the resources that came with being a prince to an empire. "I¡ª I have something to do," Fu Zexi, the third brother of the Emperor said. "Well, you can''t blame anyone else then," the second prince said. "Tsk. I wish the battles get a little bit better, otherwise, I will die of boredom," Fu Zexi said. "Zexi, those down below are the future of this empire. We are not here to watch normal battles. We are here to search for talents that can go on to be the pillar of the empire. So either leave or shut up and watch," An authoritative voice came from the center. The Emperor, Fu Zexian had finally decided to speak after listening to his younger brother babble on forever. The Emperor was a man with a cultivation base high enough so that despite being nearly a hundred years old, he looked like he was in his 30s. His build was the same as his third brother; he had broad shoulders and big muscles. But he did not have a scruffy face and instead had a clean-shaven one. His hair was still all black surprisingly. "So¡ª sorry brother," Zexi said in a meek voice. "Ah, Dear Husband, don''t scold brother-in-law, after spending days in the illegal fighting den for days on end, obviously this would look boring in comparison," the empress said. The Empress looked older than the Emperor in general, but even the Empress looked like she was in her 30s at most. Adding on to the fact that she had no wrinkles and could generally be considered a beauty, she was a perfect match for the Emperor. "Pfft" a few people laughed after seeing the empress not so subtly call out the third brother of the Emperor. "Tsk. Even sister-in-law is starting to tease me now," Zexi said. "Xiaxia, you are hurting Zexi''s feelings now," the Emperor said. "Huh? And your scolding doesn''t hurt his feelings?" the Empress asked. "Uhh¡­ that''s different. He is used to my scolding since he was a child, so it''s fine," the Emperor said. "Hmph, you scolding him is fine, but me teasing him is not? Why do I feel like you are choosing your brother over me," the Empress said. "How can you say that, Xiaxia. You know I love you very dearly. I even refused all those concubines for you," the Emperor said. "Right kids. Tell your mother how much I love her," the Emperor asked his children. "Yes, Father. You love mother very dearly," the second prince said in a monotone voice as if that was a daily thing for him. "Wuying? Are you not going to say anything?" the Emperor asked. The princess was currently focused down below, but her eyes didn''t seem to match the direction of the fights. "Where are you looking, Wuying?" the Emperor asked, but the princess did not respond. She didn''t even hear the question. "Wuying?" he called to her once more. The second prince nudged his little sister a bit to catch her attention. "What?" she looked at the second prince who just pointed at his father. The princess turned around and asked, "What is it, father?" "Where is your head at? Weren''t you listening to anything?" the Emperor asked. "Uhh¡­ I found someone interesting a few days ago who I think is a disciple of a sect participating in this competition. Except, I can''t find him anywhere," Wuying said. "You found someone interesting?" the Empress asked curiously. "Yes. It was a boy who noticed one of my shadow guards," Wuying said. "Someone found your shadow guard? That too a disciple? Impossible. They are the best at hiding. Even I would have a hard time finding them if I wasn''t looking for them," the Emperor said. "But that is the truth, Father. Which is why I am searching for him right now," Wuying said. "Tell us more about this boy," the Empress said, and Wuying fully explained everything. They all listened curiously and nodded. ''Long hair, clean face, moderately tall build¡­ they all match, except for the robe. The one he was wearing looked really bland, so it probably wasn''t even his real robes,'' Zexi thought when he heard the descriptions. The Emperor made the rest of them search for such a boy, he started searching too. There were a few ones along the way he found, but none matched. "That robe looks correct," Wuying said. "Hm¡­ that''s Hong Wu sect, an Alchemy focused sect. I doubt someone like that is from them. Let''s keep searching," the emperor said. ''Alchemy?'' Zexi thought. ''Alchemy¡­ Spirit Cleansing Lily¡­ it would make sense if he was from there but¡­ the flower showed up in an auction in the capital. Did he leave¡ª where is the Hong Wu sect again? Scarlet City?'' His eyes went wide. ''Scarlet city has a branch of Pink Cloud auction house as well,'' he thought and immediately started looking through the disciples of Hong Wu sect but couldn''t find any. Just as he was about to look away, however, he noticed something peculiar. ''Why is that one disciple staying away from the group?'' Chapter 314: Teaching "I can''t find him,'' Wuying said after searching for about 5 minutes. "Maybe he is not here. I can get the guards to search for him if you want," the Emperor said. "No, need. Maybe he already left the capital," Wuying said while sounding a little disappointed. "Big brother, I will leave now. I need to go check on my wife," Zemin said as he stood up to leave. "How is she by the way? Any improvements?" the Emperor asked. "No, not really. Lai Qing is still trying to find new pills that might work for her, but nothing is really happening. It seems not even he has any idea what to do in this situation," Zemin said with a sad face. "Sigh, I will do something to search for people that might have some idea. Don''t lose hope," the Emperor said and watched his brother leave. He then looked at Zexi and asked, "Don''t you want to leave too?" Zexi looked outside the arena with a curious smile and said, "No, No I don''t think I will." ******* CLANG Swords clashed on the stage as both of the fighters pushed each other back. One of them threw out a golden slash towards the other, while the other one parried it to hit a barrier behind him. Alex and the rest of the tiger sect were upon the seating area watching the fights. "Sigh, I guess we won''t see interesting fights until around 64 people remain. Two more rounds of Single Battles to go, I guess," Wen Cheng said. "Are people doing nothing but hiding their abilities to not give away their advantage?" Alex asked. "Yes. So the battles are very straightforward and easy to get bored of," Wen Cheng said. "Still, you should learn a few things from today''s battles." "First of all, as you can see, cultivation base isn''t everything. Look at that guy named¡­. Macks? Maks?" "Max," Alex helped Wen Cheng with the pronunciation. "Yes, that guy. His cultivation base is at 9th Meridian Tempering realm, Yet he is barely keeping up with his opponent that has 8th Meridian Tempering realm." "From that name, I can tell he''s one of the new cultivators that have popped up recently around the empire. He has so much cultivation base, but because he rushed to where he is now, it''s not properly stabilized, and thus he can''t use the full capabilities of his cultivation base." "Sigh, I don''t know what sort of idiot let that guy into the competition," Wen Cheng said. Alex knew these things already, but he had never seen a rushed cultivation base be this bad. It was like the player couldn''t even release all of the Qi in his body at once. ''Well, I''m glad I didn''t rush,'' Alex thought. Max was throwing out attacks, but none of it were landing on the opponent. Soon, he was overwhelmed by his enemy''s attack and got defeated. As soon as one match was over, they immediately called out the other 2 pairs. With 4 pairs fighting at once, the competition holders could continuously have multiple battles going on without any downtime. "Oh, it''s brother Wan," Alex said looking at the stage. It turned out Wan Li had the number 9, the next pair going to the stage. His opponent was someone who Alex remembered had gotten 9th Meridian Tempering in the Elemental puppet. "Brother Wan doesn''t have time to learn how to fight, so he shouldn''t have much fighting experience. I wonder how he will fare up against his opponent. He should be fine through just his raw strength right?" Alex asked. The referee made the two stay on the opposite side of the stage. Wan Li took out a sword while the opponent took out a quarterstaff. "Begin," the referee said. ZZZZOOOMM A red-colored attack immediately flew off of Wan Li''s sword the moment the competition began. "Wha¡ª " the opponent couldn''t even say anything as the attack hit him directly in the chest and threw him out of the stage. "Match Over," the referee said and gave Wan Li one of the 9 paper slips that he had taken from both of them. "That was fast," Alex thought. "Your first ranking disciple is not bad when it comes to fighting I see. Much better than when you came to me," Wen Cheng said. "Shame we didn''t get to see his actual fighting style," Wen Cheng said. "Guess, we will have to wait for tomorrow." "How many competitions will take place tomorrow?" Alex asked. "Hmm¡­ Given that we end on the Singles battle, tomorrow''s might also start with a Singles battle, since that is what they want. After that another set of competitions, followed by another Singles battle that should bring the number down to 32," Wen Cheng said. The fights weren''t very fun to watch, but Alex didn''t have a problem with that. Wen Cheng was steadily explaining anything and everything he thought Alex should be aware of in combat. When he saw puppets or beasts, he explained how one should fight against multiple opponents at once. "Always go for the weaker one first. If you don''t they will end up being annoying, and hamper your battle a lot. If you ever come across a beast or a puppet that is weaker than its master, beat it first." "However, if it''s the master that is weaker, then you have an easier chance to victory. As long as you defeat the master into unconsciousness, unless the beast is very intelligent, the puppet will be unresponsive and the beast will just be a normal monster," Wen Cheng explained. Alex nodded when he heard this information and kept them in his mind. "Your best chances at fighting users with long-ranged attacks like that guy with the bow with to get in so close that he can''t use his weapon anymore. See, that''s what his opponent did just there," Wen Cheng explained while looking at the fight between two people end. "Oh, the next contestants are both focused on elemental techniques if I remember correctly. This should help me explain something important that I didn''t have the time to previously," Wen Cheng said. Chapter 315: Elemental Theory The two new fighters got onto the stage and stayed on either side of the stage. Once the referee gave the go, the man immediately made a fireball in his hand and threw it towards the other man. The other man created a veil of a large amount of water that worked as a barrier. The fireball was snuffed out by the water. He then sent a blast of wind towards the other man. Up on the seating area, Wen Cheng started talking to Alex. "You know the elemental theory, right?" Wen Cheng asked. "The elemental theory?" Alex asked in confusion. "The same one as the one in Alchemy?" he asked. "Oh right, you know Alchemy, so you must understand it easily. When two people that use elemental abilities instead of physical fight, if their skill and cultivation base is the same, the one that wins will mostly depend on their element of use." Alex felt like he could understand what he was saying but was still generally confused. "Wait, I''m getting ahead of myself. Let me explain from the beginning. Remember when I told you about the spiritual roots, and how one is compared to the other?" Wen Cheng asked. "Yes. The ones with lesser elemental roots are perceived as better," Alex said. "Yes, exactly. Perceived as better, not are better. As I explained last time, The lesser the spiritual root, the stronger the effect of the spiritual root becomes. However, the more the spiritual roots, the more elemental affinity one has." "So, keeping this in mind, I want you to tell me. Who is stronger of the two, A cultivator with Metal and Water roots, or A cultivator with Wood and Fire roots?" Wen Cheng asked. This was a very strange question Ning had never encountered before. He tried to think but he wasn''t used to elements interacting with one another. Even during alchemy, he only did what the recipe said, and never truly learned the elements themselves. That was one of the reasons why Ma Rong wanted him to buy disposable cauldrons and learn the interaction between elements alone. With no choice, he thought back to the first lesson with Ma Rong where she taught him the elements. ''Metal and Water, Fire and Wood,'' he thought. "Um, if they have the same cultivation base then the one with Wood can Weaken water, and Ruin Metal. Even with Fire, he can Ruin Water and, and Control as well as Overwhelm Metal." "I think the man with the Fire and Woo¡ª wait, But Metal can Ruin Fire as well and Control as well as Overwhelm Wood, while Water can Control and Overwhelm Fire." Ale looked up to Wen Cheng and said, "I am very confused right now, Master." It was very hard for him to make sense of what he was learning. "Don''t be. I asked that question especially to make you confused," Wen Cheng said. "The reason you are confused is that you know what Elements the two cultivators are using, but you don''t know anything else." "There are 3 things aside from elements alone that influence a fight between cultivators of the same cultivation base," Wen Cheng said. "The first is the Elemental Strength. This all depends on what type of spiritual roots you have. The lower the spiritual roots, the stronger the Elemental Strength gets." "The second is Qi amount. This is how much Qi the cultivators use during an attack. As you might imagine, the more Qi one uses, the more damage they can deal." "The third is Qi density. The denser your Qi is, the more power you can pack behind it." "Their order of importance would be Element, followed by Elemental Strength, followed by Qi Density, followed by Qi Amount." "So, every elemental attack has these 4 things that will influence the result," Wen Cheng continued explaining. Alex was fully engrossed in the explanation. He felt like he was seeing stuff he knew with a completely different eye. "Now, each Element interacts with other elements in one of the 5 ways. They can Empower, Control, Overwhelm, Weaken or Ruin the elements." "The thing you need to learn is not what element interacts with what elements. You already know that from your alchemy probably. The thing you need to learn is how one of those 5 interactions can occur," Wen Cheng said. Wen Cheng started explaining a very lengthy topic about elemental interaction. Elemental Strength, Qi Amount and Qi Density, when all of these things were combined, whoever had the better one would be the winner. Say a man had wood spiritual root, and another man had metal spiritual root, regardless of whatever else spiritual roots they had, and they both attacked each other with an elemental attack. If the man with the wood spiritual root had a better combination of Elemental strength, Qi density, and Qi amount than the man with the Metal Qi, then the Wood attack would destroy the metal attack thus inducing Ruin. However, if the man with the Metal spiritual roots had a better combination, then the Metal attack would either control the wood attack or overwhelm it. If Control was induced, the controlling element would regulate the other element and stop it from advancing. If Overwhelm was induced, the overwhelming element would rip apart the other element and go past it. If Weaken was induced, the element being weakened would slowly exhaust until it was no more. If Ruin was induced, the winning element would violently destroy the other element, most of the time leading to explosions. Empower was a weird one and normally wasn''t induced. The only way to induce it was when helping an ally attack by adding the element and Qi to the forming attack. One of the 5 was always induced in one way or another, except on a single case. That was when both the opponents had the same element. In that case, it would be a pushing battle, and whoever had the stronger combination of the other three aspects, won. Chapter 316: Proposition The fights went on, but none of it were much interesting. The ones that were interesting somehow didn''t entice the audience since they knew the ones fighting weren''t strong fighters and would likely get stomped next match. Still, it was fun to watch, and people enjoyed it. Everyone watched it, except Alex. He tried to watch it, but he couldn''t do anything but analyze what Wen Cheng had said and quickly learn it. "Oh yeah, what about the 2 elements, Yin and Yang?" Alex asked. "Those? Yin and Yang are always better than the other 5, but due to the fact that they don''t induce any of the 5 effects, they will interact in the same way as when 2 of the same elements interact. Whichever one is stronger overall, wins," Wen Cheng said. Alex fell into another deep thought as his one query was answered. But he couldn''t keep that for long as Yang Ma took the stage, followed by Du Yuhan in a few more minutes and finally Luo Mei. The three of them had easy opponents and couldn''t show off their full strength. Yang Ma simply showed off his aura to make his opponent get scared into forfeiting. Du Yuhan attacked the opponent with his sword and made him faint without cutting him. While Luo Mei fought like a normal weaker girl and found like one before winning in a few minutes. She was still hiding her abilities, everyone was. Once more of the matches ended, Alex stood up and bid farewell to Wen Cheng before leaving. "Oh, you are back. I was about to ask someone to get you," Ma Rong said. "So, how was it? Did he teach anything regarding the fights?" "Uh¡­ Yes? No? I don''t know," Alex said. "Hmm? What do you mean?" Ma Rong said. "He taught me the Elemental theory during a fight between elemental users," Alex said. "Ah, that! That was what I wanted you to learn by yourself through trial and error, but it seems he already taught you that. Well, whatever, it was barely going to help you what ingredients to put in and what not to. Not that it matters since you will have to understand how that affects the usage of a pill," Ma Rong said. Alex nodded. The elemental knowledge was still weighing heavily on his mind. "Let''s leave", Ma Rong said once Wan Li and the rest had come back. Unfortunately, the girl had lost in the 1st round, but everyone still consoled her for trying. They also congratulated Wan Li and the other guy for winning their matches. "Alright, let''s leave," Ma Rong said and took her sect''s people with her. It was a long day, and it was nearly 5 pm. So no one really wanted to do anything but simply go back to the hotel and rest. After reaching the hotel each of them went back to their rooms. Alex went straight to his bed and sat down to think about what he had learned today. He tried thinking of each scenario and started devising what the result would be. He analyzed as much as he could before and after the meeting at 7 pm. Even halfway through the night, he kept on learning about it. Only after then did he think that he truly learned everything. Overnight, he cultivated with Pearl but it was not a lot of time. In the morning, he woke up at 6 am. He quickly logged out and went to get something to eat. Surprisingly, Hannah was up this early as well. "What''s going on sister? Why are you awake so early?" he asked. Hannah stopped drinking her coffee and looked at him. "Oh, I¡­ uh got a message from Sarah and Emily this morning. It''s regarding their moving into our place," Hannah said. "Oh," slight nervousness entered Alex''s heart. "What did they say?" Alex asked. "They¡­ it seems that Emily really can''t pay any bill for the house, so she couldn''t join at all," Hannah said. "Oh," Alex was disappointed this time. "Then I made a proposition," Hannah said. "A proposition? What sort?" he asked. "I told her, that we could split the bill in 3 ways so that us 3 could pay her part as well," Hannah said. Alex was a little taken aback. "Why do that sister? Isn''t that profitable for us?" Alex asked. "Yes, but we gotta take the loss somehow," Hannah said. Alex got a little confused. "Why?" he asked. "For you, silly. You like her right? I''m trying to set you two up. Can''t you understand that?" Hannah said. "And guess what? They said yes. Apparently, their friends were thinking of changing rooms soon too, so when they brought up the idea of moving, their roommates found one too," Hannah said. "¡­ oh." Alex was so dumbfounded that that was all he could say. His heartbeat rose a few dozen and his stomach started feeling funny. Hannah saw his face and asked, "Aren''t you happy?" "Oh, uh¡­ Umm¡­ I am. I was just not expecting that," Alex said. "Whatever. They will move in after a week or so. Don''t worry about it now, focus on your game and earning money. We have no idea how long the game will last for. It''s entirely possible that the game''s money will collapse within the month. So, it''s better to earn as much as we can right now," Hannah said. Alex nodded and sat down to eat. Their conversation had taken a little longer than expected, so he chomped through his breakfast and quickly returned back to his room. Then, he logged back into the game. He opened his eyes as Wan Li was shaking him. "Huh? What''s going on?" he asked as he stopped Wan Li from shaking him even more. "Brother Yu, why were you so asleep? It''s time for us to leave," Wan Li said while pointing at the door. It seemed everyone was ready for the day. So, Alex and Wan Li quickly walked out and joined the group. "All here? Let''s move." Chapter 317: More Clarification Alex was once again sitting with Wen Cheng. It was a little while before the competition started, so everyone was there. "Maser, I had some questions regarding yesterday''s teaching, as well as some things I want you to clear up for me," Alex said. "Sure, ask," Wen Cheng said. "You said that Elemental Strength, Qi amount, and Qi density affect the fight between two elemental users right? But that was only if their cultivation base was the same. What about when they don''t have the same cultivation base? I had some thoughts regarding this, " Alex asked. Wen Cheng smiled and said, "Let''s hear it." "Elemental strength never changes regardless of one''s cultivation base since it''s related to the spiritual roots. The only thing that does is the Qi Density and amount." "So here was my confusion. Qi Density increases as one reaches higher realm, but since Qi amount affects a battle as well, can''t a lower realm cultivator just pump out more Qi and win against a higher realm cultivator''s attack?" he asked. "Hmm¡­ technically, yes. You are correct. However, there is more than just theory in a fight. A higher realm cultivator doesn''t just have a denser Qi, they also have a higher Qi quantity. So, when it comes to pumping out Qi, they won''t ever lose." "On the case, they don''t pump out more Qi to fight than required, there is also the condition of Qi density being much more important to an attack than just Qi amount. So the lower realm cultivator would have to use an abnormal amount of Qi to overpower their opponent''s attack," Wen Cheng said. "Oh right," Alex said as he understood more and more. "So, a person with a 5 elemental root like me doesn''t necessarily have bad spiritual roots, right?" Alex asked. Wen Cheng''s face changed a little as he hesitatingly said, "uhh¡­ I guess? They have an easier time fighting off the different opponents, but you have to remember, the most important aspect of an elemental battle aside from the elements themselves is the Elemental Strength. So those who had lesser elemental roots usually fare better." ''Yes, but we can offset that with Qi density. And my Qi density is one of the highest, isn''t it?'' Alex thought. Because of that, Alex now had an advantage against everyone fighting as long as they were around the safe cultivation realm as him. He just needed to know what element to use on the go. "There is something else you should know," Wen Cheng suddenly spoke. "We talked about all of this yet I didn''t mention one thing. That is, Not every attack is imbued with elements." "An attack is usually either entirely an element, entirely Qi, or mostly in between. It''s considered an elemental attack as long as it has the slightest hint of the element in the Qi." "Your spiritual root is capable of changing Qi into elements, usually at not a very high amount. But when you use techniques, you can go as far as completely change Qi into a different element." "However, at the end of the day, every person is different and every technique is different. You can never guess what attacks they may have or what spiritual roots they may have. So, having a 5 elemental does help one in adapting to every fight." "But no matter how many hand tricks you know, a person with a strong arm can always punch you right in the face." "Just look at your senior sister for example. She has a superior water elemental root. From what we learned, you would assume that she would be weak to Wood, clash with Fire, unresponsive to Metal and be strong against Earth elemental attacks. But at the end of the day, because she has the stronger elemental strength and a strong cultivation base, nobody can match up to her." Wen Cheng said. Alex contemplated for a second. ''So at the end of the day, strength is what matters, huh. Just like Du Yuhan said, As long as I am strong, nothing else matters,'' Alex thought. "Thank you, Master," he thanked him. "Haha, don''t thank me. It''s my job to teach you those things," Wen Cheng said. The competition finally started. The Royal family had already come back today to watch the fights and Fu Zhen called for all the contestants to arrive onto the stage. They were once more made to collect pieces of papers from a box. Everyone picked their and Fu Zhen said, "Number 1 and 2 pair, stay back. Everyone else can leave," The Singles battles were now going to reduce 128 contestants down to 64, so only 2 stages were prepared to have 32 different matches on a single stage. "Oh, it''s little Ma''s turn first. His opponent isn''t that strong, so it should be fine," Wen Cheng said. Alex looked down to see the red-haired Yang Ma get ready to fight with a big smile. His opponent had around 9th Meridian Tempering realm from what he had revealed in the damage test. Alex could suddenly see the opponent shiver slightly and his grip on his quarterstaff loosen a bit. ''Is he using his cultivation base aura again?'' Alex wondered. Yang Ma must have expected his opponent to give up and forfeit the match like his last one, but this one had more heart to him than that. The opponent immediately tightened his grip and got into a stance with his quarterstaff. Yang Ma''s smile faded for a second when he saw this before a wider one replaced it. He was happy to fight. The opponent was a close combat fighter, so he suddenly dashed forward and slammed his staff at Yang Ma. However, just when he was about to reach him, Yang Ma suddenly threw out a fire blast that sent his opponent flying to the barrier on the other side before he plopped down on the floor. Yang Ma had won the match and he advanced to the top 64. A few more fighters came up to the stage and fought. Alex watched them all and saw how their attacks reacted to each other. Just from that information, he was now able to tell who probably had a higher cultivation base or a single spiritual root. The more elements they used, the more accurate Alex''s guess would become. Chapter 318: A Few More Competitions After 10 or so different matches, Wan Li finally came onto the stage. His fight was very simple. He would throw out energy blasts of red colors to the opponent and did so until he won. His opponent had a water elemental root too from what Alex could see, but since he was weaker, Wan Li''s fire element attacks easily won against him. After a few matches, Luo Mei walked up to the stage. Alex wasn''t worried about his senior sister. That was until Wen Cheng said, "Sh*t." Alex didn''t understand why he said that. Her opponent was a man with a violet robe with white linings. "Is he strong," Alex asked. "His sect is. It''s called the Lesser Immortal sect. It''s one of the first 5 sects to reach the 1st grade. Hopefully, this opponent isn''t a problem for her," Wen Cheng said. Her opponent was a tall man that took out a bow. The bow looked expensive and was probably a Common Heaven rank item. Seeing her opponent, Luo Mei brought out her blue, rapier-like sword as well. "Begin." As soon as the words left the referee''s mouth, the man pulled back his bow, and a brown arrow formed on his bow. He released it and the arrow immediately flew towards Luo Mei. Luo Mei wasn''t any slower either. She made a simple slash and blue energy flew forth and hit the arrow. BOOM A violent explosion rang out that shook both of them. Alex''s body jerked a little from the surprise of the explosion. When the dust settled, a brown barrier could be seen in front of the man. "Ah, so we have nothing to worry about, right master? Her water attack destroyed his earth attack," Alex said. "Yes. It seems that she has an upper hand. Thank god, he must be one of the weaker ones to join the singles battle," Wen Cheng said. Alex concurred. Luo Mei''s and the other person''s fight lasted a little longer, but Luo Mei had no real trouble winning. Few more matches took place after that. Du Yuhan''s match ended in a single blow. The other remaining guy from the Hong Wu sect unfortunately matched up with a disciple from the Myriad beast sect. He had to fight against both man and beast in the 1st Mind Tempering realm, which was impossible for him. By the end of the competition, only 64 disciples remained and the audience was starting to realize what sect they had to keep an eye on. Some of these sects were Tiger Sect, Royal Fu Academy, Golden Eagle sect, Honor sect, Thousand Hands sect, Cloud Valley sect, Myriad Beasts sect, True Wisdom sect, and Lesser Immortal sect. Thousand Hands sect was a sect that dealt with puppets, and the Cloud Valley sect, as well as the Myriad Beasts sect, dealt with beast taming. These three sects were considered the most annoying to fight due to having to fight multiple fighters at once. Unfortunately, the Little Dawn sect and Spirit Song sect didn''t make it to the top 64 despite their explosive talismans and pills. Once the Single Battles were done, it was time for the next set of competitions. The first one was a flying competition. Everyone started by hovering 1 meter off of the ground. Once they were told to start, the contestants had to fly as high as they could in 10 seconds. Then they had to stay flying for another 10 seconds. The final position was regarded as the highest height one flew to. The second one was a weight-carrying competition. A person had to hold a weight in midair above a meter in height. The host would slowly add more and more weight until the participants caved under the weight and couldn''t hold it above the meter line. The one that could carry the most weight for more than 10 seconds won. The third competition was the Multiple Attention competition. The competitors had to carry objects, in this case, small balls, one by one and keep them hovering in the air at least half a meter distance apart from each other. This forced them to use individual Qi connections to carry objects instead of collective. The one who could hold the most midair without dropping any or having them get closer than half a meter won. The fourth competition checked the total quantity of one''s Qi. This was naturally skewed towards those in the higher realm. The contestants were made to pour in as much Qi as they could in a metal ball that changed color based on the amount. It started from being a black sphere and got whiter as the Qi was poured in. The one whose ball was the most white won. The fifth competition checked the Qi density of one''s Qi. This too was naturally skewed towards those in the higher realm. The contestants were once more made to pour in Qi, but not a lot this time. The black sphere that took in their Qi and get whiter the denser it was. The person whose ball was the most white at the end won. These 5 competitions took around 3 hours to end. Those that took part in the competitions were given a single spirit stone and allowed to cultivate inside a Qi Gathering formation as well as given a Qi restoration pill to get them back on their feet in case they had another fight competition coming up next. Alex watched all of these competitions and wondered if he could do well in these competitions. The one about Qi amount was a no for him due to his cultivation base. But the other ones he was quite hopeful about. He had a good Qi density, he could fly pretty high, he hadn''t checked how much he could carry, but that should be a lot as well, and he was very confident in winning the multiple attention competition. ''I wonder what cultivation base my Qi density compares to,'' he thought. Once all the five competitions were over. It was time for the final competition of the day. The Singles Battle between the top 64 contestants. Chapter 319: Top 64 starts "Now, for the final event of the day. The battle between the Top 64 strongest cultivators amongst the current generation will now begin," Fu Zhen announced. "This time, the participants won''t get to randomly choose their opponents. Instead, we have made a placement chart for you to see who you will all be fighting against. Here it is." The moment Fu Zhen stopped speaking, a massive chart with the fighting brackets appeared in the sky. There were 4 different groups in the chart. There were 2 groups on each side and each group had 16 participants. "As you can see, we have separated the participants based on a few different secret criteria. The one we can reveal is that we made the brackets so that no two participants of the same sect will ever have to fight prior to the semi-finals." "Please look at the brackets for a while. In the meanwhile, Group A, please gather down below. The matches will start very soon," Fu Zhen said. "I''m leaving junior brother, I will come back later," Luo Mei said and left the seating area. "Good Luck sister," Alex said and looked back at the brackets. Luo Mei was 5th on the list. Thankfully, Wan Li wasn''t in that group. He was in group 3 with Yang Ma. ''At least he won''t lose immediately,'' Alex thought. "Arghh, this is bad," Wen Cheng started to worry about something. "What''s wrong, Master?" Alex asked. "Group 2 is bad. Group 2 is horrible. So many strong participants are in group 2. Yuhan, you think you will be fine?" Wen Cheng asked. Du Yuhan looked up at the brackets once more and looked down. "It doesn''t matter, sect leader. I will try my best," he said. "Sigh, I know you will. Little Ma doesn''t have it any easy either. I guess none of the groups are easy anymore. There are so few participants now that every battle you fight might be your last," Wen Cheng said. The first battle was starting between a cultivator wearing a golden robe and another cultivator wearing a dark blue robe. "Oh, the first one is a disciple from the Honor sect. Against a random sect, they should win easily," Wen Cheng said. "So the golden robe what Honor sect wears, huh. Honor sect¡­ where did I hear the name before? Hmn¡­Ah right, their sect leader came to the bi-annual auction a month ago," Alex said. "Huh? Lu Chun was in the auction? How do you know?" Wen Cheng asked. "Oh, Master told me when she noticed him," Alex said. "Is it weird?" "No, I''m just surprised he was even there in the first place. Since they are a 1st-grade sect, they usually don''t enter a sect without another first-grade sect," Wen Cheng said. "Oh, so then why did he?" Alex asked. "Probably because the city is close and he had free time. Rosewood city is just 3 to 4 hours of flight for him, you know," Wen Cheng said. "Ah, yes," Alex said as he recalled the map of the empire. The golden-robed man started the attack. He suddenly placed his arms on the ground and various spikes made up of earth appeared on the other side of the stage. The other man sent out a golden slash, but the man from the Honor sect brought forth a wall of earth from the ground. It easily blocked the attack. "He¡­is using pure elements to fight, right?" Alex asked. "Yes, he is mostly just using elements without the Qi. Still, it is so strong that the other kid''s metal Qi can''t weaken it at all," Wen Cheng said. Quickly, the man from the Honor sect finished the match by sending a barrage of fist-sized stones towards his opponent. The next match was between a disciple from the Myriad Beast sect and a disciple from another normal sect. The competition holders had made sure that the strong never met at the start. This was an easy battle for the Myriad beast sect disciple. The next one up was Luo Mei. Her opponent was a disciple from a random sect she didn''t know at all. Her match was pretty simple as well. All she did was throw gushes of water at her opponent until they couldn''t handle it anymore and gave up. The next match was between two relatively unknown sects. The fight was between a woman with a sword and a man with a spear. In the end, the woman with the sword won after a long, intense battle. She was heavily wounded at the end of it, but a single pill from the referee helped her heal a lot. The next few matches were relatively fun to watch, but still very simple. The winner for the 5th match was a disciple from the Lesser Immortal sect. The winner for the 6th match was the True Wisdom sect. The winner for the 7th match was the Golden Eagle sect. And finally, the winner for the 8th match was a disciple from Royal Fu Academy. This concluded the matches of Group A. The next one was Group B. Once called, Du Yuhan and 15 other people walked to the waiting area. Luo Mei returned back to her seat. "Congratulations, sister. You did great out there," Alex said. "Thank you, but there is a lot more to be done. Master, I''m really worried about that guy from the Royal Fu Academy," Luo Mei said. "Sigh, I know. Thankfully, neither you nor Yuhan will meet your opponents from Royal Fu academy until the final match of your group, which will be the top 8," Wen Cheng said. "Yes. Hopefully, the others aren''t surprisingly strong and have more up their sleeves. I really don''t want to reveal everything I have until the final match," Luo Mei said. "I wish the same for all three of you," Wen Cheng said. Finally, Fu Zhen called for the first pair of Group B. Du Yuhan walked out from the second area, along with his opponent from a random sect. It was his turn to fight next. Chapter 320: Intent Du Yuhan walked onto the stage, along with his opponent from a random sect. Du Yuhan still held a sheathed blade in his left hand as he walked to his spot at the other side of the stage. "Begin," the referee shouted. Du Yuhan didn''t do anything but stayed there. His opponent on the other hand started using his techniques to send out attacks. The first one was a spiraling ball of metal energy. The opponent shot it out towards Du Yuhan. However, due to the small size of the energy, he easily dodged it. Seeing that small attacks didn''t work, his opponent sent out a ball of fire instead that was too big to dodge. In response, Du Yuhan swiped his hand in front of him creating an illusory barrier of multicolored lights. Once the ball of fire landed on the barrier, it suddenly got incredibly smaller which didn''t pose any threat to Du Yuhan at all. "What?" Alex was surprised up in the seating area. "That''s¡­ that''s the Heaven''s Five Barrier technique. How does he know that too?" "Does that mean that he¡­" Alex looked at Wen Cheng with a questioning look. "Yes, just like you, Yuhan is also a person with 5 Elemental Spiritual roots," Wen Cheng said. "So, just like you, he too has learned the Heaven''s Five Barrier technique." Heaven''s Five Barrier technique was a technique that allowed users to create a 5 colored barrier that blocked all attacks, reducing their elements by a certain amount depending on the cultivator''s cultivation base. This was the 2nd defensive technique that Alex had learned in the Tiger sect. "He has 5 Elemental Spiritual roots and yet he is the 2nd ranking disciple of the sect. That is quite a great feat," Alex said. "No, his spiritual root has nothing to do with his success," Wen Cheng suddenly spoke. "Once he learned that his Spiritual roots weren''t very helpful, he gave up on learning different techniques and started learning the sword. Every achievement he has had until now is due to that sword. His spiritual roots have nothing to do with them." "Oh, does that mean¡­ he doesn''t use any techniques?" Alex asked. "He uses a few here and there, but his techniques aren''t very strong due to his spiritual roots, so he only uses them when the technique compliments him. Otherwise, he sticks to simply swordsmanship," Wen Cheng said. Du Yuhan finally unsheathed his sword and his entire aura changed. He went from a dull person that looked uninterested in the fight to a person that would kill at the slightest movement. His opponent felt fear like never before. Du Yuhan took a deep breath and suddenly swung forward. A white slash escaped his sword and flew towards his opponent. His opponent brought out a metal barrier but before the sword attack could even reach the barrier, another sword attack landed on it from the side destroying it completely. The opponent looked at the side and saw that the referee had taken out his sword to attack. The referee looked at Du Yuhan and said "You win." Du Yuhan bowed and little and sheathed his sword before walking away. "Wh¡ª What? But the attack never reached me. I could''ve blocked that attack," the opponent told the referee. The referee instead just shook his head. "If this were a real battle and I didn''t stop him, You would die right now." The opponent shook a little when he heard that. "Tsk. He''s still so strong," Luo Mei said from the seating area. "That white slash¡­ is that not an elemental attack?" Alex asked. "No. That''s just pure Qi he released from his sword," Wen Cheng said. "However, it also had something else mixed into it that made it so strong." "A sword intent," Luo Mei said from the side. "What is a sword intent?" Alex asked. He was never taught anything about them or read anything that mentioned it. "It''s¡­ very high attainment of the sword. After practicing the sword for years, or being attuned to it, you end up slowly becoming one with it. The sword just becomes another part of your body and it follows your intent. In return, your body also becomes just another part of a sword, deadly and sharp." "Due to practicing with the sword for so long and not training the other techniques as much, Yuhan has managed to do that same thing," Wen Cheng said. "Hmm¡­ what about spears? Or bows? Or any other weapons. Do they have intents too?" Alex asked. "Of course. Every weapon has an intent. However, since Sword, Sabers, and Spears are the most used weapons, you will usually only find weapon intents of these 3," Wen Cheng said. "I wonder if there are other intent users in this competition," Alex asked. "There are. There definitely are. However, they are keeping this card close to their chest until the last moment to surprise their opponent. Yuhan just revealed his only card to everyone. I hope he knows what he is doing," Wen Cheng said. The next match started and ended just as quickly. The opponent of the man in a light blue robe with cloud robes immediately gave up when he saw the man bring out a Tiger beast companion. The 11th match was won by a disciple of the Golden Eagle sect. The 12th match was won by a 3 humanoid puppet user from the Thousand Hands sect. The 13th match was won by a disciple of the Honor sect. The 14 match was between two random sects. The fight was quite intense, but in the end, one of them managed to beat the other without being too injured. The 15th match was between a random sect and a disciple from the Lesser Immortal sect. The disciple of the Lesser Immortal sect had an easy victory. Finally, the final battle was between a disciple of the Royal Fu Academy and a random disciple of the other sect. The Royal Fu Academy''s disciple didn''t even have a hard time winning against the other one. And as such, Group B''s single battles were over as well Chapter 321: Final Day Yang Ma stood up and walked away as Du Yuhan walked back in. "Good job, Yuhan, but did you really need to show your hand in the battle just now? You could''ve done that later on," Wen Cheng said. "I''m sorry, sect leader. I did what I thought was the fastest method to win," Du Yuhan said. "Sigh, alright. You did well nonetheless," Wen Cheng said and looked back at the stage. The 17th match started between a disciple from a lesser-known sect against a disciple from the True Wisdom sect. The disciple from the True Wisdom sect had an easy time winning with his Wood elemental attacks. The 18th match was Yang Ma''s. He too easily won against his opponents by throwing out a barrage of his fire attacks. Wan Li got lucky with his opponent in the 19th match and easily won against him after a few attacks. The 20th match was won by a disciple of a sect knows as Violet Garden. The 21st match was won by a disciple of the Honor sect. The 22nd match was won by a beast tamer from the Cloud Valley sect. The 23rd match was won by a spear user from a lesser-known sect. Finally, the 24th match was won by a disciple from the Royal Fu Academy. Thus the Group C''s matches ended. The group D''s matches ended in almost the same amount of time. From 25th through 32nd matches, the matches were won by a disciple from Thousand Hands sect, True Wisdom Sect, Hunting Masters sect, Golden Eagle sect, Cloud Valey sect, Myriad beasts sect, Lesser Immortal sect, and Royal Fu sect. "All right junior brother, take care. I will see you tomorrow," Luo Mei said as she and the rest of the Tiger sect left the coliseum. Alex walked up to the Hong Wu sect and congratulated Wan Li. Everyone was very surprised with Wan Li making it into the top 32. "Seriously Wanwan, tell me how you became so strong? I want to do so too," Fan Ruogang shouted. "Fanfan, not the time. Let''s leave," Ma Rong said and everyone left for the hotel. Once again, it was very late, so when they all reached back to their hotel, they immediately went to their room to rest. Ma Rong called them for a meeting, and the only thing she did was congratulate Wan Li for making this far. They didn''t have many expectations for him, but he managed to reach the top 32. "Do your best for tomorrow as well, that is all we ask. You don''t even have to win. You''ve already made us proud by reaching where you are right now," Ma Rong said. "I will win, sect leader," Wan Li said with determination. After coming to the competition, his timid nature was slowly being stripped away and a confident cultivator was being born. "Yu Ming, your competition is the final one tomorrow. I don''t know if they will set up the singles battle before yours or not but be prepared regardless. It''s a single competition, but it may take a long time to complete," Ma Rong said. "Yes, Master," Alex replied. Once everything was said, Ma Rong dismissed them all and they went back to their room. Alex and Wan Li returned to their room and went to their bed. "You should rest for tomorrow''s battle, brother Wan. You don''t need to read for today," Alex said. "It''s alright, I''m used to it. You should rest too, brother Yu. You have a match coming up tomorrow as well," Wan Li said. "Very well then, Good Night brother Wan," Alex said and went to his bed before logging out. He went to freshen up himself and then went to the kitchen to eat something light. Once he was done with that he went back to the game and cultivated overnight with Pearl. Early in the morning he woke up once again and logged out once more to eat some food. "Damn, I''m not even hungry. And yet I have to eat?" Alex didn''t know what to do. He didn''t exercise, his diet was in shambles and now he was eating even when he wasn''t hungry. ''I might just gain a dozen or so kilograms at this rate,'' he thought. Once he was done eating, he returned back to his room. Just as he was about to enter the capsule, he stopped. ''Should I use the helmet today? That might be good for my body," he thought. ''No, what am I thinking? I have a competition today. I can do it later if needed.'' He quickly opened the lid of the capsule and entered. He opened his eyes in the game and saw that it was nearly time to leave. He still wondered if he should use the helmet after his competition was done. He waited for the knock on the door and walked outside with Wan Li once he heard it. "Let''s leave," Ma Rong said and walked down the stairs. Along the way, Alex realized something that he had been ignoring all this time. ''Oh no. My classes start tomorrow,'' he thought. "Master, will the competition end today?" Alex suddenly asked. "Hmm¡­ most likely. There are about 64 single battles and your maze run remaining until the end. Once that is done, the competition will be over," Ma Rong said. "Will we return back to the sect immediately or¡­?" Alex asked. "We will stay for a few days. At least until the rewards are passed along," Ma Rong said. "Oh, right, rewards. I forgot there was one too. How do they choose it? I don''t suppose everyone who won in a competition gets one," Alex said. "No, not really. The winners of the Single battles will get a specific reward, but everyone else won''t get any. Instead, the sects will be what get the reward." "Depending on the ranking, we can get anything we want from the Royal Treasure vault that we will be allowed to enter," Ma Rong said. "Oh, I see. I will look forward to it then," Alex said. Soon, the lot was in the coliseum and everyone went to sit in the seating area. Chapter 322: Top 32 - Begin "Do you want to go to the Tiger sect today as well?" Ma Rong asked. "Oh, can I, Master? I really learn a lot there," Alex said. "Okay, sure. Go, but come back when it''s time for your match," Ma Rong said. "Thank you, Master. Brother Wan, good luck on your battle," Alex said and left. Fu Zhen had let them know that the next match was going to be the Top 32''s battle, So Alex had some time to spare before his Maze run. "Good Morning Master, Sister," Alex greeted Wen Cheng and Luo Mei when he got to the Tiger sect''s seating area. "Oh, you are finally here, junior brother. I thought you wouldn''t come since you had a competition today," Luo Mei said. "Oh right, you are taking part in the same match as little Ma aren''t you? The Maze run," Wen Cheng asked. "Oh, brother Ma is taking part in Maze run too?" Alex asked as he looked towards the red-haired Yang Ma. "That''s a funny coincidence. Don''t worry, bother Yu Ming. I will help you in the competition," Yang Ma said. Luo Mei''s eyes got serious for a second as she stared towards Yang Ma. Yang Ma in return got a little timid and slouched back. "Good Morning ladies and gentlemen, on this fine day that might end up becoming the final day of the competition. I, your host Fu Zhen, am back to tell you about today''s competition." "We will first have the Single Battles between the Top 32 followed by a Maze escaping competition and finally ending with the remaining Single battles." "Here are the remaining fighters in the Top 32. To improve your experience of the fight, we have now decided to give you something else aside from the name and sect alone," Fu Zhen spoke. Suddenly, a massive screen with the Top 32 names in the brackets appeared on the screen. It was all the same as yesterday since they were all separated into four groups. However, as Fu Zhen said, there was something else there this time. "I guess that is to be expected. They did the same thing last year too," Wen Cheng said. "In fact, I was surprised they didn''t do it last time," Luo Mei said. Alex looked at the screen with the 32 different names. Under each name was the name of the sect they belonged to, as well as their cultivation base. ''Luo Mei, Tiger sect, 6th Mind Tempering realm,'' Alex read the words written for his senior sister. Du Yuhan was in the 3rd realm and Yang Ma was in the 2nd realm. In fact, everyone was in the Mind tempering realm. From what Alex could see, the highest one was the 7th Mind Tempering realm. It belonged to a disciple called Chu Xiang of the Royal Fu academy. "Thankfully the strongest one is in the Group D. Our disciples would have been in trouble otherwise," One of the elder said from the side. "Yes. Luo Mei, your opponent should be an easy one. Take care of them quickly and return," Wen Cheng said. Alex looked back at the brackets and saw that Luo Mei''s opponent was a disciple of a sect called the Blue Rose sect. The disciple''s cultivation base was only at the 1st realm of Mind Tempering. This would be an easy victory for Luo Mei. And so the battles started. The first match was between the Earth element using disciple of the Honor sect who was in 2nd Realm of Mind Tempering, and the disciple from the Myriad sect who herself was in the 2nd realm of Mind Tempering not to mention her beasts who were also in the same realm. A lizard-like tattoo on her forehead glowed and a crocodile came out of it. The 2v1 battle went on for a while with the Honor Sect disciple attacking with as much earth element as he could, but he was never able to harm the crocodile, let alone pierce its skin. As such, the Myriad Beast disciple won easily. Luo Mei''s match wasn''t even a match. Her opponent, the sword-wielding girl didn''t have any chance against her and quickly lost. Between the 3rd Mind Tempering realm disciple of the Lesser Immortal sect and the third Mind Tempering realm disciple of the True Wisdom sect, the battle was the most fun yet. They were both elemental users and neither could get the upper hand. In the end, the disciple of the Lesser Immortal sect had to use what looked t be his strongest skill and won the match. The next match was between the Golden Eagle sect and Royal Fu Academy. The disciple of the Golden Eagle sect was at a respectable 3rd Mind Tempering realm, but the disciple of the Royal Fu Academy was at the 5th realm of Mind Tempering realm. The disciple from the Royal Fu Academy didn''t even have to use much of his strength before winning against his opponent. With that, the fights of Group A were complete. Without any delay, the fights of Group B were started. "Oh god, this is going to be a problem," Wen Cheng said as he looked at the bracket hovering mid-air. It brightly glowed the 4 people who had won previously and showed that they moved on to the Top 16. "Cloud Valley sect¡­ that''s the beast taming sect, right? The one Elder Xian was from," Alex asked. "Yes. Poor Yuhan is going to have a hard time. All of his opponents are in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm, not to mention the 4th Mind Tempering realm the disciple from the Royal Fu Academy. I wouldn''t be surprised if he lost now," Wen Cheng said. Alex looked at the match-up and saw Du Yuhan walk onto the stage along with the light blue robe wearing Cloud Valley disciple. Alex remembered what Du Yuhan said and remembered his determination at the time. He remembered his will to be the strongest. Such a man losing so early on¡ª Alex just couldn''t see that happening at all. Chapter 323: Empower Du Yuhan walked onto the stage. His opponent was a disciple from the Cloud Valley sect with a cultivation base of the 3rd Mind tempering realm. The moment they got onto the stage, the disciple from the Cloud Valley sect brought out a Tiger beast. Just like everyone from that sect, he was a beast tamer as well. He also lookout a half a meter-long spider as well. "Begin" Du Yuhan stayed where he was with his sheathed sword, while his opponent was also a little nervous given that he knew about the sword intent from the last match. For a few seconds, Du Yuhan did nothing, and neither did his opponent. However, seeing that they couldn''t keep it up any longer, the beast tamer decided to move. "Go," he immediately sent out the tiger. The tiger ran with incredible speed and arrived right in front of Du Yuhan. Instead of using his sword, Du Yuhan simply dodged while keeping an eye on his opponent. The tiger turned around to attack Du Yuhan, however, he had already gotten his chance. Du Yuhan suddenly dashed forward towards his opponent. When the opponent saw that, he immediately had the spider make spider webs to block Yuhan, but that didn''t work. Just before he reached the webs, he stopped himself and transferred all of his mommentum into one single attack. SLASH Death flashed from beyond the webs. The beast tamer was scared for his life when he saw a white slash cut through the nets and fly directly towards him. Suddenly, a barrier appeared in front of him, and the referee was right by his side. The Referee looked at Du Yuhan and said, "You Win." Du Yuhan bowed a little towards the referee and left. The audience was a little surprised. Up until now, he had won in a single strike every single match. Even the audience was now catching onto the fact that he had Sword intent in his attacks. "See? That''s how you deal with the beast tamers. Go for the cultivator himself. They are usually the weakest link," Wen Cheng said. Alex now nodded in approval after seeing what he did. The next match was between a girl from the Golden Eagle sect and a man from the Thousand Hands sect. The Thousand hand sect disciple had 3 puppets all at the 3rd Mind Tempering realm fighting for him, so he had an easy time winning against the Golden Eagle sect disciple who couldn''t use many attacks. The next match was between a disciple from the Honor sect disciple, who was fighting against the disciple of a sect called the Purple Flag sect. Despite having the same cultivation base of the 3rd Mind Tempering realm, the disciple from the Honor sect had a much better understanding of fighting and abilities, so after an intense fight, he won without much injury. The final match of Group B was between a disciple from the Lesser Immortal sect against a sword user from Royal Fu Academy. The sword user was a realm higher in cultivation base. So when the two of them fought, the disciple from the Royal Fu academy had a much easier time winning. Next up was group C. Yang Ma walked onto the stage with his opponent from the True Wisdom sect who had a cultivation base of the 2nd Mind Tempering realm, the same as Yang Ma''s. "Begin" Yang Ma immediately created a fireball and sent it towards his opponent. His opponent created a fireball too and sent it flying at the incoming fireball. The class of the two fireballs created a little bit of an explosion. Yang Ma was surprised. Not only Yang Ma, Alex, and Luo Mei were surprised on the seating area as well. "He¡­ he had a wood root last time right?" Alex asked just to make sure. "Yes, he did," Luo Mei replied. "Then how is his fireball stronger than brother Ma''s? If I remember correctly, Brother Ma''s spiritual root is the Superior Fire Spiritual roots, right?" Alex asked. "Ohoho, It seems you will learn something interesting now," Wen Cheng said. "Yes, you are correct. He does seem to have two spiritual roots. In fact, they are the same as mine. However, his attacks are still as strong as that of a single elemental root user." Wen Cheng looked towards Alex and asked, "Can you tell me why?" Alex fell into thought, "Let''s see, there are 4 aspects to an Elemental attack. The Element, the Elemental strength, Qi Density and Qi Amount." "The element is fire, so same. Yang Ma wins in the Elemental strength. Qi destiny¡­ the opponent doesn''t seem to have a very dense Qi. As for Qi amount¡­ there wasn''t enough time for him." "So, that means¡­ something else is going on. The elements¡­ fire and wood. Fire¡­.. And " Alex''s eyes slowly widened up. "Empowering. That guy is using Wood Qi to empower his fire elemental attack," Alex said as if he discovered something amazing. "Haha, yes. Took you longer than I imagined. Maybe I was keeping unreal expectations. Anyway, the man is using Wood Qi directly into the fire elemental attacks he is using to empower his attacks. So, despite having an inferior spiritual root, he is standing his ground," Wen Cheng complimented. The fight on the group kept ongoing. Both of them sent attacks after attacks at each other. Yang Ma was having a not-so-fun time anymore. Suddenly, he threw a massive attack and took out a spear to fight. The other guy tried to dodge a bunch, but Yang Ma seemed to be trained in Spear art as well. He suddenly started swinging it around while also sending out normal elemental attacks. The opponent was getting attacked by both weapons and strong elemental attacks. He got easily overwhelmed. In the end, One of Yang Ma''s attacks wasn''t seen by the opponent and a referee had to stop the fight and declare Yang Ma the winner. Yang Ma returned back to the waiting area tiredly, and from inside walked out a determined Wan Li. Chapter 324: Top 32 - End Wan Li''s opponent was a man from the Violet Garden sect, a relatively lesser-known sect. Wan Li was in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm, while his opponent was in the 2nd Mind Tempering realm. Wan Li was sure he would win. He took out his sword and started attacking red energy slashes the moment the match began. His opponent also tried attacking as much as he could, but Wan Li was overwhelming him. A barrier appeared around his opponent in a sphere as he blocked one of Wan Li''s attacks. The man placed his palms on the ground and suddenly spikes appeared from inside of it. Wan Li placed his right foot in front of him and caused a fissure ahead that stopped the man''s spikes from moving forward. He then proceeded to start throwing more and more red slashes towards his opponent. Finally, the opponent caved into the pressure and gave up. Wan Li won the match. The next battle was between a girl in the 2nd Mind Tempering realm and a man in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm. Everyone surprisingly expected the girl to win in this case since she was from the Cloud Valley sect and had monsters with her that were stronger than herself. However, the man from the Honor sect surprised everyone by using attacks imbued with Spear''s intent. Another one of the Weapon intent users was forced to show himself. His attacks were much stronger than the attacks of a normal spear user and thus the girl''s beasts couldn''t fight him at all. In the end, the referee had to step in and block some of the flying spear attacks to save the girl. The last match was between Group C was between a disciple from a lower known sect with 2nd Mind Tempering realm and a disciple of the Royal Fu Academy with 6th Mind Tempering realm cultivation base. It was obvious who would win. Thus, the battles of Group C came to an end as well. For the first match of Group D, a disciple of the Thousand Hand sect fought with a disciple of the True Wisdom sect. The disciple of the True Wisdom sect was forced to show his Sword intent even though it wasn''t properly established. Thus, he wasn''t as powerful as the other ones who had an established Weapon intent and unfortunately lost. The next battle was between a disciple from a not-so-well-known sect called the Hunting Master''s sect and a disciple of the Golden Eagle sect. The man from the Hunting Master''s sect was surprisingly very strong. He was in the 4th Mind Tempering realm and his opponent was a girl in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm. However, knowledge and heritage could not be beaten so easily. The girl from the Golden Eagle sect revealed her Saber Intent and after a fierce back and forth with the man, won the fight. The next battle was a very interesting one. It was between two beast tamers. One was a man in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm from the Cloud Valley sect, and another was in the 2nd Mind Tempering realm from the Myriad Beast sect. However, their cultivation base would have nothing to do with the battle. The man from the Cloud Valley sect brought out two monsters, a brown bear-sized wolf, and an Ox with 3 horns. The man from Myriad beast also brought out two monsters, one was a massive black boar, while the other one was a red-feathered Crow-like bird. Their match was probably the most fun to watch as it was a 3v3. The audience never knew who was going to get the upper hand. In the end, the disciple from Cloud Valley couldn''t handle the aerial attacks and thus succumbed to defeat. Thus, the Myriad Sect disciple moved on to the next round. Finally, the Lesser Immortal sect''s disciple was truly unfortunate. There was no way he was going to win a fight against Chu Xiang, the strongest participant of the Top 32. As such, the Top 32''s fights came to a close as well. Once the fights were done, the competition holders started changing the stage. Suddenly, a large opaque barrier appeared around the stage and Fu Zhen''s voice sounded from inside of it. "Please bear with us while we prepare the stage for the next competition." Alex stood up and said, "I will return later after my match." He then walked to the Hong Wu sect''s seating area and sat next to his master. "Mingming, good luck on your match. Go beat them a-- wait, it''s not a fighting match. It''s a Maze Run so¡­ yes, Beat them all still makes sense. Hehe," Fan Ruogang said from the side. "Sure, Sister Fan, I will do my best," Alex said. "Are you truly prepared?" Ma Rong asked. "Yes Master," Alex spoke with confidence in his voice. "What are you prepared to do to win?" She asked. Alex thought for a moment and said," Anything." "Good, but you can''t just do anything," Ma Rong said as she looked towards the northern end of the coliseum. "Unfortunately, there will be some things you will have to hide." Alex knew exactly what she meant. "I know master, I will try my best to win without those techniques," he said. "Good. When you went to the Tiger sect, I told you to hide your abilities because you were too weak back then to show off your skills. To be honest, you are still too weak, but you have come far enough that not everyone will be a problem to you." "So, go ahead and do whatever you want and whatever you can. I am lifting the restrictions. No need to hide anything," Ma Rong said. Alex felt himself get lighter as if something had been lifted from his shoulders. He smiled and said, "Yes, master." "Participants for the Maze Run. Please gather in the waiting room," Fu Zhen''s voice appeared from inside the opaque barrier. "I''m going now," Alex said and left towards the waiting area all alone. Chapter 325: Maze Rules Alex reached the waiting room and stood around looking at his opponents he would have to fight against. Honor Sect, Golden Eagle sect, Royal Fu Academy; All the different big sects as well as the small ones had sent in some people to take part in the competition. Alex was the only one from the Hong Wu sect to come here. ''Maze Run¡­ it can''t just be a simple maze clearing game right? Even mortals can do that. The most cultivators would be able to speed up the game. There has to be some other twists to the game,'' Alex thought. "Oh, Brother Yu, you are here too," A voice came from behind him. Alex turned around to see Yang Ma and 2 other disciples of the Tiger sect. Judging from the orange linings on their yellow robe, they were core disciples too. "I guess we are going to be opponents for now," Alex said. "Don''t be like that, Brother Yu. Just ask us for help if you need it; we will give it to you," Yang Ma said. "Sure," Alex said. "Everyone, please gather in front of the stage," Fu Zhen''s voice sounded from outside. One by one, everyone started leaving the waiting room. Alex passed the familiar barrier that checked his participation in the entrance. Once out of it, he stopped where everyone had stopped outside of the stage''s opaque barrier. He thought he would have to wait around a lot, but as soon as the participants gathered, a little space in the barrier opened and Fu Zhen walked out of there. "Green?" Alex thought when he saw a glimpse of the color behind Fu Zhen. "Welcome everyone to the Maze run. As this is the final non battle competition, we will try to make it the most fun." "Before I show you or the audience the maze, I will now relay some of the rules of the competition," Fu Zhen said. A group of people walked from either side of Fu Zhen and made their way towards the participants. "Please lock away all of your storage bags inside the boxes. You will not be allowed anything other than your clothes inside the stage," Fu Zhen said. Alex was used to it so he brought out his storage bags and locked them away without hesitation. Within half a minutes, everyone was done locking away their bags. "The staff will now place 3 talismans on your back. Please do not take them off," Fu Zhen siad. PAT PAT PAT PAT Sounds appeared from all over the area as the staff members started slapping on talismans behind their back. Alex also felt 3 light slaps on his back. He reached behind to feel his back and found 3 talismans exposed for the world to see. Then the staff members handed them another talisman. While the ones on the back were yellowish brown in color, the one they were handed were red talismans. Everyone was confused. "The purpose of the competition is to enter the maze and come out of the other side the fastest you can. You are not allowed to fight inside the maze or use your cultivation and abilities to make it hard for others to move. " "If you attack another competitor, one of your talismans on the back will burn away. If you lose all 3 talismans, you will be disqualified." Everyone got a little anxious. If a competitor was disqualified based on the talismans lost, then¡­ one could simply steal away other''s talismans. "You are not allowed to touch the talismans of other people. Each talisman you touch will result in the same number of talismans burning on your back." A lot of people sighed in relief when they heard this. "However, that is where the red talisman comes in. Any talisman that you touch with the red talisman will fall from the other person''s back. At that moment, you can take it. After that, the red talisman will not work for a minute," Fu Zhen said. "Each talisman you have at the end of the match will result in a 10 second reduction in the final time. There are other random talismans inside the maze that will have up to 1 minutes result time reduced." Everyone was agitated. If stealing talismans were just to screw with the other person''s run they wouldn''t worry about it except for a few people that didn''t want others to have fun. However, now that it was revealed that stealing would actually help you, everyone was going to do that. Thus, everyone was your enemy now. " A few more rules. Flying above 1 meter off of the surface is not allowed. If you don''t move for over a minute, you are disqualified." "Touching another person is allowed only if they''ve given you permission." "Also, you can choose one of these Common Mortal grade weapons and armors. Choose wisely," Fu Zhen said. ''Weapon? But we''re not allowed to attack others¡­ So why?'' Alex wondered. Everyone else chose something that they liked; Alex chose a sword. "Alright, now that you are done with this, please come and choose a number from this box. It will help choose the order you will enter in," Fu Zhen said. Everyone walked up and grabbed a paper. Alex looked at his and saw the number 124; there were around 170 people in this competition. "Number 1 through 10, please come forward and stand at the marked locations," Fu Zhen said, gathering the 10 people ahead of the opaque barrier. "Ladies and gentlemen, we will now hold the Maze run. However, before that, please lay your eyes on the magnificent Maze we''ve created," Fu Zhen shouted as he pointed towards the stage. Suddenly, the barrier slowly got undone and what was inside was finally visible. Tall green grass walls were staring directly at Alex and the rest. The walls were nearly 10 meters tall and about half a meter thick. There were 10 paths of entry on the green wall, each for a single participant to enter. Fu Zhen looked at them and shouted, "Go." Chapter 326: Maze Run - Start In the seating area. "What the hell? I¡­ I thought it was going to be a normal Maze run. Dear Lord, look at the size of it," Luo Mei exclaimed. "It certainly is ¡­ unique. I hope little Ma and the rest, as well as Yu Ming, will be fine in this," Wen Cheng said. Even Du Yuhan at the side was a little surprised. Fan Ruogang stood up from her seat. "Sect Leader, what the hell is that? That wasn''t what it looked like last time. It was just a simple maze back then. What is going on?" she asked. "I don''t know, Fanfan. It seemed the boredom of last year''s Maze run forced them to make this one more¡­ interesting," Ma Rong said. "Master, is Yu Ming going to be alright? That looks a little dangerous," Zhou Mei said to her masters. The Third Elder pat her back and said, "I''m sure he will be okay. Look, the staff is already flying above the Maze. They are ready to save the participants when they need it," she said. Ma Rong looked at the maze once more and got a little worried. This was not what she had expected when she sent him there. ******* "Oh, This is interesting," Emperor Zexian said when he saw the Maze finally show itself from the barrier. "It wasn''t like this last time, was it?" he asked. "I don''t think so. I remember being very bored last year during this maze run and couldn''t help but want the battles to begin," the Empress said. "It''s actually all second brother''s idea for them to change it. He remembered how boring it was too," the princess said. "I did¡­ but, not even I could''ve expected them to make this many changes," the second prince said. "Oh look, the first batch of 10 went in. This is going to be a little more interesting for sure," The Empress said with a curious smile. * * * * * "30 seconds later. The next group will leave. Number 11 to 20, please come forward," Fu Zhen called the next group forward. ''30 seconds per 10 people. So me at 124¡­ that''s 6 minutes later. I will start 6 minutes later than the rest. I hope that doesn''t make that much of a difference,'' Alex thought. More and more participants of the Maze run went in, and finally, after over 5 minutes, Alex walked forward when his name was called. Fu Zhen waited for the 30 seconds to pass and said, "Go." Alex immediately walked through the 4th of the 10 openings in the maze that belonged to him. He was now inside narrow walls of tall plants. He took the path straight ahead and walked. At the same time, he started thinking. ''Remember what are the rules. What am I not allowed to do?'' he thought. ''I can''t attack another player. I can''t touch the talisman of another player without this red talisman. I can''t obstruct another player''s path, and finally¡­ I cannot stop moving,'' Alex thought and kept on walking. When he came upon a fork in the road, he had no idea where he was supposed to go. "Screw it," he thought and walked straight ahead. After a minute or so, he came across a dead end. This was not the correct path. "F*ck" He turned around and walked back to the intersection once more. However, this time, there was a woman there contemplating where to move. When she saw Alex walking towards him, she suddenly took out a bow and arrow and aimed at Alex. Alex could tell that the woman was at least in the Meridian tempering realm, thus he was not her match. "You will get disqualified if you attack me. Why don''t you choose a path a go first? I won''t stop you," Alex said. He slowly started circling around the woman. The woman was frightened even more as she couldn''t see Alex''s cultivation base and kept the bow and arrow at him at all times. "You¡ª You just want to get behind me and steal my talisman, don''t you? You think I''m stupid. Why don''t you go first?" she said. "I''m afraid I can''t do that. You will steal my talisman," Alex said. "I guess we are both in the same dilemma then." Alex was desperately trying to come up with things to say. "First of all, please just put the bow down. You know obstructing me from leaving this place will get you disqualified, right?" he asked. "I''m not obstructing you at all. You can leave if you want," the girls said. "Besides, you keep telling me to drop my bow, yet you still hold your sword. You''re quite a hypocrite, aren''t you? Alex slowly looked at the sword on his right hand and sighed. "You are right," he said before throwing away his sword. "Happy?" he asked. The girl finally accepted that he wasn''t after her and decided to lower the bow for now. Just then, Alex walked forward and grabbed his sword once again. The girl immediately pulled her bow back and targeted him as she asked, "What are you doing?" Alex simply looked at her and smiled, "Time''s up." "What?" the woman didn''t understand what he meant when suddenly, she felt her body lift without her volition. She looked up to see that the staff was pulling her out of the maze field. "You are disqualified for not moving for a minute." Alex immediately started walking down the path once more. He didn''t want to be the next one disqualified. He walked on and found another intersection. This time, however, he seemed to have chosen the right path as he didn''t encounter any dead ends. However, he did encounter it next. Free, dead-end, dead-end, free. After walking on for nearly 10 minutes, he finally came across a long stretch of thin walls that seemed to lead¡­ outside. "That can''t be true. It''s too soon," Alex thought. Still, he had to try, so Alex took a step forward. Suddenly, something grabbed his foot. Chapter 327: Stolen Something suddenly grabbed Alex''s leg. "What?" he looked down to see that it was a vine expending from the bottom of the right wall. SLASH He didn''t waste any time and cut it immediately before walking forward. However, in the next step, there were two vines. One that grabbed his left leg and another that grabbed his right arm. Alex pulled out the vine on his arm and cut away the one on his legs. However, after moving one-step move, 3 vines grabbed him. Then 4, then 5. No matter how much he pulled, every next step, there was another vine added to the pile that pulled at him. Thankfully, he had a strong body and a sword, so he cut all the vines as he moved forward. ***** A man with a spear saw that his leg was grabbed by a vine. He stabbed the spear in the vine and cut it away. But then, he took another step, and 2 more vines appeared. The space was narrow and he couldn''t move his spear. He used his left hand to use the spear and cut the vine, and then used it to cut the vine on his right hand. As he walked more, the harder it was to move. At some point, 7 vines appeared. 1 for each of his legs, 2 for each of his arms, and 1 for his spear. He couldn''t move anymore, but he struggled. He used his entire cultivation base and managed to tear away the vines on his left leg before moving forward. STEP 8 more vines suddenly appeared, grabbing the man at every location. The man tried to move, but 14 vines were too much for him. After 1 minute, the staff flew down and cleared the vines before declaring that he was disqualified. ***** "Burn, B*tch, Burn," Yang Ma cried as he burned everything around him. The walls were surprisingly fireproof and didn''t take any damage, however the vines were plenty charred. ***** A girl moved water as a rotating blade on either of her sides which cut away all the vines. ***** Another participant realized that it was stepping that caused the vines to appear, so he stopped stepping and flew the rest of the way. ***** Different people found their own way to complete the pathway full of vines. Alex finally escaped the Vine nightmare. Now he was staring at another nightmare that was probably just as nightmarish. Ahead of his was wetlands that he would have to walk in. There were wires hanging from everywhere that seemed to be tied to some sort of mechanism that he didn''t dare invoke. He stepped forward and put his feet into the wetlands. At first, he didn''t feel anything, but then, his feet sunk very quickly. "Sh*t, Quicksands," Alex realized. "Why the F*ck is there quicksand in a Maze run? Isn''t this supposed to be a normal Maze run," Alex asked. He tried to move his legs out and barely got it out after a lot of force. He stumbled backward and fell on his butt. ''Sh*t. So I can''t walk, and I can''t fly?'' Alex thought as he looked at the hundreds of hanging threads. He absolutely didn''t dare to touch them. ''I''m on a quicksand. Think fast, Alex,'' he said to himself. "The only way to not get dragged into quicksand is to flop down on your back. In that way, your body has enough surface area to not drown." "Can I flop down here?" Alex thought, but the answer was no. "Wait, what if I imitate it instead of actually flopping down." Alex slowly got down on his knees and took a deep breath. Then suddenly, he placed one of his arms on the surface. Surprisingly, it felt like solid ground to him. He placed another arm and it too was very solid. "Yes! Fluctuating Friction Dance works. Increasing my friction does help me from drowning," he thought. PING Suddenly, he heard something. He heard it from his backside. Alex quickly turned around to see a lady catching the talisman that was falling off his body. Somebody had managed to sneak up to him while he was distracted and stole his talisman from his back. The girl immediately started running sideways, but Alex wouldn''t let her. He immediately disappeared from where he stood and appeared right behind the lady and he used his own red talisman to touch one of her talismans. PING The woman had a horrified face when she realized what had happened. Alex caught the falling talisman and jumped into the quicksand. Only this time, he had the proper techniques ready. He crawled on his hands and knees and tried his best to stay lower than the bells. "Stop," the lady cried and followed after him, but as soon as she jumped in and saw her palms disappeared inside the ground. She too realized what it was. "What? Quicksand? Why?" she couldn''t understand. She tried to pull her arm out but that was very hard. As she tried to pull her arm out, more and more of her body was swallowed by the quicksand. "What''s going on? Help!" she cried out, but nobody came to help. Alex looked right at her but decided to do nothing. She was halfway deep into the quicksand when a staff flew down and brought her out of it. "You are disqualified for not moving for more than 1 minute." The girl tried to beg, but the staff heard none of it. Alex turned his head from her to the other ones who were crossing this part of the maze. The people were far away and he couldn''t see what was happening very clearly, but he could see almost all of them flying without any delay. Alex could finally focus on his quicksand crossing right now. Once again, he got onto his arms and knees and followed the way out. This time, he didn''t have any disturbances to account for his distraction, so he easily crossed the entire section of the quicksand by himself. Chapter 328: Am I Pretty? The quicksands were open and thus after Alex came out of the other side, he stood up and finally saw how long the width of the maze actually was. ''That''s almost 500 meters long,'' he thought as he looked from left to right. Just as he was looking at the length, he saw a person accidentally hit one of the strings above the quicksand. TIRRRRING Suddenly, mud from either side of him flew up and fell on top of him, dragging him to the surface. The man got stuck, but he was able to think quickly and started using some technique to pump out water from all around him, very soon the quicksand diluted into nothing but a mud lake around him and he started flying once more. Somewhere else, a disciple created a bridge made up of rocks and walked on top of it. Some other person made a bridge with vines and leaves. Yang Ma burned the quicksand until it was hard enough to walk. People came up with their own methods to cross, but most of them simply chose to fly. It had its risks but was the easiest of all. After each of the participants crossed, the staff came down to reset the ground so that the next one would have to make way using their own idea. Alex looked at the nearly hundreds of openings in the tall bushy walls. These ones were a little thicker than the ones he walked through last time. He couldn''t waste time here so he randomly chose one and walked in. Thankfully, there were no more vines blocking his path here. He kept on walking through the maze, reaching dead ends multiple times. He had his senses on max right now and was even going as far as to release his spiritual sense in a very small area. Just as he was walking, he heard a sound. PING Someone just had their talisman stolen. Alex walked a little forward and saw a girl in an orange robe picking a talisman that fell off of the back of a person in red robes. Alex walked a little forward to see that the person in red robes was on the ground. ''Did she force him there? How is she not disqualified yet?'' he wondered. He couldn''t make heads or tails of the situation. "Move back," the lady said and the man in the red robe stood up a little before moving to the right. They seemed to be in cahoots or something and didn''t want to get disqualified. Alex didn''t know if the two of them would gang up on him to steal his talisman or what, so he moved slowly and cautiously. He also kept an eye on his back at all times. He did not want a repeat of the previous times. Ping The girl touched the man''s talisman once more, making it fall off. Now the man only had a single one remaining. Alex didn''t know what was happening, but he wasn''t going to waste time here. She has just used her Red talisman and it was going to be in cooldown for a minute. He immediately disappeared when he got close to 10 meters and touched the girl''s talisman Ping Alex immediately caught it and moved back. The girl was surprised and looked back as well. She finally realized that her talisman had been stolen as well. "How did you get so close without me noticing?" She asked with curiosity in her eyes. But after seeing Alex not answer at all, her curiosity died. "Move back," she said and moved a little towards Alex. Alex in turn moved a little back as well. The man in the red robe scooted a little back as well. However, even with Alex taking his friend''s talisman, he didn''t turn around. "You look rather young. Why doesn''t the handsome little brother just hand senior sister her talisman," the girl said. "No way," Alex said with a dry chuckle. The girl was surprised and a little taken aback. She placed a finger on her cheek and tilted her head a little before asking, "Aren''t I really pretty, little brother?" ''The hell?'' Alex thought. "So what if you are?" Alex asked. "So why won''t little brother hand me my talisman?" she asked. "I already said No," Alex said. The girl tilted her head once more. This time her face had a very confused look. "What''s going on? You are not very strong, so why won''t it work?" she asked. "The hell are you talking about la--" "GIVE ME BACK MY TALISMAN," The girl said with a furious but calculated voice. Alex felt his mind grow a little numb. It felt like he was severely sleep-deprived and wanted to sleep. However, a second later he lost all of that feeling and got awake. He moved a little back and checked his behind as well. "Mental attacks." He looked at the red-robed man that was standing on the ground. "No wonder he isn''t moving. You charmed him, didn''t you?" he asked. "What''s going on? How are you so weak and yet have such a strong mind. You not only resisted my charm but also my directed attack. Suddenly, a staff dropped from the sky and said, "You are disqualified by obstructing another participant''s progress." The staff took her and flew out. "What? So, charm is accepted, but mental attacks are considered obstruction huh? Thank god I didn''t use heaven''s impact on her," Alex thought. He looked at the red-robed man and saw that he was starting to get his wits back now that the woman was gone. Alex looked down onto his Red talisman. The 1-minute cooldown was up. "Sorry dude, everyone looks out for themselves," he said and walked up to his back before touching his last talisman with the paper. Ping A staff dropped down from the sky and spoke to the guy just as he recovered his wits. "You have been disqualified for losing all of your talismans, " The guy started crying about not knowing what was happening, but nothing could be done. Alex just walked forward without looking back. Chapter 329: Snow Field Alex encountered a few people but usually went in a different direction, so he didn''t interact with them. Sometimes, a few of them followed him to steal his talisman, but he simply teleported behind and stole theirs instead before running away. As he was walking forward, he started noticing slight whiteness on the leaves of the plant making the wall. He went close to it and checked, "Frost?" he said in surprise. The further he walked, the more snow there was. During intersections, there was usually a patch that had more frosts than the other one. Alex chose that and never encountered any dead ends. Finally, he came across a small, but frozen land. "So much ice," he said in surprise. Snow was a very rare occurrence for him even in his home that was towards the north. There were a few mountains where it snowed, but they were far from his house. "What do I do now?" he thought. The moment he moved and stepped into the frozen land, a gust of wind appeared and his face directly. He instinctively closed his eyes and very soon his eyes were shut from the snow. He forcefully opened his eyes and removed the frost that had got it to shut. He needed to see to walk upfront, but the gust with the snow wasn''t helping it. He took a deep breath and moved his Qi until it enveloped his whole body and moved forward. The gust made ice stick to him, but they simply melted when they touched his hot Yang Qi. Now, all that remained was for him to have a way to see where he was actually going on. ''Should I do it?" Alex thought. He was already doing it on small scale, but he didn''t want to tip any of the staff off just in case. ''Argh, f*ck it,'' Alex thought and sent out his Spiritual Sense in a 20 meters area horizontally. He acted like he was using his eyes to see, but really he just used his Spiritual sense. ''There''s someone there,'' Alex thought and walked towards the person. The man was trying to walk forward in the snow with near 0 visibility. With their Qi, no one had to worry about the snow, but visibility was still a problem. PING Suddenly, he heard something and looked back. However, he couldn''t see anything. He didn''t know what had happened, so he kept moving forward. After a while, another PING sounded. "What''s going on?" the man asked while turning back, but still couldn''t see anything. In the end, he turned around and kept on walking. PING He heard it once more and wanted to turn around but he was suddenly pulled up and got out of the snowfield. The staff who pulled him up looked at him and said, " You have been disqualified for losing all of your talismans." PING PING PING Alex walked around searching for people to steal their talismans off of. At some point, he stopped. "What the hell am I doing?" these talismans barely take 10 seconds off and I am wasting a minute for this. He was lost in the allure of the talismans and forgot the main purpose of the competition. He immediately started walking in the correct direction, when he sensed something. A talisman was floating through the air a few meters away from him on the right. He walked in that direction and caught the talisman. ''Is this?'' he thought and read it. -50 seconds subtracted from the result- "Oh, that''s nice," Alex thought and kept it before walking towards the front. He finally crossed it and came across another plant maze. ''Is there a pattern? Maze, followed by a difficult place to trek?'' Alex thought. He walked through it once more. He still had no idea how to navigate it properly and came coming across dead ends. ''There must be something. Otherwise, it will all just be a game of luck for the most part,'' Alex thought. Suddenly, he came across a disciple wearing a light blue robe with a cloud pattern on it. He wasn''t moving at all and was looking at Alex with a slight smile. ''What is he up to?'' Alex thought. Just then, he saw something behind him. He suddenly turned around and slashed his sword behind him. CLANG The sword hit the talons of an eagle beast. On its talon was a red talisman stuck to it. ''Smart,'' Alex thought. He then immediately rolled away from the bird and disappeared. "Huh? Where did he¡ª " the man spoke a single word when heard a sound. PING He turned around just in time to see Alex catch his talisman and run away. "Stop," he shouted, but Alex wasn''t going to listen to him. By the time he got to an intersection, Alex had disappeared in one of the two, and he couldn''t find Alex at all. The Flickering Shadows technique was truly amazing and useful in this competition. He could easily steal the talismans of an unguarded person. Alex ran into a few dead ends again and finally found his way into another location. He looked at the part in front of him and said, "Swimming pool?" A large patch of the land in front of him was water. It was still 500 meters long and the distance was also about 100 meters wide. He could see the various disciple taking part in the competition. They were all flying over the water as expected. That was after all the correct choice. "But that seems wrong," Alex thought. It couldn''t be that the competition holders made such a massive piece of the lake just to have the participants fly over it. A few other disciples also seem to have the same idea and they jumped inside the lake. Alex too jumped in without hesitation. During the quicksand part, he had used Fluctuating Friction dance to increase friction and stay above the wetlands, but now, he was using it in the opposite way to reduce friction and easily maneuver in the water. Chapter 330: Sleep The Qi was being used up much faster than normal inside the water, but he was okay with that. As long as he knew what was inside the water, he would be fine. He ran around at full speed with his spiritual sense looking at everything. After a few seconds, he saw something ahead of him. He walked forward hoping it was a talisman, but instead it turned out to be a key. It looked very new and looked slightly blue underwater. He quickly kept it with him and search around a bit more. He found 2 extra talismans. One gave him a 40-second reduction, and another gave him a 24-second reduction. Finally, he brought back friction and swam up before flying out of the lake. He took a deep breath and immediately flew to the other side without any delay. He then entered another maze. He was walking forward when he suddenly met Yang Ma returning back from another pathway of the intersection. "Oh Brother Yu, I can''t believe we meet here," Yang Ma said. "Hello, brother Ma. Did you come from a dead end?" Alex asked. "Oh yeah, that direction is a no-go. Let''s go here," Yang Ma said. Alex nodded and started walking. As he passed by, Yang Me made a smirk that seemed to match his face. He slowly walked forward and got directly behind Alex. He took out his red talisman and quietly brought it next to Alex''s talisman. However, Alex disappeared. In the next second, Yang Ma heard a PING from behind him and saw Alex catch his falling talisman. "You really aren''t a very good person, are you? Sister was right about stopping me from interacting with you," Alex said. Yang Ma smiled and said, "there is nothing good or bad. There is no fairness in this game. I do what I can to win." "Well, I can''t argue with that. Keep doing what you are doing then. See you later," Alex said and immediately disappeared. Yang Ma looked around and couldn''t find him. Alex was now 10 meters away from his original place on a completely different part of the maze. He had appeared right next to a girl who was frightened out of her wits and immediately got into defense position. Alex saw that and thought nothing. Without caring about the girl, he immediately ran towards an intersection and chose a path. He made his way through many intersections, stealing a few talismans along the way, and finally made it out of the maze. "What?" he thought when he finally saw what was in front of him. "A flower field?" he thought as he looked at the land filled with yellow flowers and green grasses all around. "What are they?" he thought and went forward to check. [Soothing Orchid] [Dreaming Thorns] "I have never come across these flowers have I?" Alex thought. He checked his memories and found that they were used in a few pills in the True rank that helped with insomnia and anxiety. "What the hell is this place?" he thought and started walking through it. The plants were nearly a meter and a half tall and flying didn''t make sense. As he kept on walking, he really did feel himself soothing. It was like all worries in his mind had been stripped away. He felt calm. He felt really tired and just wanted to rest. However, that feeling disappeared very quickly and he was left gasping for breaths. "What was that? I¡ª I nearly fell asleep," Alex thought. He quickly stepped back from the yellow flowers. "Ow," he screamed. He looked back to see that the Dreaming Thorns had stabbed him. ''But I''m a body cultivator,'' Alex thought. Then, his body started getting lethargic, as if he was ready to sleep. Alex immediately got awake. "What¡­ happened?" he said with fear in his eyes. "What do these things do?" he thought. ''Damn, I really need information on what each ingredient does by themselves and not just what they make,'' he thought. He sent out his spiritual sense and tried to search for the talismans he could find. Unfortunately, he did not, but that also meant he didn''t have to stop anywhere. He quickly reached the walls on the other side and saw something written on top of the entrances. - Once you choose an Entrance, you cannot choose another¡ª "Okay," Alex thought and entered one of the 10 openings. Once he was inside and had gone past a few intersections, he met some people. Only this time, Alex was sure they were a group. They were 2 men and 1 woman standing on either side of the wall with their backs to it. They were holding their red talismans in their hand. ''Sh*t,'' Alex knew what was happening. The 3 looked at him with sinister smiles. Alex frowned. He wanted to teleport to the other routes but wasn''t sure if that was allowed or not. After all, the rules said, you could not change the entrance after choosing once. He thought for a few seconds and immediately ran away leaving the 3 in laughter. But after a minute or two, he returned, and in his hands were a bunch of flowers and thorns. "Wh¡ª What are you doing?" the girl asked. Alex smiled and dropped it all near their feet. Without touching, the thorns didn''t do anything, but the flower surely did. With so many at the same place, they all started getting sleepy. The man handled himself and slapped himself to keep himself awake. But while he was doing that, Alex ran past him. The man''s body was too lethargic to stop him. After failing to get Alex, he decided to get his comrades and switch places. At the same time, he heard a sound. PING He didn''t even have to look back to know that his talisman had just been stolen away by Alex. Chapter 331: A Feeling Alex ran away with the man''s talisman and read it. He had noticed a few talismans in that there were writings on the talismans that belonged to the participants. He had come to notice two different sets of writing. One said [CCHASTWDPH] and another one said [ETWLFEONT]. Alex tried to make sense of the 2 types of talismans and didn''t notice anything. His own 2 remaining talismans were of the first variety. ''Is this something random to f*ck with me?'' he thought. He gave up on thinking about it for the moment. Alex ran through some intersections, redoing his runs multiple times cause he ran into dead ends. Finally, he was done with that section of the maze and walked out of it. "What the?" he thought as he saw the scene ahead. Unlike the previous times, there wasn''t an open space to walk through like the previous times. Instead, in front of him was¡­ himself. Or more accurately, a reflection of himself. As he walked forward, he saw the walls move as well. When he finally entered that section of the maze, he realized, the walls were mirrors. He walked ahead slowly and suddenly slammed on a wall that was placed at a 45-degree angle. ''Sh*t, this is going to be hard,'' he thought. He tried walking in another direction and could see nothing but himself in all the walls. So he carefully moved. Dead ends were much harder to return from since he didn''t know where the intersections were anymore. He couldn''t remember the places like he could for the other mazes. So he had to rely on intuition now. Thankfully, he had his spiritual sense fully working, so he didn''t have to worry about accidentally hitting a wall anymore. Finally, after nearly 15 minutes of scurrying around like a headless chicken, he managed to get out of there. However, it was simply him getting out of the fire pan and into the fire. The place in front of him was nothing but fog. He carefully placed a foot inside expecting the whole land to cave in, or some sort of attack to just at him. However, there was nothing. He carefully walked a bit more and there truly wasn''t anything. ''Hmm, so there really isn''t anything,'' Alex thought as he freely started walking forward. As he walked more and more, he couldn''t help but get the feeling that this was familiar. ''Isn''t this just like¡­'' suddenly, his eyes went wide. He suddenly started to look around with anxiety and confusion in his eyes. He turned his head around to check but no matter where he looked, he couldn''t make sense of it. "Where am I supposed to walk towards?" He was stuck in a formation, and this was one that took away his sense of direction. Alex wandered for a bit but he was still stuck inside the formation. "What do I do?" he thought. Even his spiritual sense didn''t help as there was nothing to look at in the vicinity. "Screw it," he thought and came up with an idea. He took his sword and threw it ahead of him, but only a small distance away. He slowly walked towards the sword and stopped with both of his feet stuck together. He then picked up the sword and without looking anywhere, threw it straight ahead of him. While getting to his sword, his body would try to make him move in another direction, but with the spiritual sense, he knew where he was supposed to walk to. He found a person in the fog once but didn''t dare break his direction as he would probably get lost if he did that. Finally, after repeating that a few dozen times, he hit a wall. He quickly walked to the sword and realized that he had hit a wall. When he saw where he was, he frowned. He was back in the mirror maze. Meaning he would have to repeat the same thing for an entire length of the maze. "F*ck," he couldn''t hate but shout. He was about to throw the sword when suddenly, he felt a¡­ weird sense that something was calling to him. He couldn''t tell what it was, or where it was. What he could tell was the direction it was coming from. It was behind him. He couldn''t tell what this feeling was as it wasn''t anything like when the alchemy ingredients called to him, or when his body reacted to materials it wanted. This was something different, something that felt more¡­ home. ''What''s going on?'' he thought. He knew for sure this had nothing to do with his knowledge of alchemy or his body, but there was nothing else to him but that. ''Whatever at least it will help me now,'' Alex thought and ran straight ahead. He didn''t bother with directions or people, as long as the feeling was coming from behind him, he knew where to go. In under a minute, he reached the other side of the fog and looked at the top. It once again said that he couldn''t change his choice of entrance later on. So he carefully, but in the end randomly, chose an entrance and walked in. When he saw the maze, he couldn''t help but be surprised. "Is this real?" he asked himself. Ahead of him was a straight line for nearly 200 meters. There were no split paths, no intersection, or anything. From start to finish he could see everything. "What''s the catch?" he thought and slowly placed a foot in. He was expecting vines like the first time to pop out and lock him in place, but nothing happened. Second foot, third foot. He walked more and more, but nothing happened. "Haha! There''s nothing?" he thought and started running. He hadn''t taken 10 steps into the run when¡ª BAM He hit something and fell on his butt. "Ouch," he said as he stood up and looked in front of him, but there was nothing there. "What did I hit?" Chapter 332: Illusory Alex rubbed his head a little and carefully looked ahead. He could still clearly see the end of the path, but he had just hit something. He slowly extended his arm forward until his arm touched something. "A barrier?" he wondered and felt it a little more. The more he felt it, however, the surer he was that this was not a barrier. He closed his eyes and tried to understand what he was feeling. "This feels like the walls of the maze," he thought as he felt the tiny leaves and branches. He suddenly backed up and looked at the whole thing again. Only this time, he used his Spiritual sense. "There truly is a wall," he thought as he saw the wall finally. To the right of him was an opening. He opened his eyes and looked at the opening. He could see a wall there. He slowly moved to the right while extending his arms like a blind man finding his path. Soon he reached the wall and tried to touch it, but there was nothing there. He walked straight in and the whole environment changed. It was like he was on the other side of the wall. However, he could go back if he wanted to. "Illusions," he finally understood what was happening. He sent out his spiritual sense and found his way ahead. Thankfully, there were no intersections with the illusions, they were just hard to find paths. He ''felt'' his way through the rest of the maze and walked out. The scenery changed once more, and he knew he was out of the illusion. During the entire illusion maze, he actually found nobody. ''Am I ahead or behind? Or did people just choose a different route?'' he wondered. Ahead of him was an obstacle course, that didn''t seem very hard. ''Even a mortal can complete that,'' he thought. However, he knew there was going to be something weird about this place. He walked forward into the empty landscape and suddenly felt a force attack him. This force reminded him of the force in the Forbidden Fields. However, it only attacked his Qi and not his spiritual sense. Furthermore, Alex could feel that he could push back this force if he wanted to. The only problem was, he would have to expend a lot of Qi to sustain that push. "Well, not like I need it," he thought and immediately ran forward. With his nearly Organ Tempering realm body cultivation, he didn''t need to worry about anything. He jumped through all the obstacles and crossed them in no time like it was child''s play for him. He finally reached the other side where the force disappeared and he regained his Qi. It felt good. Ahead of him was nothing but a very long stretch of land that inclined the further along it went. However, he didn''t trek on it as there were words floating in front of Alex that said ''Jump in the Hole''. Alex stepped forward and saw a hole in front of where he was. He wasn''t allowed to cross the empty land but had to go through the hole. "Ah, F*ck!" he was annoyed at how long the Maze was going on. It had been over an hour, even close to 2 hours, and yet the maze still didn''t show an end. However, he couldn''t waste any time and directly jumped into the hole. The inside was dark and he could only see anything thanks to the light that was coming from the hole. However, the further along he went the less light he got. Even if he was a cultivator, he couldn''t see in places with truly no light. So, he used his spiritual sense for guidance. Just as he sent it out, he felt someone waiting in the darkness on the other side. Alex could see him with his eyes closed, listening to his footsteps. ''He wants to steal my talisman,'' Alex thought. However, there was no way the man could do that here in a place with no light. The darkness was Alex''s domain. Alex immediately disappeared and appeared next to the man. PING He swiftly grabbed the falling talisman and disappeared. The man had been listening to sound for echolocation to determine where Alex was, but he never expected Alex to simply disappear and steal away his talisman. By the time the man looked behind, Alex had disappeared again. Alex didn''t bother walking at all. He kept on using the teleportation technique as that was the fastest way to leave this place of darkness. After not even 5 minutes, he reached the end of the underground tunnels and climbed a steady incline to walk out of it. When he finally came out, he was surprised. "What?" he shouted out as he saw the most ridiculous field yet. In front of him, was a field full of nothing but monsters. He looked at the sword he was holding and thought, ''Am I supposed to fight them?'' However, just as quickly he shook his head. "No, at the end of the day, this is a race. I am supposed to walk out of here as soon as I can," he said to himself. He decided to skip the monster, and just as he wished, the texts floating in the air also gave him an easy route out. - The restriction of ''1-meter flight'' is lifted just for this one course. It will start the moment you enter the maze walls on the other side.- "I can fly?" he thought happily. He could now easily skip the hundreds of monsters down below. He was about to fly and leave, but then he stopped. He looked up and looked at the words again. "Why?" he asked himself. Why would the competition holders lift a restriction for just this one land? Was it because it was dangerous? Was it because it was time-consuming? If one could simply skip it, why even have this be a part of the Maze run? That was when Alex noticed something amongst the many monsters and thought, "I see. No wonder." Chapter 333: Blue Gorilla Alex looked at the massive amounts of beasts down on the ground from his elevated land. He also noticed a few people fighting the beasts. "It seems they noticed too," he thought. On top of many of the beasts, there was a small line going across their bodies, which came to their underbelly that held a small box. ''That box must be the reason,'' Alex thought and immediately started flying. However, after getting close to the monsters, he realized another problem he hadn''t thought of yet. They were all in the Meridian realm, and every single one of them could seriously injure him in a single strike. If his body had the same cultivation base as his Qi, he might have some ease, however, with how he was now, he had no chance. ''I need to think of another way,'' Alex thought. He looked for a monster that was very weak and had the weakest cultivation base of them all. A blue-haired gorilla beast with 1st Meridian Tempering realm had the misfortune of being his target. Alex could either try to fight the beast head-on and win the box from it, or he could sneak in and steal it. He didn''t have much time to waste and fight it, so he decided to steal it. He flew up to the highest vantage point and waited for the perfect moment. Suddenly, he disappeared. He emerged right below the gorilla, slightly disoriented, but with enough wits to grasp the box and pull it. However, not everything was as easy as it looked. No matter how hard he pulled the box, the ropes just wouldn''t let go. The gorilla smashed down with its giant arms, but Alex easily rolled out of its way and once again tried to pull. It didn''t work. He immediately flew away from the attack range of the blue gorilla and frowned as he looked at the others. Many other people were struggling with their beast of choice as well, and Alex realized that the other beasts were ignoring everyone else. ''Are the beasts under a trance so that they don''t realize what is happening around them?'' Alex wondered. Just then, he saw a man kill the beast he was fighting. Alex was about to turn back, but he saw something interesting. After the beast dropped, the top on its rope lit up a bit and fell in two directions. The man took the box still attached to the open ropes and left. ''So I have to kill the beasts?'' Alex thought and looked towards the blue gorilla. The blue gorilla was already doing its own thing after Alex left it. ''Sigh, and here I expected to not have to fight at all,'' he thought. ''Whatever, I just hope the sword lasts through it,'' he thought and started moving. As soon as he got close to the gorilla, the gorilla too got aware of his existence and started moving. It tried to walk towards him, but Alex gave no chance, he was in a hurry. His sword shined golden and he disappeared. When he appeared, he was already below the gorilla, and he accurately hit the waist of the gorilla where the rope was. He wanted to give one last try to see if the rope was unbreakable; it was. ''Fine then, I will kill it,'' he thought and started attacking it. Alex dashed sideways at incredible speed and slashed the gorilla on the leg. There was a slight cut on the gorilla''s leg, but that was all it was. ''I''m going to have to use more than just Smiting Blade.'' The gorilla tried to smash him with its fist, but Alex had a full vision of everything that was happening around him. He immediately disappeared once again and arrived behind the gorilla where he launched the Fist attack and the Palm attack. His body already looked like jade from using his defensive technique and he was leaving nothing unguarded by fully using his spiritual sense. He bombarded the gorilla with attacks. The gorilla tried to swing at him with its giant hands, but Alex simply used that to jump backward. Without wait, he put 2 fingers forward and they started to glow a little yellow. He then swiped those fingers along the side of his blade and moved the glowing sword above his head in a circular pattern. Five glowing after images of the swords were left behind that quickly turned towards the gorilla. The gorilla showed a little fear when it saw this. "HAH!" Alex shouted as he let them loose. 5 energy blades blitzed their way to the blue gorilla. BANG Dust flew everywhere and Alex had to block them with his Qi. However, even with the dust flying, he knew, that didn''t work. An ice-clad blue gorilla appeared from the dust. ''Sh*t. It has water elemental powers,'' Alex thought. The gorilla was strong than him and had probably a better water element than him. So, the ice armor, which was a sub-type of water, was capable of weakening his Penta Blade attack that was a metal-type attack. ''However, it''s still hurt. Meaning, it''s not that much stronger than me if I put my Qi density into account. I just need a better element,'' Alex thought. ''Got it.'' He could use the Fire element to Ruin the gorilla''s ice armor, but Alex didn''t have any fire elemental attacks. He could use Earth Elemental attacks to Overwhelm, or at the very least, control the ice armor, but Alex didn''t have that either. So, the only thing he could use was Wood Elemental attacks. Instead of golden-yellow, his sword changed colors and it started glowing green. Alex disappeared once more and appeared right below the gorilla once more. The gorilla was prepared, but it was still too fast for it to react. Alex swung directly into the ice armor. The ice practically broke apart at the touch of his attack and the attack itself landed on the gorilla''s body. The gorilla cried in pain and grabbed the right side of its gut where a relatively big cut had appeared. Alex smiled and thought, ''I can kill it.'' Chapter 334: The Box He had just launched the 2nd strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword at close range to deal the damage with great precision. Once again, his sword glowed green, but suddenly he noticed the gorilla form two sharp icicles and smash it towards him. Alex disappeared once again, but the gorilla seemed to be prepared this time. It searched for him and attacked him within a second after he reappeared. ''Sh*t,'' he thought and disappeared again. Thankfully, after the mortal cleansing, his movement of Qi had become very quick with almost zero resistance. Thanks to that, he could continuously disappear right after he reappeared as much as he wanted. However, his mind was a different problem. After the 3rd instant teleport, he was starting to lose information about where he was and which direction he was turning towards. The gorilla slammed again and he disappeared once again. On the 4th reappearance, he threw his sword outside of the gorilla''s area of attack. He then disappeared again. When he reappeared, he was about 8 meters away from the gorilla and held his sword in his hand. It took him a second to get his head together and he stepped back once more. HUFF HUFF He breathed heavily. The blue gorilla suddenly threw one of its icicles towards him. Alex easily dodged it, but in that time the gorilla had blown the ground with the cold air from it''s lungs. Almost magically, ice formed on the surface of the ground and so did an ice armor form on its body once more. There was so much reflection between the two that the amount of shadows had been reduced by nearly 2 thirds. Alex could no longer use the same techniques as before. ''Screw it, you want long ranged attacks? You will get it,'' he thought and put wood Qi into his blade once more. With a single slash, he sent out the 2nd strike of the Elusive Heavenly sword once more. The gorilla knew it couldn''t dodge, so it tried to block the attack with its icicles and armors. The green slash easily cut through the two, but has in turn lost a lot of its energy and was thus so weak that it only left a slight cut on the skin. The ice armor grew back and so did the icicles. The gorilla could fight again. However, Alex wasn''t dejected. He instead smiled and said, "Let''s see if your Qi will last longer or mine." Once again, he threw out the 2nd strike which the gorilla blocked. He threw it once again, and again, and again. The gorilla blocked the first few, but as it started losing its Qi, the ice wasn''t as strong as before. Suddenly, Alex put it more Qi into the sword and made the sword glow even greener. He was using the 3rd strike. The 3rd strike was truly useful for people that had superior wood roots, but it slightly increased the damage of attacks on people with inferior roots like Alex as well. With one last breath remaining on the gorilla, he wanted to finish it off with the strongest attack he could use against it right now. He raised his sword diagonal to the right and slashed. A very green slash of energy flew towards the now bloody gorilla. It tried to move a little out of the way, but it was too wounded to do so. The slash directly landed on its chest and cut in deep enough to damage its internals. Within seconds, the gorilla died. "Hoooo," Alex took a deep breath and walked towards the corpse. The robe around the gorilla''s waist glowed a little and it fell off. He went ahead and grabbed it. Suddenly, the feeling that had been with him since the foggy area increased a little. It wasn''t enough to make him really think anything of it, but was just enough that he noticed the increase. He didn''t know what it was, so he decided to ignore what it was and keep going with the competition. He was about to fly when he noticed something. The many beasts that were in a trance earlier suddenly got out of their trance and looked at him. "Wh¡ª What?" he tried to slowly back away, but their eyes never left him. They even started to move forward. The further Alex moved, the more the beasts came closer to him. "What''s happening?" he shouted out loud. The beasts heard the shout and ran towards him in a rush. Just then, an aura erupted from the sky and a few staff members in the True realm got down. Their aura suppressed the beasts and one of them said, "You can leave to the other side." Alex nodded and flew up and away. He didn''t want to do anything with these beasts so he stayed very high in the sky. "What was that?" he wondered. He suddenly looked at his hands and realized what he was holding. "Oh right, I nearly forgot," he said and dropped down near the maze walls. -The Final Maze; Choose wisely- That was all it said. ''The final maze, so if I cross it, the run is over, right?'' Alex thought. The final maze was actually made up of solid wooden walls instead of the bushes like most of the other ones. "Let''s check what''s inside here first," he said as he pulled the box up along with the rope. The rope seemed to be attacked to the top of the box, while the box itself was totally without any design, aside from the single seam running across it that seemed to be where it opened from. "Let''s see what is inside of you," Alex thought and pushed the lid open. It didn''t open. "Huh?" he put more force into it, but it wouldn''t open at all. ''What is this box made up of?'' he wondered and tried some more, but it didn''t work. He even used spiritual sense to check what was inside, but for some reason, there was a seal on the box itself that stopped him from seeing it. He was extremely befuddled as what exactly to do next. Chapter 335: Wooden Walls BANG, CLANG Alex slammed his sword right on top of the box, but nothing happened. Instead, his sword broke in two. "What the? What am I supposed to do then?" he asked in frustration. He kicked, punched, threw it at the wall, and tried to use different techniques on the box, but it didn''t open. "ARGHHH" in frustration, he grabbed the box by the end of the ropes and started slamming it everywhere. He didn''t let go and kept on beating it around. Suddenly, he felt the load lighten. "Huh?" he looked up and checked. The box was a good 20 meters away from him near the wall of the maze. He looked at his hand and only the rope remained. "Oh, it came off," he said and walked to the box. He picked it up and saw its pristine condition. "Damn, still no damage. Just how strong is thi¡ª" he stopped. He could now see something on the box that he couldn''t before. There was a hole in it. "Huh? How did it¡ª Oh, it was covered by the rope. I should have ripped it off as the first thing I did," he said and looked at the hole. For a few seconds, he didn''t know what the hole did, but then he saw something. Inside the hole¡­ was another hole. His eyes started shining when he saw that. "A keyhole," he said in surprised. He quickly searched into his robes among the dozens or more talismans and brought out a key. This was the same key he had found deep in the swimming pool like course. He inserted the key and twisted it. CLACK. The box opened. With slightly nervous hands, he opened the box and saw what was inside. When he finally laid his eyes on the reward he had been trying this hard to get, he was disappointed. "Just a bunch of talismans?" he nearly shouted in angers. He calmed himself and said, "This might be good, don''t lose hope Alex." He checked the first one. -15 seconds reduction from the result- "That''s just the first one," he said to himself. -52 seconds reduction from the result- "That''s¡­ not bad," he tried to deceive himself. - 34 seconds reduction from the result- This wasn''t good, but he still didn''t lose hope. -16 seconds¡­- This was bad. -28 seconds¡­- This was bad too. -10 seconds¡­- This one was especially bad. -22 seconds¡­- "Sigh, I wasted so much time." He quickly read through the other 5 remaining talismans. "Huh?" when he got to the last of the talismans, he noticed something. There was something etched onto the wood on the end. "What''s this?" he thought and read it. -Here lies the final one of the 3 - -HKELOHOEA- "Wait¡­ this is!" Alex quickly took out the two types of talsman out that had a similar string of words written on them. [CCHASTWDPH], [ETWLFEONT], and [HKELOHOEA]. If the information on the box was correct, he now had all the pieces of the puzzle. But Alex couldn''t think of how they would fit. "Hm, no matter what order I stack them in, it doesn''t work," he thought. Putting the words in a straight line didn''t seem to be the way to go. "Are these abbreviations then? Probably not. These would be too long," he thought. "Reverse then?" he checked but that didn''t work either. "Hmm, one is 10 letters long, while the other 2 are 9 letters long. How do I do this?" He spent a good 5 minutes trying to think of ways to orient them. "Hmm, that is¡­ I might as well try it," Alex thought after coming up with an idea. He took the broken sword and started writing the words on the ground. He was still cautious the entire time about someone getting behind him while he etched the words onto the ground. Instead of writing them horizontally however, he wrote them vertically, side by side. "Let''s see what they read," he thought and tried reading in one way. "CEHCTKHWE¡ª Nah that doesn''t make sense." He read it the other way this time. "HECKTCEWH¡ª Nah, not this one either. Am I even doing the right thing?" he wondered and read the final way. "CHECKTHEWALLS¡ª Wait¡­ it''s working. Check the walls¡­ lemme read the rest," he thought and started reading it from start to the end. When he finished reading it, a massive smile appeared on his face. The three talisman together read ''Check The Walls Of The Wooden Path''. "So I have to check these walls?" he said as he looked at the wooden path that lied ahead of him. Without hesitation, he dug a little hole and buried the box before moving on. As soon as he walked in, he started looking at the walls, but everything looked the same. "What am I supposed to check here? Is there a hidden door or something?" Alex wondered. "If it''s a hidden door then I should be able to open it by pushing on one of these walls, right?" he said to himself. He ran his hands across the walls constantly pushing them. He also knocked on them to see what they sounded like. He did this for a few seconds when¡­ KNOCK KNOCK He knocked on one of the walls and it sounded weird. He knocked again, and as he had expected, it was hollow. He tried pushing that part of the wall in, but nothing happened. "Hmm¡­ then should I pull instead?" he thought and searched for a something to grasp. After finding nothing, he used his Qi to pull the wall. A drawer like box fell off from the wall and he saw a talisman inside. He picked up the talisman and saw read it. -1 minute reduced from the final result- "This is nice," Alex said, but it wasn''t really worth wasting his time around. "How many even are there?" he said and sent out his spiritual sense to check the walls. His eyes suddenly went wide in shock as he could only speak out only two words, "So many¡­" Chapter 336: Leaving the Maze "What is he doing there? Mingming, you idiot, just run. Don''t stand there," Fan Ruogang was the most enthusiastic of the competition viewers when it came to being Alex''s fan. So, when she saw him move through the final end of the maze at a very slow pace, she got angry. "Don''t get so agitated Fanfan, he must have a reason. Look, he seems to be getting something from those walls," Zhou Mei said as she pointed to the huge screen that showed the entire maze from start to finish. The participants knew it was big, but only the audience could really see the true scale of the maze. The maze was about 500 to 600 meters in width and nearly 3 kilometers in length. With so many normal mazes and obstacles, this was truly a grand scenery to behold. The space inside the stage was so big now that it was impossible for the audience to truly see what was going on inside the maze. So, they could only rely on the large projection in the sky. "But Meimei, I bet 400 spirit stones in Mingming''s name. If he doesn''t win, I am going to lose 4 true spirit stones in this bid," Fan Ruogang said, revealing the true reason for her agitation. "Don''t worry Fanfan, brother Yu knows that delaying is a bad idea, so he must know something. Look, those 4 are doing the same thing brother Yu is doing. There must be something to those walls," Wan Li said while pointing to the screen overhead. Indeed, about 4 people had stopped by the final maze and were checking through the wooden walls. "Sect leader, you think disciple Yu noticed something?" the first elder asked. "Must have, otherwise he wouldn''t have stopped in the final maze for this long. It''s been nearly 20 minutes since he entered, and he is not one to waste time," Ma Rong said. ****** "What was Yang Ma''s time?" Luo Mei asked. "They should announce it all together, but from what I estimate, it should be around 2 hours and 10 minutes, without the reduction," Wen Cheng said. "And the others were much late right?" she asked. "Yes, they were around 30 minutes later. Their time is around 2 hours 40 minutes," Wen Cheng. "So, junior brother is going to take more time than that, right?" Luo Mei asked. "Just what is he doing there?" she was getting a little annoyed. "I don''t know. Hopefully, he isn''t stalling for no reason. Although, a few of the others are doing so too," Wen Cheng said. Of the original 170 people in the competition, around 80 people had been disqualified due to not moving, around 10 due to attacking another participant, 30 due to having all of their talisman stolen. There were only 50 people remaining, and of them, 43 had already passed the maze. Of the remaining 7, 5 were in the last maze, while the other 2 were still someone in the catacombs, lost due to the lack of light. "Oh look, one of the guys gave up on his own. He touched his own talismans," an elder said from the side. Indeed, there was 1 less participant in the maze. A guy in the catacombs had given up. Slowly, one after another, the 5 people in the final maze started making their way out as well. During that time, the second person lost in the catacombs finally made his way out and flew to the wooden walls as well. Even that person made it outside before Alex and one other person. The other person made it out about 5 minutes after that, and around 10 minutes after that, Alex finally got out. With the last person out of the maze, the Maze run was finally over. DING A large ranking board appeared in the sky. It showed the maze clear time of everyone. The person that left first was the winner and the person that came last, Alex, was the worst of all. Fu Zhen then started speaking. "These are the raw results of the game today. As you can see, the fastest time was 1 hour, 34 minutes, and 46 seconds, while the lowest time was 3 hours, 22 minutes, and 33 seconds long." "However, we have yet to add the time reduction talisman they might have gathered. Let us start with the first person," Fu Zhen said and called forth the first person on the list. The person walked forth and provided 6 talismans to a staff. The staff put them in a box and the time on the ranking board started dropping. The final score was reduced by a minute and 24 seconds, to make it 1 hour, 33 minutes, and 12 seconds. The second person was called forth, and then the third and the fourth. There were really only 52 people in total that passed and it wouldn''t take a long time for their numbers to be rechecked. The rankings never really changed a lot. The most reduction one got was as of yet was Yang Ma who managed to get a 5 minutes reduction in the result time and got about 2 hours as the actual result. However, that all changed when the last of the 5 people went forward. The first person gave nearly 50 talismans to the staff, garnering a lot of attention from the others. His result was originally 2 hours, 58 minutes, and 55 seconds. After submitting the talismans, his result went down to 2 hours, 23 minutes, and 34 seconds. That was a whopping 35-minute reduction in finishing time. Everyone was shocked at how much reduced, however, that wasn''t able to get him anywhere. The next 3 people also managed to reduce anywhere from 20 minutes to an hour in their result, but that wasn''t enough to get them even in the top 10. The second last person was the guy lost in the catacombs, so he really didn''t have much and only reduced his time by 3 minutes at most. Finally, it was time for the final person in the ranking, Alex to give him talismans. Chapter 337: Negative Alex''s original time was 3 hours, 22 minutes, and 33 seconds. That was the worst time out of everyone yet, but that was the raw time. He still needed to get it reduced. So, he slowly walked to the staff. Along the way, he could see Yang Ma''s terrible smirk. He rejoiced about the fact that Alex got so much less score. ''God, he really is horrible,'' Alex thought. He reached the staff and pulled out a stack of papers from his robes. In his stack, there were at least 50 talismans. He dropped it on the staff''s table and the staff started to calculate. As the staff was calculating, Alex reached back into his robe and pulled out another stack of the talismans. He placed it on the staff''s desk with a little sound. The first 50 weren''t surprising to anyone. The last 4 of the 5 people had around that amount. However, Alex had just nearly doubled that. "What the¡ª how does he have so much?" the participants started questioning. "Brother Xi, how did you get 50, and why does he have so many?" a disciple asked his senior brother who was one of the final 5. "The final maze had talismans hidden in the walls. I spent all my time searching for them. He must''ve probably spent longer than me to search for them," the man named Xi answered. He spoke quite openly, so everyone in the area heard that. Murmurs started among the crowd and people started guessing how much Alex reduced his numbers by. Some guessed 40 minutes, some guessed an hour. Some even guessed an hour and a half. However, most people were sure that it would be a ridiculous amount. The staff counted all the nearly hundred talismans and was finally being done with it. Just then, Alex reached into his robes, took out another stack, and dropped it on the staff''s desk once more with a gentle smile. The staff''s eyes were so wide that he forgot to count and only stared at the stack for a solid 5 seconds. "Ahemm!" After a gentle reminder from Fu Zhen, the staff went back to calculating. Fu Zhen looked at Alex and said, "If you have more, drop them all at once," he said. "Sure," Alex said and reached into his pockets to bring out another stack that was double of what he normally took out. Even Fu Zhen was surprised this time. The participants had their eyes out for a while now, and this time it nearly fell off. The staff did his best to count as fast as he could and when he got the result, he was both confused and surprised. He called Fu Zhen close and whispered something into his ears. When Fu Zhen heard this, he was surprised and confused as well. He thought for a second and turned to Alex. "Junior, how did you get so many talismans," he asked. "From the walls in the wooden maze," Alex replied. "Yes, but how did you get so many of them," Fu Zhen asked. Alex smiled and said, "I just did. If you are worried about me cheating, you can ask your staff member who was looking after me. He was up there all the time and saw everything I did." Fu Zhen turned to one of the staff members still in the air, and that person shook his head indicating no foul practice. "Hah~" Fu Zhen sighed and looked at the staff in charge of counting the results and said, "Do it." The staff member nodded and applied the reduction. The group watched the numbers in Alex''s result lower. From over 3 hours, it dropped to just 3 hours. With the change in number, it also started climbing the ranks. Slowly, it climbed higher and higher as the time was reduced more and more, and before anyone knew it, the result reached 2 hours. With just a little more reduction, he jumped past Yang Ma. Yang Ma''s face got a little dark when he saw that. The result was still climbing, however. Without stopping, it climbed higher and higher until it was in 1st place. Alex had dropped his result by nearly 2 hours now. However, that was still not the end. The result reduced even more and soon it crossed the 1-hour mark. "What''s going on? How is it so low?" some of the disciples started to complain. But since they had seen the result take place in front of them, they couldn''t keep complaining about it for long. The result dropped lower until it was at the half an hour mark and still kept on dropping. After what felt like an eternity, everyone saw the result reach 0. However, it still didn''t end there. Even after reaching 0, it went down into negative. It kept on lowering for a few more seconds until it finally stopped. The final result of Alex''s maze run turned out to be Negative 45 minutes, and 26 seconds. Fu Zhen started speaking to the crowd and announced the top 3 winners. The audience was way too far from Alex''s eyes so he couldn''t tell their reactions, but he knew in his heart that his masters must have been proud. "Please follow us," a staff said and called everyone with them. The group of staff took them to a room with 120 of the rest of the participants. They handed everyone a spirit stone, a Qi recovering pill, and told them to stay inside the Qi gathering formation until the next turn. Alex found a relatively quiet place and ate the pill. Immediately, his body started working and directly gave him energy. Alex didn''t have much use for the spirit stones, but he still kept them. He was returned back his box with all his bags in it. Once everything was settled down and was quiet, Alex started feeling uncomfortable. The feeling was still there, haunting him apparently. ''Just what is it? Could it be a bug of some sort?'' Alex wondered. So, he decided to log out and log back in to check. Chapter 338: Attack Alex opened his eyes in the capsule. He waited for a few more seconds to make sure he was properly logged out and then decided to go back in. "Wait," he said to himself. "It might be better if I use that helmet instead. It will also help me with my body," he thought and opened the lid. He then laid down on his comfy bed and put on the helmet. After that, he logged back in. Alex was still in the Qi gathering formation and nobody had disturbed him. However¡­ "Tsk. It''s still here," he said when he felt that the feeling didn''t leave him. He was very curious as to what it was. However, just then, it disappeared. "Oh, it''s gone," he thought. With nothing else to do, he stood up and left the formation. He couldn''t even absorb Qi actively, so there was no point in staying here in the first place. Besides, he had barely lost anything. The most he lost was in the fight against the gorilla and that by no means was a lot. He made his way over to the Hong Wu sect. Suddenly, someone attacked him. Alex immediately got ready to fight but stopped when he saw what attacked him was a pair of hands. It immediately wrapped around him and confined him. It was a hug. "Aah! I''m so happy Mingming, thank you so much. Thank you." It was Fan Ruogang who had decided to hug him out of nowhere. MWAH Not only was Alex surprise attacked with a hug, but with a kiss on the cheek as well. His face got a little red and he started blushing a little. "Wh¡ª why did you suddenly hug me? I nearly thought you were an enemy and hit you," he said bashfully. "Fanfan, you can''t jump on him like that just because you made 200 True spirit stones," Zhou Mei said. "What?" Alex''s red face slowly went back to being a little less colorful, and just showed a general confusion towards the situation. "Sigh, when the match started, Mingming went around gathering people for bidding on the winner. She bid 400 spirit stones on you and got a 50 times higher return from it and made 200 True spirit stones," Zhou Mei explained, with a hint of envy in her eyes. "Haha, you wish you bid along with me, don''t you? Look how much I made," Fan Ruogang teased Zhou Mei by showing the handful of True Spirit stones. Even Alex got a little jealous when he saw that. "Good work, brother Yu." "Great job, junior." "That was an outstanding result. How did you do that?" Alex briefly explained what had happened. Multiple compliments rained down as he made his way through the sect members to go sit next to Ma Rong. "Congratulations on the first place, Brother Yu. You now officially have 300 points, the highest possible in this competition," Wan Li said. "Oh, I didn''t realize that," Alex said with a gentle smile. "Thank you, Brother Li." He then looked towards his master and waited for her to speak. Ma Rong kept quiet for a few seconds and then finally spoke. "Were you using your sense a lot?" she practically whispered. "Yes," Alex said and nodded. "I thought that was what was happening. If not for me especially looking for you, I wouldn''t have noticed at all." "Good job. You did great," she finally smiled and said. Alex smiled too. "Thank you, master," he replied. "Alright, now leave," she said. "Huh?¡­ oh, right. Ok, I will see you guys later after this competition ends," Alex said and went to the front of the seating area where the Tiger sect was located. "Hey, good job, Yu-Ming. I am proud of you," Wen Cheng said the moment he reached there. "I am honestly so surprised at the result, Junior brother. What happened out there?" Luo Mei asked. Alex thanked them and explained everything. "Oh, I see. So everyone who flew over the beasts got doomed huh?" Luo Mei said. "Not really, as that second-ranked, you could just be fast. But I think, Yu Ming is genuinely an extreme case in this competition," Wen Cheng said. "That is true too," Luo Mei said. "Sister, aren''t you going to leave now?" Alex asked. The top 16 was going to start soon and it was time for her to leave. "I will go down after the stage is fixed," she said as she gestured towards the stage. The opaque barrier had returned and Alex could tell that they were destroying the stage inside there. He had a pretty good guess that most of them were just formations, but he was still surprised how well it was. So, while the stage was getting ready, they all waited. ****** "Did you like that, father?" the second price asked. "Yes, Yes, that was very fun to watch. It''s truly amazing how the last person flipped the points around so much that it went below zero. This is truly the first time I have seen something like this happen," the Emperor said. "Truly well said, dear. It was the most fun I have had watching a competition in a long time. Not only were the different Maze fun to watch them go through, but the final result was also equally as fun to see," the Empress said. "That was great of you, dear Nephew. I enjoyed it very much too," Zexi said with a burst of loud laughter. The rest of the four looked at him with surprise. "You liked it?" the second prince asked. "Of course, it was very entertaining to watch," Zexi said with a smile. "You know what daddy," the Princess intervened, "that''s actually the same robe as the boy I met," she said. "Is it?" the Emperor asked in surprise. "Yes, but that wasn''t him. The one I met had long hair," the Princess said. "Well, that''s very unfortunate," the Emperor said. Zexi had a smirk on his face as he looked down at the seating areas of the different sects and said, "Truly unfortunate, indeed." Chapter 339: Top 16 - Begins Luo Mei stood up and said, "I will see you guys after I win it all," and left. Du Yuhan and Yang Ma stood up and followed her as well. Tiger sect was the only sect with 3 participants in the top 16 aside from Royal Fu Academy who had all 4 in there. Alex and the rest wished them ''Good Luck!'', but given how serious they were right now, nobody replied anything. Alex looked down on the stage and saw the perfect stage already ready for them to fight in. The maze had disappeared as if it never existed and the formation that messed with the space inside the stage was turned off. So now the stage was the same size as it always was. Fu Zhen walked up to the stage and announced out loud. "Fellow Daoists and everyone, welcome to the Top 16 of the Singles Battle. Here are our remaining contestants," he said and showed a massive screen with the names of the 16 participants and their sect as well as their cultivation base. Royal Fu Academy beat all of the other contestants in everything from Cultivation base to a number of participants. The first match was between Luo Mei and the crocodile beast tamer girl from the Myriad Beasts sect. Luo Mei walked onto the stage with no worries at all as her opponent was in the 2nd Mind Tempering realm. The moment the girl appeared on the stage, her forehead lit up and the crocodile appeared on the stage. It also had the same cultivation base as the girl but it had a much better physical defense too. "Begin!" the referee announced. Luo Mei didn''t attack with her sword, instead, she created a large ball of water on her left hand and threw it directly at the crocodile. She was testing waters to start off the match with. The ball landed on the crocodile, yet it did nothing. As expected of a reptile that could live both on land and water. It probably had both elements. Luo Mei decided to get serious. She immediately swung her sword and sent a blue slash flying towards the opponent. The Crocodile moved on its own and blocked the attack. The slash hurt it a bit but did not manage to penetrate the skin. ''Is the beast''s skin that strong? Probably not. It''s most likely using a technique,'' Luo Mei thought and started spamming her attacks. One after another, her attacks landed on the crocodile, and with each attack, it took more damage. Luo Mei was about to make another attack, but she instead pushed herself back to the end of the stage. BANG A massive sound rang out from where she had just been standing on. When the dust settled, a giant green frog showed itself. This was another beast of her that the opponent had been hiding all this time. Luo Mei frowned. Not only was her another beast a water element using beast, but it was also in the 3rd Mind Tempering realm. It was stronger than its master. She frowned. There were too many targets for her to fight and they were all in some ways immune to her water attacks. However, instead of reducing the water element in her attacks, she decided to increase it. Luo Mei kept in her sword and put her hands forward. Suddenly, water sprouted out of her hands and filled the stage. She kept pumping until the water was about 2 meters tall and had swallowed everything. The frog, crocodile, and the girl tried to swing in it and rose to the surface. Just then, Luo Mei moved her arms, and out of nowhere, 3 vortexes formed on the surface of the water. These vortexes were so strong that the girl or her beast couldn''t move at all. The vortex that had the girl started moving. The girl tried to stop it, but Luo Mei''s control of it was much higher than her strength to destroy it. Finally, she appeared right in front of Luo Mei who took out her sword again and placed it on her neck. "I give up!" the girl immediately screamed. Luo Mei nodded and kept her sword back before leaving the stage. The 2-meter high flood finally stopped and all the water fell to the side of the stage. The girl and her beasts were left there trying to catch their breath when they heard the referee announce the result. The next match was between the Lesser Immortal sect''s elemental user and the Black Fu Academy''s 5th Mind Tempering realm cultivator. His opponent was 2 realms lower than him but had managed to make his way up here. So, to win against him without wasting a lot of time, the Royal Fu Academy''s disciple decided to reveal sword intent as well. With that, he easily won against his opponent. The next match was between Du Yuhan who was at the 3rd Mind Tempering realm and his opponent who was also at the 3rd Mind tempering realm, but in addition to that also had 3 puppets of the same strength. Du Yuhan stood at one corner of the stage, while his opponent on the other end of the stage took out the 3 puppets. It was going to be a 4 v 1 fight. "He should be fine as long as he can reach the puppetmaster as soon as he can, right?" Ning asked. "Yes, but this is going to be hard. The Thousand Hand sect''s disciple has 3 puppets of which one acts like an attacker, another a defender, and the final one that could change into any when it is required to be one. So, it''s a very hard combination to fight against," Wen Cheng replied. Du Yuhan grabbed his sword by the handle and the scabbard with his other hand. His eyes darted left and right as he imagined what puppet to attack first. He took a deep breath and exhaled. Seeing that both sides were ready, the referee wasted no more time and screamed at the top of his lungs, "Begin". Chapter 340: Du Yuhan VS Puppets The puppets stood in front of the disciple from the Thousand Hand sect. They were about 3 meters tall and had long slender arms and legs and a head that was just a massive oval with no feature. They were made up of wood but were reinforced by metal on the joints. The first puppet held two short swords in its two arms. The 2nd puppet wore blue armor and also held a bronze shield on its left arm. The final one held both a shield and a short sword. Once the disciple from Thousand Sect heard the match start, he immediately controlled the puppets and made the two with the sword jump forward. Du Yuhan slashed as he pulled the sword from the sheath and launched a flying attack towards the puppet with two swords. The puppet attacked with its two swords and dissipated most of the incoming attack, and what remained wasn''t enough to harm it at all. Seeing that he didn''t stop the puppet''s momentum at all, Du Yuhan suddenly started swinging his sword in an infinity shape pattern. Dozens of minor slashes rained down on all 4 of his opponents. While they weren''t very strong on their own, the disciple didn''t dare dismiss these attacks as they came from a person that knew sword intent. The defensive puppet got in front of the disciple and put the shield up. The other puppet with a shield also got in front of the puppet with the swords and blocked most of the attacks. The puppet landed in front of him and both of them attacked him. However, the attacks were very simple and Du Yuhan easily dodged them. They had lost their previous ferocity. The disciple hiding behind the defensive puppets peeked and looked at where Du Yuhan was. At that moment, the ferocity returned and they started making more varied attacks that Du Yuhan couldn''t easily escape from. However, even then, the blades of the puppets couldn''t touch him at all. He weaved and moved through every attack. "Oh, he knows it too?" Alex looked at Wen Cheng with an inquisitive look. Wen Cheng just shrugged and said, "What can I say? After learning that you had a 5 Elemental root, I immediately thought of Yuhan, so when I needed to give you books, I gave you the ones that had helped him." "Oh, so he''s still hiding a lot then?" Alex asked. "No, not really. Somehow you can make great use of your abilities despite having a poor spiritual root, but Yuhan can''t do that. So he only knows a few of the techniques you know, and even then he can''t use it all that well," Wen Cheng said. Du Yuhan kept dodging and launching attacks whenever he got the chance. If he could take out the master, the puppets would follow suit as well. So, he had been continuously attacking the cultivator as well. After doing that for a while, he had come to realize that the puppets didn''t function as well when his opponent couldn''t see the battlefield. He needed to know what was happening to give accurate commands. Otherwise, it was just ''Hit him'' or ''stab him'' most of the time. Du Yuhan immediately launched another attack towards his opponent and just as the opponent hid again, he slid behind the sword puppet and started barraging its back with attacks. The puppet took some damage, but it still turned around to hit him, however, by that time Du Yuhan was far away and was readying his next attack. His sword suddenly started glowing green and the next second, he launched the attack. The green slash flew through the air towards the damaged sword puppet. Suddenly, the defensive puppet jumped forward and got in front of the sword puppet to take the damage in its place. BANG The shield on its left arm got cut in half and it even lost its arm. There was also a deep gash on its chest, but it managed to survive thanks to its armor. Du Yuhan ignored it and sent a white slash towards the unguarded master, but the third sword and shield puppet jumped forward and blocked him. Since the attack wasn''t as strong as before, he only left a little mark on the shield, amongst the dozens he had left already. For the first time since he started fighting in the competition, Du Yuhan frowned. He had expected the Top 16 fight to be hard, but not this troublesome. The puppets were genuinely no joke. "Sigh," he let out a sound and suddenly took in a deep breath. The air around him started distorting the image around him as his Sword Intent reached to the extreme. The sword he was holding started collected Qi and turned pure white. "Oh no. ATTACK HIM!" he ordered all three of his puppets. The three puppets left their place and converged on Du Yuhan. Du Yuhan didn''t send out an attack either. This time, he himself launched forward. SLASH Du Yuhan landed in front of his opponents, while the puppets landed behind him. Du Yuhan raised his sword again and his opponent got scared. "Come back," the opponent ordered his puppets. He was scared that he was going to get attacked without any defense. However, Du Yuhan didn''t attack him. He instead looked at his sword and saw that it was all chipped and unusable now. So, he put the sword back into his sheath. CLACK Just as the sound of the sword entering the sheath rang out, the three torsos of the puppets behind him slid down from the waist. They had been cut in half. Even their weapons and shields had been destroyed, as well as their arms. There was not a single part of their body that came in contact with the slash and survived. Du Yuhan stared directly into his opponent''s eyes and waited. "I¡ª I give up," the opponent didn''t hesitate any more and forfeited the match then and there. The referee announced the results and Du Yuhan walked out of the stage. During all that, not a single sound escaped from the audience as they were all shocked to speak after such a spectacle. Chapter 341: Yang Ma vs Wan Li The disciple from the Royal Fu academy that had the next match after Du Yuhan wasn''t very happy seeing him take the limelight. So, when he fought against his Honor sect opponent, He showed off his impressive 4th Mind Tempering realm cultivation base, as well as revealing the fact that he too had Sword Intent as well. Seeing this, the audience was beyond excited to see a match between two weapon intent user in just the Quarter Finals. After the Royal Fu Academy disciple won, it was time for the next match. Yang Ma and Wan Li came out of the waiting area and entered the stage. They both went to the opposite ends and waited for the match to start. Wan Li took out his sword in preparation, while Yang Ma took out his spear. They were both planning on giving it their all from the start. "Who do you think will win?" Wen Cheng asked Alex. Alex wasn''t expecting such a question so he thought for a little bit. Both the fighters were his fellow sect members, but it was clear who Alex liked more. "Brother Wan Li has a higher cultivation base, but Brother Ma should have more fighting experience amongst the two. Brother Ma also has superior Fire elemental roots, so as much as I like brother Wan Li, I will have to go with Brother Ma," Alex said. "Good analysis. Now, let''s see how close your theory stacks up with the actual thing," Wen Cheng said and looked back on the stage. "BEGIN!" Wan Li let no time go wasted and immediately launched a fire slash towards Yang Ma. Yang Ma sent a red slash of his own to stop the attack. A small explosion rang out as the attacks collided and destroyed each other. Wan Li had the better Qi Density and amount, but Yang Ma had the higher Elemental strength, so the damage they dealt was almost equal. Yang Ma smiled when he saw that. ''An alchemist wants to win against me? Keep wishing,'' he thought and sent out a fireball towards Wan Li. Wan Li also threw out a fireball of his own. BOOM Smoke filled the stage from the collision of these two fireballs and Yang Ma took the opportunity to throw in more fireballs and red slashes towards Wan Li. Multiple explosions rang out in succession. More dust and smoke rose up covering the whole stage in it. Yang Ma relaxed and said, "It should be over right?" Just then, a stone flew directly at him and nearly hit his head. Yang Ma managed to react in time and hit the stone away with his spear. "What the hell?" he looked towards the settling dust and smoke. Behind it, he could see a silhouette of something square. When it finally became clear, Yang Ma saw a large wall that was charred black because of his attacks. "The hell? An earth wall?" he thought. Just then another stone flew towards his head from the center of the wall. He blocked that, but another came as well. And another and another. Wan Li had opened a small hole and started sending out a barrage of stones while he himself hid behind the wall. Yang Ma''s face contorted when he realized he hadn''t managed to deal any damage to him. "Stop hiding and come fight me," he shouted and suddenly sent out a massive flame attack into the sky. The fire, as if getting sentience, suddenly manifested into a massive snake and flew down towards Wan Li. Wan Li could tell that this was a strong attack, so he didn''t hesitate any further either. He dropped the sword and placed both of his hands on the ground and out of nowhere, the ground started melting. Wan Li was putting so much fire Qi into the earth that it started turning into lava. He then controlled the lava and threw it at the sky, towards the incoming flame snake. Not only did the lava manage to destroy the flame snake, but it was also so strong that it wasn''t phased at all and made its way towards Yang Ma. Yang Ma looked at the incoming lava and fear showed in his eyes. "Sh*t, he has a Fire-Earth spiritual root," he said. Without a moment''s delay, he used his movement technique and went sideways to escape the lava. When the lava fell onto the ground, instead of freezing, it melted the ground making a pool of lava on the ground. Huff Huff Wan Li was a bit out of breath. Pushing so much fire Qi into the earth has left him breathless. However, when he saw Yang Ma dodge, he immediately picked up his sword and got back into the fight. Yang Ma sent forth a red slash to catch Wan Li off guard, but Wan Li was ready. His sword started glowing brown and he slashed as well. The energy turned into the shape of a hammer as it flew towards the incoming slash. Yang Ma expected it to cause another explosion, but instead, the hammer destroyed his slash and kept moving forth. Yang Ma''s eyes went wide. The Earth attack was empowered by Fire Qi. Yang Ma dodged the attack once again and moved to the side. "Why the hell do I have to keep fighting people with complimenting dual elemental roots," he complained. Suddenly, he saw another brown attack flying towards him. He knew he couldn''t beat it, so he started dodging and moving sideways to get out of the way of the attack. ''Keep throwing out attacks and get tired. Then I will beat you,'' he thought. His plan was working perfectly fine for a minute or so, but then he realized something. At some point, Wan Li had started targeting the land instead of him. Yang Ma stopped and looked around. When he finally saw what had happened, he was shocked. All of those attacks he thought he had dodged, had actually formed lava on the ground all around him. "Oh no." Wan Li suddenly gestured both of his arms upwards and the lava followed suit and devoured Yang Ma. The referee had to interfere and stop the lava before it actually hit Yang Ma, or the result would have been disastrous. He then looked at Wan Li and announced, "You Win." Chapter 342: Top 8 - Luo Mei "That¡ª That was incredible. I did not expect brother Wan Li to be that strong," Alex said in shock. He was simply blindsided by this win. "That kid¡ª He hid his abilities quite well. Just the fact that he had to compliment dual spiritual roots, those are actually just as strong as Superior roots if used correctly. He definitely deserved this win," Wen Cheng said with approval. While his own sect''s disciple had lost, he couldn''t help but compliment Wan Li. "Do you know who taught him how to fight?" Wen Cheng asked. "No. I don''t think anyone taught him that," Alex said. "He¡­ probably learned that on his own." "I see. I could tell he didn''t have much experience with actual fights. If he was, he could have ended the fight long ago," Wen Cheng said. The next battle on the stage was starting. It was between the 3rd Mind Tempering realm disciple of the Honor sect who could use Spear Intent, and the 6th Mind Tempering realm disciple of Royal Fu Academy. Spear Intent was strong and could help the disciple from the Honor sect produce attacks that could damage a 4th Mind Tempering realm cultivator. However, it wasn''t enough to fight this opponent. The Royal Fu Academy''s disciple overwhelmed the Honor Sect disciple with his massive Metal attacks with his superior Metal elemental roots behind it. The next match was between the Thousand Hand sect disciple and the girl with the saber intent. Unfortunately, she wasn''t able to show the same level of prowess as Du Yuhan did and in the end succumbed to the barrage of attacks from the multiple puppets. The next match involved the Myriad sect disciple with the crow. However, his opponent was Chu Xiang, the strongest participant in terms of cultivation base. No matter what attack the master or the beast threw at him, nothing was able to phase him and in the end, he had an overwhelming victory. And thus, the Top 16 battles came to an end as well. However, it was already close to 3 PM, so Fu Zhen wasted no time and started the Top 8. The quarterfinals were now beginning. Alex looked at the match-ups and frowned a little. The next match was between his senior sister and the disciple from Royal Fu Academy who had the 5th Mind Tempering realm cultivation base. It was not his cultivation that worried him, however; it was the fact that he could use Sword Intent as well. In fact, even Du Yuhan would have to face against a sword Intent user in the next match. Wen Cheng was worried about this very much too. Luo Mei walked up to the stage with her blue rapier-like sword and looked at her opponent who was standing on the other side. His sword look quite fancy and she guessed it was at least a Common Earth grade, if not Heaven grade sword. ''This is going to be troublesome,'' she thought. "Begin!" Luo Mei suddenly attacked her opponent with a blue slash. The man didn''t seem phased and attacked with his own slash as well. The man''s attack had Sword Intent behind it, so he was able to match up with her attacks. Luo Mei sent out more attacks, but each of them was stopped by the man. She frowned. It seemed long-range attacks weren''t the way to go. In a battle of the sword, he would lose for sure. She kept her sword in her storage bag and started fighting with water instead. Water pooled around her feet and tendrils started forming from it. With her command, the tendrils of water started shooting out sharp slashes of water. Her opponent did his best to block the attacks and was able to. But when the attacks started pouring out from multiple directions. His sword alone wasn''t able to stop it. He used his movement technique and disappeared from where he stood and appeared a dozen meters to the side. The water attacks ended up landing on an empty spot. Before Luo Mei could even turn her head to check where he had gone, the man used his movement technique another few times and appeared behind her. With her not knowing where he was, he could attack her freely. His sword glowed bright yellow as he prepared a metal attack with Sword Intent behind it. However, before he could launch the attack, all of the tendrils of water suddenly attacked him. Multiple water slashes left the tendrils. The man decided to stop his attack and move away, but it was then he realized that his feet couldn''t move anymore. At some point, water had caught up to him and had frozen his legs. "How?" he couldn''t understand what was happening. He had managed to appear on his opponent''s blind spot, but the one at a disadvantage was him. He made the instant decision to go forward with his attack and used the most Sword Intent he could to slash directly at the incoming attacks. BOOM A massive explosion sent the water flying everywhere. The man had managed to block most of the damage, but not all of it. He lied on the ground as his frozen feet did not let him get pushed back. He tried to stand up, but suddenly, he felt weightless. When he realized what was happening, he was already inside a massive ball of water and was floating in the air. He tried to attack and destroy the ball of water or swim out of it, but Luo Mei kept on adding more water and controlling it to move in the direction he tried to move. Given the fact that he did not get to take a breath before he was put inside the ball, he was going to be out of breath in a very short time and drown. He struggled and struggled, but Luo Mei''s proficiency with water was too high for him to possibly escape his current situation. Slowly, the ball of water started to freeze and he could no longer move. CRACK The ball of ice fell onto the ground in a million pieces and the man fell out of it and started gasping for breath. Huff Huff He quickly searched and reached out for the sword he had just dropped to take advantage of Luo Mei''s mistake. Just as he was about to grab it, he saw a foot that did not belong to Luo Mei in front of him. He looked up to see a dark-robed individual standing in front of him. "Oh," he said and stopped reaching for the sword. It was the referee that had helped him escape from the ball of ice, not Luo Mei''s incompetence. He understood what had happened and fully accepted his loss. His opponent had fully beat him without question. The referee looked towards Luo Mei and said, "You Win." Luo Mei bowed a little towards the referee and walked out of the stage. She had managed to enter the Semi-Finals. Du Yuhan walked out from the waiting area and walked to the stage that was being cleared quickly and didn''t even look at her. He went straight to the end of the stage and waited for his opponent to arrive. Chapter 343: Sword Intent vs Sword Intent The Royal Fu Academy disciple with the 4th Mind Tempering realm cultivation base arrived a little after Du Yuhan did. He stood on the opposite side of the stage and spoke, "I saw your fight earlier. You broke your sword, didn''t you?" Du Yuhan stood there emotionless without a single response. "No worries, I will beat you very quickly so that you don''t have to worry about that, to begin with," the opponent said with a smile. "BEGIN!" The opponent brought out his sword and made a massive slash, sending it towards Du Yuhan. Suddenly, a sheathed blade appeared in Du Yuhan''s hand out of nowhere and he attacked the incoming slash just as it reached him, sending it to the side. BANG The slash ended up hitting the barrier on the side. "What the¡ª " the man was a little surprised when he saw that Du Yuhan had an undamaged sword. "Huh? But I''m sure the sword was cracked at that time. I even confirmed it with the disciple from the Thousand Hand sect," he screamed. Du Yuhan said nothing. Now that his sword was out of its sheath, his aura had changed and he was deadly. If he was to say anything, the words would be coming out of his blade. His sword glowed white and he immediately sent out a sword slash. The opponent immediately moved to block the attack. He also sent out a slash of his own that met at the middle. BOOM The sounds the collision of their attacks made were much louder than the other fighters until now. A yellow glow appeared on the opponent''s sword as he let it fly towards Du Yuhan. Du Yuhan could only use wood elements which were bad against metal, so he stuck to normal Qi attacks. The attacks ended out causing another boom. Neither of them wasted time thinking and sent out multiple slashes that all struck each other and brought them to a standstill. Alex was quite engrossed in the fight as it apparently wasn''t every day you got to see two Weapon Intent users but something distracted him suddenly. ''It''s back,'' he thought and looked towards the direction the feeling was coming from. ''Is it from the crowds? Or further away?'' he wondered. Just then, he saw Wen Cheng''s legs constantly shaking as if he was really anxious about the fight. "What''s wrong, master? You seem a little scared," Alex asked. "Hahaha," Wen Cheng gave nervous laughter and said, "That''s because I am scared, about the match that is," he said. "Oh. Is there something to be scared about? It seems an even match to me," Alex said as he looked at the stage once again. They were still sending out slashes and neither of them could beat the other. "That''s only because they are sending out those Qi attacks. Sooner or later, a sword fight will get physical, and that is when we will see their cultivation base make more of an effect on their attacks," Wen Cheng said. "Also, if I am not wrong, then Yuhan''s opponent has a Heaven grade sword, the impact of which will only be truly seen when the swords clash. I am afraid¡­ Yuhan won''t have much of a chance to win after that," Wen Cheng said. Alex finally understood where Wen Cheng''s fear lied. The main battle between the two had yet to begin, and when it did was when we would finally see the disparity between their power. Du Yuhan sent out many small slashes at once using his infinity attack again. His opponent used a barrier technique and blocked most of it. The ones he missed, he simply parried with his sword. Both of them stopped attacking. They both understood that such a fight was going to bring them nowhere. The opponent smiled. He showed a huge grin and became the first of the two to proceed forth with the attack. He closed the gap very quickly and also managed to parry another slash that Du Yuhan had sent after he launched himself. When he landed, he sent an overhead slash with all of his momentum behind him. DING Du Yuhan blocked the sword with his own, but his sword got a nick in return. When the opponent saw that, he smiled. He was winning. He pulled back his sword and slashed down once again. DING Another nick appeared in Du Yuhan''s sword. This time even Du Yuhan knew what the problem was. His sword wasn''t measuring up to his opponent''s. This time, the both of them pulled back to attack. Both of their strikes had the additional strength of their intent behind them. DING Du Yuhan was forced back a little. His physical strength was not matching up with his opponent''s who had a higher cultivation base. DING DING DING Strike after strike, his opponent sent in relentless attacks that kept on nicking his sword until it was too dull to fight. Du Yuhan concentrated hard and raised his intent to the extreme. His sword glowed white and one could even see the white Qi fill the gaps in the edge. His opponent smiled as well. He too sent in Qi into his sword, only his sword glowed Yellow due to the inclusion of Metal Qi instead of normal ones. Once their swords were pearl white with glow, they slashed. BANG A large explosion occurred right were their swords collided and created an explosion that sent them flying backward, away from each other. His opponent stood up the moment he landed and started laughing maniacally. "Haha, I could feel it. Tell me I am correct," he shouted. Du Yuhan took a little longer, but he stood up as well. He looked at the sword in his hand and sighed. The sword was broken in half. He only held the sword hilt and had no idea where the upper half had disappeared to. He looked towards the laughing opponent and looked at his sword. That sword had no damage at all. That was a high-grade sword and wouldn''t take damage that easily. "You are very strong," Du Yuhan spoke for the first time in this match. It was so out of nowhere that even his opponent was surprised. "Haha, you only realized now? Of course, I am strong," his opponent said. Chapter 344: Sword-Shaped CLACK Du Yuhan put the half-sword back into its sheath and then the whole sheath disappeared into his storage bag. His opponent smiled and asked, "You got another sword in there?" Du Yuhan didn''t speak and instead nodded to affirm his suspicion. His opponent was a little surprised. Suddenly, the same sheath came out of the storage bag once again. "Huh?" his opponent responded in confusion. "Are you going to fight with a broken sword?" he asked. CHING Du Yuhan pulled a brand new sword from inside the sheath and surprised him. His opponent looked at the sheath more carefully and realized it was slightly different than the first one. "You have multiple of the same sword?" he asked. Du Yuhan nodded once again. "No wonder you had another sword ready after the last battle. But what''s the point of having multiple trash swords when a single high-grade sword can last much longer than any of them?" his opponent asked. Du Yuhan thought for a moment and asked, "Tell me, who suffers more hardship? A man with a good sword or a man with a bad one?" The opponent was confused why he was asking that but still decided to answer. "Obviously it''s the man with the bad sword," he said. Du Yuhan smiled and then asked, " Now tell me, what person grows the most? The one who has it easy, or the one facing hardship?" Once again the opponent decided to answer. "Of course it the man who¡ª" he stopped and got angry. "Are you trying to say I haven''t improved because I used a good sword?" he asked. Du Yuhan shook his head and said, "I''m just saying I have improved a lot since I decided to only use Common Mortal grade swords." "That''s a load of bullcrap. One can improve no matter the circumstances. As long as we have the will, we can do it," the opponent said. "I can not tell you whether you are right or wrong, as I too am barely a beginner in the ways of the sword," Du Yuhan said. "However, let this beginner show you what he has learned ever since he started using the so-called trash swords." Du Yuhan looked at his sword once before putting it back into his sheathe. He then got into the same stance that destroyed the 3 puppets in the last battle. Air started getting slowly distorted around Du Yuhan. His opponent was just as surprised as when he saw this in the last match. ''Why is he pushing forth so much Sword Intent?'' he wondered. He immediately got into his best stance to deliver the strongest attack as well. Suddenly, something flashed in front of Du Yuhan. It was white in color and it went from the upper right of Du Yuhan''s face to the lower left. It then disappeared as quickly as it had appeared. ''What was that?'' his opponent wondered but didn''t care about it enough to think for long, however. Another one flashed once again. This time it appeared near his torso and flew up and went behind him. His opponent got alert and decided to see what the white thing was. Another one appeared just as he thought that, and he finally managed to see what it was. When he realized it, his eyes nearly fell out of his sockets. "That''s¡ª" he couldn''t formulate any words. 4th, 5th, 6th¡­ 10th¡­ 20th¡­40, 50. Hundreds of such small white light appeared and disappeared around Du Yuhan very fast. They were incredibly small in size, so anyone who was looking from the audience couldn''t really see what the shape of the white thing was. However, anyone who knew anything about swords would immediately recognize what it was. "That''s¡­" "No way¡­" "He''s so young¡­" "How did he train to this level?" Multiple questions appeared amongst the crowd. Wen Cheng who had been shaking his legs all this time stopped and immediately stood up. "How is he¡­" he screamed and stood up abruptly. Alex was really surprised by everyone''s reaction. He couldn''t see what those white lights were so he asked Wen Cheng. "Master, what is that? Is that not Sword Intent?" Alex asked. "No, that¡­ that is a level higher than Sword Intent," Wen Cheng said with absolute shock. "A level¡­ higher?" Alex was confused. "Yes. You see, when you get good with the sword, you create your own Intent of it. However, when you keep on improving with it, along with yourself, you Qi follows along and becomes a sword itself." Wen Cheng said. "We call that¡­" "Sword Qi!" the opponent said with terror in his voice. "Ho¡ª How do you have Sword Qi already at such a young age." Du Yuhan no longer answered. He was concentrating to the fullest. The Sword-shaped Qi that was flying around him slowly converged on his blade. Then he opened his eyes and he launched forward. His opponent couldn''t keep his calm with what he was seeing in front of him and didn''t even set up a defense for himself. When Du Yuhan reached him, he slashed. PING Du Yuhan''s sword once again broke and flew off into the distance. However, this time, the one that blocked it was the referee. He had decided to intervene and save the opponent. He had stopped the attack, but even then he was pushed back 3 steps. That was how strong this single attack of Du Yuhan was. Du Yuhan stood up straight and put his broken sword back into the sheathe, and when he stopped holding the sword, his arm slowly trembled. This was the first time he had truly attacked with the Sword Qi, and the one he attacked had ended up being someone in the true realm. It took the referee a moment to realize that he had to reveal the results, so he quickly shouted out towards him, "You Win." Du Yuhan clenched his fist to stop it from trembling any longer and bowed towards the referee before walking away. Once again, the crowd was in absolute silence as he left. Chapter 345: Coward "Sect Leader, did my brother truly gain Sword Qi?" Su Min asked from the side. She had seen the event unfold and had thus listened to what Wen Cheng had said. "I¡­ don''t know. He can definitely use it, but it doesn''t seem to be at a level where it is consistent," Wen Cheng said. "Still, just the fact that he reached there means that he will be able to freely use Sword Qi sooner or later." Su Min smiled when she heard that. She really liked her senior brother being strong and was looking forward to when he became the prime disciple. Wen Cheng suddenly smiled and then started laughing like an idiot. "Master? What''s wrong?" "Are you okay, sect leader?" Various voices of concern started ringing from either side. "Hahaha, you guys. Don''t you realize what just happened? Little Mei will be fighting Yuhan in the next battle," he said. The people didn''t understand what was so funny about that. "Don''t you see?" he asked, "We have a guaranteed spot in the final round." " Oh¡­ OH!," they finally realized what that meant. "We... We are going to be 2nd in the competition," they rejoiced. Alex looked at them all happy and smiled. Suddenly, the feeling vanished once more. ''What is that?'' he thought. He suddenly turned to the stage and saw Wan Li on the stage along with his opponent. Alex couldn''t help but sigh. Wan Li''s opponent was a person in the 6th Mind Tempering realm and used Metal Qi. Both Earth and Fire were either Weakened or Ruined by Metal Qi. As such, Alex didn''t even want to watch the match. However, he watched it for the single reason that it was Wan Li. Wan Li put up an excellent fight, but there was just no way he could win. Even with the lava attacks, the metal Qi took care of them like it was nothing. In the end, it didn''t even take 2 minutes for Wan Li to lose. However, nobody was disappointed in him for losing here. In fact, everyone was genuinely surprised and amazed at the fact that an alchemist was able to make it this far without relying on pills as a form of combat. The next match was even worse. Since it was between Chu Xiang and the disciple from the Thousand Hand sect, it was obvious who would win. Chu Xiang used a single palm attack and destroyed a puppet entirely. The opponent gave up before his other puppets were destroyed as well. So, the Top 8 competitions came to a close as well. The stage was prepared as the audience waited listened to Fu Zhen speak about the competition. Once everything was prepared, Luo Mei and Du Yuhan walked up to the stage. They both went to either side of the stage. Anticipation rose in the air as everyone wanted to see their fight. One was a fighter that overwhelmed the other with water arts, and another was a fighter that could release Sword Qi. Adding onto the fact that people knew they were from the same sect, they naturally looked forward to it. The people who looked forward to it most were still the tiger sect disciples. The Core disciples rarely ever fought in the fighter hall as they had a tacit understanding of each other''s strength. So when they got to see their top 2 fight, they were naturally excited¡­ except for Wen Cheng. His face was solemn as he looked at the stage with a serious face. "Are you worried about sister losing, Master?" Alex asked. Wen Cheng would likely lose his status as the sect leader if that were to happen. Wen Cheng shook his head in denial. "Then... are you worried about brother Yuhan losing?" Alex thought that wasn''t possible but still asked. "Yes," Wen Cheng said as he nodded. That surprised Alex. Wen Cheng would have to step down if Du Yuhan won, and yet he was worried about the opposition losing. "Why?" Alex asked. "Well, it''s not so much about Yuhan losing, but rather¡­ how he loses," Wen Cheng said. ''Is he worried that sister will defeat him so badly that he will lose all motivation to advance? That doesn''t seem like his character,'' Alex thought. "BEGIN," the referee shouted. Luo Mei immediately brought out her sword and prepared an attack when she saw that Du Yuhan had prepared no sword. She could tell something was wrong. She started to feel a little annoyed when she realized what was going to happen. Du Yuhan didn''t take out his swords. Instead, he opened his mouth and said," I concede." Luo Mei was stunned for a moment. It wasn''t until Du Yuhan turned around to leave that she realized what had happened. She immediately started shouting, "What are you doing? Why are you refusing to fight me?" Du Yuhan ignored her and started walking away. The referee looked at Luo Mei and said," You Win." She didn''t want that. "Stop walking away you coward, and come fight me," she screamed. Her annoyance turned to full-on anger and she started gritting her teeth. "Come back right now and fight me, you coward. Stop walking away," she continued screaming. However, Du Yuhan made no such attempt to stop at any point. In fact, he didn''t even bother going to the waiting area and directly walked towards the seating area for the Tiger sect. Luo Mei kept on screaming, and that was the noise anyone heard for a while. The tiger sect''s disciples and elders were both surprised and disappointed by the outcome of their match. ''Why would he do that? Did he know he was not her match?'' Alex wondered. "Why did senior brother give up?" Su Min said with a hint of sadness to her voice. Everyone asked some variation of the same question. The only one who didn''t look surprised was Wen Cheng. "Sigh, I knew this would happen." He started shaking his head. Du Yuhan returned to his seat and looked down on the empty stage, ignoring all the questions he was asked. The man who said he would become the greatest¡­ gave up. Chapter 346: Plea Alex tried to think about something else when suddenly, the feeling he had been feeling disappeared once again, completely derailing any semblance of a thought he had beforehand. ''What is going on?'' he wondered, yet the answer was just as unknown as any other time. His body, his talent, his spiritual roots, his pets, most of the things surrounding his in-game life were a mystery. So this was just another mystery to add to the pile. Two black-robed men walked onto the stage. They were the second pair who were going to fight now. One of them was the 6th Mind Tempering realm cultivator who most likely had a superior Metal spiritual root. The other was the 7th Mind Tempering realm cultivator that went by the name of Chu Xiang, the strongest cultivator in the game. Unlike the previous match, neither of them was going to back down right now. "BEGIN" Both of them started attacking the moment the match started. Chu Xiang was an elemental attacker that had a superior wood element. The guy with the Superior Metal elemental roots took out a sword to combat him. The fight was intense and it went on for a while. Alex watched intently, but he found there was nothing new to be learned from this fight. It was a very typical fight between two strong people. As such, it also had a typical result as well. Chu Xiang, through a little more than normal expended effort, managed to win the fight in the end. The two left the stage and Fu Zhen arrived on the scene. He gave a little speech, giving time for Chu Xiang to recover his strength before the final fight. People started opening up bets in the meantime. Alex was pretty sure his sister was going to lose but didn''t want to bet against her, so he didn''t bet at all. Finally, at around 4 pm, Fu Zhen finally called the two finalists onto the stage. Alex watched as Luo Mei and Chu Xiang walked up to the stage and stood on either edge of the stage. He waited for the match to begin when suddenly, the feeling came. Not only had it came back, but it had also come back stronger than others. It was so strong that it managed to flinch, Alex, a little. "Ah!," he said as the feeling suddenly hit him. "What''s wrong?" Wen Cheng asked. At the same time, Fu Zhen started his main speech. "Ladies and Gentlemen, it''s here. There match we all have been waiting for. We will now begin the final match of the competition." Very loud applause sounded from the audience. Fu Zhen nodded to the referee to start the match, but suddenly, a large TING sound came from outside the arena. Everyone stopped cheering when they heard of it. People started looking around curiously, trying to figure out what that was. TING Another sound came. Fu Zhen told the referee to stop for now. He was about to ask someone to go check what the sound was when he saw someone fly in the sky. It was the Emperor. TING Another sound came, this time at a closer interval. People started having a sinking suspicion that something was wrong. They could see the Emperor''s face slowly go from curiosity to confusion, to slight fear. TING TING TING TING TING TING TING TING TING The bell started sounding continuous, without stop, and it even managed to make Alex look towards it. The sound of the bells was surprisingly coming from the same direction the feeling was coming from. ''The south,'' Alex thought. "Everyone, please listen to me," A voice came from up above. The Emperor had started addressing not only the crowd in the arena but also everyone in the city. "Those we are weak, below the Organ Tempering Realm, please leave the southern side of the city right now in a calm and collected fashion. Everyone else, please follow me to the southern side. The guards have conducted a small check, and it turns out, there is a hoard of beasts coming to the Cardinal City from the southern forest," The Emperor said. "This is a plea and an order from your Emperor. Everybody, move now." As soon as the Emperor stopped talking, people started scrambling to run away from the coliseum. The civilians and weak ones as well as the cowards ran towards the northern side, while the ones that were going to fight started to fly up. Both Luo Mei and Chu Xiang immediately flew up and went towards the south. "Yu Ming, You go back. It''s okay, you don''t have to fight. Stay safe," Wen Cheng said and turned towards his sect members to choose people that shouldn''t fight. "I''m sorry master, but I have to go on this one. I¡ª I feel like there is something out there calling to me and the beast hoard has something to do with this," Alex said with a solemn voice. "What''s that supposed to mean, Yu Ming?" Wen Cheng asked. "I don''t know myself, but I will like to find out. Don''t worry master, I will take the most care. I also have the escape techniques, so you don''t have to worry about me," Alex said. TING TING TING TING The plea for help was still ringing. "Fine, but you have to be careful," Wen Cheng said. He and the elders as well as most of the disciples started flying to the sky, along with Alex. Thousands of other people flew up to the sky towards the southern wall, but when they saw the southern wall, they were shocked. A small portion of the wall was completely torn down. Hundreds of monsters started pouring into the city and started scattering throughout the city. They were wreaking havoc all over the city. Dust and smoke reigned everywhere on the southern side and beastly shouts rang out from them. Alex looked at them as well. However, it was then he realized, the feeling he had wasn''t coming from the beasts nearby. It was coming from deep within somewhere in the southern forest. Chapter 347: Disaster Alex swung his sword at the beast in front of him. He hit the beast in the skull and managed to kill it in a single blow. He got a notification about the beast cores, but he ignored those for now. He immediately entered a house next to it and checked. There was a women who was hiding in a corner with her child. He immediately rushed and picked her up. He wasted no time explaining and immediately got out of the house and started running towards the northern part of the city. There were hundreds of beasts around him, but he ignored them and ran past them. There were others that would do the fighting while he rescued the two. Along the way, he nearly slipped on a pool of blood that had appeared after someone had died. Alex''s heartbeat was rising from what he was seeing around him, but when he saw other people run past him while carrying people, he got over his fears and started running too. The cultivators had decided to switch into two groups. The ones in the True realms decided to be the main fighting force that would push the beasts back outside the city, and those not at that realm yet would be the search and rescue team. Once Alex got the two to a safe location, he handed them to others and ran back. There were hundreds of thousands of beasts that were attacking city right now, and for some reason, the feeling Alex had was still there. ''Is my intuition telling me that there was going a beast attack today?'' He was thinking of random explanations that would fit the situation. SLASH He cut down a Muscle Tempering realm beast along the way. The beasts varied from normal Skin Tempering realm beasts all the way up to True Emperor realm beasts. They were really fortunate that the beast attack had happened when the competition was taking place and so there were a lot of strong people here to help. Alex suddenly stopped running and looked in fear in front of him. There was a fox beasts in front of him looking at him with its blood red eyes. Worst of all, it''s cultivation was somewhere in the early True Realms from the aura it was giving forth. ''Sh*t,'' Alex thought. Alex could get rid of his Aura and go invisible, but the beasts had really good nose and could immediately tell where he was. The fox jumped at him with incredible speed. Alex had been fully utilizing Focus mode to the best he could, and still the fox''s jump was incredibly fast to him. Alex wasted no time and immediately teleported to a house next to him. He checked if the fox was gone with his spiritual sense and walked out. Then, he went to search for more people to save. The beasts were getting weeded out and in just 15 minutes after the invasion, they had managed to get the beasts from spreading further. Now it was time to push them back out. By that time, everyone that could be saved was saved as well, so everyone was focusing on defeating the beasts now. Alex came face to face with a moose like beast that had massive antlers. "2nd Meridian Tempering realm? This is going to be tough," he thought. The moose immediately ran up to him to attack. Alex teleported behind the moose and cut it from behind. His Smiting Blade was sharp enough to cut the hide of the moose. However, that was the most his blade his now. The moose immediately turned and tried to slam at him with hits antlers, however Alex teleported again. Thankfully, it was 5 pm, so he had a lot of shadows to play around with right now, unlike when he fought that gorilla today. Alex frowned when he remembered that. ''I''m not at full Qi right now,'' he thought. He couldn''t cultivate inside the Qi gathering formation, so he wasn''t as refreshed as everyone else was. He cut the beast once more, but this time, the Moose directly slammed at him with its hooves. Alex blocked with his sword and was pushed back quite far away. ''Sh*t,'' he thought when he realized the moose was already at him. He teleported once more and attacked the moose''s behind. The moose also knew what was happening, so it also hit him with its back legs once more. The sword and the hooves clashed and the sword managed to crack the hooves a little. Alex pulled back and jumped backwards. He then used Iron Fist punch and Palm of the Sun in quick succession. The beast got attacked head on and faltered a bit. Just as it got its footing again, a green slash landed on it directly on its forehead. Blood Spurted out as the beast''s skull was broken through a little. ''Damn, that was my strongest attack and it survived?'' Ning thought in shock. He wanted to breakthrough but he didn''t have enough Qi. He still required over millions of Qi to go to 7th Organ Tempering realm. ''Screw it, it probably can''t survive now,'' Alex thought and teleported next to it. He started cutting it left and right with the Smiting Blade, and finally managed to defeat it. Alex felt his strength a bit and thought, '' That was about 5 realms higher, and I managed to defeat the beast. Is this the power of having Body and Qi cultivation together as well as the mortal cleansing and the dense Qi?'' He put the moose''s body back into his storage bags and ran forward. After running for a dozen or so seconds, he stopped once more. There was another fox like beast in front of him again with True realm cultivation. Unfortunately, there weren''t places he could teleport to hide this time. He was worried what would happen to him. However, just then, a large green python appeared out of nowhere and attacked the fox. It had the fox''s body in its wrap within seconds. Chapter 348: Disappear [Bonus Chapter] The fox tried to fidget to get out of the green python''s constriction, but it was unable to. From what Alex could understand, the snake was many realms higher than the fox''s cultivation base. The fox was dead within seconds after the constriction, and the snake directly swallowed its body. The snake then saw Alex standing there and slowly moved its head towards him. ''What do I do now?'' Alex started to doubt if he even had any chances. "Get back, Little Green," A voice came from the sound. This voice was all too familiar to Alex. "Master,'' he said as he looked towards the sound. Ma Rong walked up to the green snake and patted its head. "Go, fight with those other beasts," she ordered it. She then turned to look at Alex and asked, "What are you doing trying to fight with a True Realm beast. Just run." "I was about to, Master. I would''ve used Heaven''s impact or my escape technique as a last resort if normal escape was impossible," Alex said. "You should flare out your spiritua¡ª" GRRRR A tiger beast appeared from the side and directly jumped on Ma Rong. Ma Rong waved her hands and cold energy was released from it. Signs of frosting appeared on the fur of the tiger. The green snake appeared from the side with a dead bull and immediately left it to run after the tiger. "Go," Ma Rong''s voice appeared inside Alex''s head and he went to help the others. He saw a 1st Meridian Tempering realm monster and started fighting it. It was a snake beast with a brown body and had abnormally hard skin. Alex had more problems fighting it than the 2nd Meridian Tempering realm moose. The snake jumped at him with its open mouth, and Alex took the golden opportunity to put his sword into its mouth and cut it from the inside. Thankfully, its inside wasn''t as strong and once the skin ripped from the side, it ripped all the way through. Alex huffed after he finished fighting. But then, he realized there were two more beasts in front of him. One was in the 9th Organ Tempering realm, which wasn''t hard for him to fight against, but the other one was at the 2nd Meridian Tempering realm. He had avoided strong beasts until now, so he didn''t have to confront them, but this one felt doable, although very risky. He couldn''t tell if running away was a good choice here or not. Suddenly, the beasts that were also contemplating attacking him, had a change in expression. Their faces turned from serious to delight at a very fast rate. ''What''s happening?'' Alex wondered. Then, the beasts turned around and back towards the broken gate. In fact, they ran out of it. Not only them, but Alex could also see almost all the beasts that were in the self Tempering realm run out of the city. Only those in the True realm were showing any signs of not moving. Alex decided to follow behind them to see what the cause was. He walked to the city gates, the same as everyone else, and saw them gathered around a certain spot outside the forest looking for something. "Brother Yu, What is going on?" Wan Li came up to him from the side. He was bloody from head to foot from killing a lot of beasts. "I don''t know, Brother Wan," Alex said as he looked around to see that there were no more beasts inside the city at all. It was as if it was a miracle. "I think I know," Wan Li spoke. Alex turned his head around to see him pointing in a certain direction upwards. Alex looked in the direction and saw a certain man flying up there. It was a relatively young-looking man, amongst the hoard of other people and beasts fighting, yet Alex could clearly tell who he was and why he was the cause of whatever was happening. "The Royal Alchemist? He came to fight as well?" Alex said in surprise. "He must''ve used the beast attracting pill to pull all the beasts out of the city." "Everyone, the Royal Alchemist has managed to bring all the beasts out of the city. Please do not let them enter again. Fight!" The Emperor''s voice was heard from somewhere despite not being visible anywhere. The people were riled up and charged out of the city to fight with the beasts that were gathered there. Alex and Wan Li did the same. For nearly 15 minutes, Alex fought a bloody battle against more than a dozen beasts. Some weak, some strong. The humans were overwhelmingly winning the fight, although a few did die in front of Alex''s eyes. However, the number of beasts killed was far too many compared to the few humans they had lost instead. Huff Huff Alex was getting tired by now. He had been continuously helping and then fighting for nearly an hour now. The sun was going down and the evening was approaching. He lifted his sword and took deep breaths before being ready to fight the beast in front of him. Suddenly, something happened. The feeling that Alex had been feeling disappeared. He looked to the south and realized that he could no longer tell exactly which direction the feeling had been coming from. Another weird thing happened almost simultaneously. As soon as the feeling disappeared, the beasts stopped fighting and ran back into the forest. Every beast including the ones at the True realm ran back into the forest leaving Alex and the rest with nothing but corpses behind them. Alex slumped back into the ground in exhaustion and started catching his breath. He looked at the mountain of corpses that had appeared around him and realized that he could no longer see anyone anywhere. The corpses were blocking his view. ''Are all the beasts gone?'' Alex wondered and sent out his spiritual sense. Just then, he saw something move at incredible speed. Alex tried to quickly teleport, but he was struck on the back of his head, and he lost consciousness. Chapter 349: Trapped "Argh," Alex slowly opened his eyes. His head was dizzy and he could feel a bit of pain on the back of his head. He sat up while rubbing his head. "What hit me?" he couldn''t help but ask out loud. He looked at his hand and was relieved that he wasn''t bleeding at the very least. ''Did my armor save me?'' he wondered. He could tell he had fainted due to the attack and was a little surprised. ''In the first place, why did I even faint? Isn''t the capsule supposed to automatically log us out when we faint?'' he questioned. He immediately remembered why. "Ah right, I changed to the helmet after the maze run. How long have I even been asleep for?''. He checked the corner of his vision and saw that it was half-past 6. ''I''ve been out for about an hour huh?'' he thought. He looked around and tried to see where exactly he was. He remembered being around the mountain of monster corpses, but now there was nothing. In fact, rather than saying there was nothing, he was more accurate to say that he could see nothing. He was inside fog and the visibility was less than 3 meters in front of him. He tried to send out his spiritual sense, but for some reason that didn''t work. After around 5 meters of distance, he could no longer tell what he was sensing or even tell what direction that sense was in. "What the hell is happening?" He started to get worried. He frantically looked around, but there was truly not a single hint out there. Alex started running away from where he was so that he could get out of the fog, but the moment he started walking, he would get a little dizzy. It was like the whole world around him was moving with him in the center. It was all very¡­ disorienting. Since he was having a hard time going around due to the disorienting sense, he decided to simply walk while blocking all sense. He started walking in a single direction and didn''t stop. He walked on for nearly 10 minutes when he finally opened his eyes to check. He was still inside the fog. "What the hell?" he was surprised. "What sort of place am I at? Is this a formation?" he worried. "Oh, you catch on very fast," a voice came from somewhere. "Who?" Alex immediately turned around towards the direction of the voice, but then realized he couldn''t tell what the direction was. ''That voice¡­'' he thought and frowned. "High Prince Zexi," he said. "Oh, you know who I am now, huh?" Zexi spoke right next to his ears. Alex flustered and walked away from the man. "Wh¡ª What do you mean, High Prince? Why did you bring me here?" Alex tried to act. He knew for a fact that Zexi couldn''t see past his disguise unless he gave it away. "Oh, you seem confused, little guy. Check your hair," Zexi said. ''My hair?'' Alex thought with surprise and felt his hair. Suddenly, he realized that his hair was long. He left his hair and went on to check his face with both his hands and the spiritual sense. "Oh no," he thought in fear. The 58 hours for the Face Change Pill he had eaten had already expired. He was back to having his own face. ''I forgot to take another pill today.'' "Not bad, for an Organ Tempering realm individual. You are quite rich," Zexi said as he held a few storage bags in his arms. "Thankfully, you won''t escape from me this time." "Those are my storage bags?" Alex thought and quickly checked his robes. He didn''t have a single storage bag anymore. "I see you have quite a few ingredients for alchemy. Makes sense since you are an alchemist," Zexi said. "Although, do tell me, how exactly did you get the Spirit Cleansing Lilies? As far as I know, while the flowers themselves are not uncommon, they are incredibly hard to pick since only one of them is a real one. Is that not true?" he asked. Alex didn''t answer. "Give me back my storage bag," he demanded. "Oh no, that''s not happening this time. I was fair to you last time, but you don''t get that opportunity this time. This time, I will get the information out of you myself," Zexi said. The moment he said that his eyes turned upwards and he lost consciousness. At the same time, Alex teleported right next to him and hit him with a second dose of Heaven''s impact. He then immediately stole back his storage bags and used the Earth Devour technique to leave once more. The moment he activated his technique, the earth beneath his body opened up and Alex was devoured inside. He was then taken away by the earth. He could feel himself moving at incredible speed through the earth as he¡ª BANG Suddenly, he hit something inside the earth and was ejected outside once again. "What?" he thought as he quickly sent out his spiritual sense. In front of him, he could see and sense the same fogs that hindered his sense of direction. While behind him was a perfectly normal forest that had not a single bit of fog. Alex tried to walk towards it and hit something again. "Ow," he screamed as he rubbed his forehead. He placed his arms forward and realized that there was an invisible barrier disrupting his entry and exit. "Another formation?" Alex said in shock. "Oh, it works," Zexi spoke from behind him. " I was hoping it would when I set up that formation. Your disappearance trick was a little bit of a problem for me you know." "So I had to set up both formations, just for you. The barrier formation to keep you from leaving, and the Spirit Disorienting formation to keep you inside at all times," Zexi said. "Since I was good enough to set it up as a mid-Earth Grade formation, we have anywhere from 30-40 days of time with each other. "I hope I get to learn a lot about you." Chapter 350: Questions The Spirit Disorienting formation was a True rank formation that was the most valuable item that was sold in the most recent auction Alex had gone to. He remembered what the auctioneer had said when she had described the formation. It disoriented the person''s sense of surrounding and trapped them forever inside by not letting them realize where the exit was. Alex didn''t really need to know the direction of the exit to leave it, but unfortunately, Zexi had thought of that as well and put up another formation that put a barrier around the edge of the Spirit Disorienting formation. Alex looked at the man and feared what was about to happen next. There was no way he was going to let him go from this without getting what he wanted to get, but he would also not let him go after he got what he wanted. Besides, it was not like Alex could just say ''I just know'' and the man would be happy with the answer. ''Should I just log out and act as if I have fainted again?'' Alex thought but immediately dismissed the option. There was no way the man was going to let him go just because he had fainted. Besides, as the man said, they were trapped in here for over a month. Alex couldn''t simply faint every single day. ''Besides, it would be terrible for me if he killed me. My next body likely won''t have the same talent this one has and I will lose my source of income. ''What should I do?'' Alex tried to think of something, but couldn''t come up with any ideas. "What are you thinking so deeply?" Zexi asked with a terrible smile. Alex tried to back away, but the barrier stopped him. Zexi then said, "Let''s keep the talk about the flowers for later, shall we? I want to ask you about a few of the different things you have in there." As soon as he said that, all of Alex''s storage bags were ripped out of his robes, back into the man''s hands. "Let''s see, you have so many high-level ingredients here, where did you find them?" he asked. Alex didn''t know what to answer. The truth? It wouldn''t be bad to try it out if he could survive. That was the only option he had right now. "I found them in the southern forest," Alex said. "You found them¡­. In the southern forest? Hahahaha, Nice joke. Tell me, really, where did you find them? Did you rob the treasury of your sect? Or did you rob the treasury of a different sect?''" Zexi asked. Alex replied the same answer, "I''m telling you, I found them in the southern forest." "Tsk. So you''re going to keep lying about it huh? Very well then, let''s move on with the questions then. What does this do?" Zexi asked as he brought forth a yellow talisman. Alex looked at it and was a little surprised to even see what it was. It was a yellow talisman that normally he would simply forget about since he never really learned much about it. All he knew was that the talisman was meant to do something when activated, and he wasn''t brave enough to use the talisman of a man who was very likely in the saint realm. That could backfire very badly on him. "I don''t know. I just found it somewhere," Alex said. "You found it somewhere? You really want me to believe that you found a True rank talisman somewhere randomly?" Zexi simply shook his head. SLAP Without any warning, he slapped Alex with the back of his hand. Alex skidded along the barrier and stopped someplace far away. Nothing was broken, but he was hurt a lot. He quickly ignored the burning cheek and looked around to find Zexi, but that was no longer possible. He didn''t even know which direction he was just slapped from. The formation was messing with him too much. Suddenly, the only thing he could see, the barrier, disappeared as well. He looked around confused as to what had just happened, and tried to make sense of it. ''Sh*t,'' he thought. He had realized what had just happened. The Spirit Disorienting formation not only made him bad with his whereabouts inside the formation but it also, from time to time, shift space itself to further disorient the person inside. Alex was perplexed and had no idea what he could even do. Suddenly, a crushing sensation appeared and pushed him onto the ground. "Alright, then. If you won''t tell me about the ingredients or the talisman, then you can at least tell me about this right?" BANG Something landed right next to Alex''s head. Alex slowly turned his head to see what it was and came face to face with a dark blade. ''My saint grade sword,'' he thought in fear. That was one of the most important secrets he had been holding, and it had come to light in front of this man. "How does a normal, nobody like you come in contact with a sword like this? I feel stupid even asking this, but this is a saint-grade sword, isn''t it? "Who are you? And why are you in possession of so many of these things?" Zexi didn''t even ask it as a question. It was almost as if he didn''t want any answers from Alex. "I¡ª" "No need to speak. I can see that you don''t really want to answer me about any of this. This brings me back to the initial reason I got you here in the first place, the Spirit Cleansing Lily. Whether you like it or not, you are now going to tell me the answer to everything." "I will make you do it," Zexi said as he kneeled onto the ground and placed his palm on Alex''s head. "Don''t bother resisting. Not even a True Master realm cultivator from the auction house was able to resist this move. You are just an organ realm cultivator. This will end in the blink of an eye." Chapter 351: Battle in the Spiritual Sea Zexi closed his eyes and concentrated. Suddenly, spiritual energy released from him and started entering Alex''s head. Pain was all that Alex could feel. It was as if someone had cut open his skull, taken out his brain, and put it on a blender at the highest setting. "ARRRGHHHHHH," he screamed as loud as he could. He was both losing consciousness and getting awoken from it at the same time. "Sh*t, why the hell does this kid have so much spiritual energy. This is nothing like back when I used this on that guy from the auction hall," Zexi thought. It was not only Alex who felt pain, Zexi did too, although on a far minor scale. Penetrating another person''s spiritual sea was not an easy task for him. Zexi had a True Lord cultivation realm, as well as a Spirit Cleansing Lily''s worth of Spiritual sea, so he had high-quality spiritual sense, but in low amount. On the other hand, Alex''s spiritual sense wasn''t worth much due to his low quality, but he had 3 times as much as Zexi''s in terms of amount. So, Zexi trying to enter Alex''s Spiritual sea was basically a battle between Quality vs Quantity. Alex kept screaming as the pain was far beyond anything he had felt yet. The first day of body cultivation was nothing compared to having someone tear open your head and try to take a look inside of it. After many minutes of fighting, Zexi finally managed to enter Alex''s head. His body then slumped onto the ground and both he and Alex were as silent as 2 dead men. Inside Alex''s spiritual sea, Zexi flew in the sky above the, more than half-dried, spiritual sea. He looked around and couldn''t help but nod in approval. Huff Huff "This is¡­ not all that¡­. bad at all. Huff, the kid¡­ must''ve¡­ used all 3¡­ Spirit Cleansing Lilies already?" he asked while continuously catching his breath. Getting in here was not an easy deal for him as well. "Now, where is that kid?" he said and started searching down below him. Alex looked around and started fearing a little. The man was now inside his Spiritual sea, but why? He had said he would get the answers on his own, but that didn''t make any sense to Alex. In the first place, how did he even enter his spiritual sea? Was that a skill, or just something people could do with their spiritual sense? Spiritual sense, and especially, Spiritual sea was a topic he didn''t know a lot about. ''could the man maybe be weak now? like all the other beasts that enter my spiritual sea?'' Alex wondered. He didn''t have many attacks in his arsenal, but he decided to use them anyway. He immediately threw an Iron Fist punch towards Zexi. Surprisingly, it accurately hit on the back. "Arghh," Zexi cried and turned back. "What the hell? Why the hell ¡­ are you flying there?" the last time he had entered another person''s mind, he had found the person unconscious on the dried-up sea. Zexi seemed genuinely confused when he saw Alex up in the sky. "Could it be? People¡­ who have spiritual sense¡­ can stay awake inside their own spiritual sea?" Zexi seemed to understand what was happening. "Since the last guy I tried this on didn''t have a properly formed spiritual sea, he could only stay on the ground I guess," Zexi said. Alex didn''t bother saying anything to him. He had always been in the sky every time he had to fight a beast here. So it was likely that Zexi''s assumption of requiring a fully formed spiritual sea to be awake inside your own spiritual sea was correct. Alex wasted no more time and started spamming out attacks after attacks. He didn''t have many attacks he could do. The only ones he knew were the Iron Fist punch and palm of the sun. Every other one either required a sword or wasn''t attack-focused. Zexi frowned. He had spent a lot of spiritual energy just to get here and didn''t want to waste anymore. He still needed some to read Alex''s memories and then some to leave this place. He still sent out attacks of his own to stop the incoming attacks. He looked at the attacks he was blocking and frowned a little. ''Why does this kid''s attack have elemental affinity in them? We are inside his damn spiritual sea. He shouldn''t be able to use any energy,'' Zexi thought. "Just stop it, kid¡­ Huff¡­ do you really¡­ want to dry your sea... until nothing is left? Do you know¡­ how dangerous that is?" Zexi tried to stop Alex''s recklessness. Alex didn''t say anything but kept on attacking. "Look at your sea kid¡­ you are not using Qi¡­ you are using the sea to power your energy¡­ are you going to be so reckless?" he said. "What?" Alex finally stopped. He looked down at the turbulent sea and realized that it really had sunk down quite a bit. Until now, he had assumed that attacking inside the spiritual sea used Qi, like the outside, but now he had realized that that was not the case. However, he also knew that he couldn''t afford to stop right now. If this was a fight of Spiritual senses and seas, then he was going to fight as long as a single drop of the sea was left. He sent on more barrages of his attacks. Zexi was starting to get scared as well. ''Sh*t, I can''t let that happen. If he depletes my spiritual sea completely, I really might just die here,'' he thought. His spiritual sense was down to less than 10% of the original amount and that was dangerously low for where he was right now. He started using dodging maneuvers rather than straight-up trying to fight the incoming attacks. He kept tabs on Alex''s spiritual sea and watched it slowly drain away. Finally, when there was almost nothing, he attacked. Alex tried to send out another attack but nothing left his arms. It was then he realized, his spiritual sea had all but completely dried up and his life was now in the hands of the person before him. Chapter 352: Memories Huff Huff Both Alex and Zexi were huffing very heavily at this point. Alex''s mind was starting to be hazy and there were times when he wouldn''t be thinking of anything. He was on the edge of falling into unconsciousness, and he did not want that to happen. He tried to hold on for as long as possible. "You are quite tough¡­ for someone¡­ not in the True Realm," Zexi said. "You¡­ have shown so many¡­ amazing things¡­ to me that¡­ even I am curious¡­ how you got¡­ all of this." He flew directly up to Alex and finally laid his hands on Alex''s head. "Let''s see what you have hidden in here," he said. Alex suddenly felt something rip into his head once again. Only this time, it wasn''t as painful as before. This time I felt like someone was placing some sleeping gas on him, and he was slowly falling to sleep. "There it is¡­ the memories. Time to see what you know." Alex could hear Zexi speak even as he started to lose his mind. "N¡ªno¡­" he said weakly. "Kid, you are awake, right? Alright, time for you to listen to me. LISTEN TO WHAT I SAY!!" Zexi spoke. "How do you find the Spirit Cleansing Lilies?" he asked. Alex''s mind immediately went to the times he found the Spirit Cleansing Lilies. He remembered the feelings he got when he was close to the lilies. "What? Do you really just know which one to choose? That''s certainly unexpected," Zexi said while huffing in between. "That doesn''t help me. Alright, next question. Where did you find the many ingredients for alchemy?" Alex tried to not think about the stuff, but that was hard. Hearing the questions, his mind wandered to the answers, and Zexi saw all of it. Wen Cheng, the group of elders, flying to the southern forest, a formation full of different ingredients, a bunch of Spirit Cleansing lilies, the underground tunnel, the dead corpse on the side of the tunnel, the storage bags with the bunch of ingredients for Saint Rank pills. Zexi saw every single one of the images that Alex''s mind produced. "Damn, this kid wasn''t lying at all. He really did find them in the southern forest. What incredible luck," Zexi thought. "What about the talisman?" Zexi saw the images of the corpse and the talisman inside flash through his mind. He thought it was quite interesting, but didn''t think much of it "Now¡­ what about the sword?" he asked. Alex thought of the time he had to kill the Cat Monster and how it had thanked him and asked him to take care of her son. "What the hell? Th¡ª That was a Saint Realm beast. There is a saint realm beast in the southern forest? Who killed it? Why is a sword stuck there?" Zexi flustered for the first time when he saw that. "What happened to its child?" he asked. Alex tried his best, but couldn''t stop himself from thinking about Pearl. "Y¡ª You actually bonded with him. You bonded with the child of a Saint realm beast. This is big news. If I can get brother to take your beast, or¡­ if I can take your beast¡­ I can become the emperor instead." Suddenly, the memories that were flowing into him had something weird in them. "What''s that?" he thought and looked at it more carefully. "What is that blue thing?" he asked. Alex frowned when he heard that. He had just thought of logging out to show no more information and had decided that was a bad idea. Therefore, he had already lost his train of thought and was back to thinking about something else. "No, kid. Go back to that. What was that blue thing?" Zexi asked. Alex tried his best, but his mind still went to what he was thinking about. Forcing himself not to think about something only made him think about that thing more. "What is this?" Zexi asked when he saw the thing more clearly. It was like a blue glass hovering in the air and Alex was touching on it. "Se¡­ tting? What is that?" Zexi looked at more memories. "What can you do with it?" Memories started flooding Alex''s own thoughts. Zexi looked at every single one of them and was getting stunned. "This¡­ what is this? this person in the mirror... he looks just like what you did in the competition today. Are these your memories from today? No, can''t be. what are those things you are thinking of? those head armors and those coffins. what are those metal bricks with images?" Zexi shouted. "Are you from outside the Crimson Empire? Whose memories are these? game? real life? what are you thinking about?" Even as he was halfway fainting, he could hear every single word coming out of Zexi''s mouth very clearly. ''He¡­ can see my memories from real life¡­ inside the game?'' "What are those buildings made of? What is that design? What are those metal birds, or those giant metal snakes? Why are there so many metal carriages?" Alex''s mind wandered and showed more images. Zexi couldn''t comprehend what was happening in most of the memories he saw. He immediately lifted his arms and flew back. "Wh¡ª What are you? Is¡ª is this a clone? Are you controlling this clone from somewhere else?" Zexi asked. Alex was starting to have trouble thinking anymore. Now that Zexi left his head, it was getting a little too comfortable, and he was losing himself to sleep. He tried to keep his eyes open, but his eyelids were very hard to keep open. Huff Huff Zexi was breathing really heavily now. He had used nearly all of his spiritual sense when he looked at Alex''s memories. Now, he barely had any left, and was thus extremely tired, just like Alex. "It seems you might be too dangerous to keep alive," Zexi said and prepared to leave Alex. Once he left, he would surely kill him with his real body. Alex needed to stop him somehow. But at the condition he was in, that was simply impossible. He couldn''t even think properly at the moment, let alone act on any plans. ''N¡ªno¡­'' Alex couldn''t even voice his thought anymore. His eyes got blurry, and everything in front of him looked like a hazy mess. He could barely tell Zexi apart from the surrounding. ''I''m going to die, aren''t I?'' he thought. The last bit of the spiritual sea finally dried up completely. Just then, something happened. A shadow at the bottom of the dried lake suddenly moved and appeared right next to Zexi. Zexi was surprised and was too slow to dodge. Something landed on his chest and he slowly looked at what it was. "W¡ª What''s going on? How can¡ª" Before he could finish speaking, a yellow fog suddenly burst out from around the shadow-like figure and engulfed Zexi. Zexi cried at the top of his lungs, but he couldn''t stop the shadow-like figure at all. His consciousness was hanging by a thread, and now the thread was devoured by this yellow fog. Alex''s head barely registered what had happened in front of his. His hazy eyes couldn''t make up the details of what had just taken place. All he could see was something fuzzy followed by yellow light. ''Wha¡ª '' he tried to speak, but he couldn''t. He watched as the yellow light vanished from in front of him and he could no longer see any figure of Zexi anywhere. The shadow then moved a little towards him. Yellow fog appeared once more and this time, it devoured Alex as well. Chapter 353: Real It was in the middle of the night when Alex finally regained his consciousness. He looked at the dark sky, but he couldn''t see anything but fog in front of him. He slowly got up and looked around him. There was nothing but fog on either side as well. He couldn''t see anything else. The space had shifted once again. He felt his head, but it wasn''t hurting as much as it was last time. The headache and dizziness he was feeling were bearable. Then, he slowly started remembering the events of the things that took place in the spiritual sea. Alex remembered the shadowy figure, but couldn''t remember what it looked like. It was a barely dark figure that didn''t even seem like it was a silhouette. His vision was just that hazy at the time. Fear started creeping upon him. "W-What was that?" he thought. Yet no matter what he thought of, he didn''t have an answer to that question. It was then he remembered what Zexi had started shouting after seeing his images. "How could he see my memories from my real life? How does a game¡ª No, how can anything look at my memories in my real life?" Alex couldn''t understand. Does Eternal Cultivation have some method of hacking into one''s brain? "In the first place, this game is a weird one," he thought. "None of the other VR games taught in the classes ever have this much information, this many people with this many emotions." "Zexi said¡­ that I was a clone and that I am controlling this body from somewhere else¡­ could that be true?" Alex thought. From what he remembered about clones, you could be far away from it and still control it if your mind was connected to it, similar to the person who was controlling Song Zun. Even as he spoke the next few words, he couldn''t believe he was even thinking it. "Is this¡­ not a game?" Alex couldn''t wrap his head around the much information that he was provided. "Is this not a game? Is this world real? Are these people real? AM I REAL?" his eyes darted around as he asked himself those questions. "No, how is that even possible in the first place? How can such a world exist? No, it can''t be real," he tried to tell himself. While some things made sense, some didn''t at all. "No, don''t think about it right now. Focus on getting out of here," he tried to distract himself. He got up and started walking around aimlessly. However, no matter what he did, his thoughts came back to the same thing. Is this a game? He couldn''t find Zexi anywhere. He didn''t know if he was still hanging around somewhere waiting to sneak attack him or had left the formation already, but he knew that he had taken a bit of damage for sure. Even if it was simply mental damage. Losing most of your mind inside another person''s head couldn''t really be good for you. He wandered around with many thoughts in his mind until he hit something and fell down. "What''s that?" he stood up to check. He sent out his divine sense, and when he finally saw it, he couldn''t help but suck in a large amount of air. In front of him, on the ground, was the unconscious Zexi. "What should I do? Should I... Yes, I¡ª I should kill him," Alex made up his mind when he saw Zexi lay down there. He send out his spiritual sense to make sure he wasn''t awake and faking it. He tried to check the rhythm of his breathing to see if that would give away anything, but there was nothing. No breathing, no rhythm. "He-He''s dead." Alex didn''t know what to do with that information. The person that had given him so much trouble, was dead in front of him. He didn''t feel sad for him, or happy as one would expect, only confusion. He was certainly relieved that he wouldn''t have to worry about him anymore, yet he couldn''t understand how he could possibly die. "Could it be¡­ that yellow light?" Alex thought. Every time he ate a monster core and was sent to his spiritual sea to fight the monster, there was always that yellow fog that appeared and consumed the monster once it died. "Could it be¡­ that fog consumed him¡­ and killed him as well?" Alex was flabbergasted when he came up with that conclusion. "So¡­ in a way, I killed him," he thought. He slumped onto the ground unable to think of anything else. There was too much information being thrown his way today. ''I should¡­ just log out.'' Alex opened his eyes back in his room. It was the middle of the night, and his light was on. He stood up and walked up to the mirror. He looked at his face and touched the mirror. ''This feels the same as in the game¡­ is it really not a game?'' Alex thought. After using the helmet for an entire day, he needs to go use the bathroom. Even in the bathroom, he couldn''t stop the thoughts from pouring out into his mind. Was it a game? Was it real? If it was a game, how were his memories accessed? If it was real¡­. How? He got out of the bathroom and looked at the helmet. "Everything will be answered if I can look at what is inside of it," Alex thought and went out to get a bunch of tools to open the thing. He got some screwdrivers, a hammer, a plier, few scissors, and a knife, and started prying it open. He opened a video on his laptop and learned how to do it. After half an hour and prying, he finally got the helmet to open up. However, he wasn''t happy when he realized what the parts inside the helmets were. Nothing there made sense to him at all. He picked up the chip that was hidden inside the helmet and looked at it carefully. Suddenly, he noticed something on the chip that made his eyes go wide. Chapter 354: Chip "My dear wife, do you want me to ask the servants to bring you anything else?" A young man who was in a lotus position asked the girl next to him. "Longlong, don''t call ''dear wife'', just say, dear or wife. I feel embarrassed when you say the whole thing. "Also, I don''t need anything, I''m done cultivating for the night. I will go take a nap. You go do whatever it is that you do that help you make so much money," the girl said. "Haha, don''t worry dear. I will tell you where the money comes from in due time. I just hope you won''t be surprised at that time," the man said. The girl walked up to him and gave him a deep kiss before walking away, leaving behind a fragrant smell of her perfume. The man looked at his wife with loving eyes before standing up and walking the other way, out of the room. The girl got onto the best and closed her eyes. KADAK The doors to the capsule opened and out walked Hannah. She freshened up a bit and went outside to eat her only meal of the day nowadays, breakfast. "¡­. So, when these lines form, they must be at equal angles from each other. The closer they are to each other, the better they will perform." Hannah could hear a voice coming from the kitchen. ''A man?'' she thought and walked into the kitchen only to find Alex very intensely watching a video on his phone. "What are you doing watching videos so early in the morning? Are you that excited about going to your classes today?" Hannah asked. "My¡­ what?" Alex paused the video and looked at Hannah in surprise. "Your classes. You do remember they start from today right?" Hannah reminded him. "Huh? What''s today?" he quickly checked his phone and realized that it was Monday today. "Urghh¡­ I haven''t slept since I woke up at 2 pm. So, I might have to skip today''s school," he said. "What? Why did you wake up at 2 pm? Why didn''t you just sleep?" Hannah asked. She then saw something on the table and picked it up. She looked at the green object with golden lines on it. "Is this an electronic chip?" she asked. "Where did you get it?" "Does it look like a chip to you, sister?" he asked. "Yes. Isn''t it a chip?" she asked. "I don''t know. It came from the VR helmet. I opened it up and saw this inside," Alex said. "You broke open your helmet? Why?" Hannah asked. "I wanted to see what was inside¡ª No, I needed to see what was inside," Alex said. He took the chip from Hannah''s hands and flipped it around to show her something. "Check this out, sister. Do you see anything here?" he asked. "Umm¡­ I don''t know what I am looking for. I just see a bunch of lines, that''s it. You should know I don''t have much talent in electronics," Hannah said. "Not electronics sister. Imagine you find it inside the game, what will you think of it?" Alex asked. Hannah took the chip once more and looked at the lines. Still, she couldn''t tell anything. Alex decided to help here. "Look here, sister." He traced his finger along a golden line in the chip such that it made a symmetrical figure as a whole. "Doesn''t it look like a formation to you?" he asked. "A formation? Like in the game? I''m sorry, I don''t really know much about these things. I spend my days in the game doing normal cultivation and training," Hannah said. "Also, aren''t you an alchemist? Why do you know about formations?" "I¡­ don''t really know about formations. I''ve only seen a few blueprints and this one looks like a formation," Alex said. "Don''t tell me you broke your helmet to look at an easter egg," Hannah said in surprise. "What? Of course not. I was trying to find out if¡­" Alex stopped. "Find out if what?" Hannah asked. "You will laugh at me," Alex said. "No I won''t, just tell me," Hannah said. "I was just trying to find out if the game¡­ was actually real," Alex said. "Pfft. Hahaha, you sound like one of those crazy conspiracy theorists. Did they catch your attention too?" Hannah asked. "Conspiracy theorists? There are people who believe that the game is real?" Alex asked. "Yeah, there have been people like that ever since the game started," Hannah said and looked at Alex weirdly. "Did you not learn from them?" "No. Something happened in the game that made me think¡­ that it might be more than just a game," Alex said. "What happened?" Hannah asked seriously. "An enemy of mine read my memories¡­ and saw the real world for some reason," he said. "So¡­ I am starting to believe that helmet could either read our memories or the world we go to in the game is real." Hannah looked at him for a second and shook her head. "You said you were awake since 2 pm right? You need sleep." Alex thought of explaining it to her more, but then he saw her disapproving face. ''She doesn''t believe me. Hah, I wouldn''t believe myself too,'' he thought. "Alright, I will go sleep. See you later." Alex stood up and walked away. Hannah simply shook her head once again and sighed. Soon she forgot about what they were talking about and got herself a breakfast. Alex went to his room and fell onto the bed. The broken pieces of the helmet were on the side of the bed, and he didn''t know how to fix it back. He tried to sleep, but more and more questions popped into his head. "If I were to believe that that was a formation, then the helmet should be something like part of a larger formation, or a separate artifact, right?" he thought. "Formations¡ª I need to learn about them more to figure out what that is about," he thought. "I can''t sleep right now. I need to know more." He got up from the bed and walked into the capsule before logging back in. Chapter 355: Serene Earth Qi Absorption Method Alex opened his eyes back in the foggy area. He sat up and immediately all the information he never had in the real world was there for him to use. ''This is really weird,'' he thought. He was starting to question the things that he had been ignoring as part of the game. "Wait, maybe I am getting ahead of myself. What if the developers just learned how to access memories of mine. That sounds a lot more plausible than there existing another world that I was being sent to," Alex thought. Despite firmly believing in his idea about this being a real world, he wanted to make sure there weren''t any other pieces of information that he had been unknowingly ignoring. "That chip¡­ could it be what looked into my memories?" he wondered. That didn''t sound wrong to him. Maybe the developers of the helmet and the capsule were just that bright that they managed to do what no one else had been able to replicate since. "It did have formation-like patterns. Maybe there is a formation out there that can look into memo¡ª Wait, no. What am I thinking? If it only looked into my memories, then formations as a thing should not exist out of the game." "So, there should have been some other methods in which they are accessing my memories," Alex thought. "Let''s forget about them accessing my memories; how am I accessing my memories from the game? How come I only remember these when I play the game?" he thought. "Nothing makes sense if I compare these things to what I have been told about Virtual Reality as a concept¡­ that is if I believe this to just be virtual reality or a game. If I were to think of this as a real-world¡­ then the formation in my world must be sending me to this body and I am accessing the memories of this body," Alex thought. Clones were a thing he didn''t know much about, but he had seen cases of it. Song Zun''s body was being used by someone else. Maybe, that was the same with him. "I did log in to the game for the first time inside a forest. Was there a corpse in there just ready for me to steal?" he wondered. "Aside from that, what about the talents of the body? Were they the talents of the owner of this body and I just got lucky?" Alex thought. Alex sent his spiritual sense all over his body, but there was not a single sign that he was a walking corpse. "Wait no, that wouldn''t make sense. I¡­ I made this body. While I used random preferences, there should be others whose body matches how they look like in real life. There is no way they were a corpse before that¡­ right?" "Or maybe I am just that unknown about clones and there are other ways to change them as a corpse," Alex thought. He was getting contradicting answers from himself. One thought he had would pretty much prove to him that this all was real, and then in the next moment he would have thoughts that told him that there was a much simpler explanation for all these that didn''t include this all being real. "Urghh¡­ I might get a headache at this rate. Sigh, let''s stop thinking about those things for now. Let me see what formations there are that matches the design in the chip," Alex thought. He then sat down and started looking through all the blueprints to understand the design and what the designs were meant for. He not only wanted to find similar-looking formations but also check what it was that the formation did. Unfortunately, of the formation blueprints he had, not a single one of them looked anything like the pattern from the chip. He really tried to find similarities that might have been hidden in the formations, but not one of them matched at all. "Well, that was a failure. Am I really wrong?" he wondered. Alex was starting to doubt himself when he thought of something. "Haha, that should help me put a nail in the coffin." Alex stood up and shouted, "Cultivation Method." Suddenly, a blue panel appeared in front of him. It had been ages since he had opened this panel. There was a single book in this panel and he quickly opened it. The Starry Sky Qi Absorption Method. He had learned this on the first day of playing the game and had not checked it ever since. He clicked on the book and tried to see if there was anything there so that he could reread that book. Unfortunately, he couldn''t. "Wait a second," he thought. "Maybe there is a cultivation method on the outside," Alex thought. He immediately logged out and looked for a cultivation method. It took him a while, but he managed to find an earth-grade cultivation method, the entire thing. However, it was mostly just squiggly lines from Alex''s perspective. He could understand a few words, but not everything. "It seems they copied the original thing without translating it," he thought He knew He took his laptop next to the capsule and logged in. As soon as he was in, Alex tried to learn the language of the cultivation world, rather than try to translate the book one by one. Once he felt like he knew a lot, he got out and translated as much as he could. Once he was done with the first iterations, he remembered what he missed and went back to learn some more. He repeated it for nearly 3 hours until he fully learned a new language in the real world. "That should definitely not be possible, "Alex thought. This just went to add more evidence to his theory. After another hour or so, he was finally done fully translating the whole book. The cultivation method was called the Serene Earth Qi Absorption technique. It was around 5 thousand words long and could be read by Alex in under 10 minutes. Alex sat on his bed with the cultivation method in his hand. "Let''s do this." Chapter 356: Formations Alex started reading the translated book. As he read on, he realized that it wasn''t as easy as he had expected it to be. He didn''t have the same talent as the in-game character and thus failed to remember much of the 5000 words the first time through. Once he was done, he once again started to read the book from the start. He had to read it over and over to understand what was being told throughout the book. "No wonder the people would rather just click the ''Learn'' button. If your talent is like this, I assume it will take forever for them to learn anything," Alex thought. After 7 or 8 times of fully reading the book, did he finally understand what the book was trying to say? It spoke of a way to pull in Qi from the surroundings and introduce it to your body. He sat cross-legged in a lotus position and couldn''t wait to start cultivating. Unlike in the game, he couldn''t just start to breathe slowly and hope the method worked. He would have to actively do. "Here goes nothing," he thought and took a deep breath. Then, he started to do what he felt was moving something along his ''meridians''. He felt a tingling sensation in his body, but couldn''t tell if that was because he felt excited or he was genuinely taking in Qi. After a while, he thought he felt something weird with his body. He happily thought he had succeeded, but turned out it was just a placebo effect. Just because he wanted it to be true, he saw results in places there were none. He ''cultivated'' for another 15 to 20 minutes, only to realize how stupid he was being. "Is it really possible that I am overthinking it all and this is all a coincidence?" Alex wondered. Nothing he did was working. There was 0 evidence proving his claims. "Oh, Sister said something about those conspiracy theorists. I should check it out," he thought and opened his laptop. He searched through the internet to find information about these people that believed the game to be a real word. Unfortunately, it really turned out to be a bunch of conspiracy theorists. They barely gave any evidence towards their claims and all they kept on saying was stuff like ''don''t believe them'' or ''stop being a sheep'', and also the most repeated one of all, ''think for yourself.'' Alex was severely disappointed. He was back to square one where he had a theory of the game being real, but no way to prove it. He had minor evidence, but nothing concrete that could explain anything in full. The only thing that could possibly explain was¡ª "The chip," His eyes shined as he thought of it. "I didn''t find any information regarding similar formations, but that doesn''t mean I won''t be able to find information if I read about formations themselves." He immediately went back into the capsule and logged in to the game. The fog was still the same and would likely stay that way until the formation was broken or it naturally ended. With nothing else to do, he sat down in a lotus position and started thinking of the various stuff he read about formations till now. He started to understand how formations worked. Until now, he had read many books about formations but hadn''t stopped a single moment to try and understand what they meant. Today was going to be his first major step towards learning about formations. There were 3 things required when making a formation. The design of the formation, the metal that is used to make the design, and the source of energy to run the formation. The design of the formation was the actual image of the formation, made using lines that could do different things depending on what the metal used to carve was made out of, and what sort of energy was being passed along. The designs themselves were simple lines that were connected to each other using the different points at which they met. For example, one could use 5 formation flags and have a formation where the shape was a pentagon and have its function be something. The same formation flags could be used to make a pentagram, and its function would be something else. Of course, formations were not this simple. You couldn''t change how it looked and have it function in a certain manner. It also needed an appropriate formation flag or a metal plate on top of which it would be drawn. These were things that were made by artifact masters. Depending on the metal in use, there would be different results. Lastly, the thing required to run the whole thing was the energy. Most of the time, it was just a simple spirit stone, but other times, it could be rare materials or monster cores. "A metal plate, with the formation lines carved on it. The first two requirements certainly are there," Alex thought when he remembered the chip. "As for the energy¡­ could it be the connection to the wall that we have to plug the helmet too?" he wondered. After all, as long as an energy source was there, a formation should be able to function quite properly. "Am I¡­ right?" he started thinking. In the end, no matter what he thought, he couldn''t deny the fact that there were just too many coincidences for him to ignore. Still, he decided to ignore it all for now. Ning learned what he could about the formations until it was dark again and logged out. He had classes tomorrow, so he decided to make sure he had done all of his homework and stuff. Also, he had been working the whole day today, so he was incredibly hungry and needed to eat as well. So, he went to the kitchen and prepared a delicious meal for himself. Hannah wasn''t going to wake up until tomorrow morning, so he only prepared it for himself. After that, he logged back into the game. Chapter 357: Post Battle Haul Alex logged back into the game, and the first thing he told himself was to forget about everything. "Forget about the game being real, forget about formations, forget about everything for now. The first thing I should be doing is finding myself a way out of this formation," Alex spoke out loud. Suddenly, the earth opened up and devoured him. He exited out of it when he hit the barrier underground. He was once again on the edge of the formation. "Where are the formation flags?" Alex wondered. He tried searching for it, but it was incredibly well hidden. Alex even sent out his spiritual sense to search for it in near trees but there were none. With no choice, he started hitting the wall. He hit it with every power he had, but no matter how strong Alex was, the barrier didn''t stop working at all. In fact, it didn''t even fluctuate. "This must be a True rank barrier as well. Damn that Zexi, why did he set up such a strong barrier?" Alex wondered. "Speaking of which, where did his body go. I need to get back my stuff." Alex started running around aimlessly in the fog. However, unlike yesterday, he couldn''t find the corpse as fast as he wanted to. It took him nearly half an hour of wandering aimlessly did he finally find the corpse. The skin looked incredibly pale and a strange scent was starting to rise from Zexi''s body. "Sh*t, it is already decomposing. I need to bury it," Alex thought. He took all of the storage bags from Zexi''s body and took out his steel sword before stabbing it onto the ground to dig it. He stabbed the ground a few times before he took out the dirt with his own hands. After doing that for 10 minutes, he now had a large enough hole to fully bury Zexi. Once he was done burying Zexi, he looked at his own storage bags first. Everything he owned was there, with nothing being used, except for a single thing. "Hmm¡­ the Ebony Corundum Stiletto is missing," Alex thought. Last he remembered, Zexi had stabbed it on the ground and hadn''t bothered retaking it at the time. "He was more focused on looking at my memories," Alex thought. "Sigh, I guess I will have to find it later on. For now, let''s see what a High Prince owns," Alex thought and took out his storage bags. When Alex checked inside, the first thing he noticed was the tens of hundreds of True Spirit Stones. "I¡ª I''m rich," Alex shouted out in excitement. There were close to half a million dollars in the form of True Spirit stones in there. The more he looked through the more stuff he found. Different weapons, armors, artifacts. There was even a boat inside of it. If he sold these, he could also gain a lot of money from them. He then came across a piece of paper. When he checked inside it, he realized it was an instruction on house to set up the Spirit Disorienting formation. "What? 50 meters? That''s absurd," Alex thought when he read it. The formation was told to be set such that the formation flags were each 50 meters away from where the formation actually started. Also, the True spirit stones required to power these things were also around these formation flags. "Urgh¡­ so they aren''t next to the formation huh? Does that mean I will have to wait here for another 30 days?" Alex questioned himself. The thought of this was quite terrifying. Being in the formation for over a month was not something he wanted to do. "Maybe master will come to find me once they realize I am missing. Maybe they are already searching for me. I hope I am not very far away from them," Alex hoped. "I wonder if senior sister went back to fight that guy. I hope she won if she did. Although, maybe they stopped the competition after such a tragedy that happened," he thought. He sighed and went back to checking the storage bags of Zexi. The other things he found in there were some pills and talismans that were mostly useless for Alex aside from a few of them. "Ugh¡­ I doubt I can even reveal any of these items in public. They will probably kill me if they found out their High Prince is missing and I have his items," Alex thought. "I hope he didn''t have a fami¡ª wait, the Royal family is his family. Well, I hope he didn''t have a wife a child," Alex thought. He hated Zexi, but he wasn''t heartless enough to wish badly for his family too. "Although I remember master saying that the third brother of the emperor wasn''t married. That''s good," Alex thought and went back to searching the bag. The next thing he found was a white, oval ball. He took it out and held it. It didn''t take him very long to realize that it was an egg. A notification popped up over the egg to tell him what the egg was of, but even without it, he would''ve known. The black splotches on its shell were a dead giveaway. "The Emerald Lizard''s egg. I remember the auctioneer saying that the lizard has a high chance of entering the True realm and a minor chance of reaching the Saint realm." "This is a good find," Alex thought. He didn''t require a beast for himself, but he could certainly give this to somebody else he cared about. He put that aside and started searching for more stuff until he found something that was interesting. "Oh, what''s this?" Alex thought and took out a woodblock. Then his eyes started shining brightly. "Hahaha, No way!" he thought. He remembered the auction event very clearly and remembered every single item that was sold there. This was something he had wanted, perhaps just as much as his armor right now, but had failed to get it because Zexi had outbid him without any hesitation. The woodblock was actually a wooden box that housed alchemy ingredients. Alex quickly opened it and looked inside. Just as he had expected, there it was. Inside was a dark-blue flower that was shaped like a lotus. Alex''s eyes shined and he spoke in excitement. "The Umbra Lotus." Chapter 358: No Fire Alex quickly searched through his mind to look through his memories and see if there was any information on Umbra Lotus aside from the auction house. And there was, but nothing explicit. He had actually learned the same thing from the auction as well. From what he had learned in the library, the Umbra Lotus was a rare flower with extremely high Yin content. Due to the amount of Yin in it, it could be used for Alchemy, Artifacts, Formations, and many other places. Alex happily kept it inside his storage bag. He checked the rest of the bag and found nothing important other than a bunch of raw materials for artifacts and formations. With nothing else to look for anymore, he decided to cultivate for the rest of the night. "Come out Pearl," he said and brought Pear out of the tattoo. In a white flash of light, Pearl appeared in front of him. Alex immediately grabbed Pearl in fear that he would lose him in this formation. "Alright, stay inside my robe and we will cultivate, okay?" Alex said. "Meow," Pearl meowed back in agreement. And so, the human-beast duo cultivated throughout the night. The night was peaceful. The space changed multiple times, but they were never separated. Not only that, nothing entered the formation either. As such, this was one of the best places to cultivate throughout the night. Alex woke up early in the morning around 7 am. Once he woke up, he asked Pearl to go back into the tattoo. Alex then decided to learn about formations about an hour longer before he logged out of the game. He freshened up and went out to have his meal. Hannah was out already as well. "Hey, Alex. Come sit. I need to talk to you about something," she said. "Oh, what is it?" she asked. "You see, I was thinking of getting a car for ourselves and I am going to go sign up for some driving lessons. Do you want to come to learn as well?" Hannah asked. Alex thought for a moment and remembered he didn''t have anything to do for the next month inside the game. "What time is it at?" he asked. "From 4 pm to 6 pm. It''s at a driving range outside the city," Hannah said. "Sure, count me in then," Alex replied. After having their breakfast, they left the house and walked out to the front to meet Sarah and Emily who were waiting for them in Sarah''s car. "Took you guys long enough. Come quick, or we''ll be late," Sarah said. "Geez, it''s only half-past 10. We still have 30 minutes," Hannah said as she got into the car. Alex got into the car as well and greeted the two girls. "I heard you guys accepted our offer. When do you plan on moving in?" Alex asked. "Upcoming¡­ Saturday maybe? Sunday?" Sarah gave some guesses. "It will be Sunday," Emily said. "After our other two roommates leave on Saturday, we will then take care of the rest of the things and move in on Sunday," Emily said. "Good! Good!" Hannah said. They quickly reached the school and got off. Each of them made their way to their own classes. "Alex, I will message you around 3 pm. We will have to go together to sign up," Hannah said. "Sure, sister," Alex said and went to his classes. It felt weird for him to go back to classes after so many days of holidays. Even the friends he had made in his classes were showing the same symptoms. He looked around his class in surprise. There were barely 30 people in a class that should have had 100 people in it. It seemed people didn''t plan on returning for a while. The professor walked in and sighed when she saw the class, but still taught what she had come to teach. After all 3 of his classes were done, Alex walked out. His phone vibrated with Hannah''s message and he quickly found her on the west gate of the university. They got into a cab and went out of the city to the driving range to learn. For the next 2 hours, they registered themselves and took a small lesson about the various things they needed to learn before they even got into a car. After 2 hours had passed, both Hannah and Alex went to a small restaurant to eat some food and caught a cab back home. "I don''t need to make anything for today right?" Hannah asked. "I doubt so. I''m full right now. Given that I will spend the next 12 hours in the capsule, I probably won''t even need to eat tomorrow morning," Alex said. "Very well then. I will see you tomorrow. Good Night," Hannah said and went to her room. "Good Night sister." Alex went back to his room and logged back into the game. Inside the game, he once again remembered he had literally nothing to do. "Urghh¡­ I want to make some pills," Alex thought. However, there was no fire in here to help him at all, and he himself couldn''t make fires either. There was no tree around him either. For some reason, the inside of the barrier was an open space. Alex even wondered if there were more than just two formations used here. Once could be a formation that expanded the size of where he was. He had an idea. He could use some of the wooden boxes and rub them together to make a fire. That would totally work. But then, he saw the problem with that. "I can''t sustain the fire at all. I will need to keep adding boxes to keep the fire going. Keeping it lit with Qi is just not a viable option. I will need to worry about the fire more than I do about the pills," Alex thought. "Sigh, are there other ways to make fires?" he wondered. It was then he remembered something. Something he hadn''t interacted with for a long time. "Hmm¡­ that could work." Chapter 359: Making Formations SCRATCH SCRATCH Alex used part of his sword to carve away the land underneath him. There were 5 formation flags stuck on 5 different locations next to him. With the formation flags, the formation would work just fine. However, Alex wasn''t used to making formations, so he wanted to make sure the flags were in the correct place by carving away a physical path and see how straight his lines were. As expected, the resulting path was very crooked. The formation wasn''t as symmetric as he wanted to make it. So, once he was done. He removed the formation flags from their original location and replaced them on the ground a little left of it. He did the same with 2 other flags and once he was done, he started carving away the ground once more. All the while, he had his Qi on the flags, and would something happen, he would immediately pull back the flags towards himself. He was really worried about space shifting on him while he was trying this out and losing his formation flags. The formation was a simple Qi Gathering formation that required 5 spirit stones to function and would gather Qi from the surrounding and the spirit stones into the formation. He had bought it back in the capital on his first day and hadn''t had the chance to check it out until now. Alex didn''t want to use it to get more Qi during his cultivation, although he wouldn''t reject that. He simply just wanted to see if he could have a formation work. Once he was sure the formation flags were at the best place he could manage, for now, he placed a spirit stone each next to the 5 formation flags and walked into the middle. "So, what do I do to activate it?" he thought and checked the instructions. "Once I am done preparing the formation, just pour Qi into one of the formation flags. I see." Alex put away the instruction and sent out Qi towards one of the flags. The Qi entered the flag and suddenly, the flag started buzzing. The spirit stone next to it lit up slightly as well. As soon as that happened, the rest of the flags started buzzing and the spirit stones started glowing as well. Alex could feel a slight disturbance in the Qi around him as the density of it started getting higher. "It''s working," he said in both shock and amazement. He had failed his first alchemy but somehow managed to make a formation work on the first time. ''Sigh, that''s probably because I am using flags instead of making my own formation,'' Ning thought to himself. He wasn''t sure how sects taught formation, but it was unlikely they taught the students to use flags from the get-go. It was like maths. You didn''t teach a kid to use a calculator at the start. They had to start with learning the numbers and adding them up in their fingers. "I guess I will have to meet some people with actual formation knowledge and ask them these questions," he thought. Suddenly, the space twisted, and he was in someplace else. "Sigh, I was afraid this would happen. At least I was done with it," Alex thought. Now that he knew he could make formations work, it was time for him to do the actual thing he was planning on doing. He was going to carve away metal plates so that he could make a formation it and convert it into a fire lantern, just like the one he used to practice within the outer sect mountain of Hong Wu Sect. There were too many problems and too many hopes with this endeavor of his. First of all, he didn''t know if the shape of the carvings he remembered was all that it was to the formation. He didn''t have any blueprints on common rank fire formations that only he could activate with his Common Qi. Thus, he had no way of telling what was important and what was not. Secondly, different metals were required for different formations. He had a few metal plates in his storage bag thanks to Zexi, but none of them were carved and he didn''t know if they were the right metals. Lastly, Alex had no idea what it used as an energy source. Still, he had hoped. He remembered the shape of the carvings quite clearly, so if that was all there was to it, he could successfully carve it onto the metal plate. He also remembered the color of the metal plate and thus was quite confident that this was the same metal. From his information, this metal was used in a lot of formations, so he was quite hopeful because of that too. Finally, he remembered that the formation in the lanterns was powered by the sect running formation, which was powered by the spirit vein underneath the Hong Wu Sect. Since Spirit Veins were what eventually became spirit stone caves, he was pretty sure he could substitute the energy source with spirit stone. Once he thought of all of this, he brought out a metal plate and started cutting it. He placed his steel sword in between in feet and started using it to cut the plate into a circular shape. The plate came out to be with rough edges which he smoothed out as much as he could. After that, he picked up the sword and used it as a carving pen. He slowly started etching in the pattern. He didn''t have the same error-finding ability that he had with alchemy one he had a recipe with him. Heck, he didn''t even have a blueprint for what he was doing, so he never knew if he had made a mistake. Also, there was no way of undoing erroneous carvings with the metal plates, unlike the flags which he could just reposition. Still, he kept on carving away and in the end, it came out looking fine. He placed it on top of two spirit stones, and once everything was ready, he poured Qi into it. Chapter 360: The Pattern for Fire The plate surprisingly accepted his Qi. "It''s working," he said excitedly. Although he had done the best he could, he still knew that it was far from being decent. He waited for the fire to light up, but for some reason, nothing happened. No spark, no shine, or any other sign aside from the fact that it graciously accepted his Qi. "Did something go wrong?" Alex wondered. "It''s working for sure¡­ but it''s not producing fire. Is the efficiency too low?" But that didn''t make sense. From what he understood regarding formations, even when they had terrible efficiency, they would at the very least work, albeit horribly. "Then does that mean the formation was never meant to light a fire? No, it did make fire," Alex thought. "Am I missing something?" He started thinking. The formation plate looked like a worse version of the plate in the sect. It had too many rough edges and the circle wasn''t very good looking either. But none of those should have ever been a problem. After a few minutes of thinking, he remembered something that he had overlooked in his initial assumption. "This formation doesn''t just light fire, it communicates to the sect running formation on when to light up and when to shut down." "Meaning, there is a sort of message receiving formation etched on here as well," Alex thought. "That means the fire-producing formation is only part of it, and I need to find it." Of the 20 or so formation blueprint he had with him, only one of them had anything to do with communications. There was also another one that produced fire amongst other things. They were True Rank formations, so it was useless for him right now. However, he could cross-check these two to figure out what pattern helped in creating fire and what helped in communicating. So, he got to work. He spent the next dozens of minutes thinking about how those two formations worked. He made a mental image of the patterns and tried to see what lines overlapped and wrote that into a new piece of paper. He found a part of a pattern from the communication formation that matched part of this formation, and he also found a part of a pattern from the fire formation that matched part of this formation. When he put those two patterns side by side, they were completely different. When put together, they made 95% of the original pattern. There were some additional lines here and there to make the pattern work together. "So, if I just take this portion of the formation, it can work?" he wondered. He brought out another plate of the same kind and started cutting it with his sword to make it a circle. The space shifted, but he didn''t let that bother him. After a few minutes, he managed to make the plate a much better circle than the previous one. He then started carving out the new pattern. It took him a while, but he managed to make a somewhat decent pattern with his sword. "Phew! I hope this one works." He put the plate on top of two-spirit stones and took a deep breath before sending in some Qi to activate it. He could tell that his Qi was filling the gap made due to the pattern and once all of the gaps were filled, a spark appeared. Suddenly, the spark changed into a small ember which turned bigger and bigger until it was a massive ball of flame around the size of a baseball. The light from the fire reflected in his eyes, but it couldn''t outshine the happiness that was gleaming in his eyes. "YES! I did it! Hahaha. I did it," he started shouting into the night. Not only had he make a working formation, he actually made it by understanding patterns and extrapolating information from other formations. There was no way he wouldn''t be very happy after that. "I wonder how good it is. High Mortal Grade? Mid Earth Grade? I can''t believe I actually made it, Haha," he jumped up and down with giddiness. Finally, he calmed down and looked at the flame. Did nothing but wait now. Around 2 hours went by and finally, the flame started dying, before completely extinguishing in a couple of minutes. "Hmm¡­ so it''s 1 hour per spirit stone?" Alex wondered. He picked up the plate and looked at the dull spirit stones underneath. They were completely empty. "Let''s try making a pill now," Alex thought. That was the entire reason he made that formation in the first place. He dug up a small hole and placed some spirit stones on it. Then, he placed the plate on top of it. Finally, he put the cauldron on top of the hole. Once everything was set, he put Qi into the formation and started it. The formation started burning at a steady rate. Although the fire wasn''t the hottest he had seen, Alex could work with that. He decided to make a simple pill that replenished one''s Qi. Once the cauldron was hot and ready, he put in the ingredients and started making the pill. Just as he put the first ingredient, the space shifted. "Oh No!" he thought. However, for some reason, the cauldron and the fire didn''t disappear. It was as if instead of him, that specific land was shifted. He wanted to learn why but had no time right now. He focused on the pill and added the required ingredients. After 20 or so minutes, he finished making the pill. When the pill came out, he was happy to see that he had successfully managed to make a 41% pill with neutral energy despite the current situation. "Once I get used to the place, I should be able to make better pills," he thought and got cooking. Over the course of the night, he switched the spirit stones twice before he was done making pills and it was time to log out to go to his classes. Chapter 361: Training "Arghh! Finally done," Alex thought as he put away the cauldron and the formation plate. The spirit stone behind the formation plate had gone dull after losing all of its Qi. He picked it up and threw it away after realizing it was worthless to him now. Suddenly, the space shifted around once more. This time, the hole he had been standing on top of was gone. "What the?" Alex thought. "Why is the hole gone? It was there with me the whole night through multiple space shifts." He wondered if he missed anything and took out the instruction to the formation he had inside his storage. After reading more than what he had last time, he noticed something that he had overlooked that time. "Oh, no wonder. It targets Qi signature rather than actual people caught inside. So anything with my Qi signature and a little more around them all gets teleported around randomly." "So that''s why the hole went around with us. The formation holds my Qi signature even after releasing it huh?" Alex thought. He looked at his bag with a bit of happiness when he realized that he had successfully managed to make nearly 40 pills, all of which hovered around high Earth Grade and some of which even crossed the Heaven Grade threshold. "Now that I know alchemy works, I should start learning how pills actually work. I need to learn about alchemy on a fundamental level," he thought. He decided to try and understand formations and pills for a while longer before logging out to get his food. Afterward, he went to his university and learned whatever the teacher taught them with barely any students. There were more than yesterday, but still half of them were missing. Even the teacher was flabbergasted when he saw this. "What are your friends doing? Are they still at home playing the game? Do they think they can make a living by just playing that game?" he said angrily. "Not to mention, there is a field trip coming up very soon for your first years. Tell your friends to come back to classes so that they don''t miss it," the teacher said. "Professor, Where are we going?" a student asked. "I don''t know. There are still a few more days before the faculty will decide on the location. Just look out for it," the professor replied. ''A field trip huh? I should be able to make it,'' Alex thought. After the classes ended, he and Hannah went to the driving range. Along the way, he told her about the field trip he had coming up soon. "Oh, yeah, we had those too. I hated that we had to wait until halfway through the second semester to even go through," Hannah said. "Oh, why?" he asked. "I don''t know? Maybe they don''t like setting field trips every 6 months, so they do it every year," Hannah said. "Where did you guys go?" Alex asked. "Umm¡­ I think it was¡­ Ember wood city? Wait no, that was the second year. First-year we went to a crappy museum out in Evergreen city in the east," Hannah said. "You guys should be different. Maybe they will take you someplace quite fun," Hannah said. Alex was hopeful. Although it would be a lie to say he hadn''t experience going to another city with other similar-aged people, that was only in the game. It would be the first time for him. "Urghh¡­ why is the university still open right now? Nobody is coming," Hannah complained. "You got missing students too, sister? My class has more than half missing too," Alex said. "More than half? That''s nothing. We have over 90 students absent in a class with 110 students. It''s practically a ghost town in there," Hannah said. "Woah, is the game causing that much problem for your guys?" Alex asked. "Yes, and no. Did you know my university class will end in 3 weeks?" Hannah asked. "In 3 weeks? I knew it was getting close, but not so close," Alex said. "Yeah. And since there are only 3 weeks left and all of our assignments are complete, we just want the classes to end already," Hannah said. They talked the rest of the way through and got to learn how to drive a car for the next 2 hours. After that, they had dinner nearby and caught a cab home. After returning back, they both went to their respective room and logged back into the game. After Alex appeared back in the game at around 7 pm, he didn''t immediately start to make pills or learn about formations. There was another thing he had been neglecting for a while now. That was cultivation. "Come out, Pearl." Pearl came out in a flash of white light. "Meow!" Alex took in a deep breath and sucked in all of his cultivation base to only have his body cultivation left. "Let''s fight," he said. Pearl was confused for a second, but followed his order immediately and started attacking. Alex didn''t do anything else and just fought for the next 3 to 4 hours. Pearl hadn''t fought for over 2 weeks, so he was very happy to get to fight right now. Without his cultivation, Alex''s strength was pretty much the same as Pearl''s. After cultivating for a while, Alex''s body strength would always match the same as Pearl''s. So, if he ever wanted to know how strong his physical body was, he could just check Pearl''s status page for the most part. Alex felt like he could break through once more since he had enough days for his cultivation base to be stable again. So, he brought out a monster core and ate it. Surprisingly, there was nothing for him to fight and he easily got all of the Qi. "That was convenient. If only that happened every time, I could have Pearl start eating the monster cores too," Alex thought. "Here, eat this for now," Alex said and tossed a bone tempering realm monster core to Pearl. Pearl jumped and caught the core in his mouth, and at that exact moment, space shifted again. Chapter 362: Alchemy Elemental Interaction "No!" Alex screamed. "Pearl! Pearl!," he shouted out loud. The space shifted on him too soon and he couldn''t grab onto Pearl on time. "Meow!" a sound came from somewhere. Alex couldn''t tell what direction it was from or what distance away it was either. However, hearing the sound, he got relieved. "Hah! I overreacted," he said out loud. Once he calmed down, he decided to search for Pearl. He wondered which direction he should start with when he realized that he could feel a certain connection with Pearl that transcended the disorientation of the formation. ''I can fell him through our bond,'' he thought. He closed his eyes, hearing and other senses as well as took back his spiritual sense. After that, he started walking in the direction of Pearl. Before he knew it, he could hear a rather loud ''Meow'' coming from right next to him. "Hey, buddy. I thought you would be lost for a while. It seems we can find each other with our bond," Alex said. "Meow," Pearl replied. "Did you get the core?" he asked. "Meow," Pearl nodded. "Good," Alex said. "Alright, time to break through." He opened up his status page and clicked on breakthrough. He felt his cultivation base elevate as he entered the 7th realm of Organ Tempering. ''Just a little more. If I train rigorously for the next week or two, I should be able to enter the Meridian tempering realm,'' he thought. He then dug a hole and put his formation plage and spirit stones inside it. After providing some Qi to activate it, a fire started burning on top of the formation. Alex took out a cauldron, but it was not his Golden Jade cauldron. Instead, he took out one of the black, disposable cauldrons. He wasn''t going to make pills today. Instead, he was going to learn interactions between the ingredients and based on that, make a new pill of his own. He didn''t know how long that was going to take for him to learn, but he was going to try it for as long as it was required. He didn''t immediately start adding in random ingredients. He started with some pills whose recipe he was very familiar with. The first thing he did was recall every single thing he could about those ingredients. It wasn''t very long before he learned that he actually didn''t know much about the ingredients themselves, but knew quite a lot about the pills they made. So, he decided to start with making the pills. He put in the first ingredient and waited for its energy to release. Once the energy was released, Alex used his spiritual sense to try to sense the energy. He learned that the first ingredient produced Fire energy. He then put in the second ingredient and tried to sense what energy was being released. "Hmm¡­ this is¡­ earth right? Yeah, this is earth," Alex thought as he felt a new energy. He could tell that the Earth energy wasn''t as strong as the fire energy, but¡­ he had a feeling he knew what was going to happen. "Earth is going to get stronger, isn''t it?" he thought. It was like he half knew the answer and the other half guessed it. The earth energy should have been not as strong considering how strong the fire energy was. However, instead of the fire energy messing with the earth energy, it helped it grow, and soon all that was left was very strong earth energy. Alex''s eyes shined when he realized what had happened. "The fire energy empowered the earth energy. So I CAN use the elemental theory from the fights while making pills as well," he thought. The next ingredient he put in produced wood energy. He sensed the energy it output and guessed what would happen. "Hmm, the earth energy is so strong, so it should destroy the wood energy right?" he thought. He was correct. The Earth energy did in fact soon destroy all of the wood energy. However, in doing so, it was also reduced by a fair bit in amount. "Hmm¡­ I can understand the wood energy is gone, but where exactly did it go? How is the energy disappearing? It''s not like they should cancel each other, right? Even if they did, there shouldn''t be a net loss in energy" he thought. He was a bit confused but decided to follow the pill recipe. Everything went exactly how he planned it to, but the energies would randomly increase in amount or decrease in an amount from time to time, which confused him a lot. Finally, he finished making the pill and the harmony came out to be around 25%. "Eh, that''s not bad since I''m making on a disposable cauldron," Alex thought. For the rest of the night, he decided to continue making pills in a similar way. He wanted to learn exactly how the energy interacted, and most of all, why the energy was randomly disappearing and reappearing. He tried to find answers throughout the night, and it wasn''t until 3 am when he finally realized something. "I see¡­ so the energy isn''t disappearing when they get weakened or ruined, but instead they go into a state of balance with the other energies, and the elements are no longer given off their aura." "But when I put in another ingredient that can control or overwhelm the weaker element of the two, or empower the stronger one, the initial energy comes back and it gives off the impression of energies randomly appearing," he thought. That felt like the right explanation to him. "So, I not only have to keep track of what energy is currently in the cauldron but also every single other energy that I put in before it," he thought. "Well, I at least have to keep track of the ones that vanished." He continued making the pills and learning more and more as he went along. He tried multiple recipes and understood the things that took place inside the cauldron. Finally, he stopped only when daybreak arrived. Chapter 363: Routine Alex tried to learn whatever was being taught in the class, but couldn''t keep much focus at all. He was way too excited at the prospect of learning alchemy tonight. After learning how alchemy ingredients interacted, at least to a basic level, he was going to start making his own pill tonight. Or, at least try to. He wasn''t really confident that he could make a pill today or within the next week. He was pretty much sure he would fail a lot. But what mattered was not that he failed, but that he learned from his failure. After the classes ended, he went to the driving range with Hannah. Today was the third day of driving, and he felt like he was getting good at it. Still, he was a little sad he wasn''t going to learn it as fast as he did with his bicycle back at home. "Sigh, I guess a car really is different," he thought. Once the driving lessons ended, he and Hannah directly came back home. They ate something from the fridge and both went back to their room. After which, Alex excitedly logged back into the game. Opening his eyes, Alex didn''t even have to look around. He immediately got to the daily routine he had set to learn starting today. From the moment he logged back into the game, he would train for about 3 hours. He had the perfect training ground, so he was free to temper himself however he wanted to. Then, he would train physically with Pearl for the next 3 or so hours. After that was done, he would practice alchemy until an hour before it was time for him to log out. At which point, he would try to revise everything he learned that night. He took out a cheap sword, one of the many he had bought in the Cardinal City, and started practicing. He send out attacks without restraint as there was nothing there for him to hurt at all. Sword slashes, palm attacks, fist attacks, kicks, punches¡ª he did whatever he wanted to and trained in it. Space shifted around, but he didn''t care. He simply kept on training. After 3 hours were over, he finally stopped. He was breathless, but he wasn''t Qi-less. Even with all the training, he managed to end with a little less than half of his Qi left. Which should go back to being relatively full by the time he was done training with Pearl. Pearl came out with a hearty ''Meow''. It seemed his instinct to fight as a monster made him really excited about the training. The both of them didn''t hold back when fighting. That was because when Alex suppressed his Qi, his body had the same cultivation base as Pearl. However, Pearl had both Qi and Body cultivation with him. So, in a sense, he was stronger than Alex at the time. Despite that, the reason they didn''t hold back was because of the armor that Alex was wearing. It could block attacks from an early True realm expert, attacks from a little cat in the Organ Tempering realm were nothing to him. Still, it would hurt him if Pearl attacked his head, so he had spiritual sense running on full throughout the training session. In between the training, they would sometimes be separated by the space shifting around inside the formation, but within a few seconds, they were able to find each other again. The training ended 3 hours later with both of them rather tired. However, Alex didn''t really care much about it. He took a 5-minute rest and got to setting his furnace with the metal formation plate. Once everything was set, he put down a disposable cauldron and started making his pills. He had already planned a set of ingredients that didn''t adhere to any recipe he knew, but based on the elemental theory should technically work. That was of course assuming he perfectly knew the elemental theory of alchemy. Once the cauldron was hot enough, he put in his first ingredient. The moment he put in that ingredient, he realized something and immediately pulled the ingredient back out. "Sh*t," he thought. "I have to worry about this too now?" he thought. He realized that he was so excited about the elemental aspect of the pill making, that he forgot the most fundamental ones¡ª The fire, the motion, and the timings. A regular recipe of a pill consisted of a few things. First of all, was the list of the ingredients required. The second was the order of those ingredients. The third was the temperature in which the ingredients were to be burned, the fourth was the motion in which you had to move the ingredients around the cauldron, and finally, the timing at which it was appropriate for the next ingredient to be added. Alex realized that he knew only 2 of the 5 requirements of a recipe. He thought about what was the correct thing to do and finally realized his mistake. It wasn''t that he had to be more prepared, but rather¡­ "I shouldn''t have prepared at all," he thought. Making a list of ingredients basically forced him down a path of pill-making that wasn''t flexible at all. While some would argue that it made the discovery of new pills easier, some would also argue that the alchemist should change what is required, when it is required based on the alchemist''s wishes. So, Alex dumped the list and randomly took out an ingredient, and dropped it into the cauldron with no hesitation. He tried to move it around to release energy. While what he randomly tried did produce energy, it was only in a small amount. He needed to change the approach and be fast about it, or he would end up burning the ingredient. He tried a few different variations and in the end found one that he thought fit him, but by then the ingredient had started charring and it was unusable. He had somehow managed to fail before he had even started with making the pills. Chapter 364: First Success Alex''s forehead was full of sweat. He was on his 4th start of the night and he had already burned 3 of the same ingredient. Although they were easily acquirable ingredients, his heart still bled a little when he thought of them getting ruined. But that was the life of an Alchemist. He was lucky enough to get the Alchemy God''s Knowledge, however, the other Alchemists didn''t get such an opportunity. So, they had to work hard to get these ingredients and then burn them while trying to learn something from them. An alchemist that was successful had more burnt ingredients and more exploded cauldrons than one that failed. So, Alex suck it up and started the process a fourth time. Fortunately, the last 3 tries weren''t wasted at all. Thanks to them, he had come to learn of the correct temperature and the correct movement required to extract the most energy from the ingredients without burning it. So, once the cauldron had heated enough, he put in the first ingredient. He knew what to do this time, so he followed what he learned and moved the ingredient around to extract the most energy possible. Once the ingredient had released almost all of its energy, it started burning and turning to powder. Once that happened, Alex knew it was time to put in the next ingredient. He chose the next ingredient based on what ingredient was on the cauldron right now. Since the energy released right now was a low amount of Water energy, he decided to use a wood energy ingredient that would absorb the water energy and grow. He knew that he was very much likely going to burn this ingredient, but he still bit his tongue and put it in. The ingredient was something he had just used last night, so he was quite used to it and knew exactly what it released. Suddenly, a thought came to him. "Do I need to create an entirely new temperature and movement for the ingredients, or can I just follow the recipes?" he wondered. He tried following the instruction for that exact ingredient from other recipes. The same movement at the same temperature, and it worked. He was quite happy when he learned that. So, he chose the next ingredient after that one. He decided to go for an earth energy ingredient that he could control with the wood energy in the cauldron and thus lower the overall wood energy a bit Following the previous recipes had worked for the wood energy ingredient, so he decided to do the same for this one as well. However, when he did the same thing for this ingredient, he didn''t get his desired result at all. When he put in the ingredient, everything was fine. But then, he started moving the ingredient around and it violently released its energy. The amount of earth energy that was released was very large in a very short amount of time. The same thing happened in the other pill recipe as well, and it was helpful there as it was required to rein in the high fire energy, but in the current one where the existing energy was wood, the violent release of energy sought to ruin all of the wood energy in the cauldron. As soon as that happened, Alex was sure what was going to happen next. He quickly used his Qi to grasp the entire cauldron and threw it as far away as he possibly could. BOOM A massive explosion rang out from everywhere around him. Due to the formation disorienting him, he couldn''t even tell that the explosion was coming from one direction. He quickly wiped his sweat and sat back down. ''I will need to think more regarding the ingredients,'' he thought. He decided to see if there were other variations of movement and temperature for that exact ingredient in his list of recipes he knew. He couldn''t find another recipe where this one was used in a different way, so he decided to change the ingredient for a different ingredient that produced earth energy and restarted the whole process once more. He took out another disposable cauldron and started practicing once more. He redid the first two ingredients and when he got to the third one, he put in a different one that didn''t violently release its energy. This time, what he had expected happened. The earth energy from the third ingredient was released slow enough that the existing wood energy could overwhelm it and thus decrease itself overall. Alex sighed in relief when he realized that he had succeeded this far. He just had to do this a few more times and he would probably have enough energy and powder to make a pill. He tried a fourth ingredient, and it ended in failure. He had to toss away that batch as the ingredient caused another violent reaction and nearly exploded on his face again. He changed that ingredient and tried once more. This ingredient didn''t work either and this too exploded. He decided to use an ingredient that produced entirely different energy. This one he successfully mixed in with the energy. He chose his 5th ingredient carefully and also managed to mix it with the rest of the ingredients. On the 7th one, however, it was getting harder and harder to expect what would happen when one put in the ingredient. There were multiple hidden energies that he couldn''t sense at all and they could all immediately show themselves when he put in this ingredient. And that was exactly what happened, so he had to throw that cauldron away as well. On the 5th try did he find the right ingredient for the 7th one, and it took him 8 times to find the right ingredient for the 8th one. Once he realized that the energies had come to a good enough state, he decided to turn them into a pill. He used elemental guidance to have the powder absorb the energy and then formed the powder into a ball. Once it was ready, he finally brought it out onto his palm. He had succeeded in making a pill of his own. Chapter 365: Unimaginably Rich "That was hard," Alex said as he laid down on his back. He didn''t know how many hours he had spent just making this one pill, but this one pill was his absolute masterpiece as of yet. He looked at the time and was surprised that it was already 5 am. "Damn, it took me 5 hours of non-stop pill making to make just a single pill?" he exclaimed. If any experienced alchemist were here, they would cough up so much blood that they could probably make a blade with the amount of iron in it and cut Alex''s head off. "Let''s see what I made," he thought and checked the pill. [???????????? - 14%] "Huh? So I made a pill that doesn''t exist? Did I make something that is not in the game, or just one they had no records of?" Alex thought. His ''real world'' senses were tingling once again. "Sigh, whatever. I need to know what this pill does," he thought. There were two things he could do. First, feed a person. Since the only person here was himself, he couldn''t do that. Second, feed a pill swine. Since there wasn''t any around. He couldn''t do that either. Reluctantly, he took out a pill bottle and stored it in. He felt sad that he managed to make his first pill and couldn''t even tell what the pill was about. Alex rested for a while and at the same time recalled exactly what he did. He tried to think of things that he thought he did right, things he thought could be omitted, things he thought could be improved, etc. Once he gathered all those information, he got to making the pills once again. This time, there was no problem at all during the process. In fact, it was much better than the other times. He made the pill once more, and it came out as 18% this time. He tried to understand what he could improve once again and went on to redo it once again. However, this time, he used his own cauldron instead. Since he knew that the recipe was getting closer and closer to being perfect, he took out his actual cauldron. He redid his pill 3 more times until he couldn''t improve it any more. Once that happened, he took out an empty talisman and started writing the recipe. He wrote everything he could think of in this talisman and stored it away. Light started shining through the fog and he realized that morning had arrived. He took away everything and closed his eyes. He started absorbing all the knowledge he had acquired today. He spent the next half an hour doing so, and once that was done, he decided to learn about formations a little more. Only after that did he log out. He freshened up and walked out of his room to meet Hannah in the kitchen. "What are you doing here?" Hannah asked curiously. "Umm¡­ breakfast?" Alex answered. "Yeah, but why this early?" Hannah asked. "For university of co¡ª Oh!" Alex said after he finally remembered that it was Friday today and he didn''t have any classes today. "Urghh¡­ the days are all jumbled up right now," Alex said. "I can''t tell what is when at all." "Fair enough. Come sit down. You can go back and play once you finish eating," Hannah said and served him breakfast. Alex ate gratefully and helped Hannah with the dishes before going back to his room. He wanted to log right back into the game, but somehow also felt a little burnt out. It was like his creative juice had all gone out of the window. He sat on the bed and saw himself in the mirror. "Urghh¡­ how long has it been since I exercised again?" he wondered. Without much thinking, he got down on the floor and started doing some push-ups. It didn''t take him long to realize just how out of shape he was. A farmer''s son being this weak, despite doing physical works his whole life was a little unacceptable. He did various exercises for the next hour or so and finally logged back into the game. He sat down and thought of what he could do next. He wanted to make formations, but that was nearly impossible as he didn''t have the right metals or blueprints for Common rank formations. The only one he did know was the fire and communication one, and even then, he didn''t know how the communication one really worked. So, he really did only know the formation for lantern fire. "I already made the one for fire. I guess all I can learn is really just theory at this point. Whatever, I will learn the blueprints once I get out of there," he thought. "Speaking of which, I probably don''t need all of these spirit stones right? I should convert some to money and send it to my account," he thought. He checked his storage bags to see how many spirit stones he had and was once again surprised despite knowing the number. "Damn, 2067 True spirit stones really is a lot. And that Zexi carried this around AFTER buying all of those things," Alex thought. He was shocked at the absolute fortune that Zexi walked around every day with. Alex opened his setting panel and got ready to transfer his money. Alex hadn''t calculated how much money that amount was and when he saw it, he was shocked. despite taking away 200 true spirit stones from 2000 he was sending, the number was still ridiculous. "W¡ª Wait a second. Ones, tens, hundreds¡­. A hundred thousand¡­" his eyes went wide as he saw the final position of 1. "Millions," he exclaimed. "Am I? Wait¡­ am I really a millionaire now?" he couldn''t believe it. Even as he was in disbelief, he clicked yes. The spirit stones disappeared from his inventory, and he too hastily logged out. He excitedly waited for a moment and nearly jumped to his phone when he heard the notification. He quickly opened his phone to see a message on it. <$1,800,000 has been successfully credited to your account> Chapter 366: Snarl Alex felt like he was on cloud nine right now with the notification in front of him. He quickly opened his bank account and was more than surprised when he realized he had a total of 2.3 Million dollars in the bank now. Alex''s mind stopped functioning as he didn''t know what he could do with that money. That was just too much money for him. He quickly went online and started looking up what to do with a lot of money. He quickly found a trustworthy blog post that told him exactly what he could do with the amount of money he was getting. The first thing he did was create a retirement account with a high interest rate in a well-respected bank. He had to do it online, so he got his documents and started uploading them to the website. Once that was done, he had to speak with someone and answer a few questions before the bank account was opened. Once it was, he transferred a total of 2 million dollars to that account and kept the 300 thousand dollars for use. That too was way too much for him, but he had different things in mind for this one. Once the retirement part was done, he started looking for different stocks to invest in. Thanks to his business classes he knew what to look out for and what to absolutely ignore. The most obvious one was Deva corp. They were the biggest names right now, so he bought 3 shares of theirs for nearly 100 thousand dollars. The rest he invested into lesser-known, but promising brands. Once that was done, he was left with only 80,000 dollars. He needed to keep some for himself, but he also wanted to help his parents, so he sent them 20 thousand dollars without them knowing. The remaining 60 thousand dollars was what he planned on actually using for daily use. Once all that was done, he finally returned back to the game. He was surprised when he realized it was already 10 am. "I spent nearly 3 hours doing all of that huh?" he thought. He didn''t have a plan for the days when he didn''t have classes, so he decided to just fight against Pearl. He called Pearl out and got to fighting. Pearl was very happy to fight with him every time. Alex was happy too since that was a training Pearl as well. After fighting for a while, he realized that he wasn''t really helping Pearl train for the different techniques that he could have had. "Beasts are supposed to inherit abilities from their parents right? I wonder if you have some as well or I should get some techniques for you from a store," Alex thought. All of a sudden, he released his cultivation base and started to seriously fight Pearl. He brought out a common sword he had and started attacking. "Come on, fight back. Hit harder, use some techniques," Alex cried out as he swung towards Pearl. Pearl was barely dodging these attacks and was getting a little confused as to why Alex was so aggressive. However, it was getting harder and harder to dodge, so suddenly his whole body glowed yellow and he let the sword land on him. Alex felt a jolt of fear when he saw his attack actually connect. "Oh no! Pearl are y¡ª" Suddenly, Pearl jumped at him. Alex was both happy and surprised. His paws glowed goldenly and it directly hit Alex''s chest. Despite wearing the armor, he could feel the impact of the attack and was quite surprised. At the same time, Pearl jumped back at him and tried to bite him. Alex didn''t want that, so he kicked the flying Pearl and sent him away. Pearl was lost in the fog, but he could sense where Alex was and came running back towards him. When he appeared, he could see a small change in Pearl. On his forehead that was usually white, there was a small golden line that was starting to form. ''Did I hurt him?'' Alex''s heart sank when he thought that. Pearl seemed to have lost all sense of self and was still trying to attack him. "Pearl Stop!" he ordered, but Pearl was still coming at him. "Stop! Stop!" he had to say it multiple times before Pearl stopped running and snarled at him. Alex walked forward and grabbed him in a hug. "It''s okay, It''s okay. I''m sorry, buddy. I didn''t mean to push you so far," Alex apologized. The snarls stopped coming from Pearl and what came out next was a cute "Meow!". Alex looked at him and he was back to being normal. No splits on his forehead, no angry snarls on his face. "Are you okay, buddy?" he asked. "Meow!" Pearl replied to confirm that he was okay now. "Alright. No more fighting. I am happy that you knew those techniques. Do you know some more?" he asked. "Meow! Meow! Meow! Meow!" Pearl meowed to confirm, but he also said that he didn''t know how to use it. "I''m surprised I understood that at all," Alex thought. While he didn''t understand what Pearl said, he understood the intent behind his words and could grasp the meaning that way. "Alright. Do you want to go back? Stay? Keep fighting?" Alex asked. "Meow!" Pearl said that he wanted to stay. "Very well. Do what you want. Here, have some food even," Alex said and tossed him a corpse of a monster he had killed a few days ago. It was still pretty fresh. Pearl started chomping on it, and Alex went on to practice his techniques. He didn''t recklessly attack everywhere as he might hit Pearl, so he only trained with swords and attacked where he knew Pearl wasn''t at. After a few more hours of training, he sent Pearl away and told him not to come towards where he was at. After that, he prepared his makeshift furnace once more and got ready to make some pills of his own. Chapter 367: Direction of Motion "Hm¡­ how do I start this?" Alex wondered. He had made too many mistakes the day before to simply just go back to trying to make a new pill. He wanted to take a different approach this time. "Let''s see¡­ since the motion, temperature, and the rate at which the energy is released matters, I should start by learning how that works," Alex thought. He went through his storage bags and brought out a bunch of common ingredients that he had an excess of. He was planning on first understanding how Motion affected the rate of energy released. "So¡­ since I am planning on testing just the motion, I need to set the temperature constant," he thought. He set the temperature at around 300 degrees and waited for his Golden Jade Cauldron to be hot enough. Since he was only using single ingredients, he didn''t have to worry about them blowing at all. Once the cauldron was hot, he put in his first ingredient. The first ingredient was a normal Silver Grass that could be found just about anywhere. He put a single strand of the grass and started moving it clockwise such that it took him exactly 2 seconds to make a complete rotation. When he finished one rotation, a bit of metal energy was released. He made the clockwise rotation again, and a bit more of the energy was released. He had to do 4 complete rotations for all the energy in the grass to be released and the grass to finally crumble down to powdered form. Once that was done, Alex brought everything out and threw it away. For the second turn, he kept the temperature the same and the speed of rotation the same as well, but he changed the direction in which the ingredient moved. Surprisingly, there was no change in the rate of energy release at all. That confused Alex a little. "If it doesn''t change the rate or messes up an ingredient, why do the recipes bother explaining the direction of the motion?" he wondered. He brought out a set of ingredients for a normal pill and decided to try his theory on it. He first made a normal pill following the recipe that he knew and ended up making a pill with a Harmony of 52%. It was a very good result, considering the pill''s final energy wasn''t Metal aligned. He then took out another set of the same ingredients, only this time he was going to follow the recipe all the same except for the directions in which the ingredients were moved in. He started with the first ingredient and moved it clockwise, despite the recipe stating that he had to move it counterclockwise. Once that was done, he proceeded with the next ingredient and moved it clockwise as well. As he had expected, the energy released was the same as last time and they interacted the same way as well. Then the third, the fourth, the fifth¡­ every subsequent ingredient he put into the cauldron, he moved it in a clockwise motion. What kept on surprising him was that the energy mixed together exactly how they were supposed to. The motion didn''t at all affect the rate of release or the quality of the energy released. "What''s going on? Does the motion have no effect on the pill?" he wondered. It felt wrong given how all the recipes continuously focused on the motion of the ingredient so much. It couldn''t be that no one before him tried to do what he was doing, and yet the recipe still remained the same. "I must be missing some information," Alex thought. He continued putting in more and more ingredients and continued on moving it clockwise regardless of what the recipe spoke. Finally, he had put in all the required ingredients and turned it into powder. "The resulting energy is still wood. It really made no difference that I changed all the direction of the motion for the ingredients," he said. Then, he moved on to form the pill. He first tried to pass the energy in the air, into the powder. He used elemental guidance to move the energy and passed it through where the powder was. "What?" Alex was shocked when he saw what happened next. When the energy passed through the powder, as if the powder rejected the energy or the energy rejected the powder, the energy passed through the powder and came out on the other side with almost 90% of it still remaining. "That''s weird," Alex thought and used Elemental Guidance once more, but it didn''t really affect much. "What''s wrong? Was it because of what I changed?" Alex wondered. He tried Elemental Guidance once more for the third and last time, and it didn''t have any effect at all. He couldn''t keep using it any longer, or his powder would end up burning. So he started forming a pill. Suddenly, his pill-splitting Qi was released from his body which moved onto the cauldron and turned the powder into two separate spheres. Two strong vortexes appeared from inside both of those spheres and started sucking in the energy from the surrounding. The energy that the Elemental Guidance couldn''t push into the powder, was now being sucked by the vortex. Alex waited for the vortex to be over. Finally, all the elements in the surroundings were gone, all devoured by the two newly formed pills. He decided to take them out, but just then, as soon as the vortex was gone, the two pills suddenly spewed out a lot of energy that had just been sucked back into the cauldron. They couldn''t handle it all. Alex opened the cauldron and checked the two-pill inside. One of those pills was at 14% harmony, and the other one was at 12% harmony. Even if they were together, the pill would barely be an Earth-grade pill. Compared to the Heaven Grade pill he made before this, the current pills were complete garbage. "And that was all just because I changed the direction of the motion, wasn''t it?" Alex thought. "I still don''t know how it affects anything at all." Chapter 368: Speed and Temperature Alex thought for minutes on end through the different things he had read regarding the alchemy books, but all he found was the books saying that the direction of the motion was important. Every single one of the books failed to mention why. He wondered what he should do, and decided to log out. He went onto his computers and started searching about alchemy on the internet. Unfortunately, there wasn''t much information regarding alchemy on there. He knew more than what was available on there. "Is no one that far ahead on alchemy? Or are the talented ones just reluctant to share information?" Alex wondered. It would make sense that just like him, there were others that didn''t like sharing any information they gain onto the internet. "Sigh, I guess I will just have to ask the master. Hopefully, she knows the answer," Alex said and went back into the game. He set everything back up and decided to continue his experiment. Now that he was done testing the direction of the motion, he was now going to check the speed of the motion. He decided to use the Silver Grass again. Once the cauldron was at the same temperature as last time, he put it in the grass and started moving it in a clockwise direction. At first, he moved it at a speed of half a rotation every second, which took him 4 whole rotations to fully turn it into powder. Then he went a little faster. This time, he moved it at 1 rotation every second speed. He thought that it would still take it 8 seconds in total, but surprisingly, it far exceeded his expectations and actually took 16 seconds. "Hmm, what if I went slower?" he thought and decided to go so slow that it would take him 4 seconds per full rotation. He tried it and as he expected, the ingredient turned into powder in just 1 rotation, or 4 seconds. "Hmm¡­ if I go even slower, will it turn to powder faster?" he wondered. That would surely help him cut down on the time a lot. He decided to take 8 seconds per rotation this time and dropped in the Silver Grass. He started to slowly move the ingredient around, but not 2 seconds in Alex stopped. He couldn''t help but facepalm himself when he realize what had just happened. "Of course, If I take too long to move it, it will obviously burn," Alex thought and laughed to himself. He cleared the cauldron of the burnt Silver grass and tried a few different variations. After a while, he had a grasp of how much the speed slowed down or sped up the energy release process as well as the powder forming process. ''The temperature probably plays a big role as well, but I will have to wait until then,'' he thought. Now that he was a little more knowledgeable in this, he decided to make the same pill as before, only this time he would change the speed entirely to have it release energy at the fastest rate possible. He made the pills and ended up finishing making the pill in under 7 minutes. However, he could see that most of the energy had been rejected by the powder. So, he ended up really just making pills with 9% harmony. It was a total failure. "Hmm¡­ so it had something to do with the powder and not the energy, huh?" he thought. "I always thought that energy was where it was all at, but it seems that even the powder is an important part of the process." He tried one more time, but this time, he simply used the fastest rotation speed for every ingredient possible. The energy in turn was produced at a very slow rate. This time he made a pill with 13% harmony. While it was a usable pill, to Alex, it was also a failure. "Okay, so I can''t really make a pill if the motion of the ingredients isn''t correct. Let''s move onto the temperature," he thought and took out Silver Grass once more. This time, he was going to try using the ingredients at different temperatures. After testing for a while, he realized that the temperature was pretty simple. The hotter the cauldron was, the less time it required for the ingredient to turn to powder. ''That''s quite easy to remember. However, now I will have to check how they interact with one another and find out what the correct combination of 3 is for each ingredient in each pill,'' Ning thought. He was starting to get overwhelmed a little. If he had to remember it all, it would take him years upon years, and then he would finally be able to learn just the ingredients for common rank pills. "Oh god, what did I get myself into?" he started to worry. Only now did he truly start to see the true vastness of Alchemy. "Wait wait wait, don''t panic. Surely the Alchemy God''s Knowledge skill will help me when it grows. I will probably get more benefit from it, surely," Alex thought. He didn''t know when a growth-type skill would actually grow. He was hoping for it to be when he reached True realms, but it could have a different set of requirements as well. "No, I can''t put my hopes on an ''if''. I need to learn what I can right now," he thought. "It doesn''t matter how long it will take, as long as I learn it, surely I can learn it all one day," he thought. "Besides, it will help me in the long run, so it can''t be a waste of time," Alex thought and continued. He started testing the rate at which the energy was released and the powder was formed for each combination of temperature, the direction of motion, and speed of motion, for the Silver Grass. It took him the entire day to try every single feasible combination he would try on a normal pill-making process. Only when he felt that he had done everything did he stop. Chapter 369: Training Once he finished testing the different combinations, he decided to stop for the day. He was exhausted and needed to go for the driving training. He left and only returned after It was 7 pm. Once he was back, he trained his skills for a little bit and exhausted his remaining Qi as well. After that, he decided to just cultivate for the night. He called Pearl back who was wandering the fog the whole time Alex was training. As soon as he came back, Alex asked him to start cultivating. "Meow," Pearl said and started cultivating. Numerous cuts started appearing all over Alex''s body. "Hmm¡­ it hurts a bit more than the previous days," he thought. "Did you by any chance¡­ breakthrough?" Ning thought and opened Pearl''s status page. [White Cat (Child) - Bonded Name: Pearl Cultivation Base: Organ Tempering 1st realm Evolution Chance: 40% Cultivation Method: ????? ?????''s Dominating Body (Shared) ] "Oh wow! You are already at Organ Tempering 1st realm. That means¡­. Sigh, I will need to start feeding you Organ Tempering realm beasts," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ maybe as a monster you can eat the cores without fighting whatever that mental projection is that I have to fight each time, but I still feel a little scared to feed them to you," Alex said. Pearl was still a child, so he wasn''t very strong mentally to fight against the monsters. Or at least that''s what Alex believed. "Whatever, let''s just cultivate quietly." Very soon, Alex fell into a trance and fell unconscious. Early in the morning, he woke up. His body wasn''t feeling as much pain and he felt like he had advanced in body cultivation as well. "My body probably matches Pearl''s cultivation base. If only it was like Pearl''s and my body and Qi cultivation was the same," Alex hoped. He told Pearl to stop and let him go roam around. As for himself, he logged out. He walked out of the capsule a little tired, but fine overall. He wasn''t really hungry but could eat a little if need be. So, he freshened up and went to get breakfast. Hannah was there as well, ready to eat breakfast. The two cousins were starting to have a timetable for eating in the morning. They both got themselves some food and ate. Alex returned back to his room and logged into the game. The routine still stood. He trained with Pearl for a little while where he used his hands, legs, and swords to fight. Once that was done, he got back to practicing alchemy. "Hmm¡­ what ingredient should I go for next?" Ning thought. There were way too many choices and he didn''t know where to start with first. "Ah, I should start with my pill''s ingredients. Who knows, maybe the reason I have such little harmony in my pill is that I am using the wrong set of motion and temperature," he thought. Even after he had done his best, his highest was barely above Earth grade. So, it was pretty apparent that he hadn''t made a good recipe. So, he took out the first ingredient of his pill and started testing. He did numerous tests for the next 3 or 4 hours and finally tested every possible scenario. Now that he didn''t have to make a pill every time he came up with a new discovery, he was much faster. After he was done with the first ingredient, he moved on to the second one. He had fortunately decided to use ingredients that he had a lot of, so he could do this testing for all the ingredients for his pill. "Damn, I wonder how they perfected recipes for pills that require very rare ingredients. They probably didn''t test the ingredients just like I am, right?" Alex wondered. "I should ask master how they do that once I get out," he thought. "Speaking of which, why is nobody here yet? Did they stop searching for me? ¡­ or did they just never start?" Alex wondered. "A massive fog in the middle of the southern forest shouldn''t be that hard to find right?" He remembered how uniquely visible the 5 elemental fog was back when Wen Cheng took him to the alchemy garden. "I hope they didn''t stop, but¡­ why can''t they find me?" Alex started feeling a little sad. SLAP "Stop thinking about that. Both masters are good people. There are also others that care for me. They won''t stop searching for me," Alex thought. He stopped thinking negatively and started practicing once more. He tried the next pill ingredient and practiced with it for the next 3-4 hours. Once he was done with that, he trained in his techniques a bit more. Afterward, he ate an Organ Tempering 9th realm monster''s core. Suddenly, he was transported to his spiritual sea. He felt a little scared when he realized that he had been fighting these monsters using his spiritual sense and that if he had ever mistakenly eaten one where his spiritual sea was nearly gone, he would have probably died. "Did the spiritual sea get bigger?" he thought. He could swear that the size of the spiritual sea much about half a Spirit Cleansing Lily''s worth bigger, but he didn''t know why. He decided to ignore that for now. He looked at the beast in front of him, an owl-like bird monster, and got ready to fight. As soon as the bird moved, he started sending dozens of palms and fist attacks towards the monster. Within 5 minutes, it died. "Hm¡­ were my attacks stronger as well? Or am I just thinking that because they didn''t do much against Zexi?" he thought. Now that the bird was dead, he knew what was going to happen next. He looked down at the sea surface and waited for the yellow fog to rise up. As he expected, the yellow fog did rise up from around a small shadow on the surface of the sea. Alex kept staring at the shadow not knowing what it was. Soon, the fog devoured the bird as well as him, and he disappeared. Chapter 370: The Move In Now that he was out of the spiritual sea, he decided to cultivate. He called back Pearl and asked him to cultivate as well. Once the cuts started appearing all over his body, he cultivated himself as well. Soon, he fell into a trance and fell asleep. He woke up in the morning and logged out. He freshened up and went to the kitchen to get some food. Hannah was up as well and was about to get her breakfast as well. "Any information on when they get here?" Alex asked. "10 am. They will leave after sorting some stuff out with their landlord," Hannah said. Today was Sunday. Today was the day Sarah and Emily were planning to move in with them. Alex had been a little nervous over the weekend while at the same time looking forward to them moving in. "Alright, are you planning on any welcome party or something?" Alex asked. Hannah stopped eating and suddenly hit her forehead. "Ah, Sh*t! I was planning to do that, but then I kept on playing the game and completely forgot." She ran to her room and came back with a phone in her hand. "What are you doing?" Alex asked. "Ordering some groceries. Ever since the capsules arrived, all the raw food in the house has gone bad. We need more," Hannah said. "Oh, so we are going to cook now? I can help you. I have free time," Alex said. "Yes, thank you. That will be very helpful." Within half an hour, a delivery guy was at their door with the groceries. Alex brought the groceries to the kitchen and Hannah started prepping the ingredients. Alex helped her cut some vegetables. He worked at it slowly, trying not to cut himself and make an entire joke out of him again. He still felt a little bad about it when he cut himself last time. For someone like him who was brought up on the farm and was used to cooking on days when his parents were out on the field, that was unacceptable. This time, he managed to do it perfectly. He passed along the ingredients to Hannah and watched it closely as she cooked it. By the time they were done with cooking the food, Emily and Sarah also arrived with their stuff. They had brought a moving crew to help with the move. Alex showed the crew to Sarah and Emily''s room. Sarah was going to take the room upstairs, while Emily was going to take the room opposite to the hall from Alex''s. Alex helped set up their furniture and capsules once they were put into the room. "Ahh! This is so nice. The view is so good from the balcony as well," Sarah said as she lay on the couch. "I must say, although it''s expensive, it''s really worth it." "I really like it too," Emily said. " Just the view from my new room is so much better than my old room." "Urgh, I feel like only I missed out on windows. My room doesn''t have any," Alex said. "Yeah¡­ well, that''s my bad honestly. But it''s not like you can appreciate a good view anyway. You spend all your time playing," Hannah said and chuckled a little. "Umm¡­ isn''t it true for all 3 of you though?" Alex asked. "Ahem, let''s not talk about that. Come, the food will get cold soon," Hannah quickly changed the topic making the other 3 laughs out loud. They ate the delicious lunch until their stomach was about to burst open. "Ugh, with this much food, I doubt I will have to eat anything for the next 3 days," Sarah said. "I might go on a 2 day-long gaming session. I should be able to earn a few thousand dollars easily by then." ''2 days of the gaming session and only a few thousand dollars? That''s¡­ too little for someone in the upper true realms right?'' Alex thought. "Do you have any profession in-game, Sarah?" Alex asked. "Or are you just a normal cultivator?" "Well, I don''t have any profession, but I wouldn''t call myself a normal cultivator at all. I am a well-known elder of a well-known sect in the Eastern Continent. My only problem right now is that I cultivated too fast, damn it." "Now I have to do what not to fix my cultivation base. I''ve spent so much spirit stones on just ingredients and pills that can help me make my cultivation base stable again," Sarah said and turned to Hannah. "What about you Hannah? Are you fixing your cultivation base?" Sarah asked "Kind of. I''ve just stopped advancing further, and that''s worked for now. I think my body might be good enough that it doesn''t require additional help to fix my cultivation base," Hannah said. "What? That''s so broken. God, I''m jealous," Sarah said. "Well, many people would be jealous of you too," Hannah said. "Look at where you are." "I know¡­ but I still can''t help but be jealous, you know?" Sarah said. "By the way, do you have good talent and body to Alex?" Alex thought for a second about what to answer. ''Since sister''s body in the game is so good, mine can''t be better than her at all. So¡­'' "Yes, I do," Alex said. Sarah and Emily were a little surprised. Sarah hadn''t expected him to say yes. "Oh, what grade?" she asked. "My body is at Divine grade, and my talent is at God grade," Alex said. "Woah! God-grade talent? That''s like super rare," Sarah said. "Wait, you got so lucky too? I thought you were just earning money because of Alchemy," Hannah said. She was surprised as well as this was her first time hearing about any of this. "I mean, it hasn''t really played any part in making money yet I guess, so I never spoke of it. Besides, I thought you knew because you never asked me about it," Alex said. Sarah asked a few more questions and Alex answered as truthfully as he could. He had never talked about this stuff in-game or out of it, and it felt really good talking about it so freely for once. Chapter 371: Thursday After the lunch was over, the 4 of them stayed in the living room couches for half an hour or so before going back to their room to rest and go back into the game. Alex returned back to the game at around 12. "Alright, back to training." He spent the next 3 hours testing the different combinations of motion and temperature for the third ingredient of his pill. Once that was done, he proceeded with the fourth one. That took him 4 hours to fully remember every single one of the combinations. 0nce night fell and he was mentally exhausted, he mindlessly trained in his techniques. He could feel that he was getting better at using his techniques. They were starting to feel more natural to him, almost as if they were muscle memory to him. "Ah yeah, my body feels great," he thought. He shot out some palm attacks and felt his body again. "The cultivation base seems very stable as well. Maybe I can do it once more," he thought and opened up his status page. He contemplated for a second on whether he was ready or not. "I am so far behind the others. It''s now or never." CLICK He broke through once more. He was now in the 8th Organ Tempering realm. Just 2 more realms and he would enter the Meridian Tempering realm. "Although the book did say I can''t use the Spirit Cleansing Lily after using it 3 times, maybe entering the Meridian Tempering realm will change it a bit," he thought. Once he felt he was settled, he called Pearl back and started cultivating. Soon, he was unconscious as every other day. Early morning, he woke up and logged out. He spent some time mulling over the things he learned yesterday and after an hour or so, logged out. He went to the kitchen at the designated time of breakfast, and everyone was there. They had their breakfast and Alex and Emily got ready to go to their classes. "Come, I will drop you guys," Sarah said and went to get her car from the building''s parking space underground. Alex and Emily went down the elevator and waited for Sarah outside the building. "Oh, by the way Emily, is your class going on this upcoming Field trip as well?" Alex asked. "Mhmm," Emily nodded. "We had to wait over 9 months for this. You are honestly lucky that you get to go in just after 3 months." ''Oh, do you know where we are going?" he asked. "No, but they should announce it today," she said. Sarah came to the front in her car and took the two to the university. Once they reached, they got off, and Sarah returned back home. Alex went his own way to his classes. The classes were just as empty once again if not more. ''It''s almost like they are seeing that the others are absent and are leaving themselves,'' Alex thought. ''Hmm¡­ should I not come as well?'' he thought. He was honestly contemplating it. Just then, the professor walked in and saw the classroom. He frowned once more. "Sigh, it''s going to be like this for a while now, isn''t it?" he asked. The students couldn''t really answer. "Whatever, here is new information for you people that do care. Your upcoming field trip is on Thursday. Get ready for then," he said. "Where are we going professor?" a student asked. "Oh, yes. You guys will be going to Pinewood city. I heard the Archaic National Museum over there has been getting a lot of visitors recently. So, the university will take you there as well." ''Pinewood city,'' Alex thought. ''What was there again?'' he tried to think for a second. He could tell he had heard the name of long ago for some reason. ''Was it the one where the Connor guy was from? No. Oh yeah, the historical texts they used to make the game,'' Alex thought. "Hm¡­ this will be a good time to check whether or not they really did gain the ideas for the game from there," Alex thought. He was now excited to go on this field trip. Once the classes were over, he went to the driving range with Hannah who had come to the university in the car with Sarah who was here to take back Emily. After returning from the driving range, Hannah and Alex ate the meal prepared by Emily. When Hannah and Alex told her that she didn''t need to do that, she really insisted on making food for them. ''She must feel guilty about staying here for free,'' Alex thought and let her do what she wanted. Once they were done, they all went back to their rooms to get back into the game. Alex logged back into the game and sighed a little when he remembered that he basically had the same routine for the next 3 days. He did nothing but test the different remaining ingredients for his pill. He had 4 remaining and he barely finished it on Thursday morning. It had taken him a long while to learn all of these and it would take him more. "I wish there were more hours in the day so I could earn more of this," he thought. He was damn near ready to stop going to the university classes altogether. ''Maybe I should just¡­ drop for a semester or two, while I collect enough money from the game to make my life easy,'' he thought. However, he didn''t want to make such a decision without the consent of his parents, so he shut off that portion of his brain for a few more days. The next thing he did in the last 3 days reached the 9th realm of Organ Tempering. Just a step further and he would be in the Meridian tempering realm. Alex smiled and looked towards the time at the corner of the screen. It was 6 am in the morning, and since today was the day they went to the museum, he logged out of the game. Chapter 372: Field Trip Alex got out of the capsule early in the morning and went to the bathroom to freshen up. He then packed some light clothes for the trip. ''Pinewood city is in the south right? So I won''t be needing any sweaters and such,'' he thought. Once he was set, he grabbed his phone and walked out. "Are you ready already?" Sarah asked. "Yes, they called us by 8, so I have to be, right?" he asked. "Well, if someone else had the same mentality as you, I wouldn''t have to wait so long," Sarah said. Emily walked out of her room, and said, "Stop badmouthing about me behind my back. Your voice is so loud I can hear it all the way from my room." "Hehe, she''s out," Sarah said. Alex turned around to look at Emily who was just walking into the living room. She had a long white trouser-like pants and a yellow t-shirt that was full of frills and open at the shoulders. "You look pretty," Alex said as that was the first thing that came to his mind. Emily blushed a little and said, "Thank you. You look great too." "Stop complimenting each other; I need to go back to the game. I have some grinding to do, remember?" Sarah said. "Alright, let me get that." Alex took Emily''s small luggage and they walked out. Sarah took her car out of the underground parking spot and gave them a lift to the train station where everyone was supposed to gather. "How''s your driving lessons going on Alex?" Sarah asked. "Umm¡­ its taking longer than I had expected it to," Alex said. " I should be able to do it in the next 2 weeks though." "That''s quite fast. Emily, you should learn how to drive as well," Sarah said. "I will do it later. Seeing how everything is going, I might end up having to take a break in between," Emily said. "Woah, you too Emily? I was thinking about that too," Alex said. "What? Why do you guys wanna take a break?" Sarah asked. "The game has totally ruined the college atmosphere. The professor doesn''t focus on teaching anymore, the students aren''t focused, and now that the capsule is out, people aren''t even returning back to classes." "After my exam next month, I think I will drop out for a year," Emily said. "You feel the same thing, Alex?" Alex was put into a spot. "Uhh¡­ I was just thinking of earning more money honestly," he said. "Can you even earn a lot?" Emily asked. "Of course. If I really try it, I can make a couple hundred thousand dollars a day," Alex said. "What? You can make that much with Alchemy?" Sarah asked in shock. Emily''s eyes were very wide as well. "Yeah. Of course, you need to have ingredients and people willing to buy the pills. I usually sell once every 2 weeks or so. Selling daily would be really exhausting," Alex said. "I see. By the way, how good are you at making pills? Can you make True pills yet?" Sarah asked. "No, I haven''t even entered Meridian Tempering realm, remember?" he asked. "Ah right, why are you so slow though?" she asked. "I was told to slow down early on, so I''ve been focusing of training more than cultivating," Alex said. "I see, I see. Argh, I might have to transfer a bit more money into the game today. If I can just breakthrough once more, I can grind faster," Sarah said. Alex was surprised that she was even thinking of that, but soon remembered that there were these sort of people. That was one of the reasons Deva Corp continued to make money despite giving out so much. There were millions of people willing to spend hundreds of thousands of dollars in the game so that they could progress through it faster. Sarah soon dropped them at the station and returned. Alex and Emily walked to the front of the station where the teachers and the other students were gathered. They both showed their ID cards and got into the group. Emily looked around and sighed. "It seems none of my friends came after all. I doubt they even learned about the trip in the first place," Emily said. "None of the people I usually interact in my classes came either" Alex said as he looked around. He searched for Matt, Eric and Logan, but none of the 3 were there. "I guess I''m going to be alone for this trip," Emily said. "No, you won''t. You have me," Alex said. Emily blushed a little and nodded. Soon, they boarded the train and had 2 compartments all for themselves. Alex chose a seat next to a huge window and sat down. Emily sat right next to him in the only seat available. The train started moving, and soon they were out of the station. A teacher walked to the center of the train and started speaking. "Is everyone of you fine? We will be on this train for the next 5 hours, so let me know if you guys find anything uncomfortable right now," the teacher said. Alex was quite surprised. ''I didn''t think it would take so long,'' he thought. "Since we will be passing through 3 entire cities along the way, you will have plenty to sight see. We will reach the Pinewood City at around 1 pm, and should be settled into the hotel by 2 pm." "As for the rest of the schedule for today, you guys have these things to look forward to today." "From 2-3, we will have your lunch, from 3-5 we will be playing a bunch of board games amongst ourselves in the hotel. From 5-8, you guys are free to roam around the city as much as you want." "Finally at 8 pm you will get your dinner, at which point your day will end for today." "For tomorrow''s schedule, We will let you know it tomorrow. For now, do whatever you want, just make sure to be in your best behavior," the teacher said and went to the front and sat back down." Alex looked out of the window and enjoyed the view he saw outside. Chapter 373: Pine Wood City The view from the window was truly very refreshing. The green land outside reminded him a lot of home, so much so that he started to get a little homesick. "By the way Emily, I don''t think I''ve ever asked you, but where are you from?" Alex asked. "Oh, I''m from Cherrywind city," Emily said. "How about yours?" "I''m from a village north of Mapleleaf city. My parents own farmland there," he said. "Oh, you''re from the countryside? I didn''t know that?" Emily said. "Yes. I was also homeschooled, so I am unaware of a lot of different things a boy my age should know by now," he said in a melancholic voice. "Homeschooled? Why?" Emily asked curiously. "Oh, the school was just too far, so my mother decided to teach me everything instead," Alex said. "Even high school stuff?" Emily asked. "Yeah. My mother is kind of a genius. She just has to learn something once and she will understand it. She takes care of the financial aspect of the farm and overlooks the entire production, while my father works in the fields tirelessly for hours on end," Alex said. "Wow. My parents just own a small store in the town. Fortunately, it sells well enough for us to make a living. I had planned on earning from the game, but it seems I won''t be able to anymore. The reincarnation really screwed with me," Emily said with a sad voice. Alex didn''t know what to do; he had never been around crying girls. "Umm¡­ let''s not talk about those. Just studying and finding a good job should earn you much more than what the majority are earning from the game," Alex said. "Yes, I just have to keep fighting, or should I say¡ª I have to keep grinding," Emily said with a chuckle. Alex''s heart skipped a beat when he saw her smile. "Umm¡­ are you bored? You wanna watch a movie?" Alex asked. "Sure, what''s it about?" Emily asked. "I''m not sure myself, but I heard it''s really good," Alex said and put on a movie on his phone. He put an earphone in and put one of the buds on each of their ears. Alex scooted a little closer to Emily, who also came a little closer and watched the movie. The movie was apparently a remake of a very old movie of unknown origin. In the movie, the main character was a normal man who thought his life was normal as well. However, one day, after gaining a red pill from another man, he realizes that he was inside a simulation and that the real world was out there all along. Alex was entranced in the movie and so was Emily. By the time the movie ended, both of them were beyond surprised by how fun it was. "Woah, that was a good movie," Alex said. "Yeah, it was fun. I can see why they would remake it now," Emily said. "Huh? What do you mean?" Alex asked. "You know, the whole going into computer software and making your life their kind of thing. Don''t you think that''s very apt for the current times?" Emily asked. "Oh, yes. I can see it now. It''s the same as our current world, except everyone who is in the real world knows the game is¡­" Alex stopped. "Yeah, they know the game is fake," Emily finished his sentence. Alex fell started thinking about how that might not be actually true. There was more to the game than meeting the eye. The teacher came by in a few minutes and passed along a few snacks to the students. Although there were only a hundred or so students in total, they were taking proper care of each and every single one of them. In fact, the teacher actually seemed to be happy that he didn''t need to look after so many students at once. Alex spent the rest of the journey talking with Emily, getting to know her better. Emily also got more and more open with him and talked without any hesitance. "Oh look, is that the city?" Emily asked as she pointed outside the window. Alex looked outside the window and saw the skyline of Pinewood City. It had a very unique skyline compared to the other cities. While it was mostly similar in that it also had many tall buildings, one of the buildings actually had a massive spherical metal ball on top of it. "Ah, it seems we are here," Alex said. The train soon stopped in the station and everyone walked out of it. "Urghh! My back hurts from sitting for so long. I''m so used to just sleeping in the bed or inside the capsule while playing the game." The people started complaining left and right. Alex also stretched a little as he also had a similar problem. The teachers then made the students walk a few minutes away from the station to the hotel they were staying at. The girls and boys were separated and made to stay in different floors. Alex was put together with 3 other boys he had no idea about. He introduced himself to them, and that was the most of it. The teachers called them to have lunch and all the students gathered in the dining hall of the hotel. The food prepared wasn''t particularly good or bad, but Alex ate it with no problem. Once the students were done eating, the teachers took them to a lounge area where they were allowed to play any tabletop games there. Alex walked up to Emily and went around playing a lot of different things. Some card games, some dice games, etc. There were many games and everyone there played them all. "Come, and take these cards," the teacher said, and everyone went around to take a card each. Alex looked at what he had got. "Eh?" They were going to play bingo. The teacher started saying numbers and Alex started cutting them off on his card. He needed 5 lines, and he had 4 of them already. "Damn, just a little more, and¡ª " "BINGO" someone won before him. He looked to the side only to see Emily with a wide smile and her hand raised straight. Chapter 374: Date "Congratulations, young lady. Come on up to get your prize," the teacher said. Emily smiled and walked to the front. The teacher put up something in the air and said, "This is a ticket that contains 1000 points. You can use it to¡ª" "Ahem" another teacher coughed from the side. "Oh, right. Haha, it''s a secret for now. Nearly forgot about that. What it is used for, we will let you know tomorrow. For now, you guys can go do whatever you want. Just return here by 8 pm." "Anyone who doesn''t return by 8 will have credits deducted from their finals," the teacher threatened. Emily walked back while curiously looking at the ticket she had in her hand. "Do you know what this is?" she asked as she handed him the ticket. Alex looked at the ticket and his eyes shined a little. A smile appeared on his face that even turned a little mischievous. "They have it here too? It seems tomorrow will be a lot of fun," Alex said mysteriously. "What? Do you know what this is?" she asked expectantly. "Yes, but as the teacher said, I think it''s better to not tell you until it''s time. You might like the surprise more," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ so this is good?" she asked. "Yeah. If the price isn''t different here, then it should cost like 50 dollars," Alex said. "Oh, then it''s not that bad. But I don''t think I will enjoy whatever this is alone. Do you want to come with me?" she asked. Alex decided to tease her and said, "Miss Emily, that sounds like an awful lot like you are asking me out on a date for tomorrow." Emily blushed a little when she heard that. "Andwhatifiam?" "Sorry, what was that?" Alex asked. "And what if I am?" she said. It was Alex''s turn to blush. He gathered all the confidence he could and said, "then I am very much obliged. In return, since we have 3 hours to ourselves, will you allow me to take you out on a date as well?" Emily smiled. "Yes, I will." The two went out and looked around the city. It was starting to get dark, and the city was starting to light up. Alex and Emily went around the city looking at the different things. They tried out some small snacks, went around malls to go shopping, and even stood around a street performance and enjoyed it. Alex dropped a 20$ bill before leaving. "We should return now, or we will be late," Alex said. "Yes, let''s go back," Emily complied. "Open your eyes!" A man suddenly started shouting a bit far away from both of them. "Look. Look and you will see the truth. They lied to us. People, Just look." The man screamed at every passerby. "Just look for once. I promise you, I am not going mad. Just look," the man shouted as he kept pointing towards Alex''s location. However, Alex could tell that he wasn''t pointed at him, but rather behind him. While the buildings were blocking his views, he could tell just what was a few hundred meters behind these buildings. If he walked in the direction the man was pointing at, within 10 minutes, he would reach a forest. This was the barrier that stopped him from falling into the void. "Let''s leave Alex." Emily grabbed his arm and started pulling him away. She seemed to be freaked out by the man. "Alright," Alex said and decided to leave. "They are trying to hide something. Don''t believe them ever. Just look when the sun shines the brightest and you will see," the man kept on shouting even as Alex and Emily walked far away. Emily walked away quickly, but Alex was left thinking about what the man was saying for a little while. In the end, his words sounded like the speakings of a conspiracy theorist, so he stopped thinking about it. Emily didn''t leave his arm even after she was far away. Instead, she slowly brought it down and grasped his hand in her hand. Alex also clasped his hand tightly. They walked around for a few more minutes before returning back to the hotel. Alex took the luggage that contained everything they bought today and went to keep it in his room. After that, he returned back to Emily to have their dinner at the hotel''s dining room. The meal this time was a little better than the afternoon. Alex and Emily ate side by side and went to the hotel''s lounge area to rest for a while. "Are you not bored?" Emily asked. "Why would I be bored?" Alex asked. "Don''t you miss your game? I heard a few people saying that they should have rather stayed back at home. Apparently, this hotel doesn''t have places for the helmet connections, so they are quite mad about it," Emily said. "Oh, are they? Well, I''m not bored," Alex said. "Really?" Emily asked. Alex looked at her and smiled as he said, "How could I be bored when I''m with you?" Emily blushed a little and punched him lightly on his shoulders. "Why are you so confident today? You even asked me out on a date on your own," she said. "Wait, no. You asked me out first. You can''t blame me for returning the favor," Alex said. Emily chucked a little and said, "Stop speaking nonsense and just tell the truth." "Well, I would be lying if I said I didn''t want to do it earlier. It''s just that¡­ the opportunity never seemed to come up. Now that I finally had the time, I decided¡­ why the hell not?" Alex said. Emily was about to say something when the teacher came to the lounge and asked everyone to go to their room in 15 minutes. They all had to be ready by 8 am as the museum would open at 9. "You were about to say something?" Alex asked Emily. Emily shook her head. "It''s nothing. I''ll see you tomorrow morning. Good night," she said and hurriedly left. Chapter 375: 600 Years Old "Alright everyone, I''m going to take a quick attendance, get ready," one of the teachers said and started calling out the student''s name. Soon, she called out everyone''s name. Alex responded to his own when he was called, and once everyone responded, they got onto the tour bus. It was a double-decker bus with 60 seats per deck. So, all 100+ students and teachers fit inside easily. Alex and Emily sat on a seat towards the back on the lower deck. Just after 15 minutes of getting on the bus, they had to leave again. They had reached their destination. Alex walked down and saw the massive building that was in front of him. ''So this is where the museum is,'' he thought as he looked as high as he could. The building was at least 200 meters tall if not more. At the top of the building was a massive golden sphere that shined in the sunlight. It had some sort of pattern or drawing that he couldn''t make out from this far below. As he brought the vision a little below, he saw a name for the building. "How do you say that word? Gol- no, Gl-" "Global, right?" Emily said from the side. "Yes, Global. So the building is called The Global Building huh. Wonder if that''s the owner''s name," Alex said. "Might be," Emily replied. A lady wearing professional clothing walked from inside the building and shook her hands with the teachers. "Hello, You guys must be from Oakleaf University. I will be your tour guide for the day. Welcome to the Archaic National Museum." "Please follow me," the lady walked inside. The crowd followed her and soon, they were all inside the building. The inside hall was grandiose in its size and color. The chandelier hanging from high up in the ceiling looked very expensive and made the students a little apprehensive about where they were. The lady took them up the stairs to the actual museum. They all walked in and were surprised by how crowded the place was. Everywhere they turned to, there was nothing but people. They couldn''t even see anything that was inside the museum. "Haha, don''t mind the crowd. It''s been like that ever since that one TV special a few weeks ago where they talked about the museum. Now, everyone thinks the content in our museum influenced the game, Eternal Cultivation, and visit here," the lady said. "Is there any truth to that claim?" a professor asked. "Um¡­ Kind of. While the game certainly seems to be inspired by the contents, there are also things in here that¡­ uh you may call the ancestors stupid for even thinking about," the lady said. This statement only made the students and teachers more curious. The reason most of the students had even come to this field trip was for this exact reason. Alex was also looking forward to once and for all clearing his confusion about the game being real. The lady took them along and showed them the first exhibition of the museum, A car. This was a simple car that was rusted in many places and was encased in some sort of resin to stop it from rusting any further. ''What significance would a rusting car have?'' Alex wondered. The lady looked to the group and said, "As everyone can see, this is a car. However, the reason this is being kept in a museum is that¡­this car is over 600 years old." "What?" everyone was shocked at the revelation. "No way, miss. Didn''t cars only come to existence a little over a hundred years ago?" a student asked. "Yes. The first car was indeed made 112 years ago, and it was also inspired by this car too. However, the car we currently have and this car is completely different, " the lady said. "We aren''t sure how this car works or where the electricity is stored. We don''t even think it uses electricity. According to the records we have, it used something called ''Petrol'' and ''Diesel'', but there is no proof that such a thing even exists." "Even if they did, they aren''t here anymore," the lady said. The lady let them look at the car for a little longer and took them to another exhibition, A smartphone. "Once again, the current smartphones were copied from these phones as well. They couldn''t immediately make these, so they had to go through other creations first, but in the end, they managed to reach and surpass what existed 600 years ago." "These clothes used to be worn by people over 600 years ago." "These are metal utensils made over 600 years ago." "They used to have plastics over 600 years ago when plastic was only able to mass manufacture some 50 years after the war ended." The lady kept on walking and showing one exhibition after another. "Look at this, do you know what these are?" she asked the crowd who turned to look at the next items. Alex looked at the items and frowned. They were circular plates made up of something that looked like glass and had a hole punched through the middle. ''I know these things. What were they called again?'' he tried to remember what he was taught in the computer science class. "That''s a CD, right? They are supposed to store data," somebody said. "They lasted for maybe 4 months after they were made." The lady smiled and said, "Yes, that''s true. However, they didn''t make CDs for it to last long. They made it so that they could see what was inside these things." "Don''t tell me¡­ " one of the teachers said. "Yes. These CDs were made 600 years ago as well," the lady said. "Most of these had lost all of its information. However, we managed to salvage a few." "These CDs ended up containing movies made 600 years ago. Here is a clip from a movie," the lady said and pointed to the screen. The movie scene played was a normal one about a man walking in the city. However, the thing that surprised everyone was the world around the man. It looked just like the current world. They watched the scene until it ended and the lady spoke. "That was from 600 years ago. Either, the people from 600 years ago were good at guessing what the future looked like, or¡­ the more possible reason, the world 600 years ago was very advanced." Chapter 376: Globe Alex was stunned when he saw the movie scene. ''The world from 600 years ago¡­ looks just like now? How?'' he couldn''t help but ask himself. The lady continued speaking. "There is only one way the world from 600 years ago could possibly be that advanced. That is¡­ right around 600 years ago, something happened that destroyed everything and humanity had to start over." "They had to restart civilization all over again, and build themselves until where we are now," the lady said. The things she said sounded so outlandish, and yet, not a single person there could counter her with all the evidence there. "Let''s move on," she said and walked on. "These are all helmets and armors worn by warriors when the 17 cities were still countries ruled by different factions. The war at that time destroyed a lot of things that should have been kept safe." "From what we were able to find out, the experts made an educated guess that the reason more of these cars and vehicles, as well as the other items, doesn''t exist, aside from being destroyed in time, is that they were all melted and used during the war," the lady said. "Once the war ended, they finally started to mine new metals, and the old ones got discarded." "Um¡­ Miss, why aren''t these things public knowledge? Why do we have to come all the way to a museum to learn about these things?" a person asked. "These are public knowledge. It''s just that it''s too old, and people don''t like reading through history. If you dig deep, you can find these all on the internet," the lady said. "Now, come along. We have more things to see," she said and took them along. The tour had already been going on for nearly half an hour, and the woman took them for another 15 minutes tour, explaining the various things. Alex was surprised to see that history less than 600 years ago was quite neatly recorded. Yet the ones beforehand were not. ''That is very surprising,'' he thought. While he did hear that the war was one of the major reasons they had lost most of the history, he still wondered why there weren''t other things. ''What about the various landscapes that the developer of the game allegedly learned through here? Where are those texts?'' Alex wondered. He did hear about some texts that were in the museum and couldn''t wait to see them. "Here we are. This is perhaps the most important piece of the exhibition in the museum, that was the reason for the deaths of hundreds of people," the lady said. Alex looked in front of him and was a little surprised to see what was in front of him. ''Is that¡­?'' "Isn''t that what is at the top of this building?" a student asked curiously. "Yes," the lady said. "This is what is called a globe." The lady spun the globe around and showed it to everyone. "This is supposed to depict how the world of the old people looked like. However, despite how advanced they were at the time; it seems that they believed that the world was round. "Look at that screen. They even made a map that is totally flat, and yet they turned it into a sphere on the globe. For some reason, they couldn''t change their views at all. This continued even after an apocalypse that we assume took place 600 years ago." "There were many hints to the world being flat. For example, the sun rose and set at the same time everywhere, and yet the old folks never stopped believing. They tried to venture out onto what they believed was the real world," the lady said. Alex looked at the map of the world that was put up on the screen. There were around 7 large pieces of land on the map, all of which Alex knew were continents. Unfortunately, there were no names on the map. Suddenly, the map changed, and now the screen had a person in it. The person on the screen was a middle-aged man. He had no beard or mustache on his face and his long hair was tied in a ponytail behind him. He looked a little weak, almost as if he hadn''t gotten sleep for some days. Below him was a name that read "Neil Ambers". "It wasn''t until the Neil Ambers proved, through his various experiments, to the world that the world was flat in shape instead of a sphere that they stopped. He proposed the idea that there was a void beyond the forest, and anyone who went there fell through the void to their death." "The later tests with unmanned planes and drones proved his point," the lady explained and moved a little to the side. "Over here are old books that contain knowledge, some that are clearly fictions, but some that are hard to know what the intentions of the writers were. You can read snippets of the book on the screen," the lady said and the man''s image changed to pieces of text. Alex read them, but nothing understandable could be found from there. The lady took them to a few more exhibitions, but none of them were as interesting. With that, the tour was over, and the students were sent out of the museum. "Alright, let''s go to the viewing spot on the top of the building now," the teacher said and took the students to a lift. Even as Alex walked, he kept on thinking. ''So what happened 600 years ago? Did some catastrophic event take place that destroyed the civilization at that time to the point where it needed to restart?'' he wondered. ''Also, the current map looks nothing like the old one they used with the continent. So, in a way, I can conclude that it''s fake. Then, does that mean that the map from the game is fake too?'' ''Which would mean that the game is just a game, right?'' he thought. Only questions were piled on top of him after coming to the museum instead of them getting answered. Finally, the door of the lift opened up and Alex saw a massive open space outside. They were at the viewing station on top of the building. Chapter 377: Festival "Woah!" Alex thought as everything he had been thinking until now vanished. The sight of the beautiful city line from this high up was a sight that one didn''t see every day. He walked up to the glass and looked down. "Woah, we are so far up," Alex said. Emily got curious and walked to the front to see as well. "Aaahh!" she shouted immediately grabbing onto Alex''s left hand and didn''t let go. People looked at her curiously and laughed it off to go back to their own thing. She buried her face on his shoulders due to the fear of height and the embarrassment she was facing. "Hey, it''s okay. Look, we can''t see anything anymore," Alex said. Emily slowly opened her eyes and only saw the skyline. She was fine with that. Alex let her keep holding onto his hands and walked around the room, looking at the different things far away. The buildings were great and all, but the people from the city didn''t seem to like it very much. So, when Emily saw that the skyline changed to the trees from the forest that lead to the void, she got excited. "Look, Alex, it''s the trees. I wonder what the void looks like," she said excitedly as she looked at the horizon. The trees were taller than the buildings before them and continued for forever. As they went further, the visibility got hazy, and at some point, you could no longer see anything. "Isn''t that exciting?" she asked Alex. Alex smiled and said, "Yes. Very." He didn''t have the heart to tell her that he saw the trees on a daily basis since his farm was right next to the forest. Although he didn''t see it from above, he still had seen the forest regularly. Still, this was a new perspective, so he enjoyed it for a bit. He looked around and suddenly saw something before the trees, but behind the buildings. ''I was right,'' he thought and smiled. He couldn''t wait for tonight. "Huh? What''s that?" Emily asked in a curious manner. "Hm¡­ what?" Alex asked as he stopped looking at what he was looking at and turned to Emily. "I¡­ I think I saw¡­the haze go away for a second there," she said. "What?" Alex said with a questioning voice. He looked back towards the forest, but it was the same. There was nothing to be seen beyond the haze. "There''s nothing there though," Alex said. "I¡­ I could''ve sworn I saw the haze clear up for just a split second. Maybe I saw wrong?" Emily said. "What did you see beyond the haze?" Alex asked. "Um¡­ More trees, I think?" she said. Alex shook his head. "Let''s go check the other things," he said and took her around the entire room. The viewing place was cylindrical in shape, so one could see the whole cityscape from the tower. After 15 or so minutes of viewing, the teachers herded the students back to the elevator and got them back on the double-decker bus. Then, they went back to the hotel. It was around 11 am when they returned, so the teachers took the students to the dining area for lunch. After lunch, the students rested in the lounge area. Some got on their phone, some chatted, some played the games from yesterday. Once all of the students were rested, the teachers took all of them to see a 3-hour long theater show. Alex didn''t think the theater show could be fun at all at first, but once he saw it, he was surprised at how good it was. "Look, Alex, it says that this was one of the stories they recovered from the old texts," Emily said as she showed Ning the pamphlet they were given when they entered the theater. It included information about the cast, a synopsis of the story, and its origin. "R-Romeo and Juliet, huh? Those old people really knew how to write stories. I wonder how many good stories were lost during the supposed catastrophe 600 years ago," Alex said. "I really wish I could see what those times were like," Emily said. Alex didn''t say anything. They came out of the theater at around 4 in the afternoon. The teachers took them back to the hotel to have some snacks. After they finished their snacks, the teacher spoke once again. "From 5 till 8, you have free time once again today. I suggest you go to the festival taking place near the forest," the teacher said. Alex smiled. He already knew this. He had seen part of the festival setup from the tower''s viewing spot today. "Miss Emily," the teacher called her. "Yes?" she said a little surprised. She didn''t know why a teacher would call her directly. "Remember the thing you won yesterday? Be sure to use it in the festival today," the teacher said with a smile. "Oh, ok," she said. She then leaned next to Alex and whispered, "How do I use points in a festival? I''ve never been to one." Alex chuckled a little and said, "You''ll see." Once it was 5, Alex took Emily and walked out of the hotel. The other students were going to the festival too, so everyone just followed each other and went there. The festival was about 10 minutes away from where the hotel was, so it was really close. The closer they walked to the edge of the city, the smaller the buildings got. Finally, they came upon a vast open space that was almost untouched by humanity. That would perhaps be considered true if there wasn''t a massive festival set up in this open space. "Woah," Emily said when she saw the colorful lights strung all around the gate and inside of the festival. "They even have a Ferris wheel. This looks more like an amusement park honestly," "Uh¡­ you''ll see how they are different once you enter inside," Alex said. "Shall we?" Emily grabbed the hand Alex put forth with a smile on her face and said, "Yes." Chapter 378: Games "Wow, this is really beautiful," Emily said as she entered the festival area. "Look at all of those lights. It kind of reminds me of my first sect before I died." "Doesn''t it? When I first entered my sect and it lit up just like this, I was reminded of the festival we had near our village too," Alex said. "Oh, so you are used to going to festivals like this?" Emily asked. "Oh yes. They take place once every 3 months or so during the change of every season," Alex said. "My father sets up a stall every time to sell some of the homegrown products or find potential customers for a business deal." "I see. Then you must be quite used to these festivals. What should we do first?" she asked. "Umm¡­ let''s just walk around and see what the stalls have," Alex said and looked through the stalls from the start. The stalls sold various different things from food to clothes to toys to anything. They came across a stall selling cotton candy. "Do you want some?" he asked. "Sure," Emily said. Who didn''t like cotton candy? Alex paid for two large cotton candies and handed one to Emily. She took the blue one and left Alex with the pink one. They walked along with more stalls and tried different foods. There was candy apple, some dumplings, sweets, fried noodles and many more. "At this rate, I won''t even need to eat anything later tonight," Emily said. "Me too," Alex said and continued touring. In another stall, Emily saw a bunch of different types of masks and wanted one. Alex got her a simple mask with a bunny face and ears. For himself, he got a mask that was fully white on the outside with no other design, but he could take it off and wear it inside out. Once inside out, it would become a fully black mask. Essentially, he was wearing two masks at once. Thankfully, neither his nor Emily''s mask obstructed any vision. He looked ahead and saw something that caught his eyes. "Oh, those are up next," he said. "Hmm¡­ what are those? People seem to be playing there. Are those games?" Emily asked. "Yes," Alex confirmed it. "Oh wow, they have games too? Can we go play there?" Emily asked. "Let''s go somewhere first," he grabbed Emily''s hand and pulled her through the crowd. Alex had to search for it for a few moments before he found it. He came up to a machine that had a line of people standing in front of it. Alex got on the line along with Emily. When it was finally their turn, Alex said, "Put your ticket in there." "Hmm¡­ oh, ok," she said and put in the ticket she got from winning bingo. Suddenly, the machine started spitting out small, connected papers, one after another. "Wait, why are there so many?" she got a little overwhelmed. "Didn''t you get a 1000 points ticket? It will now shoot out 1000 points now," Alex said. He helped her in gathering all those that had dropped on the ground. "Isn''t this too many?" she asked. "If you aren''t very good at the games, it will end before you even know it," Alex said. "Let me get some too." He put a 10$ bill into the machine and it spat out 200 points. "Are you fine with that amount?'' Emily asked. Compared to hers, Alex didn''t have that many points. "I''ll be fine. In fact, even this amount might be too many," he said. "I''m used to the games in the festivals and don''t need many turns to win in it." "Oh, let''s see how good you are then," Emily said and walked toward the game stalls with Alex. The first game she visited was a basketball one where they had to dunk one small-sized basketball after another. "What do I do now?" Emily asked. "Oh, just put one end of the ticket in that machine there and it will take in¡­ let''s see, 20 tickets per turn, " Alex said. Emily fed in 60 tickets and started playing herself. A person required 60 points in 40 baskets in 60 seconds to win a minor prize and required 60 points in 60 seconds to win a major prize. Emily tried all 3 times and the maximum she could score was 23. "Urghh, I''m really bad at it," she said. "Are you good at it?" she turned to Alex. "I used to play this at every festival, so I can say that I''m good at it," Alex said. He stood in front of the machine and started throwing the baskets. The basket was about 5 meters away, and Alex was accurately scoring 3 out of every 4th turn. Emily watched from the size and was awed at the result. 49 points in 60 seconds. She went to the man handing out prizes and took a small palm-sized teddy bear. "You really are good at these games. You more than doubled my result," she said. Alex gave an awkward smile and said, "Ah, Y-yes." Internally, he was very confused. ''What''s going on? I should have easily done 60. Why did my aim suffer so much?'' he wondered. Back at home, he played these games at every festival. His family was poor, so he couldn''t play a lot, but the times he did play, he won them very easily. ''Damn, sleeping in the bed first, and now the capsule all the time seems to have ruined my body. I should really exercise more,'' he thought. "Alex, you coming?" Emily asked. She was ready to move on to the rest of the games. "Yes," Alex got out of his stupor and followed her. The rest of the evening, the two people went through almost all of the game stalls. They played the shooting games, the dart games, the dice games, placing rings around prizes, etc. Any game they came across, they would play it. Emily had a lot of points and she played a lot. Once Alex''s points ended, she gave some of hers to him. By the end, Emily had so many prizes that she had to get a bag to hold them all. Chapter 379: Under the Moonlight and Fireworks "There are so many," Emily complained as she held the large plastic bags full of toys she won as prizes from the games. Almost all of it had been won by Alex. It didn''t have a single major prize, however. "I keep telling you to let me carry it. Why are you being so stubborn?" Alex asked. "But these are so cute. I don''t want to let go of them yet," Emily said in a childish manner. She was acting more and more freely around Alex now. Alex was the same. He had lost a lot of awkwardness he had around her when they had first started being friends. "How about this? Let''s both carry it then," Alex said and reached for her hand holding the prizes. Emily''s hand tightened for a second before letting loose. She opened it enough that Alex could slip his fingers through her hand and grabbed it. Now they were both carrying the prizes. "How many tickets do you have?" Alex asked. Emily quickly checked and said, "Around 300." "Hmm, let''s go check out the concert then," Alex said and took her around. Thankfully, the festival area was set in a similar way to the one from his village, so he knew the general direction of where he should go to. There was also the loud music that helped navigate directly to the concert. The people singing in the concert were local singers and bands that came onto the stage one after another. Alex found a clean place on the ground and sat there with Emily. They tried to talk a few times, but the sounds were too loud to speak to each other. So, they just stopped talking and enjoyed the show. By the time they left the concert, it was very dark and was past evening. "We have half an hour left before we need to return back to the hotel," Emily said as she checked her watch. "Oh, let''s go to the Ferris Wheel then," Alex said. "Mhmm," Emily nodded. The lights looked much brighter now that the sun was down and darkness reigned all around. The number of people had also significantly increased. They finally reached the Ferris Wheel only to find a long line of people waiting for their turn. "Damn, how long do we have to wait for?" Emily asked. They only had maybe another 20 minutes before they had to start returning back. Alex looked at the Ferris wheel. "It seems like a 2 person Ferris wheel. We might have to wait for another 10 minutes considering how many people there are," he said. The Ferris Wheel was quite large and had around 30 compartments. So, in total it held 60 people every ride. It spun around for 5 minutes per person, so Alex deduced that the 100-ish people in front of him would be gone in 10 minutes. The Ferris Wheel came to a stop and more people got it before it started spinning. It was quite fast for the first 2 minutes then slowed down to replace a few compartments at a time. "Oh wow, that looks quite scary," Emily said. "Yeah, I only got on a similarly large Ferris Wheel in the amusement park in the city. Otherwise, I''m only used to small ones that have maybe 10 compartments in them. "This will be my first time getting on such a large one too," Emily said. Finally, after 10 minutes, they got to get on the Ferris Wheel. Alex and Emily sat side by side as the staff locked them securely. They felt a jerk as the Ferris wheel slowly started moving. As it went up, it was slow too from adding all the different people below them. It took them nearly a minute to start, and by that time, Alex and Emily were high up in the air. "Woah! We are at least 150 meters high, aren''t we? Urgh, I''m regretting it now. I can''t look down," Emily said as she closed her eyes. "Why did you even insist on coming here then?" Alex asked. "I- I like the feeling of freefall when we go down," Emily said with her eyes closed and her hands holding the bar in front of them really hard. Alex placed his hands on top and said, "It''s okay, just lookup. Look at the moon." Emily nodded and slowly opened her eyes and looked up. "Oh, it''s a full moon today," she said as she finally paid attention to it now. The Ferris Wheel suddenly sped up, and the two were pulled back in free fall. "Aaaah!" Emily cried out loud. Alex laughed out loud too. Their screams and laughers were lost in the dozens of others that screamed and laughed too. The wheel reached the top at the same speed and dropped once more. This happened a few times more and then it slowed down again. People were starting to leave behind Alex''s compartment. He and Emily on the other hand were going to go for a full slow climb and fall before they had to leave for the others. "This is quite fun," Alex said. Emily looked towards him and nodded. BTOOM BTOOM BTOOM Both of them looked towards the distant sky and smiled. The fireworks were being set off in the distance. "Such perfect timing," Alex said. "Yes, we couldn''t have gotten a better viewing spot," Emily said. The sky got bright from all the fireworks and the lights illuminated their faces in the night sky. The multicolored fireworks were a sight to behold. While Emily had all of her attention on the fireworks, Alex fell into thought. ''It''s now or never.'' He lightly squeezed Emily''s hand to get her attention. "Emily," he called out. "Yes?" she said as she turned around. "Will you go out with me?" he dropped the question. Emily''s face changed emotions like a chameleon. At one moment she looked stunned, at another moment she was surprised, then she was skeptical, and then nervous and happy. Finally, she blushed and said, "Yes." Alex was elated. He was really happy to hear her accept his proposal. He looked at her blushing face and decided to go for it as well. Under the moonlight and fireworks, he leaned in towards her. Emily saw him coming too and got nervous, so she closed her eyes. While Emily had her eyes closed, Alex kept his open. As he got closer, Alex could see the shape of her eyelashes, could see the shade of her skin, could smell the fragrance of her perfume, could feel her breath on his face, and could see her soft lips. He placed his lips on top of those very lips, and he kissed her. Chapter 380: Back to the Game Alex and Emily walked out of the train station at around 2 pm in the afternoon on a Saturday. Alex had a new suitcase with him that he had bought to carry all the prizes and souvenirs he had got from the trip. Sarah was waiting outside the station for the two of them. When she saw the two of them coming, she walked up to them. However, before she got close, she stopped. Alex and Emily saw her and walked up to her. "Hey! did you have to wait for long?" Emily asked. Sarah didn''t answer and instead said, "Something feels wrong. Did something happen on the trip?" Emily blushed a little but also excitedly said, "Alex asked me out." Sarah''s eyes went wide. "What?" she turned towards Alex, who nodded. "And you accepted?" Sarah asked. "Of course," Emily said. "Wow, finally. Congratulations to you both. Let''s get a cake or something for a little celebration," Sarah said with exaggerated expressions. "Alright, no need to overreact. Let''s just go back home. I''m really tired," Emily said. They got in the car and went back. Hannah was pretty stoked to find out about the news too. She prepared some lunch for the two of them which they ate quite happily. Once they were done, Alex went to the room to freshen up. Once he got out, he decided to log back into the game. He opened his eyes back in the formation that was still active. According to Zexi, the formation would last for somewhere between 30 and 40 days, so he still had about 3 weeks of time he had to spend in the formation. ''Did no one really come to find me?'' he wondered. Pearl appeared next to him. After seeing him not move for 3 whole days, he was happy to finally see him walk around again. "Hey, little guy. Were you bored?" Alex squatted and started rubbing Pearl''s neck with both of his hands. Pearl meowed multiple times in response to Alex''s questions. "You wanna fight?" he asked and started hiding his cultivation base. Then, the two of them fought. Pearl was getting really good at fighting and so was Alex. He was already good when fighting with techniques, but normal attacks were still a little awkward. However, the constant fighting without techniques was helping him improve at a tremendous rate. "Alright, let''s stop," he said after 3 hours of constant fighting. He sent Pearl away to do whatever he wanted to. Alex on the other hand fell into thought. ''It''s been 4 days since I broke through. Normally, I would''ve broken through once again, but can I do that now?'' he wondered. He hadn''t practiced or fought in 3 days so he decided to wait a day more before he broke through to the Meridian Realm. For now, he would just practice. "Hm¡­" he thought. Once the cultivation base came back, he realized that there wasn''t any discomfort from his cultivation. "Now that I think about it, my body is good enough to do a lot of things. It can digest all sorts of Qi, can digest monster cores, and can even digest poisons. So is it really possible that such a body would have the same faults as the other bodies have?" he wondered. He had been spending time in between breakthroughs because that was what he was taught. However, his masters didn''t know about his body. "Hmm¡­ I do remember being significantly weaker during the time when I had to fight that one snake. Didn''t I break through like crazy then? I was in a higher realm than the snake, but we were at the same strength." "So the thing about stable cultivation base needing to have a high level of strength is true¡­ but would it apply for a single breakthrough though?" he wondered. He wanted to open up his status page and hit breakthrough to check, but before he even opened the status page, he stopped. "Wait, I can''t mess around at such an important breakthrough. What if I do something that negatively impacts my meridians. Let''s wait after I do a normal breakthrough this turn," Alex said. He took out a sword and started practicing. He sent out attacks everywhere and was very well trained in the different techniques. It came to the point that he was having diminishing returns from the training. ''The techniques have reached the highest they can without noticeable improvements coming forward. So, I should do something else for now,'' he thought. He looked at the sword in his hand and remembered how good Du Yuhan was with it. The Sword Intent and Sword Qi that he used had blown away Alex. ''Can I be like him?'' he wondered. ''I might not have had the time to learn all of that¡­ but maybe I can cheat a little with my talent.'' So, starting today, he decided to simply learn the sword without any techniques. He didn''t know how to start with learning about Intents, so he blindly swung his sword around. After realizing that was fruitless, he stopped and thought of what his master had told him. ''Sword Intent appears when you master the sword to such a high level, that you start imagining the sword as part of your body,'' Alex thought. ''Part of my body, huh? That means I need to know just by intuition where the sword is at all times, how fast it is moving, how sharp it is, how much force I''m putting into it, and such.'' He closed his eyes and started moving the sword in his hand. He tried to feel the balance of the sword by measuring its height and weight using his mind as a scale. He took back any and all Qi and spiritual sense and solely focused his normal 5 senses on the sword. He felt the weight of the sword through the hilt he was holding, he felt the changes in the air every time the sword moved around. He heard the air being sliced apart by the sword, the minute hint of air whistling past the sharp edge. He was starting to get attuned to the sword. Chapter 381: Back to Training Alex was certainly not very good at using the sword as just a sword. He needed to use the various techniques, regardless of if they used Qi or not, to properly fight with a sword. The one he used most of the time was Elusive Heavenly Sword. While it had 3 Qi-based attacks, its main purpose was that it was a style of sword fighting that mostly focused on the elusiveness of the fighter, rather than focusing on doing the most damage. This certainly helped Alex a lot, but following simply this was also not a very good idea for him who wanted to learn Sword Intent. So, he was going back to the basics once more. He logged out and looked online on how he could learn as a beginner in sword fighting. The people online gave some instructions that Alex decided to follow. To get used to the sword''s weight, they had him simply try to hold the sword out straight in front of him without shaking it a lot. This not only helped in increasing the person''s understanding of the sword, but it also helped him increase his wrist strength. The wrist strength was something Alex didn''t need to care about, but learning the weight was something that helped him a lot. The second part that the internet suggested was to strike empty air in front of him. He would stand on one spot and swing directly in front of him. He had to do that for hours and hours on end for days on end. The final thing that the internet told him was to fight an imaginary opponent. Make someone in your mind, and fight them until you are sure you could. This was like the famous shadow boxing, but for swords. Once Alex was done doing these three things, he stopped for the day. It was around 8 pm when he decided to make his pills. He had a routine and he would stick to it. Alex took out a few spirit stones and the fire furnace he had created. He dug a hole and started the fire. He then took out a black cauldron. He was going to do test creations, so he couldn''t use his normal cauldron. While that was going on, he revised what he had learned so far. ''The direction of the motion of the ingredients inside the cauldron can, for some reason, play a huge role in how much energy a pill can hold.'' ''The speed of the motion of the ingredients inside the cauldron can help in regulated heat transfer, so it plays a role in the speed of energy release. Also, same as the direction, it can also affect the amount of energy a pill can hold.'' ''Finally, the temperature the ingredients are burned in also matters. Each ingredient burns at a certain temperature, so it is necessary one knew the exact burning temperature of every ingredient if they want to create a new pill,'' he thought. Normal alchemists that only followed recipes didn''t have to worry about these things. However, if one wanted to create their own pill, they had to certainly learn this by heart. That was why being an alchemist took such a long time. One had to go through and remember every scenario for every pill. Or at least, that was what Alex thought. He still believed that there was a technique to forming pills that didn''t require so much manual learning, but he would have to wait until he returned. When he saw the cauldron was hot enough, he dropped the first ingredient. The first ingredient didn''t really matter in how violently the energy was released from the cauldron. As long as there wasn''t an explosion, they would be perfectly fine. Still, Alex decided to follow through with the recipe he had made on his own. As he did, he couldn''t help but cringe at the many mistakes that were littered throughout the recipe. He could see many opportunities that could be improved a lot. Since this was a test, he was going to have to do this multiple times. He remembered how the energy release rate was really good when he had done a single thing. So he was going to follow exactly that. He restarted the process once again once the resulting pill was at 21% harmony. Once the cauldron was hot enough again, he put in the first ingredient. The first ingredient turned to powder quickly and it was time for the 2nd ingredient. When Alex remembered the different experiments he had done with this one, he chose from a small list of experiments that resulted in a rate of release of energy that didn''t make it look like it would cause an explosion. He did the 3rd and 4th. He was constantly changing things recipes with what he felt was proper. On the 5th one, he threw in the 5th ingredient. However, by this time he could think of ways to use the 5th ingredient, he had already made the mistake of making too many changes without realizing what was going to happen again. ''Urghh, I forgot the energy isn''t always what it seems," he thought. While the cauldron only showed a single or two energy output, it was hard to remember by just looking and feeling that there were other energies mixed into the resulting energy. The cauldrons showed signs of unstableness, so Alex didn''t hesitate at all and threw the cauldron far away. An explosion ran in the distance. Alex was relieved that he was able to make such a quick decision. "Urghh¡­ I need to make small changes, one at a time, rather than all at once," Alex said. So, he got down on the ground, put out more ingredients, and continued making pills. Only this time, he made a single change with each pill''s outcome. Unfortunately, they didn''t have a huge enough change for any of the pills to be useful. So, Alex added 2 changes per batch and continued experimenting with his recipe for the rest of the night. Chapter 382: Composition and Structure "Moving it clockwise had a definite better result. So, maybe I should try moving it clockwise at a slower pace but at a much lower temperature so that the rate of energy released is the same, but the powder accepts more energy in the end," Alex thought. It was close to 5 am, and he was still testing out the different ways to improve the pill. By now, he had broken about 5 black cauldrons and finally, had managed to bring the harmony up to around 36%. Considering about 15-20% of the energy was usually lost during the process with the black cauldrons, it meant that the pill was still rejecting about 34% of the energy away. That was too much of a waste. Even when the pill-splitting Qi appeared, he could only read a little above 30% harmony on both pills. "Aside from that, I should increase the third ingredient''s movement speed, while increasing the temperature," he thought. One thing that he didn''t need to worry about now, that he wished he realized quite early, was the rate of energy release. With how stable the energy inside the final product was, all he had to do was tweak the process such that the energy was released at the same rate, but the pill was different enough to have a change in the energy acceptance rate. He looked into his storage bag a signed. He had a lot of ingredients when he began testing these things a week or so ago, but now it was down to less than a dozen. In about 10 more batches, he would have no ingredients left for the pill he was making and would have to move on with a different pill altogether. "Alright, let''s forget about that for now and focus on this one pill. I will make it the best," Alex promised himself. He started making the pill once more. Had he known that he didn''t need to make so many changes that included energy change, he might have had a better result by now, but he had to fail once before he learned from it. He cleaned the cauldron and tried once more. He had nothing to tell him if he was anything good or bad right now. All he could do was wait for the pill to be formed and he could finally see how accepting of the energy they were. He made sure not to make a single mistake along the way and when he finally completed the pill, he was a little disappointed. The changes he had made actually made the pill worse. Alex was a little disappointed. He contemplated what mistakes he made, but there was nothing to think about. He had nothing to compare his new pill with. ''I will just have to grind through it,'' he thought and continued. He cleaned the cauldron, made a few new adjustments to the recipe, and continued. He followed the recipe perfectly, and yet he once again made a worse pill. "Okay, I can''t continue like this. What the hell am I doing wrong?" He was close to ripping away his hair. He took the pill out and checked. "Did I burn it somewhere I couldn''t see? Are some ingredients not turning to powder? Am I really making any mistake?" he wondered and looked at the pill. He tried to see any abnormalities with the pills, but he was too novice in the grand scheme of Alchemy to know what he was doing. In the end, he couldn''t see anything wrong. He was about to put back the pill when he remembered something. The gesture he was making right now, taking a pill up to his face to check it, was something he had seen another person do as well. ''Didn''t the royal alchemist do the same thing?'' he thought. He remembered back to the day when they had met him. The man had taken his pill and looked at it in just the same way. Except¡­ he hadn''t. ''He couldn''t see anything so he had to eat another pill right?'' Alex thought. He remembered seeing the Royal Alchemist''s eyes go wide after eating that one pill. ''Could it be that pill amplified his visions and allowed him to see something?'' Alex wondered. Then, he thought back to the remark he had made. ''He talked about my temperature controls, my cauldron, and my ingredients. However, he also talked about something else,'' Alex thought. ''Structure and Composition of the powder and pill.'' Alex''s mind raced as he tried to make sense of those words. ''Structure? Composition? Am I supposed to know these things by now?'' he wondered. There was nothing in his lessons from his master regarding this. As for the different books in the libraries¡­ he checked again. "Oh, there is something," he was surprised when he did indeed find a little information. It didn''t tell him anything at all, but somewhat vaguely explained what the Structure and Composition of a pill meant. "I see¡­ " he thought when he finished reading it all. He felt like he comprehended a new aspect of the alchemy process that he just didn''t know about before today. "So, composition refers to the ratio at which the powders from the different ingredients are mixed. The Royal Alchemist seemed to care about it, so if I manage to make pills that will use all the powder in a cauldron, or at least the proper ratio of it, then I''m guaranteed to have a much higher level of pill huh?" he thought. It would take a long time, but if he could learn enough to tweak the ratio around, then presumably, he wouldn''t even need to use all the powder to make a perfect pill, just the right amount. "Structure on the other hand looks to be much more important. Isn''t it basically telling me that the shape of the individual powder impacts how much energy I can store in it?" he wondered. Structure referred to the shape of the minute individual particles of the powders. "So¡­ the direction in which the ingredient moves and the speed at which it moves must determine the structure of the powder that is formed, and that powder determines whether it can hold the resulting energy of the pill or not." "So, if I want to make my pill better, then I will have to make sure that their powder ratio is the best, and that the structure of the powder is also the most accepting of the energy." Chapter 383: Shapes "Can I even check the structure on my own?" Alex wondered for a second. "Let''s try with my spiritual sense," he thought. He brought out his spiritual sense and started looking at the pill on his hand. Normally, he would just look at the pill and forget about it, but now, he had to check it properly. So, he focused on it with his spiritual sense. Suddenly, it was as if a new world had been opened in front of his eyes. He could see every single small detail that he couldn''t otherwise on a daily alchemy procedure. He had never focused on a pill to see how it looked. He always had just assumed the powder to be nothing more than just decorative after all. And to be fair, it was indeed decorative. The powder itself did nothing; it was the energy within the pill that created the various effect. However, if the powder housed the energy just as Alex had just now learned, he would now have to start focusing on it as well. Alex felt his spiritual sense quickly diminishing when he started checking the materials on a microscopic level. The pill on his hands looked very weird when zoomed in through his spiritual sense. Normally, the pill had a slightly pinkish hue to it. This was the color the pill took after almost every iteration. That was just the color the ingredients burned to. However, under zoom, he could see that the pill was not pink at all. It was actually multicolored. Some were yellow, some were green, some were blue, and some were even black. But the majority of the powder was just red and white, leading to the pink color. Alex ignored the color for now and checked the shapes of the powder particles. There were various shapes that he just couldn''t describe properly. They were also all clumped together so it was quite hard to see the shapes. So, Alex crushed the pill and put it on top of a metal plate. Finally, with the height of the ''pill'' reducing to such a low amount, he could see the shapes with much more ease. "Oh, so different," he thought. The powders were all mostly in different shapes. Some were spherical in shape, some were crystalline with cubic or rhomboid shapes, some were cylindrical, and some were even helix shapes. Alex was surprised by how many types of shapes he could see. He quickly stopped focusing on his spiritual sense. "Arghh¡­ that''s not a very fun feeling," he thought. It felt like the headache he got on days he didn''t get much sleep. He thought about what he saw just now and fell into thought. The shapes were all different and not something he could really tell if they were good or bad. "Oh, wait a second," he thought and quickly rummaged through his storage bag. He came across a pill bottle that wasn''t filled with pills, but rather just powder. Every time he had tested with these ingredients, he had thrown away most of the powders but ended up keeping some into the pill bottle. He gently dumped the content of the bottle in a straight line from the left to right. Starting from the left was the powder he made most recently, and at the right was the powder he had made the earliest. He remembered every single instance of powder he made, all the changes he had made, all the test criteria he had set for them, so when he checked from left to right, he knew exactly what he had to do to get that result. He forced his spiritual sense to check these powders again and started looking through the different patterns the powders had formed into. "Those are just minute spheres. That was when I use 500 degrees with clockwise rotation for 3 whole turns at 2 seconds per turn." "Those are just tinier spheres, but these ones are clumped together in groups. If I remember correctly, that was when I set the temperature to 350 degrees, with clockwise rotation at 4 seconds per rotation for 2 and a half rotations." "Those are¡­" He went through all of them. He quickly realized that temperature also played an aspect in the shape of the pills, albeit indirectly. What truly affected the shapes were the speed at which the ingredient was moved in while it turned to powder and the direction it was moving in. Depending on the temperature, some of the ingredients were in motion for a lot longer than other ones. These affected the shape as well. Alex took out another pill bottle and dumped its content as well. This powder belonged to a different ingredient, so Alex checked this one as well. While the shapes of the powder weren''t the same as the ones for the other powder at similar test criteria, they followed a similar direction in terms of the shape. Just to be sure, he took another one out and laid it on the metal. He checked it too and found out that the shapes indeed follow a pattern. Depending on the time it took for the ingredient to fully turn to powder, the shape of the powder was different. If the ingredient turned to powder very fast, it would end up being small flakes. If it moved for longer, it would start to clump together and form a cubic shape. Then it would deform to become a rhomboid shape, which it was moved for a much longer time, would slowly lose their shapes to become irregular individual blobs. It didn''t end there, however. If the ingredient was in the cauldron for longer, it would turn to thick, cylindrical in shape, that would elongate and it went on and start turning to a helix shape, which would then clump on itself to form small spheres that were attached to itself. Finally, if it went for much longer, the spheres would separate and end up as individual spheres that moved around separately. By that time, there would be no more energy remaining in the ingredient no matter what ingredient it was. Chapter 384: Meridian Tempering 1st Realm Alex left for breakfast at around 7 am after learning about the shapes and structures of the powder for nearly 2 hours. During that time, he realized a few more things. First thing was that the direction in which the ingredients were moved affected the powders in a way that created some threading-like pattern on the powder particles, threading that was similar to a screw or the inside of a nut bolt. When moved clockwise, the threading would be protruded like that of a screw, and when moved counterclockwise, it would become sunken like that of a nut. The threading was so small that it nearly cost Alex half of his spiritual sense to focus on that small of a level. When he just checked the powder particles on their own, the threading was actually practically invisible aside from giving a slight bit of texture to the powder. Once he was done with those, he started making different pills to understand how the structure and composition helped with the different pills in what way. Before he knew it, 2 hours had passed away and he had barely learned a thing. "What''s wrong? Are you nervous about something?" Emily asked at the dinner table. "Oi Alex, you better not be regretting asking Emily out now," Sarah teased from the side. "What? Oh, sorry. It''s nothing. It''s just some things inside of the game that got me thinking mindlessly," Alex said. "You better not be thinking about that conspiracy again. Honestly, I thought you got it out of your system," Hannah said. "Huh? No¡ª " "What''s this about?" Sarah cut off Alex. Hannah explained what Alex had done with the helmet a few days ago, without missing a single piece of information. Alex cringed a little when he heard what he had done out loud. "That''s not it," he said. "That''s not what I am thinking about. It''s related to alchemy," he explained. "Oh, then that''s good. You shouldn''t think like those conspiracy theorists. So, what''s there is an alchemy to make you think this hard?" Hannah asked. "Isn''t it just putting ingredients in a pot and cooking it until a pill comes out?" "Uhh¡­ it''s way more complex. I wouldn''t expect you to understand my problems," Alex said. "Why not search the internet then? They have everything," Hannah said. "I''ve tried. There''s nothing. No blog post or video. Not even the forum has a single post about anything above basic level alchemy," Alex said. "Hmm¡­ if there is no post about anything¡­then why don''t you post one yourself?" Emily asked. "You can ask people what you have problems with." "I¡­ had never thought of that. You''re right, we can do that. Huh¡­ I''ll go make a post right now," Alex said and quickly finished his meal. He went to his room and opened the forum on his laptop. He searched for information about what he wanted once more and couldn''t find anything at all. "Sigh! Alright, let''s make a new post," he thought and clicked on the ''create a new post'' button. The website led him to the login page. He needed an account to interact with the posts aside from just reading them. "Uhh¡­ sure," he thought and created a new account. He filled up everything that was needed and logged in. He opened a new post and started typing. "Alright, that should do it," he said and clicked ''Post''. As such, his first-ever post on the internet went online. His post was now visible and so he waited for a little for people to come. But very soon after he decided not to wait for long. He closed his laptop and logged back into the game. Once he got back into the game, he frowned when he remembered that he had so many pills and ingredients to sort through and understand in his head. "Ugh¡­ I will do that later." He called Pearl back and started training once more. Pearl was getting better at attacking and dodging as well due to the constant fighting. After 2 or 3 hours of constant training, he finally let Pearl take some rest. Pearl went back into the fog to do who knew what. Alex on the other hand took out his sword and trained again. For now, he was focusing on getting to know the weight of the sword and the balance of it. Then he would try swinging it so that he could make the most efficient attacks every time. He wanted to weed out any unnecessary motions during his sword fight. As for the shadow battle, he didn''t believe himself to be good enough in the ways of swords to fight anyone he thought was good enough, his primary opponent of choice obviously being Du Yuhan. "Ahh¡­ " he stretched and stopped practicing at around 2 pm in the afternoon. He took out a 1st Meridian Realm beast''s core and ate it. He defeated the fight with the beast very quickly and was given notifications that he had gotten quite a few Qi. He smiled and opened the status page once more. "Ah yes. I have enough," he thought and pushed ''Breakthrough''. Suddenly, all the extra Qi inside of him was used up and he broke through from the 9th realm of Organ Tempering realm to the 1st realm of Meridian Tempering. The system notifications arrived, congratulating him on breaking through. "Huh?" Alex was surprised a little. "What is it trying to detect?" he wondered. The notification didn''t sound for a few more seconds, and then¡­ ''Extreme Metal affinity?¡­ the blood essence from Pearl''s mother?'' he wondered. That was what had given him an advantage in Metal energy. Chapter 385: Immortal Alex felt something change within him. "¡­ Eh?" Alex was dumbfounded for a few seconds. Then, he read the notifications once more. As he read, his eyes widened when he realized what it meant. "Wait wait wait wait wait¡­ did I just get a Superior Metal Spiritual root? Wait, no¡­ it says Supreme. What''s that? Is it better than Superior?" He didn''t know what was going on. Only his metal root was suddenly upgraded, instead of all of them. "Wait, did my spiritual roots change and I no longer have all 7 energy roots?" he thought and quickly opened his status page again to check. Thankfully, his spiritual root hadn''t changed. "Phew, thank god," he said. Just then, another piece of notification popped up. "What? What the hell is detecting this time?" he cried out loud. "Huh? But it should have already discov¡ª " another Notification arrived at the same time.